OF DOMESTICAL DUTIES Eight Treatises. I. An Exposition of that part of Scripture out of which Domestical Duties are raised. II. 1. A right Conjunction of Man and Wife. 2. Common-mutuall Duties betwixt Man and Wife. III. Particular Duties of Wives. IU. Particular Duties of Husbands. V. Duties of Children. VI Duties of Parents. VII. Duties of Servants. VIII. Duties of Masters. By WILLIAM GOUGE. LONDON, Printed by john Haviland for William Bladen, and are to be sold at the sign of the Bible near the great North door of Paul's. 1622. TO THE RIGHT HONOURABLE, RIGHT Worshipful, and other my beloved Parishioners, Inhabitants of the Precinct of Blackfriars LONDON, such sufficiency of Grace as may bring them to fullness of Glory. IF noble Birth, high Honour, great Estate, true Piety, bountiful Charity, good Esteem of God's word and Ministers, and in particular, entire love of the Author, be inducements to choose a Patron for his work, I, for my part, need not go far for a Patron. In mine own parish are all these. To you therefore (right Honourable, right Worshipful, and other my beloved Parishioners, most worthy of all due respect) do I dedicate these my poor pains about Domestical Duties. To testify the equal duty which I owe, and the impartial respect which I bear to you all, I make you all as one Patron. You were the first over whom I ever had any ministerial charge. To this charge by your free choice was I called. Among you have I spent * Since Midsummer. 1608. almost two full prenticeships. You have always so accepted my pains, and respected my person, as I never had any cause to repent my acceptance of this place, and call: but rather to thank God for the same. My desire is (if so it may seem good to the divine providence) to spend all my days among you: and, while I am among you, to help forward your spiritual edification. This is the main end of my calling, and the mark, which, as in the ordinary course of my Ministry, so in the publishing of these Eight Treatises of Domestical Duties, and dedicating them to you, I have aimed at. As in testimony of Love and Duty I have preached in your hearing, and published in your name these Duties, so do you manifest your kind acceptance of my former, and latter pains, by a conscionable observing of them, so far forth as they are agreeable to God's word: that all who know you, may know by that evident demonstration, how well you have relished and approved them. Thus shall you gain much profit, and myself much comfort by my pains. Oh if the head and several members of a family would be persuaded every of them to be conscionable in performing their own particular duties, what a sweet society, and happy harmony would there be in houses? What excellent seminaries would families be to Church and Commonwealth? 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Arist. Eth. lib. 8. cap. 12. Necessary it is that good order be first set in families: for as they were before other polities, so they are somewhat the more necessary: and good members of a family are like to make good members of Church and commonwealth. The subject matter therefore of these Treatises is worth the handling, if I were able according to the worth thereof to handle it. I have endeavoured to do what I could therein, though I have not attained to what I would. Be you like unto God, who, if there be first a willing mind, accepteth according to that a man hath, and not according to that he hath not. Though for such a matter as is handled in these Treatises, the work may seem at first sight to be too copious, yet I hope the observant Reader will not find it too tedious. It is the variety of many, M 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Ammon. Multum loqui est rem superfluis agere verbis. Aug. Epist. 121. ad Prob. not the prolixity of few points which hath made this book to swell to that bigness which it hath. The first Treatise (which is a fourth part of the book) containeth a Commentary on that part of Scripture out of which Domestical Duties are raised: wherein the Apostle setting forth Christ and the Church as patterns to husbands and wives, lively declareth the great love of Christ to his Church, and the near union betwixt them, together with other deep mysteries, the unfolding whereof hath a little the longer detained me. But as I have a while insisted on main matters of much moment, so have I very briefly passed over other points. The other Treatises, wherein the Duties themselves are handled, are every of them much shorter than the first. In them I have barely propounded and briefly proved the truth and equity of the several duties, except some choice points which are of especial use, or at least through disuse much questioned: and them I have more largely handled. And because contraries laid together 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Arist. Rhet. lib. 3. cap. 2. do much set forth each other in their lively colours, I have to every duty annexed the contrary fault, and aberration from it. For many that hear the duties think all well enough, till they hear also the contrary vices, whereby in their consciences they are most convinced. Concerning the many faults and vices of bad Husbands, Wives, Parents, Children, Masters and Servants, taxed in these Treatises, let me entreat you, not to apply them too generally to all Husbands, Wives, Parents, Children, Masters and Servants. Hath not wise Solomon much taxed the lightness, shrewishness, pride, flattery, and other vices of women? And shall sober, meek, humble, honest women think themselves taxed thereby? By like reason might unchaste strumpets, untrusty gossips, unquiet shrews, and proud dames think themselves commended by those excellent commendations which be giveth of good women. Let every one, as their conscience (an impartial judge) shall bear them witness, make a right application of every thing to themselves. Thus shall we Ministers be freed from many evil surmizes. I remember that when these Domestical Duties were first uttered out of the pulpit, much exception was taken against the application of a wife's subjection to the restraining of her from disposing the common goods of the family without, or against her husband's consent. But surely they that made those exceptions did not well think of the Cautions and Lamitations which were then delivered, and are now again expressly noted: which are, that the foresaid restraint be not extended to the a Paraphernalia. Treat. 3. §. 21. proper goods of a wife, no nor overstrictly to such b Ibid. goods as are set apart for the use of the family, nor to c Treat. 3. §. 22. extraordinary cases, nor always to an d Treat. 3. §. 19 express consent, nor to the e Treat. 3. §. 18. consent of such husbands as are impotent, or far and long absent. If any other warrantable caution shall be showed me, I will be as willing to admit it, as any of these. Now that my meaning may not still be perverted, I pray you, in reading the restraint of wife's power in disposing the goods of the family, ever bear in mind those Cautions. Other exceptions were made against some other particular duties of wives. For many that can patiently enough hear their duties declared in general terms, cannot endure to hear those generals exemplified in their particular branches. This cometh too near to the quick, and pierceth too deep. But (to interpret all, according to the rule of love, in the better part) I take the main reason of the many exceptions which were taken, to be this, that wife's duties (according to the Apostles method) being in the first place handled, there was taught (as must have been taught, except the truth should have been betrayed) what a wife, in the uttermost extent of that subjection under which God hath put her, is bound unto, in case her husband will stand upon the uttermost of his authority: which was so taken, as if I had taught that an husband might, and aught to exact the uttermost, and that a wife was bound in that uttermost extent to do all that was delivered as duty, whether her husband exact it or no. But when I came to deliver husbands duties, f Treat. 4. §. 18. I showed, that he ought not to exact whatsoever his wife was bound unto (in case it were exacted by him) but that he ought to make her a joint Governor of the family with himself, and refer the ordering of many things to her discretion, and with all honourable and kind respect to carry himself towards her. In a word, I so set down an husband's duties, as if he be wise and conscionable in observing them, his wife can have no just cause to complain of her subjection. That which maketh a wife's yoke heavy and hard, is an husbands abuse of his authority: and more pressing his wife's duty, then performing his own: which is directly contrary to the g Ephes. 5. 33. See Treat. 1. §. 95. Apostles rule. This just Apology I have been forced to make, that I might not ever be judged (as some have censured me) * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Athen. an hater of women. Now that in all those places where a wife's yoke may seem most to pinch, I might give some ease, I have to every head of wife's duties made a reference, in the margin over against it, to the duties of husbands answerable thereunto, and noted the reference with this mark *, that it might the more readily be turned unto. Yea I have further paralleled, and laid even one against another in one view, the heads of husbands and wives duties, as they answer each other: and in like manner the contrary aberrations: with a reference made unto the particular sections where they are handled: that so on the one side it may appear, that if both of them be conscionable and careful to perform their own duty, the matrimonial yoke will so equally lie on both their necks, as the wife will be no more pinched therewith then the husband, but that it will be like Christ's spiritual yoke, light and easy: and that on the Mat. 11. 30. other side it may be manifest that there is commonly as much failing by husbands in their duties, as by wives in theirs. This parallel and even-setting out of each of their duties, and of the contrary aberrations, I have annexed next to this epistle. And further I have added thereto a table of the several heads of those points that are handled in the eight following Treatises, that by this help you may the more readily find out such particular points as you desire most especially to read. To show that the duties prescribed to Husbands, Wives, Parents, Children, Masters, and Servants, are such as in conscience they are bound unto, I have endeavoured to show how they are grounded on the word of God, and gathered from thence. To avoid prolixity, I have referred most of the quotations to the margin. If your leisure will serve you, you may do well to search them out. Two things have been especial helps to me for finding out the many duties noted in these Treatises, & vices contrary thereunto: Observation and Disposition. Observation both of such duties as the Scripture commendeth and contrary vices as it condemneth: and also of such commendable virtues as I well liked in those Husbands, Wives, Parents, Children, Masters, and Servants, that I came among, and such unseemly vices as I disliked in them: and Disposition of one point after another in the best order that I could. My method and manner of proceeding brought many things to my mind, which otherwise might have slipped by. For by method sundry and several points appertaining to one matter are drawn forth, as in a chain one link draweth up another. There is no better way to find out many observations in a text, then by a methodical resolution thereof. As method is an help to Invention, so also to retention. It is as the thread or wire whereon pearls are put, which keepeth them from scattering. And if a man by abundance of matter be cast into a labyrinth, by the help of method he may easily and readily find out the way again. In which respects method is fitly styled the Methodusintelligentiae parens est, & magistra memoriae. Mother of the Mind, and Mistress of Memory. If you well mark the order and dependence of points one upon another, you will find as great an help in conceiving and remembering Ordo memoriae maximè, lumen affert. Cic. 2. de Orat. them, as I did in inventing and disposing them. Because there is not one word to comprise under it both masters and mistresses, as fathers and mothers are comprised under Parents, and sons and daughters under Children, I have according to the Scripture phrase comprised Mistresses under Masters: so as the duties enjoined to them belong to these, so far as may stand with their sex. To conclude, in recompense of all my pains I heartily pray you all to pray heartily for him who daily prayeth for you, even Church-court in Blackfriars London. 2. Febr. 1621. The Watchman of your souls, WILLIAM GOUGE. A few faults escaped in the printing are noted in the end of the book, which I desire you to amend with a pen. TREAT. III. Particular duties of Wives. SVbiection, the general head of all wife's duties, §. 2. 1 Acknowledgement of an husband's superiority, §. 3. 2 A due esteem of her own husband to be the best for her, and worthy of honour on her part, §. 5. 3 An inward wive-like fear, §. 7. 4 An outward reverend carriage towards her husband, which consisteth in a wive-like sobriety, mildness, courtesy, and modesty in apparel, §. 9, 10, 11, 12. 5 Reverend speech to, and of her husband, §. 13, 14, 15, 16. 6 Obedience, §. 17. 7 Forbearing to do without or against her husband's consent, such things as he hath power to order, as, to dispose and order the common goods of the family, and the allowance for it, or children, servants, cattle, guests, journeys, etc. §. 18, 23, 38, 39, 40, 41. 8 A ready yielding to what her husband would have done. This is manifested by her willingness to dwell where he will, to come when he calls, and to do what he requireth, §. 43, 44, 45, 46. 9 A patient bearing of any reproof, and a ready redressing of that for which she is justly reproved, §. 47, 48. 10 Contentment with her husband's present estate, §. 49. 11 Such a subjection as may stand with her subjection to Christ, §. 51. 12 Such a subjection as the Church yieldeth to Christ, which is sincere, pure, cheerful, constant, for conscience sake, §. 54, 55, etc. TREAT. IV. Particular duties of Husbands. WJsdome and Love, the general heads of all husband's duties, §. 2, 4. 1 Acknowledgement of a wives near conjunction, and fellowship with her husband, §. 6. 2 A good esteem of his own wise to be the best for him, and worthy of love on his part, §. 9 3 An inward entire affection, §. 11. 4 An outward amiable carriage towards his wife, which consisteth in an husband-like gravity, mildness, courteous acceptance of her courtesy, and allowing her to wear fit apparel, §. 4, 15, 22, 40, 49. 5 Mild and loving speech to and of his wife, §. 24 25, 26, etc. 6 A wise maintaining his authority, and forbearing to exact all that is in his power, §. 4, 18. 7 A ready yielding to his wife's request, and giving a general consent and liberty unto her to order the affairs of the house, children, servants, etc. And a free allowing her something to bestow as she seeth occasion, §. 18, 54. 8 A forbearing to exact more than his wife is willing to do, or to force her to dwell where it is not meet, or to enjoin her to do things unmeet in themselves, or against her mind, §. 18, 26. 9 A wise ordering of reproof: not using it without just and weighty cause, and then privately, and meekly, §. 35, 38. 10 A provident care for his wife, according to his ability, §. 46, 49, 50, 52. 11 A forbearing to exact any thing which stands not with a good conscience, §. 26. 12 Such a love, as Christ beareth to the Church, and man to himself, which is first free, in deed, and truth, pure, chaste, constant, §. 61, etc. and 74. TREAT. III. Aberrations of Wives from their particular duties. AMbition, the general ground of the aberrations of wives, §. 2. 1 A conceit that wives are their husband's equals, §. 4. 2 A conceit that she could better subject herself to any other man then to her own husband, §. 6. 3 An inward despising of her husband, §. 8. 4 Vnreverend behaviour towards her husband, manifested by lightness, sullenness, scornfulness, and vanity in her attire, §. 9, 10, 11, 12. 5 Vnreverend speech to and of her husband, §. 13, 14, 15, 16. 6 A stout standing on her own will, §. 17. 7 A peremptory undertaking to do things as she list without and against her husband's consent. This is manifested by privy purloining his goods, taking allowance, ordering children, servants, and cattle, feasting strangers, making journeys, and vows, as herself listeth, §. 42. 8 An obstinate standing upon her own will, making her husband dwell where she will, and refusing to go when he calls, or to do any thing upon his command, §. 44, 45, 46, 67. 9 Disdain at reproof; giving word for word; and waxing worse for being reproved, §. 47, 48. 10 Discontent at her husband's estate, §. 50. 11 Such a pleasing of her husband as offendeth Christ, §. 53. 12 Such a subjection as is most unlike to the Churches, viz. feigned, forced, fickle, etc. §. 56, etc. TREAT. IV. Aberrations of Husbands from their particular duties. WAnt of wisdom and love, the general ground of the aberrations of husbands, §. 3, 5. 1 Too mean account of wives, §. 8. 2 A preposterous conceit of his own wife to be the worst of all: and that he could love any but her, §. 10. 3 A Stoical disposition, without all heat of affection, §. 12. 4 An unbeseeming carriage towards his wife, manifested by his baseness, tyrannical usage of her, loftiness, harshness, and niggardliness, §. 5, 15, 17, 41, 44, 53. 5 Harsh, proud, and bitter speeches, to and of his wife, §. 24, 25, 30, 32, 36, 39 6 Losing of his authority, §. 5. 7 Too much strictness over his wife. This is manifested by restraining her from doing any thing without particular and express consent, taking too strict account of her, and allowing her no more than is needful for her own private use, §. 19, 55. 8 Too lordly a standing upon the highest step of his authority: being too frequent, insolent, and peremptory in commanding things frivolous, unmeet, and against his wife's mind and conscience, §. 30, 32. 9 Rashness and bitterness in reproving: and that too frequently, on slight occasions, and disgracefully before children, servants, and strangers, §. 36, 38, 39 10 A careless neglect of his wife, and niggardly dealing with her, and that in her weakness, §. 46, 51, 53 11 A commanding of unlawful things, §. 26, 30, 32. 12 Such a disposition as is most unlike to Christ's, and to that which a man beareth to himself, viz. complemental, impure, for by-respects, unconstant, etc. §. 62, etc. and 74. A Table of the several points handled in the eight Treatises of Domestical Duties. I. TREATISE. An exposition of that part of Scripture out of which domestical duties are raised. §. 1 OF the Apostles transition from general duties to particulars. pag. 1 2 Of joining service to men with praising of God. 2 3 Of every one's submitting himself to another. 4 4 Of the fear of God. 8 5 Of the fear of God moving us to do service to men. 11 6 Of limiting all duty to man within the compass of the fear of God. 13 7 Of performing the duties of particular callings. 16 8 Of the lawfulness of private functions in a family. 17 9 Of the Apostles order in laying down the duties of husbands and wives in the first place. 20 10 Of the Apostles order in setting down inferiors duties in the first place. 21 11 Of the reasons why wives duties are first taught. 25 12 Of wife's subjection. 26 13 Of the persons to whom wives must be subject. 27 14 How an husband is his wife's head. 29 15 Of the resemblance of an husband to Christ. 30 16 Of the resemblance betwixt The Church to Christ. 31 A wife to her husband. 17 Of the relation betwixt Christ and the Church. 32 18 Of the benefit of Christ's headship. 34 19 Of Christ a sufficient Saviour. 35 20 Of Christ the only Saviour. 36 21 Of the Church the body of Christ. 38 22 Of the extent of Christ's goodness to all his body. 38 23 Of the restraint of the benefit of Christ's headship to them only that are of his body. 40 24 Of the Church's subjection to Christ. 41 25 Of the extent of the Church's subjection. 42 26 Of the sum of husband's duties. 43 27 Of the example of Christ's love. 44 28 Of Christ's giving himself. 46 29 Of the willingness of Christ to die. 47 30 Of the kind of Christ's death, and oblation. 48 31 Of the infinite value of the price of our redemption. 48 32 Of Christ's seeking the good of the Church. 50 33 Of the particular ends, why Christ gave himself, and of the condition of the Church before Christ took her. 51 34 Of Christ's preventing grace. 54 35 Of Christ's seeking to make his Church pure. 55 36 Of the Church's justification. 55 37 Of the Church's sanctification. 56 38 Of the Church's purity before God and man. 56 39 Of the order and dependence of justification and sanctification one upon another. 58 40 Of Sacramental washing of water. 59 41 How Baptism is a means of cleansing and sanctifying. 60 42 Objections against the efficacy of Baptism answered. 61 43 What kind of means of grace baptism is. 62 44 Of the necessity of baptism. 62 45 Of the contrary extremes of Papists and Ana. baptists, about the necessity and efficacy of baptism. 63 46 Of the inward washing by baptism. 65 47 Of joining the word with baptism. 66 48 Of the inference of glorification upon instification and sanctification. 68 49 Of the fruition of Christ's presence in heaven. 70 50 Of the glory of the Church in heaven. 72 51 Of the Church's freedom from all deformity in heaven. 73 52 Of the perfect purity of the Church in heaven. 74 53 Of the application of the things which Christ hath done for the the Church, unto husbands. 75 54 Of the application of the love which a man beareth to himself, unto an husband. 76 55 Of the amplification of a man's love of himself. 78 56 Of man's natural affection to himself. 79 57 Of natural self-love. 80 58 Of spiritual self-love. 82 59 Of evil self-love. 82 60 Of the error of Stoics in condemning all passion. 83 61 Of well using natural affection. 83 62 Of man's forbearing to wrong himself. 84 63 Of unnatural practices against one's self. 85 64 Of haters of others. 86 65 Of man's care in providing and using things needful for his body. 87 66 Of them that neglect to cherish their bodies. 88 67 Of contentment in that which is sufficient. 89 68 Of Christ's forbearing to hate the Church. 90 69 Of Christ's nourishing and cherishing his Church. 91 70 Of the union betwixt Christ and the Saints. 93 71 Of the privileges appertaining to the Saints even in this life by reason of their union with Christ. 98 72 Of the privilege of our union with Christ in the time of death. 102 73 Of the privilege of our union with Christ after death. 103 74 Of the duties which are required of the Saints by virtue of their union with Christ. 104 75 Of their regeneration who are members of Christ. 105 76 Of the author of our regeneration, Christ. 106 77 Of the matter of our regeneration, Christ. 108 78 Of the excellency of regeneration. 109 79 Of the ancient law of marriage. 110 80 Of preferring husband or wife before parents. 112 81 Of the firmness of the matrimonial bond 114. 82 Of two only to be joined together in marriage. 114 83 Of polygamy and bigamy. 115 84 Of the near conjunction of man and wife together. 115 85 Of the matrimonial conjunction of Christ and the Church. 117 86 Of Christ's leaving his father and mother for his spouse. 120 87 Of the indissoluble union betwixt Christ and the Church. 121 88 Of the equal privilege of all the Saints. 122 89 Of the near union betwixt Christ and the Church. 123 90 Of the mystery of the union of Christ and the Church. 124 91 Of the Pope's usurping to be spouse of the Church. 125 92 Of the false sacrament of marriage. 126 93 Of the sum of husbands and wives duties. 128 94 Of applying the word to ourselves. 129 95 Of every one's looking to his own duties especially. 130 96 Of the meaning of the first verse of the sixth chapter. 132 97 Of the meaning of the second verse. 134 98 Of aiming at our own, in seeking the good of others. 137 99 Of preferring honesty before commodity. 138 100 Of the meaning of the third verse. 139 101 Of prosperity: how far forth it may be a blessing. 140 102 Of prosperity bestowed on the wicked, how it proves a curse. 141 103 How both having, and wanting prosperity is a blessing to the Saints. 142 104 Of long-life: how far forth it is a blessing. 143 105 Of long life proving a curse to the wicked. 144 106 Of limiting the promises of temporal blessings. 144 107 Of appropriating prosperity and long life to the obedience which children yield to their parents. 145 108 Of Gods ordering his favours so as they may appear to be true blessings. 147 109 Of God's high account of dutiful children. 148 110 Of children's doing good to themselves by honouring their parents. 148 111 Of parents doing good to their children by keeping them under obedience. 149 112 Of the perpetuity of the substance of such things as in their circumstances respecting the jews are vanished. 150 113 Of the determined period of man's life. 151 114 Of reward promised to obedience, that it implieth no merit. 153 115 Of the connexion of parent's duty with children's. 153 116 Of the extent of these words, fathers, children. 154 117 Of parents provoking children. 155 118 Of parents seeking the good of their children. 156 119 Of parents nurturing their children. 157 120 Of parents fixing precepts in their children's minds. 158 121 Of adding information to discipline. 158 122 Of parents teaching their children the fear of God. 159 123 Of the subjection which believing servants owe. 159 124 Of the meaning of the fifth verse. 160 125 Of the meaning of the sixth verse. 164 126 Of the meaning of the seventh verse. 168 127 Of the meaning of the eight verse. 168 128 Of the connexion of master's duties with servants. 171 129 Of the meaning of this phrase, do the same things. 172 130 Of masters forbearing threatening. 174 131 Of master's subjection to a greater master. 175 132 Of Gods being in heaven. 175 133 Of Gods having no respect of persons. 177 II. TREATISE. PART. I. Of husband and wife who are so to be accounted. §. 1. OF those who may seek to be married. 179 2 Of ripeness of years in them that are to be married. 180 3 Of impotent persons that ought not to seek after marriage. 181 4 Of barrenness, that it hindereth not marriage. 182 5 Of that inevitable danger which hindereth marriage. 183 6 Of the lawfulness of marriage to all sorts of persons. 183 7 Of the things which are absolutely necessary to make a person fit for marriage. 185 8 Of the lawfulness of other marriages after one of the married couple is dead. 186 9 Of equality in years betwixt husband and wife. 188 10 Of equality in estate and condition betwixt those that are to be married together. 189 11 Of equality in piety and religion betwixt those that are to be married together. 191 12 Of marriages betwixt persons of diverse professions. 192 13 Of that mutual liking which must pass betwixt marriageable persons before they be married. 196 14 Of a contract what it is. 198 15 Of the grounds of a contract. 198 16 Of the reasons which show how requisite a contract is. 200 17 Of abusing or neglecting a contract. 202 18 Of the distance of time betwixt a contract and marriage. 202 19 Of a religious consecrating of marriage. 203 20 Of clandestine marriages. 205 21 Of a civil celebrating of marriage. 206 22 Of ill or well ordering marriage feasts. 206 23 Of the honour of marriage in regard of the first institution thereof. 208 24 Of the ends of marriage. 209 25 Of the privileges of marriage. 210 26 Of the mystery of marriage. 211 27 Of marriage and single life compared together. 211 28 Of celebrating marriage with sorrow. 212 II. TREATISE. PART. II. Of common mutual duties betwixt man and wife. §. 1. OF the heads of those common mutual duties. 213 2 Of matrimonial unity. 214 3 Of desertion. 215 4 Of matrimonial chastity. 216 5 Of adultery. 218 6 Of pardoning adultery upon repentance. 218 7 Of the difference of adultery in a man and in a wife. 219 8 Of the heinousness of adultery. 219 9 Of remedies against adultery, and in particular of due benevolence, and of defect or excess therein. 221 10 Of mutual love betwixt man and wife. 224 11 Of husbands and wives mutual hatred contrary to love. 227 12 Of mutual peace betwixt man and wife. 228 13 Of contentions betwixt man and wife. 230 14 Of husbands and wives dwelling together. 230 15 Of the respects for which man and wife may for a time live asunder. 231 16 Of the error of Papists about man and wife's separation. 232 17 Of husbands and wives unlawful absenting themselves one from another. 234 18 Of husbands and wives mutual prayers. 235 19 Of the things for which husbands and wives are to pray alone. 236 20 Of husbands and wives hateful imprecations and wishes one against another. 237 21 Of husbands and wives neglect of mutual prayer. 238 22 Of husbands and wives mutual care for one another's salvation. 238 23 Of husbands and wives care to win one the other when one of them is not called. 239 24 Of husbands and wives edifying one another. 240 25 Of husbands and wives hindering sin one in another. 240 26 Of husbands and wives redressing sin in one another. 242 27 Of husbands and wives helping forward the growth of grace in each other. 242 28 Of the sins of husbands and wives contrary to a mutual care of one another's salvation. 243 29 Of husbands and wives mutual care over one another's body. 245 30 Of husbands and wife's backwardness to help one another in time of need. 246 31 Of husbands and wives mutual respects of one another's good name. 247 32 Of husbands and wives preventing each others discredit. 248 33 Of the wisdom of husbands and wives in redressing one another's ill name. 249 34 Of husbands and wives care in procuring one another's good name. 249 35 Of husbands and wife's wisdom in preserving each others good name. 250 36 Of husbands and wives like affection towards one another's credit. 250 37 Of the vices contrary to that mutual care which man and wife should have of one another's credit. 251 38 Of husbands and wives mutual providence about the goods of the family. 253 39 Of the vices contrary to the good providence of husbands and wives about the goods of the family. 255 40 Of husbands and wives joint care in governing the family. 256 41 Of the vices contrary to a joint care of governing the family. 260 42 Of husbands and wives mutual help in hospitality. 261 43 Of vices contrary to mutual help in hospitality. 263 44 Of husbands and wives mutual help in relieving the poor. 264 45 Of husbands and wife's unmercifulness to the poor. 265 III. TREATISE. Of wife's particular Duties. §. 1. OF the general heads of this treatise. 267 2 Of a wife's subjection in general. 268 3 Of an husband's superiority over a wife, to be acknowledged by a wife. 269 4 Of a fond conceit that husband and wife are equal. 271 5 Of a wife's acknowledgement of her own husband's superiority. 272 6 Of wives denying honour to their own husbands. 273 7 Of a wife's inward flare of her husband. 274 8 Of a wife's base esteem of her husband. 275 9 Of wive-like sobriety. 277 10 Of wive-like mildness. 278 11 Of wive-like courtesy and obeisance. 279 12 Of wive-like modesty in apparel. 280 13 Of a wife's reverend speech to her husband. 281 14 Of the titles which wives give their husbands. 282 15 Of wife's meekness in their speeches. 284 16 Of a wife's speech of her husband in his absence. 285 17 of a wife's obedience in general. 286 18 Of the cases wherein a wife hath power to order things of the house without her husband's consent. 287 19 Of diverse kinds of consent. 288 20 Of the things whereabout a wife must have her husband's consent. 290 21 Of the things which a wife may dispose without her husband's consent. 291 22 Of a wife's liberty in extraordinary matters. 292 23 Of a wife's restraint in disposing goods without consent of her husband: and of the ground of that restraint. 293 24 Of the example of the Shunemite in ask her husband's consent. 294 25 Of the law of a wife's vow. 294 26 Of humane laws which restrain wives from disposing goods, without or against their husband's consent. 296 27 Of the inconveniences which may follow upon a wife's disposing goods without or against her husband's consent. 297 28 Of property in goods, whether it give liberty to dispose them as a wife will. 298 29 Of the reasons against a wife's property in the common goods of the family. 299 30 Of answers to the reasons for a wife's property. 301 31 Of the privileges of wives above children and servants in and about the goods of the family. 302 32 Of examples and other reasons alleged for liberty of wives to dispose goods. 302 33 Of the subjection of wives in distributing goods to charitable uses. 304 34 Of general exhortations to works of mercy, how far they bind wives. 305 35 Of obedience to an husband in such things as he sinfully forbiddeth. 305 36 Of Zipporah's case in circumcising her son. 306 37 Of the wife of chuza's case in ministering to Christ. 307 38 Of the restraint of wives about allowance for themselves or families without their husband's consent. 308 39 Of a wife's subjection to her husband about children. 309 40 Of a wife's subjection to her husband about ordering servants and beasts. 310 41 Of a wife's subjection in entertaining strangers, journeying abroad, and making vows. 311 42 Of aberrations contrary to wife's subjection in doing things without or against their husband's consent. 312 43 Of a wife's active obedience. 315 44 Of a wife's willingness to dwell where her husband will. 315 45 Of a wife's readiness to come to her husband when he requires it. 317 46 Of a wife's readiness to do what her husband requireth. 319 47 Of a wife's meek taking a reproof. 319 48 Of a wife's readiness to redress what her husband justly reproveth in her. 322 49 Of a wife's contentment with her husband's present estate. 323 50 Of a wife's discontent at her husband's estate. 324 51 Of cases wherein a wife ought not to forbear what her husband forbiddeth. 325 52 Of cases wherein a wife ought to forbear what her husband requireth. 328 53 Of wife's faults in showing more respect to their husbands then to God. 329 54 Of the manner of a wife's subjection to her husband. 329 55 Of wife's humility in every duty. 331 56 Of wife's pride. 331 57 Of wife's sincerity in every duty. 332 58 Of wife's compliment all subjection. 334 59 Of wife's cheerfulness in every duty. 334 60 Of wives sullen and forced obedience. 334 61 Of wife's constancy in doing their duty. 335 62 Of wives repenting their former goodness. 335 63 Of the extent of a wife's obedience. 336 64 Of a wife's labouring to bring her judgement to the bent of her husbands. 337 65 Of wives overweining conceit of their own wisdom. 338 66 Of a wife's yielding to her husband in such things as she thinketh not to be the meetest. 338 67 Of wives making their own will their law. 339 68 Of care in choosing such husbands as wives may without grief be subject unto. 340 69 Of the reasons to move wives to do their duties. 341 70 Of an husband's place. 342 71 Of an husband's office. 343 72 Of the resemblance betwixt Christ and an husband. 344 73 Of the benefit which a wife hath by an husband. 346 74 Of the example of the Church set before wives. 347 IU. TREATISE. Of Husband's particular duties. §. 1 OF the general heads of this treatise. 349 2 Of that love which husbands owe their wives. 350 3 Of an husband's hatred, and want of love. 352 4 Of an husband's wise maintaining his authority. 353 5 Of husbands losing their authority. 355 6 Of husbands high account of wives. 356 7 Of that fellowship which is betwixt man and wife, notwithstanding a wife's inferiority. 357 8 Of husbands too mean account of wives. 358 9 Of husbands good esteem of their own wives. 358 10 Of husbands preposterous opinion of their own wives. 359 11 Of husbands entire affection to their wives. 360 12 Of the stoical disposition of husbands to their wives. 362 13 Of an husband's kind acceptance of such things as his wife doth. 362 14 Of husbands fleighting and rejecting their wife's goodness. 363 15 Of husbands courteous accepting their wife's reverend carriage. 364 16 Of husbands ready yielding to their wife's humble suits. 365 17 Of husband's harshness to their wives. 365 18 Of husbands forbearing to exact all that they may. 366 19 Of husbands too much strictness towards their wives. 368 20 Of husbands encouraging their wives in good things. 369 21 Of husbands ungrateful discouraging their wives. 370 22 Of an husband's mildness. 370 23 Of husband's bitterness. 371 24 Of the titles which an husband giveth to his wife. 371 25 Of an husband's manner of instructing his wife. 372 26 Of an husband's manner of commanding his wife any thing. 373 27 Of an husband's wise carriage, when his wife is erroneously scrupulous. 375 28 Of an husbands forbearing to press things unbeseeming a wife's place. 376 29 Of an husbands pressing his authority in weighty matters. 376 30 Of husbands too great pride in commanding. 377 31 Of husbands rare and mild using their commanding power. 378 32 Of husband's insolency and peremptoriness. 378 33 Of an husbands reproving his wife. 379 34 Of neglecting reproof. 379 35 Of well ordering reproof in the matter thereof. 379 36 Of undue reproof. 381 37 Whether an husband may reprove his wife for such things as he is guilty of. 382 38 Of well ordering reproof in the manner thereof. 382 39 Of undiscreet reprooving a wife. 385 40 Of an husband's amiable countenance towards his wife. 386 41 Of husbands too great austerity. 387 42 Of an husband's familiar gesture with his wife. 388 43 Of an husbands giving favours to his wife. 389 44 Of husbands beating their wives. 389 45 Of an husbands bearing with his wife's infirmities. 393 46 Of an husband's provident care for his wife. 396 47 Of an husbands providing means of spiritual edification for his wife. 397 48 Of neglecting their wife's edification. 398 49 Of an husbands providing things needful for his wife's body. 399 50 Of an husband's provident care for his wife about her child-bearing. 399 51 Of neglecting wives in their weakness. 401 52 Of an husbands providing for his wife according to his estate and ability. 402 53 Of an husband's niggardliness to his wife. 402 54 Of husbands allowing their wives to bestow on others as they see good occasion. 403 55 Of husbands too great straightness over their wives. 405 56 Of an husband's care to provide for his wife so long as she shall live. 406 57 Of husband's neglect of their wives future estate. 407 58 Of an husbands protecting his wife from danger. 408 59 Of an husbands maintaining his wife against children of a former venture, and servants. 409 60 Of neglecting to maintain their wives. 410 61 Of an husband's first beginning to love his wife. 412 62 Of an husbands repaying unkindness for love. 413 63 Of the truth of husband's love. 414 64 Of husband's dissimulation. 414 65 Of the freeness of husband's love. 415 66 Of husbands loving for advantage. 415 67 Of the purity of husband's love. 415 68 Of husband's lightness. 416 69 Of husbands loving their wives more than themselves. 417 70 Of husband's unkindness. 417 71 Of combats in pretence of wife's honour. 417 72 Of husband's constancy in love. 418 73 Of husband's variableness. 419 74 Of husbands loving their wives as themselves. 419 75 Of Christ's example a motive to provoke husbands to love their wives. 422 76 Of a man's love to himself a motive to provoke him to love his wife. 426 V. TREATISE. Of children's duties. §. 1 OF the general heads of children's duties. 427 2 Of children's love to their parents. 428 3 Of a child's fear of his parents. 430 4 Of a child's reverence in refraining speech before his parent, and in harkening to his parent. 431 5 Of a child's reverend framing his speech to his parent. 433 6 Of the vices in children contrary to the forenamed reverence in speech. 434 7 Of children's reverend speeches of their parents. 435 8 Of a child's reverend carriage to his parent. 436 9 Of children's ask their parent's blessing, whether it be lawful or no. 437 10 Of the vices contrary to children's reverend gesture towards their parents. 439 11 Of children's obedience. 441 12 Of children's forbearing to do things without consent of parents. 442 13 Of consent of parents for children's entering into a calling. 443 14 Of the unlawfulness of children's entering into religious orders without consent of parents. 443 15 Of the unlawfulness of children's travelling, and binding themselves prentices without consent of parents. 446 16 Of parents consent to the marriage of their children. 446 17 Of the equity of the point, and reasons why children should have their parents consent unto their marriage. 449 18 Of a child's carriage in case a parent provide an unfit mate or none at all. 449 19 Of the sin of children in marrying without their parents consent. 450 20 Of objections for children's marrying without parent's consent, answered. 451 21 Of s●ealing children from parents for marriage sake. 452 22 Of ministers sin in marrying children without parents' consent. 452 23 Of children's forbearing to dispose any of their parents goods without consent. 453 24 Of the sin of children in purloining and wasting their parents goods. 454 25 Of children's contentedness to be apparelled after their parent's mind and liking. 456 26 Of children's forbearing to bind themselves to do any thing against their parent's consent. 456 27 Of children's active obedience. 457 28 Of children's obedience to their parents commandments. 457 29 Of children's disobedience to their parents commandments. 459 30 Of children's obedience to their parent's instruction. 459 31 Of children's patience to their parent's reproof. 460 32 Of children's readiness to amend what is justly reproved by their parents. 461 33 Of children's submission to their parent's correction. 462 34 Of refusing, or abusing correction. 463 35 Of children's conforming their judgements to their parents. 464 36 Of children's yielding to practice at their parents command, such things as in their judgements they cannot think very meet. 465 37 Of the restraint of children's obedience. 467 38 Of children's sin in yielding to their parents against God. 468 39 Of children's recompense. 469 40 Of infirmities whereunto parents are subject. 470 41 Of children's bearing with their parents infirmities. 470 42 Of children's covering their parents infirmities. 471 43 Of children's bearing with their parents casual necessities. 472 44 Of children's relieving their parents according to their need. 473 45 Of children's care to bury their parents being dead. 475 46 Of decency wherewith children ought to see their parents buried. 477 47 Of children's paying their parents debts after their death. 478 48 Of children's suppressing evil reports, against their parents deceased. 479 49 Of children's imitating their parents good example. 479 50 Of the superstitious duty enjoined by Papists to children after their parent's decease. 481 51 Of the unlawfulness of children's seeking to revenge their parents wrongs. 481 52 Of the manner of performing children's duties. 482 53 Of the aberrations of children in the manner of their obedience. 483 54 Of the equal respect that Children are to bear to both parents. 484 55 Of pretences alleged to obey father rather than mother. 485 56 Of the difference of children's subjection to natural parents, and to such as only are in the place of parents. 487 57 Of children's subjection to fathers and mothers in law. 488 58 Of children's subjection to Guardians, Tutors, etc. 489 59 Of the place of parents, whereby children ought to be moved to obey them. 490 60 Of the equity whereby children should be moved to obey their parents. 491 61 Of God's accepting children's obedience. 492 62 Of God's charge, how inviolable a bond it is to tie children to obey their parents. 493 63 Of the title First, given to the fifth commandment. 494 64 Of God's promise moving children to obey their parents. 495 VI TREATISE. Of Parent's Duties. §. 1. OF the heads of parents' duties. 497 2 Of that love which parents owe to their children. 498 3 Of the contraries to love. 499 4 Of parents praying for their children. 500 5 Of vices contrary to parents praying for their children. 501 6 Of parents endeavouring to be righteous that they may leave God's blessing to their children. 502 7 Of the preposterous course which covetous and unjust parents take for the good of their children. 503 8 Of parent's providence for their children. 505 9 Of a mother's care over her child while it is in her womb. 505 10 Of providing things needful for the child so soon as it is borne: and of cruelty contrary thereunto. 506 11 Of giving suck to children. 507 12 Of mother's giving suck to their own children. 508 13 Of the objections for putting children forth to nurse. 513 14 Of the father's duty in encouraging his wife to nurse her child. 517 15 Of the faults contrary to a mother's nursing her child. 517 16 Of a father's fault in hindering his wives nursing of her child. 518 17 Of parents joint care about their children's baptism. 518 18 Of the reasons to move parents to see their children baptised. 519 19 Of parents procuring their children to be rightly baptised. 521 20 Of parents care to give a fit name to their child at his baptism. 522 21 Of parents care in bringing their children to be baptised in due season. 523 22 Of parents faults in neglecting their children's Baptism. 523 23 Of parents providing things needful for the life and health of their children. 525 24 Of parents too much niggardliness, and carelessness towards their children. 527 25 Of parents too much lavishness and indulgency upon their children. 527 26 Of well nurturing children. 529 27 Of parents neglect in nurturing children. 529 28 Of parents teaching their children good manners. 530 29 Of the objections against good manners. 531 30 Of parents suffering their children to be rudely brought up. 532 31 Of parents training up their children to some good calling. 532 32 Of parents care in choosing a fit calling for their children. 534 33 Of parents faults contrary to their duty of training their children up to a calling. 535 34 Of parents teaching their children piety. 536 35 Of directing parents how to teach their children true piety. 539 36 Of parents faults contrary to their duty of teaching their children piety. 542 37 Of instructing children so soon as they are capable. 543 38 Of mother's peculiar care in nurturing young children. 546 39 Of letting slip the best time for nurture. 547 40 Of parents continuing to nurture their children. 547 41 Of parent's folly in letting go all their power over their children. 548 42 Of adding admonition to instruction. 548 43 Of parent's wearisomeness in instructing their children. 550 44 Of parents reproving their children. 550 45 Of parents cockering their children: 551 46 Of correcting children. 552 47 A direction to parents in correcting their children. 555 48 Of parents too much indulgency. 557 49 Of parents too much scuerity in correcting their children. 558 50 Of parents care in providing fit callings for their children. 558 51 Direction for parents in providing callings for their children. 560 52 Of the extremes contrary to a parents lawful care in providing fit callings for his children. 561 53 Of parents care in providing fit marriages for their children. 563 54 Direction to parents in providing marriages. 564 55 Of the extremes contrary to parents care in providing fit marriages for their children. 564 56 Of parents providing a stock for callings and marriages of their children. 565 57 Of the extremes contrary to a parents providing portions for his children. 566 58 Of parents last speech to their children. 567 59 Of parents last blessing to their children. 569 60 Of parents care to commend their children to some faithful friends. 569 61 Of parents neglect of their children for time to come. 570 62 Of parents making a will before they die. 570 63 Of neglecting to make a will. 571 64 Of parents leaving their estate to their children when they die. 572 65 Of the inconveniences which improvident parents bring their children unto after their death. 573 66 Of parents impartial respect to all their children. 575 67 Of parents preferring a dutiful child before a disobedient child. 576 68 Of the prerogative of the first borne son. 576 69 Of parent's partiality towards some children. 578 70 Of the causes for which the first borne may be disinherited. 579 71 Of the duty of fathers and mothers in law. 580 72 Of the perverse carriage of fathers and mothers in law to their children. 581 73 Of the faults of parents to their children's husbands and wives. 582 74 Of their duty who are in stead of parents to orphans. 583 75 Of the common neglect of orphans. 584 76 Of the duty of guardians. 584 77 Of the fraud of guardians. 585 78 Of the duties of Schoolmasters and Tutors. 586 79 Of the negligence of Schoolmasters and Tutors. 587 VII. TREATISE. Of Servant's Duties. §. 1. A Resolution of the Apostles direction to servants. 589 2 Of the lawfulness of a master's place and power. 591 3 Of the Anabaptists arguments against the authority of masters and subjection of servants. 592 4 Of a servants fear of his master. 594 5 Of the extremes contrary to servants fear of their master. 595 6 Of servant's reverence in speech. 596 7 Of the vices contrary to a servant's reverence in speech. 599 8 Of servants reverend behaviour to their masters. 601 9 Of the faults of servants contrary to reverence in carriage. 602 10 Of servant's obedience. 603 11 Of servants forbearing to do things without their master's consent. 604 12 Of the unlawful liberty which servants take to themselves. 606 13 Of servant's obedience to their master's commandments. 608 14 Of servants harkening to their master's instructions in matters of their calling. 608 15 Of servants harkening to their master's instructions in piety. 609 16 Of servant's faults contrary to obedience in matters of religion. 610 17 Of servant's obedience to reproof and correction. 611 18 Of the extremes contrary to servants patient hearing of reproof and correction. 613 19 Of servants amending that for which they are justly reproved or corrected. 614 20 Of serving with trembling. 615 21 Of serving with sincerity. 616 22 Of serving for conscience sake. 617 23 Of servant's willingness to perform their duty. 618 24 Of servant's quickness, and diligence in their service. 619 25 Of servant's faithfulness. 622 26 Of servant's faithfulness about their master's goods. 623 27 Of servant's carelessness over their master's goods. 624 28 Of servant's fraud. 625 29 Of servant's faithfulness in the businesses which they are to dispatch for their masters. 626 30 Of servant's faithfulness in keeping their master's secrets, and concealing their infirmities. 628 31 Of servant's faithfulness in helping one another. 629 32 Of servant's faithfulness about their master's children. 630 33 Of servant's faithfulness in regard of their masters or mistress' bedfellow. 632 34 Of servant's faithfulness about their master's person. 633 35 Of the means to make servants faithful. 634 36 Of servant's endeavour to make their judgements agree with their masters. 635 37 Of servants yielding to do such things at their master's command, as they cannot think to be most meet. 636 38 Of servants forbearing to obey their master against God. 637 39 Of servants choosing good masters. 639 40 Of the first motive to enforce servants duties, The Place of Masters. 641 41 Of the second motive, The Place of Servants. 642 42 Of the third motive, Gods will 642 43 Of the fourth motive, Reward of good service. 643 VII. TREATISE. Of Master's duties. §. 1. OF the heads of master's duties. 646 2 Of masters choosing good servants. 647 3 Of master's carelessness in choosing servants. 649 4 Of masters maintaining their authority. 650 5 Of masters making their authority to be despised. 651 6 Of masters too great rigour. 652 7 Of masters commanding power restrained to things lawful. 653 8 Of masters presuming above their authority. 654 9 Of masters commanding servants to do their duty. 655 10 Of the sin of masters in suffering servants to neglect their duty. 656 11 Of a master's wisdom in ordering things indifferent. 656 12 Of master's offence against expediency. 657 13 Of the power of masters to correct their servants. 658 14 Of the restraint of master's power, that it reacheth not to their servant's life. 659 15 Of master's excess in correcting servants. 660 16 Of masters ordering that correction which they give to their servants. 661 17 Of master's power over their servants in and about their marriage. 662 18 Of master's rigour in forcing marriages upon their servants: or in separating man and wife. 664 19 Of master's power to dispose their servant's person. 664 20 Of masters well managing their authority. 665 21 Of masters endeavouring the salvation of their servants. 666 22 Of masters neglecting to edify their servants. 668 23 Of allowing servants sufficient food. 668 24 Of defect and excess in allowing servants food. 669 25 Of master's care about their servant's apparel. 670 26 Of moderating servants labour. 671 27 Of affording servants fit means for their work. 672 28 Of affording seasonable rest to servants. 672 29 Of denying seasonable rest to servants. 673 30 Of master's offence in keeping servants from the rest of the Lords day. 674 31 Of allowing time of recreation to servants. 675 32 Of master's care over their servants in sickness and after death. 675 33 Of neglect of servants in sickness and after they are dead. 677 34 Of masters providing for the future estate of their servants. 678 35 Of well employing servants. 679 36 Of exercising servants to a calling. 679 37 Of appointing to every servant his particular function. 681 38 Of disorders in families through master's negligence. 682 39 Of masters overseeing the ways of their servants. 682 40 Of provoking servants to their duty both by fair and soul means. 683 41 Of paying servants their wages. 684 42 Of master's justice about their servant's wages. 685 43 Of suffering servants to provide for themselves. 686 44 Of kindness to be showed to good servants. 686 45 Of unkind dealing with good servants. 688 46 Of the subjection under which masters are. 689 47 Of the equality betwixt masters and servants in relation to God. 691 48 Of Gods being in heaven, how it is a motive to provoke masters well to respect their servants. 691 49 Of God's impartial respect of all. 693 The first Treatise. AN EXPOSITION OF THAT PART OF SCRIPTURE out of which Domestical Duties are raised. EPHES. 5. 21. Submit yourselves one to another in the fear of God. §. 1. Of the Apostles transition from general duties to particulars. AS there are two vocations whereunto it hath pleased God to call every one; one General, by virtue whereof certain common duties which are to be performed of all men, are required, (as knowledge, faith, obedience, repentance, love, mercy, justice, truth, etc.) the other Particular, by virtue whereof certain peculiar duties are required of several persons, according to those distinct places wherein the Divine Providence hath set them in Commonwealth, Church, or family; so ought Gods Ministers to be careful in instructing God's people in both kinds of duties; both those which concern their general, and those also which concern their particular calling. Accordingly S. Paul (who, as a Num. 12. 7. Moses, was faithful in all the house of God) after he had sufficiently instructed God's Church in such general duties, as belong to all Christians, of what sex, state, degree, or condition soever they be, proceedeth to lay down certain particular duties, which appertain to particular callings and conditions: among which, he maketh choice of those which God hath established in a family. With excellent Art doth he pass from those generals, to these particulars: laying down a transition betwixt them, in these words, Submitting yourselves one to another in the fear of God; which words have reference both to that which goeth before, and also to that which followeth after. The form and manner of setting down this verse, with a participle thus, submitting, showeth that it dependeth on that which went before, and so hath reference thereunto. Again, the word itself being the very same which is used 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, submitting. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, submit. in the next verse following, sheweth, that this verse containeth the sum of that which followeth, and so hath reference thereunto, as a general unto particulars. This manner of passing from one point to another, by a perfect transition which looketh both ways, both to that which is past, and to that which cometh on, as it is very elegant, so is it frequent with this our Apostle. Whereby he teacheth us, Note. so to give heed to that which followeth, as we forget not that which is past: as we must give diligent attention to that which remaineth, so we must well retain that which we have heard, and not let it slip: otherwise, if (as one nail driveth out another) one precept maketh another to be forgotten, it will be altogether in vain to add line unto line, or precept unto precept. §. 2. Of joining service to men with our praising of God. As this verse hath reference to that which was delivered before, concerning our duty to God, it teacheth us this lesson: It is the duty of Christians as to set forth the praise of God, so to be serviceable one to another. For this purpose in the Doct. Decalogue to the first table, which prescribeth that duty which we owe to God, is added the second table, which declareth the service that we owe one to another: and he that said, b Matt. 22. 38, 39 The first and great Commandment is this, Thou shalt love the Lord, etc. said also, The second is like to this, Thou shalt love thy neighbour, etc. whereupon the c Heb. 13. 15, 16. Apostle declaring what those sacrifices be wherewith God is well pleased, joineth these two together, to give thanks to God, and to do good to man. The service which in the fear of God we perform one to another, is an evident and real demonstration of the respect we bear unto God. d Psal. 16. 2. To God our goodness extendeth not. e job 22. 3. & 35. 7. He is so high above us, so perfect and complete in himself, that neither can we give to him, nor he receive of us. But in his own stead he hath placed our brother like to ourselves; to whom, f job 35. 8. as we may do hurt, so by our faithful service we may do much g Psal. 16. 3. good: in doing whereof God is much honoured. This discovereth their hypocrisy, who make great pretence 1. Use. A note of hypocrisy. of praising God, and yet are scornful, and disdainful to their brethren, and slothful to do any service to man: These men's religion is vain. By this note did the Prophets jam. 1. 26. Isa. 58. 3 etc. Mic. 6. 6. etc. Matt. 23. 14. 1 joh. 4. 20. in their time, and Christ and his Apostles in their time also, discover the hypocrisy of those among whom they lived: and so may we also in our times. For many there be, who frequently in their houses, and in the midst of the Congregation sing praise unto God, and perform other parts of God's outward worship, but towards one another, are proud, stout, envious, unmerciful, unjust, slanderous, and very backward to do any good service. Surely, that outward service which they pretend to perform to God, doth not so much wipe out the spot of profaneness, as their neglect of duty unto man brandeth their foreheads with the stamp of hypocrisy. 2. Use. Put not off one duty with another. Matt. 23. 23. For our parts, let us not upon pretext of one duty, though it may seem to be the weightier, think to shift off another; lest that fearful woe which Christ denounced against the Scribes and pharisees fall upon our pates. As God is careful to instruct us how to carry ourselves both to his own Majesty, and also one to another, so let us in both approve ourselves to him: remembering what Christ said to the pharisees, These aught ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. The same Lord that requireth praise to his own Majesty, inioyneth mutual service one to another; the neglect of this, as well as of that, sheweth too light respect of his will and pleasure: What therefore God Matth. 19 6. hath joined together, let not man put asunder. §. 3. Of every one's submitting himself to another. Again, as this verse hath reference to that which followeth, it declareth the general sum of all, which is mutually to submit ourselves one to another in the fear of God. The parts hereof are two: 1. An Exhortation. 2. A Direction. In the exhortation is noted, both the duty itself in this word submit, and also the parties to whom it is to be performed, one to another. Both branches of the exhortation, viz. the duty, and the parties joined together, afford this doctrine, that It is a general mutual duty appertaining to all Christians, 2. Doct. to submit themselves one to another: For this precept is as general as any of the former, belonging to all sorts and degrees whatsoever: and so much doth this word one another 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. imply: in which extent the Apostle in another place exhorteth to serve one another: and again, every man to seek Gal. 5. 13. 1 Cor. 10. 24. another's wealth. Concerning inferiors, it is without question clear, that Quest. they ought to submit themselves to their superiors: yea, concerning equals no great question can be made, but they in giving honour must go one before another, and so submit Rom. 12. 10. How superiors ought to subject themselves. themselves: but concerning superiors, just question may be made, whether it be a duty required of them to submit themselves to their inferiors. To resolve this doubt, we must first distinguish betwixt Answ. subjection of reverence, and subjection of service. Subjection of reverence is that whereby one testifieth an eminency and superiority in them whom he reverenceth, and that in speech, by giving them titles of honour; or in gesture, by some kind of obeisance; or in action, by a ready obeying of their commandment. This is proper to inferiors. Subjection of service is that whereby one in his place is Difference betwixt subjection of Reverence and Service. ready to do what good he can to another. This is common to all Christians: a duty which even superiors owe to inferiors, according to the forenamed extent of this word one another: in which respect even the highest governor on earth is called a minister, for the good of such as 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Rom. 13. 4. are under him. Secondly, we must put difference betwixt the work it Difference betwixt the work and manner of doing it. self, and the manner of doing it. That work which in itself is a work of superiority and authority, in the manner of doing it may be a work of submission, viz. if it be done in humility and meekness of mind. The Magistrate by ruling with meekness and humility, submitteth himself to his subject. In this respect the Apostle exhorteth that nothing (no not the highest and greatest works that Phil. 2. 3. can be) be done in vainglory, but in meekness. Thirdly, we must distinguish betwixt the several places wherein men are: for even they who are superiors to some, Every one under some authority. Matth. 8. 9 are inferiors to others: as he that said, I have under me, and am under authority. The master that hath servants under him, may be under the authority of a Magistrate. Yea, God hath so disposed every ones several place, as there is not any one, but in some respect is under another. The wife, though a mother of children, is under her husband. The husband, though head of a family, is under public Magistrates. Public Magistrates one under another, and all under the King. The King himself under God and his word delivered by his Ambassadors, whereunto the highest are to submit themselves. And Ministers of the word, as subjects, are under their Kings and Governors. He that saith, Let every soul be subject to the higher powers, Rom. 13. 1. excepteth not Ministers of the word: and he that saith, obey them that have the oversight of you, and submit yourselves, Heb. 13. 17. Difference betwixt Magistrates and Ministers authority. excepteth not kings: only the difference is in this, that the authority of the king is in himself, and in his own name he may command obedience to be performed to himself: but the authority of a Minister is in Christ, and in Christ's name only may he require obedience to be performed to Christ. The reason why all are bound to submit themselves one Reason. Every one's Office for the good of another. to another is, because every one is set in his place by God, not so much for himself, as for the good of others: whereupon the Apostle exhorteth, that none seek his own, but every man another's wealth. Even Governors are advanced 1 Cor. 10. 24. to places of dignity and authority, rather for the good of their subjects then for their own honour. Their callings are in truth offices of service, yea burdens under which they must willingly put their shoulders, being called of God, and of which they are to give an account concerning the good which they have done to others: for the effecting whereof, it is needful that they submit themselves. Let every one therefore high and low, rich and poor, 1. Use. Exhòrtation unto all to do service. superior and inferior, Magistrate and subject, Minister and people, husband and wife, parent and child, master and servant, neighbours and fellows, all of all sorts in their several places take notice of their duty in this point of submission, and make conscience to put it in practice: Magistrates, by procuring the wealth and peace of their people, as Mordecai: Ministers, by making themselves servants Est. 10. 3. unto their people, not seeking their own profit, but the 1 Cor. 9 19 & 10. 33. profit of many, that they may be saved, as Paul: Fathers, by well educating their children, and taking heed that they provoke them not to wrath, as David: Husbands, Prou. 4. 3, 4. by dwelling with their wives according to knowledge; giving honour to the wife as to the weaker vessel, as Abraham: Gen. 16. 6. Masters, by doing that which is just and equal to their servants, as the Centurion: Every one, by being of like Luke 7. 2. affection one towards another, and by serving one another in love, according to the Apostles rule. Let this duty of Rom. 12. 16. Gal. 5. 13. submission be first well learned, and then all other duties will better be performed. Be not high minded, nor swell one against another. 2. Use. Dehortation from swelling one against another. Though in outward estate some may be higher than other, yet in Christ all are one whether bond or free: all members of one and the same body. Now consider the mutual affection (as I may so speak) of the members of a natural body one towards another: not any one of them will puff itself up, Gal. 3. 28. and rise against the other: the head which is the highest 1 Cor. 12. 27. and of greatest honour will submit itself to the feet in performing the duty of an head, as well as the feet to the head in performing their duty; so all other parts. Neither is it hereby implied that they which are in place of dignity and authority should forget or relinquish their place, dignity, or authority, and become as inferiors under authority, no more than the head doth: for the head in submitting itself doth not go upon the ground and bear the body, as the feet; but it submitteth itself by directing and governing the other parts, and that with all the humility, meekness, and gentleness that it can. So must all superiors: much more must equals and inferiors learn with humility, and meekness, without scorn or disdain, to perform their duty: this is that which was before by the Apostle Ephes. 4. 2. expressly mentioned, and is here again intimated; none are exempted and privileged from it. We know that it is unnatural, and unbeseeming the head to scorn the feet, and to swell against them, but more than monstrous for one hand to scorn another: what shall we then say if the feet swell against the head? Surely such scorn and disdain among the members, would cause not only great disturbance, but also utter ruin to the body. And can it be otherwise in a politic body? But on the contrary, when all of all sorts shall (as hath been before showed) willingly submit themselves one to another, the whole body, and every member thereof will reap good thereby: yea, by this mutual submission, as we do good, so we shall receive good. §. 4. Of the fear of God. Hitherto of the exhortation. The direction followeth. In the fear of the Lord. This clause is added, to declare partly the means, how men may be brought to submit themselves readily one to another: and partly the manner, how they ought to submit themselves. The fear of the Lord is both the efficient cause that moveth a true Christian willingly to perform all duty to man, and also the end whereunto he referreth every thing that he doth. For the better conceiving whereof, I will briefly declare 1. What this fear of the Lord is. 2. How the Lord is the proper object of it. 3. What is the extent thereof. 4. Why it is so much urged. First, fear of God is an awful respect of the divine Majesty. 1. What the fear of God is. The causes of it. Sometimes it ariseth from faith in the mercy and goodness of God: for when the heart of man hath once felt a sweet taste of God's goodness, and found that in his favour only all happiness consisteth, it is strucken with such an inward awe and reverence, as it would not for any thing displease Two effects of a filial fear of God. his Majesty, but rather do whatsoever it may know to be pleasing and acceptable unto him. For these are two effects which arise from this kind of fear of God: 1. A careful endeavour to please God, in which respect Deum timere est nulla mala facere, & nulla bona quae faci enda sunt praete rire. Bernar. de modo benè viven. ser. 4. good king jehosaphat having exhorted his judges to execute the judgement of the Lord aright, addeth this clause as a motive thereunto, Let the fear of the Lord be upon you: implying thereby that Gods fear would make them endeavour to approve themselves too God. 2. A careful avoiding of such things as offend the Majesty of God, and grieve his spirit: in which respect the Wiseman 2 Chro. 19 6, 7. saith, The fear of the Lord is to hate evil: and of job it is Prou. 8. 13. said that he fearing God departed from evil. Job. 1. 1. Sometimes again, awe and dread of the divine Majesty ariseth from diffidence: For when a man's heart doubteth of God's mercy, and expecteth nothing but vengeance, the very thought of God striketh an awe or rather dread into him, and so maketh him fear God. From this double cause of fear, whereof one is contrary Difference betwixt filial and servile fear. to another, hath arisen that usual distinction of a filial or son-like fear, and a servile or slavish fear: which distinction is grounded on these words of the Apostle, ye have not received the spirit of bondage again to fear (this is Bernard. loc. citat. a servile fear) but ye have received the spirit of adoption Rom. 8. 15. whereby we cry, Abba, father: this causeth a filial fear. The filial fear is such a fear as dutiful children bear to their fathers. But the servile fear is such an one as bondslaves bear to their masters. A son feareth simply to offend or displease his father: so as * Est timor ne amittatur gratia beneficij. Hic timor cast us est, non eum charitas eijcit, sed asciscit. August. epist. 120. it is accompanied with love. A bondslave feareth nothing but the punishment of his offence; so as it is joined with hatred: and such an one feareth not to sin, but to burn in hell for sin. Faithful Abraham like a gracious child feared God (as God's Angel beareth witness, Gen. 22. 12.) when he was ready rather to sacrifice his only son, then offend God by refusing to Qui gehennas metuit, non peccare metuit sed ardere. Aug. epist. 144. obey his commandment. But faithless Adam like a servile bondslave feared God (as he himself testifieth against himself Gen. 3 10.) when after he had broken God's commandment, he hid himself from the presence of God. This slavish fear is a plain diabolical fear (for the devils Jam. 2. 19 so fear as they tremble:) It maketh men wish there were no hell, no day of judgement, no judge, yea no God. This is that fear without which we must serve the Lord. In this Luke 1. 74. fear to submit one's self is nothing acceptable to God: It is therefore the filial fear which is here meant. Secondly, of this fear God is the proper object, as by 2. How God is the proper object of fear. this and many more testimonies of Scripture is evident, where the fear of God and of the Lord is mentioned. This fear hath so proper a relation unto God, as the Scripture styleth God by a kind of propriety, with this title Fear: for where jaakob mentioneth the fear of Isaak, he meaneth Gen. 31. 42, 53. the Lord whom Isaak feared. It is then unlawful to fear any but God? Quest. No: Men also may be feared, as Princes, Parents, Masters, Ans. How men are to be feared. and other superiors; For the Apostle exhorting to give every one their due, giveth this instance, fear, Rom. 13. 7. to whom fear is due. But yet may God notwithstanding be said to be the proper object of fear, because all the fear that any way is due to any creature, is due to him in and for the Lord whose image he carrieth: so as in truth it is not so much the person of a man, as the image of God placed in him, by virtue of some authority or dignity appertaining to him, which is to be feared. If there should fall out any such opposition betwixt God and man, as in fearing man our fear would be withdrawn from God, than the rule of Christ is to take place, which is this, fear not them which Matth. 10. 28. kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul: but rather fear him which is able to destroy both soul and body in hell. Thirdly, the extent of this true filial fear of God is 3. Every duty to be seasoned with a fear of God. very large. No one point throughout the whole Scripture is more urged than this fear of the Lord. It is oft added to other duties, as that whereby they are seasoned, and without which they cannot well be performed: wherefore we are commanded to serve the Lord in fear, to perfect holiness Psal. 2. 11. in the fear of God, to work out our salvation with fear: and 2 Cor. 7. 1. the Churches are commended for walking in the fear of the Phil. 2. 12. Acts 9 31. Lord: so likewise particular men as a a Gen. 22. 12. Abram, b b & 42. 18. joseph, c c job 1. 1. job, and many other: yea the whole worship of God is oft comprised under this branch of fear: whereupon our Saviour Christ alleging this text, thou shalt fear the Lord thy God, Deut. 6. 13. thus expresseth it, thou shalt worship the Lord thy God. And Matth. 4. 10. again where the Lord by his Prophet Isay saith, Their fear Isa. 29. 13. toward me is taught by the precept of men, Christ thus quoteth that text, In vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines Matth. 15. 9 the commandments of men: out of which places compared together, it is evident, that under the fear of God, is comprised the worship of God. Yea, all that duty which we owe to God and man is comprised under this title, the fear of God: for David when he would in one word declare the sum and substance of all that which a Minister ought to teach his people, saith, I will teach you the fear of Psal. 34. 11. the Lord. 4. Why a fear of God is so much urged. Fourthly, The reason why the Holy Ghost so much urgeth the fear of God, and that in so large an extent as hath been showed, I take to be this; to show a difference betwixt that integrity and perfection of God's image which was at man's creation first planted in him, and the renovation thereof while here he liveth in this world. So complete and perfect was then God's image in man, as he needed no other motive to provoke him to any duty but love. Wherefore when the Holy Ghost would set forth that perfection of God's image first planted in man, he addeth this title Love unto other duties, whether they concern God or man. Concerning God, Moses exhorteth Israel to love the Deut. 11. 13. Lord and serve him: and again, to love the Lord, to walk in Deut. 30. 16. his ways, to keep his commandments, etc. Concerning man, the Apostle exhorteth to serve one another by love: and to do Gal. 5. 13. all things in love. Yea, sometimes the Holy Ghost is pleased 1 Cor. 16. 14. to comprise all duties under love: In which respect Christ calleth this commandment (Thou shalt love the Lord) the Matth. 22. 38. great commandment, which compriseth all the commandments of the first table under it: and for the second table, S. Paul saith, that love is the fulfilling of the law. But by Adam's Rom. 13. 10. fall, and the corruption which thereby infected man's nature, the love of God hath waxed cold in man, and though the Saints be created again according to that image of God, yet while in this world they live, that image is not so perfect as it was, the flesh remaineth in the best: in which respect God hath fast fixed this affection of fear in man's heart, and thereby both restraineth him from sin, and also provoketh him unto every good duty. §. 5. Of the fear of God moving us to do service to men. Having briefly declared the nature, object, extent, and use of fear, I return to the point in hand, viz. to show 1. how it is here laid down as a motive to stir up men to perform the duty here required: for by this clause, in the fear of the Lord, the Apostle implieth that It is the fear of God which moveth men conscionably to submit Doct. themselves one to another. This made d 2. Sam. 23. 3. David so well to rule the people of God: and e Gen. 42. 18. joseph to deal so well with his brethren: yea, f Isa. 11. 2, 3. this is noted to be the cause of the righteous regiment of Christ himself. Well did that good King jehosaphat know this, and therefore when he appointed judges over his people, as a motive to stir them up to execute the judgements of the Lord aright, he saith unto them, Let the fear of the Lord be upon you. So also S. Peter, 2 Chron. 19 7. to move subjects to honour their King, prefixeth this exhortation, Fear God. 1 Pet. 2. 17. By fear of man, may one be brought to submit himself Object. to another: as a magistrate may be moved to deal justly and mildly with his people through fear of insurrections and rebellions: subjects may by severe laws and tyranny be brought to submit themselves: and so other inferiors also by threats, by hard usage, and other by-respects. 1. Though fear of man be a motive, yet it followeth Answ. not, that therefore fear of God should be no motive: it may be another motive, and a better motive. 2. The submission which is performed through fear of Difference betwixt doing a thing for fear of God and fear of man. man is a forced and a slavish submission, nothing acceptable to God: but that which is performed through a true filial fear of God, is a free, willing, ready, cheerful, conscionable submission: such a submission as will stir us up to do the best good we can thereby unto them, to whom we submit ourselves, and so is more acceptable to God, by reason of the cause thereof, and more profitable unto man, by reason of the effect and fruit thereof. For a true fear of God maketh us more respect what Reason. The power of a fear of God. God requireth and commandeth, than what our corrupt heart desireth and suggesteth: It subdueth our unruly passions, and bringeth them within compass of duty: It maketh us deny ourselves and our own desires: and though through the corruption of our nature and inborn pride we be loath to submit, yet will Gods fear bring down that proud mind, and make us humble and gentle. It will keep those who are in authority from tyranny, cruelty, and overmuch severity: and it will keep those who are under subjection from dissimulation, deceit, and privy conspiracies. Behold how necessary it is, that a true fear of the Lord Use. The necessity of a fear of God. be planted in men's hearts, in the hearts of Kings and all Governors, in the hearts of subjects and all people, whether superiors or inferiors. Where no fear of God is, there will be no good submission unto man. Abraham Gen. 20. 11. thought that the men of Gerar would have no respect to him or his wife, nor make conscience of common honesty, nor abstain from innocent blood, because he saw no fear of God in that place: and the Apostle having reckoned up Rom. 3. 11, etc. many notorious effects of man's natural corruption, concludeth all with this, as the cause of all, There is no fear of God before their eyes. Wherefore let Magistrates, Parents, Masters, and all in authority, have especial care that their subjects, children, servants, and all under them may be taught and brought to fear the Lord. I dare avouch it, that such inferiors which are taught to fear God, will do better service to their superiors, than such as fear their superiors only as men, and fear not God. Let Ministers especially urge and press upon the consciences of men a fear of God. Let all inferiors pray that the fear of the Lord may be planted in the hearts of their superiors, that so they may live a quiet and peaceable life in all godliness and honesty under them. Happy is that kingdom where Magistrates and subjects fear the Lord. Happy is that Church where Ministers and people fear the Lord. Happy is that family where husband and wife, parents and children, master and servants fear the Lord. In such a Kingdom, Church, and family, will every one, to the mutual good one of another, submit themselves one to another. But if such as fear not God submit themselves, whether they be superiors or inferiors, it is for their own ends and advantages, and not for their good to whom they submit themselves. §. 6. Of limiting all duty to man, within the compass of the fear of God. Again, as this clause (In the fear of the Lord) declareth the manner of submission, it showeth, that No submission is to be performed unto man, but that which Doct. may stand with the fear of God. Whereby we show that we have respect to God, and labour above all to approve ourselves to him. Thus David is commanded to rule in the 2 Sam. 23. 3. fear of God: and other Magistrates to perform their duty 2 Chro. 19 9 in the fear of the Lord: which Nehemiah that good Governor Neh. 5. 15. was careful to do. So also subjects are to obey in the fear of the Lord, which the Apostle implieth by prefixing 1 Pet. 2. 17. this precept, Fear God, before that, Honour the King; as if he had said, so honour the King, as in and thereby you may manifest your fear of God: let not this latter cross the former. Servants likewise are commanded to be obedient unto their Masters with this proviso, fearing the Lord. Such Coloss. 3. 22. phrases as these, For the Lords sake, As unto the Lord, In the 1 Pet. 2. 13. Lord, As servants of Christ, with the like, being annexed to Eph. 5. 22. & 6. 1, 6. the duties of inferiors, do imply as much. Great reason there is that all service should be limited 1. Reason. God the highest Lord. with the fear of God: for God is the highest Lord to whom all service primarily and principally is due: whatsoever service is due to any man, high or low, is due in and for the Lord. The Lord hath set superiors in the places of eminency, wherein they bear the image of God. The Lord also hath set inferiors in their places, and commended them as his charge to the government of those who are over them. He that obeyeth not those who are over him in the fear of God, showeth no respect of God's image: and he who governeth not those who are under him in the fear of God, showeth no respect of God's charge. Besides, God is that great judge to whom all of all sorts, 2. Reason. God the judge of all. superiors and inferiors are to give an account of their service. Though by our service we have never so well approved ourselves to men, yet if we have not therein had respect unto God, and approved ourselves to him, with what face may we appear before his dreadful judgement seat? 1. Use. The folly of all those who fear man more than God. Can the favour of those whom we have pleased in this world, protect and shelter us from the fury of God's displeasure? Behold the folly of such Governors as wholly apply themselves to the fancy of their people, yea though it be against the Lord and his word. This was Adam's folly, who Gen. 3. 6. at his wife's motion did eat of the forbidden fruit. This was Aaron's folly, who to please the people, erected an Exod. 32. 1. Idol. And this was Saul's folly, who against God's express 1 Sam. 15. 21. prohibition suffered his people to take some of the spoil of the Amalekites. The like may be said of joash, who 2 Chro. 24 7. harkened to his Princes to set up Idols: and of Pilate, who Mark 15. 15. to please the people, against his conscience, delivered Christ to be crucified. The fearful issue of this their submission, not seasoned with a fear of God, but contrary thereunto, may be a warning to all superiors, to take heed how they seek to please them that are under them, more than God who is above them. The issue of adam's, Aaron's, Saul's, and joash his base submission, is noted by the Holy Ghost in their several histories. Of Pilate it is recorded, that being Euscb. hist. Eccl. lib 2. cap. 7. brought into extreme necessity, he laid violent hands upon himself. Neither is it to be accounted folly only in superiors to submit themselves to their inferiors against the Lord, but also in inferiors to their superiors: for thereby they show that they fear man more than God, which Christ expressly Luke 12. 4, 5. forbiddeth his friends to do. The captains which went 2 King. 1. 9, etc. to fetch Eliah, obeyed their king therein; but what got they thereby? was the king able to save them from the fire which God sent down from heaven upon them? The women jer. 44. 19 reproved for offering incense to the Queen of heaven, did it not without their husbands, yet were they not excused thereby. The children and others in the family Numb. 16. 32. submitted themselves to Dathan and Abiram in standing in the door of their tents at defiance against Moses; but because it was not in the Lord, but against him, they were not exempted from the judgement. Wherefore let all of all sorts set the fear of God as a mark before them to aim at in all their actions. Let superiors a Numb. 11. 29. neither do any thing to give content to their inferiors: b 1 Sam. 24. 8. & 26. 9 nor suffer any thing to be done for their sakes by their inferiors, which cannot stand with the fear of God. And let inferiors c Gen. 39 10. nor do, 1 Sam. 22. 17. d Act. 4. 19 nor forbear to do at the will of their superiors any thing swerving from the fear of God: but every one submit themselves one to another in the fear of God. §. 7. Of performing the duties of particular callings. EPHES. 5. 22. Wives submit yourselves unto your own husbands, as unto the Lord. FRom that general direction concerning mutual submission, the Apostle cometh to certain particulars, by which he exemplifieth the same: and teacheth us, that It is not sufficient to perform general duties of Christianity, Doct. unless also we be conscionable in performing the particular duties of our several callings. A conscionable performance of those particular duties is one part of our a Eph. 4. 1. walking worthy of the vocation wherewith we are called: and therefore the Apostle, for illustration and exemplification thereof, doth reckon up sundry particulars, both in this and b Col. 3. 18, etc. 1 Cor. 7. 1 Tim. 3. other Epistles: and so do c 1 Pet. 2. & 3. other Apostles. And d Tit. 2. Titus is charged to teach them. God himself hath given a pattern hereof in his Law: for the main scope of the fifth Commandment See more of this point in The whole armour of God, Treat. 2. part 1. §. 4. tendeth to instruct us in the particular duties of our several callings. Hereby much credit is brought to our profession, and the e Tit. 2. 10. 1 Pet. 3. 1, 2. doctrine of God our Saviour is adorned. And much good is hereby both mutually communicated one to another, and received one from another: for our particular places and callings are those bonds whereby persons are firmly and fitly knit together, as the members of a natural body by nerves, arteries, sinews, veins, and the like, by which life, sense and motion is communicated from one to another. Let therefore notice be taken of the particular callings Use. wherein God hath set us, and of the several duties of those callings, and conscience be used in the practice of them. He is no good Christian that is careless herein. A bad husband, wife, parent, child, master, servant, magistrate or minister, is no good Christian. §. 8. Of the lawfulness of private functions in a family. Among other particular callings the Apostle maketh choice of those which God hath settled in private families, and is accurate in reciting the several and distinct orders thereof, (for a family consisteth of these three orders, Husbands, Parents, Masters, all which he Wives, Children, Servants, reckoneth up) yea he is also copious, and earnest in urging the duties which appertain to them. Whence we may well infer, that The private vocations of a family, and functions appertaining 2 Doctr. Private duties of the family well beseem any Christian. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Arist. Polit. lib. 1 thereto, are such as Christians are called unto by God, and in the exercising whereof, they may and must employ some part of their time. For can we think that the Holy Ghost (who, as the Philosophers speak of nature, doth nothing in vain) would so distinctly set down these private duties, & so forcibly urge them, if they did not well become, and nearly concern Christians? All the places in Scripture which require family-duties, are proofs of the truth of this doctrine. The reasons of this doctrine are clear; for the family is Reason. The family a seminary. a seminary of the Church and commonwealth. It is as a Beehive, in which is the stock, and out of which are sent many swarms of Bees: for in families are all sorts of people bred and brought up: and out of families are they sent into the Church and commonwealth. The first beginning of mankind, and of his increase, was out of a family. For first did God join in marriage Adam and Eve, made them husband and wife, and then gave them children: so as husband and wife, parent and child, (which are parts of a family) were before magistrate and subject, minister and people, which are the parts of a Commonwealth, and a Church. When by the general deluge all public societies were destroyed, a family, even the family of Noah, was preserved, and out of it kingdoms and nations again raised. That great people of the jews which could not be numbered for multitude, was raised out of the family of Abram. Yea even to this day have all sorts of people come from families, and so shall to the end of the world. Whence it followeth, that a conscionable performance of domestical and household duties, tend to the good ordering of Church and commonwealth, as being means to fit and prepare men thereunto. Besides, a family is a little Church, and a little commonwealth, 2 Reason. A family is a representation of Church and commonwealth. at least a lively representation thereof, whereby trial may be made of such as are fit for any place of authority, or of subjection in Church or commonwealth. Or rather it is as a school wherein the first principles and grounds of government and subjection are learned: whereby men are fitted to greater matters in Church or commonwealth. Whereupon the f 1. Tim. 3. 5. Apostle declareth, that a Bishop that cannot rule his own house, is not fit to govern the Church. So we may say of inferiors that cannot be subject in a family; they will hardly be brought to yield such subjection as they ought in Church or commonwealth: instance Absolom, and Adoniah, David's sons. This is to be noted for satisfaction of certain weak 1 Use. Private callings in a family sufficient callings. consciences, who think that if they have no public calling, they have no calling at all; and thereupon gather that all their time is spent without a calling. Which consequence if it were good and sound, what comfort in spending their time should most women have, who are not admitted to any public function in Church or commonwealth? or servants, children, and others who are wholly employed in private affairs of the family? But the forenamed doctrine showeth the unsoundness of that consequence. Besides, who knoweth not that the preservation of families tendeth to the good of Church and commonwealth? so as a conscionable performance of household duties, in regard of the end and fruit thereof, may be accounted a public work. Yea, if domestical duties be well and throughly performed, they will be even enough to take up a man's whole time. If a master of a family be also an husband of a wife, and a father of children, he shall find work enough: as by those particular duties, which we shall afterwards show to belong unto masters, husbands, and parents, may easily be proved. So a wife likewise, if she also be a mother and a mistress, and faithfully endeavour to do what by virtue of those callings she is bound to do, shall find enough to do. As for children under the government of their parents, and servants in a family, their whole calling is to be obedient to their parents and masters, and to do what they command them in the Lord. Wherefore if they who have no public calling, be so much the more diligent in the functions of their private callings, they shall be as well accepted of the Lord, as if they had public offices. Yet many therebe, who having no public employment, think they may spend their time as they list, either in idleness, 2 Use. Reproof of such as having no public office, think themselves freed from all duty. or in following their vain pleasures and delights day after day, and so cast themselves out of all calling. Such are many masters of families who commit all the care of their house either to their wives, or to some servant, and misspend their whole time in idleness, riotousness, and voluptuousness. Such are many mistresses, who spend their time in lying a bed, attiring themselves, and goshipping. Such are many young gentlemen living in their father's houses, who partly through the too-much-indulgencie and negligence of their parents, and partly through their own headstrong affections, and rebellious will, run without restraint whither their corrupt lusts lead them. These, and such other like to these, though by God's providence they be placed in callings, in warrantable callings, and in such callings as minister unto them matter enough of employment, yet make themselves to be of no calling. Now what blessing can they look for from the Lord? The Lord useth God's blessing on men diligent in their calling. to give his blessing to men, while they are busied in their callings. g Gen. 31. 42. Jacob's faithful service to his uncle Laban moved God to bless him. h Gen. 39 2. Joseph's faithfulness to his master Potiphar was had in remembrance with God, who advanced him to be ruler in Egypt. i Exo. 3. 1, 2. Moses was keeping his father in law's sheep when God appeared to him in the bush, and appointed him a Prince over his people. k 1 Sam. 16. 11 David was sent for from the field, where he was keeping his father's sheep, when he was anointed to be king over Israel. l 1 King. 19 19 Elisha was ploughing when he was anointed to be a Prophet. m Luk. 2. 8. The shepherds were watching their sheep, when that gladsome tidings was brought to them, that the Saviour of the world was borne. Not to insist on any more particulars, the promise of God's protection is restrained to our callings: for n Psal. 91. 11. the charge which God hath given to the Angels concerning man is, to keep him in all his ways. As for those who have public offices in Church or n 3. Use. Public callings may not hinder private duties. commonwealth, they may not thereupon think themselves exempted from all family-duties. These private duties are necessary duties. Though a man be a magistrate or a minister, yet if he be an husband, or a father, or a master, he may not neglect his wife, children, and servants. Indeed they who are freed from public functions, are bound to attend so much the more upon the private duties of their families, because they have more leisure thereunto. But none ought wholly to neglect them. o Ios. 24. 15. josuah, who was a Captain and Prince of his people, and very much employed in public affairs, yet neglected not his family: for he professeth that he and his house would serve the Lord. It seemeth that p 1 Sam. 2. 29. & 3. 13. Eli was negligent in performing the duty of a father, and q 1 King. 1. 6. David also. But what followed thereupon? Two of Elies' sons proved sacrilegious, and lewd Priests. Two of David's sons proved very ill common-wealths-men, even plain traitors. §. 9 Of the Apostles order in laying down the duties of husbands and wives in the first place. There being three especial degrees, or orders in a family, Why duties of man and wife first delivered. (as we heard before) the Apostle placeth husband and wife in the first rank, and first declareth their duties, and that not without good reason: for First, The husband and wife were the first couple that 1. Man and wife were the first couple. ever were in the world. Adam and Eve were joined in marriage, and made man and wife before they had children, or servants. So falleth it out for the most part even to this day in erecting, or bringing together a family: the first couple is ordinarily an husband and a wife. Secondly, most usually the husband and his wife are the 2. Man and wife are commonly the chiefest in a family. chiefest in a family, all under them single persons: they governors of all the rest in the house. Therefore most meet it is, that they should first know their duty, and learn to practise it, that so they may be an example to all the rest. If they fail in their duty one to another, they give occasion to all the rest under them to be careless, and negligent in theirs. Let an husband be churlish to his wife, and despise her, he ministereth an occasion to children and servants to contemn her likewise, and to be disobedient unto her: yea, to be churlish and froward one to another, especially to their underlings. Let a wife be untrusty and unfaithful to her husband, let her filch and purloin from him, children and servants will soon take courage, or rather boldness from her example privily to steal what they can from their father, and master. Thus is their breach of Bis peccat qui exemplo peccat. duty a double fault: one in respect of the party whom they wrong, and to whom they deny duty: the other in respect of those to whom they give occasion of sinning. Know therefore, O husbands and wives, that ye, above Use. all other in the family, are most bound unto a conscionable performance of your duty. Greater will your condemnation be, if you fail therein. Look to it above the rest: and by your example draw on your children and servants (if you have any) to perform their duties: which surely they will more readily do, when they shall behold you as guides going before them, and making conscience of your joint and several duties. §. 10. Of the Apostles order in setting down inferiors duties in the first place. Wife's particular duties first laid down, because they are inferiors. In handling the duties of the first forenamed couple, the Apostle beginneth with wives, and layeth down their particular duties in the first place. The reason of this order I take to be the inferiority of the wife to her husband. I do the rather take it so to be, because I observe this to be his usual method and order, first to declare the duties of inferiors, and then of superiors: For in handling the duties of a Eph. 6. 1. children and parents, and of b Ephes. 6. 5. servants and masters, he beginneth with the inferiors, both in this, and c Col. 3. 18, 20, 22. in other Epistles; which order also d 1 Pet. 3. 1. S. Peter observeth: yea, e Exod. 20. 12. the law itself doth in the first place, and that expressly, mention the inferiors duty, only implying the superiors to follow as a just consequence, which is this, If the inferior must give honour, and by virtue thereof perform such duties as appertain thereto, then must the superior carry himself worthy of honour, and by virtue thereof perform answerable duties. Quest. Why should inferiors duties be more fully Inferiors duties first taught, because they are most backward and loath to perform them. expressed, and placed in the first rank? Answ. Surely because for the most part inferiors are most unwilling to undergo the duties of their place. Who is not more ready to rule, than to be subject? I deny not but that it is a far more difficult and hard matter to govern well than to obey well. For to rule and Greater difficulty in ruling well, than in obeying. govern requireth more knowledge, experience, wisdom, care, watchfulness, diligence, and other like virtues, than to obey and be subject. He that obeyeth hath his rule laid before him, which is the will and command of his Ducem velim qui à fronte pariter, & tergo sit oculatus. Timoth. apud Plutarch. superior in things lawful, and not against Gods will. But the superior who commandeth, is to consider not only what is lawful, but also what is most fit, meet, convenient, and every way the best: yea also he must forecast for the time to come, and so far as he can observe whether that which is now for the present meet enough, may not be dangerous for the time to come, and in that respect unmeet to be urged. Whence it followeth, that the superior in authority may sin in commanding that which the inferior in subjection may upon his command do without sin. Who can justly charge joab with sin in numbering the 2 Sam. 24. 2, etc. people, when David urged him by virtue of his authority See Treat. 7. §. 37. so to do? Yet did David sin in commanding it. Without all question Saul did sin in charging the people by an oath, to eat no food the day that they pursued their enemies (a time when they had most need to be refreshed with food, as Jonathan's words imply) and yet did not the people 1 Sam. 14. 24. etc. sin in forbearing: witness the event that followed on Jonathan's eating, though he knew not his father's charge. Who seeth not hereby, that it is a matter of much more difficulty to rule well, than to obey? which is yet further evident by Gods wise disposing providence in ordering who should govern, who obey. Commonly the younger Seniores & inter eos optimos, & prudentes & potentes oportet imperare. juniores vero parere. Plat. de rep. lib 3. for age, the weaker for sex, the meaner for estate, the more ignorant for understanding, with the like, are in places of subjection: but the elder, stronger, wealthier, wiser, and such like persons, are for the most part, or at least should be in place of authority. Woe to thee o land ( f Eccl. 10. 16. saith Solomon) when thy king is a child. And g Isa. 3. 4. Isaiah denounceth it as a curse to Israel, that children shall be their Princes, and babes shall rule over them, and complaineth h Isa. 3. 12. that women had rule over the people. Now to return to the point, though it be so that governors have the heaviest burden laid on their shoulders, yet inferiors that are under subjection think their burden the heaviest, and are loathest to bear it, and most willing to cast it away. For naturally there is in every one much Ambition is it which maketh inferiors loath to be subject. pride and ambition, which as dust cast on the eyes of their understanding, putteth out the sight thereof, and so maketh them affect superiority, and authority over others, and to be stubborn under the yoke of subjection: which is the cause that in all ages, both by divine, and also by humane laws, penalties and punishments of diverse kinds have been ordained, to keep inferiors in compass of their duty: and yet (such is the pride of man's heart) all will not serve. What age, what place ever was there, which hath 2. Inferiors duties first delivered, to teach them how to win their governor's favour. not just cause to complain of subjects rebellion, servant's stubbornness, children's disobedience, wife's presumption? Not without cause therefore doth the Apostle first declare the duties of inferiors. Besides, the Apostle would hereby teach those who are under authority, how to move them that are in authority over them, to deal equally and kindly, not hardly and cruelly with them, namely, by endeavouring to perform their own duty first. For what is it that provoketh wrath, rage, and fury in governors? What maketh them that have authority, to deal roughly, and rigorously? is it not for the most part disobedience, and stoutness in those that are under government? though some in authority be so proud, so savage, and inhuman, as no honour done to them, no performance of duty can satisfy and content them, but they will (as i Psal. 38. 20. David's enemies) reward evil for goodness, yet the best general direction that can be prescribed to inferiors, to provoke their governors to deal well with them, is, that inferiors themselves be careful and conscionable in doing their duty first. If their governors on earth be nothing moved therewith, yet will the highest Lord in heaven graciously accept it. Lastly, men must first learn to obey well, before they 3. By obeying, men learn to rule well. Parendo disces imperare. Arist. Polit. lib. 3. c. 3. Use. can rule well: for they who scorn to be subject to their governors while they are under authority, are like to prove intolerably insolent when they are in authority. Learn all that are under authority, how to win your governor's favour: how to make your yoke easy, and your burden light: how to prevent many mischiefs which by reason of the power of your superiors over you may otherwise fall upon you: First do ye your duty. There are many weighty reasons to move governors Reason's why governors ought first to perform their duties. first to begin to do their duty. For, First, by virtue of their authority they bear God's image, therefore in doing their duty they honour that image. Secondly, by reason of their place they ought to go before such as are under them. Thirdly, a faithful performance of their duty, is an especial means to keep their inferiors in compass of theirs. Fourthly, their failing in duty is exemplary: it causeth others under them to fail in theirs, and so it is a double sin. Fiftly, their reckoning shall be the greater: for of them who have received more, more shall be required. It were therefore to be wished that superiors and inferiors would strive who should begin first, and who should Vterque suum praeoccupet officium. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. perform their own part best, and in this kind strive to excel, as runners in a race strive in running to outstrip one another. But if question be made who shall begin, I advice inferiors not to stand out in this strife, but to think the Apostle Reason's why inferiors aught first to perform their duties. first inciteth them: and that it is the safest for them to begin: for in this contention inferiors are like to far the worst, by reason of the power which superiors have over them. And though it be more against our corrupt, proud, and stout nature, to be subject and obey, yet let us so much the more endeavour to yield duty in this kind. For it is an especial part of spiritual prudence, to observe what our corrupt nature is most prone unto, and wherein it most swelleth up, that therein we may most strive to beat it down: nature is contrary to grace, and the k Rom. 8. 7. wisdom of the flesh is enmity against God. §. 11. Of the reasons why wives duties are first taught. Quest. Why among other inferiors are wives first brought into the school of Christ to learn their duty? Answ. Many good reasons may be given of the Apostles order even in this point. First, of all other inferiors in a family, wives are far the most excellent, and therefore to be placed in the first rank. Secondly, wives were the first to whom subjection was enjoined: before there was child or servant in the world, it was said to her, thy desire shall be subject to thine husband. Gen. 3. 16. Thirdly, wives are the fountain from whence all other degrees spring: and therefore ought first to be cleansed. Fourthly, this subjection is a good pattern unto children and servants: and a great means to move them to be subject. Fiftly, I may further add as a truth, which is too manifest by experience in all places, that among all other parties of whom the Holy Ghost requireth subjection, wives for the most part are l See Treat. 3. §. 4. most back ward in yielding subjection to their husbands. But ye wives that fear God, be careful of your duty: and though it may seem somewhat contrary to Exod. 23. 2. the common course and practise of wives, yet follow not a multitude to do evil. Though it be harsh to corrupt nature, Si propter Deum viro parueris, noli proponere quae ab eo fieri deceant, sed ea quibus te legislator secit obnoxiam diligenter exequere. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1. Cor. 11. yet beat down that corruption: yea though your husbands be backward in their duties, yet be ye forward, and strive to go before them in yours: remembering what the Lord saith (Mat. 5. 46, 47.) If you love them which love you, what singular thing do ye? Yea remembering also what the Apostle saith, (1 Tim. 2. 14.) The woman was first in the transgression, m Gen. 3. 16. and first had her duty given unto her, and n 1 Cor. 11. 9 was made for the man, and not man for the woman. Thus shall ye deserve that commendation of good wives, o Prou. 31. 29. Many have done virtuously, but ye excel them all. Having hitherto handled the forenamed general instructions, I will proceed to a more distinct opening of the words; and collect such observations as thence arise, and then particularly declare the several duties which the three orders in a family owe each to other. §. 12. Of wife's subjection. EPHES. 5. 22. Wives submit yourselves unto your own husbands, as unto the Lord. THe p 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word by which the Apostle hath noted out the duties of wives, is of the middle voice, and may be translated passively as q Subditae sint. Hieron. Vet. Trans. Erasm. many have done, or r Subijcite vos. Beza. actively as our English doth (submit yourselves) and that most fitly: for there is a double subjection. 1. A necessary subjection: which is the subjection of order. 2. A Voluntary subjection: which is the subjection of duty. The necessary subjection is that degree of inferiority, wherein God hath placed all inferiors, and whereby he hath subjected them to their superiors, that is, set them in a lower rank. By virtue thereof, though inferiors seek to exalt themselves above their superiors, yet are they subject unto them, their ambition doth not take away that order which God hath established. A wife is in an inferior degree, though she domineer never so much over her husband. The Uoluntary subjection, is that dutiful respect which inferiors carry towards those whom God hath set over them: whereby they manifest a willingness to yield to that order which God hath established. Because God hath placed them under their superiors, they will in all duty manifest that subjection which their place requireth. Because it is a duty which is here required, the Voluntary subjection must needs be here meant: and to express so much, it is thus set down, submit yourselves. Though the same word be here used that was in the former verse, yet it is restrained to a narrower compass, namely to * See §. 3. subjection of reverence. Here learn that to necessary subjection, must voluntary subjection 1. Obser. be added: that is, duty must be performed according to that order and degree wherein God hath set us. This is to make a virtue of necessity. Under this phrase (submit yourselves) all the duties which a wife oweth to her husband are comprised, as I shall * Treat. 3. §. 2. afterwards more distinctly show. §. 13. Of the persons to whom wives must be subject. In setting down the parties to whom wives owe subjection, the Apostle noteth a particle of restraint ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. own) and that to show that a wife ought to have but one husband, which is more plainly expressed in another place by the same phrase, let every woman have her own husband: that 1 Cor. 7. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See §. 82, 83. is, only one proper to herself: so as It is unlawful for a wife to have more than one husband at once. A wife must submit herself only to that one, proper 2. Obser. husband, and to no other man (as she is a wife and yieldeth the duty of a wife) so as the subjection of adulteresses is here excluded: and the duty required is, that A wife must yield a chaste, faithful, matrimonial subjection 3. Obser. to her husband. Here by the way note the foolish Adamianis ex Adam dicti, cuius imitantur in paradiso nuditatem. Nuptias aversantur. Nudi itaque mares foeminaeque conveniunt, etc. August. de Haeres. distinct. 31. Promiscuè inter se viri & foeminae, Veneri operam dabant. Philast. collection of Adamites, Familists, and such like licentious libertines, who from the general words which the Apostle useth (men * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and women) infer that all women are as wives to all men, and that there needeth not any such near conjunction of one man with one woman. Which beastly opinion as it is contrary to the current of Scripture, and to the ancient law of marriage (two shall be one flesh) so also to this clause (their own husbands.) The Apostle, in using those general words, followed the Greek phrase, which putteth those two words (men women) for husbands and wives: so also do other tongues, yea and our English. The particular relation, which is betwixt the persons who are meant by those two words, doth plainly show how they are to be taken, and when they are to be restrained to man and wife. To take away that ambiguity, our English hath well translated them, husband and wife. To direct and provoke wives unto their duty, the Apostle addeth this clause (as unto the Lord) which is both a Rule and a Reason of wife's subjection. It directeth wives by noting the restraint of their obedience, and the manner thereof. The restraint in that wives ought so to obey their husbands 4. Obser. See Treat. 3. §. 51. as withal they obey the Lord; but no further: they may not be subject in any thing to their husbands, that cannot stand with their subjection to the Lord. The manner in that wives ought to yield such a kind of subjection 5. Obser. See Treat. 3. §. 54. to their husbands, as may be approved of the Lord. Thus the Apostle himself expoundeth this phrase, chap. 5. vers. 5, 6. It provoketh wives to submit themselves to their husbands, by noting the place of an husband, which is, to be in the Lord's stead, bearing his image, and in that respect having a fellowship and partnership with the Lord, so as Wives in subiecting themselves aright to their husbands are subject to the Lord. And on the contrary side, 6. Obser. Wives in refusing to be subject to their husbands, refuse to be subject to the Lord. 7. Obser. See Treat. 3. §. 70. §. 14. How an husband is his wife's head. EPHES. 5. 23. For the husband is the head of the wife, even as Christ is the head of the Church: and he is the Saviour of the body. THe place of an husband intimated in the last clause of the former verse, is more plainly expressed, and fully explained in this verse. His place is expressed under the metaphor of an head: and amplified by his resemblance therein unto Christ. The particle of connexion (FOR) showeth that this verse is added as a reason: which may fitly be referred both to the duty itself: and to the manner of performing it. The metaphor of an head enforceth the duty. The amplification thereof by the resemblance that is made to Christ, enforceth the manner of performing the duty. A wife must submit herself to an husband, because he is her head: and she must do it as to the Lord, because her husband is to her, as Christ is to the Church. The metaphor of an head declareth two points: 1. The dignity of an husband. 2. The duty 1. As an head is more eminent and excellent than the body, and placed above it, so is an husband to his wife. 2. As an head, by the understanding which is in it, governeth, protecteth, preserveth, provideth for the body, so doth the husband his wife: at least he ought so to do: for this is his office and duty: this is here noted to show the benefit which a wife receiveth by her husband: so as two motives are included under this metaphor. The first is taken from the husband's prerogative, whence note that Subjection must be yielded to such as are over us. For this is a main end of the difference between party and party. Obser. To what end is the head set above the body, if the body be not subject to it? The second is taken from the benefit which a wife reapeth by her husband's superiority: and it showeth that They who will not submit themselves to their superiors are Obser. See Treat. 3. §. 73. injurious to themselves: as the body were injurious to itself, if it would not be subject to the head. §. 15. Of the resemblance of an husband to Christ. The more to enforce the forenamed reason, the Apostle addeth the resemblance that is betwixt an husband and Christ, as this note of comparison ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. even as) showeth: whence it followeth that It is as meet for a wife to submit herself to her husband, as Obser. for the Church to submit itself to Christ. This amplification is especially added for Christians. Heathens may be moved to subject themselves to their governors, by the resemblance taken from a natural body. How much more ought Christians to be moved by the resemblance taken from the mystical body of Christ? These words (and he is the Saviour of the body) as they do declare the office of Christ, and the benefit which the Church reapeth, so they note the end why an husband is appointed to be the head of his wife, namely that by his provident care he may be as a saviour to her. It is here noted rather to show the benefit which a wife reapeth by her husband, than the duty which he oweth: for that the Apostle declareth afterwards, vers. 25, etc. The meaning than is, That as Christ was given to be an head of the Church which is his body, that he might protect it, and provide all needful things for it, and so be a Saviour to it, even so How an husband is a Saviour to his wife See Treat. 3. §. 73. for that very end are husbands appointed to be the head of their wives. Upon this ground the Apostle inferreth the conclusion in the next verse. §. 16. Of the resemblance betwixt The Church to Christ. A wife to her husband. EPHES. 5. 24 Therefore as the Church is subject to Christ, so let wives be to their own husbands in every thing. THis conclusion setteth forth not only the duty itself, but also another Reason, and another Rule to provoke and direct wives to perform their duty: and that under the pattern of the Church. The reason may be thus framed, That which the Church doth to Christ, a wife must do to her husband. But the Church is subject to Christ. Therefore a wife must be subject to her husband. The proposition is grounded on that resemblance which is betwixt the Church in relation to Christ, and a wife in relation to her husband: for an husband is that to his wife, which Christ is to the Church; therefore a wife must be so to her husband, as the Church is to Christ. The rule noteth both the Manner ( f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. as) and also the Extent of a wife's subjection ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. in every thing.) See more of the manner and extent of a wife's obedience, Treat. 3. §. 51. & 63. Quest. Is mortal and sinful man to be obeyed as the Lord Christ the eternal Son of God? Answ. This extent is to be restrained to the generality of the things in question. As in other places, where the Apostle saith, all things are lawful for me, he meaneth all 1 Cor. 10. 23. indifferent things, for of them his speech was in that place. And where again he saith, Whatsoever is set before you, eat, Vers. 27. he meaneth, whatsoever good and wholesome meat: for of that he spoke. Thus much of the main drift of the Apostle in setting before wives the example of Christ, to whom husbands are like in dignity, and the example of the Church, to whom wives ought to be like in duty. I will further consider these examples of Christ and the Church more distinctly by themselves, without any relation to man and wife: and out of them note such general instructions as concern all Christians. §. 17. Of the relation betwixt Christ and the Church. EPHES. 5. 23, 24. 23. Christ is the head of the Church: and he is the Saviour of the body. 24. The Church is subject unto Christ in every thing. BEhold here the mutual relation betwixt Christ, the Church. Wherein note concerning Christ, 1. His pre-eminence over the Church, (he is her head.) 2. His goodness to her, (he is her Saviour.) Note also concerning the Church, 1. Her prerogative, (she is the body of Christ.) 2. Her duty. In laying down whereof there is noted, 1. Wherein it consisteth (The Church is subject to Christ) 2. How far it extendeth, (in every thing.) The title Head, is given to Christ in two respects. 1. In regard of his t Col. 1. 18. dignity and dominion over the Church. 2. In regard of the u Ephes. 4. 15, 16. near union betwixt him and the Church. This union is more fully expressed afterwards, vers. 30. The dignity of Christ is here principally intended: so as Christ is the highest in authority over the Church: the titles Doctr. d 1 Cor. 8. 6. Lord, e Mat. 23. 7, 8, 9 Father, Master, Doctor, f Deut. 18. 15. Prophet, g Col. 1. 18. Firstborn, with the like, being by a kind of excellency and propriety attributed to him, prove as much. The causes hereof are 1. The good pleasure of God his Father. 2. The dignity of his person being God-Man. 3. The merit of his sacrifice whereby he hath redeemed and purchased his Church unto himself. 4. The omnipotency of his power whereby he is able to protect it. 5. The all-sufficiency of spirit, whereby he is able to give to every member all needful grace. Till the Pope of Rome can show so good reason for this 1 Use. title (Supreme head of the whole Church) we will account him a blasphemous usurper thereof. Object. He is not accounted an Imperial head as Christ is, The distinction betwixt imperial and ministerial head discussed. but only a Ministerial head. Answ. 1. This distinction is without all ground or warrant of Scripture. 2. It implieth plain contradiction. For to be a ministerial head, is to be an head and a minister, which is all one as an head and a member in relation to the same thing. 3. Though in these two words (Imperial, Ministerial) they may seem to advance Christ above the Pope, yet in their own interpretation of these words they make the Pope equal Staplet. lib. 6. cap. 16. de princip. doct. to Christ, if not advance him above Christ. For they say that Christ is an imperial head to quicken the Church inwardly: and the Pope a ministerial head to govern it outwardly. First let it be noted, how little congruity this exposition hath with the words expounded. Doth this word (imperial) intimate a quickening virtue? Doth this word (ministerial) imply a governing power? Nay, is there not great incongruity in this, that Christ should be the Imperial head, and yet the Pope an head to govern? Besides, doth not this rend asunder two of Christ's offices, and leaving one to Christ, give another to the Pope, and so make him equal with Christ? If the particular branches of this government which is given by papists unto the Pope by virtue of his headship be observed, we shall find that to be verified in him, which the Apostle hath foretold concerning Antichrist, that as God he sitteth in the temple of 2 Thess. 2. 4. God, showing himself that he is God. For they give to him the keys of heaven and hell, to shut or open the one or other as In Decretal. pleaseth him: they give him power to dispense with God's laws, to coin articles of faith, to make laws to bind men's consciences directly and immediately, to give pardon for sin, to free subjects from allegiance to their Sovereigns, to canonize Saints, and what not? But to let these impious blaspliemies pass, beside that this prerogative of Christ (to be head of Eph. 1. 21, 22, 23 the Church) is incommunicable (for thereby the Apostle proveth Christ to be advanced far above all principality, and power, and might, and dominion, and every name, etc.) Christ needeth not for the execution of his office therein any Vicar, or Deputy: for as head he filleth all in all things: and by his eternal spirit is he in heaven, earth, and every place where any of his members are, according to his * Mat. 18. 20. & 28. 20. promises made unto his Church. Much comfort and great confidence must this needs minister Use. to all such as have assurance that they are of this body: for having so mighty, so wise, so merciful an head, an head so sufficient every way, who can instruct, direct, guide, govern, protect, and help them in all their needs whatsoever, what need they fear? When we are assaulted by Satan, or any way set upon by any of his instruments, or are in any distress or need, let us lift up the eyes of our faith higher than we can the eyes of our body, and in heaven behold this our head, who is invisible, and we cannot but receive from thence much comfort, and encouragement. §. 18. Of the benefit of Christ's headship. The Goodness of Christ is set down in these words (and he is the Saviour of the body) Every word almost hath his emphasis. 1. The copulative particle (AND) sheweth that The goodness which Christ doth for his Church, he doth because 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 1. Obser. he is the head thereof. O how happy a thing is it for the Church that it hath such an head! an head that doth not tyrannize over it, nor trample it under foot: an head that doth not pole, or peel the Church: but procureth peace and safety to it. When Naomi sought to make a match betwixt Boaz and Ruth, that he might be her Ruth 3. 1. head, what saith she? Shall I not seek rest for thee that it may be well with thee? It is therefore the office of an head to be a Saviour, to procure rest and prosperity to the body whose head it is. Happy were it for Kingdoms, Commonwealths, Cities, Churches, Families, wives, and all that have heads, if they were such heads: that, because they are heads, they would endeavour to be Saviour's. §. 19 Of Christ a sufficient Saviour. In laying forth the goodness of Christ three things are noted. 1. The Kind of goodness, which is Salvation (the Saviour) 2. The person that performeth it (he himself.) 3. The parties for whom he performeth it (the body.) 1. The Greek word translated * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Sotera instrip tum vidi Syracusis. hoc quantum est? Ita magnum, ut Latino uno verbo exprimi non possit. Is est nimirum soter, qui salutem dedit. Cicer. in Ver. act 4. Saviour is so emphatical that other tongues can hardly find a fit word to express the emphasis thereof: it being attributed to Christ, implieth that Christ is a most absolute and perfect Saviour, he is every way a sufficient Saviour: * Heb. 7. 25. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Mat. 1. 21. able perfectly to save even to the very uttermost. He saveth Soul and Body: he saveth from all manner of misery: which is intimated by that particular from Doct. which he saveth, namely sin: he shall save his people from their sins. Sin is the greatest, and most grievous evil; yea, the cause of all misery: they who are saved from it, are saved from all evil: for there is nothing hurtful to man, but that which is caused by sin, or poisoned by it. Before sin seized on man he was most happy, free from all misery: and so shall he be after the contagion, guilt, punishment, dominion, and remainder of sin is removed. But he that remaineth in the bondage of sin is in a most woeful plight. In that Christ saveth from sin, he saveth from the wrath of God, the curse of the law, the venom of all outward crosses, the tyranny of Satan, the sting of Death, the power of the grave, the torments of hell, and what not? The purity of Christ's nature, and excellency of his person Reason. is it that maketh him so sufficient a Saviour: which reason the Apostle himself noteth: for where he saith that Christ is able to save to the uttermost, he addeth, for proof thereof, that he Heb. 7. 25, 26. is Holy, harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher than the heavens. Great matter of rejoicing, and of confidence doth this minister Uses. Consolation. Luk. 2. 10, 11. Luk 1. 47. unto us. When the Angel first brought this news, To you is borne a Saviour, he saith, Behold I bring you good tidings of great joy. This made the Virgin Mary say, My spirit hath rejoiced in God my Saviour, and for this did Zacharias bless God that redeemed his people, and raised up an horn of salvation. Vers. 68, 69. When the eyes of old Simeon had seen this Salvation, he desired no longer to live, but said, Lord now lettest thou thy servant Luk. 2. 29, 30. depart in peace. They who believe in this Saviour will be of like mind: and as they rejoice in him, so they will trust unto him, and say with the Apostle, we are more than conquerors through him Rom. 8. 37. that loved us, etc. This being so, to what end serveth the supposed treasure of Refut. the Church, wherein are said to be stored up indulgences, pardons, merits, works of supererogation, and I know not what trash, to add to the satisfaction of this Saviour? either Christ is not a sufficient Saviour, or these are (to speak the least) vain. But vain they are: & an empty, filthy, detestable treasure that is, which God will destroy with all that trust therein. §. 20. Of Christ the only Saviour. This relative particle ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. HE) hath also his emphasis; for as it pointeth out Christ the head of the Church, so it restraineth this great work to him: it may thus be translated, he himself: that is, he in his own person, he by himself, he and none but he. So as to speak properly, Christ is the only Saviour of men: in which respect he is Doct. called b Luk. 1. 69. the horn of salvation, yea c & 2. 30. Salvation itself: which titles are given to him by an excellency and propriety: and in the same respect the name d Mat. 1. 21. jesus was given unto him. Here by the way note the blasphemous arrogancy of those great sectaries among the Papists, who style themselves jesuits: assuming that name which is proper to this great office of jesus Christ. Object. Why is this name more blasphemous, than the title Christians? Answ. One of their own religion doth thus resolve that Objection: We are called Christians of Christ, not jesuits of jesus, because we partake of the thing signified by the name Christ, that is anointing: for (as the Apostle saith) we all receive of his fullness. But he hath not communicated to us the thing signified by the name jesus; for it belongeth to him alone to save, as saith the scripture, he shall save his people: as if he should say, he alone, and no other. A Christo dicimur jesuit a blasphemous title. Christiani, non autem à jesu jesuani, seu Iesuitae: quia rem signatam nomine Christus, scil. unctionem nobis communicavit. Name, ut ait Apostolus, omnes nos de plenitudine eius accepimus: sed rem significatam nomine jesus Why we may be called Christians and not jesuits. non communicavit: nam saluare ipsi soli convenit: ipse enim (ut dicitur in scriptura) saluum faciet Christus commune dignitatis est nomen. jesus proprium vocabulum saluatoris. Hier. in Mat. 16. populum suum: ac si diceret, ipse solus, & non alius. Guil. Lindwood in Provinc. siue Constitut. Angl. lib. de Consuetud. But to return to our matter, Saint Peter doth most plainly and fully prove the forenamed doctrine in these words spoken of jesus Christ, e Act. 4. 12. There is not salvation in any other: for there is none other name under heaven given among men whereby we must be saved. None is able, f Reu. 5. 4, 5. none is worthy to work so great 1. Use. a work: he must do it, or it can not be done. But g Isa. 63. 3. he is so See The whole Armour of God, Treat. 1. part 1 §. 5. able, and so worthy as he can do it of himself, and needeth none to assist him. What a dotage is it to trust to other Saviour's? Legions of Virum multi salutares dici possint non facile audendum est. Solus enim ipse saluator corporis est. Aug. in Ios. lib. 6. quaest. 23. Saviour's have Papists to whom they fly in their need. All the Angels in heaven, and all, whom at any time their Popes have canonised for Saints (which are many millions) are made Saviour's by them. h jer. 2. 12, 13. Be astonished, O ye heavens, at this: for they have committed two evils: they have forsaken Christ the fountain of living waters, and hewed them out cisterns, broken cisterns that can hold no water. Let us for our parts fly unto this Saviour only, and wholly 2. Use. rely upon him, as we desire to be saved. Thus shall we honour him by preferring him before all: yea by rejecting all but him: and thus shall we be sure to bring help, ease and comfort to our own souls. §. 21. Of the Church the body of Christ. The persons who receive any benefit by this Saviour, are all comprised under this metaphor the body: whereby the something is meant that was meant before by the Church. Church according to the notation of the Greek word signifieth 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Ecclesia ex vocatione appellata est. Aug. in Epist. ad Rom. an assembly called together. It is in Scripture by a propriety attributed to them who are called to God. This calling is twofold: 1. Outward, which is common to all that make profession Mat. 20. 16. of the Gospel: in this respect it is said, many are called and few chosen. 2. Inward, which is proper to the elect, none but they, and all they in their time shall both outwardly be called by the word to a profession of Christ, and also inwardly and effectually by the spirit to believe in Christ, and obey his Gospel. This is styled b Heb. 3. 1. an heavenly calling, which is c 1 Cor. 1. 2. proper to the Saints. These make that Church, whereof Christ is properly the head: and therefore in relation to that metaphor of an head, they are called the Body: and that in these respects; 1. They are under Christ, as a body under the head. 2. They receive spiritual life and grace from Christ, as a body natural receiveth sense, and vigour from the head. 3. Christ governeth them, as an head the body. 4. They are subject to Christ, as a body to the head. §. 22. Of the extent of Christ's goodness to all his body. This metaphor, by which the persons that reap the benefit of Christ's office are set forth, noteth two points. 1. All that are once incorporated into Christ shall be saved. The body compriseth all the parts and members under it: not only arms, shoulders, breast, back, and such like: but also hands, fingers, feet, toes, and all. Christ their head being their Saviour, who can doubt of their salvation? 2. None but those that are incorporated into Christ shall be saved. For this privilege is appropriated to the body. The former point is clearly set forth by a resemblance, which the Apostle maketh betwixt Adam and Christ, thus: As by the offence of one, judgement came on all men to condemnation, Rom. 5. 18. even so by the righteousness of one, the free gift came on all men unto justification of life. Here are noted two roots, one is Adam, the other is Christ: both of them have their number of branches, to all which they convey that which is in them, as the root conveyeth the sap that is in it, into all the branches that sprout from it. The first root, which is Adam, conveyeth sin and death to all that come from him: and the other root, which is Christ, conveyeth grace and life to every one that is given to him: for saith he, All that the Father joh. 6. 37. giveth me, shall come to me: and him that cometh to me, I will in no wise cast out: and a little after, he rendereth this reason, This is the Father's will, that of all which he hath given me Vers. 39 I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day. Object. Christ himself maketh exception of one, where he saith, none is lost but the son of perdition. joh. 17. 12. Answ. That phrase son of perdition, showeth that judas was never of this body: for can we imagine that Christ is a Saviour of a son of perdition? Object. Why is he then excepted? Answ. By reason of his office and calling he seemed to be of this body, and till he was made known, none could otherwise judge of him, in which respect Saint Peter saith, he was Act. 1. 17. numbered with us. 2. Answ. Christ there speaketh in particular of the twelve Apostles, and to be an Apostle of Christ was in itself but an outward calling. This is a point of admirable comfort to such as have assurance Use. of their incorporation into Christ, they may rest upon the benefit of this office of Christ, that he is a Saviour. We need not think of climbing up to heaven, and searching Gods records to see if our names be written in the book of Life. Let us only make trial whether we be of this body or no. How we may know whethe we be of Christ's body or no. For our help herein, know we that this metaphor of a body implieth two things. 1. A mystical union with Christ. 2. A spiritual communion with the Saints. 1. By virtue of that union they who are of Christ's body, 1. m Eph. 4. 15, 16. Receive grace, and life from him. 2. n joh. 17. 6. Are guided and governed according to his will. 3. o Joh. 17. 10 Seek to honour him in all things they do. 4. p Gal. 3. 1. Psal. 116. 136. Are offended and grieved when he is dishonoured by others. 2. By reason of their communion with the Saints being fellow members, 1. q 1 joh. 4. 11. They love the brethren. 2. r Mat. 25. 40. They are ready to succour such as are in distress. 3. s Eph. 4. 16. They will edify one another. 4. t 1 Cor. 12. 26. They retain a mutual sympathy: rejoicing, and mourning one with another. §. 23. Of the restraint of the benefit of Christ's headship to them only that are of his body. That none but those who are of Christ's body, shall partake of the benefit of his office, is clear by other like titles of restraint, as u Mat. 1. 21. his people, and x joh. 10. 15. his sheep: but especially by denying to the world the benefit of his intercession. y joh. 17. 9 I pray not for the world, saith he. In this respect this position (out of the Church no salvation) is without exception true: for the body is the true, Catholic, invisible Church: he that is not a member of this Church, but is out of it, hath not Christ to be his head Ecclesia corpus Christi est: unde manifestum est, eum qui non est in membris Christi Christianam salutem habere non posse. Aug. de Vnit. Ec l. c. 2. and Saviour, whence then can he have salvation? The former point is not more comfortable to those that have assurance that they are members of this body, than this is terrible to those that give too great evidence they are no members thereof; as all they do that have not the spirit of Christ ruling in them, but rather rebel against him: and bear no love to the Saints, but rather hate them, and do them all the spite they can. §. 24. Of the Church's subjection to Christ. EPHES. 5. 24. The Church is subject unto Christ in every thing. THe duty which the Church in way of thankfulness performeth to Christ her head for this great benefit, that he is her Saviour, is Subjection: Under which word is comprised all that obedience and duty, which in any kind Christ requireth of the Church, in and by the word. Quest. Is it possible for that part of the Church which is here on earth, to yield such obedience? Answ. It will faithfully endeavour to do what it can: and that honest and utmost endeavour Christ graciously accepteth for a perfect performance of all. In that it is here taken for grant, that the Church is subject to Christ; I may, as from a general to particular, infer that Whosoever is of the true Catholic Church is subject to Christ, and yieldeth obedience to his word. We will run after thee, Doctr. saith the Church to Christ. My sheep hear my voice and follow Cant. 1. 3. me, saith Christ of that flock, which is his Church. john 10. 27. For Christ conveyeth his own spirit into his mystical body the Church, and into every member thereof: which spirit is Reason. much more operative, and lively than the soul of man. If therefore man's soul quickening every part of the natural body, make them subject to the head, much more will the spirit of Christ bring the members of his mystical body in subjection to himself. If the spirit of him that raised up jesus from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up Christ from the dead, Rom. 8. 11. shall also quicken your mortal bodies, by the spirit that dwelleth in you. Hereby let trial be made of particular visible Churches and of particular persons, whether they are in deed of this true Catholic Use. Trial of true Churches. Church or no. Those visible Churches which refuse to be governed by Christ's word, and are wholly governed by humane traditions, which rise against Christ and play the adulteresses by committing Idolatry, are not of this Catholic Church which is subject to Christ. No more are Infidels that defy Christ, Heretics that deny him, ignorant persons that know not his will, profane persons that despise him, worldlings that lightly esteem him, nor any that persecute or scorn him in his members. By this we may see that many have a name that they are of the Church, who in deed are not. Object. Many such persons may belong to God's election, and so be of that body whereof Christ is a Saviour. Answ. Election in deed giveth them a title to Christ, but they cannot reap any benefit by that title till they have a possession of Christ by virtue of their spiritual union with him. Neither can they have any assurance of their election, till they find by the quickening virtue of the spirit, that they are united unto Christ. Wherefore so long as men remain destitute of the Spirit of Christ, and are possessed with a contrary spirit, they may well be judged for the present to be none of this body, nor to have any part in Christ, their future estate being referred to him who only knoweth what it shall be. §. 25. Of the extent of the Church's subjection. The extent of the Church's subjection to Christ is without any restraint at all, in every thing. For there is nothing which Christ requireth of her, but she may with a good conscience, and must in obedience yield unto. Just, and pure, and perfect are all his commandments, there is no error in any of them: no mischief or inconvenience can follow upon the keeping of them. This extent being here taken for grant, I may further infer that They who are of the true Catholic Church will yield universal Doctr. obedience to Christ: they will obey him in all and every of his commandments. David turned not aside from any thing that 1 Kings 15. 5. the Lord commanded him. josiah turned to the Lord with all his 2 Kings 23. 25. Luke 1. 6. heart according to all the law: and Zacharias, and Elizabeth, walked in all the commandments of God. All these were of this Church: and of their mind are all others that are of this Church. For the spirit of Christ which is in them worketh a thorough Reason. reformation: even as the flesh leadeth a natural man on to every sin, so the spirit of Christ stirreth him up to every good duty. In which respect it is said, that whosoever is borne of God 1 John 3. 9 doth not commit sin. Object. The best Saints in all ages have transgressed in many jam. 3. 2. things. Answ. Their sins though grievous, have not wilfully in open rebellion against Christ been committed, but they have slipped from them partly through their own weakness, and partly through the violence of some temptation. So as that which the Apostle saith of himself, may be applied to all that are of the body of Christ, That which I do I allow not: Now then Rom. 7. 15. 17. is it no more I that do it, but the sin that dwelleth in me. This extent is a good proof of the truth of subjection, for Use. Trial of integrity. herein lieth a main difference betwixt the upright, and the hypocrite; yea betwixt restraining and renewing grace. That restraining grace which is in many hypocrites stirreth them to do many things which Christ commandeth, if at least they cross not their honour, profit, ease, and the like. Herod that notorious hypocrite did many things. None that beareth the Mark. 6. 20. name of the Church, but will be subject in somethings. But none but the upright, who are indeed renewed by the sanctifying spirit of Christ, will in all things make Christ's will their rule, and in every thing hold close to it, preferring it before their pleasure, profit, preferment, or any other outward allurement. They who so do, give good evidence that they are of the body of Christ, and may rest upon it, that Christ is their Saviour. §. 26. Of the sum of Husband's duties. EPHES. 5. 25. 25. Husband's love your Wives, even as Christ also loved the Church, and gave himself for it. FRom Wife's duties the Apostle proceedeth to press Husbands duties. And as he propounded to Wives for a pattern, the example of the Church, so to Husbands he propoundeth the example of Christ: and * Uers. 28, 29. addeth thereunto the pattern of a man's self, in regard of that natural affection which he beareth to his body. Thus he addeth pattern to pattern, Husband's duties most pressed. and doth the more largely and earnestly press them, because husbands having a more honourable place, their failing in duty is the more heinous, scandalous, and dangerous. The Apostle restraineth the duties of Husbands to their * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. own Wives, as he did the duties of Wives to their “ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. own Husbands. For though the same word be not here used which was before, yet a word of like emphasis is used: and as good reason there is that our English translators should have put in this particle (own) in this verse, as in the 22. verse, for proof whereof read 1 Cor. 7. 2. Where * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See §. 82. these two words are used, and both of them translated own. This I have the rather noted, because many who hold that a Wife must have but one Husband, conceit that a Husband may have more Wives than one: which conceit this particle (own) wipeth away. All the duties of an Husband are comprised under this one word * See the reasons hereof Treat. 4. §. 2. Love.. Wherein that an Husband might be the better directed, and whereto that he might be the rather provoked, the forenamed example of Christ, and of his love to the Church, is very lively set forth: first generally in these words, even as Christ loved the Church: and then more particularly in the words following. §. 27. Of the example of Christ's love. The note of comparison ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Even as) requireth no equality, as if it were possible for an Husband in that measure to love his wife, as Christ loved his Church; (for as Christ in excellency and greatness exceedeth man, so in love and tenderness) But it noteth an equity, and like quality. An equity, because there is as great reason that Husbands by virtue of their place should love their Wives, as that Christ by virtue of his place should love the Church. A like quality, because the love which Christ beareth to the Church is every way without exception: and a love which turneth to the good and benefit of the Church. Hence note two points. 1. Husband's must come as near as they can to Christ in loving their wives. In which respect, because they can never love so much as Christ did, they must never think they have loved enough. 2. Though their love in measure cannot equal Christ's love, yet in the manner thereof it must be like Christ's, a preventing, true, free, pure, exceeding, constant love. The measure and manner of Christ's love is distinctly noted, Treat. 4. §. 61. etc. and the love which an husband oweth his wife paralleled & applied thereto, which application may be also made of that Christian mutual love which we owe one to another. The love of Christ to the Church is amplified, 1. By an Effect thereof, in these words, He gave himself for it. 2. By the End of that effect, largely set down, verse 26, 27. The effect is noted partly as a Confirmation of the truth of Christ's love. Declaration of the measure The Act (he gave) showeth that his love was in deed and truth: not only in show and pretence. The Object (himself) showeth that he loved his Church more than his own life. A greater evidence of love could not be given: for greater love hath no man then this, that a man john 15. 13. lay down his life for his friend. The end of Christ's love (set forth vers. 26, 27.) is noted to show that he so loved his Church for her good and happiness, rather than for any advantage to himself. As this example of Christ's love to his Church is set before husbands: so it may and ought also to be applied to all Christians: and that in a double respect. 1. As a motive to stir them up to love both Christ himself, and also their brethren. 2. As a pattern to teach them how to love. A motive it is to love Christ, because love deserveth love: especially such a love, of such a person as the love of Christ is. Yea, our love of Christ is an evidence that we are loved of Christ, as smoke is a sign of fire. Wherefore both in thankfulness to Christ, for his love to us, and for assurance to our own souls of Christ's love to us, we ought in all things that we can to testify our love to Christ. A motive it is also to love our brethren, because Christ being in heaven, our b Psal. 16. 2. goodness extendeth not to him: but our brethren on earth stand in his stead, and the love we show to them, we show to him; and he accepteth it as done to him: c Matth. 25. 35, 40. Ye fed me, ye visited me, saith Christ to them that fed and visited his brethren. This love also, even the d 1 Joh. 4. 20. love of our brethren, is an evidence that we are loved of God. Wherefore e & vers. 11. if Christ so loved us, we ought also to love one another. How the love of Christ is a pattern, I will * Treat 4 §. 61. etc. afterwards show. §. 28. Of Christ's giving himself. EPHES. 5. 25. And gave himself for it. THis fruit and effect of Christ's love extendeth itself to all Christ himself, and all that he did and suffered, are ours. the things that Christ did or suffered for our redemption: as, that he descended from heaven, took upon him our nature, and became a man; that he subjected himself to the law, and perfectly fulfilled it; that he made himself subject to many temptations of the devil and his instruments; that he took upon him our infirmities; that he became a King to govern us, a Prophet to instruct us, a Priest to make an atonement for us: that he subjected himself to death, the cursed death of the cross, and so made himself an oblation & sacrifice for our sins; that he was buried; that he rose again; that he ascended into heaven, and there sitteth at God's right hand to make intercession for us. For after that Christ had taken upon him to be our head and Saviour, he wholly set himself apart for our use, and our benefit: so as his person, his offices, his actions, his sufferings, his humiliation, his exaltation, the dignity, the purity, the efficacy of all is the Churches, and to her good do they all tend. This in general is the extent of this fruit of Christ's love, he gave himself for it. More particularly, we may note these three points: 1. The action, what he did, (he gave.) 2. The object, what he gave, (himself.) 3. The end, why he gave himself, (for it) for the Churches good. The action having relation to the object, most especially pointeth at the death of Christ. The * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Greek word is a compound word, and signifieth to give up. It implieth two things, 1. That Christ willingly died: the simple word (gave) intimateth so much. 2. That his death was an oblation: that is, a price of redemption, or a satisfaction: the compound word (gave up) intimateth so much. §. 29. Of the willingness of Christ to die. That Christ willingly died is evident by the circumstances noted about his death: when Peter counselled him to spare himself, and not to go to jerusalem (where he was to be put to death) b Mat. 16. 32, 23 he called him Satan, and said, he was an offence to him: when judas went out to betray him, c john 13. 27. he said unto him, That thou dost, do quickly: d & 18. 2. etc. Audivi, Domine, auditum tuum et expani, dum quaeris à quaerentibus quid quaerant, cum noveris quod te quaerant: & dixisti te esse lesum Nazarenun. Cypr. de Pass. Christi. When judas was gone out to get company to apprehend him, he went to the place where he was wont, so as judas might readily find him; yea, he met them in the midway that came to take him; and he asked them whom they sought, though he knew whom they sought: and when they said, jesus of Nazaret, he answered, I am he: When they came to him, he drove them all backward with a word of his mouth, and yet would not escape from them: e Matth. 26. 53. He could have prayed to the Father to have had more than twelve legions of Angels for his safeguard against those that apprehended him, but would not: f & 27. 42. when by his adversaries he was provoked to have come down from the Cross, and could have done so, he would not. a Mark. 15. 39 At the instant of giving up the ghost, he cried with a loud voice: which showeth that his life was not then spent, he might have retained it longer if he would: and thereupon the Centurion gathered that he was the Son of God. h john 2. 19 Matth. 28. 6. When he was actually dead, and laid in a grave, he rose again. These & other like circumstances verify that which Christ said of himself, i john 10. 18. Indicia dedit nullase necessita e, sed obedientia urgeri ad mortem. Cypr. de coen. Dom. Reason. No man taketh my life from me, but I lay it down of myself. It was therefore no necessity that compelled him to die, but his voluntary obedience. Christ is k Acts 3. 15. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the Lord, Prince and Author of life, and hath an absolute power as over the life of others, so over his own life. Thus than we see that his sacrifice was a voluntary and free gift: the cause thereof was his own will and good pleasure. Exceedingly doth this commend the love of Christ: and assureth us that it is the more acceptable to God, who loveth a cheerful giver. 1. Use. Let us in imitation of our head, do the things whereunto 2 Cor. 9 7. we are called willingly and cheerfully, though they seem never 2. Use. so disgraceful to the world, or grievous to our weak flesh. §. 30. Of the kind of Christ's death, an oblation. That Christ's death was an oblation, and a price of redemption, is evident by the death of those beasts which were offered up for a sacrifice, and therein were a type of Christ's death. But expressly is this noted by this Apostle, where he saith, l Ephes. 5. 2. Christ hath given himself for us, an offering and sacrifice to God for a sweet smelling savour: and again, m 1 Tim. 2. 6. Christ gave himself a ransom. The phrases of n 1 Pet. 1. 18, 19 redeeming, o Acts 20. 28. purchaesing, p 2 Pet. 2. 1. buying, with the like, attributed to Christ and his blood, do further confirm the same. Learn hereby to consider Christ's death, not as the death of Use. a private man, but of a public person, of a surety, of a pledge, that in our room and stead q 2 Cor. 5. 21. was made sin, and r Gal. 3. 13. was made a curse to redeem us from our sins, and from the curse which by sin was fallen upon us. The comfort and benefit of Christ's death is lost, if this be not known and believed. In this consisteth a main difference betwixt the death of Christ, and all other men, not the most righteous Martyrs excepted. Their death was but a duty, and debt: no satisfactory oblation, no price, no ransom, as Christ's was. §. 31. Of the infinite value of the prince of our redemption. The Object, or thing which Christ gave for a ransom was himself, not his body alone, nor his body and soul only, but his person consisting of his two natures, humane, and divine. Quest. How could his divine nature be given up? could it How the person of Christ being God-man, was given for us. suffer? could it die? Answ. 1. The Deity simply considered in and by itself, could not die: but that person which was God, both could and did die. For the Son of God assuming an humane nature into the unity of his divine nature, and uniting them together * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Symbol. Calced. without confusion, alteration, distraction, separation, in one person, that which is done by one nature is done by the person, and in that respect the Scripture oft attributeth it to the other nature: as where it is said, s 1 Cor. 2. 8. They crucified the Lord of glory: and t Act. 20. 28. God purchased the Churchwith his own blood. 2. Though the divine nature of Christ suffered not, yet did it support the humane nature, and add dignity, worth and efficacy to the sufferings of that nature. 3. Christ's divine nature had proper and peculiar works in the work of redemption, as to sanctify his humane nature, to take away our sins, to reconcile us to God, and the like. Thus then in three respects the whole person of Christ was given unto us. 1. In regard of the inseparable union of both natures. 2. In regard of the assistance of the Deity in those things which the humane nature of Christ did. 3. In regard of some proper actions appertaining to the Deity. Doctr. In that the person of Christ God-Man was given up, I gather that 1 Pet. 1. 19 Uses. The price of our Redemption is of infinite value. Nor Christ, Quanta se fiducia spes credentium consolatur considerans quantus quanta pro nondum credentibus passus sit? Aug. de Doctr. Chr. l. 1. c. 15. nor God himself could give a greater. Heaven and earth and all things in them are not of like worth. Well therefore might Saint Peter call it precious blood: and prefer it before silver, gold, and all other things of price. 1. What place can be left for despair in those that know and believe the worth of this ransom? 2. What can be held too dear for him, that notwithstanding the infinite excellency of his person gave himself for us? can goods, can friends, can children, can liberty, can life, can any thing else? 3. What just cause have we to give up ourselves a living sacrifice, Rom. 12. 1. holy and acceptable to him that gave himself for us? 4. How ungrateful, how unworthy of Christ are they, that for his sake will not forsake their unstable honours, fading wealth, vain pleasures, garish attire, and such like trash? §. 32. Of Christ's seeking the good of the Church. The End why Christ gave himself was, for the Church: so Doctr. as Christ in his death aimed at our good. b 2 Cor. 5. 21. He was made sin for us, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him: c Gal. 3. 13. he was made a curse for us, and hath redeemed us from the curse of the Law: d Gal. 1. 4. he gave himself for our sins, that he might deliver us: e joh. 10. 15. he laid down his life for the sheep. This proves Christ's giving of himself to be a fruit of his love: for f 1. Cor. 13. 5. 1. Use. Love seeketh not her own. Learn we hereby to apply all that Christ did to ourselves. If for us he gave himself, he, and * See §. 28. 2. Use. all appertaining to him is ours. Learn we also hereby how to manifest love: namely by seeking, and procuring the good of others. Let no man seek his 1 Cor. 10. 24. own, but every man another's wealth. If this were practised, would there be such oppressing, such undermining, such deceiving, such wronging of one another as there is? Too truly is the Apostles complaint verified in our days, All seek their Phil. 2. 21. own. But let that mind be in us which was in Christ jesus, and thus manifest our love, as we desire to partake of this fruit of Christ's love. From hence by just consequence it followeth that Christ merited Christ merited not for himself. not for himself. Was there any need that Christ should come down from heaven on earth, to purchase any thing for himself? When he was going out of the world, thus he prayed, Now, O Father, glorify thou me with the glory which I had joh. 17. 5. with thee before the world was. Did Christ by any thing which he did on earth merit that glory which he had before the world was? All the exaltation whereunto he was advanced even in his human nature, was due to the dignity of his person. 1. Object. He endured the cross, for the joy which was set Heb. 12. 2. before him. Answ. He used that joy which of right was due to him as an help to support him in the weakness of his humane nature, not as a recompense which he should deserve. 2. Object. He became obedient to the death of the Cross, Phil. 2. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. WHEREFORE God also hath highly exalted him. Answ. That particle (wherefore) doth not declare the cause, but the order of his exaltation: nothing a consequence that followed after his death. After he had humbled himself so low, he was most highly advanced. 3. Object. Christ being man was bound to the Law: and therefore for himself he ought to fulfil it. Answ. If he had been mere man, that were true. But he uniting his humane nature unto his divine, and making of both one person, which person was God as well as man, he was bound to nothing further than it pleased him voluntarily to subject himself unto for our sakes. 2. If Christ were bound to the Law, of duty he must have fulfilled it: and if of duty he was to fulfil it, how could he thereby merit so high a degree of honour as he is advanced unto? This conceit of Christ's meriting for himself, doth much extenuate the glory of Christ's grace and goodness in giving himself. §. 33. Of the particular ends, why Christ gave himself, and of the condition of the Church before Christ took her. EPHES. 5. 26. That he might sanctify it, and cleanse it with the washing of water by the word. THe general End of Christ's giving himself being before intimated in this phrase (for us) is in this and the next verse particularly exemplified: and that in two branches. One respecteth the estate of the Church in this world, v. 26. The other respecteth her estate in the world to come, v. 27. The latter of these two is the most principal. The former is subordinate to the latter, an end for the accomplishing of the other end, for the Church is here made pure, that hereafter it may be made glorious. In laying down the former he noteth 1. The end whereat Christ aimed. 2. The means, whereby he effected that which he aimed at. That end is set forth in these words, that he might sanctify it, * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See §. 39 having cleansed it (thus may they word for word be translated) so as that which for order of words is in the latter place, for order of matter is in the first place. The word (cleansing) pointeth out our instification. The word (sanctifying) expresseth our sanctification. The means of effecting these, are two. 1. Baptism comprised under this phrase, washing of water. 2. The word. The two branches of the former end, namely Cleansing and Sanctifying do in general imply two things. 1. The Condition of the Church in itself. 2. The Alteration thereof by Christ. The condition is presupposed, which is, that she was impure, polluted, in the common estate of corrupt man. Things in themselves pure, are not cleansed, but things foul and impure: persons of themselves freed, and exempted from a common misery, need not another's help to free and exempt them. Seeing then that the Church stood in need to be cleansed, and sanctified, surely The Church in herself was, as the world, polluted. Very lively is Doctr. this set forth by the Prophet Ezekiel under the similitude of a The Church in herself polluted. wretched infant borne of a cursed parentage, whose navel was not cut, who was not washed, salted, nor swaddled, but cast out in the open field, polluted with blood. Oft doth the Apostle, setting forth Ezek. 16. 3. etc. the wretched estate of the world, note of the true members Eph. 2. 3. of the Church, that c Tit. 3. 3. we ourselves also were such. 1 Cor. 6. 11. The Church consisteth of none other than of such as came out of Adam's loins. Now as all the brood which cometh from vipers, adders, toads, spiders, and other like venomous dams, are infected with poison, so all the sons of Adam are polluted with sin. That which is borne of the flesh (as is every mother's child, not the members of the Church excepted: for they have fathers and mothers of their flesh) is flesh; that is, polluted and corrupt. Therefore when we are taken into the Church, we are borne again. joh. 3. 3, 5. This our former estate by nature is oft and seriously Our natural condition oft to be thought of. to be thought of, and that in respect of Christ. Ourselves. Others. 1. In regard of Christ, the more to magnify his love. Our former estate, before he cast the wings of his mercy upon us, showeth our unworthiness, our vileness, and wretchedness, and in that respect it openeth our heart and mouth to think and say, e Psal. 8. 1, 4. O Lord our Lord, what is man that thou art mindful of him, and the son of man that thou visitest him! f joh. 14. 22. Lord, how is it that thou wilt manifest thyself unto us, and not unto the world! The right knowledge of our former estate, and a due consideration thereof, maketh us ascribe all the glory of our present dignity, and happiness, to Christ that altered our estate, as Saint Paul, h 1 Tim. 1. 12. etc. I thank Christ jesus our Lord who hath enabled me, who was before a blasphemer, etc. yea it maketh us the more to prize and esteem the present estate, as i 2 Sam. 7. 18, etc. David. 2. In regard of ourselves this is to be thought of, to humble us, and to keep us from insolent boasting in those privileges whereof through Christ we are made partakers. To this purpose doth the Apostle thus press this point, Who maketh 1 Cor. 4. 7. thee to differ from another? and what hast thou that thou didst not receive? Now if thou didst receive it, why dost thou glory as if thou hadst not received it? When a man is exalted from a mean, to a great place, and thereupon waxeth proud and insolent, we say, he hath forgotten from whence he came. So as remembrance of our former condition is a means to preserve humility, and to suppress insolency. 3. In regard of others it is to be thought of, to move us the more to commiserate their woeful estate, who yet remain as we once were; to conceive hope that their estate may be altered as well as ours was; to pray and use what means we can that it may be altered. To provoke Christians to show all meekness to them which were without, the Apostle renders this reason, for we ourselves also in times past were foolish, Tit. 3 3, etc. & c read how forcibly this is urged, Rom. 11. 18, 19, etc. §. 34. Of Christ's preventing Grace. In setting down the alteration of the forenamed condition note 1. The manner of laying it forth. 2. The matter or substance thereof. The manner is implied in this conjunction * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. THAT (That he might sanctify it) Christ loved the Church, and gave himself for it, not because it was sanctified, but that he might sanctify it: so as The Grace which Christ showeth to the Church, is a preventing Doct. Grace. Sanctification is no cause, but an effect of Christ's Ipse nos gratis saluos fecit, ipse nos non eum quaerentes quaesivit, invenit, etc. Aug. in Psal. 78. love: and followeth in order after his love. His love arose only and wholly from himself: in the parties loved, there was nothing but matter of hatred before they were loved. Moses thus saith of the love of God to Israel, The Lord did not set his love upon you because ye were more in number, but because the Lord loved you. This at first sight may seem to be (as Non est invenire Domino sed praevenire. Bern. serm. 78. in Cant. we say) * Idem per idem. a woman's reason, that the Lord should set his love on them because he loved them, but it being duly observed, we shall find excellently set forth the ground of God's love to rest altogether in himself, and in his own good pleasure. Deut. 7. 7, 8. Yea this being noted as the end of Christ's love, that he might sanctify it, it further showeth that it was not any foresight of holiness in the Church that moved him to love it: first he loved it, and then sought how to make it amiable, and worthy to be loved. Herein differeth Christ's love from the love of all men towards Difference betwixt Christ's love and Mans. Est. 2 12, etc. their spouses: for they must see something in them, to move them to love. When Ahash-verosh was to choose a wife, the maidens out of whom he was to take one, were first purified, and then he took her in whom he most delighted: But Christ first loveth his spouse, and then sanctifieth it. Before he loved it, he saw nothing in it why he should prefer it before the world. Seeing of him, and through him, and to him is all the beauty Use. and dignity of the Church, the glory be to him for ever, Rom. 11. 36. Amen. §. 35. Of Christ's seeking to make his Church pure. The Matter or substance of that subordinate end which Christ aimed at in giving himself for the Church, is in these words (that he might sanctify it having cleansed it) which in general show that Christ seeketh the purity of his Church. For this end hath he Doctr. shed his own most pure and precious blood (for b 1 joh. 1. 7. his blood cleanseth us from all sin) and conveyed his holy Spirit into his body the Church, which is called the c Rom. 1. 4. Spirit of Sanctification, because it reneweth and sanctifieth those in whom it is. This Christ aimeth at, that he might make his spouse like to Reason. himself, pure, as he is pure. That end which Christ aimed at, we that profess ourselves 1 Use. Exhortation. 1 joh. 3. 3. to be of this Church, must endeavour after: for every man that hath this hope in him purgeth himself as he is pure. Let us therefore use all good means to cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of flesh, and spirit. This being the end which Christ aimeth at for the good 2 Use. Trial. of his Church to cleanse it, they who find themselves cleansed have a good evidence that they are of this Church: they who are not cleansed can have no assurance thereof. How unworthy are they of this benefit, that live as the 3 Use. Reproof. world, and like swine upon every occasion wallow in the mire, being drawn by every temptation into sin? Do they not, as much as in them lieth, make the death of Christ to be in vain, and pervert that main end, which Christ aimed at in giving himself? But what may be thought of such as Ismael-like mock and scoff at those that labour to be cleansed? §. 36. Of the Church's justification. The two particular parts of the forenamed end, which are Cleansing, and sanctifying, do more distinctly set forth the purity of the Church even in this world. Cleansing hath relation to the blood of Christ, and so pointeth out our justification. Sanctifying hath relation to the Spirit of Christ, which worketh our Sanctification. From this cleansing of the Church here meant, I gather, that No sin lieth upon the Church: for the blood of Christ purgeth Doctr. from all sin. This is to be taken of the guilt of sin, which 1 joh. 1. 7. by Christ's death is clean taken away: so as that sin which is in us, is as not in us, because it is not imputed unto us. Behold here the blessed estate of the Church, for, Blessed is Use. he whose transgression is forgiven, whose sin is covered. Blessed Psal. 32. 1, 2. is the man unto whom the Lord imputeth not sin. §. 37. Of the Church's Sanctification. From the sanctifying of the Church here mentioned, I further gather, that The Church is made holy and righteous: This is here meant of Doctr. that inherent righteousness which the Spirit of Christ worketh in all the members of his body. In which respect they are called Saints: so as not only the guilt of sin is taken away, 1 Cor. 1. 2. but also the very body of sin is so destroyed in them, as it can Rom. 6. 6. no more reign in them, nor they obey it in the lusts thereof: but in stead of the dominion of sin the spirit of Christ reigneth in them, and leadeth them unto all righteousness. Behold here the free estate of the Church: whereas the Use. world lieth under the slavery of sin, and tyranny of Satan, the Church is made free from sin, and a servant of righteousness: Rom. 6. 18, 11. dead to sin, and alive to God in jesus Christ. §. 38. Of the Church's purity before God and Man. From the Connexion of these two benefits of Christ's death, justification and Sanctification together, we see that The Church is both spotless before God and blameless before men. The blood of Christ so cleanfeth her as in God's sight she hath no spot of sin: and the spirit of Christ so sanctifieth her, as her righteousness shineth before men: for the Grace of God Tit. 2. 11, 12. teacheth her to deny ungodliness, and worldly lusts, and to live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world. In this respect the Church is said to be all glorious within, and her Psal. 45. 13. clothing also to be of wrought gold. And Zacharias and Elizabet, Luk. 1. 6. members of this Church, are said to be righteous before God, and blameless, namely before men. There is no such purity in any, as in the Church. For true and perfect beauty Vera & perfecta pulcls. ritudo in nullo hominum est nisi in corpore Christi quod interpretatur Ecclesia. Hier. in Ezech. 27. is only in the body of Christ, which is the Church, whereof it is said, Thou art all fair, and there is no spot in thee, Cant. 4. 7. 1. Quest. Is it possible that neither God nor man should espy any fault in those that are of the true Church, while here they live in this world? Answ. Seeing the flesh remaineth in the best while they remain Sin is in the best. in the world, it is not possible but that both God and man must needs espy many blemishes in the best. All things are Heb. 4. 13. naked and opened to the eyes of God: if therefore any remnant of sin be in the Saints (as there are exceeding many in every one; so as if we say that we have no sin we deceive ourselves, 1 Job. 1. 8. and the truth is not in us) it is without question manifest in his sight. Yea such is the imperfection and weakness of the best Saints, as the flesh continually lusting in them against the Spirit, oft times prevaileth, and so showeth itself in some evil fruit or other, as the eye of man espieth it: instance the examples of the best that ever lived in any age. 2. Quest. How then are they spotless before God, and How the Saints are spotless before God. blameless before men? Answ. 1. God so fully dischargeth and acquitteth the Church of all her sins, as she is in his account as if she had no speck of sin at all. David in this respect useth the metaphor of covering sin, and explaineth his meaning by these two Psal 32. 1, 2. phrases, forgiving, not imputing sin. 2. The course of a man's life, not this or that particular How the Saints are blameless before men. una hirundo non facit ver. action, is it which maketh a man blameworthy, or blameless: as the flock of swallows, and not one here, or another there, is it which showeth the Spring. Now because the constant carriage of those who are of the Church is before men blameless, they may justly be so accounted, notwithstanding some particular things blameworthy do sometimes pass from them. Behold here how the true Saints may boldly lift up their faces before God and man. The soundness of their faith causeth confidence before God. The testimony of their conscience causeth courage before men. Let all that desire this boldness, join a sound faith and a good conscience together, and labour for assurance both of their cleansing by the blood of Christ, and sanctifying by the Spirit of Christ. §. 39 Of the order and dependence of justification and sanctification one upon another. The order and manner of knitting these two benefits together is worthy to be noted. The letter setteth sanctification in the first place: but the sense presupposeth justification: for thus he saith, that he might sanctify it, * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. having cleansed it. Because the cleansing here spoken of is an inward invisible work, and the evidence thereof is sanctification, which is an outward and sensible work, therefore this is first expressed, and then that inferred, as a matter necessarily to be presupposed. Hence arise these Doctrines. Our English with this particle (having) doth fitly and properly expound the Greek active participles of the Preterperfect or finite tenses, which because the Latins want, they are fain to use the passive, or a Periphrasis: as, ut illam sanctificaret mundatam, Erasm. Postquam eam purgasset, Beza. 1. justification in order goeth before 1. Doct. justificatio non accedit factoribus sed factores legis praecedit. Aug. de Spir. & lit. cap. 26. sanctification: I say in order, because at that very moment that Christ by his blood cleanseth his Church, he beginneth to sanctify her: but when he beginneth to sanctify her, he hath cleansed her, she is justified. The grace then of justification is a most free grace: it is not wrought upon any righteousness of ours: for it is before it. 2. Christ sanctifieth those whom he hath cleansed. This the 2. Doct. Apostle copiously proveth in the sixth chapter to the Romans. Let none therefore boast of their cleansing by Christ's blood, till they find themselves renewed and sanctified by the Spirit of Christ. For note the Apostles description of those who are justified by Christ, which for more perspicuity may thus be set down by question and answer. To whom is there no condemnation? Rom. 8. 1. To them that are in Christ jesus. Who are they? They who walk not after the flesh, but after the Spirit. 3. Sanctification presupposeth justification: they who are sanctified 3. Doct. may rest upon it, that they are cleansed and justified. For sanctification is a fruit of justification, in which respect S. james saith, that we are justified by works, that is, declared so jam. 2. 24. to be. Admirable is the comfort which the Saints in this world Use. reap hereby. For their sanctification being imperfect, and the flesh abiding in them, and lusting against the Spirit: yea sin being present with them when they would do good, they are oft forced to complain and cry, O wretched m●n that we are: Rom. 7. 24. who shall deliver us from this body of death! If they had no other ground to fasten the anchor of their hope upon but their sanctification, it could not hold them fast enough against the tempests of Satan's temptations. But in that their sanctification is a fruit and evidence of their justification, they take heart to themselves, and thank God that with the mind they themselves serve the Law of God, though with the flesh the law of sin. And thus upheld and comforted, they continue to strive against sin, till it be clean rooted out of them, as well as remitted. §. 40. Of Sacramental washing of water. One of the means which Christ useth for the cleansing and sanctifying of his Church, is expressed under this phrase, with the washing of water. Water is the outward element used in Baptism: Washing is the principal Sacramental rite therein. Water setteth forth Christ's blood: Washing noteth out the application and efficacy thereof, which is the purging and cleansing of our souls. As water without washing maketh nothing clean: so the blood of Christ, without a right application thereof, cleanseth no man's soul. This washing of water here mentioned, being applied to an inward spiritual cleansing, what can it else set forth but the Sacrament of Baptism, wherein both water and washing is used? Object. There is but little washing used in the Sacrament of Baptism, nothing but sprinkling a little water on the face of the party that is baptised. Answ. That sprinkling is sufficient to show the use of water. Why water in baptism is but sprinkled. The party to be baptised is not brought to the Font to have his face, or any other part of his body made clean, but to have assurance of the inward cleansing of his soul. Now that our minds may not too much dote on the outward thing done, but be wholly raised up to the mystery, the outward element is no further used, then may serve to put us in mind of the inward thing signified thereby: answerably in the Lord's Supper there is not so much bread and wine given and received, as would satisfy one's appetite, or slake his hunger and quench his thirst, but only a little bit of bread, and taste of wine, to declare the use of bread and wine, and so to draw the minds of the Communicants to a consideration of their spiritual nourishment by the body and blood of jesus Christ. §. 41. How Baptism is a means of cleansing and sanctifying. The manner of inferring this Sacramental washing upon the sanctifying and cleansing of the Church thus, with the washing of water, sheweth, that Baptism is a means of sanctifying and cleansing the Church. All Doctr. those places of Scripture that attribute a joh. 3. 5. Tit. 3. 5. Regeneration, b Gal. 3. 27. justification, c Rom. 6. 3. Sanctification, or d 1 Pet. 3. 21. Salvation thereunto, prove as much. But that the truth thereof may more fully and distinctly be conceived, I will briefly show, 1. In what respect Baptism is a means of our sanctifying and cleansing. 2. What kind of means it is. 3. How necessary it is. In four especial respects it may be said to be a means as aforesaid. 1. In that it doth most lively represent and set forth even to the outward senses the inward cleansing of our souls by the blood of Christ, and sanctifying of us by the Spirit of Christ. Apply the use of water (by the washing whereof foul things are made very clean) to the virtue of Christ's blood and efficacy of his Spirit, and the truth hereof will evidently appear. For the better help in this application, read Rom. 6. 4. etc. 2. In that it doth truly propound and make tender, or offer of the grace of justification and sanctification to the party baptised. In this respect it is thus described, Baptism of repentance Luke 3. 3. for remission of sins: and S. Peter to like purpose saith, Acts 2. 38. Repent, and be baptised every one of you for the remission of sins. 3. In that it doth really exhibit and seal up to the conscience of him that is baptised the forenamed graces, whereby he is assured that he is made partaker thereof. Thus Abraham received the sign of circumcision as a seal of the righteousness of Rome 4. 11. faith. Hence is it that the Eunuch and others when they were Acts 8. 39 & 16. 34. baptised, went away rejoicing. 4. In that it is a particular and peculiar pledge to the party baptised, that even he himself is made partaker of the said graces: therefore every one in particular is baptised for himself: yea, though many be at once brought to the Font, yet every one by name is baptised. To this purpose faith the Apostle, Whosoever are baptised into Christ, have put on Christ; Gal. 3. 27. whosoever, whether Peter, john, Thomas, or any other particular person. Ananias said to Paul in the singular number, Be Acts 22. 16. thou baptised, and wash away thy sins. §. 42. Objections against the efficacy of baptism answered. 1. Object. Many that are baptised receive no such grace at all, they are neither cleansed nor sanctified. Answ. They are only outwardly washed with water, they are not baptised with the Holy Ghost. The fault is not in that no grace accompanieth that Sacrament, but in that they receive not, but reject the grace which appertaineth thereto: what if some believe not? shall their unbelief make the faith of Rom. 3. 3. God without effect? God forbid. 2. Object. Many receive the forenamed graces before they are baptised, as Abraham before he was circumcised, and such Rom. 411. as were baptised after they believed. How then is baptism a means thereof? Answ. Their spiritual cleansing is more lively and fully manifested thereby, and they the more assured thereof. 3. Object. Many who long after their baptism, have lived like swine in sin, and so have not been cleansed or sanctified, yet diverse years after have been effectually called: what means hath baptism been hereof? Answ. The use and efficacy of baptism is not as the act thereof, transient, but permanent and perpetual so long as the party baptised liveth. Whensoever a sinner unfeignedly repenteth, and faithfully layeth hold on the promises of God, baptism, which is the seal thereof is as powerful and effectual as it could have been when it was first administered. For the efficacy of baptism consisteth in the free offer of grace. So long therefore as God continueth to offer grace, so long may a man's baptism be effectual. On this ground we are but once for all baptised: and as the jer. 44. Prophets put the people in mind of their circumcision, so the Apostles of their baptism long after it was administered. Yea, they speak of it (though the act were long before past) as if it were in doing, in the time present, Baptism saveth. 1 Pet. 3. 21. §. 43. What kind of means of grace Baptism is. II. Baptism is no physical or natural means of working Aqua exhibet forinsecus Sacramentum gratiae, & Spiritus operatur intrinsecus beneficium gratiae. Aug. Epist. 23. grace, as if the grace which is sealed up thereby were inherent in the water, or in the Minister's act of sprinkling it (as in medicines, salves, herbs, meats, and the like, there is inherent that virtue which proceedeth from the use of them: and being applied, they have their operation, whether a man believe it, or no) but it is only a voluntary instrument which Christ useth, as it pleaseth him, to work what grace, or measure of In Baptismo praecipua pars est Spiritus, per quem & aqua sit efficax. Chrys. in Act. Hom. 1. grace seemeth best to him: so as grace is only assistant to it, not included in it: yet in the right use thereof, Christ by his Spirit worketh that grace which is received by it, in which respect the Minister is said to baptise with water, but Christ with the Holy Ghost and with fire, Matth. 3. 11. §. 44. Of the necessity of Baptism. III. A means of working a thing may be said to be necessary Things necessary two ways. two ways. 1. Absolutely, so as the thing cannot possibly be without it. Ex Hypothesi. Thus are the proper causes of a thing absolutely necessary, as in this case, God's covenant, Christ's blood, and the operation of the Spirit, are absolutely necessary for attaining any grace. 2. By consequence, so as according to that course and order which God hath set down, things cannot be without them. Baptism is not absolutely necessary as a cause: for than should it be equal to God's covenant, Christ's blood, and the work of the Spirit. Yea than should all that are baptised without any exception be cleansed. But it is by consequence necessary: and that in a double Exhypothesi. respect. 1. In regard of God's ordinance. 2. In regard of our need thereof. 1. God having ordained this a Sacrament to be used, it is necessary it should be used, if for no other end, yet for manifestation of our obedience. He that carelessly neglecteth; or wilfully contemneth any Sacrament which God shall enjoin him to use, his soul shall be cut off. Gen. 17. 14. 2. Great is the need that we have thereof, in regard of our dulness in conceiving things spiritual, and of our weakness in believing things invisible. We are carnal, and earthly: and by things sensible and earthly, do the better conceive things spiritual and heavenly: therefore hath God ordained visible elements to be Sacraments of invisible graces. Again we are slow to believe such things as are promised in the word, therefore the more to help and strengthen our faith, God hath added to his covenant in the word, his seal in and by the Sacrament: that by two immutable things, (God's covenant and Gods seal) in which it is impossible for God to lie, we might have strong consolation. Besides, though in general we do believe the truth of God's word, yet we are doubtful to apply it to ourselves: wherefore for better applying God's covenant to our own soul, God hath added his Sacrament to his word. §. 45. Of the contrary extremes of Papists and Anabaptists about the necessity and efficacy of Baptism. There are two extremes contrary to the forenamed points about baptism. One in the excess, which is of Papists that attribute too much thereunto, and make it a plain Idol. Another in the defect, of Anabaptists and Libertines, which Papists attribute too much to Baptism. Bellarm. de Bapt lib. 1. cap. 4. derogate too much from it, and make it an idle ceremony. In two things do Papists exceed, 1. In the necessity Of Baptism. 2. In the efficacy They make it so absolutely necessary, as if any die unbaptized he cannot be saved: which doom they pass against infants, though they be deprived thereof without any fault of their own, yea or of their parents, being still borne. A merciless sentence without any warrant of God's word: yea against his word & against the order which he hath prescribed. He hath established Gen. 17. 7. his covenant, & promised to be the God of the faithful & of their seed: on which ground S. Peter saith, The promise is unto Acts 2. 39 you & unto your children: & S. Paul saith, your children are holy. 1 Cor. 7. 14. Shall all these privileges be made void by an inevitable want Gen. 17. 12. Jos. 5. 5. of baptism? if so, would God have enjoined circumcision (which to the jews was as baptism is to Christians) to be put off to the eighth day, before which day many infants died? or would Moses have suffered it to be forborn all the time that the Israelites were in the wilderness? If it be said that baptism is more necessary than circumcision, I answer, the Scripture layeth no more necessity upon it. If it were so necessary as they make it, than the virtue of Christ's death were less effectual since he was actually exhibited then before. For before it was effectual for infants without a Sacrament, but belike not now. Had the ancient Churches conceived so of the absolute necessity of baptism, they would not have had set times for the administering thereof: nor suffered it to be put off so long as they did. a In Thessalia mos fuit ut paschalibus tantùm d●ebus baptismus perageretur, Niceph. hist. lib. 12. cap. 34. Socrat. hist. lib. 5. cap. 22. Some Churches appointed it to be administered only at Easter. b Ne quenquam Sacerdotes baptizent praeterquam in Pasc● a & Pentecosle. L L. Pipi●. Carol. M. etc. Some at Easter and Whitsuntide. And though many who gave evidence of their true faith died before they were baptised, yet c justus quacunque morte praeventus fuerit anima eius in refrigerio erit, dixit Ambr. Orat. de obit. Valent. Qui diem obij● antequam baptisaretur. they did not thereupon judge them to be damned. This practice and judgement of the ancients hath made d Rhem. annot. on joh. 3. 5. many Papists somewhat to mitigate that absolute necessity, and to say that, In this case, God which hath not bound his grace, in respect of his own freedom, to any Sacrament, may and doth accept them as baptised, which either are martyred before they could be baptised, on else depart this life with vow and desire to have that Sacrament, but by some remediless necessity could not obtain it. If remediless necessity can help the matter, what necessity so remediless, as for a child to be still borne. Again, they add such efficacy to baptism, as it giveth grace e Ex opere operato, B● 'em. loc. citat. of the work itself: wherein they equal it to the very blood of Christ; and take away the peculiar work of the Spirit; and the use of faith, repentance, and such like graces. What can there be more in the water of baptism, than was in the blood of such beasts as were offered up for sacrifices? But it is not possible that the blood of Bulls and Goats should take away sin. Heb. 10. 4. They themselves attribute no such efficacy to the word preached, and yet they cannot show where the holy Ghost hath given more virtue to baptism, then to the word. This text joineth them both together (that he might cleanse it with 1 Cor. 1. 21. Rom. 1. 16. the washing of water through the word) What can be more said of a means then that which is said of the word? It pleased God by preaching to save them that believe. The Gospel is the power of God to salvation, etc. On the other side, Anabaptists, and such like Libertines, too Anabaptists extenuate baptism too much. lightly esteem this holy and necessary ordinance of God, in that they make it only a badge of our profession, a note of difference betwixt the true and false Church, a sign of mutual fellowship, a bare sign of spiritual grace, a resemblance of mortification, regeneration, inscition into Christ, with the like, but no more: These indeed are some of the ends and uses of Baptism: But in that they restrain all the efficacy thereof hereunto, they take away the greatest comfort, and truest benefit which the Church reapeth thereby, as may be gathered out of the points noted * §. 41. before. §. 46. Of the inward washing by Baptism. Ecce quia Christus sanctificat; ecce quia Christus ipso lavacro aquae in verbo ubi Minister videtur corporaliter operari ipse abluit, ipse mundat. Aug. contr. lit. Petil. l. 3. c. 49. In that with this washing of water, Christ cleanseth his Church, I observe that Whosoever are fully baptised are cleansed from sin. Fully, that is, powerfully and effectually, as well inwardly by the Spirit, as outwardly by the Minister. Cleansed, both from the guilt of sin by Christ's blood, and from the power of sin by the work of his Spirit. To this purpose tend the many emphatical phrases attributed by the Apostles to Baptism, as that we are baptised into jesus Christ, baptised into his death, buried with him by baptism; that Baptism doth save us; that Baptism is the washing of regeneration, Rom. 6. 3, 4. 1 Pet. 3. 21. Tit. 3 5. with the like. Vain is the rejoicing of many, who boast of their baptism, Use. and think themselves by virtue thereof to be as good Christians as the best, and yet live and lie in their sin, being more besmeared and defiled therewith then they were, when they were first borne. john saith, Christ baptiscth with the holy Ghost Matth. 3. 11. and with fire: the Apostle saith, Christ cleanseth with the washing of water. If that fire of the holy Ghost burn not up the dross of sin in thee, and this water wash not away the filth of sin, thou wert never: fully baptised. It may be the hand of some Minister hath sprinkled a little water on thy face, but Christ's blood hath not as yet been sprinkled on the soul: all the benefit which thou reapest by thy baptism is, that another day thou shalt dear answer for the abuse of so honourable an ordinance. §. 47. Of joining the word with Baptism. The other means of sanctifying and cleansing the Church here expressed, is the word. This being applied unto Baptism, and joined with it, must needs be meant of the promise of Grace sealed up in Baptism, which is God's promise of justifying us freely and sanctifying us effectually, plainly made known and truly believed: This means being thus added to this Sacrament, we may well infer that It is necessary that the word and Baptism go together: that Doct. where this Sacrament is administered, the doctrine thereof be truly, plainly, intelligibly taught, so as the nature, efficacy, end, and use thereof may be made known; and the covenant of God sealed up thereby, believed. So saith Christ, a Mat. 28. 19 Go teach all nations baptising them. So did the b Luk. 3. 3. Baptist, and the c Act. 2. 38. & 8. 12, 37. & 10. 47. & 16. 15, 33. Apostles, they preached the Gospel to them whom they baptised. 1. A Sacrament without the word is but an idle ceremony: Reasons. Detrahe verbum & quid est aqua nisi aqua? accedat verbum ad clementum & fit sacramentum. Aug. in joh. 15. tract. 80. no more than a seal without a covenant: for it is the word that maketh known the covenant of God. 2. It is the word which maketh the greatest difference betwixt the sacramental washing of water, and ordinary common washing. 3. By the word the ordinary creatures which we use are sanctified, much more the holy ordinances of God, whereof Baptism is one of the principal. Quest. Is it not then lawful to administer Baptism without 1 Tim. 4. 5. a Sermon? Answ. Though it be a very commendable, and honourable manner of administering that Sacrament, then to administer it when the word is preached, yet I think not a Sermon at that time to be so necessary, as it should be unlawful without one, to administer Baptism. For the joining of the word and Sacrament here spoken of is, that they who are baptised, or who present children to be baptised, and answer for them, or are present at the administering of Baptism, or live in the places where it useth to be administered, should be instructed in the Gospel, and taught the covenant which Baptism sealeth up. Besides, the liturgy and public form prescribed for the administering of Baptism both in our Church and other reformed Churches, layeth down the nature, efficacy, end, use, and other like points appertaining to that Sacrament, & plainly declareth the covenant of God sealed up thereby: so as in our and other like Churches where such forms are prescribed to be always used, the word is never separated from Baptism, though at the administering of Baptism there be no Sermon. The Church of Rome doth directly transgress against the Papists join not the word and seal. forenamed rule of joining the word and Baptism together. For though they have a public form prescribed, yet it being in an unknown tongue, not understood of the people, nor expounded to them, it is all one as if there were no form at all, no word at all: for that which is not understood is all one 1 Cor. 14. 9 etc. as if it were not uttered. Much more heinous is their transgression who live under the Gospel, where it is preached plainly to the understanding and capacity of the meanest, and yet are careless in coming to it, or in attending unto it, and so remain as ignorant as if they lived in places where the word is not preached at all, or in an unknown tongue. Such ignorant persons if they were not baptised are not worthy while they remain so ignorant to be baptised, nor yet to present their children to be baptised, or to be present at the baptism of others. As Ministers that baptise aught to preach the word, so ought they who are baptised to be instructed in the word. §. 48. Of the Inference of Glorification upon justification and Sanctification. EPHES. 5. 27. That he might present it to himself a glorious Church, etc. THe most principal end, in regard of the Churches good, which Christ aimed at when he gave himself for her, is her glorious estate in heaven: this is the end of the forenamed end. For why did Christ give himself for the Church? That he might sanctify it, having cleansed it: why did he cleanse, and sanctify it? That he might present it to himseife a glorious Church. Hence note these three points. 1. justification and sanctification must go before glorification. 2. The end why the Saints are cleansed and sanctified in this world, is that they may be presented glorious to Christ in the world to come. 3. The only means to make us glorious before Christ our spouse is righteousness. 1. All those places of Scripture which set our righteousness in this world before our glory in the world to come (as Tit. 2. 12, 13. 2 Tim. 4. 7, 8. very many places do) do prove the first point, that justification and Sanctification must go before Glorification. Among Men must be justified and sanctified before they can be glorified. Rom. 8. 30. other proofs note especially the order of the several links of that golden chain that reacheth from God's eternal counsel before the world, unto our everlasting glory after this world, Whom he did predestinate them he also called; and whom he called them he also justified; and whom he justified them he also glorified. 1. Heaven, the place of our glorification, is an holy City, Reasons. Reu. 21. 10, 27. whereinto no unclean thing shall enter. 2. In that place the Church is to be married unto Christ, and to be ever with him: she must therefore be pure as he is 1 joh. 3. 2, 3. pure: for he will not endure the society of a foul filthy spouse. As we desire assurance of our glorification in heaven, so Use. let us get, and give evidence of our justification and sanctification on earth. The evidence of our justification is a sound and true faith. The evidence of our sanctification is a good and clear conscience. The forenamed proofs and reasons do also confirm the We are here cleansed that we might be hereafter glorified. second point, that The end why the Saints are cleansed and sanctified in this world is, that they may be presented glorious to Christ in the world to come. It is therefore needful and behooveful, not only in regard of Ex co quod hic accipit Ecclesia ad illam gloriam quae hic non est, perfectionemque perducitur. Aug. Retract. l. 1. c 7. Christ's honour, but also of our own glory and happiness, that here while we live on earth we be sanctified and cleansed. If Christ for our sakes had an eye at our future and everlasting glory, and for that end prepared means to bring us thereunto, ought not we ourselves much rather have an eye thereat, and both avoid all things which may hinder it, and use all means whereby we may be assured of it? Moses had respect unto the recompense of the reward. Yea Christ for the joy which Heb. 11. 26. & 12. 2. was set before him endured the cross, and despised the shame. 3. That Righteousness is the only means to make us glorious Righteousness the only means to make us glorious. before Christ our spouse, is evident by this, that Christ gave himself to work and effect this means for this end. Christ himself by his death, hath consecrated this, and no other means. If there be any other means then that which Christ by offering up himself hath procured, what need Christ to have been offered up? To show that this is the means to make the Church glorious before Christ, the holy Ghost resembleth the righteousness of the Saints to fine linen, clean, and white, Reu. 19 7, 8. wherewith the wife of the Lamb is made ready against the day of marriage. Christ himself loveth righteousness and hateth wickedness: Reason. Psal. 45. 7. they therefore, and none but they that are arrayed with righteousness, are glorious in his eyes. This I have the rather noted against the conceit of our adversaries, Use. who place all the glory of the Church in outward Papists place the glory of the Church in outward pomp. pomp. Wherefore their Pope whom they make head of the Church, and after a peculiar manner the spouse of Christ, must have his triple crown, his scarlet robes, his throne advanced above kings: Men must be his horses to bear him: and Kings and Nobles must be his men to wait on him. Their Priests also must be arrayed with glorious copes of the best wrought gold. Their temples must be decked with curious, carved, gilded images. Their host carried about in manner of a triumph. Their people all besprinkled with water. Their superstitious houses must be the fairest buildings in a kingdom, and have the greatest revenues of a kingdom belonging to them: with the like. Dionysius jovi Olympio aureum amiculum detraxit, laneum substituens, non sine dicterio, laneum viz. ad utram que anni tempestatem esse aptius. Is this glory fit for Christ's spouse? belike than Christ hath carnal eyes and ears: and is delighted with those things wherewith the world is delighted. The wiser among the heathen did scoff at such base conceits which their people had of their gods. Shall Christians think more basely of Christ, than the heathen of their gods? Too much do most people dote on outward worldly glory: even so much as they neglect true righteousness. For our parts as we desire to appear before Christ so as he Use. may think us glorious, let us be arrayed with righteousness & holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord, Heb. 12. 14. §. 44. Of the fruition of Christ's presence in heaven. EPHES. 5. 27. That he might present it to himself a glorious Church, not having spot or wrinkle, or any such thing: but that it should be holy, and without blemish. Having noted the inference of this verse upon the former: I will now handle it distinctly by itself. In it is contained a description of the glorious estate of the Church in heaven. Of that estate must this description be here meant, Ubicunque commemoravi ecclesiam non habentem maculam aut rugam, non sic accipiendum, quasi iam sit, sed quae praeparatur ut sit, quando apparebit gloriosa. Aug. Retract. l. 3. c. 18. for on earth it is not simply without spot or wrinkle: though it be prepared so to be. This estate is 1. Generally propounded. 2. Particularly exemplified. In the general proposition is noted, 1. Her condition (she is presented to Christ.) 2. Her quality (glorious.) The particular exemplification thereof is 1. Privative, by removing all deformity: noted in two words, Spot, Wrinkle. 2. Positive, by adorning her with beauty: noted also in two words, Holy, Blameless. The word (present) is taken from the custom of solemnising 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a marriage: first the spouse was wooed, and then set before her husband that he might take her to wife, to be with him. Thus b Gen. 2. 22. Eve was presented by God to Adam that he might take her for his wife: and c Est. 2. 13. Esther among other virgins was presented to Ahash-verosh. This showeth that Doct. The Church in heaven shall enjoy the presence of Christ: d joh. 14. 2, 3. Christ himself saith expressly to his disciples, I go to prepare a place for you, that where I am, there ye may be also. On this ground did the Apostle desire to depart, namely e Phil. 1. 23. to be with Christ, and f 2 Cor. 5. 8. Reason. to be present with the Lord. In heaven is the marriage betwixt Christ and the Church solemnised, which here on earth hath been in preparing. God the Father hath given his g joh. 3. 16. son unto the Church, and the h & 17. 6. Church unto his son: yea i Act. 20. 28. Christ himself hath purchased the Church unto himself by his blood, and k Ose. 2. 19, 20. promised marriage unto her, and the more to assure the Church of his love he hath l Eph. 4. 8. bestowed many gifts upon her: he hath further sent * Paranymphi. his Ministers in his name to m joh. 3. 29. woo and n 2 Cor. 5. 20. beseech the Church to give her consent, and to o & 11. 2. prepare her as a pure virgin for himself: Hereupon the Church hath given her consent, for p Eph. 5. 24. as a spouse she is subject unto Christ as unto an head. These things being so, how can it be thought that Christ will forsake her, and not receive her to be with him for ever? Can the thought of death be terrible to such as know and Use. believe the truth hereof? Will not rather the consideration encouragement against death. thereof make them with the Apostle to sigh, and desire to depart, that they may be with the Lord? The highest degree of the Church's happiness consisteth in this fruition of the Totum tibi sit Deus: quia horum quae diligis, totum tibi est. Aug. in joh. 3. tract. 13. Reu. 21. 22, 23. joh 17. 20, 21. presence of her spouse: for so he becometh all in all unto her: not by means, as in this world, but immediately by himself: so as there shall need no Minister, no Sacrament, no ordinance to set forth Christ unto us: no Governor in family, Church, or commonwealth, to represent his person, or to keep us in subjection: no light to direct us, no food to sustain us; we shall be so assisted with Christ as we shall need nothing. If those servants were happy that stood continually before Solomon, what are they that always stand not as servants 1 King. 10. 8. but as a wife in his presence that is infinitely greater than Solomon? If it were a great grace & favour, that Moses saw the backparts Exo. 33. 23. of God, what a grace and favour is it, to behold Christ 1 Cor. 13. 12. face to face? For when he doth appear, we shall see him as he is. 1 Joh. 3 2. Though now we be absent from the Lord, yet let us uphold ourselves with the expectation and assurance of this, that we shall be presented before Christ. §. 50. Of the Glory of the Church in heaven. The quality of the Church in heaven is as excellent as may be, Doctr. and therefore here said to be glorious: all beauty, all comeliness, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. all grace, whatsoever may make the Church amiable, lovely, or any way to be desired, or admired, is comprised under this word glorious. In this respect the Saints are said to shine, and that as b Reu. 21. 11. precious stones, yea as the c Dan. 12. 3. firmament, as the stars, and as the d Mat. 13. 43. sun: and to be e 1 joh. 3, 2. like Christ himself: and to f Col. 3 4. appear with him in glory. This glory of the Saints extendeth both to soul and body, and whole person. In regard of their souls they shall be all g Psal. 45. 13. glorious within: for they are h Heb. 12. 23. Spirits of just men, made perfect: i 1 Cor. 13. 12. perfect knowledge, wisdom, and all manner of purity shall be in them. In regard of their bodies, they shall be k Phil. 3. 21. fashioned like to Christ's glorious body: and that in incorruption, immortality, Ecclesia in fine seculi expectat quo l in Christi corpore praemonstratum est, etc. Aug. Epist. 119. beauty, brightness, grace, favour, agility, strength, and the like. It is therefore truly said, that the Church in the end of the world expecteth that which is before demonstrated in Christ's body. In regard of their person, as a wife is advanced to the honour and dignity of her husband, so shall they to the honour and dignity of Christ, so far as they are capable of it: for they shall be l Luk. 22. 30. next unto Christ, yea m joh. 17. 21 one with him, and so n Heb. 1. 14. above the most glorious Angels. Much more might be spoken of the glory of the Church: but never can enough be spoken thereof, no not by the tongue of men or Angels: for o 1 Cor. 2. 9 eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man the things which God hath prepared for them which love him. When Paul was rapt up into the third heaven, and saw but a glimpse of this glory, p 2 Cer. 12 4. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. he heard unspeakable words, which are not possible for man to utter. Wherefore q 2 Cer. 4. 17. when he speaketh of it, he useth such a transcendent kind of phrase, as cannot in any tongue be fully expressed: we thus as well as we can by one degree of comparison upon another translate it, * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory. Is not this sufficient to uphold us against all the reproach and disgrace which the world layeth upon us, because we are Use. of the Church of Christ? The world hath r Isa. 62. 4. of old counted her, to whom Christ saith, Hephzibah (that is, my delight in her) and Beulah (that is, married) forsaken and desolate, yea s 1 Cor. 4. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. as the filth of the world, and the off-scowring of all things. Among Heathen, none so vildly esteemed of as Christians; and amongst Papists, none so as Protestants; & amongst carnal Gospelers, none so as they who endeavour t 1 joh. 3. 3. to purify themselves as Christ is pure, and to avoid the common sins of the world. When for Christ's sake we are basely accounted of, let us think of this. §. 51. Of the Church's freedom from all deformity in heaven. Not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing. The first point noted by the Apostle in his exemplification of the forenamed glory, is a removing of all deformity. The word translated * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. spot, is taken for a stain on a garment, and a foul speck on a man's face, or other part of the body: or a scar, or other blemish in his flesh by a sore, wound, blow, or the like. The other word ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. wrinkl-) is taken for a crest in the face through old age, for it signifieth a gathering together of the skin by old age: by it is meant any manner of breaking (as we speak) by age, sickness, trouble, pain, or the like. Because there may be also deformities other ways, the Apostle addeth this clause (or any such thing.) These things applied to 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the Church, show that No manner of deformity shall cleave to the Church in heaven. Doctr. Thereshall be in her no stain or contagion of sin received from others, no scar of any evil humour arising from itself, no wrinkle, no defect of spiritual moisture, no sign of the old man, nor any thing that may any way make it seem deformed, or uncomely in the sight of Christ. Not only great, heinous, capital sins, (which are as botches and boiles, and as open, wide sores, gashes and wounds) but all spots and specks, all wrinkles and defects, all manner of blemishes whatsoever within, or without, shall be clean taken away. Sin shall not only be subdued in us, but utterly rooted out of us: no relic, no sign thereof shall be left remaining. In this respect it is said, that God shall wipe away all tears, that is, shall take away all Reu. 7. 17. & 21. 4. matter of mourning, sorrow, and grief. Now there is nothing that ministereth matter of more sorrow to the Saints than sin. That remnant of sin which was in the Apostle even after his regeneration, made him thus cry out, O wretched man that I am. Rom. 7. 24. Though this be but a privative good, yet it addeth much to the heavenly happiness of the Saints. If it were possible that we should enjoy the rest and glory prepared for the Saints in heaven, and withal there should remain on us the spots and wrinkles of sin, these spots and wrinkles would be as the hand-writing which appeared to Belshazzer in the midst of Dan 5. 5. his jollity: they would be as gall mixed with wine: they would turn all our joy into heaviness, and take away the sweet relish of all our happiness. The consideration therefore of this privative benefit cannot but breed in the hearts of all such as are members of this Church a longing desire after this perfect purging of them from all deformity. §. 52. Of the perfect purity of the Church in heaven. But that it should be holy and without blemish. The last branch whereby the celestial glory of the Church is set forth, is the perfect purity thereof: the adversative particle (BUT) showeth that the holiness here spoken of is no imperfect * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. holiness, such as the sanctification of the Saints is in this world, but an absolute perfect holiness in all the parts and degrees thereof: such as is without spot or wrinkle: without relic, or sign of sin: and therefore by way of explanation is added, * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. without blemish, or blameless: such as man, Angel, nor God himself can find fault withal. b Heb. 9 14. This attribute is oft applied to the person and blood of jesus Christ, and therefore 1 Pet. 1. 19 it must needs set forth perfect purity. Whence we may observe that The Sanctification of the Saints shall be perfect in heaven. They shall not only be justified by having their sins covered to them, nor only have their sanctification truly begun in them, but also in every part, point, and degree thereof absolutely perfected: in which respect they are said to be just men made Heb. 12. 23. perfect. Adam in his innocence was not more pure than the Saints shall be in heaven: yea they shall far surpass Adam as in the measure, so in the stabilite and perpetuity thereof. In our endeavour after holiness let us have an eye to this Use. perfection: and not faint, if we attain not to that measure which we desire. Perfection is reserved for the world to come. Yet know we, that the more holy and blameless we are, the nearer we come to that heavenly estate: the more spots and blemishes of sin we have, the more unlike we are unto it, and the less hope we have of enjoying that heavenly happiness. All the forenamed several points of the glorious estate of General uses of the glorious estate of the Church in heaven. the Church in heaven should ravish our spirits, and even break our hearts with an holy admiration of Christ's goodness, and fill our mouths with praises for the same, and make us sigh, and long after the same, and with all good conscience and diligence use all the means we can to attain thereunto: no labour will be lost herein. Surely, this is either not known, or not believed, or not remembered, or not duly and seriously considered by such as make light account thereof. Let that which hath been but briefly touched be further meditated upon, and let us pray that the eyes of our understanding may be enlightened, Ephes. 1. 18. that we may know what is the riches of the glorious inheritance of the Saints. Were it not for this hope, the Saints were 1 Eor. 15. 19 of all the most miserable; whereas now they are the most happy. §. 53. Of the application of the things which Christ hath done for the Church, unto husbands. EPHES. 5. 28. So ought men to love their wives, etc. THE first clause of this verse serveth both for an application of the former argument, and also for a transition to another argument. The particle of relation (So) showeth that that which hath before been delivered of Christ's love to his Church, aught to be referred and applied to husbands. For as Christ loved his Church, So ought husbands to love their wives. Quest. Why are these transcendent evidences of Christ's surpassing love to his Church set before husbands? can any such things be expected from husbands to their wives? Answ. No, * See §. 27. not for measure, but for likeness. For in this large declaration of Christ's love, there are two general points to be noted. 1. That the Church in herself was no way worthy of love. 2. That Christ so carried himself towards her that he made her worthy of much love. This aught to be the mind of husbands to their wives. 1. Though they be no way worthy of love, yet they must love them. 2. They must endeavour with all the wit and wisdom they have, to make them worthy of love. I say endeavour because it is not simply in the husband's power to do the deed. Yet his faithful endeavour shall on his part be accepted for the deed. Of these points I shall hereafter more fully speak. §. 54. Of the application of the love which a man beareth to himself, unto an husband. EPHES. 5. 28. So ought men to love their wives as their own bodies. THe forenamed particle (So) hath also relation to another pattern, namely, of a man's self to his body: and so it is a transition from one argument to another. There is some more Emphasis here used in setting down an husband's duty, than was before, vers. 25. There it was laid down by way of exhortation, Husbands love your wives. Here it is laid down with a straighter charge: Husbands ought to love their wives. So as this duty is not a matter arbitrary, left to the husband's will to do it, or leave it undone: there is a necessity laid upon him: he must love his wife. Woe therefore unto him if he do it not. In setting down this argument taken from a man's self, the Apostle resembleth a man's wife unto his body: wherein he hath relation to vers. 23. where he said, the husband is the head of the wife. Whereby he showeth, that as an husband's place is a motive to his wife, for her to perform her duty: so to himself, See Treat. 4. §. 74 76. Why the pattern of a man's self is added to the pattern of Christ. for him to perform his duty. He is her head, therefore she must be subject to him. She is his body, therefore he must love her. This example of a man's self is both a reason, the more to move husbands to love their wives, and also a rule to teach them how to love them. The reason is implied under that near union that is betwixt Sicut corpus nunquam à se dissidet, neque anima adversus seipsum, ita virum & mulierem non convenit dissidere. Chrys. in Gen. hom. 45. a man and his wife: she is as near to him as his own body: therefore she ought to be as dear to him. The body never dissenteth from itself, nor the soul against itself. So neither should man and wife. The rule is noted under the manner of a man's loving his own body: as entirely as he loveth his body, so entirely he ought to love his wife. Of the manner of a man's loving himself, see Treat. 4. §. 74. 76. The more to enforce this comparison, the Apostle addeth, He that loveth his wife, loveth himself. Ephes. 5. 28. By this clause two things are implied. 1. That a wife is not only as a man's body, namely, his outward flesh, but as his person, his body and soul. She is as his body, because she was taken out of his body: and because Gen. 2. 23. she is set under him, as his body under his head. She is as himself, by reason of the bond of marriage, which maketh one of two. In which respect a wife is commonly called a man's Matth. 19 5, 6. second self. 2. That an husband in loving his wife loveth himself: so as the benefit of loving his wife will redound to himself, as well as to his wife. §. 55. Of the amplification of a man's love of himself. EPHES. 5. 29. For no man ever yet hated his own flesh: but nourisheth and cherisheth it, even as the Lord the Church. THe former pattern of a man's self is here further amplified. For first the Apostle proveth, that a man loveth himself: and then he showeth how he loveth himself. Two arguments are used to prove the point. One is taken from the contrary: No man ever yet hated his own flesh. Therefore he loveth it. The other is taken from the effects of love: To nourish and cherish one's flesh is a fruit of love: But every man nourisheth and cherisheth his flesh. Therefore he loveth it. This latter argument showeth the manner of a man's loving himself: and therein a man's love of himself is a rule to teach him how to love his wife. This indefinite particle (no man) is to be restrained to such as have the understanding and affection of a man in them: as if he had said, no man in his right wits: for furious, frantic, mad, desperate persons will cut their arms, legs, and other parts, mangle their flesh, hang, drown, smother, choke, and stab themselves. Even so they are as men out of their wits, who Quia se diligat, & prodesse sibi velit, dubitare dementis est. Aug. de doct. Christ. lib. 1. cap. 25. hate, or any way hurt their wives: yea, it is the part of a mad man to doubt of loving, and doing good to himself. These two words (to nourish and cherish) comprise under them a careful providing of all things needful for a man's body. To nourish, is properly to feed. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. To cherish, is to keep warm. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. The former is done by food: the latter by apparel. Under Proprie dicitur de galina fovente ova, quum illis incubat. food, and apparel the Apostle compriseth all things needful for this life, where he saith, Having food andraiment, let us therewith be content. 1 Tim 6. 8. This applied to an husband, showeth that he ought to have a provident care for the good of his wife in all things needful for her. That he may yet further press this point, he returneth again to the example of Christ (even as the Lord the Church) The Apostle thought that this nail of love had need be fast beaten into the heads and hearts of husbands, and therefore addeth blow to blow to knock it up deep, even to the head: before he confirmed Christ's example with the example of ourselves: here he confirmeth the example of ourselves with the example of Christ again. This he doth for two especial reasons. 1. The more forcibly to urge the point: for two examples add weight one to another: especially this latter which is so far more excellent as we heard out of vers. 25, 26, 27. 2. To give husbands a better direction for their providence towards their wives, whom they must nourish and cherish, not only as their bodies, but as Christ nourisheth and cherisheth his Church, not only with things temporal, but also with things spiritual and eternal. §. 56. Of man's natural affection to himself. EPHES. 5. 28, 29. So ought men to love their wives as their own bodies: he that loveth his wife loveth himself. For no man ever yet hated his own flesh: but nourisheth, and cherisheth it, even as the Lord the Church. Having briefly showed the general scope of the 28 and 29 verses, I will proceed to a more distinct handling of them. They setforth The natural affection of a man to himself. Summ● 28. & 2● Two points are here to be noted. 1. The general proposition, that a man is well affected to himself. 2. The particular amplification, and manifestation of that affection. This is manifested two ways. 1. Negatively, No man hateth his own flesh. 2. Affirmatively, and that in two branches 1. Nourisheth it. 2. Cherisheth Both these are justified by the like affection of Christ to the Church which is his body (Even as the Lord the Church) In that the Apostle propoundeth the natural affection of a man's self to his body as a motive and pattern to Christians, to love their wives, and also justifieth the same by a like affection of Christ to his Church, I observe that Natural affection is a thing lawful and commendable: it is Doctr. an affection which may stand with a good conscience: which Gods word is so far from taking away, as it doth establish it. For such as are * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. without natural affection are directly condemned: and we are b Rom. 12. 10 commanded to be so kindly affectioned Rom. 1. 30. one to another as * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 we are to ourselves. Yea the law in 2 Tim. 3. 3. the strict rigour thereof layeth down that natural affection which is in a man to himself as a rule for the love of his neighbour ( c Mat. 22. 39 thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.) Hence is it that the d Leu. 19 18. Isa. 58. 7. Prophets, e 1 Cor. 12. 26. Jam. 2. 8. Apostles, and Christ himself do oft call upon us to have an eye to that affection which we bear to ourselves. Of this pattern Christ saith, f Mat. 7. 12. This is the Law, and the Prophets, this is the brief sum of them, this is it which they do much urge and press. 1. Natural affection was at first created of God, by him Reasons. planted in man, so that as soul, body, the powers, and parts of them, are in their substance good things, this affection also in itself is good. 2. There are the same reasons to love ourselves, as our brethren. For we ourselves are made after God's image, redeemed by Christ's blood, members of the same mystical body, keepers of ourselves, to give an account of the good or hurt we do to ourselves, with the like. In the Law, under this word neighbour, ourselves are comprised: and every commandment of the second table is to be applied to ourselves. §. 57 Of natural self-love. Object. Lovers of themselves are condemned in God's word, as 2 Tim. 3. 2. Phil. 2. 21. 1 Cor. 10. 24. Rom. 15. 1. Answ. There is a double loving of a man's self. The several kinds of self-love. One good and commendable: The other evil, and damnable. Good and commendable loving of a man's self is 1. Natural. 2. Spiritual. That which is natural is in all by the very instinct of nature: and it was at first created, and still is by God's providence preserved in our nature, and that for the preservation of nature. Were there not such a natural love of himself in every one, man would be as careless of himself, as of others, and as loath to take pains for himself, as for others. Wherefore that every one might have care at least of one, even of himself, and so the world be better preserved, God hath reserved in man this natural affection, notwithstanding his corruption by sin. Yea further because every one is not able to look to himself, at least when he is young, sick, old, or any other way impotent, God by his wise providence hath extended this natural affection towards otheralso as they are nearly linked unto us by the bonds of nature. The next to a man's self are (by blood and bond of nature) children. Admirably much is that which parents do for their children, which they would never do, if there were not a natural affection in them to their children. From children again this affection ariseth towards their parents, that when parents grow old, impotent, or any way unable to help themselves, they might have succour from their children. And because parents and children are not always together, or not able to help one another, or unnatural, God hath yet further extended this natural affection to brethren, cousins, and other kindred. And for a further extent thereof hath instituted marriage betwixt such as are not of the same blood, and by virtue of that bond raised a natural affection not only in husband and wife one to another, but also in all the alliance that is made thereby. Moreover this affection is wrought in neighbours, friends, fellows, and other by like bonds knit together, that the bow of God's providence might have many strings, and if one break, another might hold. In all these kinds, the nearer a man cometh to himself, the more doth this affection show itself, according to the proverb, Near is my coat, but nearer is my skin. God having wrought this natural affection in the several kinds thereof, and there being good ends and uses thereof, it is not to be condemned. §. 58. Of spiritual self-love. Spiritual self-love is that which is supernaturally wrought in man by God's Spirit: whereby he is both enlightened to discern what is most excellent, and best for him, and also moved to choose the same: so as this serveth to rectify the former. Hence it cometh to pass that their chiefest care is for their souls, and for the eternal salvation thereof: for the furthering whereof they can be content as need requireth, to f 1 Cor. 9 27. beat down their body, to g 2 Cor. 11. 27. deny them sometimes their ordinary refreshing by food, rest, and other like means, yea and to h Heb. 11. 36, 37. suffer them to be imprisoned, racked, and otherways tortured, and life itself to be taken from them. This men do, Non propterea quisquam dicendus est non diligere salutem, atque incolumitatem corporis sui, quia amplius aliquid diligit: nam a●arus etc. Aug. de doct. Chr. lib. 1. cap. 25. and suffer, not for want of natural affection, but by reason of spiritual affection which persuades them that it is good for them it should be so, A man is not therefore to be said not to love the health and safety of his body because he loveth something more. For a covetous man though he love his money, yet he can be content to part with it for bread to nourish his body: so a spiritual man though he love his life, yet he can be content to lose it for his soul's salvation. For he loveth himself sufficiently, who doth his best to enjoy the chiefest and truest good. This spiritual affection extendeth itself as I'll so satis diligit qui sedulo agit ut summo & vero perfruatur bono. Aug. de mor. eccls l. 1. c. 26. far as, natural affection, namely to wives, husbands, children, parents, brethren, cousins, friends, etc. Much is this urged and pressed in the Scriptures, as Isa. 55. 1, 2, 3. Mat. 6. 19, 20, 33. joh. 6. 27. 1 Tim. 6. 11, 19 §. 59 Of evil self-love. The self-love which is evil swerveth in the Object. Measure. 1. In the Object, when it is cast upon our corruptions, our lusts, our evil humours: when we affect and love them, and for them pursue whatsoever may satisfy them: as the ambitious, lustful, riotous, gluttonous, and other like persons. This is expressly forbidden, Make not provision for the flesh to fulfil Rom. 13. 14. the lusts thereof. 2. In the Measure, when our love is wholly and only cast upon ourselves, so seeking our own good, as we regard no man's good but our own: nor care what damage another receiveth, so we may get advantage thereby. This is also forbidden: Phil. 2. 21. 1 Cor. 13. 5. & 10. 24. for it is contrary to the property of true love, which seeketh not her own, namely to the prejudice of another. This hath the title of * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Self-love appropriated to it. It sprang from the corruption of nature, and is daily increased by the instigation of Satan for the destruction of mankind. It manifesteth itself by the many tricks of deceit which most men use in their dealings with others: by making advantage of others necessities as in the case of usury, of raising corn, and other commodities in time of scarcity, with the like: by men's backwardness to help such as stand in need of their succour: by want of compassion in other men's miseries: and by many other like unkindnesses: all which verify the proverb, Every man for himself. But by distinguishing the forenamed points we may see that notwithstanding evil self-love be a most detestable vice, yet it is both lawful and commendable to love one's self aright. §. 60. Of the error of Stoics in condemning all passion. The doatage of Stoics who would have all natural affection 1. Use. rooted out of man, is contrary to this pattern, and unworthy to find any entertainment among Christians: for what do they aim at, but to root that out of man, which God hath planted in him, and to take away the means which God hath used for the better preservation of man? That wise man whom they frame to themselves is worse than a brute beast: he is a very stock and block. Not only the best and wisestmen that ever were in the world, but also Christ himself had those passions and affections in him, which they account unbeseeming a wise man. Their doatage hath long since been hissed out of the schools of Philosophers, should it then find place in Christ's Church? §. 61. Of well using natural affection. Let us labour to cherish this natural affection in us, and to 2. Use. turn it to the best things, even to such as are not only apparently, but indeed good: and among good things to such as are most excellent, and the most necessary: such as concern our souls, and eternal life. For this end we must pray to have our understandings enlightened (that we may discern Phil. 1. 10. things that differ, and approve that which is excellent) and to have our wills and affections sanctified, that we embrace, pursue, and delight in that which we know to be the best. Thus shall our natural affection be turned into a spiritual affection. Here we see how we may make nature a schoolmaster unto us: for as Christ sendeth us to the fowls of the air, and lilies Mat. 6. 26, 28. of the field to learn of them, so the Apostle here sendeth us to our own natural instinct. We cannot complain that we have no schoolmaster near us (as many in the country whose children for want of one are rudely brought up) ourselves are schoolmasters to ourselves. Wherefore as the Apostle hereby teacheth husbands to love their wives, so let us all more generally learn to love one another: for m 1 Cor. 12. 12. we are all mutual members of one and the same body: and our brother or neighbour is n Isa. 58. 7. Our flesh. §. 62. Of Man's forbearing to wrong himself. EPHES. 5. 29. For no man ever yet hated his own flesh: but nourisheth and cherisheth it. THe first particle (for) showeth that in this verse an evidence and manifestation of a man's love of himself is given. The first part thereof, which is set down negatively, showeth that It is against the common instinct of nature for a man to hate Doctr. himself. It is noted as an evidence that devils were in the Gadarene, in that he cut himself with stones: had not the devils Mar. 5. 5. forced him, he would never have done it. Hatred is contrary to love: it being therefore before proved Reason. that every man by nature loveth himself, by necessary consequence it followeth, that no man hateth his flesh: for two contrary effects proceed not from the same cause: no fountain can yield both salt water and fresh. jam. 3. 12. Object. Many do macerate their bodies with fastings, watchings, labours, travels, and the like: others tear and gash their flesh with whips, knives, swords, yea and with their teeth also: others lay such violent hands upon themselves, as they take away their own lives. Answ. 1. None of these things are done by the instinct of nature which God hath set in man, but through the corruption of nature which the devil hath caused. Now nature and corruption of nature are two contrary causes: no marvel then that contrary effects come from them. 2. They think they do these things in love to themselves; as superstitious persons to merit salvation, by macerating their body: others to free themselves from ignominy, penury, slavery, torment, or such like evils: so as there is an apparent good that maketh them so to do, and not simply hatred of themselves. They that so do, are either possessed with a Devil, or blinded in their mind, or bereaved of their wits, or overwhelmed with some passion, so as they know not what they do: they do it not therefore in hatred. 2. Object. Holy and wise men deliberately, and on good advice, have beaten down their bodies, and yielded their lives 1 Cor. 9 27. Heb. 11. 35. etc. to be taken away, not accepting deliverance. Answ. That was far from hatred, and in great love to themselves, as was showed * §. 56. before. §. 63. Of unnatural practices against one's self. The forenamed doctrine discovereth many practices used 1 Use. by sundry men to be against nature, and in that respect most horrible and detestable. 1. The practice of the idolatrous Baalites, who to move their I doll to hear them, cut themselves with knives and lancers, till 1 King. 18. 28. Cassian. Collat. 19 the blood gushed out upon them. Not much unlike to whom are Popish Eremites, Anchorites, Monks flagellants, Grandimontenses, sundry sorts of Franciscans, and other Friars, whereof D. Willet Synops. Papism. Contr. 6. quaest. 6. some wear shirts of haircloth, some shirts of mail next their body, some go barefoot, some daily whip themselves till blood follow, and some waste their bodies with lying hard, watching, fasting, going on pilgrimage, etc. 2. The practice of Gluttons, Drunkards, unchaste and voluptuous persons, who to satisfy their corrupt humours, impair their health, pull diseases upon them, and shorten their days. 3. The practice of Swaggerers, who by quarrels cause their flesh to be wounded, and their lives taken away. Among these may be reckoned such as bring themselves to great straits, distresses, and dangers for lucre sake: and they who by felony, treason, and the like evil deeds, cast themselves upon the sword of the Magistrate. 4. The practice of them that give the reins to grief, fear, wrath, and other like violent passions, so as thereby they weaken their bodies, and shorten their days. 5. The practice of selfe-murtherers: who herein break the rule of love (as thyself) and end their days in a most horrible Matth. 22. 39 sin, depriving themselves of the time, place, and means of repentance: so as, whatsoever fond pretence they make for their sin, little better can be thought of them, then that they thrust their souls headlong into hell, unless the Lord betwixt the act done, and the expiration of their breath, extraordinarily touch their hearts. Religion, nature, sense, and all abhor this fearful fact: so as not only those who have been enlightened — Quam vellent aethere in alto, Nunc & pauperiem, & duros perferre labores. Uirg. Aen. 6. by God's word, but also the Heathen, who had no other than the light of nature, have adjudged it to be a most desperate sin. §. 64. Of haters of others. 2. By that affection which nature moveth men to bear to their flesh, we may see how nature more prevails with men, than conscience and obedience to God's word, yea then the 2. Use. Spirit: for where nature keepeth all men from hating their own flesh, nothing can keep many husbands from hating their wives, and wives their husbands; nor brothers, cousins, & neighbours (yet these are our own flesh) no nor many of those Isa. 58. 7. who profess themselves to be of the mystical body of Christ, from hating one another. What shall we say of these? Is nature of greater power, and more mighty in operation then the Spirit? Surely, such either deceive themselves and others, in pretending to be members of the body of Christ: or else the Spirit is very weak in them, and the flesh beareth a great sway. Let haters of their brethren think of this and be ashamed. §. 65. Of man's care in providing and using things needful for his body. The second evidence of that love which a man beareth to himself, is noted in two such branches (nourisheth and cherisheth) as comprise * See §. 55. all needful things under them, so as the Apostle implieth thereby, that Nature teacheth all men to provide such things as are needful for Doctr. them: needful for life, as food: and needful for health, as apparel. Nature is here propounded as a Schoolmaster to Christians: this therefore which nature teacheth is a bounden duty. It is much insisted upon by Solomon, who in this respect Eccl. 2. 24. & 3. 13. & 5. 18. & 8. 15. saith, It is good and comely for one to eat and drink, and enjoy the good of all his labour. If he be worse than an Infidel that provideth not for his 1 Tim. 5. 8. Inconcussa naturae lege diligimus nos ipsos, quae in bestias etiam promulgata est. Aug. de Doct. Chr. li. 1. ca 26. own, what is he that provideth not for himself? even worse than a beast: for nature hath taught the bruit beasts to nourish and cherish themselves. If any think that it more befitteth beasts, or natural men than Saints, let them tell me which of the Saints at any time guided by God's Spirit, hath wholly neglected himself. To omit all others, it is expressly noted of Christ, that as there was occasion, he p Mat. 8. 24. slept, he q Luke 14. 1. eat, he r john 4. 6. rested, and otherwise refreshed himself. Object. Though he were s joh. 4. 31. etc. hungry, and meat prepared for him, yet he refused to eat. Answ. 1. Forbearing one meal, is no great hindrance of Lawful fasts no hindrance to the cherishing of the body. cherishing the body. 2. Extraordinary and weighty occasions may lawfully make a man a little neglect himself: that so he may show he preferreth God's glory, and his brother's salvation, before the outward nourishing of his body: to which purpose Christ saith, My meat is to do the will of him that sent me: that is, I john 4. 34. prefer it before my meat. And Saint Paul saith, I will very 2 Cor. 12. 15. gladly be spent for your souls. We must here therefore take heed of the extremes on both hands. 1. Of undue, and overmuch neglecting our bodies, so as the strength of them be wasted, and the health impaired. 2. Of too much caring for it, so as upon no occasion we will lose a meal's meat, or a night's rest. Fasting and watching as occasion requireth, are bounden duties. But to return to the point of nourishing and cherishing our flesh. 1. For this end hath God provided food, apparel, and all 1. Reason. things needful for our weak bodies, that they should be nourished and cherished thereby: not to use them therefore, is to refuse God's providence. 2. By well nourishing and cherishing our bodies, they are the better enabled to do that work and service which God appointeth to be done: but by neglecting them, they are disabled thereto. As this is a motive, so ought it to be an end whereat we aim in nourishing and cherishing our bodies. §. 66. Of them that neglect to cherish their bodies. Against this good instinct of nature do many offend. Use. 1. Covetous misers, who so dote upon their wealth, and so 1. Covetous misers. delight in abundance of goods treasured up, as they afford not themselves things needful to nourish and cherish their bodies. Solomon doth much tax such: of them he saith, that riches are Eccl. 2. 23. & 5. 11, 12, 13, 14. kept for the owners thereof to their hurt. Daily experience giveth evidence to the truth thereof: for, beside that such men make their riches t 1 Tim. 6. 9 to be snares, and u Mark. 10. 23, etc. hindrances, to keep them from eternal life; they make this present life to be very irksome, x Eccl. 2. 23. filling their heads full of much carking care, and keeping them from quiet rest. Many in this case are so besotted, Semper eget liquidis, semper abundat aquis. Ouid. in Jbin. as, though they have abundance, yet they will not in health afford themselves a good meal's meat, nor seemly apparel: nor in sickness, needful physic, no nor fire, and such like common things. Their case is worse than theirs who want: for others will pity and succour such as want, but who will pity and succour such? 2. Such as are too intentive upon their businesses, even the affairs 2. They who are too intentive on their calling. of their lawful callings (for in good things there may be excess) herein many Students, Preachers, Lawyers, Tradesmen, Farmers, Labourers, and others offend, when they afford not seasonable times of refreshing and resting to their bodies, but fast, watch, and toil too much in their calling. They who by such means disable themselves, do make themselves guilty of the neglect of so much good as they might have done, if they had nourished and cherished their bodies. Some are so eager on their business, that they think all the time misspent, which is spent in nourishing and cherishing their bodies; and thereupon wish, that their bodies needed no food, sleep, or other like means of refreshing. These thoughts and Unlawful to desire that our bodies needed no refreshing. desires are foolish and sinful in many respects, as 1. In manifesting a secret discontent and grudging against God's providence, who hath thus disposed our estate for the clearer manifestation of man's weakness, & God's care over him. 2. In taking away occasions of calling upon God, and giving praise unto him. For if we stood not in such need of God's providence, should we so oft pray unto him for his blessing: if by the good means which he affordeth unto us we felt not the sweetness and comfort of his providence, should we be so thankful to him? 3. In taking away the means of mutual love: for if by reason of our weakness we stood not in need of succour and help one from another, what trial would there be of our love? 3. Such as sever these two duties of nature (nourishing and 3. They who make excess in one needful thing, an hindrance to another. cherishing) and make them an hindrance one to another: some so nourish their bodies, as they cannot cherish them; that is, they spend so much in eating and drinking, as they have nothing to clothe themselves withal. Others so cherish them, as they cannot nourish them; that is, they so prank up themselves with brave apparel above their ability, as they have not competent food for themselves. These fall into two contrary extremes: into the excess in one thing: and into the defect in another. §. 67. Of contentment in that which is sufficient. As the Apostle by naming these two (nourish, cherish) showeth that both of them are needful, so by naming them only, and no more but them, he showeth that they two are sufficient: whence we learn, that Having food and raiment, we must be therewith content. Doct. The Apostle in these very words layeth down this doctrine in y 1 Tim. 6. 8. another place. The z Prou. 30. 8. prayer of Agur, and the tenor of the a Matth. 6. 11. fourth Petition prove as much. Quest. Is a man then strictly bound to care for no more than food to nourish, and apparel to cherish him? Answ. So this nourishing and cherishing be extended to that estate wherein God hath set us, to the charge which God hath given us, and to the calling which he hath appointed unto us, we ought to care for no more. Let us therefore take heed of that excess which ariseth from the corruption of nature, and content ourselves with that competency which nature requireth. requireth 68 Of Christ's forbearing to hate the Church. EPHES. 6. 29. Even as the Lord the Church. THis confirmation of the pattern of a man's self by a like pattern of the Lord, hath relation to both the parts of the manifestation of a man's love to himself: both to the negative, and so it showeth, that The Lord hateth not his Church. And to the affirmative, and so it showeth, that The Lord nourisheth and cherisheth his Church. That difference which is made betwixt Esau a type of the world (Esau have I hated) and jaakob a type of the Church Mal. 1. 2, 3. (jaakob have I loved) showeth that the Lord is far from hating his Church. The world, not the Church, is the object of God's hatred. Object. The b Deut. 1. 27. Church herself, and the c & 9 28. enemies thereof oft conceive by Christ's dealing with her, that he hateth her. Answ. It is the flesh abiding in them that are of the Church which maketh them so to conceive, not the spirit: and in the enemies of the Church the flesh altogether reigneth. But the things of God, and his mind and affection, nor can, nor may be judged by carnal eyes, eyes of flesh. The d Heb. 12. 6. Spirit of God accounteth such things evidences of Gods jove, which flesh judgeth to be tokens of hatred; namely, corrections. It is not, because there is no matter of hatred in the Church, Reason. that Christ hateth it not: for by nature all are of one and the same cursed stock, e Ephes. 2. 3. children of wrath: and after our sanctification is begun, the flesh abiding in us, we daily give much occasion of hatred if Christ should take that advantage against us which he might: but it is that near union which Christ hath made betwixt himself and the Church that keepeth him from hating her: he hath made her his Spouse, and he will not hate his Spouse: all the occasion of hatred that she giveth, he will either wipe away or cover. Admirable is the comfort which every true member of the 1. Use. Comfort. Catholic Church may reap from hence: for so long as the wrath and hatred of the Lord is turned from us, nothing can make us miserable: we may in this respect rejoice not only in prosperity, but also in all manner of affliction. No calamity can move Christ to hate his Church, but rather the more to pity it, as we do our bodies. Nay, though by sin he be provoked, and see it needful to correct his Church, yet in love, not in hatred, in mercy, not in wrath will he correct it. What now if all the world have us? Seeing Christ hateth 2. Use. In couragement. us not, we need not fear nor care. The subject which is sure of his King's favour, little regardeth the hatred of others. This therefore is to be thought of, both to comfort us under the cross, and to encourage us against the hatred of the world. That none may pervert this comfortable doctrine, let me add two caveats. 1. That men deceive not themselves with a naked name, thinking themselves to be of the Church, when they are only in it, f jer. 12. 8. such may Christ hate. 2. That being of the Church they wax not insolent, and too much provoke Christ to anger: for though he hate not such, yet in wisdom he may so severely correct them as if he hated them: and make them repent their folly and insolency again and again. §. 69. Of Christ's nourishing and cherishing his Church. 2. That The Lord nourisheth and cherisheth his Church, is evident by his continual providence over her in all ages. When first he created man, he g Gen. 1. 28, 29. provided before hand all things needful to nourish and cherish him. When he was moved to destroy the earth and all living things thereon, he had care of his Church, and provided an Ark to keep her out of Gen. 6. 14. 21. the waters, and stored up in the Ark all things needful for her. When he purposed to bring a famine on the world, he sent a man before hand to lay up provision for his Church. When Gen. 45. 7. Exo. 16. 15. and 17. 6. his Church was in a barren and dry wilderness, he gave them bread from heaven, water out of the rock, and kept their raiment from waxing old, and their feet from swelling. After this Deut. 8. 4. he brought his Church into a land flowing with milk and honey: and so long as it remained faithful he preserved it in that pleasant and plentiful land. Thus he dealt with the Church in her nonage: and thus also hath he dealt with her in her riper age under the Gospel, as experience of all ages may witness. Neither hath he only nourished and cherished her with temporal blessings, but also with all needful spiritual blessings: his word and Sacraments, his Spirit and the graces thereof hath he in all ages given her for that purpose: yea with his own flesh and blood hath he fed her, and with joh. 6. 55. his own righteousness hath he clothed her. Isa. 61. 10. Learn we of whom we receive all needful things, both 1. Use. spiritual and temporal, for soul and body, that accordingly Ascribe all to Christ. we may give him the praise of all. And let us not be like the ungrateful Israelites who m Ezek. 20. 11, 12. regarded not the means of spiritual Ose. 8. 12. nourishment, and n jer. 44. 17. Ose. 2. 5, 8. ascribed the means of their temporal nourishing and cherishing to their Idols. In this respect the Prophet maketh them o Isa. 1. 3. worse than the ox, and the ass, two of the most brutish beasts that be. Oh take we heed that the like be not upbraided to us. The Lord hath not sparingly, but most liberally and bountifully nourished and cherished us in this land, and that both with temporal and spiritual blessings, so as he may justly say, what could have been done Isa. 5. 4. more in my vineyard, that I have not done in it? Learn we also to depend on Christ for all things that we 2 Use. want: we need not fear penury: though we have not that Depend on Christ for all things. plenty which we could wish, yet we shall have sufficiency. Christ will not suffer his Church to famish for want of food, nor starve for want of clothing, whether temporal for body, or spiritual for soul. He that can and will perform it hath said, I will never leave thee nor forsake thee. Lazarus was not Heb. 13. 5. forsaken; witness the Angels that carried his soul into Abraham's Luk. 16. 22. bosom. If any of Christ's Church do perish for want of outward means, it is because Christ by that means will advance them to that place where they shall stand in need of nothing: so as he doth not forsake them. §. 70. Of the union betwixt Christ and the Saints. EPHES. 5. 30. For we are members of his body, of his flesh, and of his bones. THe reason of the forenamed love of Christ, and fruits Inference. thereof to his Church, is here laid down, as both the causal particle (FOR) and the inference of this verse upon the former do show. This reason is that near union which is betwixt Christ and his Church, set forth by a metaphor of the members of our body. Whereby he implieth, that though there were no other reason to move an husband to love his wife then the near union which is betwixt them (they being a Vers. 23. one body, b Vers. 31. one flesh, c Vers. 28. oneself) that were enough, for thereby only is Christ moved to love his Church. The mystery of our spiritual union with Christ is here laid down, and that as fully, and distinctly (though very succinctly) Summe, as in any place of Scripture. I will endeavour to open it as plainly as I can. We are] The Apostle here changeth both person and number: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Paul ranketh himself among the members of Christ. for before he spoke of the Church as of another in the third person, and of one in the singular number: but here he speaketh of the same in the first person including himself, and in the plural number, including all others like himself (elect of God, and Saints by calling) whereby he giveth us to understand what he meaneth by the Church, namely the company of Saints, to which, though he were a Preacher of the Gospel, an extraordinary Preacher, an Apostle, he associateth and joineth himself: noting thereby that he was made partaker of the same grace, and saved by the same means that others were. Well might he in this privilege not think much to rank himself, because it is the highest degree of honour that can be Obser. to be a member of the body of Christ: much more than to be a Preacher, a Prophet, an Apostle, or of any other eminent calling. The metaphor here used (members of his body) setteth Metaphors which set forth our union with Christ. forth the near union which is betwixt Christ and the Saints. Many other metaphors are used in Scripture for the same purpose, as a 1 Pet. 2. 4, 5, 6. foundation and edifice, b joh. 15. 5. vine and branches, c 2 Cor. 11. 2. husband and wife, with the like, which are all of them very fit, but none more proper and pertinent to the point then this of a body, the Head and members thereof. What nearer union can there be then betwixt the head and members of the same body? If the Apostle had here stayed, we might have thought that he had here meant no other thing than he meant d Eph. 1. 23. and 4. 16. and 5. 23. before, where he styled Christ an head, and the Church a body: but in that he addeth (Of his flesh and of his bones) he declareth yet a further mystery. In the general there is a difference betwixt this phrase ( e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. OF his body) and these (OF f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. his flesh; and OF his bones) the former is a note of the g Corporis. genitive case, the two latter are a h Ex. preposition: for distinction sake the two latter might have been translated, out of his flesh, out of his bones, or from his flesh, from his bones (for so a like phrase is translated i Eph. 4. 16. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. before, From whom) but seeing these particles out of, or from are ambiguous, the former translation may stand as the best, so as a difference be made in the sense though there be none in the words. The former (members of his body) declareth the union itself. The latter (of his flesh and of his bones) declareth the means How we are of Christ's flesh. of making that union. This latter hath relation to that which Adam said of Eve, This is now bone of my bones, and flesh of my flesh, (Gen. 2. 23.) which is manifest by the next verse which the Apostle taketh out of the same place. It implieth then, that as Eve was made a woman out of Adam's flesh and bones, so the Church is made a Church out of Christ's flesh and bones. 1. Quest. Was the very substance of the Saints, their flesh and bones taken out of Christ, as the substance of Eve was taken out of Adam? Answ. Not so, if the words be literally taken. For so may Christ rather be said to be of our flesh, and of our bones, because he took our nature, and that from a daughter of Adam: in which respect he is said to be f 2 Tim. 2. 8. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. of the seed of David, and g Rom. 9 5. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. of the jews, as concerning the flesh. Besides, the Apostle expressly saith (vers. 32.) that This is a great mystery. The mystery therefore must be searched out. For this end Christ must be considered as another Adam (and so the holy Ghost styleth him h 1 Cor. 15. 45, 47. The last Adam, The second man) that is, a stock, a root that giveth a being to branches sprouting out of him. 2. Quest. What being is that which we receive from Christ? What being we receive from Christ. Answ. Not our natural being (that we have of the parents of our flesh) but a supernatural, and spiritual being, which the Scripture termeth i Tit. 3. 5. a new birth, k Ephes. 4. 24. a new man, l 2 Cor. 5. 17. a new creature. This spiritual being is not in regard of the substance of our soul, or body, or of any of the powers or parts, faculties or members of them (for all these we have by lineal descent from Adam, and all these have all sorts of men, as well they who are not of the Church, as they who are of it) but in regard of the integrity, goodness, and divine qualities which are in them 2 Pet. 1. 4. Ephes. 4. 24. even that holiness and righteousness wherewith the Church is endued and adorned. As we are natural men we are of Adam, as we are spiritual men we are of Christ. 3. Quest. Why is mention made of flesh and bones in this Why we are said to be of Christ's flesh. Gen. 2. 23. spiritual being? Answ. 1. In allusion to the creation of Eve, that by comparing this with that, this might be the better conceived. 2. In regard of the Lords Supper, where the flesh of Christ is mystically set before us to be spiritual food unto us. That as before (vers. 26.) he showed the mystery of one Sacrament, Baptism; here he might show the mystery of the other Sacrament, The Lord's Supper. 3. In relation to Christ's humane nature, by virtue whereof we come to be united unto Christ. For the divine nature of Christ is infinite, incomprehensible, incommunicable, and Divinitas unigeniti facta est particeps mortalitatis nostrae, ut & nos participes eius immortalitatis essemus. Aug. Epist. 57 there is no manner of proportion betwixt it and us, so as we could not be united to it immediately. But Christ by taking his humane nature into the unity of his divine nature, made himself one with us, and us one with him: so as by his partaking of our mortality, we are made partakers of his immortality. 4. Quest. Are we then united only to his humane nature? Answ. No: we are united to his person, God-Man. For as We are united to Christ's person. the divine nature, in and by itself, is incommunicable; so the humane nature singly considered, in and by itself, is unprofitable. The Deity is the fountain of all life and grace: the flesh quickeneth not: but that spiritual life which originally and primarily floweth from the Deity, as from a fountain, is by the humanity of Christ, as by a conduit-pipe, conveyed into us. 5. Quest. How can we who are on earth, be united to his How Saints on earth are united to Christ in heaven. humane nature, which is contained in the highest heaven? Answ. This union being supernatural and spiritual, there needeth no local presence for the making of it. That eternal Spirit which is in Christ is conveyed into every of the Saints (as the soul of a man is into every member and part of his body) by virtue whereof they are all made one with Christ, and with one another: by one Spirit we are all baptised into one body, 1 Cor. 12. 12, 13. which body is Christ. This is to be noted against these two errors. The first is I. Error. this, We are united first to the divine nature of Christ which is every where, and by virtue thereof to his humane nature. Answ. 1. The Deity (as we showed) is immediately incommunicable: so as this cannot be. 2. Our union with Christ is spiritual, not physical or natural, so as this local presence needeth not. The second error is this, The humane nature of Christ hath all the divine properties in it, II. Error. so as it is every where present, and by reason thereof we are united unto Christ. Answ. This also is impossible and needless. The properties of a true body cannot possibly admit the incommunicable properties of the Deity: that implieth direct contradiction, which is, that finite should be infinite. Needless also this is, because the union we speak of, is (as we said) spiritual. 6. Quest. What kind of union is this spiritual union? Our union with Christ a true and real union. Answ. A true, real union of our persons (bodies and souls) with the person of Christ (God and man.) For as the holy Ghost did unite in the virgin's womb the divine and humane natures of Christ, and made them one person, by reason whereof Christ is of our flesh & of our bones: so the spirit uniteth that person of Christ with our persons, by reason whereof we are of his flesh, and of his bones. A great difference there is betwixt the kinds of these unions: for the union of Christ's two natures is hypostatical and essential, they make one person: but the union of Christ's person, and ours, is spiritual and mystical: they make one mystical body: yet is there no difference in the reality and truth of these unions: our union with Christ is never a whit the less real and true because it is mystical and spiritual: they who have the same spirit ar● as truly one, as those parts which have the same soul. The effects which proceed from this union do show the truth thereof: for that spirit which sanctified Christ in his mother's womb sanctifieth us also, that which quickened him quickeneth Rom. 8. 11. Eph. 2. 6. us, that which raised him from death, raiseth us, that which exalted him exalteth us. The many resemblances which the Scripture useth to set forth this union, do show the truth thereof: but most lively is it set forth by that resemblance which Christ maketh betwixt it and his union with his Father. I pray (saith he of all his Saints) That they may all joh. 17. 21, 22. be one, as thou Father art in me, and I in thee, that they also may be one in us: that they may be one, as we are one. This note of comparison (as) is not to be taken of the kind, but of the truth of these unions, our union with Christ is as true as Christ's union with his Father. So true is this union, as not only jesus himself, but all the Unusquisque Christianus non incongruè sustinet personam Christi. Aug. de Gen. l. 2. c. 24. vide eundem quaest. 69. Saints which are members of this body together with jesus the head thereof are called CHRIST, 1 Cor. 12. 12. Gal. 3. 16. This is to be noted against their conceit, who imagine this union to be only in imagination and conceit: or else only in consent of spirit, heart, and will: or at the most, in participation of spiritual graces. 7. Quest. What is the bond whereby this union is made: With what bonds we are united to Christ. 1 Joh. 4. 13. namely whereby Christ and the Saints are made one? Answ. There is a double bond, one on Christ's part, even the spirit of Christ (for hereby know we that we dwell in him, and he in us, because he hath given us of his spirit) another on the Saints part, even faith (for Christ dwelleth in our hearts by faith) Eph. 3. 17. The spirit is conveyed into us when we are dead in sins, wholly flesh, but being in us, it breedeth this blessed instrument of faith whereby we lay hold on Christ, and grow into him as the science into the stock. Thus Christ laying hold on us by his spirit, and we on him by faith, we come to be incorporated into him, and made one body, as the science and stock one tree. 8. Quest. To what end hath Christ thus truly and nearly Why Christ made the Saints one with himself. united us unto himself? Answ. Not for any benefit unto himself: but merely for the honour and good of the Church. By this union the honour of Christ is communicated to the Church, as the honour of an husband to his wife, and of an head to the body. Great also is the benefit which the Church reapeth thereby: for by this means is Christ made more fit to do good to the Church, as an head to the body, and the Church is made more capable of receiving good from Christ, as a body from the head, being knit to it by the soul, and by veins, sinews, nerves, arteries, and other like ligaments. Thus having as plainly as I can by questions and answers laid open this great mystery, I will further note out some of those excellent privileges which by virtue thereof appertain to the Saints, and also some of the principal duties which in regard thereof the Saints are bound unto. §. 71. Of the privileges appertaining to the Saints even in this life by reason of their union with Christ. The privileges of the Saints which arise from their union with Christ respect this life, the time of death, and the life to come. In this life these, 1. A most glorious condition, which is to be a part of Christ, a 1. Saints are members of a glorious body. member of his body. All the glory of Adam in Paradise, or of the Angels in heaven is not comparable to this. In this respect the Saints are said to be crowned with glory and honour, and to have all things put under their feet. Compare Psal. 8. 4, 5. etc. with Heb. 2. 6, 7. etc. and ye shall find the Apostle apply that to Christ, which the Prophet spoke indefinitely of man. Now those two places cannot be better reconciled, then by Coelo, & Angelis, & omni creatura honorabilior est ecclesia. Chrys. de Pentecost. serm. 26. this union of Christ and Saints: for seeing both make one body, which is Christ, that which is spoken of the body may be applied to the head, and that which is spoken of the head may be applied to the body: for the same honour appertaineth to both. In which respect the Church is more honourable than Heaven, Angels, and every other creature. 2. The attendance of good Angels, who are sent forth to minister 2. Saints attended by Angels. for them who shall be heirs of salvation, because those heirs are of the body of Christ, who is their Lord. These are those horses, and charets of fire which were round about Elisha: Heb. 1. 14. 2 King. 6. 17. which are also round about every of God's Saints in all their distresses, though we see them no more than the servant of the man of God saw them, till the Lord opened his eyes. That charge which is given to the Angels over the Son of God to keep him in all his ways, and to bear him in their hands lest Psal. 91. 11, 12. he dash his foot against a stone, hath relation to this body which is Christ. 3. An honour to make Christ himself perfect: for as the several 3. Saints make Christ perfect. members make a natural body perfect, so the several Saints, this body which is Christ. In this respect the Church is said to be the fullness of him that filleth all in all. Eph. 1. 23. Christ filleth all things, and yet the Church maketh him full: which is to be understood of that voluntary condition whereunto Christ subjected himself, to be the head of a body: so as without the parts of the body he is imperfect, as a natural body is maimed and imperfect if it want but the least member thereof. How can we now think but that he will preserve and keep safe all his Saints? Will he restore to us all the parts of our natural body at the general resurrection, and will he lose any of the parts of his own mystical body? 4. A kind of possession of heaven while we are on earth: for 4. Saints assured of salvation: and how. that which the head hath a possession of, the body and several members have also a possession of. In this respect it is said, he hath raised us up together, and made us sit together in Eph. 2. 6. heavenly places. And, he that believeth on him hath everlasting joh. 5. 24. life: is passed from death unto life. And, he that hath the Son, 1 joh. 5. 12. hath life. This is somewhat more than hope: and serveth exceedingly to strengthen our hope, and give us assurance of that heavenly inheritance. They know not the power of God, nor the virtue of this union, who deny that the Saints have assurance of salvation. For (to follow this metaphor a little) suppose a man were cast into a river, and his head able to lift and keep itself above water, would we not say, that man is safe enough, he is above water. This is the case of this mystical body: it being cast into the sea of this world, Christ the head thereof hath lift, and keeps himself aloft even in heaven. Is there now any fear, any possibility of the drowning of this body, or of any member thereof? If any should be drowned, then either Christ must be drowned, or else that member pulled from Christ; both which are impossible. Thus then by virtue of this union we see how on Christ's safety, ours dependeth: if he be safe, so are we: if we perish, so must he. In this respect ye may be secure O flesh and blood: ye have Securi estote caro & sanguis: usurpastis coelum in Christo: negent & in coelo Christum qui vobis coelum negant. Tertul. de Resur. got heaven in Christ: they who deny heaven to you, may also deny Christ to be in heaven. Learn here how to conceive of the resurrection, ascension and safety of Christ, even as of the resurrection, ascension and safety of an head, in and with whom his body and all his members are raised, exalted, and preserved. 5. A most happy kind of regiment under which the Saints are: even such an one as the members of an head are under. An head ruleth the body not as a cruel lord and tyrant, rigorously, 5. Difference betwixt in humanely, basely, and slavishly, but meekly, gently, Christ governing the Saints and the world. with great compassion, and fellow-feeling. Even so doth Christ, his Church, binding up that which is broken, healing that which is maimed, directing that which wandreth, and quickening that which is dull; which privilege is so much the greater because it is proper to the Church. Though he have a golden sceptre of grace and favour to hold out to his Church (as Ahash-verosh held out his to Esther) yet he hath also Est. 5. 2. a rod of iron to break the men of this world, and to dash them Psal. 2. 9 in pieces like a potter's vessel. Though he be gone to prepare a place for his Saints, that where he is they may be also, yet will joh. 14 3. he make his enemies his footstool. Psal. 110. 1. 6. An assurance of sufficient supply of all needful things which 6. Assurance of all needful supply. the Saints want, and of safe protection from all things hurtful. For by reason of this union, Christ our head hath a sense of our want and of our smart. On this ground he said to them which fed and visited his members, Ye fed me, ye visited me: and again, Mat. 25. 35. Act. 9 4. to Saul that persecuted his members, Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me? Object. How is it then, that the Saints want many things, Why Christ suffereth the Saints to want, and suffer. and oft suffer much smart, and hurt? Answ. Christ in his wisdom seeth it behooveful that they should want, and feel smart (and that we are to be persuaded of) or else he would not suffer them to want or feel that which they do. Wherefore in all need, in every distress and danger, let us lift up our head to this our head. 7. A right to all that Adam lost. For Christ is the heir of all, (the 7. Saints have a right to what Adam lost. earth is the Lords, and the fullness thereof) yea as mediator and head of the Church is he heir of all: his body therefore hath a right to all. On this ground the Apostle saith, All things are Heb. 1. 2. yours. So as the Saints & only the Saints can with good conscience Psal. 24 1. use the things of this world. They who are not of this 1 Cor. 3. 21. body (what right and title soever they have before men) are but usurpers of the things they enjoy and use. They are like to bankrupts, who being not worth one penny, deceitfully borrow of others, and therewith keep a great table, deck and furnish their houses very sumptuously, put themselves, wives and children, into brave apparel, are frolic and riotous: what is like to be the end of such? 8. A right to more than Adam ever had: namely, to Christ 8. Saints have a right to Christ. See §. 28 himself, and to all that appertaineth unto him: as to the purity of his nature, to the perfection of his obedience, the merit of his blood, the power of his death, the virtue of his resurrection, the efficacy of his ascension, all is ours: even as the understanding, wit, judgement, sight, hearing, and all that is in the head, is the bodies: if the Church itself were of itself as pure in nature, as perfect in righteousness, as powerful over death, and devil, and grave, and hell, as able to rise from death, and to ascend into heaven, as Christ, it could receive no greater benefit thereby, than it doth by them in the person of Christ: so truly and properly is Christ himself, and all things appertaining to him, the Churches. What can more be said? what can more be desired? O blessed union! blessed are they that have a part therein! Quest. How is it then that the Church is so basely and miserably Why the Church basely accounted of. 1 joh. 3. 1. respected in the world? Answ. The world knoweth us not, because it knoweth not Christ. It knoweth not Christ the head of this body: it knoweth not the body which is Christ. Let not us who know both head and body, the near union which is betwixt them, and the privileges which follow thereupon, be daunted, neither with the scoffs or scorns of the world, nor with our own outward weaknesses, wants, and calamities. What would he that hath Christ, have more? §. 72. Of the privilege of our union with Christ in the time of death. The privilege which the Saints receive by their union with Christ in the time of death (even all that time that passeth from the departure of the Saints out of this world unto the general Resurrection) is admirable: for when body and soul are severed one from another, neither soul nor body are separated from Christ, but both remain united to him: even as, when Christ's body and soul were by death severed one from another, neither his soul, nor his body were separated from the Deity, but both remained united thereunto. This inviolable bond that holdeth the Saints, (yea, even their very bodies as well as their souls) united to Christ in death, is the benefit of a spiritual union. If our union with Christ were corporeal, it could not be so. Ob. Is it possible that the body which is dead should remain Corruption of the body no hindrance to our union with Christ. united to Christ, when as it receiveth no virtue from him? Answ. 1. If a member of a natural body may do so, why not a member of the mystical body? That a member of a natural body may do so, is evident by those who have an hand, arm, foot, leg, or any other member taken, with a dead palsy: they are sometimes so taken, as those parts receive no manner of sense, or any vigour, or life from head or heart at all: and yet remain true members of that body. 2. The very dead bodies consumed with worms or otherwise, do receive a great present benefit from their union with Christ: for by virtue thereof there is a substance preserved, and they are kept from destruction: there is nothing destroyed in the Saints by death, but that which if it were not destroyed, would make them most miserable, namely sin: that is utterly, totally, finally destroyed in them, and all the concomitances thereof, which are all manner of infirmities: but the rotting of the body, is but as the rotting of corn in the earth, 1 Cor. 15. 36. that it may arise a more glorious body. The metaphor of sleep, 1 Thes 4. 13. attributed to the Saints when they die, sheweth that their bodies are not utterly destroyed. Object. The bodies of all men, even of those that are not Difference betwixt the preservation of the Saints bodies and others in the grave. of this union, are preserved from utter destruction. This therefore is no benefit of our union with Christ. Answ. Though in the general thing itself, which is a preservation of the substance of the body, the same thing befalleth the Saints and the wicked: yet the means whereby both are preserved, and the end why they are preserved is far different. 1. The Saints are preserved by a secret influence proceeding 1 Thes. 4. 14, 16. from Christ, as an head: in which respect they are said to sleep in jesus, and to be dead in Christ. But the wicked are reserved by an Almighty power of Christ, as a terrible Lord and severe judge. 2. The bodies of the Saints are preserved to enjoy eternal glory together with their souls: but the bodies of the wicked are reserved to be tormented in hell. In regard of these differences, the grave is as a bed to the Saints, Isa. 57 2. for them quietly to sleep therein free from all disturbance till the day of resurrection: but it is a prison to the wicked to hold them fast against the great Day of Assize, that at Doom's day they may be brought to appear at the bar of God's judgement seat, and there receive the sentence of condemnation. §. 73. Of the privilege of our union with Christ after death. The privilege which the Saints by virtue of their union with Christ receive after death, far surpasseth all before. It may be drawn to two heads. 1. Their Resurrection. 2. Their glory in heaven. That which was before said of the difference betwixt the preservation of the bodies of the Saints and wicked in death, may be applied to the difference of their Resurrection. Resurrection simply in itself is not the privilege of the Saints, but Resurrection of life: to the wicked appertaineth the joh. 5. 29. Resurrection of condemnation. The benefit of Resurrection ariseth from the glory which followeth thereupon in heaven. That glory hath the Apostle excellently set forth * §. 49, 50. etc. before vers. 27. §. 74. Of the duties which are required of the Saints by virtue of their union with Christ. The mystery of our union with Christ, as it is a matter of great comfort, and encouragement (which ariseth from the forenamed privileges) so also is it a matter of direction and instigation unto us for the performing of sundry duties, whereof they who desire assurance of the forenamed privileges, and comfort by them, must be careful and conscionable. Some of the most principal of those duties are these. 1. Confidence in Christ. Christ being our head, so mighty, Heb. 3. 6. so wise, so tender, every way so sufficient an head as he is, we should highly dishonour him, if we should not wholly and only repose ourselves upon him for every good thing, and against every evil. 2. Subjection answerable to his manner of governing us. Mat. 6. 10. Christus habet sanctos voluntate, peccatores verò necessitate sibi subiectos. The world is subject to Christ perforce, as he is an absolute and Almighty Lord: but he governing us as an head, we must be subject unto him as members, willingly, and readily. What member will rise up, and rebel against the head? yea, what member is not as ready to obey, as the head to command? Hier. in Eph. 1. 3. A cleansing of ourselves from all filthiness of flesh and 2 Cor. 7. 1. spirit. Shall we defile the members of Christ? The sins of the 1 Cor. 6. 15. Saints are in this respect the more heinous because that body, even Christ, whereof they are members, is defiled thereby. Wherefore in regard of Christ the head, of other Saints their fellow members, and of themselves, must all that profess themselves to be of this body be watchful over themselves, and cleanse themselves from all filthiness. Otherwise they give just occasion to think that they are no members of this body. If a Lion's foot, or Bear's paw were held out, and said to be the member of a man, would any believe it? Can we then think that worldlings, drunkards, profane, riotous, unclean persons, and such like limbs of the Devil, are members of Christ? 4. A conformity unto the image of Christ in true holiness Ephes. 4. 24. and righteousness. It is not therefore sufficient for the members of Christ to abstain from polluting themselves, for they are created in Christ jesus unto good works. He that abideth in Ephes. 210. me (saith Christ) and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit. joh. 15. 5. 5. Heavenly affections. If ye be risen with Christ, seek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth on the right hand of Col. 3. 1, 2. God. Set your affections on things above, and not on things on the earth. Where our head is, there also ought our heart to be. Earthly affections come not from that head which is in heaven: nor from that Spirit which proceedeth from him. They Rom. 8. 5. who are after the spirit mind the things of the spirit. 6. Courage against death: seeing that in death we are Christ's, what cause have we to fear death? Be not afraid of Luke 12. 4. them that kill the body, and after that, have no more that they can do. The ancient worthies would not accept deliverance, that Heb. 11. 35. they might obtain a better resurrection. Hitherto of the union itself. The means of effecting it, remain to be handled. § 75. Of their regeneration who are members of Christ. EPHES. 5. 30. — Of his flesh, and of his bones. This clause declareth the means whereby we come to be members of Christ, namely by receiving a new being from Christ, which is to be, not of the flesh, and of the bones of Adam, but of the flesh and of the bones of Christ, which being spiritually taken, as hath been expounded * §. 70. before, showeth that They who are true members of Christ body, are truly regenerate. Doct. If any be in Christ he is a new creature: these words are so 2 Cor. 5. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. laid down by the Apostle, as they serve both for a demonstration, and an exhortation (he is, or let him be a new creature) neither is expressed, but either, or both may be understood. As many of you as have been baptised into Christ (that is, made Gal. 3. 27. members of this body) have put on Christ, (that is, have been borne again) the first branch noteth out our incorporation into Christ, the latter our regeneration. This second man, and last Adam Christ jesus is a quickening Reason. spirit: he diffuseth life and grace into all his members: if his 1 Cor. 15. 45. Rom. 8. 11. spirit be in us, it will quicken our mortal bodies. If the head of our natural bodies convey sense into all our members: if the root of a tree diffuse sap into all the branches: shall not Christ much more give life to all his members? This then is a matter of trial, whereby we may prove whether Use. indeed we are of this body or no, and so have a true right Trial whether we be members of Christ. to the forenamed privileges. Many boast of this honour that they are members of Christ's body, and yet are not of his flesh and of his bones: they have no other being, than what they received from their parents. These vain professors are like wooden legs, or arms on a man, which may be covered over with hose and sleeves for a time, but shall not be raised at the resurrection with the other parts of the man's body: so neither shall those professors be raised to glory with Christ, though they may be covered over with the hose and sleeves of profession, and thereby seem to be members. §. 76. Of the author of our regeneration Christ. This relative particle (HIS) twice repeated (of HIS flesh, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and of HIS bones) showeth that Regeneration is of Christ. * joh. 5. 21. The Son quickeneth whom he will. Doctr. Object. This work is attributed in Scripture to the a 1 Pet. 1. 3. Father, to the b joh. 3. 5. Spirit, to the c jam. 1. 18. word, and to the d 1 Cor. 4. 15. Ministers of the word. Answ. Christ may very well stand with all these. The three persons in Trinity are all one: One in nature and essence: Philem. vers. 10. The work of the three persons in our regeneration. One in will and consent: One in virtue and power: what the one doth the other doth also. Yet because there is a difference in their manner of working, this work (as other works) is distinctly attributed to each of them. The Father is (as I may so speak) the beginner of this work. His will it was that his Son should be the head of a body, and that there should members be made fit for that head, and have a new being (of his own will begat he us) for jam. 1. 18. this end he sent his Son into the world to be made flesh. The Son put in execution the will of his Father: he took flesh upon him, that we might be of his flesh. Thus saith Christ of himself, I came down from heaven to do the will of him that Joh. 6. 38, 39 sent me; And this is the Father's will which hath sent me, that of all which he hath given me I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day. The Spirit applieth unto us the virtue and efficacy of the flesh of Christ, and so finisherh this blessed work. It is the Spirit that quickeneth: the flesh profiteth nothing, joh. 6. 63. namely, of itself without the Spirit. Thus we see that the applying of this work of regeneration unto Christ, excludeth not the work of the Father, or of the Holy Ghost therein, but excludeth the work of man: so as it is not of ourselves, nor of our parents, nor of any other man: for we are borne not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God: in which respect our new birth joh. 1. 13. is said to be * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. from above. Object. How is it then attributed to the word, and to the joh. 3. 3. ministry of man? How regeneration is attributed to the word, and to Ministers thereof. Answ. As unto instruments which the Lord is pleased to use: Of the word it is said, God hath begotten us with the word: of himself a Minister thus saith the Apostle, In Christ jesus I have begotten you: so as God and Christ are joined jam. 1. 18. with these instruments, or else they are no whit powerful and 1 Cor. 4. 15. effectual for so great a work: for neither is he that planteth any 1 Cor. 3. 7. thing, nor he that watreth: but God that giveth the increase. The work of regeneration is a new creation, a divine Reason. work, above humane strain. It must therefore be wrought by the Lord, or it cannot be wrought at all. This is to be noted both of those that have not yet assurance Use. of this blessed work wrought in them: and also of those who have assurance thereof. The former may here learn whither to have recourse for it: namely, to him who came down from heaven for that purpose, and who saith, Him that cometh unto me I will in no wise joh. 6. 37. cast out. In all the means that we use, let us look up unto him, and seek a blessing of him. The latter must with the tenth leper return back unto Luke 17. 16. Christ, and glorify God. Whatsoever the means were, or whosoever the Minister was, the praise and glory of all must be given to him. §. 77. Of the matter of our regeneration, Christ. The preposition (OF) twice set down (OF his flesh, and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. OF his bones) being a proper note of the material cause, showeth that Christ is not only the author, but the matter also of our new birth. The new spiritual being which the Saints have, cometh out of him. a Col. 2. 19 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. From him all the body having nourishment increaseth with the increase of God. In this respect we are said to be b Ephes. 1. 3. blessed with all spiritual blessings in Christ. The metaphor of a c Joh 15. 5. vine, which Christ taketh unto himself, proveth also as much: so do these phrases, d joh. 6. 55. My flesh is meat indeed, my blood is drink indeed. This Christ cometh to be by his incarnation. God in himself is as a bottomless and a closed fountain: from him Reason. immediately we can receive nothing. But Christ made flesh is e Zach. 13. 1. a fountain opened: f Col. 1. 19 In him all fullness dwelleth. g joh. 1. 16. And of him have all we received, even grace for grace. Behold here the benefit of Christ's incarnation: by his taking 1 Use: part of our mortal flesh, are we made partakers of his spiritual flesh, namely, of that spiritual life and grace which cometh from him, who was made flesh, to convey the same into us. To strengthen our faith the more firmly herein, the Lord hath instituted the holy Communion of his body and blood. With what conscience, reverence, and confidence, ought this blessed Sacrament to be celebrated? By this Doctrine we may further learn how to seek every 2. Use. thing at God's hands which we desire to obtain, and how to offer that sacrifice of praise unto God, which we would have joh. 16. 23. to be accepted; namely in and through jesus Christ, by whom Heb. 13. 15. only we have all that communion which we have with God. Col. 3. 17. Well therefore doth the Church conclude all her forms of Prayers and Praises with this, or such a like clause, through jesus Christ our Lord. §. 78. Of the excellency of Regeneration. The particular matter of our regeneration (the flesh and bones of Christ) here expressed, showeth that Regeneration is a most excellent work. The excellency hereof Doctr. will the better appear, if we compare it with the great and glorious work of our creation, and show how far it surpasseth it: wherein I will hold close to this metaphor, and touch Difference betwixt regeneration and creation. no other differences than it doth point out unto us. 1. In our creation Christ was only a worker: but he is the very matter of our Regeneration, we are of his flesh. 2. The relation that then was betwixt Christ and man, was Creator, but here Head, We are members of his body. Creature, Body, The bond is now much nearer. 3. The being which then we had, was from Adam: But the being which now we have is from Christ, of HIS flesh. 4. That being was but natural. This is spiritual: for that joh. 3. 6. which is borne of the Spirit, is Spirit. 5. Then our being was different from Christ's: but now it is the very same with Christ's, Of his flesh. 6. Then might man clean fall from that estate wherein he was created (as he did) and yet Christ remain as he was. Now it cannot be so. For if any of the Saints now fall away, either Christ must fall with them, or they must be pulled from Christ, and so Christ remain a maimed body. Behold the riches of God's mercy. One might think it The riches of God's mercy. sufficient, and more than man could ever have been thankful enough for, that God at first created man after his own image in a most happy estate. From which when we wittingly and wilfully fell, God might justly have left us, as he did the evil Angels. But he hath not only restored us again to that former estate, but advanced us to a far more excellent and glorious estate: wherein his goodness appeareth to be as his greatness, infinite, incomprehensible. Who can sufficiently set it forth? For as the heaven is high above the earth, so great Psal. 103. 11. is his mercy toward them that fear him. §. 79. Of the ancient Law of marriage. EPHES. 5. 31. For this cause shall a man leave his father and mother, and shall be joined unto his wife: and they two shall be one flesh. THe same points which were before laid down, concerning the near union of man and wife, and of Christ and the Church, are here further confirmed by the ancient law of marriage: which the Apostle doth the rather mention, because it followeth upon that text, whereunto he alluded in the former verse. For when Moses had alleged these words of Adam concerning Eve, This is bone of my bones, and flesh of my flesh, he Gen. 2. 23, 24. addeth this law, Therefore shall a man leave his father, etc. In this place these words have both a literal and a mystical sense. A literal of man and wife. A mystical of Christ and the Church. The main thing which the Apostle aimeth at, is to Inference. show how nearly man and wife are linked together: that thereby they may the rathet be moved to perform those mutual and several duties which they owe each to other. But because he propounded to husbands and wives the examples of Christ and the Church, as patterns and motives to them, to do their duty, he applieth that which was first spoken of man and wife, unto Christ and his Church, to show that there being so fit a resemblance betwixt these two couples, the pattern propounded is the more pertinent to the purpose, and the reason enforced from thence the more forcible. Because the opening of the literal sense will give great light to the mystery, I will first handle this text according to the meaning of the letter. The first clause (for this cause) implieth a necessary connexion 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. with that which went before. The near union of man and wife, as well as of Christ and his Church, was before noted. A wife was said to be as the b Vers. 28. Gen. 2. 23. body of a man, yea as b Vers. 28. Gen. 2. 23. himself. Adam called her his flesh and bones. Hereupon both Moses and Paul infer, Therefore, or, For this cause shall a man leave father. Because man and wife are so near by God's institution, they must also be most dear each to other in their mutual affection. The Man (meaning an husband) is here in particular mentioned, Meaning of the words. because at the first making of this Law the woman was brought to him to see how he would like her: and having cast his affection on her, he was to be bound hereby to continue that good liking towards her: as also because of the preeminency which man hath above his wife. Yet is not the man only tied hereby, but the wife also: the nature and rule of relation requireth as much: if a man must inseparably cleave to his wife, the wife must answerably cleave to her husband. These words (shall leave father and mother) are neither generally to be taken of all duties, as if no duty were to be performed to parents by children after they are married: nor simply, as if indeed parents were utterly to be forsaken: but they are meant, 1. Of that daily service which children under their parent's government perform unto them, seeking to please them in all things. When children are married, than their daily attendance must be upon their wives, or husbands, taking care how 1 Cor. 7. 33, 34. to please them. 2. Of erecting a new family: for which end their parent's house must be left, and the husband and wife must dwell each with other. 3. Of the difference to be put betwixt parents, and wife or husband. So as if by any inevitable occasion it should so fall out, that a man must leave his parent, or his wife (as in case parent and wife were both giving up the Ghost, and in places so far remote, as the husband could not possibly be with both, yet both instantly desired his company) by this Law he must leave his parent, and cleave to his wife. Hereby than the bond of marriage is declared to be the most inviolable bond that can be. For all men know, that the bond betwixt parent and child is a firm and inviolable bond: but the bond betwixt husband and wife is more firm and inviolable. To set forth the firmness of the marriage bond he addeth this emphatical phrase, shall be joined, (or as the word properly, cording to the natural notation thereof signifieth, shall be glued) 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Glue. to his wife. Things well glued together are as fast, firm, and close as if they were one entire piece. Yea we observe by experience that a table will oft times cleave in the whole wood, before it will part asunder where it is glued: so as an husband ought to be as firm to his wife as to himself: and she to him. Fitly doth this agree with that which followeth (they two shall be one flesh) Our English cannot well express the Greek 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. in good sense word for word (which is thus, they two shall beinto, or in one flesh) the meaning is, They which were two before marriage, by the bond of marriage are brought into one flesh, to be even as one flesh: as nearly united, as the parts of the same body, and the same flesh. This unity is not in regard of carnal copulation (for if they be married they are one flesh, Matrimonium non facit coitus, sed voluntas. Chrysost. in Mat. hom. 32. though they never know one another) nor in regard of procreation, because one child cometh from them both (for though they never have child, yet are they one flesh) but in regard of God's institution, who hath set it down for a law, and as another nature, that man and wife should be so near one to another. Their consent in marriage (by virtue of God's institution) maketh them to be one flesh. Well doth our English note the emphasis of the original in this particle THEY (they two) which showeth that the bond 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. of marriage knitteth only two together: one man, and one woman, and no more. This Law setteth forth the Union betwixt man and wife. Sum. Therein three things are noted concerning the state of marriage. 1. The praeeminencie of it (a man shall leave father and mother.) 2. The firmness of it (and be joined to his wife.) 3. The nearness of it (they two shall be one flesh.) §. 80. Of preferring husband or wife before parents. The first point showeth, that A wife, or an husband must be preferred before parents. The Doct. examples of b Gen. 31. 14. Leah and Rachel, yea and of c 1 Sam. 19 11 Micol, are commendable in this respect. 1. The bond of marriage is more ancient, more firm, more Reason. near. There was husband and wife before there was parent and child: and there is a time when parents & children may depart one from another, and that while both live: but no time, wherein man and wife may part asunder till death part them. And children though they come from the flesh of their parents, yet are made two (so as of one are two) but husbands and wives though they were two before, yet are made one (so as of two is one.) What wrong then do such parents unto their children, as Use. keep them, even after they are married, so straight under subjection, Parents may not keep their children being married too strait. as they cannot freely perform such duty as they ought to their husband, or their wife? This is more than a parents authority reacheth unto. Yet many think that their children owe as much service to them after they are married as before: which is directly against this law. Greater is the wrong, and more sinful is the practice of Nor keep them from husband or wife. such as keep their children from their husbands, or from their wives. The match (say they) falleth out much worse than we looked for. But this should have been looked to more carefully before hand. After marriage it is too late to seek such a redress. On the other side, there be many children who so respect Children may not prefer their parents before husband or wife. Apud Romanos sponsa obtecta flammeo capite quum extulisset pedem è paternis aedibus, vertebatur in gyrum, itaque duceb●tur in domumsponsi, nes●iret redeundi viam ad aedes parentum. Erasm. their parents, as they neglect their husband or their wife. Some husbands will bestow what they can on their parents, and keep their wives very bare, suffering them to want necessaries; not caring how they vex and grieve them so they please their parents. Some wives also will privily purloin from their husbands to bestow on their parents. Others can never tarry out of their parents houses, but as oft as they can, go thither. The ancient Romans, to show how unmeet this was, had a custom to cover the bride's face with a yellow veil, and so soon as she was out of her father's house to turn her about and about, and so to carry her to the house of her husband, that she might not know the way to her father's house again. All those pretences of love to parents are more preposterous than pious: and natural affection beareth more sway in such, then true religion. Their pretence of piety to parents is no rust excuse for that injury they do to husband and wife. §. 81. Of the firmness of the matrimonial bond. The second point concerning the firmness of the marriage knot in these words (shall be joined to his wife) affordeth two doctrines. 1. Man and wife must associate themselves together by continual See Treat. 2. part. 2. §. 14. cohabitation: for this end they leave their parent's family, and erect a new family. 2. Man and wife are joined together by an inviolable bond. It See Treat. 2. part. 2 §. 2. must never be cut asunder till death cut it. Body and soul must be severed one from another before husband and wife. Be careful therefore to preserve this indissoluble knot: and so live together, as with comfort you may live together, because you may not part. §. 82. Of two only to be joined together in marriage. The third point concerning the nearness of man and wife, in these words (they two shall be one flesh) affordeth two other doctrines. 1. Marriage can be but betwixt two, one man, and one woman: for it is impossible that more than two should so nearly, and firmly be joined together, as man and wife are. Every word almost in this law proveth this doctrine. For it saith a man, not men: to a wife, not to wives: to his wife, not to another's wife: two, not more than two: they two, not any two: one flesh, not many flesh's. Object. This particle (two) is not in the law as Moses recordeth Gen. 2. 24. it. Answ. It is there necessarily implied, for at that time there were but two in the world: God then speaking of them, meaneth but two. The same spirit that guided Moses, guided also the b Mat. 19 5. Evangelists, and the c 1 Cor. 6. 16. Apostles: so as by their inserting of this particle (two) it is certain that it was intended by Moses: as the particle (only) which Christ putteth into this text, d Deut. 6. 13. Mat. 4. 10. him only shalt thou serve. Quest. Why did God at first make but one man, and one woman? Answ. The e Mal. 2. 15. Prophet answereth, that he might seek a godly seed. If therefore there be more than two, it is an adulterous seed which proceedeth from thence. §. 83. Of Polygamy and Bigamy. Can Polygamy (the having of many wives) or Bigamy (the having of two wives at once) have any good warrant against such an express law? Are not both of them against the first institution of marriage, so as we may say, g Mat. 19 8. from the beginning it was not so? Yea also and against h Deut. 17. 17. Leu. 18. 18. other particular laws? i Gen. 4. 19 Magis pertinere ad nuptiarum bonum, non unum & multas, sed unum & unam, satis indicat ipsa prima divinitus facta coniugum copula, etc. Aug. de Nupt. & concup. l. 1. c. 9 Gen. 2. 18. Gen. 16. 5. & 21. 11. Lamech one of cain's cursed stock was the first that we read of to have presumed against that ancient law. Object. Afterwards many patriarchs, and other Saints took that liberty unto themselves. Answ. It was their sin, and a great blemish in them. The common error of the time, & their unsatiable desire of increase made them fall into it. Many inconveniences followed thereupon: neither can it be thought but that much mischief must needs follow upon having more wives than one: for whereas God at first made a wife to be as an help unto man, two, or more wives cannot but be a great grief and vexation unto him by reason of that emulation that is betwixt them. Through Hagars' means was Sarah stirred against Abraham, and Abraham grieved at Sarahs' words. Though Leah and Rachel were sisters, yet great were their emulations: the like whereof is noted of Peninnah and many others. Considering the heinousness of this sin, our laws Stat. 1. jacob. 11. have justly made it felony for a man to have more wives than one, or a woman more husbands. §. 84. Of the near conjunction of man and wife together. 2. The nearest of all other are husband and wife one to another. Doctr. Every clause in the forenamed law proveth as much. 1. Parents must be left for wife: who nearer than parent and child? if man and wife be nearer than the nearest, than they are the nearest of all. 2. A man is glued to his wife. This metaphor setteth forth the nearness of a thing as well as the firmness of it: for things glued together are as one entire thing. 3. Man and wife are one flesh: many of one are made two, but no two so nearly and truly made one as man and wife. As God hath limited a propinquity, and unity of things, so Reason. are they to be accounted: but God hath thus nearly knit man and wife together, and made them one flesh. Those whom Mat. 19 6. GOD hath joined together, saith Christ of man and wife: in which respect matrimonial conjunction is called the covenant Pro. 2. 17. of God: so as this covenant cannot be released by any, no not by the mutual consent of man and wife (Those whom GOD hath joined together, let no man put asunder) yet may many other covenants made betwixt party and party, be released and disannulled by mutual consent of both parties. 1. This showeth that the transgressions of man and wife Uses. one against another are of all the most heinous, more than of 1. Mutual transgressions of man and wife most heinous. friend, fellow, brother, child, parent or any other. Who would not cry fie upon that child that hates his parent, or fie upon that parent that hates his child? The heathen & savages would not think them worthy of humane society. What then may be thought of the man that hateth his wife, or the wife that hateth her husband? Apply this to all other transgressions: and well note how the Lord is a witness thereof. Mal. 2. 14. 2. This also showeth how monstrous a thing it is to sow 2. Monstrous to make debate betwixt man and wife. any seeds of discord, and stir debate betwixt man and wife. The devil's instruments they are therein, and a diabolical spirit is in them. For Satan most laboureth to unloose those knots which the Lord knitteth most firmly. Children of several ventures, and several friends of each party, are much faulty herein. Cursed be they all before the Lord. 3. 1 Sam. 26. 19 This near conjunction betwixt man and wife is a great 3. All duties betwixt man and wife to be cheerfully performed. Isa. 58. 7. motive to stir them both up, cheerfully to perform all the duties which God requireth of either of them. For thereby they do duty, and show kindness to their own flesh. No man may hide himself from his own flesh at large: that is, no man may neglect any duty of mercy, or justice to his neighbour who is of the same stock that he is: shall then an husband or wife hide themselves from one another who in the nearest respect that possibly can be are one flesh? not because they come from one flesh, but because they come * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. into one flesh. Hitherto of the literal sense of this verse. The mystical followeth. §. 85. Of the matrimonial conjunction of Christ and the Church. The forenamed ancient marriage law is here applied mystically Quod per historiam impletum est in Adam, per prophetiam significat Christum qui reliquit patrem, etc. Aug. de Gen. lib. 2. c. 24. to Christ and the Church, as is evident by the next verse, where the Apostle having reference to this verse saith, This is a great mystery. There is then a mystery contained in it. But of what, or of whom is that mystery? The Apostle himself maketh answer, in these words: I speak concerning Christ and the Church. The mystery in general is this, Christ and the Church are to one another as husband and wife. The particulars of this mystery are these. The matrimonial conjunction betwixt Christ & the Church is a most Preheminent conjunction. Firm Near First of the general. The many espousal, and matrimonial titles, which in Scripture are given to Christ and the Church in mutual relation of one to another, evidently show that they are joined together by the honourable, inseparable and inviolable bond of marriage: He is styled a a joh. 3. 29. Bridegroom, she a Bride: he c Cant. 1. 13, 15. Well-beloved, she Love: he an d 2 Cor. 11. 2. Husband, she a Wife: he an e Eph. 5. 23. Head, she the Body: both f & vers. 31. one flesh. 2. All things requisite to join man and wife together, do fitly concur betwixt Christ and the Church. 1. They are persons fit to be joined. Though Christ be the things which make Christ and the Church fit to be husband and wife. God, yet for g joh. 17. 19 this end he became man: and though the Church were impure, yet for this end is she cleansed and sanctified. 2. They have their parent's consent: for God is the h joh. 20. 17. common father of both. And God hath given i Rom. 8. 32. Christ to the Church, and the k joh. 6. 39 Church to Christ. 3. They have given their l Cant. 2. 16. mutual consent each to other. 4. He m Eph. 5. 23, 24. beareth an husband like affection to her, and she is willing to yield a wifelike subjection to him. 5. He hath n Eph. 4 8. given her many favours and gifts as pledges of his love: and she in testimony of her faithfulness was under the Law circumcised, and is under the Gospel baptised: and doth bind herself with all the sacred bonds and covenants which God to that purpose hath sanctified. 6. He hath prepared o joh. 14. 3. places of habitation for them both together, and p Reu. 22. 17, 20. she earnestly desireth to be with him. Behold another evidence of Christ's admirable love to the 1. Use. Church, and of the near union betwixt Christ and her. The An high favour to be the spouse to Christ. former was that she was his body. This, that she is his wife: well might the Church say as Abigail did, Behold, let thine handmaid be a servant to wash the feet of the servants of my 1 Sam. 25. 41. Lord: and as the prodigal child, Make me as one of thine hired Luk. 15. 19 servants: or as the Baptist, I am not worthy to stoop down to Mar. 1. 7. unloose thy shoe-latchets. What a favour than is it to be made his spouse, his wife, his Queen. Great was the favour which Ahash-verosh showed to Esther, when he made her his wife: he was a great Monarch, reigning from India to Ethiopia over 127 provinces: but Esther was a poor orphan and captive: yet was not this favour comparable to Christ's: for there was no such disparity and inequality betwixt Ahash-verosh and Esther, as betwixt Christ and the Church: neither is esther's advancement to be compared with the Churches: and yet there was some cause in Esther to move Ahash-verosh to do what he did, for she was very beautiful, and lovely, and worthy to be loved: but * §. 33, 34. in the Church when Christ first cast his love on her, there was no such thing. No pattern of love can be given any way comparable to this. Let the Church therefore, and all that profess themselves 2. Use. to be of the Church, take such notice hereof, as they may endeavour Direction. How Christ's spouse must carry herself. to carry themselves worthy of this honour and advancement: not to wax proud and insolent thereupon, but to despise all vain and worldly toys: to answer love with love, as the Church is set forth in Salomon's song; to be subject to her husband, to reverence and obey him, and to perform all duties appertaining to such a wife: seeking by all good means to maintain the honour of her place. The Church is made a pattern of duty to all wives: if she should fail, greater inconvenience would follow from thence, then from Vashties Est. 1. 16. etc. disobedience. This is the rather to be regarded because it is not only a 3. Use. matter of instruction but of trial also, showing both what they Trial. Who are Christ's spouse. which are of the Church ought to do, and also * §. 24. what indeed they will do. Wherefore no profane person that lightly esteemeth the Lord jesus, no Idolater that casteth his love on other husbands, no swearer or blasphemer that dishonoureth the great Name of jesus, none that any way are rebellious against him, none that hate, scorn, scoff, or hurt any of his members, can have any comfort in this advancement of the Church, because they have no part therein, nor right thereunto. But great is that comfort which the true Saints may receive 4. Use. therein. For by virtue of this matrimonial bond, Consolation. The privileges of Christ's spouse. 1. Christ is made a yoke-fellow with his Church, and her companion. Under all the burdens which are laid upon her, he putteth his shoulder to make it the more easy: yea, the great burdens of God's wrath, the curse of the law, and sin the cause thereof, hath he so taken on him, as he hath clean freed his Church from them, because they would else have crushed her down to hell. 2. Christ is as her champion to answer all challenges sent unto her, as her advocate to plead and answer all the complaints that shall be made against her, as her surety to discharge all her debts: the Church being covert-baron under Christ, he is as herself, all in all for her, and to her. 3. All his honours, goods, privileges are hers: she hath Ecclesia omnem sponsi potestatem tenet. Aug. contr. Don. l. 4. c. 1. a right to them, and her part in them, she is a coheir with him (Rom. 8. 17.) a Queen because he a King (Psal. 45. 9) and all glorious, as was noted, vers. 27. 4. He will assuredly perform all the offices of an husband, as to love her, bear with her, provide for her, with the like. Able he is to do all, for he is omnipotent: willing also he must needs be, because willingly he hath taken upon him this place: he hath made himself a pattern to other husbands: will he not then do that himself which herequireth of others? If ever any wife might receive comfort in a match, the Church may receive comfort in this match. The benefit of this match will yet more lively appear by a particular consideration of the three forenamed properties of this matrimonial bond, the preeminency, firmness, and nearness thereof. §. 86. Of Christ's leaving his Father and mother for his spouse. I. The preeminency of the matrimonial bond betwixt Christ and the Church herein appeareth, that Christ left his Father and his mother for his spouse the Church. As Christ is God, God is his Father; as man, the Virgin Marie was his mother. Now the leaving of his Father must be taken only by way of resemblance, in that he came from the place of his Father's habitation, to the place where his Spouse was. The Scripture saith, that he was in the bosom of his Father: joh. 1. 18. by him, as one brought up with him, his daily delight, rejoicing always Prou. 8. 30. before him: yet descended he into the lowest parts of the earth Ephes. 4. 9 where his spouse was. He came out from the Father, and came into joh. 16. 28. the world. But truly and properly did he prefer his Spouse before his mother. For when he was instructing his Spouse, and his mother came to interrupt him, he said to his mother, who is my Mark. 3. 33, 34. mother? and to his Spouse, behold my mother. Of the Use. same mind must the Church, and all that are of the Church be unto Christ: she must forget her own people, and father's Imitation. All to be forsaken for Christ. Psal. 45. 10. house. Seeing Christ hath gone before us, and given us so good an example, what an high point of ingratitude would it be for us, to prefer father, mother, or any other before Christ our husband? Note what he saith in this case, He that loveth Matth. 10. 37. father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me. And again, If any come unto me, and hate not his father and mother, he cannot Luke 14. 26. expounded. How parents to be hated for Christ. be mine. To hate here, is to be so far from preferring father & mother before Christ, as rather than not to love Christ, to hate father and mother. Or, so entirely to love Christ above all, as our love of parents in comparison thereof to be an hatred. Thus Levi said unto his father and mother, I have not seen him: Deut. 33. 9 for they observed the word, and kept the covenant of Christ. This then is our duty, that we suffer not any natural affection and dotage on our parents to swallow up that love we owe to Christ, as Pharaohs ill-favourèd and leane-fleshed kine eat Gen. 41. 4. up the seven wellfavoured and fat kine. How much less should any love of this world, of the profits, promotions, or pleasures of this world, draw away our hearts from Christ; should we not rather say and do as the Apostles did, Behold, we have for saken Matth. 19 27. all and followed Christ? §. 87. Of the indissoluble union betwixt Christ and the Church. II. The firmness of that bond whereby Christ and the Church are said to be glued together, is greater and more inviolable than that whereby man and wife are joined together: Death parteth man and wife: but death cannot make a diremption betwixt Christ and the Church: so as we may well from this metaphor infer, that Christ and the Church are inseparably Hosea 2. 19 knit together. I will betrothe thee unto me for ever, saith Christ unto the Church. The covenant which Christ maketh with his Church, is an everlasting covenant. The mountains shall depart, Isa. 61. 8. & 54. 10. and the hills be removed, before his kindness shall depart from the Church. The steadfastness and unchangeableness of his will, is the Reason. only cause thereof. Whom he loveth, he loveth unto the end. joh. 13. 1. His gifts and calling are without repentance. He is not like the Rom. 11. 29. hard hearted jews, who upon every sleight occasion would put away their wives. The Lord hateth putting away. Though Mal. 2. 16. therefore the Church, through her weakness, do depart from him, and play the harlot, yet return again to me, saith the jer. 3. 1. Lord. Learn we by this pattern to cleave close unto the Lord, Use. Cleave to Christ. which is a duty most due to Christ who cleaveth so close to us, and therefore oft d Deut. 10. 20. & 13. 4. Acts 11. 23. expressed in the Scripture. Three virtues there are which are of special use to this purpose, Faith, Hope, Love.. Faith is the hand whereby we lay fast hold on Christ, and as it were knit him to ourselves, as he by his Spirit knitteth us to himself. This maketh us rest and repose ourselves on him for all needful things: and not to leave him for any thing. Hope is the anchor, which holdeth us fast against all the storms of Satan, so as they can never drive us out of our harbour, which is the Lord jesus Christ. Love is the glue and soader which maketh us one with Christ: for it is the property of love to unite those that love one another in one. Jonathan's soul was knit with the soul of 1 Sam. 18. 1. David. For why? jonathan loved him as his own soul. He that loveth is well pleased with him whom he loveth, and seeketh also to please him, that they may mutually delight one in another. Were these three virtues well rooted in us, we would say, who shall separate us from the love of Christ? shall tribulation, Rom. 8. 35. etc. or distress, etc. §. 88 Of the equal privilege of all the Saints. III. Concerning the phrase, whereby the nearness of All the Saints made one Spouse. man and wife is set forth (they two shall be one flesh) it may be demanded how this can be applied to Christ and the Saints, who are more than two? Answ. Christ by one Spirit knitteth us all into one body, 1 Cor. 12. 13. and so maketh all jointly considered together one Spouse. The multitude of Saints doth no more imply many wives, than the multitude of members which the natural body of a wife hath. This point than teacheth us, that In the mystical marriage betwixt Christ and the Church, all and every of the Saints have an equal privilege. Some are not See §. 22. Concubines, some wives, nor some more loved, or preferred to another, but all one wife. All are one in Christ jesus. Gal. 3. 28. Neither the Father that gave them all, nor the Son who Reason. took them all, saw any thing in one more than in another; their mere grace moved them to do what they did. Well may every one apply all the forenamed privileges unto themselves: and not one emulate another. This affordeth instruction to the more eminent in the Use. Church, that like proud dames they insult not over others, as if they were their handmaids: and consolation to the meaner sort, that they may uphold themselves, and possess their souls with patience, and not envy, or grieve at the outward prosperity and privileges of others. In the greatest privilege they are equal to the greatest. This of the parties coupled to Christ. For these words (they two) show that all the Saints are but one: Christ is the other of the two. The next words (are one flesh) show how near those Saints are to Christ. §. 89. Of the near union betwixt Christ and the Church. The main point here to be noted is, that Christ and the Church are most nearly linked together. What Christus nihil aliud deputat corpus suum (i) Ecclesiam, quam seipsum, quia de Christo & ecclesia verius intelligitur, Erunt duo in carne una. Aug. de pec. mer. lib. 1. cap. 31. can be nearer, than that two should come into one flesh? This is somewhat more than to be of Christ's flesh. That shows we are as it were cut out of Christ: this shows that we are again knit to him. That was a preparation unto this: this is as the consummation and perfection of all. * See §. 70. Many metaphors are used to set forth the near union betwixt Christ and his Church, but this surpasseth them all. As here we and Christ are said to be one flesh, so in another place, one spirit. Well therefore might the name and title Christ be given to this Spouse of Christ. * §. 84. It was noted on a like ground to this, that of all other persons 1 Cor. 6. 17. & 12. 12. the transgression of a wife against an husband is most heinous. What then are the transgressions of the Church against Christ? As we are much more bound unto Christ for the privileges we receive from him as an Head and Husband, and so our Saviour having made with us an everlasting covenant of marriage, then for those we received from him as our Creator, Lord and Master: so are the rebellions now committed against him more monstrous. To Adam that broke the first covenant whereby like a rebellious child and servant he sinned against his Father and Master, mercy and pardon was given: but to such as now break the bond of this everlasting covenant, and make a total and final desertion, utterly renouncing this Husband, or by their adultery cause him to give them a bill of divorce, there remaineth no more sacrifice Heb. 10. 27. for sins; but a certain fearful looking for of judgement, and fiery indignation which shall devour the adversaries. This is to be noted, to make us the more circumspect over our ways, resisting sin in the beginning, and looking diligently lest any Heb. 12. 15. man fall from the grace of God; and giving no place at all unto Eph. 4. 27. the Devil. Satan will most endeavour to dissolve the nearest bonds that God maketh. This then being the nearest of all, we ought to be the most careful in preserving it. §. 90. Of the mystery of the union of Christ and the Church. EPHES. 5. 32. This is a great mystery: but I speak concerning Christ and the Church. THis verse is a conclusion of that excellent digression which the Apostle hath made concerning the near union of Christ and the Church. In it two points are to be noted. 1. A pathetical exclamation (This is a great mystery.) 2. A particular application of the forenamed law (but I speak concerning Christ and the Church. Here first note that The union betwixt Christ and the Church is a great mystery. The Apostle could not have said more of it then to call it a mystery, a great mystery. A mystery is a divine secret. Of a mystery see more in the whole armour of God, Treat. 3. §. 168. on Eph. 6. 19 A Secret it is in two respects. 1. Because it is not known. 2. Because it is unsearchable: the depth of it cannot be fathomed. It is a Divine secret, for two other respects. 1. Because it could not have been opened but by divine revelation. 2. Because when it is opened it cannot be conceived but by the illumination of the Spirit. That Spirit which openeth and revealeth the mystery, must also open the eyes of our understanding to discern aright of it. It is further said to be a great mystery. 1. Simply in itself, because the matter thereof is deep, 1. Use. The mystery of our union with Christ not to be measured with the last of our reason. difficult, weighty, and of great moment. 2. Comparatively in relation to other mysteries: no mystery revealed in God's word comparable to it. Let us not presume to measure it with the line of our own reason. It being a great mystery, it is above our capacity: yet because it is revealed we must believe it, as we do the mysteries of the Trinity, of Christ's eternal generation, of the personal union of his two natures, of the proceeding of the holy Ghost, with the like; because the word hath revealed them, though we cannot fully see the reason of them. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt our estate in this world and in the world to come: here we must believe what we know but in part: there we shall perfectly know whatsoever is to be believed. Preachers can but in part make known this mystery, and hearers can but in part conceive it, let us therefore wait for perfect understanding of it, till all things be perfected in Christ: but in the mean time believe without doubting or wavering, that which is revealed of it. In our meditation of this mystery, let us conceive no carnal, 2. Use. No carnal thing in our union with Christ. Ecclesia Christo in occulto uxor est. Occultè quippe atque intus in abscondito secreto spiritali anima humana inhaeret verbo Dei, ut sint duo in carne una. Aug. contr. Faust. Man. lib. 22. cap. 38. no earthly thing of it, because it is a mystery: it is altogether spiritual and heavenly. From the natural union of our head and body, and from the matrimonial union of man and wife, we may and aught to take occasion by way of resemblance, to help our understanding in the union of Christ and his Church: for this end are these resemblances used, and by this means may our understanding be much helped, as by the outward elements and rites which are used in the Sacraments: but if because of these comparisons we draw this which is only and wholly spiritual, to any carnal matter, we shall make that to be a thick mist, and dark cloud, which is given for a light. The dotage of our adversaries is here plainly discovered. They make our union with Christ merely carnal. For they conceit it to consist in a corporeal commixtion of Christ's flesh with ours, by our eating his flesh with the teeth of our bodies, and drinking his blood down our throats, and digesting both 3. Use. Papists make our union with Christ a carnal matter. Joh 6. 52. joh. 3. 4. in our stomaches as our bodily food, that so it may turn into our substance. Thus they show themselves like the dull-headed Capernaitans, and like ignorant Nicodemus. There is a great deal of gross absurdity, but no great mystery in that conceit. §. 91. Of the Pope's usurping to be Spouse of the Church. The Apostles application of this mystery to Christ and the Church, discovereth two gross errors of the Papists. One, that they make the Pope a Spouse of the Church. With what face can any apply that to the Pope and the Church, which the Apostle so expressly saith is meant of Christ and the Multos adulteros video qui sponsam tanto pretio emptam possidere volunt, & id agunt ut pro sponso amentur. Aug. in joh. Tract. 12. Uide Bern. ep. 237. ad Eugen. Church? yea, what arrogant presumption is it, to attribute that to mortal sinful man, which is proper to the eternal and holy Son of God? Is not this to confer Christ's prerogatives upon himself, and so make himself plain Antichrist? Who gave the Church to the Pope, or the Pope to the Church? When did she give her consent? (I speak of the true Catholic Church of Christ.) What hath he done for her? or rather what hath he not done against her? The * See §. 17. distinction of Imperial and Ministerial Spouse, cannot here serve the turn. As the metaphor of an head, so much less the metaphor of a Spouse will admit a ministerial Spouse. As he is an adulterer that taketh upon him to be a ministerial husband, so is she an adulteress that yieldeth herself to such an one. The Apostle saith, I have espoused you to ONE husband. 2 Cor. 11 2. §. 92. Of the false Sacrament of Marriage. The other error is, that Marriage is a Sacrament: the main ground whereof they have taken from this text, which ground by the Apostles application of this mystery to Christ and the Church, is as plainly removed, as if the Apostle had purposely ordered his style, to prevent this erroneous collection: as if he had said, That none may mistake this mystery, and apply it to a matrimonial conjunction of man and woman together, know that I mean no such thing: the mystery which I speak of, is concerning Christ and the Church. I marvel how they dare misapply that which is so plainly expressed. Though the Apostle had not so clearly showed his mind and meaning, yet the very thing itself would lead us so to judge of it. For, that which in Christ Quod est in Christo & in Ecclesia magnum, hoc in singulis quibusque viris & uxoribus minimum. Aug. de nupt. & concup. lib. 1. cap. 21. and the Church is a great mystery, in man and wife is but a small matter. The vulgar Latin translation first led them into this error, for it translateth the word mystery, a Sacrament. But a translation is no sufficient ground to prove a doctrine. Besides the word Sacrament used by that Translator, hath as large an extent as a mystery: if they should make every thing which he translateth Sacrament, a proper Sacrament of the Church, there would be many more Sacraments than the Papists themselves do make. 1. As for this supposed Sacrament, no Papist could ever show when or where God ordained it to be a Sacrament. Nay, they agree not among themselves about the time, how long it hath been a Sacrament. * Alphons. à Castro contr. haer. lib. 3. Some of them hold, that ever since the first institution of marriage in Paradise, it hath been a Sacrament. But the greater number of Papists hold it to be a Sacrament Petrus à Soto de Matr. lect. 2. Concil. Trident. Sess. 24. Can. 1. of the new Testament under the Gospel, because their Tridentine Council hath so decreed it. Where we may note how the greater number of them, when two absurdities are questioned, are ready to fall into the worst. Under the Law the nonage of the Church needed, and had more Sacraments then under the Gospel: yet that which was in use as much under the Law as under the Gospel, and had then as much to make it a Sacrament as now, was then none, yet now is one. 2. As they cannot show where it was ordained for a Sacrament, so neither can they show what is the Sacramental sign thereof. Some make carnal copulation to be it. But there may be a true marriage, though the parties married never know each other. Others make the Parents giving to be the sign. But they hold that that is a true marriage, which is done without parent's consent. Others the Priest's blessing. Yet they hold the marriage of Infidels and Heretics who have no Priests, to be a true marriage. Others, the consent of the parties themselves. Thus shall a party administer a Sacrament to himself. Others, other things. Thus they wanting the light of God's word, one strayeth in one by-path, another in another, and none of them hit upon the right. 3. A like difference there is about the form of this Sacrament. 4. If other positions delivered by them concerning matrimony be noted, a man would think that they should be far from making it a Sacrament. They prefer virginity before it. Yea, they account it a kind of pollution. They hold it unlawful for Priests, Monks, Nuns, and such like holy orders (as they esteem them) to marry: so as there is a Sacrament, whereof their holy ones may not partake. The order of Priesthood is a Sacrament (in their account) yet that order keepeth from marriage, so as one Sacrament fighteth against another. Yea, Infidels may be partakers of a Sacrament, and so their holy and precious things shall be denied to their holy ones, and cast unto swine. Thus we see a rotten building erected upon a sandy foundation: a false Sacrament established upon a false application of this text. Can it then stand? §. 93. Of the Sum of husbands and wives duties. EPHES. 5. 33. Nevertheless, let every one of you in particular so love his wife, even as himself: and the wife see that she reverence her husband. THe Apostle having made a large digression about the mutual relation betwixt Christ and the Church, whom he propounded as patterns to husbands and wives, he now returneth to the main point intended, namely to the duties of husbands and wives: and so much doth the first particle imply (Nevertheless) as if he had thus said, Though I have a little digressed 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. into the mystery of the union of Christ and the Church, yet nevertheless do ye, o husbands and wives, call to mind that which I principally aimed at, even your duties. This verse than containeth a conclusion of the Apostles discourse, concerning the duties of husbands and wives. Two points are especially noted therein. 1. A declaration of their several and distinct duties. 2. A direction to apply their own proper duties each of them to themselves. Their distinct duties are noted in two words, Love.. Fear. These two, as they are distinct duties in themselves, so are they also common conditions which must be annexed to all other duties. Love as sugar to sweeten the duties of authority, which appertain to an husband. Fear as salt to season all the duties of subjection which appertain to a wife. The Apostle therefore hath set them down as two marks for husbands and wives to aim at in every thing wherein they have to deal one with the other. Of these I will more distinctly speak in the treatises of the particular duties of husbands and wives. §. 94. Of applying the word to ourselves. The direction for a particular application of their own proper duties to either of them is here especially to be noted. In this direction two things are to be observed. 1. That every particular person apply to himself that which by a Minister is indefinitely delivered to all. Every one 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. of you in particular, saith the Apostle: which is as much as if he had thus more largely expressed his mind, I have laid down such general duties as all husbands and wives without exception of any of what rank or degree soever they be are bound unto; which though by name I have not severally delivered to every one, one by one, but generally to you all, yet do every one of you apply those things to yourselves in particular. 2. That every one apply his own peculiar duty unto himself. Love being peculiar to an husband, to him he saith, Let him love his wife: and reverence being peculiar to a wife, to her he saith, let the wife see that she reverence her husband. The direction in every of those several Epistles which were sent to the seven Churches of Asia, (in these words, He that Reu. 2. 7. hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith to the Churches) doth teach every member in any of those Churches to apply to himself that which was delivered to the whole Church: so doth a like x Luk. 8. 8. exhortation which Christ with an exclamation made to the people whom he taught in parables: and this declaration of the extent of Christ's counsel, what I say to Mar. 13. 37. you, I say to all. To this purpose many precepts given to whole Churches, and to all sorts of people are set down in the singular number as given to one, as, Awake THOU that Eph. 5. 14. sleepest. THOU standest by faith: be not thou high minded etc. Rom. 11. 20. The life and power of God's word consisteth in this particular Reason. The life of God's word in application. application thereof unto ourselves. This is to mix faith with hearing: faith, I say, whereby we do not only believe the truth of God's word in general, but also believe it to be a truth concerning ourselves in particular: and thus will every precept thereof be a good instruction and direction on to us to guide us in the way of righteousness: every promise therein will be a great encouragement, and consolation to us to uphold us, and to make us hold on: and every judgement threatened therein will be a curb, and bridle to hold us in, and to keep us from those sins against which the judgements are threatened. But otherwise, if we bring not the word home to our own souls, it will be as a word spoken into the air, 1 Cor. 14 9 vanishing away without any profit to us. Nothing maketh the word less profitable, than the putting of it off from ourselves to others, thinking that it concerns others more than ourselves. That we may make the better use of this doctrine, let us observe both what are general duties belonging to all Christians, and apply them as particular to ourselves: and also what duties appertain to such persons as are of our place, call, and condition, and more especially apply them to ourselves: let all manner of husbands, and all manner of wives of what rank or degree soever they be that shall read the duties hereafter following, know that they are spoken to them in particular. Let Kings and Queens, Lords and Ladies, Ministers and their wives, Rich men and their wives, Poor men and their wives, Old men and their wives, Young men and their wives, all of all sorts take them as spoken to them in particular. It is not honour, wealth, learning, or any other excellency, nor means of place, poverty, want of learning, or any other like thing that can exempt an husband from loving his wife, or a wife from reverencing her husband. He that saith every one, excepteth not any one. Therefore every one in particular do ye so. The like application may be made to all Parents and children, Masters and servants, concerning their duties. §. 95. Of every one's looking to his own duty especially. In the forenamed application an eye must be had rather to the duty which we owe, and aught to be performed by us to others, then to that which is due to us, and others ought to perform to us: for the Apostle saith not to the husband, see that thy wife reverence thee, but see that thou love her: so to the wife. For this purpose the holy Ghost presseth particular duties upon those particular persons who ought to perform them: as Subjection on wives: love on husbands: and so in others. This therefore is especially to be considered of thee, how thou Vnum duntaxat tibi considerandum est, quo pacto te praestes innoxium. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. mayst show thyself blameless. I deny not but that one ought to provoke another, and one to help another in what they can to perform their duty, especially superiors who have charge over others, but the most principal care of every one ought to be for himself, and greatest conscience to be made of performing his own duty. 1. It is more acceptable before God, and more commendable Reasons. before men to do duty, then to exact duty. As in matters of free charity, so also of bounden duty, It is more blessed to Act. 20. 35. give, then to receive. In particular it is better for an husband to be a good husband, then to have a good wife: so for a wife. To have others fail in duty to us may be an heavy cross, for us to fail in our duty to others is a fearful curse. 2. Every one is to give an account of his own particular Rom. 14. 12. duty. That which the Prophet speaketh of father and son, may be applied to husband and wife, and to all other sorts of people, If a father do that which is lawful and right, he is just, he Ezec. 18. 5. etc. shall surely live: if he beget a son that doth not so, he shall surely die, his blood shall be upon him. Again, if a father do that which is not good, he shall die in his iniquity: but if his son do that which is lawful and right he shall surely live. The righteousness of the righteous shall be upon himself: and the wickedness of the wicked shall be upon himself. That this shall be so betwixt husband and wife, may be gathered out of these words, Two shall Luk. 17. 34. be in one bed, the one shall be taken, the other left. Let this be noted against the common vain apologies which are made for neglect of duty, which is this, Duty is not performed to me, why shall I do duty? when my husband doth his duty, I will do mine, saith the wife. And I mine, saith the husband, when my wife doth hers. What if he never do his duty, and so be damned, wilt thou never do thine? This looking for of duty at others hands, makes us the more careless of our own. Do you therefore O husbands look especially to your Use. own duties, do you love your wives: and you o wives look Non quae aliis data sunt praecepta quaerimus quando alicuius criminis ac. cusamur. Chrys. loc. citat. you to yours especially, do you reverence your husbands. For this end, let husbands read those duties most diligently which concern husbands, and wives those, which concern wives. Let not the husband say of the wife's duties, there are goodlessons for my wife, and neglect his own: nor the wife say the like of husband's duties, and not regard her own. This is it that maketh the subjection of many wives very harsh and irksome to them, because their husbands that urge and press them thereto show little, or no love to them at all: and this is it that maketh many husbands very backwards in showing love, because their wives which expect much love, show little or no reverence to their husbands. Wherefore Let every one of you in particular so love his wife, even as himself: and the wife see that she reverence her husband. §. 96. Of the meaning of the first verse of the sixth Chapter. FRom those particular duties which concern husbands and wives the Apostle proceedeth to lay down such as concern children and parents. As before he laid down wife's duties before husbands, so here he beginneth with children's (who are inferior to their parents) and that for the same reasons which were rendered * §. 10. before. Besides children are the fruits of matrimonial conjunction, therefore fitly placed next unto Man and Wife. That which concerneth children is laid down in the sixth Chapter of Eph. vers. 1, 2, 3. The meaning whereof we will distinctly open. EPHES. 6. 1. Children obey your parents in the Lord: for this is right. The first word (children) is in the original as proper a word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. at could be used, for according to the notation of it, it signifieth such as are begotten and borne. Answerable is the other word (parents) which signifieth such as beget and bring forth 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Who are to be accounted children, who parents. children. Yet are they not so strictly to be taken as if none but such as begat and brought forth, or such as are begotten and brought forth of them were meant: for under the title parents, he includeth all such as are in the place of natural parents, as Grandfathers and Grandmothers, Fathers in law, and Mothers in law, Foster-fathers' and Foster-mothers', Guardians, Tutors, and such like governors: and under the title children he compriseth grandchildren, Sons and daughters in law, Wards, Pupils, and such like. For there is an honour and a subjection due by all who are in place of children, to all such as are in place of parents, though in a different kind, as we shall * Treat. 5. §. 56, 57, etc. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. after show. This word children which in the original is of the neuter gender, doth further include both sexes, males and females, sons and daughters: so as either of them are as carefully to apply the duties here set forth to themselves as if in particular both kinds had been expressed. He expresseth parents in the plural number, to show that he 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. meaneth here also both sex's father and mother, as the law expresseth both: and addeth this relative particle your, as by way 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. of restraint, to show that every child is not bound to every parent, so by way of extent to show that whatsoever the estate of parents be honourable or mean, rich or poor, learned or unlearned, etc. their own children must not be ashamed of them, but yield all bounden duty to them: if they be parents to children, they must be honoured by children. The word (Obey) under which all duties of children are 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. comprised, according to the Greek notation, signifieth with an humble submission to hearken, that is, to attend and give heed to the commandments, reproofs, directions, and exhortations which are given to them, and that with such a reverend respect of the parties who deliver them, as they make themselves conformable thereto. A duty proper to inferiors, and implieth both reverence and obedience: the * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. verb noteth out Obedience; the * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. preposition, Reverence. Under this word (Obey) the Apostle comprehendeth all All duties of children comprised under obedience. those duties which throughout the Scripture are required of children: as is manifest by his own exemplification thereof in the second verse by the word honour which the law useth: so as this word (obey) is to be taken in as large an extent as that word (honour.) Quest. Why is obedience put for all the rest? Answ. 1. Because it is the hardest of all the rest, and that which children are loathest to perform they who willingly yield to this, will stick at no duty. 2. Because it is the surest evidence of that honour which a child oweth to his parent: and so of performing the fifth commandment. 3. Because children are bound to their parents: the duties which they perform are not of courtesy, but necessity. Their parents have power to command, and exact them. The clause added (in the Lord) is in effect the same which 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. was used * Chap. 5. vers. 22. before (as unto the Lord) and it noteth forth a limitation, direction, and instigation: a limitation showing that children's obedience to their parents is to be restrained to the obedience which they owe to Christ, and may not go beyond the limits thereof: a direction showing that in obeying their parents, they must have an eye to Christ, and so obey them as Christ may approve thereof: an instigation showing that parents bear the image of Christ, and in that respect children must the rather obey their parents. The last clause of this verse (for this is right) is an express 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. reason to enforce the forenamed point of obedience: and it is drawn from equity: and showeth that it is a point agreeable to all law: yea that in way of recompense it is due: and if children be not obedient to parents they do that which is most unjust, they defraud their parents of their right. The former phrase (in the Lord) implying one reason, this plainly noteth out another, as the first particle (for) declareth. §. 97. Of the meaning of the second verse. EPHES. 6. 2. Honour thy father and mother (which is the first commandment with promise.) THe very words of the fifth commandment are here alleged Why the moral law is alleged. by the Apostle as a confirmation of the forenamed reason, that, it is just and right to obey parents, because God in the moral law enjoineth as much. The law is more general than the Apostles precept: for the law compriseth under it all those duties which all kind of inferiors owe to their superiors, whether they be in family, church, or common wealth: but the Apostles precept is given only to one kind of inferiors in the family: yet the argument is very sound and good from a general to a particular, thus, All inferiors must A genere ad speciem. honour their superiors, therefore children their parents. By adding the express words of the law the Apostle showeth that the subjection which he required of children is no yoke which he of his own head put on their necks: but that which the moral law hath put on them: so as this may be noted as a third reason, namely God's express charge in his moral law. If I should handle this law according to the full extent thereof, I should wander too far from the Apostles scope. I will therefore open it no further than it may concern the point in hand, viz. the duty of children. Honour compriseth here all those duties which children in Honour compriseth all children's duties. any respect owe to their parents. It implieth both an inward reverend estimation, and also an outward dutiful submission. Yea it implieth also recompense, and maintenance. Honour in relation to parents, is used for two reasons especially. 1. To show that parents bear God's image: for honour is properly due to God alone: to the creature it is due, only as it standeth in God's room, and carrieth his image. 2. To show, that it is an honour to parents to have dutiful children: even as it is a dishonour to them to have disobedient children. Both father and mother are expressly mentioned, to take away Why both father and mother expressed. all pretence from children of neglecting either of them: for through the corruption of nature we are prone to seek after many shifts to exempt us from our bounden duty; and if not in whole, yet in as great a part as we can. Some might think if they honour their father, who is their mother's head, they have done what the law requireth: others may think they have done as much, if they honour their mother who is the weaker vessel: but the law expressing father and mother, condemneth him that neglecteth either of them. Yet to show that if opposition should arise betwixt them, and by reason thereof both could not be obeyed together, the father commanding what the mother forbiddeth, the father is to be preferred, (especially if it be not against the Lord) the father is set in the first place. These words following (which is the first commandment How the fifth commandment is the first with promise. with promise) are fitly included in a parenthesis, because they are not the words of the law, but inserted by the Apostle as a reason to enforce the law, and so make a fourth reason. Quest. In what respect is this commandment called the first with promise? Answ. 1. The * word hear used by the Apostle properly 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. signifieth an affirmative precept, as our English word (commandment) doth. Now then of the affirmative precepts it is the first with promise. 2. The Scripture oft appropriateth the law to the second table, as where he saith he that loveth another hath fulfilled the Rom. 13 8. law, and so in other places. Now this is the first commandment of the second table. 3. It is generally true of all the commandments: for among the ten it is the first with promise. Object. The second commandment hath a promise annexed Difference betwixt the promise in the second, and fist commandment. to it. Answ. 1. That which is annexed to the second Commandment, is not expressly a promise, but rather a declaration of God's justice, in taking vengeance of transgressors, and of his mercy in rewarding observers of the Law: yet I deny not but that a promise by consequence is implied: but here it is expressed. 2. The promise there implied is only a general promise made to observers of the whole Law, and therefore he useth the plural number, Commandments: but here is a particular promise made to them that keep this Commandment in particular. 2. Quest. Why is it then said the first, when no other Commandments with promise follow? First simply taken. Answ. This particle (first) hath not always reference to some other following, but is oft simply taken, to show that none was before it: so is the word firstborn used in the Law: Exod. 13. 2. Matth. 1. 25. and so Christ is called the firstborn Son of Marie. The word promise showeth, that this fourth reason includeth some benefit redounding to those children themselves that honour their parents: the benefit is expressly mentioned in the next verse, which we will afterwards distinctly consider. §. 98. Of aiming at our own, in seeking the good of others. Here in general we may note, that It is not unlawful to aim at our own good and benefit in doing the duties which God requireth at our hands to others: for that which God himself propoundeth and setteth before us, we may seek and aim at. Many like promises there be in Scripture, and many approved prayers grounded on those promises whereby the truth of the doctrine is confirmed unto us. Hezekiah Isa. 38. 2, 3. maketh the good service he had done to God and his Church, a ground to obtain longer life: so others. For God layeth no duty on any man, but therein he aimeth at the good of him who performeth the duty as well as of him to whom the duty is performed. Whereby he would show that his Commandments are no straight yokes and heavy burdens, but means of procuring their good who fulfil them. How highly doth this commend the good respect that 1. Use. God beareth to all the sons of men: seeking their good in every place wherein he setteth them, either of authority, or subjection? How ought this to stir us up willingly and cheerfully to 2. Use. observe the Laws which God commandeth us, and perform the services he requireth of us, seeing thereby we procure our own good? How fully may this satisfy, and even stop the mouths of 3. Use. all such as are discontent with their places, and mutter against that subjection which God enjoineth to them? What a good direction and resolution may this be to many, 4. Use. who being moved in conscience to seek the good of others, doubt whether therein they may aim at their own good or no? To make this case clear by an instance, which may serve in stead of many. A Minister faithful in his place, and very painful, and in that respect of a good conscience, but withal of a tender and weak conscience, doubteth whether thereby he may seek maintenance to himself, fearing that so he seeketh himself, and not simply the edification of God's Church. But by the forenamed doctrine we see that both may be aimed at: for God commandeth the one, and promiseth the other. As we have one eye on God's Commandment for direction, so we may have another on his promise for encouragement. Yet because through the corruption of our nature, we are too Cautions in seeking our own good. prone to seek ourselves, some cautions are in this point carefully to be observed. 1. That we seek not our own good by any transgression, for it is promised unto obedience. 2. That we do not so wholly seek ourselves and our own good, as we neglect others: for God having joined both together, no man may put them asunder. 3. That we aim at our own good, as a reward following upon the duty which God commandeth, and so be as willing to do the duty, as desirous of the reward. 4. That our own benefit be not the only, no nor the chiefest thing we aim at in doing our duty, but rather come as a motive to add an edge, and to sharpen other motives of greater moment. And thus much the order which the Apostle observeth in setting down his reasons, noteth unto us: for the three former have respect to God, and to that good conscience which children ought to carry towards him: the first pointeth at God's image which parents carry (in the Lord:) the second setteth forth that right which God hath prescribed to children: the third declareth God's charge: this fourth only, which is the last, hath respect to the profit and benefit of children themselves. §. 99 Of preferring honesty before commodity. From the forenamed order we may further gather, that Equity and good conscience aught more to move us to do our duty then our own profit, and the benefit that thereby redoundeth to us. If there should come such an opposition betwixt these that they could not both stand togethet, but that for doing that which is right, and which God hath commanded, our prosperity must be hindered and life shortened, we should so stand to that which is right and commanded of God, as prosperity, life and all be let go. To this purpose tend all the exhortations in Scripture, to forsake goods, lands, life, and every thing else for righteousness sake. So clear is this point, Cic. lib. 2. de Offic. & Paradox. 1. that the Heathen discerned it by the glimpse of that light of nature which they had: for they could say, that that which is honest and right, is to be preferred before that which is commodious and profitable. There is no comparison betwixt honesty and commodity, right and profit. The one is absolutely necessary for attaining to eternal salvation, the other giveth but a little quiet and contentment in this world: nay, if profit be without right, it can give no true contentment or quiet at all. Unworthy therefore they are of the name of Christians, who Use. so wholly and only aim at their outward profit and prosperity, as they regard not what is right, and what God hath commanded. If by obeying God, and doing that which is right they may reap some benefit to themselves they can be content Nihil bonum Scriptura nisi quod honestum asserit. Ambr. Offic. lib. 2. cap. 3. to yield thereunto: but if not, farewell all right, farewell all God's commandments. Though they think every thing that is profitable, be it right or wrong, to be good, yet God's word accounteth nothing good but that which is honest: such therefore can look for no blessing from the Lord. §. 100 Of the meaning of the third verse. EPHES. 6. 3. That it may be well with thee, and thou mayst live long on the earth. THe promise mentioned before in general, is here particularly set down. The first words (that it may be well with thee) are not in the Hebrew text b Exod. 20. 12. there where the Law is first recorded, and thereupon not set in that usual form of the ten Commandments, which is in use among us: but yet in c Deut. 5. 16. another place where the Law is repeated, they are set down: and the Greek translation, commonly called the Septuagint (which (as is probable) the Church in the Apostles time used) hath expressly noted it in both places. Now this part of the promise (that it may be well with thee) is prefixed as an amplification of the other part concerning long life, which is the most principal thing intended, as appeareth in that it only is mentioned where the Law is first recorded. It showeth that the long life Longlife and prosperity joined together. which God promiseth, shall not be a life of woe and misery, (for then were it no blessing, but the longer life lasted, the worse it would be) but a life full of comfort and happiness: therefore Moses setteth this former clause in the latter place after long life thus (that thy days may be prolonged, and that it Deut. 5. 16. may go well with thee) to show that the well being here spoken of, is an amplification of the benefit of long life. Whereas the Apostle setteth down the place where the benefit of this promise is to be enjoyed in a most large phrase, thus (on earth) the Law bringeth it to a more narrow compass thus (in the land which the Lord thy God giveth thee) meaning the land of Canaan which was given of God as a peculiar inheritance to the jews: so that the promise (as the Law setteth it down in peculiar to the jews) implieth long life, and prosperity in their own inheritance: for long life to the jews was counted no life out of their own Country. But the Apostle writing to all nations, leaveth out that description of Canaan, and retaineth only the general substance in this word (on earth) which he setteth down to show that even outward prosperity, and a long life in this world is here promised. §. 101. Of prosperity: how far forth it may be a blessing. For further clearing of this text, and for better application thereof, I will resolve sundry questions arising out of it, and gather such profitable instructions as it affordeth. The promise consisteth of two branches. The first branch (that it may be well with thee) is very ample 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and large: all good things, all manner of blessings whatsoever, spiritual and temporal, belonging to soul and body, concerning this life, and the life to come, make to a man's well-being. Whence may first be demanded; 1. Qust. What may be the extent of this phrase in this place? Temporal prosperity promised. 1 Tim. 4. 8. Answ. It may generally be extended to all manner of good things. For Godliness hath promise of the life that now is and of that that is to come. But (as I take it) temporal prosperity is here principally intended: and that for these reasons. 1. It is joined with long life, which is a temporal blessing. 2. The last word (on earth) may be referred to this branch of well-being, as well as to the other of long life. 3. In the Law (from whence this clause is taken) it is expressly set down, thus, that it may go well with thee in the Deut. 5. 16. land, etc. 2. Quest. Is then outward temporal prosperity (as honour, Prosperity a good thing. health, peace, liberty, goods, etc.) a token of God's love and favour? Answ. Yea: in itself it is a blessing, and fruit of God's love: as appeareth by these reasons. 1. As at first it was made and ordained of God, it is a good thing. 2. It tendeth to man's good, if it be rightly used. 3. It was bestowed on man before he had offended. 4. It is promised of God as a reward to them that fear him Levit. 26. 4. etc. Deut. 28. 1. etc. and keep his Commandments. 5. The Saints have prayed for it, and have been thankful Gen. 28. 20. & 32. 10, 11. for it. 6. The contrary was first inflicted as a punishment of sin, Levit. 26. 15. etc. and is oft threatened as a token of God's wrath, and so hath also been inflicted on transgressors. Deut. 28. 16. etc. §. 102. Of prosperity bestowed on the wicked, how it proves a curse. 3. Quest. Why then is it bestowed upon the wicked, even such as are * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. haters of God, and are hated of him? And why are Gods friends, such as are * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. loved of him, and love him again, deprived thereof? This sore scruple made David stumble, Psal. 73. 13. jer. 12. 1. Hab. 1. 3. and moved other Prophets to complain. But the answer is ready. Answ. Outward prosperity is of that nature, as it may turn to the good or hurt of him that enjoyeth it. And herein is God's admirable and unsearchable wisdom seen, in that he is able to turn blessings into curses, and curses into blessings. How prosperity proves a curse to the wicked. He can work by contraries. 4. Quest. How is prosperity a curse to the wicked? Answ. By mere consequence, through their abuse of it. God gives it to them to show the riches of his mercy: and that all may taste thereof, he doth good to the evil and the good. Besides, Matth. 5. 45. Rom. 2. 4. he thus trieth if by any means they may be brought to repentance: which gift because they have not, their prosperity proveth to be a means to make them the more inexcusable, and the more to increase their just condemnation. For the more Gods blessings abound towards them, the more they abuse them, adding to all their other sins, that most odious sin of ingratitude, which maketh up the heap of all. And in these respects I may say of the prosperity of the wicked, as the Prophet of their King, God gives it in his anger, and takes it away in Ose. 13. 11. his wrath. For by their abuse thereof, it proveth Satan's bait to allure them, his snare to catch them, and his hook to drown 1 Tim. 6. 9 them in perdition and destruction. In a word therefore, the wicked are fed in a fair pasture like oxen appointed to the slaughter: they are exalted on high, as on a ladder or scaffold, like thieves and traitors, to be brought down with shame and destruction, as Pharaohs Baker was lift up. Gen. 40. 19 §. 103. How both having, and wanting prosperity is a blessing to the Saints. 5. Quest. How is the enjoying, or wanting of prosperity a blessing to the righteous? Answ. God in wisdom knowing what is best for them accordingly deals with them, he bestoweth prosperity on them so far as he seeth it will turn unto their good: and denieth it to them so far as he seeth it will turn to their hurt. Whensoever therefore God bestoweth any temporal blessing on his Saints, it is a token of his favour: and whensoever he denieth any, the very denial is also a fruit of his favour. Herein is it verified that All things work together for good to them Rom. 8. 28. that love God, so as, if they abound, it shall go well with them: if they want, it shall go well with them: if they be in high place, it shall go well with them: if in mean place, it shall got well with them: if they be at liberty, if in prison: if they be in health, if sick: in what estate soever, it shall go well with them. 6. Quest. How is it then that Saints are oft brought to such extermities that they are forced to complain that it is very Complaints of Saints impeach not their well being. ill with them? Answ. There is flesh and blood in them, by reason of the weakness whereof they are forced to complain: but the present apprehension of weak flesh, is not sufficient to impeach the truth of God's promise: they consider not in their present extremity what is God's mind, what his manner of dealing with them, how needful it is that so they should be dealt withal, what end and issue the Lord will give: in truth it is better with them than they wot of. Some weighty reasons there be which move God to bring them to that extremity wherein they are, and those respecting his b job. 9 3. 2 Cor. 12. 9 own glory, or the c Epb. 3. 1. edification of others, or their own good, as d Psal. 119. 67 curing some dangerous disease, e job 1. 12. manifesting the grace of God bestowed upon them, f Ose 5. 15. drawing them nearer to God, g 2 Cor. 5. 2. making them long the more for heaven, with the like. §. 104. Of long-life: how far forth it is a blessing. Concerning the second branch of God's promise (long-life) other questions are to be resolved. 1. Quest. Is long-life a blessing? Long life a blessing. Answ. Yea, else would not God here and in other places have promised it as a reward, nor have bestowed it on his Saints. The reasons to prove it to be a blessing may be drawn to three heads. 1. God's glory. 2. the good of the Church where they live. 3. their own good. 1. God's glory is much advanced by the long life of the Saints: for the longer they live the more they do themselves observe Gods wonderful works, and the more they do make them known and declare them to others. But in the grave all Psal. 6. 5. Isa. 38. 18. is forgotten. 2. God's Church is greatly edified thereby: in which respect the Apostle saith, to abide in the flesh is more needful for Phil. 1. 24. you: In the Saints that is true which Elihu saith should be, namely that days speak, and multitude of years teach wisdom. job. 32. 7. The longer the Saints live, the more good they do: but after death they do none: when the night cometh no man can work: job. 9 4. Gal. 6. 10. upon which ground the Apostle exhorteth to do good while we have time. 3. The Saints by long living purchase to themselves great honour, and dignity among God's people, and a strong steadfast confidence in God. Men regard a good old servant: much more will God. Two strong props have old Saints to establish them, and make them bold: one is a remembrance of God's former favours, whereby their hope of eternal life is made more sure unto them: another is a kind of present expectation of the accomplishment of God's promises which they have long waited for. By this it appears that this particular promise is no light matter, of small moment: but a strong motive to stir up children to obedience. §. 105. Of long life proving a curse to the wicked. 2. Quest. Why then is long life given to many wicked ones? and why are many Saints cut off? Answ. Long life is of the same kind that prosperity is: it may be turned to a curse, as well as prove a blessing. The wicked by living long on earth make their sins grow to the full (as is implied of the Amorite) they make their Gen. 15. 16. name to stink the more on earth, as a carrion the longer it remaineth above ground the more it stinketh: and they cause the greater torment in hell to be inflicted upon them: for as Rom. 2. 5. sin is increased, so shall that torment be increased. The righteous have their days shortened for their good, when they are shortened, and that in these, and such like respects 1. That they may be m 1 King. 14. 13. taken from the evil to come. 2. That they might be made an n 1 King. 13. 14. example to others. 3. Isa. 17. 1. That o 1 Cor. 11. 32. by a temporal death eternal condemnation might be avoided. 4. That their p Gen. 5. 24. Heb. 11. 5. chiefest and greatest reward might be hastened. §. 106. Of limiting the promises of temporal blessings. Thus we see there may be just cause to alter, as the former branch of this promise, prosperity, so the latter branch of it, long-life, and yet no wrong thereby redound to the righteous, nor benefit to the wicked. 3. Quest. Is not the truth of the promise impeached thereby? Answ. No whit at all. For first all promises of temporal blessings are limited with such a condition as this, if the performance of it may stand with God's honour, and the good of the party to whom it is made. 2. God doth never simply deprive his Saints of that which is promised, but only in stead of it giveth a better: as in taking away wealth, he giveth the more store of grace: in restraining liberty of body, he giveth freedom of conscience: with affliction he giveth patience: by taking away this temporal life, he giveth eternal life. God herein dealeth, as if one who having promised so much iron, should in stead thereof give as much silver: or for silver give gold: and so for one pound give the worth of hundreds or thousands. thousands 107. Of appropriating prosperity and long-life to the obedience which children yield to their parents. 4. Quest. Why is long-life and prosperity appropriated to this kind of righteousness? Answ. It is not so appropriated to this, as if it appertained to no other: for it is elsewhere in general promised to the Deut. 6. 2. observers of the whole law, and to other particular branches thereof beside this: yet in these and such like particular respects Psal. 34. 12, 13, 14. is it applied to the obedience of children. 1. Because obedience to parents is one of the surest evidences of our conformity to the whole law: in that thereby we show our respect of God's image, and lay a good foundation for the performing of all duty to man. 2. Because a child's performing of his duty to his parents is under God an especial means that they do well, and live long (for as rebellious children make their parents with grief to come the sooner to their graves, so dutiful children make them to continue the longer in prosperity) the Lord in recompense promiseth to such a child prosperity and long life. 3. Because parents are an especial means to procure the welfare and long life of their children, partly by their provident care, as Noami said to Ruth, shall I not seek rest for thee, Rut. 3. 1. that it may be well with thee? and partly by their instant prayer: for the faithful prayer of parents is of great force with God for dutiful children: whence hath risen the custom of children's ask their parent's blessing, and of parent's blessing their children. In this respect the law thus setteth forth the blessing of the fifth commandment, they shall prolong thy days. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 4. Because disobedience to parents bringeth much mischief on children's heads, and oft shorteneth their days, and that many ways. 1. In that parents are oft provoked by their children's disobedience How disobedient children hinder their welfare and shorten their days. to disinherit them, at least to allow them the less portion, so as hereby it goeth not so well with them: yea some are provoked to bring their rebellious children to the Magistrate, who by God's law was to cut them off, so as Deut. 21. 21. thereby their life is shortened. 2. In that parents are provoked to complain unto God of their children's disobedience, and God thereby moved both to lay heavy judgements upon such children in their life time, and also to shorten their days: for parent's complaint doth make a loud cry in God's ears. It is said that God by cutting off Abimelech with an untimely death rendered the Judg. 9 5 6. wickedness which he did to his father. 3. In that, when parents are too indulgent over their children, God doth punish the sin both of parent and child, by shortening the child's days. Instance the examples of a 1 Sam. 2. 34. Hophni and Phinehas, b 2 Sam. 18. 14. Absolom, and c 1 King. 2. 25. Adonijah. 4. In that disobedience to parents, is a sin that seldom goeth alone: for an undutiful child is commonly a very lewd person many other ways. Considering the proveness of our nature to all sin, it cannot be avoided but that they who in the beginning shake off the yoke of government, should run headlong into all riot, looseness, and licentiousness: thus then sin being added unto sin, it must needs bring mischief upon mischief, till at length life be cut off. Wherefore in that these mischiefs are avoided by performing due obedience to parents, it may well be said that it shall be well with obedient children, and they shall live long. §. 108. Of God's ordering his favours so as they may appear to be true blessings. The particular branches of Gods promise having been How fitly prosperity and long life are joined together. distinctly opened, we will consider them jointly together, for they do exceedingly amplify one another: prosperity sweetens long life and makes it acceptable: otherwise to live long, namely in misery and wretchedness, is very irksome and grievous. Again, long life added to prosperity maketh it so much the greater blessing. For a good thing the longer it continueth the better it is. If prosperity were but as a flower, soon gone, the very thought of the vanity thereof would much diminish the joy and comfort of it. But both of them joined together, do show that this is no small blessing which is promised. From the connexion of them both together, I observe that God so ordereth his favours as they appear to be true blessings, God makes his savours true blessings. Gen. 17. 19 tending indeed to the good of those upon whom he bestoweth them. Thus when God gave Abraham a son, he established his covenant with him, that this gift might be a true blessing. The like I might instance in all the children of promise, as Samson, Solomon, john Baptist, etc. So in other favours. When God added fifteen years to Hezekiahs' life, he also promised Isa. 38. 5, 6. & 39 8. him deliverance from his enemies, and peace, and truth all his days: And when God gave David a kingdom, he gave him 2 Sam. 7. 9 etc. great victories and long life, and established his kingdom to his posterity: so also dealt he with Solomon. But not to insist on any more particulars, excellently is this doctrine confirmed in the 28 Psalm. Thus God will show that in love he bestoweth even the temporal blessings which he giveth to his Saints, that accordingly they may esteem them, and that their hearts may be the more enlarged both to admire his goodness, and to be thankful for the same. This use we must make of those things which the Lord is 1. Use. pleased to bestow upon us, as of long life, good health, honour, peace, plenty, liberty, and all prosperity: we must receive and use them as God bestoweth them, namely as tokens of his favour: and thereby be the more stirred up to perform the duties he requireth of us, and not abuse them to his dishonour and our own hurt: but rather so as he may have honour, and we profit thereby. §. 109. Of God's high account of dutiful children. More particularly by this promise we may learn what high 2. Use. esteem, and great account God maketh of dutiful children, and of that obedience which they perform to their parents: which ought so much the more to provoke children to all obedience, if at least they have any care of God's favour, and of the tokens of his love. Oh consider this all ye that have parents to honour: consider how careful, how earnest God is every way by all means to draw you to obedience: he contents not himself to urge the equity of the point, the place of your parent, the charge that himself hath given, but most presseth your own profit: and that not only in hope for the time to come, but even in present fruition for this life: and that because we through our childishness are most affected with things sensible and present: dealing with us as a tender father who provideth not only a good calling, and a fair in heritance for his child, but giveth him also plums, pears, and such things as for the present he is delighted withal, the more to allure him. §. 110. Of children's doing good to themselves by honouring their parents. Children may further learn out of this promise, that in 3. Use. performing their duty they do good not only to their parents, but also to themselves: they procure their own welfare and long-life. What egregious fools than are disobedient children: they regard neither God, their parents, nor themselves, but deprive themselves of their eternal happiness, hinder their welfare, and shorten their days. Fitly hereupon I may apply to undutiful children these words of the Psalmist, Mark the obedient child, for the end of him is peace: Psal. 37 37, 38. but the rebellious shall be destroyed: he shall be cut off: and these of the wiseman, I know that it shall be well with the dutiful Eccl. 8. 12, 13. child, but it shall not be well with the disobedient, he shall not prolong his days: and these of the Prophet, Say ye to the obedient child, it shall be well with him, he shall eat the fruit of his doings, Isa. 3. 10, 11. but woe to the transgressor, it shall be ill with him. §. 111. Of parents doing good to their children by keeping them under obedience. Out of this promise parents may learn how to do good 4. Use. for their children, how to provide for their welfare, and long to preserve their life on earth (a thing whereunto most parents are naturally given, and whereof they are much desirous) namely by teaching children their duty, by keeping them under obedience: thus have they Gods promise to assure them, that it shall go well with their children, and that they shall live long. When parents are upon their deathbeds they may rest more securely upon this promise then upon great store of treasure laid up for them, and great revenues reserved for them. Many parents neglect themselves: they moil and toil, they cark and care, they pinch and spare, to leave their children store of wealth, thinking thereby to do good to their children, when as withal they too much cocker their children, give the reins unto them, and care not how little duty they perform. God's curse will lie upon all the store that is laid up for such children, as a fire to consume it all. Doth not daily experience verify the truth hereof? The judgements which are laid on some such children, do evidently manifest Gods just indignation against all. Let not rich men therefore think they have left their children well enough if they leave them a large portion, but rather if they have observed them to be obedient children: and if poor men's children be such, let them not fear but that it shall go well with them. It is said, that a good trade is better than house and land, but by virtue of this promise we may say that obedience in a child is better than trade and all: this is the trade of a child's Prou. 22. 6. way which parents should teach children. Wherefore as parents are desirous of their children's good, so they ought to be wise in procuring it, which is by teaching them this trade of obedience: and so they shall bring much comfort to themselves while they live, and good to their children after them. §. 112. Of the perpetuity of the substance of such things as in their circumstances respecting the jews are vanished. In laying down this particular promise, the Apostle in stead of the limitation thereof unto the jews in these words (in the land which the Lord thy God shall give thee) putteth a general word, which extendeth it to all nations, namely this (in the earth) whence I gather that The substance of these things which in some circumstances were Doctr. Substance of promises made to the jews still remaineth. after a peculiar manner restrained to the jews, remaineth in force to all Christians. The substance of this promise was, that it should go well with obedient children, while here on earth they lived, and in this welfare they should long live. The circumstance was, that in Canaan they should enjoy that blessing. Though Christians live not in Canaan, which is the circumstance, yet well it shall go with them, and long they shall live, which is the substance. Thus though the circumstance of God's covenant with Abraham (which was circumcision) be abolished, yet the substance (which is, to be our God, and the God of our seed) remaineth. This might further be exemplified in many hundred instances: for the substance of all the jewish sacrifices, and Sacraments, both ordinary, and extraordinary, of their Sabbaths, of their fasts, of their feasts, and the like, remain, though the circumstances, as shadows, be vanished away. Hence is it, that many promises made to them, are applied by the Apostles to Christians, as this, I will not fail thee, Heb. 13. 5. Act. 2. 39 nor forsake thee: and in general it is said, The promise to you and to your children, and to all that are afarra off. Hereby we may learn what use to make of the old Testament, Use. even of those promises and privileges which in some particular respects were appropriated to the jews: namely, by observing the substance, and distinguishing it from the circumstance; thus shall we find that to be true which the Apostle speaketh of all the things which were written afore time, namely, that they were written for our learning. In this respect Rom. 15. 4. the same Apostle saith of the things recorded of Abraham, they were not written for his sake alone: and again of the Rome 4. 23. things recorded of the Israelites, they are written for our admonition. 1 Cor. 10. 11. By this we may learn how to apply the preface to the ten Commandments, which mentioneth the deliverance of Israel out of the bondage of Egypt. Pray therefore for the spirit of illumination to discern betwixt substance and circumstance, in reading the old Testament especially. §. 113. Of the determined period of man's life. Having declared such orthodoxal points as this text affordeth, I will further note out two heretical positions, which our adversaries thence raise. One is of those, that to the dishonour of him whom God raised up to be a worthy instrument in dispelling the mist of Popery, which had much darkened the light of the Gospel, call themselves Lutherans: the other of Papists. The former is this, God hath not determined the set period of Hinc patescit humanae vitae terminum, non esse decreto simplici & absoluto constitutum, etc. Zach. Muthel. in hunc loc. & N. Heming. alijque. man's days, but it is in man's power to lengthen or shorten them: for if it were otherwise, say they, this and such like promises of long life were to no purpose, nor yet the contrary threatenings of shortening man's days. For full answer hereunto, I will first show, that the position itself is directly contrary to the current of Scripture, and then discover the unsoundness of their consequence. Touching the determined period of man's days, thus speaketh the Scripture: Is there not an appointed time to man on Man's time set. job 7. 1. earth? are not his days also as the days of an hireling? Note with what emphasis the point is set forth; even so, as if it were a point so clear, as none could doubt of it. Note also two metaphors here used, which do much clear the point: one taken from soldiers, the other from hired servants. That of soldiers is implied in the meaning of the original word translated appointed time, but properly signifieth him that hath 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 his time appointed for warfare, or the time itself so appointed: the other expressed. Now we know that these times are appointed to an hour: so is the time of man's life. In this respect job saith again, all the days of my appointed time will I job 14. 14. wait, etc. where he useth the same word that before in the same sense. To this purpose are these, and such like phrases frequently used in Scripture, determined days, number of days, job 14. 5. Eccles. 2. 3. job. 7. 30. hour, etc. Did not the Prophet expressly declare to Hezekiah that he should live just 15 years after his sickness? He could Isa. 38. 5. not have told it, if the Lord had not before set that period. Christ saith, our hairs are numbered, are not much more our Mat. 10. 30. & 6 27. days? Again he saith, who can add one cubit to his stature? Stat sua cuique dies, etc. Virg. Aenied. 10. Can then any add to his days? So evident is this point, that the heathen noted it. Touching their consequence (if a man's time be determined all the promises of long life are to no purpose) I answer, that God who hath set down the just time and period of man's life, hath also set down the means of attaining to that period. Now the time he hath kept secret to himself, the means he hath revealed to us. In regard of us therefore who know not the time appointed of the Lord, it may be said that by using such and such means we prolong our days, or by doing such and such things we shorten them. Now because these means only show them to be long, or short, God's decree remaineth firm and stable, and is not altered thereby: yet this work of lengthening or shortening is attributed to us, because we do what lieth in us thereto, and that freely without any compulsion. For God's decree though it cause a necessity in the event, yet it imposeth no constraint on the will of man, but leaveth it as free (in regard of the manner of working) as if there were no decree at all. And herein God's admirable wisdom is manifested, that notwithstanding his determined purpose of matters, man hath no ground of excuse to say he was forced to this or that. The knowledge of this determined period of man's life is of great use: for it teacheth us, 1. Wholly to submit ourselves to God: and to be prepared Uses to be made of the determined time of man's life. either soon to depart out of this world, or long to live in it, as God shall dispose of our time: nor desiring longer to live then God hath appointed: nor grieving to live so long as he hath appointed. 2. Not to fear the threats of any man, thereby to be drawn Dan. 3. 17, 18. from God. 3. To do Gods work while we have time, etc. job. 9 4. §. 114. Of reward promised to obedience, that it implieth no merit. The other heresy which Papists gather from this text, is Against merit. this, Man's obedience is meritorious. Answ. The reward here promised is no matter of wages and due desert, but of mere grace and favour. Of this error I have * Whole armour of God, Treat. 2. Part. 4. §. 7. on Ephes. 6. 14. elsewhere more largely spoken. §. 115. Of the connexion of Parent's duty with children's. EPHES. 6. 4. And ye fathers, provoke not your children to wrath: but bring them up in the nurture and admonition of the Lord. THe Apostle having urged children to perform their duties to their parents, he turneth his speech to parents, saying, AND ye fathers, etc. That copulative particle AND, joining an exhortation to parents, for performing their duties to the forenamed exhortation made to children, giveth us to understand, that Parents are as well bound to duty as children. Their duties 1. observ Parents bound to duties. indeed be different, yet (notwithstanding their superiority and authority over their children) they are bound to duty. All the directions and exhortations throughout the Scripture given unto parents, concerning their duty, and all the threatenings denounced, and judgements executed on parents for neglect of their duty, are pregnant proofs of this point. Though parents be over their children, and by them cannot be commanded, yet they are under God: and he it is who hath enjoined them their duty: so as they are bound thereunto, as they will answer it to their Father in heaven. The authority which parents have, is not so much for their own advancement, as for the better governing of their children, which being so, their very government is a duty. Object. In the moral Law the duty of children only is expressed. How parents duties are implied in the 5. Commandment. Answ. Parent's duty (as many others duties) is by just and necessary consequence implied, which is equivalent, and as much bindeth, as if it were expressed. It is thus implied. They who have honour, must carry themselves worthy of honour. Now the way to carry themselves worthy of honour, is to be careful in doing duty to them that honour them. This is so equal, as it needed not to be expressed. Wherefore let Ministers follow this pattern of the Apostle, 1. Use. Ministers must provoke parents to their duty. and carry an even hand towards all of all sorts: let them not be partial in laying all the burden of duty on children's necks, and none on parents: holding in children very straight, but leaving parents to their own will. Parents are flesh and blood as well as children, and as prone to transgress in their place, as children in theirs. Yea, Ministers ought of the two to be more earnest in urging parents to perform their duty, because they are under no such power and authority as children are. Fear of parent's authority keepeth children much in awe. There is no such thing to keep parents in awe. They will be more ready therefore to take the greater liberty, if by fear of God, and by a good conscience, they be not kept in compass. Now ye (o parents) as you look for honour, carry yourselves 2. Use. worthy of honour: as ye look for duty from your children, perform duty to them. Know that another day, even you shall be called to an account before the highest judge: your authority will then be no pretence to excuse, but an evidence to aggravate your fault. For you being elder in years, and more eminent in place, of more experience, and having a charge over your children, aught to be a light to show them the way, an example to allure them, that they seeing you careful and conscionable in performing your duty, may be the more provoked to perform theirs, or at least made ashamed of their neglect of duty. But if you be careless of your duty, how can ye expect duty at their hands? nay if by your ill example they have been made negligent, their blood shall be required at your hands. §. 116. Of the extent of these words, Fathers, Children. Though the word (Fathers) be here used, which properly 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. setteth forth natural parents, and of natural parents the male kind, yet (as in many other places) it is to be taken in a larger extent: even in as large as this word (children) was before, that so there may be a just and equal relation betwixt children Vers. 1. and parents: wherefore both sexes of natural parents are comprised under it, even mother as well as father, and they also who are in place of parents, whether by marriage as all sorts of fathers and mothers in Law, or by appointment, as all they who of right have the custody and charge of children, as Guardians, Tutors, and other like Governors: and so it is every way answerable to the word (parents) used in the first verse: and the word (children) is also here to be taken in the same extent, as it was there. §. 117. Of parents provoking children. The next phrase (provoke to wrath) is the exposition of one 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Greek word, which being a compound word, cannot by one English word be fully expressed: the best and nearest that I can think of is (exasperate.) The word signifieth an extremity in the use of authority: even too much austerity and severity, whereby children are provoked to wrath: which because it is a fault, it is here expressly forbidden (provoke not, etc.) In this word there is a trope: the effect is put for the cause: The Apostles meaning is, that parents should take such heed of their carriage toward their children, as they give them no occasion to be stirred up to wrath. Under this word than are forbidden Occasions of provoking children to wrath. all such things, as may kindle wrath in children, as too much austerity in carriage, sourness in countenance, threatening and reviling in words, too hard handling, too severe correction, too much restraint of liberty, too small allowance of things needful, with the like. Parents being flesh and blood are subject in this kind to abuse their authority: yea, even they who fall into the other extreme of too much indulgency and cockering of their children, are very prone to fall also into this extreme: as many who for the most part too much suffer their children without due restraint and correction to run into all riot, will sometimes on a sudden, like Lions, fly upon them, and after their own pleasure correct them, and so exceedingly provoke Heb. 12. 10. their children. Such as are most cockering, are most prone to provoke to wrath: for, 1. Such lest know how to keep a mean: one will sooner leap out of one extreme into another, then go from an extreme to the mean. 2. The children of such are soon provoked. Quest. Is it a thing lawful and justifiable in children to be provoked to wrath by their parents? Answ. * See Treat. 5. §. 31, 41. No. This prohibition intendeth no such thing: the Apostle hath here to do with parents: and instructeth them how to prevent such mischiefs as their children through their weakness may fall into. So as here only he showeth what is unlawful for parents, not what is lawful for children. Hence then by the way I observe that Parents must be so watchful over their carriage, as thereby they 2. Obser. make not their children to sin. If they do, they make their own sin the more heinous, and also they pull down upon their own pates a far more heavy vengeance, even the vengeance of their own sin, and the vengeance of their child's sin. For every parent is made a watchman over his child. If a watchman do not Ezec. 3. 18. what he can to hinder the sin of such as are under his charge, he pulls their blood on his own neck. What do they then that being watchmen, minister occasion of sin to them that are under their charge? §. 118. Of parents seeking the good of their children. That parents by avoiding the rock of provoking, fall not into the gulf of cockering, the Apostle addeth a BUT, which is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. as a stop unto them, and teacheth them that It is not sufficient for parents to prevent such mischief's a● 3. Obser. children may fall into, but they must also seek their good. All the precepts in Scripture charging parents to seek their children's good, prove the point. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt the affection which parents and strangers ought to bear toward children, and the duty which one and the other owe to them. Mere strangers ought not to provoke them: but parents ought moreover every way to seek their good. The main good which parents ought especially to seek after in the behalf of their children, is noted out in these words: Bring them up in the nurture and admonition of the Lord. The word translated (bring up) properly signifieth to feed 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. or nourish with all needful things; it is the same that is used before in the 5. chapter and 29. verse, and there translated nourisheth. Not unfitly might the proper signification of the 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Enutrite, Beza. word be here kept, as the best Latin translations, the French, and others have kept. This word joined with the others that follow, may seem Nourrissez. Fr. at first sight to be here placed only to make up the sense, as if he had thus said, nurture your child in the ways of God. But if the scope of the Apostle, and signification of the word be well weighed, we shall find that it further implieth a general duty, which nature itself teacheth parents, even this, that Parents ought to provide all needful things for their children: 4. observ Parents to provide all needful things for children. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. even such things as tend to the nourishing of their bodies, and preserving of their health and life: for this phrase (to translate it word for word) nourish them in discipline, or in instruction, is a concise speech, implying as much as if he had said, nourish and nurture them, or feed and instruct them. But the Apostle hath thus nearly and concisely joined them together, to show that Nurture and instruction is as needful and profitable, as food and apparel. §. 119. Of parents nurturing their children. 5. observ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. The word translated nurture, signifieth as well correction as instruction: as Heb. 12. 7. If ye endure chastening: and 2 Tim. 3. 16. The Scripture is profitable for instruction in righteousness. Both senses will here stand, and our English word (as well as the Greek) will bear both: for to nurture children, is as well to correct them, as to instruct them. Very fitly is this advice in this large acceptation inferred upon the former prohibition: for lest parents should thereupon take occasion to lay the reins upon their children's necks, and let them run whither they list, the Apostle hereby teacheth, that Parents, as they may not be too austere, so neither too remiss. 6. observ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. They must not provoke their children to wrath, yet they must keep them under discipline. The word translated nurture, according to the * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Instituere ut puerili aetati convenit. Greek notation thereof doth further set forth the mean betwixt the two forenamed extremes: for it noteth out such a discipline as befitteth a lad, or a young child: so as the thing itself, discipline, by instruction and correction keepeth from one extreme of remissness: the kind or manner of discipline being such as befitteth a child, keepeth from the other extreme of rigour and cruelty. Extremes on either side are dangerous and pernicious, and that to parent and child. For remissness will make children careless of all duty to God and parent: rigour will make them desperate. But virtue and safety consisteth in the mean betwixt both. §. 120. Of parents fixing precepts in their children's minds. This word (admonition) according to the * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, menti indere. notation thereof, hath a particular relation to the mind, and pointeth out an informing and instructing of it. It is taken either for the action of admonishing, (as Tit. 3. 10. reject an heretic a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. after the first and second admonition) or for the b In monitis. thing admonished, in which latter sense most do here take it: yet would I not have the former clean excluded, for according to the full meaning of the word, I take thus much to be intended. As parents deliver good precepts and principles to their children, 7. observ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. so they must be careful, by forcible and frequent admonitions, to fix and settle them in the mind of their children. c Deut. 6. 7. The Law expresseth as much by another metaphor which it useth, in a direction which it giveth to parents, saying, thou shalt whet or sharpen God's Laws upon thy children, that is, d Doctus inter Hebr. vocem 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 continuò loqui exponit, (i) inculcare, vel identidem repetere. Innuit studium & diligentiam qua pueris praecepta Dei inculcari debent. Uatabl. in Deut. 6. 7. vide Tr. 6. §. 42. thou shalt teach them diligently unto them. The more pains is taken in this kind, the less labour will be lost. That which at first is little heeded, by much urging and pressing will for ever be held, as a nail that at one blow scarce entereth, with many blows is knocked up to the head. § 121. Of adding information to discipline. The addition of this word admonition unto nurture, is not (as some take it) a mere explication of the same point, but also a declaration of a further duty, which is this: As parents by discipline keep their children under, so by information 8. Obser. they must direct them in the right way. Solomon doth both deliver the point, and also add a good reason to enforce it: for saith he, Train up a child in the way that he should go; there is the duty: and when he is old, he will not depart from it; there Pro. 22. 6. is the reason. Keeping a child under by good discipline, may make him dutiful while the father is over him: but well informing his understanding and judgement, is a means to uphold him in the right way so long as he liveth. lives 122. Of parents teaching their children the fear of God. The last word (of the Lord) intimateth the best duty that 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a parent can do for his child. Admonition of the Lord, declareth such principles as a parent hath received from the Lord, and learned out of God's word: such as may teach a child to fear the Lord, such as tend to true piety and religion: whence further I observe, that Parents must especially teach their children their duty to 9 Obser. God. Come children (saith the Psalmist) harken unto me, I will teach you the fear of the Lord. Of this particular more largely * Treat. 6. §. 34. hereafter. §. 123. Of the subjection which believing servants owe. Because there is yet another order in the family besides those which have been noted before, namely the order of Masters & servants, the Apostle prescribeth also unto them their duty. As he began with wives and children, in the two former orders, so here he beginneth with servants who are the inferiors, for the same reasons * §. 10. Why the Apostle is so copious in urging servants to their duty. before rendered. The Apostle is somewhat copious in laying forth the duties of servants, and in urging them to perform their duty; and that for two especial reasons: One in respect of those, whose masters were infidels: another in respect of those, whose masters were Saints. 1. Many servants there were in those days wherein the Seruus benevolentia prosequatur dominum, quamuis impium. Qui fidelem habet dominum, saluo eius dominio, diligat ut patrem. Conslit. Apost. li. 4. ca 12. Gal. 4. 28. Gospel was first preached to the Gentiles, that by the preaching thereof were converted, whose masters embraced not the Gospel: whereupon those servants began to conceit that they being Christians, ought not to be subject to their masters that were infidels. 2. Other servants there were whose Masters believed the Gospel as well as they: now because the Gospel taught, that there is neither bond nor free, but all are one in Christ jesus: they thought that they ought not to be subject to their master who was their brother in Christ. These two preposterous and presumptuous conceits doth the Apostle intimate, and expressly meet with in b 1 Tim. 6. 1, 2. another place. And because they had taken too deep rooting in the minds of many servants, the Apostle here in this place laboureth the more earnestly to root them out, and that by a thorough pressing upon their conscience that subjection wherein they are bound to their masters, as masters, whatsoever their disposition were. Hereof more * Treat. 7. §. 2, 3. afterwards. Here by the way, note three points. 1. The Gospel doth not free inferiors from that subjection 1. Obser. to men whereunto by the moral law they are bound. 2. Men are ready to turn the grace of God into liberty. 2. Obser. 3. As errors begin to sprout up in the Church, Ministers 3. Obser. must be careful to root them out. §. 124. Of the meaning of the fifth verse. EPHES. 6. 5. Servants be obedient to them that are your Masters according to the flesh, with fear and trembling in singleness of your heart, as unto Christ. THis title (Servants) is a general title, which may be applied 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. to all such as by any outward civil bond, or right, Origo vocabuli seruorum in Lat. lingua inde creditur ducta, quod hi qui iure belli possint occidi à victoribus cum seruabaxtur serui fiebant: à seruando appellati. Aug. de Ciu. Dei lib. 19 cap. 15. Uide ●ud Viu. ibid. owe their service to another: of what sex soever the persons themselves be: or of what kind soever their servitude is: whether more servile or liberal. Servile, as being borne servants, or sold for servants, or taken in war, or ransomed; For of old they were called servants, who being taken in war, were saved from death. Liberal, as being by voluntary contract made servants, whether at will, as some servingmen, journey men, and labourers; or for a certain term of years, as prentices, clerks, and such like. Wherefore whatsoever the birth, parentage, estate, or former condition of any have been; being Servants they must be subject, and do the duty of servants: the 4. Obser. Apostles indefinite title (servants) admitteth no exception of any. The other title (Masters) hath as large an extent comprising 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. What masters are meant. under it both sexes, Masters and Mistresses: and of these all sorts, great and mean, rich and poor, strong and weak, faithful and infidels, true professors and profane; superstitious, idolatrous, heretical persons, or the like: so as No condition or disposition of the master exempteth a servant 5. observ from performing duty to him. Among other degrees and differences, most especially let it be noted that both sexes, mistresses as well as masters, are here meant, that so the duties which are enjoined to be performed to masters may answerably be performed to mistresses (so far as they are common to both) and that both by maidservants, and also by men-servants that are under mistresses. In family's mistresses are as ordinary as masters, and therefore I thought good to give an especial item of this. Under this word (obey) are comprised all those duties which 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. servants owe to their masters: it is the same word that was before used in the first verse: and it hath as large an extent here being applied to servants, as it had there being applied to children: It showeth that The rule of servants (as servants) is the will of their Master. 6. observ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. This clause (according to the flesh) is by some referred to the action of obedience, as if it were added by the Apostle to show what kind of obedience servants owe to their masters, namely a civil, corporal obedience in temporal things, opposed to that spiritual obedience which is due to God alone. Ans. Though distinction may be made betwixt that service which is due to God, and that which is due to man, yet this application of this phrase in this place may give occasion to servants to think that if they perform outward service to their masters all is well, they owe no inward fear, or honour, which is an error that the Apostle doth here mainly oppose against. But because this clause (according to the flesh) is immediately Why masters are said to be after the flesh. Dominis carnalibus. vet. transl. joined to Masters, I refer it to the persons to whom obedience is to be given, and so take it as a description of them, as if he had said, to fleshly or bodily Masters. The Apostle thus describeth masters for these reasons. 1. For distinction: to show he means such masters as are of the same mould that servants are: so distinguishing them from God who is a spirit: thus doth the Apostle distinguish betwixt fathers of our flesh, and father of spirits. Heb. 12. 9 2. For prevention: left servants might say, our masters are flesh and blood as we are, why then should we be subject to them? To meet with that conceit, the Apostle expressly saith that obedience is due to masters after the flesh. 3. For mitigation of their servitude: for their masters being flesh, they have no power but over the bodies of their servants: their spirits are free from them: in which respect the Apostle calleth Christian servants the Lords freemen. 1 Cor. 7. 22. 4. For consolation against their present condition, which is but for a time, because their masters are flesh: whatsoever is according to the flesh is of no long continuance, but hath his date. 5. For direction: to show in what things especially that obedience which properly belongeth to a master consisteth: namely in civil, outward things: for every one must be served according to his nature. As God being spirit, must in spirit be served: so man being flesh must in flesh be served. Now this service in the flesh is not opposed to sincere and upright service, but to spiritual. Thus by consequence that may be intended, which some would have principally to be meant. Object. Master's may command spiritual things, namely to worship God, and after such and such a manner. Answ. Of his own head he cannot command such things: there must be an higher warrant for the doing of them then the commandment of a man. A main point here intended is this, that Masters are not to be lightly respected because they be after the 7. observ flesh: that is, weak, frail, of short continuance, of the same nature that servants are. Lest upon the forenamed description of masters, servants Servants fear of their masters. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. should take to themselves too much heart, the Apostle annexeth this clause (with fear and trembling, etc.) which hath relation to the manner of their obedience. No slavish fear is here meant, as if servants should live in continual dread, or tremble at the sight of their masters: a servant by the tyranny of some master may be brought so to do: but to do so is no Christian duty: that which the Apostle here requireth is a duty belonging to all Christian servants towards all sorts of masters, even the mildest that be. It is therefore an awful respect of the authority of a master, and a dutiful reverence to his person which is here required: and it is opposed to sauciness, malapartness, boldness, stoutness, answering again, murmuring and muttering against their masters, and other like vices. To show how foul those faults be, and what great respect servants ought to bear to their masters, these two words (fear, and trembling) are joined together: which in Difference betwixt fear and trembling. effect declare one and the same thing: but yet for explication sake they may be distinguished. For * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Vers. 33. Fear signifieth a reverend respect of one: it is that which in the former Chapter was required of wives: though the thing in general which is required of wives and servants is the same, yet the particular manner and measure of a servant's fear is far different. * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Trembling is more proper to servants: it is a dread of punishment: and it is required of servants, not as if they should do all things simply for fear of punishment, but because God hath put a staff into a master's hands, servants must tremble at that power their masters have, and fear to provoke them to strike. To this purpose saith the Apostle to subjects in regard of the power which a Magistrate hath, be afraid, for Rom. 13. 3, 4. he beareth not the sword in vain. Hence learn that The authority of a Master ought to strike a servant's heart with 8. Obser. dread. The dread which servants ought to have of their master's power and authority maketh many to care for no more than to avoid their master's displeasure: wherefore the Apostle addeth a further degree of a servant's subjection, namely that 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. it be in singleness of heart, that is, honest, entire, upright: for this is opposed to hypocrisy, dissimulation, and fraud: yea of YOUR heart, not another's: another in the simplicity of his heart may think you do a thing better than you do, by a charitable construction of every thing, but if in singleness of your own heart you do it, it will in truth be as it appeareth to be. So as All the services which servants perform to their masters must 9 Obser. be done in truth and uprightness. The Apostle gives this direction to Christians who have to do not only with masters according to the flesh (who only see the outward appearance) but also with the master of spirits 1 Sam. 16. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. who looketh on the heart: and therefore also he added this clause, as unto Christ: teaching servants thereby that Servants in their obedience to their masters, must approve 10. observ themselves to jesus Christ as well as to their masters after the flesh. This phrase (as unto Christ) implieth as much as that (in the Lord) whereof we spoke * §. 96. before. §. 125. Of the meaning of the sixth verse. EPHES. 6. 6. Not with eye service, as men-pleasers, but as the servants of Christ, doing the will of God from the heart. THis and the verse following are added as a further explication of the last clause of the former verse. It should seem that servants, howsoever they might in some measure perform the main duty of obedience, yet failed exceedingly in the manner of performing it. Because masters were but men, masters according to the flesh, who neither had power over the heart, nor could discern the disposition thereof, servants thought they had well done their duty, if they had outwardly performed what their master required: now to root out this bitter weed, and to reform this corrupt conceit, the Apostle is more large in clearing the point of sincere and upright service: therefore, the more fully to express his mind and meaning, first he layeth down the vice contrary to the foresaid sincerity (for contraries laid together do much set forth one Opposita iuxta se posita magis elucescunt. another) and then returneth more distinctly to declare the virtue. Whence note Those points are most to be urged upon people, wherein they 11. Obser. most fail. The vice here noted to be contrary to sincere service is termed 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. eye-service. Our English word doth properly and fitly answer the original, both in the notation, and in the true sense and meaning of it. It implieth a mere outward service only What eye-service is. to satisfy the eye of man: And that is twofold, Hypocritical, Parasitical. Hypocritical service is that which is merely in show: when that is pretended to be done which indeed is not done; as if a servant should come from his master's work all in a sweat, as if he had taken extraordinary pains therein, whereas he hath done nothing at all, but otherwise made himself to sweat, or only made a show of sweat. Parasitical service is that which is indeed done, but in presence of the master: such servants are they who will be very diligent and faithful in doing such things as their masters see, or shall come to their notice: but otherwise behind their masters back, and in things which they hope shall never come to his knowledge, they will be as negligent, and unfaithful as if they were no servants. Yet to satisfy their masters, and to soothe them, they will do any thing though never so unlawful. From this vice thus discovered note, that God requireth more than that which may satisfy man's eye. 11. Obser. God's eye is a piercing eye, and can see much foulness, where to man's eye all things seem very fair: so as they much deceive themselves who think all is well because no man can say to them, black is thine eye. Those that content themselves with doing eye-service the Men pleasers. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Apostle here termeth men-pleasers: which title he giveth unto them for two especial reasons. 1. To show the ground of eye-service: which is because all their care is to please their master, who is a man: for well they know that man can see but the outward show, or that which is done before his face. 2. To show the heinousness of that sin: for it is tainted with Atheism, in that the man guilty thereof hath no respect to God: but preferreth his master before God: he careth not to please God so he please his master: for this is the emphasis of that word (men-pleasers) It is spoken in opposition to God, as the Apostle implieth in another place, saying, If I yet pleased Gal. 1. 10. men, I should not be the servant of Christ. Object. How can it be so heinous a sin to be men-pleasers, Tit. 2. 9 when the Apostle adviseth servants to please their masters in all things? 1. Answ. The advice there given is not simply to please, but to * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. please well, as the original word properly signifieth, and the King's translators have fitly turned it. 2. Answ. That general particle (all things) must be restrained How masters are to be pleased in all things. to the duties of a servant, and to all the parts of obedience, which he there mentioneth in the words immediately going before. Servants therefore must please their masters in all things that their masters have power to require at their hands, and they are bound to do. Men-pleasing, here spoken of, is opposed to pleasing of God. Pleasing of men there mentioned is subordinate to our pleasing of God: here to please men is to soothe them up in every thing good or evil: there to please them is conscionably to obey them in every lawful thing. Here is condemned a seeking to please men in the first place, and that only, and wholly in every thing, whereas we ought first to seek God's approbation, than the testimony of a good conscience, and after these a pleasing of men, but in, for, and under God. Hence then observe that A servant must not wholly give himself to sooth and please 12. observ his master: for so may he in many things highly displease Almighty God. To avoid the two forenamed sins, eye-service, and men-pleasing, the Apostle giveth an excellent direction in these words, as the servants of Christ doing the will of God from the heart, where we may observe Servants of Christ to be opposed to men-pleasers, and doing Gods will from the heart to eye-service. Servants of Christ, are they who know that their masters are in 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Christ's place, bear his image, have their authority from him, and are under him: so as in serving their masters they serve Who are servants of Christ. Christ: and so far as they may serve both together, they will: but if they prove contrary masters, and thereupon one of necessity must be left, than they will cleave unto the highest master, which is Christ: and in this respect they are called the Lords freemen, 1. Cor. 7. 22. Thus we see how a servant may Quo pacto servus non est servus? Cum propter Deum omnia facit. Chrys. in 1 Cor. 7. hom. 19 be no servant, if he do all things for the Lord. From this opposition betwixt men-pleasers and servants of Christ, note that They who in all things give themselves to please men are no servants of Christ. That we may the better know who are servants of Christ, 13. observ the Apostle addeth a description of them in these words (doing the will of God from the heart.) Christ's will is God's will: for as Christ is God, the father's will and his is all one: as he is man he wholly ordereth his will by his fathers, he seeketh not joh. 5. 30. his own will, but the will of the father that sent him. This description of a servant of Christ the Apostle addeth partly as a direction to servants to teach them how in serving their masters, they may be servants of Christ, (namely, in having an eye to God's word, whereby his will is revealed both for the matter and manner of all things which they do) and partly as a motive to persuade them to be content with their place, and cheerfully to do their duty, because so is the will of God. God's will is that which must direct and settle every one in the 14. observ things which they do: for Gods will is the rule of that which is right. Every thing is very right which he willeth: and nothing is right that swerveth from his will. To put a difference betwixt Christ and other masters, and to show that he looketh not (as man doth) upon the outward appearance, but beholdeth the heart, the Apostle annexeth this clause (from the heart.) And it declareth that A good thing must be well done. To do that which is God's 15. observ will, commended by his word, is for substance a good thing: to do it from the heart, is the right manner of doing it: That which being good is done after a right manner, is well done. §. 126. Of the meaning of the seventh verse. EPHES. 6. 7. With good will doing service as to the Lord and not to men. IN this verse the Apostle doth yet again inculcate the forenamed point concerning servants manner of obeying their masters, and their care therein to approve themselves to their highest master: whence observe that Matters needful and weighty are again and again to be pressed. 16. observ This is a needful point, because servants exceedingly fail therein: and a weighty point it is, because all the comfort and benefit of service consisteth in God's approbation. But the former point is not here merely and barely repeated, but so set down as other good directions are afforded to servants What it is to serve with good will. for their manner of obedience. 1. To serve with good will, is somewhat more than with singleness of heart. For it further implieth 1. A readiness and cheerfulness in doing a thing; a doing it with a good mind, as the notation of the Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. showeth. 2. A desire and endeavour that their masters may reap profit and benefit by their service: whereby they show that they bear a good will, and good mind to their masters. In setting down servants duties, the Apostle useth another word then before in the fifth verse, namely this (doing service) 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. whereby he showeth that a servant's place and duty is of a more abject and inferior kind than the place and duty of a child or a wife: the former word ( a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. obey) was common to all: this word ( b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. doing service) is proper to servants: and the very title of a c 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. servant, is derived from thence. Hence note that Though wives and children be inferiors as well as servants, yet 17. observ may not servants look for such privileges as they have. Another manner of subjection must be performed by servants. The clause annexed (as to the Lord) is in effect the same 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. with that in the 5. verse (as to Christ) for by the Lord he here meaneth The Lord Christ. But it is added to meet with a secret Objection. For if servants should say, You require us to serve Object. our masters with good will, but what if they be hardhearted and regard not our good will, but pervert our good mind? The Apostle Answ. giveth them this answer, Look not so much to men and their reward, as to God and his reward: serve men in and for the Lord, even as if you served God: so shall not your service be in vain. The inference of the eighth verse upon this, sheweth that this is it which the Apostle here intendeth. Learn therefore that An eye is to be cast upon God even in those duties which we perform 18. observ to men: and that both for approbation and reward from God. The negative clause which followeth in these words (and not to men) is not simply to be taken (for then would it thwart the main scope of the Apostle in this place) but comparatively in relation to God, and that in two respects. 1. That service be not done only to men. 2. That service be not done to men in and for themselves. Service must be done to God as well as men: yea In that service 19 observ which we do to men, we must serve God. Men must be served for the Lords sake, because the Lord hath commanded it, because they bear the Lords image, and stand in his stead: in the Lord, and under the Lord. From this large declaration of the manner of doing service Difference betwixt servants of men, and of Christ. to masters note the difference betwixt such servants as are servants of men, and such as are servants of Christ. 1. They do all to the eye. These all from the heart. 2. They seek to please men. These do the will of God. 3. They do their service discontentedly. These cheerfully. 4. They do all upon self-love. These with good will. §. 127. Of the meaning of the eight verse. EPHES. 6. 8. Knowing that whatsoever good thing any man doth, the same shall he receive of the Lord whether he be bond or free. GReat is the ingratitude of many masters: they will exact Why servants are put in mind of God's reward. all the service that a poor servant possibly can do, but slenderly recompense his pains: yea, it may be, very evilly reward the same, not affording competent food, clothing, lodging, but frowns, checks, and blows. Now to uphold servants in such straits, and to encourage them to do their duty whether their masters regard it or no, the Apostle in this verse laboureth to raise up their minds to God: and to show unto them that he regardeth them, and will sufficiently reward them, so as Servant's labour shall not be in vain in the Lord. To press 20. Obser. this encouragement the more upon them, he setteth it down as a thing granted by all, so clear as none of them can be ignorant thereof (Knowing) as if he had said, ye all well enough 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. know that what I now say is most true: hence note that God's respect of faithful servants is so well known, as none that 21. Obser. have any understanding can be ignorant thereof. The Apostles argument is drawn from the general to a particular, A genere ad speciem. and the generality is noted in the thing done (whatsoever) and in the person that doth it (any man.) But because the generality of the thing might be too far stretched, he addeth this limitation (good) and because the generality of the person might be too much restrained, he addeth this explication (whether bond or free.) This distinction is used because in those days many servants were bondmen and bondwomen. Now the Apostles argument may thus be framed: Every one of what estate and degree soever he be, shall be rewarded of God for every good thing he doth, be it great or small. Therefore every servant shall be rewarded of God for every good service. The recompense promised is set forth under a concise speech (the same shall he receive) meaning that he shall receive 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a reward for the same: that phrase hath relation to the crop which an husbandman receiveth of the corn he sowed, which is of the same kind he sowed: m 1 Cor. 15. 38. the seed being wheat, the crop is of wheat: the n 2 Cor. 9 6. seed being plentifully sowed, the crop will be plentiful: to the same purpose saith this Apostle in another place, whatsoever a man soweth o 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. that shall he also Gal. 6. 7. reap. Now to apply this, servants that by their faithful service bring honour and glory to God, shall again receive honour and glory. If they ask of whom they shall receive it, the Apostle expressly answereth, Of the Lord: for it is the Lord that 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. said, p 1 Sam. 2. 30. Them that honour me will I honour. God will not forget them, though their masters may. From this verse thus opened, I gather these particular observations, concerning servants. 1. Servant's may and aught to apply unto themselves general 22. Obser. promises made to Christians. Otherwise this general argument of the Apostle is to little purpose in this place. 2. A Christian may be a bondslave: for the Apostle directeth this encouragement to Christians, among whom he presupposeth 23. Obser. some to be slaves, opposing them to freemen, who also were servants. 3. Faithful service performed to men is a good thing: for the 24. Obser. good things which servants especially do is in their service. 4. As God accepteth not men because they are free, so neither 25. Obser. rejecteth he them because they are bond. It is not the person, but the work that he regardeth. 5. The faithful service of servants is as good seed sown: it 26. Obser. will bring forth a good crop. The metaphor here intimated implieth as much. 6. God is honoured by the faithful service of servants: this is 27. Obser. intimated by the application of God's reward to them, for God honoureth none but them which honour him. §. 128. Of the connexion of master's duties with servants. EPHES. 6. 9 And ye masters do the same things unto them, forbearing threatening: knowing that your master also is in heaven: neither is there respect of persons with him. TO the duties of servants the Apostle adjoineth the duties of masters, saying, AND ye masters: whence learn that Masters are as well bound to duty as servants. A like doctrine was noted from the connexion of parents' duties with children's: there you may see this general further amplified, 1. Obser. §. 115. 1. God's law requireth as much: for it expressly enjoineth many duties to masters (as in the eighth treatise following we shall see.) 2. So doth also the law of nature which hath tied master and servant together by a mutual and reciprocal bond, of doing good, as well as of receiving good. 3. The law of nations requireth also as much: For in all nations where ever there was any good government, and where wise, and good laws were made, particular laws of the duties of masters have been made. 4. The law of equity doth so also. One good deserveth another good: therefore the Apostle saith to masters, give unto your servants that which is just and equal. Col. 4. 1. Now let masters take notice hereof: and know that God the great Lord of all hath made this relation betwixt master and servant, and hath set each of them in their several and distinct places for the mutual good of one another, so as servants are no more for the good of masters, than masters are for the good of servants. Wherefore, as they look for duty, let them perform duty: if servants fail in their duty, let masters see if they themselves be not the cause thereof, by failing in theirs. Their authority will be no excuse before Christ, but a means to aggravate their fault, and increase their condemnation: for the greater the talon is, the more diligence is expected, and the straighter account shall be exacted. §. 129. Of the meaning of this phrase, Do the same things. These two titles (Masters, Servants) are so taken here as they were * §. 124. before in the fifth verse. All the duties of masters are comprised under this phrase, do the same things: which at first sight may seem to be somewhat 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. strange: for may some say, The things which servants must do are these, to fear, to obey, to do service, with the like, and are masters to do the same things? Answ. 1. These words are not to be referred to those particular duties which are proper to servants, but to those general rules of equity which are common to masters as well as servants; namely, that in their several places, with singleness of heart, as unto Christ, not with eye service as men pleasers, but as the servants of Christ they do the will of God from the heart. 2. Those words may be referred to the eight verse, the verse going immediately before, which layeth down a general rule for all men in their several places to do the good things of their places. Now then as servants must have an eye to their places to do the good things thereof, so masters must do the same things: that is, they must have an eye to their places, to do the good things thereof. 3. Those words may be taken without reference to any former words, and expounded of a mutual, reciprocal, and proportionable duty that ought to pass betwixt master and servant: not in the particulars, as if the same duties were to be performed by each of them, for that were to overthrow the order and degrees which God hath set betwixt master and servant, to cross God's ordinance, and infer contradiction: but in general, that duties are to be performed of each to other: in which respect the Apostle said * §. 3. before of all sorts, superiors, and inferiors, Submit yourselves one to another. And thus by this phrase the doctrine before mentioned is confirmed, that Masters are as well bound to duty as servants. None of these answers thwart another, but all of them may well be admitted, and all of them well stand together. They all imply a common equity betwixt masters and servants, but no equality: mutual duties, but diverse and distinct duties, appertaining to their several places. Compare with this text, that which the Apostle himself hath more plainly and fully noted (Col. 4. 1.) and we shall observe him to expound his own meaning, for that which here he implieth under this phrase (the same things) that he expresseth there under these two words, just, equal: whereof we shall * Treat. 8. §. 20, 44. hereafter more distinctly speak. Purposely doth the Apostle enfold masters duties under this general phrase (the same things) to prevent a secret objection raised from the eminency and superiority of masters above servants, which maketh them think, that servants are only for the use of masters, and that masters are no way tied to their servants. But if in the general masters must do the same things, than they are for their servants good, as well as servants for theirs. theirs 130. Of masters forbearing threatening. The Apostle in these words (forbearing threatening) doth 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. not simply forbid all manner of threatening, but only prescribe a moderation thereof: and * Or, moderating. so much have the King's translators well expressed in the margin against this Text. Threatening is a duty which, as occasion serveth, masters ought to use, and that to prevent blows. But men in authority are naturally prone to insult over their inferiors, and to think that they cannot show their authority but by austerit ie: for which reason the Apostle dehorteth husbands from a Col. 3. 19 bitterness, and parents from b Ephes. 6. 4. provoking their children to wrath. Besides, the * See Treat. 8. §. 14. Gentiles and Heathen thought that they had an absolute power over servants, and that of life and death: whereupon the Roman Emperors made laws to restrain that rigour: for they would use their servants like beasts. Now that Christian masters should not be of the same mind, the Apostle exhorteth them to forbear threatening. Hence note that Authority must be moderated and kept in compass: else will 2. Obser. Authority to be kept in compass. it be like a swelling river without banks and walls. Threatening is here put for all manner of rigour, whether in heart, look, words, or actions: for it is usual in Scripture to put one instance for all of the same kind. Forbearing, implieth a restraint of all manner of excess, as 1. In time and continuance: when there is nothing but continual threatening upon every small and light occasion. 2. In measure; when threatening is too fierce, and violent, so as it maketh the heart to swell again, and as it were fire to come out of the eyes, and thunder out of the mouth, and the body to shake in every part thereof. 3. In execution; when every vengeance once threatened shall surely be put in execution, though the party that caused the threatening be never so sorry for his fault, and humble himself, and promise amendment, and give good hope thereof. Woe were it with us the servants of the high God, if he should so deal with us. Here note that men may exceed in doing a bounden duty: and 3. Obser. Excess in duty not good. so turn a needful virtue into an hurtful vice: great respect therefore must be had to the manner of doing good and lawful things. Yet further for the extent of this prohibition, we are to know that under the vice forbidden the contrary virtues are commanded, as mildness, gentleness, patience, long suffering, with the like. §. 131. Of master's subjection to a greater master. The latter part of this verse containeth a reason to enforce the directions in the former part. The reason in sum layeth down that subjection wherein masters are under God. A point whereof none of them could be ignorant, and therefore he thus setteth it down, knowing: for, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. All men know that there is an higher than the highest on earth. 4. observ The light of nature revealeth as much, no Pagan, much less Christian, can be ignorant thereof. In that speaking to masters he telleth them that they have a master, thereby he giveth them to understand, that They which are in authority, are also under authority: masters 5. observ 1 Tim. 6. 15. Gen. 50. 19 have a master. For God is Lord of Lords, Master of masters. In this respect saith joseph a great Governor, am not I under God? These two little particles (even your, or your also) add some 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. emphasis: having reference to servants, as if he had said, as well your master, as your servant's master. Some Greek copies, for more perspicuity, thus read it (both your and their master) 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the sense is all one which way soever we read it: It showeth that in relation to God, Masters and servants are in the same subjection, and under a 6. observ Matth. 23. 8. & 18. 28. like command. There is one master, even Christ: and all men whosoever are brethren, fellow-servants. §. 132. Of God's being in heaven. That great Master, under whom all masters on earth are, is here said to be in heaven, the more to commend and set forth his dignity and authority: and to make masters to stand in the more awe of him: To like purpose David having set forth God Psal. 2. 4, 10, 11. sitting in the heavens, inferreth this exhortation unto the great Commanders on earth, Be wise now therefore, o ye Kings, be instructed, ye judges of the earth: Serve the Lord with fear, and rejoice with trembling. Object. This placing of God in heaven, maketh such as fear not God the more insolent and secure: for they will be ready to think and say, How doth God know? can he judge thorough the job 22. 13, 14. dark cloud? Thick clouds are a covering to him that he seeth not, and he walketh in the circuit of he aven? Answ. 1. The Apostle wrote to Christian masters, who thought better of God than such Atheists did. 2. The placing of God in heaven doth not bound him within the compass thereof: for c 1 King. 8. 27. the heaven, and the heaven of heavens cannot contain him. d jer. 23. 23. He filleth heaven and earth. e Matth. 5. 34, 35. Though heaven be his throne, yet the earth also is his footstool. But because the Lord doth most manifest his glory in heaven, and from heaven, therefore * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. by an excellency is he said to be in heaven: and that in three especial respects. 1. To show that there is no proportion betwixt him and earthly masters, be they never so great. For as the heaven is higher than the earth, so is God more excellent, yea infinitely more excellent than any man. Who is like unto the Lord our God Psal. 113. 5. who dwelleth on high? There is no such difference betwixt masters and servants on earth. 2. To show that he hath his eyes continually on all his servants: he seeth every thing that they do, as one placed above others seeth all that are under him. g Psal. 102. 19 From heaven doth the Lord behold the earth. h & 33. 13. The Lord looketh from heaven, he beholdeth all the sons of men. i Prou. 15. 3. The eyes of the Lord are in every place, beholding the evil and the good. So as this phrase noteth the clean contrary to that which was before objected by wicked Atheists. 3. To show that he is Almighty: able both to recompense his faithful servants (whereupon David saith, Unto thee lift I Psal. 123. 1. up mine eyes, o thou that dwellest in the heavens) and also to execute vengeance on those that are unfaithful to God, and cruel to their servants (whereupon saith Solomon, if thou seest oppression Eccles. 5. 8. &c. marvel not: for he that is higher than the highest regardeth.) From this place of God (in heaven) we learn these lessons. 1. The eye of faith is needful to behold God withal, for heaven 7. observ Heb. 11. 27. is too high for any bodily eye to pierce into. But by Faith did Moses see him who is invisible. 2. Though masters had none on earth above them, yet is there 8. observ one higher than they. There is a master in heaven. 3. They who cannot be heard on earth, have yet one to appeal 9 Obser. unto. There is a master in heaven. 4. The command under which earthly masters are, is far 10. observ greater than that which they have: for their commander is in heaven. §. 133. Of God's having no respect of persons. The Apostle further addeth of God the great master of all, that with him there is no respect of persons. The Hebrew word used to set forth this point signifieth a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 a face: so doth also the Greek word here translated * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. person: it signifieth both face and person. Now we know that the face of a man is outward, and that which of all other parts maketh him most amiable in another's eye. It is opposed to that which is inward, even the heart: in which respect it is said that the Lord seeth not as 1 Sam. 16. 7. man seeth, for man looketh on the outward appearance, but the Lord looketh on the heart. Here by a Synecdoche, face or person is put for every outward quality, state, or condition which maketh one to be preferred before another in man's approbation, as beauty, comeliness, stature, wealth, honour, authority, and the like. Now in that God receiveth not, or respecteth not persons, it showeth that God preferreth not any one before another for any the forenamed outward respects, or any other like to them. Elihu plainly expoundeth this phrase in these words, he accepteth not the person of princes, nor regardeth the job. 34. 19 rich more than the poor. The phrase is taken from them that sit in thrones of judgement, where their eyes should be blinded, that they may not see the face or person of those that are brought before them: but only hear the cause. This properly is here noted of God, to meet with a vain conceit of many masters, who though they know that God is their master as well as their servant's master, yet think that God will not call them so straight to account, but will suffer and tolerate them, because they are of a higher rank, and in a better condition than servants: But by this phrase the Apostle showeth that To God all are alike: he putteth no difference betwixt any. 11. Obser. He will show favour to the meanest, as well as to the greatest: he will take vengeance of the greatest as well as of the meanest. Many good lessons may be learned from hence: as among other, these, 1. The poorest and meanest that be may have as free access to God as the wealthiest and greatest: and their sure shall be as soon received. 2. The great ones on earth, have as great cause to fear the revenging hand of God for any sin, as mean ones. 3. It becometh magistrates and all in authority to carry themselves impartially towards all that are under them: for they are in God's room. Respect of persons is the cause of all that injustice and wrong which magistrates do. 4. It becometh ministers to be faithful in all God's house, and with an even hand to sow the seed of God's word, and to keep themselves pure from the blood of all men: for they are Gods stewards and ambassadors; and therefore they must have no respect of persons. The second Treatise. PART I. Of Husband and Wife, who are so to be accounted. §. 1. Of those who may seek to be married. Having in the former treatise laid down the foundation of all domestical duties, by expounding the words of the Apostle, I purpose now distinctly to lay them forth in order: beginning with the first and chiefest couple in the family, Man and Wife. Here we are first to speak of the persons who are to be accounted true and lawful husband and wife: and then of the duties which they owe each to other. So as this Treatise consisteth of two parts. 1. The first declareth, who are man and wife. 2. The second noteth out those common mutual duties which they owe one to another. First of the first. Husband and wife are they who are rightly joined together Who are husband and wife. by the bond of marriage. * See Treat. 1. §. 82. & 84. Whereby two are made one flesh. For the better clearing of this point, we will consider both the parties that may be so nearly joined together, and also the manner how they are rightly joined in so firm an unity. About the parties we are to search, 1. Who may seek a mate for marriage. 2. What kind of mate is to be taken. 1. All they who are able without inevitable danger to their Who may marry. yoke fellow to perform the essential duties of marriage, may be married. Out of this proposition arise three questions to be discussed. 1. Who are to be accounted able? 2. What danger is inevitable? 3. Whether marriage be free for all but such? §. 2. Of ripeness of years in them that are to be married. 1. They are to be accounted able who have * Ephebi. Vt iustas nuptias contrahant, sint masculi puberes, foeminae viripotentes. justin. Instit. l. 1. tit. 10. past the flower of their age, and are not by defect of nature, or any other occasion made impotent. 1. Ripeness of years is absolutely necessary for consummating a just and lawful marriage: wherefore as God at first, made Adam of full age, so when he sought out a wife for him, he made her of full age too: he made her a woman, not a child. Gen. 2. 22. 1 Cor. 7. 36. Where the Apostle adviseth parents to take care for the marriage of their children, he putteth in this proviso, if they pass the flower of their age. Childhood is counted the flower of age. While the flower of the plant sprouteth, the seed is green, unfit to be sown. Quest. How long lasteth the flower of age? Answ. a justin. Instit. l. 1. tit. 22. Second part of Reports of Cases. 35. Hen. 6. fol. 41. b. The civil law, and common law also, set down twelve years for the flower of a females age, and fourteen, of a males; which is the least: for before those years they can have no need of marriage, nor yet are well fit for marriage, so as if they forbear some years longer, it will be much better for the parties themselves that marry, * Est invenum coniugium incommodum liberorum procreationi. Cum enim in omnibus animantibus imperfecti sunt iuniorum partus, ac multo etiam magis foeminarum, id etiam fiat in hominibus necesse est. Arist. Pol. lib. 7. for the children which they bring forth, for the family whereof they are the head, and for the common wealth whereof they are members. Note the ages of the Kings of Israel and judah when they were first married, and we shall find few of them to be under twenty, and those few, not above one or two years under: and yet of all sorts of people the Kings did use to marry the soon, that so they might have heirs betimes. Object. b 1 Chr. 22. 5. & 29. 1. Solomon was but a child when he came to the crown, and yet c 2 Chro. 12. 13. he had then a child of a year old at least. Answ. He was said to be a child not simply, but comparatively, d 1 King. 2. 22. in relation to his other brothers which were elder than he, & e & 3. 7. in regard of that great work he was to undertake. In the time of his reign he is saidto be f 1 King. 11. 4. old: which could not be if he had been in years a child when he began to reign: for he reigned but forty years. 2. Object. Ahaz was but twenty year old when he began to reign, and reigned but sixteen years, and yet when he died Hezekiah his son was five and twenty year old, 2 Chro. 28. 1. & 29. 1. by which computation Ahaz had a child when he was but eleven, or twelve year old at most. 1. Answ. Some say that this was extraordinary, and render this reason, Ahaz so young a father as Elizabet an old mother, Broughton in his Consent of Script. should have hoped in Emmanuel of a virgin. 2. Answ. The beginning of that reign when Ahaz was but twenty year old, is to be referred to jotham his father; for Ahaz was twenty year old when he (namely jotham) began to reign: as m 2 Chro. 36. 9 jehoiachin was eight year old, when he (namely his father jehoiachim) began to reign: for jehoiachin was n 2 King. 24. 8. eighteen, when he himself began to reign. Object. jotham was but o 2 Chro. 27. 1. twenty and five year old when he began to reign, how then could Ahaz his son at that time be twenty? Answ. jotham was five and twenty year old when his father Vzziah was struck with leprosy, from which time he 2 Chro. 26. 21. reigned as King even in his father's life time. But after his father was dead, the kingdom was established to him alone Parent's sin in marrying children under age. after a more solemn manner; in which respect it is said that then he began to reign: and then was his son Ahaz twenty year old, jotham himself being about forty. Contrary to the forenamed fitness of age is the practice of Puella dum ei aetas matura non est, nulli dari vel promitti debet. Aug. epist. 233. Matrimonium contractum verum non est si impubes fuerit qui contraxit. Azpilcuet. Consil. & resp. l. 4. de spons. Cons. 8. such parents, or other friends of children, as make matches for them in their childhood, and move them to consent, and so cause them to be married: such marriages are mock-mariages, and mere nullities. For children cannot know what appertaineth to marriage, much less can they perform that which is required of married persons: their consent therefore is justly accounted no consent, unless they do ratify it after they come to years. §. 3. Of impotent persons that ought not to seek after marriage. 2. They are to be accounted impotent, and in that respect unable to perform the essential duties of marriage, who (to use the Scripture phrase) were borne Eunuches from their mother's Mat. 19 12. womb: or by any accidental occasion are so made: as they who are defective, or closed in their secret parts: or taken with an incurable palsy: or possessed with frigidity, or any other such like impediment. These ought not to seek after marriage: for by those signs of impotency God showeth that he calleth them to live single. Contrary to this manifestation of Gods will do they sin, A sin to conceal any impotency. who conceal their impotency and join themselves in marriage, whereby they frustrate one main end of marriage, which is procreation of children; and do that wrong to the party whom they marry, as sufficient satisfaction can never be made. §. 4. Of barrenness, that it hindereth not marriage. Quest. Are such as are barren to be ranked among those impotent persons? Answ. No, there is great difference betwixt impotency and barrenness. 1. Impotency may by outward sensible signs be known Sterilem coniugem fas non est relinquere. Aug. de Nup. lib. 1. cap. 10. and discerned, barrenness cannot: it is not discerned but by want of childbearing. 2. Impotent persons cannot yield due benevolence: but such as are barren may. 3. Impotency is incurable: but barrenness is not simply so. Many after they have been a long while barren have become fruitful: and that not only by an extraordinary work of God above the course of nature (as b Gen. 18. 11. Sarah and c Luk. 1. 7. Elizabeth, with whom by reason of age it ceased to be after the manner of women) but also by such a blessing as might stand with the course of nature, being obtained by prayer (as d Gen. 25. 21. Rebeckah and e 1 Sam. 1. 5, 20. Annah) whereof daily experience giveth good evidence: for many after 10, 15, 20, and more years' barrenness have brought forth children. On these grounds many Saints, who have been barren, have married, and their practice therein not disallowed, nor their marriage dissolved. f Tantum valet sociale vinculum coniugum, ut cum causa procreandi colligitur, nec ipsa causa procreandi soluetur. Aug. de bon. Coniug. cap. 7. For though procreation of children be one end of marriage, yet is it not the only end: and so inviolable is the marriage bond, that though it be made for children's sake, yet for want of children it may not be broken. §. 5. Of that inevitable danger which hindereth marriage. 3. They who are infected with such contagious diseases, as diffuse themselves into those who have society with them, and infect them also, ought not to seek after marriage: for that cannot but turn to the danger of the party with whom they marry. It was for mutual good one of another Gen. 2. 18. that God ordained the law of marriage; to use it to the hurt and danger of one another, is against the main end of the first institution. The law of shutting up a leper from all society with men proveth as much; for if lepers might not have mutual society 2 Chro. 26. 21. with any man, much less might they have matrimonial society with a wife or an husband. By contagious diseases not only both the parties which company together will be infected, but also their issue: whereby their disease which otherwise might die with themselves, is propagated to their posterity. A like restraint may be applied to such foul and loathsome diseases, as make the company and society of that person, who is infected therewith, irkcsome, and odious to their companion. Contrary to the end and use of marriage do they sin, A sin to conceal a contagious disease. who conceal such diseases, and so join themselves in marriage, to the unanswerable prejudice of the party whom they marry. §. 6. Of the lawfulness of marriage to all sorts of persons. Where there is no such just impediment as hath been before mentioned, it is lawful for all sorts of people of what 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. calling or condition soever to marry. For Marriage is honourable Heb. 13. 4. in all, or among all, namely in, or among all sorts of people: whereupon it is accounted a Doctrine of devils to forbid 1 Tim. 4. 1, 3. to marry. For it is a Doctrine contrary to God's word, and a Doctrine that causeth much inward burning, and outward pollution, and so maketh their bodies, which should be temples of the holy Ghost, to be sties of the devils. The disease, for the redressing whereof marriage is sanctified, is a common disease which hath infected all sorts of people: why then shall not the remedy be as common? In this case the Apostle saith indefinitely of all, without exception of any, to avoid fornication let every man have his own 1 Cor. 7. 2, 9 wife, and let every woman have her own husband. And again, If they cannot contain let them marry: for it is better to marry then to burn. Object. a Mat. 19 12. There be Eunuches which have made themselves Eunuches (that is, have abstained from marriage and lived in a single A devilish doctrine to forbid marriage. life continently) for the kingdom of heaven's sake. Answ. That is spoken of some particular persons to whom the gift of continency was given: not of any distinct conditions, and callings, as if all and every one of this or that calling had so done or were able so to do: whereupon Christ addeth this clause, He that is able to receive it, let him receive it, and the Apostle to the same purpose saith, b 1 Cor. 7. 7. every one hath his proper gift of God. Contrary to this necessary and warrantable liberty, is the impure and tyrannical restraint of the Church of Rome, whereby all that enter into any of their holy orders, are kept from marriage. Do they not herein c Act. 15. 10. tempt God by putting a yoke upon men's necks, which neither our fathers nor we are able to bear? d Uide Chrysost. hom. 4. in Isay 6. No such restraint was ever enjoined by God's word to any of those holy functions which he ordained: for under the Law it was lawful for high Priests, ordinary Priests, all sorts of Levites, and extraordinary Prophets, to marry: and under the Gospel, for e Omnes Apostoli exceptis johanne & Paulo uxores habuerunt. Ambr. in 2 Cor. 11. Apostles, Bishops, Deacons, and all Ministers of the word. * Tolle de Ecclesia honorabile connubium, nun reples eam concubinarijs incesluosis, seminifluis mollibus, masculorum concubitoribus, & omni denique genere immundorum? Bernard. in Cant. Serm. 66. vide Bernard. de Conuers. ad ●ler. cap. 29. Fearful have been the effects of this Diabolical doctrine: as fornication, adultery, incest, Sodomy, buggery, and what not? Many wives put from their husbands, because their husbands were Ministers, and many Ministers put from their calling because they had wives: many children by this means basely borne, and among them many in their infancy cruelly murdered. f Huldricus, seu ut alij, Volusianus in Epist. ad Nichol. Pap. Six thousand heads of infants were found in the ponds of a religious house. How many more thousands have been from time to time cast into other ponds, or buried in gardens, or other places, or other ways conveyed out of sight? Devilish must that doctrine needs be, which hath such devilish effects. g utinam qui continere non valent perfectionem temerariè profiteri, aut coelebatui dare nomina vererentur. Sumptuosa siquidem turris est, & verbum grande, quod non omnes capere possunt. Bernard. de Conuers. ad Cler. serm. 29. Well did he wish, that wished that all they who cannot contain, would take heed how they do rashly profess perfection, and vow virginity. §. 7. Of the things which are absolutely necessary to make a person fit for marriage. They who have power to marry must be careful in choosing an help meet for them: for a Gen. 2. 18. Necessary for the essence of marriage. this was God's care when first he instituted marriage. To make an help meet for marriage, some things are absolutely necessary for the very essence or being of marriage; others, necessary for the comfort and happiness of marriage. In regard of the former sort, there must be chosen, 1. One of the same kind or nature: for among all the creatures which were made, b Gen. 2. 20. Buggery. there was not found an help meet for man: therefore God out of his bone and flesh made a woman of his 1. Persons of the same kind. own nature and kind. Contrary to this is the detestable sin of buggery with beasts, expressly forbidden by the * Leu. 18. 23. law. A sin more than beastly: for the bruit beasts content themselves with their own kind: Monstrous it is in the kind thereof: and a cause of abominable monsters. c Vide Aug. de Civit. Dei lib. 15. cap. 23. & Lud. Uivem in eundem de Incubis, & Succubis. Contrary also is that copulation which witches have with devils: than which none more unnatural, none more prodigious and odious. 2. One of the contrary sex: the male must choose a female: the female a male. Thus God having made Adam a male, 2. Persons of diverse sexes. Maritalis copula requirit sexuum aptitudinem. Bern. in Cant. serm. 66. Unnatural commixtions. Rom. 1. 25, 26. made Eve a female, and joined them in marriage. A conjunction of these different sexes is only fit for increase of mankind, and other marriage duties. Contrary are those unnatural commixtions of parties of the same sex: which the Apostlereckoneth up as judgements inflicted on the heathen, because they changed the truth of God into a lie, and worshipped, and served the creature more than the Creator. 3. One beyond those degrees of consanguinity and affinity which 3 Persons without the degrees of consanguinity. are forbidden by the law of God: these degrees are expressed by Moses Levit. 18. 6, 7, etc. and explained in a table of the degrees of consanguinity and affinity within which none may marry, appointed to be hung up in every Church. Contrary is incest, a sin not only forbidden by God's Incest. O mulieris scelus incredibile, & praeter hanc unam in omni vita inauditum. O libidinem effrenatam & indomitam! O audaciam, singularem! Non timuisse vim deorum, hominumque famam? Vicit pudorem libido, timorem audacia, rationem amentia. Cic. pro. A. Cluent. word, but so horrible even to the heathen as (to use the Apostles words, 1 Cor. 5. 1.) it is not so much as named among the Gentiles. Excellently is that censure verified by the heathen Orators pathetical exclamation against one Sassia who married her son in law, in these words: O incredible wickedness of a woman, not heard of in any age but this! O unbridled and untamed lust! O singular boldness! Not to fear the power of God, and fame of men! etc. Lust, impudency, madness, overcame shame, fear, and reason. What may we now think of the dispensations which the Pope giveth for incestuous marriages, allowed unto great Princes even by the * §. 24. cap. 5. Tridentine council? doth he not herein show himself to be that man of sin, who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called God? 4. One that is free: nor married, nor betrothed to another: the law of marriage noteth thus much in this clause, a Mat. 19 5. They two shall be one flesh. And in that b Deut. 22. 22, 23, 24. the law inflicteth the same punishment 2 Thes. 2. 3, 4. 4. Persons that are free. upon the person which being betrothed committeth uncleanness, that it doth upon a married person, it is evident that it is unlawful to marry one betrothed to another, as well as one married to another. So firm is a contract, as the law calleth a betrothed maid, a wife: and a betrothed maid might not be put away without a bill of divorce. Contrary is Bigamy, and Polygamy, whereof c Treat. 1. §. 83. before: unto which head may be referred marriages with such as have been espoused to others before. These are utterly unlawful. §. 8. Of the lawfulness of other marriages after one of the married couple is dead. 1. Quest. Are they who have buried their husband or wife so free, as they may marry again? Answ. Yea, as free as they who were never before married. The law doth not only permit a widow to marry again: but Deut. 25. 5, 9 if her husband died before he had any children, it commanded the next kinsman that was living and free to marry her, that he might raise up seed to his brother deceased: which if he refused to do, a penalty of ignominy was inflicted on him: the widow rejected was to lose his shoe from his foot, Non concederet hoc Paulus nisi liceret. At parum dico concedit: vult quoque. Volo, inquit, adolescentiores nubere: nec dubium quin viduas dicat. Bern. serm. 66. in Cant. and to spit in his face in the presence of the Elders. The Apostle expressly saith that a woman, when her husband is dead, is at liberty to be married (1. Cor. 7. 39) yea speaking of young widows he further saith, I will that they marry (1. Tim. 5. 14.) This liberty which the Prophet of God, and Apostle of Christ grant to a wife, can by no show of reason be denied to an husband: for the bond of marriage giveth them a like power over one another's body, (1 Cor. 7. 4.) and knitteth one as inviolably as the other, (Mat. 19 6.) Husband's therefore as well as wives have used this liberty, as Abraham (Gen. 25. 1.) b Rom. 7. 2. The Apostle that giveth this liberty, rendereth a reason thereof, taken from the limitation of that time wherein married persons have power one over another, and that is the time of this life only: For the woman which hath an husband is bound by the law to her husband, so long as he liveth: but if the husband be dead she is loosed, etc. On this ground all the * §. 24. Quid largam benedictionem nuptiarum restringis? Bern. loc. ●itat. Dominus tot maritorum mulierem nulla suae sententiae significatione damnavit. Aug. de bon. Vid. c. 12. reasons which warrant or move such as never were married, to marry, may be applied to them that by death have their yoke-fellow taken from them. 2. Quest. May this liberty be extended any further than to a second marriage? Answ. We find no restraint from a third, or fourth, or more marriages, if by the divine providence so many wives, or husbands one after another be taken away while there is need for the surviving party to use the benefit of marriage. The woman of Samaria that had five husbands one after another, is not blamed for being married to so many, but for living with one (after the other were dead) that was not her husband, (joh. 4. 18 Neither did the Lord condemn that woman which was said to have seven husbands one after another, (Mat. 22. 25, etc.) Contrary is the opinion of a Secundas nuptias pro fornicationibus habent. Aug. de haer. §. 26. Montanists, and Cataphryges, ancient heretics that accounted those marriages which the survivor made after the death of a yoke-fellow, to be adulterous: with which heresy b Tertullianus factus est haereticus quia transiens ad Cataphryges cepit secundas ruptias ●●nquam ●upra damnare. Ibid. §. 86. Tertullian an ancient and learned father was so far infected, as he wrote a treatise in defence thereof. It seemeth by their arguments that one main ground of their error was a misinterpretation of those Scriptures which forbid men to have two wives at once, and women to have two husbands at once, as, Two shall be one flesh, Gen. 2. 24. A Bishop and a Deacon must be the husband of one wife, 1 Tim. 2. 2, 10. Let a widow be taken that hath been the wife of one husband, 1 Tim. 5. 9 These are indeed express texts against such Digamists, and Polygamists as have been described * Treat. 1 §. 83 before: but they make no more against second or other after-mariages one mate being dead, then against first marriages. Into the roll of these heretics may they be put, who deny such after marriages to any kind of Ministers. So do our adversaries: they Ministerijs minorum ordinum exercendis suffici possunt coniugati, dummodo non bigami. Concil. Trid. §. 23. c. 17. Vide Bellarm. de Cler. l. 1. c. 23. exclude such as are married again after one wife is dead from such functions of inferior orders, as they admit those who are but once married unto. They allege many of those Scriptures which Montanists do (as 1 Tim. 2. 2, 10. and 5. 9) which showeth that they are infected with the same heresy, though they pretend to renounce it. §. 9 Of equality in years betwixt husband and wife. That matrimonial society may prove comfortable, it is requisite Acqualem ducito Pittaci dictum. Sivis nubere, nube pari. Ouid. 1. Equality in age. that there should be some equality betwixt the parties that are married in Age, Estate, Condition, Piety. 1. For Age, as the party that seeketh a mate must be of ripe years, fit to give consent, and able to perform marriage duties, so the mate which is taken must be somewhat answerable 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Arist. Eth. l. 8. c. 12. Luk. 1. 7. in age: if one young, both young: if one of middle age, both so: if one grown to years, the other also. It is noted of Zacharie and Elizabeth, that both were well stricken in years. If both were old together, then both also were young together. Equality in years maketh married persons more fit for procreation of children, for a mutual performance of marriage duties each to other, and for making their company and society every way more happy. This equality is not over strictly to be taken, as if the married couple were to be just of the same age, but only for some answerableness in years: which may be though there be a disparity Most meet that husbands be elder than wives. of five or ten, or somewhat more years: especially if the excess of years be on the husband's part: for besides that according to the ordinary course of nature a man's strength and vigour lasteth longer than a woman's, it is very meet that the husband should be some what elder than his wife, because he is an head, a governor, a protector of his wife. The Scripture noteth many husbands to be elder than their wives (as Abraham was ten years elder than Sarah; and if we Gen. 17. 17. narrowly mark the circumstances of the histories of Isaac and jacob, and their wives, we shall find that the husbands were elder than their wives) To my remembrance an approved example of an husband younger than his wife cannot be given out of Scripture. Contrary to this equality in years, is the practice of many Unmeet for aged persons to marry young ones. men and women, who being aged, to satisfy their lust, or for some other by-respect, marry such as are but in the flower of their age, wherein they do many times much fail of their expectation: for those young ones finding the society of aged folks to be burdensome, and irksome unto them, soon begin to loathe the same, and thereby cause more grief and vexation, than ever they did give comfort and contentment. On the other side, others there be who in the prime and Unmeet for young persons to marry aged. strength of their age, for wealth, honour, or such like respects, marry those that with age begin to be decrepit, and unfit to be married, hoping that they will not long live, but that with a little trouble they shall purchase much dignity or riches, & after a while be free again. But God oft meeteth with such in their kind, by prolonging the life of those aged persons, and so making the burden to be much more grievous and tedious then was imagined, and by taking away those young ones sooner than they looked for, whereby it cometh to pass that all their hopes perish. * Ne discrepent aetates sic ut vir suscipere liberos possit; mulier non possit; aut haec possit, ille non possit. Ex his enim seditiones, discordiaeque, etc. Arist. Pol. lib. 7. The heathen observed inequality in years to be occasions of many mischiefs, and thereupon prescribed rules against it. §. 10. Of equality in estate and condition betwixt those that are to be married together. 2. Some equality in outward estate and wealth is also befitting 2 Equality in estate. Premitur magno coniuge nupta minor. Ouid. epist. 9 the parties that are to be married together, lest the disparity therein (especially if it be overgreat) make the one insult over the other more than is meet: for if a man of great wealth be married to a poor woman, he will think to make her as his maid-servant, and expect that she should carry herself towards him so as beseemeth not a yoke-fellow, and a bedfellow: so as such an one may rather be said to be brought unto bondage, than marriage. And if a rich woman marry a poor man, she will look to be the master, and to rule him: so as the order which God hath established will be clean perverted: and the honour of marriage laid in the dust. For where no order is, there can be no honour. 3. The like may be said of outward condition, that therein 3 3. Equality in condition. Eas uxores quas inferioris gradus homines ducant, high qui altioris dignitatis sunt ducere legibus propter dignitatem prohibentur. also there be some equality: that Princes, Nobles, and Gentlemen, marry such as are of their own rank: and the meaner sort such as are of their degree. Note what sort of wives Abraham, Isaac, and jaacob married, and it will appear that they had respect to this parity. Disparity in condition as well as in estate, is a means to make men and women swell and insult above that which is meet: yea and to twit one another in the teeth with their former estate and condition. Contrary on the one side are the practices of such as affect Digest. lib. 23. cap. 2. §. 49. A fault to affect to marry a person much above ones rank. Qui longè praestantiores se ducunt, non coniugum viri, sed serui fiunt dotium. Plut. de Instit. liber. Pro. 14. 1. and 12. 4. to marry above their own estate and degree: thinking by such marriages to advance themselves. This is the only thing which many seek after in seeking wives and husbands; whereby it cometh to pass that they oft meet with the worst matches, and make their marriage a kind of bondage unto them. Great portions make many women proud, dainty, lavish, idle, and careless; a man were much better, even for help of his outward estate, to marry a prudent, sober, thrifty, careful, diligent wife, though with a small portion, than such an one. A proud back, a dainty tooth, and a lavish hand will soon consume a great portion; but a wise woman buildeth her house: and a virtuous woman is a crown to her husband. Many wives also that are married to very rich husbands, are more stinted and pinched in their allowance, than such as are married to men of meaner estate. It is not the means which a man hath, but his mind and disposition that maketh him free and bountiful to his wife. Contrary are the marriages which men of great authority A fault to marry a person much under ones rank. and ability make with mean women, yea their own maids many times, and those of the lowest rank, their kitchinmaids. parties part that is to be married: and then if that party be under the government of parents, the matter must be moved to them, before there be any further proceeding therein, as Samson who seeing and liking a daughter of the Philistims, Judg. 14. 2. told his father and his mother thereof. Yea though the party be not under the government of any, yet it is very meet that counsel be taken of wise and understanding friends: that in a matter so weighty as marriage is, there may be the advice of more heads than one, for the preventing of such mischiefs as through rashness might fall out. After a liking is thus taken by one party of a meet mate, that liking must be moved to the other party so liked, to know whether there be a reciprocal affection of one towards another. Thus Samson went and judg. 14. 7. talked with that woman whom he liked to be his wife. If at first there be a good liking mutually and thoroughly settled in both their hearts of one another, love is like to continue in them for ever, as things which are well glued, and settled before they be shaken up and down, will never be severed asunder: but if they be joined together without glue, or shaken while the glue is moist, they cannot remain firm. Mutual love and good liking of each other is as glue. Let the parties to be married be herein well settled before they come to meet with trials through cohabitation, and that love will not easily be loosened by any trials. Contrary is the adulterous and brutish practice of such as Too eager and hasty pursuing after marriage, a brutish thing. so soon as they cast their eye on any whom they like, never advice or consult about a right and due proceeding unto marriage, but instantly with all the eagerness and speed they can, like brute beasts, seek to have their desire and lust satisfied. Though to keep themselves free from the penalty of the laws under which they live, they procure means to be married, yet they declare a lustful and adulterous mind. And their practice is too like to the practice of the Beniamits, who catcht wives from among the daughters of Shiloh as they were dancing: or else to the practice of the old world, which so grieved the Spirit of God, that it repented him that he had judg. 21. 23. made man, and thereupon he was moved to bring a general deluge on the whole world. Their practice was this, that they took them wives of all that they chose: that is, they rashly and Gen. 6. 2. suddenly married whomsoever they liked, without any consideration of their condition. §. 14. Of a contract what it is? II. When both parties have manifested a mutual liking Ubi non est consensus utriusque, non potest esse matrimonium. Instit. iur. can. lib. 2. the nupt. tit. 11. each to other, and upon mature deliberation and good advice do conceive one to be a fit match for another, it is requisite that a joint consent and absolute promise of marrying one another before sufficient witnesses be made. This rightly made is a contract, which is the beginning of a marriage. The right making of a firm contract consisteth in two things: 1. In an actual taking of each other for espoused man and wife. 2. In a direct promise of marrying each other within a convenient time. So as a form of contract may be made to this purpose; First the man taking the woman by the hand to say, I A. take thee B. to my espoused wife, and do faithfully promise to marry thee in time meet and convenient. And then the woman again taking the man by the hand to say, I B. take thee A. to my espoused husband, and do faithfully promise to yield to be married to thee in time meet and convenient. This mutual and actual taking of one another for espoused man and wife in the time present, and a direct promise of marrying one another afterwards, settleth such a right and property of the one in the other as cannot be alienated without licence had from the great judge of heaven, who hath by his divine ordinance settled that right. §. 15. Of the grounds of a contract. Quest. Is a contract absolutely necessary? Answ. Though it have been an ancient custom continued Mos ille vete ribus erat ante multum tempus sponsalia facere. Chrys. in Gen. Hom. 43. in all ages, yet I dare not pronounce it to be so absolutely necessary, as the want thereof should nullify a marriage, and make it to be no lawful marriage. But surely it is so meet and requisite, as I would advise all Christians that desire a blessing and good success on their marriage to be contracted before they are married. If there were no other ground for it but this, that God hath sanctified it, and commended it unto us by his word, it were enough to persuade such as fear God to use it. For I demand, why doth God commend unto his Church any thing by his word, but that his Church should make conscience of using it? Now that by God's word it is commended, is without contradiction most evident. For, not to insist on that argument which, not without good probability, is alleged for the antiquity of a contract, and thus collected from Gods ordering of that first ancient marriage betwixt Adam and Gen. 2. 22. Euah, God brought Euah to Adam on the first day that they were created to see how he would like her, and upon the sight of her, and notice which withal he had of her, by that wisdom which God gave him, he then took her to himself: which taking is supposed to be but a contract, because a Gen. 4. 1. he did not know her till after his fall. If it be objected that Adam and Euah are called b Gen. 2. 25. man and wife in the time of their innocence. It may be answered that those titles * Deut. 22. 24. Gen. 19 14. Consuetudine Scripturarum sponsi viri, & sponsae vocantur uxores. Hier. in Mat. 1. are in Scripture given to such as are only contracted, to show the near and firm conjunction betwixt parties espoused. But not to insist on that which is but probable, it is more than probable that Lot's daughters were contracted: for it is said that d Gen. 19 14, 8. Quia iam desponsatio facta erat, ideo vocat eos generos. Chrys. in hunc loc. Lot had sons in law which married (or rather should marry) his daughters: and withal it is said that they had not known man: now than it must needs follow that they were called Lot's sons in law because his daughters were espoused to them. But most evident for this purpose is that difference which the e Deut. 22. 22, etc. law putteth betwixt a pure virgin, an espoused maid, and a married wife. So as contracted persons are in a middle degree betwixt single persons, and married persons: they are neither simply single, nor actually married. To show that this custom of a contract before marriage continued in God's Church among the Saints, it is expressly noted that Marie the mother of the Lord Luk. 1. 27. jesus who lived many hundred years after that law, was contracted. §. 16. Of the reasons which show how requisite a contract is. Many good and weighty reasons may be alleged to show how requisite it is that a contract should go before marriage. For 1. It addeth much to the honour of marriage, that it should be deliberately and advisedly step after step, by one degree after another consummated and made up. 2. It putteth a difference betwixt such as intend marriage in the fear of the Lord, for such holy ends as are warranted in the word, and such as intent it only to satisfy their lust, or for other like carnal ends. For these can admit no delay, as was noted * In the end of §. 13. before. But they that use this solemn preparation by a contract before marriage, show that they desire to have all things fit for so sacred a matter duly performed; and therefore they are content to make some stay for the better effecting thereof. 3. It is a means of knitting the hearts of the two parties to be married more firmly and inviolably together before they come to dwell together. For a contract being the beginning of a marriage, it is an evident demonstration of God's counsel concerning the parties contracted, that God hath prepared them each for other to be man and wife: so as after the contract is made, they may simply and absolutely pray each for other, that God would bless them one to another, to live comfortably and happily together. Before a contract is made, they can but upon supposition (if God have appointed them to be man and wife) pray one for another. For oft it falleth out that after many great hopes and likelihoods of proceeding in such or such a match, by some occasion or other it is clean broken off: but a lawful contract knitteth so firm a knot as cannot be broken: so as a man may conclude that being contracted to a woman she shall be his wife: and so may a woman conclude of a man. The consideration hereof will further move them more narrowly to observe what good qualities, or what other things, which may make them more lovely one to another, are in each other. 4. It is a means to make them before hand prepare themselves to performe such marriage duties as God's word requireth of man and wife. For a contract giveth them assurance of marriage if they live unto it: so as then they cannot but know that it is high time for them to think how they are to carry themselves, when they come to live in house together: and withal to consider, what crosses ordinarily do accompany the married estate, that they may be before hand prepared wisely to pass them over, or patiently to undergo them. 5. It may be a means of discovering many hidden and close inconveniences, which otherwise would never come to light. For many friends fearing lest the discovering of some evils which are carried closely, should make a breach betwixt themselves and their friends, will not make them known till they see some urgent necessity to move them so to do. Though the evil be such, as being known would hinder marriage, yet till they see some sure evidence, that they shall indeed be married (if no just exception be put in) they will hope that some other occasion may fall out to hinder the marriage, and in that respect conceal their exception. But because a contract is the beginning of marriage, after they have notice thereof, they will not forbear to disclose what they know. For this end is it, that the contract is three several times openly published in the Church, that if any do know any just cause why such persons as are contracted may not lawfully proceed to marriage, they make known the same. A commendable custom: and great pity, that it is so much neglected as it is. 6. It may prevent many plots and practices of inveigling, or stealing away maids and widows. For it oft falleth out, that when parents or other friends have provided a good match for their daughter, or for some other under their government, and all things on all parts well concluded, the wedding day appointed, and all things fitted and prepared for the solemnising of the wedding, some desirous to forestall that marriage, by secret and cunning devices get the bride away a few days before, if not on the very morning of the intended wedding day, and marry her out of hand to another. That which maketh men so bold is, that they know a clandestine marriage being consummate shall stand firm in law. But a legal contract preventeth such mischiefs, because it maketh such a furtive marriage utterly void. None therefore knowing that a contract is lawfully made before hand, will be so bold, or rather so mad, as to offer to frustrate a marriage after any such manner. 7. It is a means to stir up the parties which are to be married, more carefully and diligently to provide all things fit for their dwelling together, and well ordering their household before hand; that they be not to seek for necessaries when they should use them. For being contracted, they know that it cannot be long ere they must come to dwell together. §. 17. Of abusing, or neglecting a contract. There are two extremes contrary to the forenamed doctrine of a contract. One of attributing too much to it: another of derogating too much from it. Many make it a very marriage, and thereupon have a greater solemnity at their contract, then Nonnullis sponsis tam impotens est ardor libidinis, ut corpusculo puellari vim adferant. Eras. in Inst. Matr. at their marriage: yea many take liberty after a contract to know their spouse, as if they were married: an unwarrantable and dishonest practice. Lot's daughters were * See §. 15. contracted to husbands, and yet they are said to have known no man. The law styleth her that is contracted a Deut. 22. 24. a maid, to show that she ought to keep herself a virgin till the marriage be consummate. Therefore Mary is thus described, b Luk. 1. 27. a virgin espoused. But it is the common course of most to make light account of this warrantable and honourable proceeding to marriage by a contract. Few there be in comparison of the multitudes that are married, who make any conscience thereof. They think it needless, and utterly neglect it. No marvel that they meet with many mischiefs and inconveniences, when the means of preventing the same are not used. Let such duly weight the reasons rendered in the former section. §. 18. Of the distance of time betwixt the contract and marriage. Quest. What distance of time must pass betwixt the making of a contract, and consummating of marriage? Answ. This must be left to the wise consideration of the parties contracted, and of their friends, for the same time cannot precisely be prescribed to all. Occasions may fall out either of hastening, or putting off the marriage. Only extremes on both sides must be avoided. Neither ought the marriage be too suddenly solemnised upon the contract: (than the ends and reasons of a contract, before mentioned, are made void) nor yet too long put off (than may Satan take occasion to tempt them for their incontinency.) The laudable custom of our and other Churches showeth, that at least three weeks must pass betwixt contract and marriage. For the contract is Rubr. before the form of solemnising of matrimony. to be three times published, and that but once a week before the wedding be celebrated. And we read that the virgin Mary was at least three months contracted before joseph took her to wife. For when the Angel first came to her she was Luk. 1. 27. 56. espoused: after that she went to her cousin Elizabeth, with whom she abode three months: and then being returned home joseph was warned by an Angel to take her to wife. I Mat. 1. 20. note not this as a rule for every one precisely to follow. For the virgin Mary had a just occasion to tarry three months with her old cousin Elizabeth: and so may others have occasions to put off their marriages: which may be lawful, so the marriage be not put off too long, and that there be a mutual and joint consent of both parties. For after the contract is made, neither the man nor the woman have the power of their own body. Contrary is that unwarrantable course which many take, to Unlawful for parties contracted long to absent themselves each from other. Deut. 24. 5. be affianced and made sure to a wife, and then to travel beyond sea, or to any other place, and be absent from their spouse a year, or two, or three, or it may be more years. If a man might not go to war, nor be charged with any business that should draw him from his wife the first year of his marriage, much less may he absent himself for any long time after he is contracted but not married. This may be a means to alienate the heart of his spouse from him for ever. §. 19 Of a religious consecrating of marriage. III. The last degree of consummating a marriage, is the open and public solemnisation thereof: which consisteth 1. In a religious consecration thereof. 2. In a civil celebration A religious consecration of marriage is performed by the blessing of a public Minister of the word in the open face of the Church in the day time. This of old hath been used of Christians, and still is continued among us. Though we have neither express precept, nor particular pattern in God's word for this manner of solemnising a marriage (for there is no particular form thereof set down in the Scripture) yet it being agreeable to the general rules thereof, we ought in conscience to subject ourselves thereto. The general rules are these, Let all things be done decently, 1 Cor. 14. 40. and in order. The Churches of God have such a custom. Submit 1 Cor. 11. 16. yourselves to every ordinance of man for the Lords sake, with 1 Pet. 2. 13. the like. But the foresaid manner of consecrating marriage, is very decent and in good order, a laudable custom of the Churches, and an ordinance of those governors under whom we live. Therefore warrantable, and to be observed. Neither is this order, custom, and ordinance appointed without just and weighty reasons. For 1. Marriage is a kind of public action: the well or ill ordering thereof much tendeth to the good or hurt of family, Church, and commonwealth. For by marriage families are erected, and Church and commonwealth increased and continued. 2. d Heb. 13 4. Marriage is honourable. e Treat. 1. §. 80, 81, 82, etc. The most sacred and inviolable bond that knitteth any two persons together. 3. Marriage is f Prou. 2. 17. God's covenant, wherein he himself hath a main and principal stroke. For God is the chiefest agent in joining man and woman in marriage. On these grounds it hath been thought very requisite that marriage should be solemnised in the day time (as a work of light that need not be covertly and closely done) and that in a public place, whether any, that will, may have free access, either to except against it, and hinder it (if there be just cause) or to be a witness thereof, and to add his blessing thereto. And among public places the Church is thought the fittest, because it is the house of prayer, where persons and actions are most solemnly blessed. And of all persons a public Minister is thought to be the meetest to celebrate marriage, and to join Coniugium benedictione sacer dotali sanctificari oportet. Ambr. epist. 70. the parties to be married, together, because he stands in God's room, and in and by his ministry God joineth them together, and blesseth them: so as after the minister hath rightly joined man and wife together in matrimony, it may be well said, Those whom God hath joined together, let no man put asunder. The form of consecrating marriage, which is prescribed in our liturgy or common-prayer-book, doth so distinctly, perspicuously, and fully set down whatsoever is to be observed and done by the parties to be married, their parents, or other governors, and the Minister that joineth them together, that I can add nothing thereunto. There are declared the grounds, ends, and uses of marriage. There open proclamation is made whether any can except against the intended marriage. There each party is solemnly charged, that if either of them do know any impediment, why they may not lawfully be married, to disclose it. There also each party is openly demanded if freely and willingly they will take one another for man and wife. There the duties of married persons are declared, and they severally asked whether they will subject themselves thereto or no. All which being openly professed, the parent or some in his stead is called forth to give the Bride to the Bridegroom. Then they two actually taking each other to be man and wife, and testifying the same by express words, and by mutual pledges, the Minister in God's name joineth them together, pronounceth them to be lawful husband and wife, and by prayer craveth God's blessing upon the action, and upon their persons. Thus is the marriage consecrated, and they two made one flesh, that is, lawfully joined together by the inviolable bond of marriage. §. 20. Of clandestine marriages. Contrary are clandestine marriages, such as are made in private houses, or other secret places, or in Churches without a sufficient number of witnesses, or in the night time, or without a lawful Minister of the word, with the like. As such seeking of secrecy taketh much from the honour and dignity of marriage, so it implieth some evil cleaving thereto: For every joh. 3. 20. man that evil doth hateth the light. There is little hope that such marriages should have any good success. For where such means as are sanctified for obtaining a blessing on marriage are neglected, what blessing can thereupon be expected? §. 21. Of a civil celebrating of marriage. Though upon the forenamed consecrating of marriage it be in regard of the substance thereof fully consummate, yet for the greater solemnity of so honourable a thing, it is very requisite that further there be added a civil celebration of it: under Magnifico convivio nuptiae celebrantur: laeta omnia, munera sponsalia, etc. Greg. Naz. ad Vital. vide plura ibid. de coniugij solennitate. Marriage a time of rejoicing. which I comprise all those lawful customs that are used for the setting forth of the outward solemnity thereof, as meeting of friends, accompanying the Bridegroom and Bride both to and from the Church, putting on best apparel, feasting, with other tokens of rejoicing: for which we have express warrant out of God's word. For the general, that the marriage time is a time of rejoicing, some gather from the notation of the word, as if it were styled marriage of merry age. But to let that pass, The Scripture useth to set forth a time of rejoicing by the a Isa. 62. 5. joy of the Bridegroom over his Bride, and styleth b jer. 33. 11. the voice of a Bridegroom and a Bride, the voice of joy and gladness. And on the contrary counteth it a judgement, when c jer. 7. 34. joel 2. 16. joy is taken away from the Bridegroom and the Bride. For meeting of friends at the time of marriage, it is noted that d Gen. 29. 22. Laban gathered together all the men of the place, when his daughter was married. And when Samson was married, e judg. 14. 11. they brought thirty companions to him. And when a friend of the virgin Marie was married, f joh. 2. 2. jesus and his Disciples, besides many other, were invited thereto. And in the parable of the marriage of the King's son, it is noted that g Mat. 22. 3. many guests were bidden to the wedding. In all which histories it is further noted, that feasts were made at the solemnising of those marriages. And the phrases which the Prophet useth of h Isa. 61. 10. jer. 2. 32. a Bridegroom's decking himself with ornaments, and a Brides adorning herself with jewels, give warrant for putting on the best apparel at that time. Here by the way let good heed be taken, that the things which may lawfully be used, be not unlawfully abused, as commonly mariage-festivities, and that especially in feastings, are. §. 22. Of ill or well ordering marriage feasts. Marriage feasts are abused, Abuse of marriage feasts. 1. When they are made at an unseasonable time: as on the Jsa. 22. 12, 13. Lords day, or in a time of mourning. 2. When they exceed the ability of him that maketh the Luk. 15. 13. feasts. 3. When the abundance prepared, is immoderately taken, Luk. 21 34. even to gluttony and drunkenness. The lewd practice of drinking healths to the Bridegroom and Bride, oft causeth much excess in drunkenness. 4. When too much time is spent therein. Isa. 5. 11. 5. When God is clean forgotten therein, and the company poisoned Isa. 5. 12. with corrupt communication, unchaste songs, and the like. 6. When the needy and distressed are not remembered Am. 6. 6. therein. For preventing of these abuses, a seasonable time for celebrating Direction for marriage feasts marriage must be chosen out: and moderation used both by him that maketh the feast, and also by them that partake thereof: moderation I say in the measure of eating and drinking, and in the time spent therein: which time must be sanctified with such communication as is good to the use of edifying, that it may minister grace unto the hearers. And for the more cheerfulness therein, witty questions and doubtful riddles may be propounded (as Samson did) to exercise the wit judg. 14. 12. Eph. 5. 19 and judgement of the guests: there may be also singing Psalms and hymns and spiritual songs, making melody in their hearts to the Lord. Yea further, that the marriage meeting, mirth, and feasting may be the better sanctified, good choice is to be made of the guests that are invited thereto. Hereof we have a worthy pattern in those who were married in Cana of Galilee, joh. 2. 1, 2. ●nd invited to their feast jesus, his mother, and his Disciples. Such as jesus, will minister occasion of savoury and sanctified communication, whereby all the guests may be much edified. ●uch as the virgin Mary will be a good example of modesty, ebriety, and other like Christian graces. Such as the Disciples, will be far from scorning and deriding wholesome and ●ood instructions, but rather give all diligent heed thereunto, ●●d lay them up in their hearts. Above all, that the mirth and joy of marriage be not dampt, as Belshazzars was, let them that are married, and all that come Dan. 5. 5. to rejoice with them, be sure that they have true assurance of their spiritual marriage with Christ, and of a good right in him to the creatures which they use. Otherwise their sins will be as that hand-writing which appeared to Belshazzar on the wall. Finally, in regard of that liberty which God giveth with plenty and abundance to eat of the fat, and drink of the Nehe. 8. 10. sweet, let the poor that scarce have sufficiency be remembered. Thus by a right celebrating of marriage, is it much honoured: and man and wife with much honour are brought together. §. 23. Of the honour of marriage in regard of the first institution thereof. Great reason there is why marriage should with such honour be solemnised. For it is a most honourable thing. Honourable in the institution, ends, privileges, and mystery thereof. No ordinance was more honourable in the first institution thereof, as is evident by the Author thereof, the Place where it was instituted, the Time when it was instituted, the Persons who were first married, and the Manner of joining them together. 1. The Author and first Institutor of marriage was the Lord Gen. 2. 18, 21, 22 God. Could there have been a greater, or any way a more excellent Author? 2. The Place was Paradise; the most fair, glorious, pleasant, honourable, commodious, and every way most excellent place that ever was in this world, Place, though it be but a circumstance, addeth much to the honour of a thing. Solemat ordinances are made in honourable places. Thus with us marriages are solemnised in Churches, not in private houses. 3. The Time was the most pure and perfect time that ever was in the world, when no sin or pollution of man had stained it, even the time of man's innocence. Purity addeth much to the honour of a thing. 4. The Persons were the most honourable that ever were even the first father and mother of all mankind, they who had an absolute power and dominion over all creatures, and to whom all were subject. None but they ever had a true monarchy over the whole world. 5. The Manner was with as great deliberation as ever was used in instituting any ordinance. For first the three glorious Gen. 2. 18. Cui hoc dicitur? non creatae alicui potentiae, sed ei qui exse natus est, Consiliario admirabili, etc. Chrys. in Gen. hom. 14. persons in the Trinity do meet to advise about it. For The Lord God said, and to whom should he speak? not to any created power, but to him that was begotten of himself, that Wonderful, Counsellor, etc. In this consultation this ordinance is found to be very needful: (It is not good for man to be alone) thereupon a determination is set down, to make an help meet for man. For the better effecting hereof the Lord proceedeth thereto very deliberately, by sundry steps, and degrees. 1. All the creatures that lived on the earth, or breathed in the air, are brought before man, to see if an help meet for him might be found among them. 2. Every of them being thoroughly viewed, and found unfit, another creature is made and that out of man's substance and side, and after his image. 3. This excellent creature thus made is by the maker thereof presented to man, to see how he would like it. 4. Man manifesting a good liking to her, she is given to him to be his wife. 5. The inviolable law of the near and firm union of man and wife together is enacted. Let all the forenamed branches concerning the first institution of marriage expressly recorded by the holy Ghost be well weighed, and we shall easily see that there is no ordinance now in force among the sons of men so honourable in the institution thereof, as this. §. 24. Of the Ends of Marriage. 2. The Ends for which marriage was ordained add much to the honour thereof. They are especially three. Prima societas in ipso coniugio est etc. Id autem est principium urbis, & quasi seminarium reip. Cic. Offic. lib. 1. 1. That the world might be increased: and not simply increased, but with a legitimate brood, and distinct families, which are the seminaries of cities and commonwealths. Yea also that in the world the Church by an holy seed might be preserved, and propagated, Mal. 2. 15. 2. That men might avoid fornication (1 Cor. 7. 2.) and possess their vessels in holiness and honour. In regard of that Qui tentationum procell as cum difficultate salutis tolerant, coniugij portum petant. Greg. in Post. part. 3. admon. 28. proneness which is in man's corrupt nature to lust, this end addeth much to the honour of marriage. It showeth that marriage is as an haven to such as are in jeopardy of their salvation through the gusts of temptations to lust. No sin is more hereditary; none whereof more children of Adam do partake, than this. Well might Christ say (Mat. 19 11) all men receive not this saying. Of all the children of Adam that ever were, not one to a million of those that have come to ripeness of years have been true eunuchs all their life time. Against this hereditary disease no remedy is so sovereign as this. Yea for those that have not the gift of continency this is the only warranted, and sanctified remedy. 3. That man and wife might be a mutual help one to Ad adiumentum mulier data est viro. Ambr. Offic. l. 1. c. 28. another, (Gen. 2. 18.) An help as for bringing forth, so for bringing up children; and as for erecting, so for well governing their family. An help also for well ordering prosperity, and well bearing adversity. An help in health and sickness. Ut non solum honestè, sed & commodè vivat. Chrys. in Gen. 2. hom. 14. An help while both live together, and when one is by death taken from the other. In this respect it is said (Pro. 18. 22.) who so findeth a wife, findeth a good thing, which by the rule of relation is true also, of an husband. Licet adiuvent hominem laboribus suis multa irrationabilla, nullum tamen par est rationali mulieri. Chrys. ibid. No such help can man have from any other creature as from a wife; or a woman as from an husband. §. 25. Of the Privileges of marriage. III. If ( * Rom. 3. 1. as once of circumcision) it be demanded what is the privilege, advantage, and profit of marriage, I answer, Much every way. 1. By it men and women are made Husbands and Wives. 2. It is the only lawful means to make them Fathers and Mothers. 3. It is the ordinary means to make them Masters and Mistresses. All these are great dignities, wherein the image and glory of God consisteth. 4. It is the most effectual means of continuing a man's Unusquisque in liberis suis quodammodo renascitur etc. Plato dè Leg. lib. 4. name and memory in this world, that can be. Children are living monuments, and lively representations of their parents. 5. Many privileges have of old been granted to such as were married. y Appian. lib. 2. debel. ciu. In pleading causes, or giving sentence, they had the first place; and in choice of offices they were preferred. z Sucton. in Aug. In meetings they had the upper hand. * Arist. Polit. li. 2. cap. 7. & Codic lib. 10. tit. 63. And if they had many children they were exempted from watchings, and other like burdensome functions. Among us, if the younger sister be married before the elder, the preeminency and precedency ●s given to the younger. The privileges and honours which are given to married persons, were questionless the ground of that custom which Laban mentioneth of his country; that the younger was not to Gen. 29. 26. be married before the elder. §. 26. Of the mystery of Marriage. FOUR Great is that mystery which is set forth by marriage, namely the sacred, spiritual, real, and inviolable union betwixt Christ and his Church: which is excellently deciphered in Salomon's Song, and in Psal. 45. and expressly noted, Eph. 5. 32. Hereby man and wife who entirely, as they ought, love one another, have an evident demonstration of Christ's love to them. For as parents by that affection which they bear to their children, may better discern the mind, and meaning of God towards them, than such as never had child, so may married persons better know the disposition of jesus Christ, who is the spouse of every faithful soul, then single persons. persons 27. Of Marriage and single life compared together. Let now the admirers and praisers of a single estate bring forth all their reasons, and put them in the other school against marriage. If these two be duly poised, and rightly weighed, we shall find single life too light to be compared with honest marriage. All that can be said for the single estate, is grounded upon accidental occasions. Saint Paul, who of all the penmen of holy Scripture hath spoken most for it, draweth all his commendations to the head of Expediency, and restraineth all unto a 1 Cor. 7. 26. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. present necessity. Object. He useth these words ( b Vers. 1. good, and c Vers. 38. better.) Answ. Those words have relation not to virtue, but to expediency: neither are they spoken in opposition to vice and sin, for than would it follow, that to marry (which is God's ordinance, and honourable in all) were evil and sinful: which is to revive d Saturniliani de quibus Epiph. haer. 23. that ancient heresy, that marriage is of the devil. e Si quis coinquinationem vocet legitimam commixtionem, habet inhabitatorem draconem Apostatam. Ignat. Epist. ad Philad. Of old they who have called lawful marriage a defilement, have been said to have the Apostate dragon dwelling in them. But the Apostle styleth that good, which is commodious, and that better which is more expedient: and yet not simply more expedient, but to some persons at some times. For if any have not the gift of continency, it is not only commodious or more expedient that they marry, but also absolutely necessary. They are commanded so to do (1 Cor. 7. 9) Yet on the other side, if any have the gift of continency, they are not simply bound from marriage; there be other occasions, beside avoiding fornication, to move them to marry. It is therefore truly said that Virginity is not commanded, but advised unto. Uirginitas non est iussa sed admonita. Bernard. de modo benè viu. serm. 21. We have no precept for it, but leave it to the power of them that have that power. So far forth as men and women see just occasion of abstaining from marriage (being at least able so to do) they are by the Apostle persuaded to use their liberty and keep themselves free. But all the occasions which De virginitate praeceptum non habemus: volentium potestati id relinquimus. Constit. Apost. li. 4. cap. 14. move them to remain single arise from the weakness and wickedness of men. Their wickedness who raise troubles against others, their weakness who suffer themselves to be disquieted and too much distracted with affairs of the family, care for wife, children, and the like. Were it not for the wickedness of some, and weakness of others, to please an husband 1 Cor. 7. 32, 33, 34. or a wife, would be no hiderance to pleasing of the Lord. If therefore man had stood in his entire and innocent estate, no such wickedness or weakness had seized upon him: and then in no respect could the single estate have been preferred S. Ecclesia & virginitatem glorificat, & nuptias pudicas honorat. Epiph. haer. 48. before the married. But since the fall, Virginity (where it is given) may be of good use: and therefore the Church doth give due honour both to virginity and marriage. §. 28. Of celebrating marriage with sorrow. Contrary to the forenamed joyful celebrating of marriage are all those indirect courses which bring much grief, trouble and vexation thereunto: as forced, stolen, unequal, or any other way unlawful marriages: marriages without parents, or other governors and friends consent: or huddled up to avoid the danger of law for former uncleanness committed, with the like. Many by their preposterous and undue performing of so weighty a matter, do not only cause great trouble and disquietness on the marriage day, but also much sorrow all the days of their life. If such find no joy, comfort or help in marriage, but rather the contrary, let them not blame God's ordinance, but their own folly and perverseness. The second Treatise. PART. II. Of common-mutuall duties betwixt Man and Wife. §. 1. Of the heads of those common-mutuall duties. IN the first part of this Treatise concerning Man and Wife, hath been declared, who are so to be accounted: in this second part their common-mutuall duties are to be laid forth. These are either x De necessitate ad esse. absolutely necessary for the being and abiding of marriage: or y De honestate ad benè esse. needful and requisite for the well being and well abiding of it, that is, for the good estate of marriage, and for a commendable, and comfortable living together. There are two kinds of the former, 1. Matrimonial Unity. 2. Matrimonial Chastity. The latter also may be drawn to two heads: for they are either such as the married couple are mutually to perform each to other: or such as both of them are jointly to perform to others. Those mutual duties are 1. A loving affection of one to another. 2. A provident care of one for another. Under that provident care I comprise both the Means whereby it may be the better effected (which is Cohabitation) and the Matter wherein it consisteth: And this respecteth, 1. The Soul, 3. The Good-name of each other. 2. The Body, 4. The Goods The joint duties which are to be performed to others, respect 1. Those who are in the house. 2. Those who are out of the house. They who are in the house are 1. Members of the family. 2. Guests which come to the family. Many more particulars are comprised under these general heads, which I purpose distinctly to deliver, as I come to them in their several proper places. §. 2. Of Matrimonial unity. The first, highest, chiefest, and most absolutely necessary common-mutuall duty betwixt Man and Wife, is Matrimonial Unity, whereby husband and wife do account one another to be one flesh, and accordingly preserve the inviolable union whereby they are knit together. This is that duty which the Apostle enjoineth to husbands and wives, in these words, Let 1 Cor. 7. 10, 11. not the wife depart from her husband: Let not the husband put away his wife. He there speaketh of renouncing each other, and making the matrimonial bond frustrate, and of no effect: which bond he would have to be kept firm and inviolable, and they two who are thereby made one, constantly to remain one, and not to make themselves two again. This matrimonial unity is so necessary, as it may not be disunited or dissolved though one be a Christian, the other a Pagan. If any brother 1 Cor. 7. 12, 13. (saith the Apostle) hath a wife that believeth not, let him not put her away. And the woman which hath an husband that believeth not, let her not leave him. The reasons of this inviolable union are especially two: One taken from the Author of marriage: the other from the Nature thereof. 1. The Author of marriage is God. It is his ordinance: and Gen. 2. 18, 22, 24 he it is that by his ordinance hath made of two, one flesh. Now mark the consequence which Christ as a ruled case, and undeniable principle inferreth thereon, What God hath joined together Mat 19 6. let no man put asunder: If no man, then nor wife, nor husband himself. 2. Such is the Nature of the matrimonial bond as it maketh of two one, and * See Treat. 1 §. 79, 80. more firmly bindeth them two together, than any other bond can bind any other two together, how then should they be two again? §. 3. Of Desertion. The vice contrary to matrimonial unity is Desertion, when one of the married couple through indignation of the true religion, and utter detestation thereof, or some other like cause, shall apparently renounce all matrimonial unity, and withdraw him or herself from all society with the other, and live among Infidels, Idolaters, heretics, or other such persecutors, as a faithful Christian with safety of life, or a good conscience, cannot abide among; and though all good means that can be thought of be used to reclaim the party so departed, yet nothing will prevail, but obstinately persisteth in renouncing all matrimonial fellowship. This Desertion is in the case of marriage so capital, as it Infidelis discedens in matrimonium peccare dignoscitur: itaque non est ei fides seruanda coniugij. Ambr. in 1 Cor. 7. freeth the innocent party from any further seeking after the other. In which respect the Apostle saith, If the unbelieving depart, let him depart. A brother or a sister is not under bondage in such cases, 1 Cor. 7. 15. By bondage he meaneth matrimonial subjection (by reason whereof neither of the married persons have power of their own body, but one of the others.) Now they that are not under this bondage, are not bound to seek after it. That Desertion therefore on the delinquents 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Phot. in 1 Cor. 7. Luth. de matrim. Calu. epist. 227. Beza in lib. de Divort. part is such dissolution of marriage, as freeth the innocent party from the bondage thereof. In many reformed Churches beyond the seas Desertion is accounted so far to dissolve the very bond of marriage, as liberty is given to the party forsaken to marry another: and it is also applied to other cases then that which is above mentioned: as when an P. Martyr in 1 Cor. 7. 13. Melanct. in loc. de Coniug. Infidel, Idolater, or Heretic shall depart from one of the true religion for other causes than hatred of religion: or when both man and wife having lived as Idolaters among Idolaters, Zanchius de Oper. Dei lib. 4. cap. 1. one of them being converted to the true faith, leaveth his abode among Idolaters, and goeth to the professors of the true faith, but can by no means get the other party to remove: or when one of the true religion shall depart from another of the same profession, and will by no means be brought to live with the party so left, but openly manifesteth peremptory obstinacy; the matter being heard and adjudged by the Magistrate, the marriage bond may be broken, and liberty given to the party forsaken to marry another. But because our Church hath no such custom, nor our law determined such cases, I leave them to the custom of other Churches. §. 4. Of matrimonial Chastity. The second necessary common-mutuall mariage-dutie is Matrimonial chastity. Chastity in a large extent is taken for all manner of purity in soul or body: in which respect the Apostle calleth the Church of God a chaste virgin. But in the 1 Cor. 11. 2. sense wherein we here use it, it especially appertaineth to the body: which is that virtue whereby we possess our vessels (to 1 Thess. 4. 4. use the Apostles phrase) in holiness and honour: or more plainly to our purpose, whereby we keep our bodies undefiled. Chastity thus restrained to the body is of Single life. Wedlock. That of single life is opposed to fornication: and it is either of such as never were married. Such an one was S. Paul, in which respect he wisheth that all were as he, 1 Cor. 7. 7. Or of such as are lawfully freed from the bond of marriage. Such an one the Apostle calleth * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. 1 Tim. 5. 5. Paphnutius congressum cum legitima uxore castitatem esse dicebat. Socr. hist. Eccl. l. 1. cap. 11. a widow indeed. Chastity of wedlock is that virtue whereby parties married, observing the lawful and honest use of marriage, keep their bodies from being defiled with strange flesh: thus the Apostle commandeth wives to be chaste, Tit. 2. 5. So as a Qui leges coniugij seruat homini continenti par sit. Greg. Naz. Cygn. Carm. they that keep the laws of wedlock are as chaste as they that contain. Here by the way note the dotage of our adversaries, who think there is no chastity, but of single persons: whereupon in their speeches and writings b Clerici castitatem professi matrimonium contrahere non possunt. Concil. Trid. § 24. Can 9 they oppose chastity and matrimony one to another, as two contraries. Some of their holy Fathers and Popes, and those not the least learned, nor of worst note among them, have inferred by their arguments against Priest's marriage, that Marriage is a living in the flesh, a sowing to the flesh, a pollution of the flesh. To that Siricius & Innocentius 3. Gratian. Decr. distinct. 31. 82. 1 Cor. 7. 5. purpose S. Paul's advice to man and wife to abstain, that they may give themselves to fasting and prayer, is urged: but directly contrary to the intent of the Apostle. For, 1. He speaketh there of extraordinary humiliation. 2. He interposeth this limitation, for a time. 3. He saith not simply, that ye may pray, but that ye may give yourselves. (or have * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Non dixit simpliciter ut oretis, sed ut vacetis orationi: ac sirem impediat, non coinquinet. Chrys in 1 Cor. 7. hom. 19 leisure) to prayer: as if it did only hinder, but not pollute prayer. But how can the forenamed spots and blots of marriage stand with that beauty and glory wherewith the Apostle setteth it forth in these words, Marriage is honourable in all, H●b. 13. 4. If marriage were as Papists set it forth to be, the marriage-bed were very unfitly called a bed undefiled. Behold how contrary the spirits of S. Paul and of their Popes were. I wot well far more contrary than chastity and matrimony. But to return to our matter, clear it is, that married persons may be chaste, and accordingly they aught to be chaste. To which purpose the Apostle counselling men and women, for avoiding fornication, to have wives and husbands, inserteth this particle OWN (Let every man have his OWN wife, 1 Cor. 7. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and every woman have her OWN husband) whereby he implieth, that they should not have to do with any other. That which * Prou. 5. 19 See more of this text in Treat. 4. §. 11. Solomon expresseth of an husband, by the rule of relation must be applied to a wife. As the man must be satisfied at all times in his wife, and even ravished with her love; so must the woman be satisfied at all times in her husband, and even ravished with his love. By the like rule the precept given to wives, to be chaste, must husbands take as directed to themselves Tit. 2. 5. also, and be chaste. This duty did Isaak and Rebekah faithfully and mutually perform each to other. 1. It was one main end, why marriage (especially since the Reasons for mariage-chastitie. fall of man) was ordained, to live chastely. This the Apostle implieth, where he saith, to avoid fornication, let every man have his own wife, and let every woman have her own husband. 1. Chastity one end of marriage. 1 Cor. 7. 2. Ibid. vers. 9 And again, If they cannot contain let them marry. 2. By chastity is a godly seed preserved on earth. By this reason doth the Prophet Malachi enforce this duty. For after he had said, that the Lord made one, meaning of two one flesh 2. By chastity a godly seed preserved. Mal. 2. 16. by marriage, he inferreth this exhortation, Therefore take heed to your spirit, and let none deal unfaithfully against the wife of his youth. 3. An especial part of the honour of marriage consisteth in 3. Chastity the honour of marriage. Heb. 13. 4. chastity: whereupon the Apostle having given this high commendation of marriage, that it is honourable in all, addeth this clause (and the bed undefiled) to show the reason of that honour. As if he had said, Because the marriage-bed is in itself a bed undefiled, marriage is therefore in itself honourable, and doth so far remain honourable, as the bed remaineth undefiled. §. 5. Of Adultery. The vice contrary to matrimonial chastity is Adultery, one of the most capital vices in that estate: a vice whereby way is made for Divorce: as is clear and evident by the determination of Christ himself, concerning that point, first a Matth. 5. 32. propounded in his sermon on the mount, and again b Matth. 19 9 Christus ab adultera vero separari permittit. Greg. Naz. Orat. 36. Vir post fornicationem non est vir, Chrys. hom. 19 in 1 Cor. 7. repeated in his conference with the pharisees, where condemning unjust divorces, he excepteth the divorce made for adultery. And great reason there is thereof. For c 1 Cor. 6. 16. the adulterer maketh himself one flesh with his harlot. Why then should he remain to be one flesh with his wife? Two (saith the Law) shall be one flesh: not three. The like may be said of a wife committing adultery. §. 6. Of pardoning adultery upon repentance. Quest. Seeing by adultery just cause of divorce is given, may this fault upon the repentance of the delinquent person be so forgiven, as no divorce be sought by the innocent person, but both continue to live together in wedlock as before? Answ. Though it be not meet in this case, to impose it as an inviolable law upon the innocent party, to retain the delinquent, because of repentance (for we have direct and strict warrant for it) yet I doubt not but they may so do, if they will, and that without just exception to the contrary, they ought so to do. For the law of divorce did not necessarily enjoin any to sue out the bill, but only afforded them liberty to use that punishment if they saw cause. I doubt not but for warrant of this liberty, we may take God's pattern, in retaining Churches and people after they have committed spiritual adultery: and Christ's forgiving the woman that had committed adultery. For, d Postquam Christus ait adulterae, nec ego te damnabo: vade, deinceps noli peccare, quis non intelligat, debere maritum ignoscere quod videt ignovisse Dominum ambor 'em: nec iam se debere adulteram dicere cuius poenitentis crimen divina credit miseratione deletam? Aug. de adult. Coniug. lib. 2. cap. 6. Seeing Christ said to an adulteress, I condemn thee not, go and sin no more, who cannot conceive that an husband ought to forgive that which he seeth the Lord both of husband and wife hath forgiven: and that he ought not to account her an adulteress, whose fault he believeth to be blotted out, by the mercy of God, upon her repentance? §. 7. Of the difference of adultery in a man, and in a wife. Quest. Is the bond of marriage as much violated on the Adultery as great a sin in a man as in his wife. Lex Jul. de Adult. l. 1. Orif. Codic. in l. Illust. Greg. Sayr. Clau. reg. l. 9 c. 16. man's part when he committeth adultery as on the woman's when she doth so? Answ. Though the ancient Romans and Canonists have aggravated the woman's fault in this kind far above the man's, and given the man more privileges than the woman, yet I see not how that difference in the sin can stand with the tenor of God's word. I deny not but that more inconveniences may follow upon the woman's default then upon the man's: as, greater infamy before men, worse disturbance More inconveniences of a woman's adultery, than a man's. of the family, more mistaking of legitimate, or illegitimate children, with the like. The man cannot so well know which be his own children, as the woman; he may take base children to be his own, and so cast the inheritance upon them; and suspect his own to be basely borne, and so deprive them of their patrimony. But the woman is freed from all such mistake. Yet in regard of the breach of wedlock, and transgression against God, the sin of either party is alike. God's word maketh no disparity betwixt them. At the beginning God said of them both, a Mat. 19 5. they two shall be one flesh: not the woman only with the man, but the man also with the woman is made one flesh. b 1 Cor. 7. 3, 4. Their power also over one another in this respect is alike. If on just occasion they abstain, c Vers. 5. it must be with mutual consent. If the husband leave his wife, d Vers. 15. she is as free, as he should be, if she left him. Accordingly the punishment Tanto gravius viros puniri oportet, quanto magis ad eos pertinet & virtute vincere, & exemplo regere soeminas. Aug. de adult. Coning. l. 2. c. 8. which by God's law was to be inflicted on Adulterers is the same, whether the man or the woman be the delinquent, (Deut. 22. 22.) If difference be made, it is meet that adulterous husbands be so much the more severely punished, by how much the more it appertaineth to them to excel in virtue, and to govern their wives by example. §. 8. Of the heinousness of Adultery. But to return to the discovery of the heinousness of Adultery, I find no sin throughout the whole Scripture so notoriously in the several colours thereof set forth, as it is. For besides that it is a 7. Commandment. by name forbidden in the Decalogue, it is further expressly branded to be committed, 1. Against each person in the holy Trinity: the Father (whose b Prou. 2. 17. covenant is broken) the Son (whose c 1 Cor. 6. 16. members are made the members of an harlot) and the Holy Ghost (whose d 1 Cor. 6. 19 Temple is polluted.) 2. Against ones neighbour, as e Gen. 34. 31. the party with whom the sin is committed (for this sin cannot be committed singly by one alone) the husband and wife of each party f Prou. 6. 35. who cannot rest contented with any satisfaction) the g Gen. 21. 10. judg. 11. 2. Deut. 23. 2. children borne in adultery (whom they brand with an indelible character of infamy, and deprive of many privileges that otherwise they might enjoy) the h Levit. 21. 9 Gen. 34. 7. 2 Sam. 13. 22. alliance and friends of each party (to whom the grief and disgrace of this foul sin reacheth) the whole family appertaining to either of them (for i job 31. 12. 2 Sam. 12. 10. this is as a fire in an house) the town, city, and nation where such unclean birds roost (for k Gen. 34. 27. judg. 20. 10. Hos. 4. 3. all they lie open to the vengeance of God for this sin) and the very Church of God (the l Mal. 2. 15. holy seed whereof is by this sin hindered) 3. Against the parties themselves that commit this sin, and that against their m Prou. 6. 32. souls, n 1 Cor. 6. 18. bodies, o Prou. 6. 33. name, p Prou. 6. 26. goods, and all that appertaineth to them. As this sin is in itself a sinful sin, so by the bitter and The bitter fruits of Adultery. cursed fruits which proceed from it, it is made out of measure sinful. For 1. By it husbands and wife's affection (which of all other aught to be the most inviolable) is so alienated, as seldom it is reconciled again. 2. By it the goods of the family are much wasted: the adulterous husband spending that wherewith he should provide for his family, on his harlot: and the adulterous wife purloining what she can from her husband. 3. By it husbands and wives are stirred up to wish, and long after one another's death: and not only inwardly in heart to wish it, but outwardly also in deed to practise it. 4. If from this sin there arise not a galling and terrifying conscience (as oft there doth) then (which is worse) a seared conscience, an hard heart, a reprobate sense, and an impudent face. Wherefore God accordingly deals with such sinners. In God's judgements against adultery. his soul q Prou. 22. 14. he hateth them: by his word he hath denounced many fearful judgements against them, both in r Hos. 4. 2, 3. this world, and in s Reu. 21. 8. the world to come (against no sin more.) This sin is reckoned to be one of the most principal causes of the greatest judgements that ever were inflicted in the world: as of the t Gen. 6. 2, etc. general deluge: of that u Ezek. 16. 50. fire and brimstone which destroyed Sodom and Gomorrah: of * Levit. 18. 28. Canaan's spewing out her Inhabitants: of that x Num. 25. 9 plague which destroyed in one day 24000: and of the y jer. 5. 7, 8, 9 Israelites captivity, with the like: By all which we see that fearful doom verified, z Heb. 13. 4. Whoremongers, and adulterer's God will judge. Now consider what * Heb. 10. 31. a fearful thing it is to fall into the hands of the living God. §. 9 Of remedies against Adultery, and in particular of due benevolence, and of defect or excess therein. For preventing this heinous sin (to omit many other remedies which Gods word hath prescribed, as a Pro. 6. 25. a diligent keeping of the heart (that lustful thoughts proceed not from thence) of the b job 31. 1. eyes (that they wander not on the beauty or properness of any one's person, or on lascivious pictures, or any other like allurements) of the c Pro. 7. 21. ears (that they harken not to any enticements of others) of the d Ephes. 5. 4. tongue (that it utter no unchaste and corrupt communication) of the e Pro. 7. 13. lips (that they delight not in wanton kisses) of the f Pro. 6. 29. hands (that they use no wanton dalliance) of the g Pro. 7. 25. feet (that they carry thee not too near to the place where adultery may be committed) of thy h Ephes. 5. 7. company (that thou be not defiled with others wantonness and uncleanness) of thy i Gen. 19 33. diet (that it be not immoderate) of thine k Ezek. 23. 6, 15, 40. apparel (that it be not garish and lascivious) of thy l Gen. 39 9 Pro. 2. 16. time (that it be not vainly and idly spent) to omit, I say, these and other like remedies.) One of the best remedies that can be prescribed to married persons (next to an l Gen. 39 9 Pro. 2. 16. awful fear of God, and a continual setting of him before them, wheresoever they are) is, that husband and wife mutually delight each in other, and maintain a pure and fervent love betwixt themselves, yielding that m 1 Cor. 7. 2, 3, 5, 9 due benevolence one to another which is warranted & sanctified by God's word, and ordained of God for this particular end. This due benevolence (as the Apostle styleth it) is one of the most proper and essential acts of marriage: and necessary for the main and principal ends thereof: as for preservation of chastity in such as have not the gift of continency, for increasing the world with a legitimate brood, and for linking the affections of the married couple more firmly together. These ends of marriage, at least the two former, are made void without this duty be performed. As it is called * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. benevolence because it must be performed with good will and delight, willingly, readily and cheerfully; so it is said to be * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. due because it is a debt which the wife oweth to her husband, and he to her. n 1 Cor. 7. 4. For the wife hath not the power of her own body, but the husband; and likewise also the husband hath not the power of his own body, but the wife. I have my warrant from the Apostle to prescribe this duty as a remedy against adultery. For o 1 Cor. 7. 2, 3. to avoid fornication, he adviseth man and wife to render due benevolence one to another. If then this question be moved (How will marriage keep men and women from adultery?) this answer out of the Apostles words may be given (by rendering due benevolence:) which he further inculcateth by declaring the mischief that may follow upon the neglect of this duty, namely p Vers. 5. a casting of themselves into the snares of Satan. Well might he press this duty to that end, because no other means is of like force: nor fasting, nor watching, nor hard lodging, nor long travel, nor much labour, nor cold, nor solitariness, nor any thing else. * Dum solitudinis me deserta vallarent, ardorem naturae ferre non poteram: quem cum crebris ieiunijs frangerem, mens cogitationibus aestuabat. Hier. ad Rust. Mon. Lege eundem ad Eustoc. de custod. virgin. Some that have by these means endeavoured much to beat down their bodies, and subdue lust (but neglected the forenamed remedy) have notwithstanding felt lust boiling in them. There are two extremes contrary to this duty. One in the defect: another in the excess. Defect therein is, when in case of need it is not required, or being required by the one, it is not yielded by the other. Modesty is pretended by some for not requiring it: but in a duty so warrantable and needful, pretence of modesty is (to speak the least) a sign of great infirmity, and a cause of much iniquity. To deny this duty being justly required, is to deny a due debt, and to give Satan great advantage. The punishment inflicted on Onan, (Gen. 38. 9, 10.) showeth how great a wrong this is. From that punishment * Hebraei inquiunt perinde ut homicidam reum esse qui temerè semen profundit. Merc. in Gen. 38. 9 the Hebrews gather that this sin is a kind of murder. It is so much the more heinous when hatred, stoutness, niceness, fear of having too many children, or any other like respects, are the cause thereof. Excess is either in the measure, or in the time. In the measure, when husband or wife is insatiable; provoking, rather than asswaging lust, and weakening their natural vigour more than suppressing their unnatural humour. Many husbands and wives are much oppressed by their bedfellows unsatiableness in this kind. In the time, when it is against Piety, Mercy, or Modesty. 1. Against Piety, when no day, nor duty of Religion, no not extraordinary days, and duties of humiliation, will make them forbear. q Io●l 2. 6. The Prophets bidding the bridegroom and ●ride go out of their chamber in the day of a Fast, and r 1 Cor. 7. 5. the Apostles excepting of Prayer and fasting, where he enjoineth this duty of due benevolence, show that in the time of a Fast it must ●e forborn. 2. Against Mercy, when one of the married couple being weak by sickness, pain, labour, travel, or any other like ●eanes, and through that weakness not well able to perform his duty, the other notwithstanding will have it performed. ● will have mercy, and not sacrifice, saith the Lord. Shall God's sacrifice give place to mercy, and shall not man's or woman's 〈◊〉? for so I may well term this unseasonable desire. Quest. What if an husband or wife continue so long sick, ●● otherwise weak, as the other cannot contain? Answ. In such cases of necessity the body must be beaten twne, and earnest prayer made for the gift of continency: for ●redly the Lord who hath brought thee to that necessity, all give thee grace sufficient. 3. Against Modesty, s Quo tempore si vir coierit cum muliere, dicuntur concepti foetus vitium seminis tral ere: ita ut leprosi & elephantiaci ex hac conceptione nascantur. Hier. in Lam. 1. when husbands require this duty in that me, which under the Law was called the time of a wife's separation for her disease (Leu. 15. 19 etc.) For what can be expected ●m such polluted copulation, but a leprous and loathsome generation? This kind of intemperancy is expressly forbidden (Levit. 18. 19) and a capital punishment inflicted on such as offended therein (Levit. 20. 18.) Abstinence in this time is set in the catalogue of those notes which declare a man to be righteous (Eccles. 20. 7.) and the contrary intemperancy is put in the roll of such abominations as provoked God to spew out the Canaanites (Levit. 18. 28.) and to forsake his own inheritance (Ezek. 22. 10.) To this kind of intemperancy * Aug. de bon. coniug. ca 6. Amb. in 1 Cor. 7. some refer a man's knowing of his wife after she hath conceived with child. But I find no such matter condemned in God's word: neither dare I make that a sin which is not there condemned. t Nemo Essenorum cum praegnante concumbit. joseph. de bell. jud. li. 2. c. 7. Certain Sectaries among the jews are branded for this error. 1. Object. No other creature will so do: so as it may seem to be against nature. Answ. 1. I deny the argument: though some forbear, yet all do not. 2. I deny the consequence: for other creatures are not so tied one male to one female, as an husband to his own wife. * Quod in bestijs ipso naturae iure praescriptum est, ut praegnantes ad partum usque non coeant, hoc in hominibus sciant arbitrio relictum. Hier. in Eph. 5. Sanchez de Matr. lib. 9 disp. 21, 22. agit de petendo & reddendo debito quando menstruum est: & tempore praegnationis, & dum infans lactatur. Besides, that which beasts by nature are tied unto, must be left to man's discretion. 2. Object. After a woman hath once conceived, no more conceptions can be expected, till she be delivered. Answ. Conception is not the only end of this duty: for it is to be rendered to such as are barren. Quest. What if the wife give suck to her child, ought not her husband then to forbear? Answ. Because giving suck is a mother duty, man ought to do what he can to contain. §. 10. Of mutual love betwixt man and wife. Hitherto of those common mutual duties which tend to the preservation of the very being of marriage, and are in that respect absolutely necessary. The other common mutual duties (though they be not of so absolute necessity as the former) are in their kind necessary for the good estate of marriage, and for the better preserving of that knot: so as, if they be not performed, the end and right use of marriage will be perverted, & that estate made uncomfortable, & very burdensome. The first of these is Love.. A loving mutual affection must pass betwixt husband and wife, or else no duty will be well performed: this is the ground of all the rest. In some respects Love is proper and peculiar to an husband, as * Treat. 4. §. 2. I purpose to show when I come to speak of an husband's particular duties. But Love is also required of wives, and they are commanded to be lovers of their husbands, as well as husbands to love their wives: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Tit. 2. 4. Col. 3. 19 so as it is a common mutual duty belonging to husband and wife too: and that is true wedlock, when man and wife are linked together by the bond of love. Under love all other duties Hoc verum est coniugium, quando vinculo charitatis sunt concatenati. Chrys. hom. 45. in Gen. are comprised: for without it no duty can be well performed. a Rom. 13. 10. Love is the fulfilling of the Law, that is, the very life of all those duties which the law requireth. It is the b Col. 3. 14. bond of perfection, which bindeth together all those duties that pass betwixt party and party. Where love aboundeth, there all duties will readily and cheerfully be performed. Where love is wanting, there every duty will either be altogether neglected, or so carelessly performed, that as good not be performed at all: in which respect the Apostle willeth, that all things be done 1 Cor. 16. 14. in love. Love as it provoketh the party in whom it ruleth to do all the good it can; so it stirreth up the party loved to repay good for good. It is like fire, which is not only hot in itself, but also conveyeth heat into that which is near it: whence ariseth a reflection of heat from one to another. Note how admirably this is set forth betwixt Christ and his Spouse in the Song of Solomon: and it is further manifested in the examples of all good husbands and wives noted in the Scripture: they did mutually bear a very loving affection one to another. Though love be a general duty which every one oweth to another, Matth. 5. 44. even to his enemy, yet the nearer that God hath linked any together, the more are they bound to this duty, and the more must they abound therein. But of all others are * Treat. 1. §. 79, 80. man and wife most nearly and firmly linked together. Of all others therefore are they most bound hereunto, & that in the highest degree that may be, even like to Jonathan's love, who loved David 1 Sam. 18. 1. Prou. 18. 22. as his own soul. Solomon saith, He that findeth a wife findeth a good thing, and obtaineth favour of the Lord: which by the rule of relation is also true of an husband, She that findeth an husband findeth a good thing, and obtaineth favour of the Lord. Man and wife therefore are each to other an especial pledge of God's favour, and in this respect above all others under God to be loved. If this be the ground (as it ought to be) of their mutual That which in Treat. 4. §. 2. 9 11. is spoken of an husband's love and entire affection, may also be applied in some respects to a wife: and so serve to amplify this common mutual duty of love. love, their love will be fervent and constant. Neither will the want, or withering of any outward allurements, as beauty, personage, parentage, friends, riches, honours, or the like, withhold or withdraw, extinguish or extenuate their love: neither will any excellencies of nature or grace in other husbands and wives draw their hearts from their own to those other: nor yet will the love of a former yoke-fellow dead and gone, any whit lessen the love of the living mate. This instance I have the rather mentioned, because in many, Love of after venter's to be as entire as of former. who are far from setting their affection on strange flesh, their love of a former husband or wife departed is so fast fixed in their heart, as they can never again so entirely love any other. They who are so minded are not fit to be joined with another yoke-fellow after they are loosed from one. If they marry again, and manifest such a mind, they plainly show that they respect this or that person more than God's ordinance. By God's ordinance man and wife are no longer bound one to another than they live together. Death is an absolute diremption, and maketh an utter dissolution of the marriage bond. If the man Rom. 7. 2, 3. be dead, the wife is delivered from the law of the man, so as she may take another man. Which liberty is also given to the man. Being now free, if they marry another (that other being now a true husband or wife) their love must be as entire to that other as it was to the former: yea, and more entire, if there were any defect in the former. For as children married out of their parent's house must not retain such a love of their parents as shall swallow up their love of the party to whom they are married, but must according to the law, leave father and mother, and cleave to their yoke-fellow: so neither must the love of a former husband or wife be predominant when they are married to another. This other must be as close cleaved unto, as if they had never been joined to a former. The living husband or wife is the present pledge of God's favour. He is now thine own husband: and she is now thine own wife: and not the party that is dead. I deny not but the memory of a virtuous husband or wife ought to be precious to the surviving party: for the memorial of the just is blessed. Prou. 10. 7. But as the virtue of a person deceased may not be buried with the dead corpse: so neither may the person be kept above ground with the memory of his or her virtue: which after a sort is done, when love of the party deceased either taketh away, or extenuateth the love of the living. This is to give dominion to the dead over the living: which is more than the law enjoineth. §. 11. Of husbands and wives mutual hatred contrary to love. There is a generation of so crabbed and crooked a disposition * See Treat. 3. § 8. & Treat. 4. §. 10. as they cannot love, but rather hate one another because they are man and wife: for many husbands having wives, and wife's husbands every way worthy to be loved, will notwithstanding say to the astonishment of the hearers, I have indeed a good husband, or I have a good wife: but I cannot love him, or I cannot love her: and being demanded a reason, stick not openly and impudently to reply, I think I could love him if he were not mine husband, or I think I could love her if she were not my wife. O more than monstrous impudency! Is not this directly to oppose against God's ordinance, and against that order which he hath set betwixt man and woman? Is it not to trample under foot God's favour? Though there were nothing else to move love but this, that such an one is thine husband, or such an one is thy wife, yet this should be motive enough. And shall this be the ground of thine hatred? Assuredly such a spirit is a plain diabolical spirit, contrary to that spirit which is from above; and if it be not cast out, it will cast those whom it possesseth into the fire of hell. §. 12. Of mutual peace betwixt Man and Wife. Among other means of maintaining an inward loving affection betwixt man and wife, outward mutual peace, concord, and agreement is one of the principal. Whereupon the Apostle exhorteth to keep the unity of the spirit in the bond of Ephes. 4. 3. peace: for peace is a bond that tieth one to another, and maketh them to be as one, even one in spirit: as on the contrary side outward discord disunites men's spirits. We are enjoined to follow peace with all men: how much more of all persons ought Heb. 12. 14. husbands to have peace with their wives, and wives with their husbands? they are nearer than brothers and sisters. Behold then how good and pleasant a thing it is for them to dwell together in unity. * §. 14. Prou. 21. 9 Dwell together they must: but without peace there is no dwelling together: It is better to dwell in a corner of the house top then with a contentious woman in a wide house. Persons at variance were far better be out of sight and place, then present together. Out of sight and place man and wife must not be, at peace therefore Portus est mulier, & maximum securitatis remedium. Si ventis & fluctibus portum liberaveris ex foro reversus tranquillè vives. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. they must be. Mutual peace betwixt them is a great refreshing to their minds, being beaten with the discords of others. It is said that a wife is in this respect as an haven to man (how much more man to his wife?) If the haven be calm, and free from storms and tempests, what a refreshing will it be to the Mariner that hath been tossed in the sea with winds and waves? For maintaining peace, 1. All offences so much as possibly may be must be avoided. Directions for maintaining peace betwixt Man and Wife. The husband must be watchful over himself that he give no offence to his wife: and so the wife on the other side. Offences cause contentions. 2. When an offence is given by the one party, it must 1. Avoid offence. not be taken by the other; but rather passed by: and then will not peace be broken. The second blow makes 2. Take not offence. the fray. 3. Offer reconciliation. 3. If both be incensed together, the fire is like to be the greater: with the greater speed therefore must they both labour to put it out. Wrath must not lie in bed with two such Eph. 4. 26. bedfellows: neither may they part beds for wrath sake. That this fire may be the sooner quenched, they must both strive first to offer reconciliation. Theirs is the glory who do first begin, for they are most properly the blessed peacemakers. Not Mat. 5. 9 to accept peace when it is offered is more than heathenish: but when wrath is incensed, to seek atonement is the duty of a Christian, and a grace that cometh from above. 4. Children, servants, nor any other in the family must be 4. Take no part with others. bolstered up by the one against the other. The man's partaking with any of the house against his wife, or the wives against her husband, is an usual cause of contention betwixt man and wife. 5. They must forbear to twit one another in the teeth 5. Make not comparisons. with the husbands or wives of other persons: or with their own former husbands or wives (in case they have had any before.) Comparisons in this kind are very odious. They stir up much passion, and cause great contentions. 6. Above all they must take heed of rash and unjust jealousy, 6. Be not jealous. which is the bane of marriage, and greatest cause of discontent that can be given betwixt man and wife. jealous persons are ready to pick quarrels, and to seek occasions of discord: they will take every word, look, action, and motion, in the worse part, and so take offence where none is given. When jealousy is once kindled, it is as a flaming fire that can hardly be put out. It maketh the party whom it possesseth implacable. Pro. 6. 34, 35. 7. In all things that may stand with a good conscience they must endeavour to please one another: and either of 7. Please one another. them suffer their own will to be crossed, rather than discontent to be given to the other. Saint Paul noteth this as a common 1 Cor. 7. 33, 34. mutual duty belonging to them both, and expresseth their care thereof under a word that signifieth more than ordinary 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. care, and implieth a dividing of the mind into diverse thoughts, casting this way, and that way, and every way how to give best content. §. 13. Of contentions betwixt man and wife. Contrary to mutual peace are contentions betwixt man and wife: which are too frequent in most families, and by which cum vir & uxor domi dissentiunt, nihilo melius navi iactata domus illa disponitur, cum gubernator adversus prorae directo. rem dissentiat. Chrys. loc. citat. Gen. 13. 8. the common good is much hindered. Discord betwixt man and wife in an house is as contention betwixt the master and pilot in a ship: may not great danger, and much mischief be thence justly feared? We heard before that man to his wife, and she to him, is as an haven. Now by experience we find that if the haven be tempestuous it is much more troublesome, and dangerous to the Mariner then the wide sea. Wherefore let man and wife be of the same mind one to another as Abraham was to Lot, and when occasions of discord are offered, say, Let there be no strife betwixt thee and me, for we are man and wife: no more two, but one flesh. §. 14. Of husbands and wives dwelling together. From a mutual affection of love proceedeth a mutual provident care in husband and wife one for another. In handling whereof we will first note the means whereby their mutual providence may be the better effected and manifested, and then the matter whereabout it must be conversant. The means in one word is cohabitation. For a duty it is that man and wife dwell together. The phrase used in setting out the woman's creation (he built a woman, whereby the erecting of 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Vide Musc. in Gen. 2. 22. See Treat. 1. §. 79. a family is intimated) implieth as much: so doth the law of marriage whereby man is enjoined to leave father and mother, and to cleave unto his wife, that is, to go out of his father's house, and to dwell with his wife: and so doth this phrase (forget Psal. 45. 10. thy father's house) taken from the duty of a wife, and mystically applied to the Church. Saint Peter expressly chargeth husbands 1 Pet. 3 7. to dwell with their wives: and Saint Paul layeth it to 1 Cor. 7. 12, 13. the charge both of husbands and wives not to leave one another, but to dwell together, yea though the one be an infidel. Surely it was conscience of this duty which made the e judg. 19 3. Levite to go after his wife, that went away from him, to bring her home again: and which made f Gen. 31. 14. jacob's wives to leave their father's house, and go with their husband. * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 coniux. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 uxor. The word under which Saint Peter compriseth this duty is a title appropriated to an husband: and an answerable title is appropriated to a wife: from which the notation of our two usual English words (husband, housewife) doth not much differ. The power which the one hath of the others body, and Reasons for cohabitation. the advantage which by living asunder, they give unto Satan, (both of which are expressly noted, 1 Cor. 7. 4, 5.) do show the necessity of this duty: and the many benefits arising from thence do further press the equity of it. By husbands and Benefits of cohabitation. wives dwelling together all marriage duties are better performed: mutual love is better bred, preserved, and increased: the good gifts of either of them are better observed by the other: better help and succour is mutually by each afforded to the other: and in fine they are made more capable of doing good one to another, and of receiving good one from another. Why then should they have any mind of living asunder, unless they be forced by extraordinary occasions, as captivity, close imprisonment, contagious sickness, and such like, which are no faults of theirs, but crosses to be borne with grief; and instant prayer, together with all other good means, to be used to bring them together again? Yea if the imprisonment, banishment, or other like kind of absence, D. Fulke against Rhem. on 1 Cor. 7. §. 6. be such as one may if they will come at the other, the party that is free aught to come to the other, if at least that other require it. §. 15. Of the respects for which man and wife may for a time live asunder. Quest. May there be any just causes for man and wife willingly to live asunder? Answ. There can nor aught to be any cause of utter relinquishing one another, which is a kind of * §. 3. desertion: but for living asunder for a time there may be just causes, as 1. Weighty and urgent affairs which concern the good of the Church, or commonwealth: as when a man is sent forth to war, or on an ambassage (in which case though he may take his wife with him, yet is he not necessarily bound there to, especially if the place whither he is sent be far off, the passage thereto difficult and dangerous, and his abode there not long.) When b Numb. 32. 26, 27. Reuben, Gad, and half the tribe of Manassch passed over Iorden to help their brethren in their battles against the Canaanites, they left their wives behind them in their families: c 2 Sam. 11. 3, 6. when Vriah went to war, he left his wife at home: and d Exo. 18. 2. when Moses was to bring Israel out of Egypt, his wife remained at her father's house. 2. Main duties of their particular calling: as of Mariners, who are oft to be on the sea: Merchants who trade in other countries: Lawyers who attend public places of justice: Courtiers, who in their months, or quarters, attend their Prince: Keepers of women in childbed, and sick persons: and other nurses. Provided always that in these, and other like cases, there be Absence, 1. not without consent. 1 Cor. 7. 5. a joint and mutual consent of both parties: for if man and wife may not defraud one another for a time to give themselves to fasting and prayer without consent: much less may they for lighter occasions live any time asunder without 2. Not with delight. Si vir ad peregrina contenderit, nulla longin. quitas, nulla absentia complacitam minuat charitatem. Ambr. Hexaem. l. 5. c. 7. consent. Provided also that they take no delight to live asunder, but rather be grieved that they are forced so to do: and in testimony thereof to take all occasions that they can to manifest their longing desire one after another by letters, messages, tokens, and other like kindnesses: and to return with all the speed they can. No distance, or absence ought any whit to diminish their mutual love. §. 16. Of the error of Papists about man and wife's separation. Si quis dixerit Ecclesiam errore cum ob multas causas separationem inter coniuges quoad thorum, sen cohabitationem, ad certum, incertumue tempus fieri posse decernit, Anathema sit. Concil. Trid. §. 24. can. 8. Contrary to the duty of cohabitation is the doctrine of Papists, whereby they teach, that Separation may be made betwixt man and wife for many causes from bed, or cohabitation, for a certain or uncertain time. The Council of Trent is bold to denounce Anathema against such as say, the Church erreth therein. If the many causes which they allege, besides adultery, be well weighed, we shall find them without all warrant of God's word. * Bellarm. de Matrim. l. 1. c. 14. They draw them to two heads, 1. Mutual consent. 2. Demerit. By consent (say they) of both parties married to attain a greater and perfecter estate, marriage consummate may be loosed from bed and cohabitation. Answ. 1. In marriage there is a covenant of God (Prou. 2. 17.) as well as of the two parties: the consent therefore of parties is not sufficient to break it. 2. No estate in this world can be greater or perfecter then is meet for married persons. Adam and Eve in their best estate were married: and now is marriage honourable in all. Heb. 13. 4. 3. The estates which they count more perfect, are either such as are not in man's power (as perpetual continency) or such as may be as well performed by married persons as by single persons (as Ecclesiastical functions) if at least they be such as are warranted by God's word. High Priests, and other Priests, all sorts of Levites, extraordinary Prophets and Apostles were married. What greater functions than these? The causes which for demerit, they say, make a separation, ●re 1. Adultery. 2. Departing from the Catholic faith. 3. Soliciting or impelling unto sin. Concerning * See §. 5. Adultery, we deny not, but that it giveth ●ust cause of divorce: but withal we say (as a Matth. 5. 32. we have good warrant from Christ's words) that it is the only cause of just divorce. For to make a separation for departing from the Catholic faith, Fidei gratia uxorem ne eijcias. Chrys. hom. 19 in 1 Cor. 7. is directly contrary to S. Paul's and S. Peter's doctrine, 1 Cor. 7. 12, 13, 14. 1 Pet. 3. 1. As for soliciting and impelling unto sin, though it may be cause to move an husband or a wife to walk more warily and Si ferus moribus fit coniux, perferat illum uxor, nec ullam ob causam societatem, vinculumque dissoluere patiatur. Basil. Hexaem. bom. 7. Matth. 5. 29. wisely, and in extremity to avoid society for a time, or to complain to the Magistrate for relief, who may see it meet to lay ●he delinquent person in prison, or else otherwise keep them sunder till that delinquent be reclaimed and brought to a better mind: yet is it no sufficient cause finally to dissolve ma●age in regard of bed and cohabitation. They urge that if the right eye cause to offend, it must be plucked out. Ans. 1. That is but a metaphor, and may sundry other ways 〈◊〉 applied. 2. The words are not simply, but by way of comparison to ●e taken, rather pluck it out, then to be made to stumble thereby. 3. Plucking out, applied to the point in hand, may be by ●any other ways, then by dissolving marriage. 4. That general inhibition (whosoever shall put away his wife, Matth. 5. 32. causeth her to commit adultery) restrained only with the exception of fornication, admitteth neither this, nor any other such cause of dissolving marriage. §. 17. Of husbands and wives unlawful absenting themselves one from another. Contrary also to the forenamed duty of cohabitation, is the practice of many men, who living themselves in one place (suppose at London) send their wives unto some country house, and there even mew them up, as Hawks, never caring to come at them, but are then most merry, when their wives are farthest off. If their wives live at home they will be abroad, mealing and lodging where their wives shall not know: their own house is as a prison to them: they are not well, but when they are out of it. Of the like lewd conceit and practife are many wives, who on no other occasion then mere lightness, being eager in pursuing their pleasures, and satisfying their lusts, gad out of their own houses in the day, lie out of them in the night, and remain in other company days and nights: or at least are glad when their husbands have occasion to be from home; not unlike to the light huswife which Solomon describeth, Prou. 7. 10. etc. I speak of matters too famous, or rather infamous. I would there were no just cause to tax this lightness. But let such as desire to approve themselves to God or man, take heed of these heinous and more than heathenish vices. Though Israel play the harlot, yet let not judah Hos. 4. 15. offend. Too near to the forenamed kind of unlawful separation Man and wife's fault in parting rooms and beds in the same house. do they come, who though they live both in one house, yet make that house by their estranging themselves one from another as two houses: the man abiding in one end thereof, his wife in another: and so have their several rooms, several tables, several servants, all several: Or if the straightness of their house will not suffer them so to part other rooms, yet they will have several bedchambers, or at least several beds: so as they that shall call them bedfellows, shall but nicke-name them. Thus they rob each other of that due benevolence which they mutually owe one to another, they expose themselves to the devil's snares, they more and more estrange their hearts one from another, and deprive themselves of such mutual comforts and helps, as by matrimonial society they might afford to, and receive from one another. §. 18. Of husbands and wives mutual prayers. The matter whereabout husbands and wives mutual providence ought to be conversant, is in general the good of one another; that each of them do that for the other, which Solomon in particular applieth to a wife, viz. good and not evil all Prou. 31. 12. the days of their life. Now the good of man extendeth to his soul, body, good name, and goods. A general duty tending to the good of all these is prayer. Prayer a mutual duty. 1 Pet 3. 7. S. Peter requireth such a carriage of man and wife one towards another, as their prayers be not hindered: whereby he taketh it for grant, that prayer is a mutual duty which one oweth to the other: which duty Isaak performed for his wife. Herein may Gen. 25. 21. man and wife be helpful each to other in all things needful to either of them: for it is the means which God in wisdom Matth. 7. 7. I am. 5. 16. hath sanctified for the obtaining of every needful blessing for ourselves or others. By many it is counted but a slight duty and of small use; but the truth is, that to perform it aright, in truth and faith, is both difficult in the deed, and powerful in the effect. It is the best duty that one can perform for another, and the least to be neglected. We heard before, that Isaak prayed for his wife: and to show the good he did to her thereby, it is noted, that the Lord was entreated of him: so as she, being Gen. 25. 21. barren before, by that means conceived. All the physic in the world could not have done her so much good. a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Luke 18. 1. Always therefore, b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. 1 Thess. 5. 17. without ceasing is this duty to be performed. Whensoever man and wife make any prayer, therein they must be mindful of one another: yea and oft must they of purpose take occasion to make prayers in special one for another: and that both in absence, and also in presence of one another. This latter doth especially concern the husband, who is as a Priest unto his wife, and aught to be her mouth to God when they two are together: yet I doubt not, but that the wife may pray in the husband's presence when they two are alone, ●ither for trial (that he may have knowledge of her ability and gift in that kind) or for help (if the wife be much better able to perform that duty than the man is, as many wives are.) Not without cause therefore have I reckoned this among common mutual duties. §. 19 Of the things for which husbands and wives are to pray alone. There are sundry needful blessings which husbands and wives are to pray for that appertain only to themselves, and are most meet to be mentioned in private prayer betwixt themselves, as 1. That as they two are one flesh, so they may be also one spirit: that their hearts may be as one, knit together by a true, spiritual, matrimonial love: always delighting one in another, ever helpful one to another, and ready with all willingness and cheerfulness to perform all those duties which they owe one to another. 2. That their marriage bed may be sanctified: and as it is by God's ordinance, so it may remain to them by their well using it, a bed undefiled. There is no other thing, for which mutual prayer in private betwixt man and wife is more needful: and that so much the rather, because of the natural heat of lust which is in most: which if it be not by prayer (the best means for that purpose) assuaged, it may prove a defilement Intemperans' in coniugio quid aliud nisi quidam adulter uxoris est? Aug. ex Ambr. contr. julian. lib. 2. of the undefiled bed: and man and wife become adulterers one to another. As other things, so this also is sanctified by the word and prayer. The word giveth a warrant and direction for the use of it: prayer both seasoneth it, and procureth a blessing upon it. 3. That they may have children, and those such as may be heirs of salvation, and live in this world to their own and others good: that they may be comely and well proportioned children: nor idiots in understanding, nor monsters in bodily shape, nor yet lewd and infamous in their lives: which could not but be a grief to their parents, and might also open the mouths of the wicked against them. 4. That God would give them competency of this world's goods, and other good means well to nourish, nurture, and place forth their children: and a sufficiency for the maintenance of their family, and of that estate wherein God setteth them. 5. That such needful gifts and graces as are wanting in either of them may be wrought: and such vices and infirmities as they are subject unto may be redressed. These and many other like things give occasion to man and wife in special manner to pray one for another, and one with another. §. 20. Of husbands and wives hateful imprecations and wishes one against another. Contrary to that holy and heavenly duty of prayer are those direful and hellish imprecations and execrations, which ordinarily do pass out of the mouths of many husbands and wives against one another (and that many times for very light occasions) cursing the day that ever they knew one another, and wishing that one of them had been under the ground before they came together. Most odious are these and such like execrations in any man's mouth, but more than most odious in the mouth of man and wife against one another. Many who for outward shame for bear to belch forth such wrotten stinking speech, make small conscience of wishing the like in their hearts. If an husband be any whit harsh, and a wife shrewish: or if through sickness, or any other like occasion they seem burdensome each to other: or if any dislike of one arise in the heart of the other: or if their hearts be set upon others: or if the survivor be to carry away the goods and ●ands, their hearts will be filled with a thousand wishes of one another's death. Yea, many times such as have very good husbands or wives, without any show of reason (only through an inward corrupton of their heart, and malicious instigation of Satan, not taking notice of their own good) are ready to wish they were in heaven: making thereby a pretence of their eternal bliss to whom they so wish, whereas indeed their only desire is to be loosed and freed from them. God oft meets with such wicked wishers (whereby he showeth how hateful such wishes are to him) for sometimes according to their wish he taketh away good husbands and wives from those that are evil: and when they are gone he maketh their loss to be so sensibly felt, as those ungodly wishers do, (as we speak) in every vein of their heart repent them of their rash wishes. Yea, to aggravate their wretchedness the more, he giveth them such crabbed and perverse husbands and wives in the room and stead of those good ones (for seldom comes a better) as they are forced with many deep sighs and groans to wish (but all in vain) their former wives and husbands Quam chara sint carendo intelligunt. Cic. in Orator. alive again, and so to verify the proverb, A good thing is not so well discerned by enjoying, as by wanting it. Sometimes again God in anger crosseth their wishes, and first taketh away the wishers of others death: or else prolongeth the life of both to Amicitiae quid haberent voluptatis carendo magis intellexi quam sruendo. Idem in oration. post red. their greater vexation. §. 21. Of husbands and wives neglect of mutual prayer. The very neglect of mutual prayer in husbands and wives for each other is also a sin contrary to the forenamed duty of prayer: whereof if all that are guilty were as well known to man as to God, how many unkind husbands and wives careless of one another's good would be noted, more than are? Rare are those husbands and wives, that have their seasons to pray alone together one with another, if ever they pray one for another. Though in outward compliments they may seem very kind, and in the outward things of this world, very provident, yet if they pray not one for another, they are neither kind, nor provident. Heartie, fervent, frequent prayer is the greatest token of kindness, and best part of providence that can be. §. 22. Of husbands and wives mutual care for one another's salvation. From the general duty of prayer which is profitable to all things, I come to the particular branches of man and wives Admonendi sunt coniuges ut exhortantes invicem saluent. Greg. in Past. part. 3. Adm. 28. mutual provident care: and will first begin with that which is first to be sought, the good of one another's soul: which the Apostle intimateth to be a thing to be sought after, where he saith, a 1 Cor. 7. 16. What knowest thou, o wife, whether thou shalt SAVE thine husband, or what knowest thou, o man, whether thou shalt SAVE thy wife? b 1 Pet. 3. 1. S. Peter enjoineth wives to do their endeavour to win their husbands: and c Epb. 5. 25. S. Paul setteth before husbands the pattern of Christ's love, which had especial respect Of the particular duty of husbands in this respect, See Treat. 4. §. 47. to the soul and the salvation thereof: so as this is a mutual duty appertaining to them both, which S. Peter further implieth where he styleth them coheirs of the grace of life. It is the greatest good that one can possibly do for another, to be a means of helping forward his salvation. And there is 1 Pet. 3. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. nothing that can more sound and firmly knit the heart of one to another, then to be a means thereof. §. 23. Of husbands and wives care to win one the other, when one of them is not called. That the salvation of the soul may be the better effected, respect must be had to the present and particular estate of husband or wife. If one be a believer the other not, the believer must use all the means that may be, to draw on the other also to believe. If both be believers, their mutual care must be to ●edifie one another in their most holy faith. For the first, it is the main drift of S. Peter's exhortation to 1 Pet. 3. 1. believing wives, about their conversation, to draw on their unbelieving husbands to the true faith. His phrase (that they 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. may be won or gained) as in general it hath respect to their soul's salvation, so in particular to their first conversion. Now if this duty appertain to a wife, much more to an husband, who is appointed an head to his wife, and a saviour. To this end doth S. Paul advice believing husbands and wives that Eph. 5. 23. 1 Cor. 7. 12, 13 are married to unbelievers, to dwell with them. For what a woeful thing is it, that two which in this world A woeful thing that one flesh should be in heaven and hell. Luk. 17. 34. are so nearly linked together as to make one flesh, should in the world to come be so far separated one from another, as heaven is from hell. This indeed shall so fall out in many: for Christ hath expressly foretold it, that of two that were one●ed ●ed together (who are more fitly set forth under this phrase then man and wife, who most usually are styled bedfellows?) ●ne shall be taken (to mercy and glory) the other shall be for saken or left to endless and easeless torture and torment.) But though it be foretold that thus it shall fall out with many a ●ouple, yet our care must be, and that with our uttermost power, Means of conversion the best cause of love. to prevent it, as in ourselves, so in our bedfellow. If it please the Lord to give such a blessing to the endeavour of an husband or wife, as to be a means of the conversion of their bedfellow, then will the party converted both entirely love the other, and also heartily bless God (as there is just cause) that ever they were so nearly linked together. This duty of winning one another, is to be applied to such as are married not only to plain infidels, but also to Papists or other like Idolaters, to Atheists, or any other profane persons, to heretics, separatists, schismatics, or any that believe not aright. §. 24. Of husbands and wives edifying one another. The second duty tending to the soul's salvation is, that two believers being married together, they endeavour mutually to build up one another more and more. b 1 Thess. 5. 11 One Christian oweth this duty to another: much more man and wife. c Heb. 12. 15. Take heed (saith the Apostle) that no man fall away from the grace of God. If no man, then nor wife nor husband. A spiritual edifying of one another is the best use which Spiritual edification a main end of matrimonial conjunction. we can make (and aught to make) of those d Col. 2. 19 joints and bonds whereby we are knit one to another. By virtue of them e Eph. 4. 16. the body (namely the mystical body of Christ) receiveth increase to the edifying of itself, and d Col. 2. 19 increaseth with the increase of God. Now the bond of marriage being of all other the firmest, and that whereby we are nearest knit together, by virtue of what bond should we edify one another, if not by virtue of the marriage bond? §. 25. Of husbands and wives hindering sin one in another. Two things are requisite unto spiritual edification. One respecteth the hindrances of growth in grace. The other the helps thereof. The hindrances of grace are all manner of sins. Sin to grace is as water to fire: it slaketh the heat of it, and if without ho it be poured on it, it will clean put it out. In regard hereof there ought to be a mutual care in husbands and wives, both to prevent sin before it be committed, and also to make what redress they can after it is committed. That it is a mutual duty for husbands and wives so much Man and wife to prevent sin in one another. as they can, to prevent sin one in another is evident, by that reason which the Apostle useth, to keep them from defrauding one another, in these words, that Satan tempt you not. 1 Cor. 7. 5. For out of the scope and matter of those words, this general doctrine may be gathered, Husbands and wives ought to be careful to keep one another from the temptations of Satan, that is, from sin, whereunto all his temptations tend. g Gen. 27. 6, etc. Rebekah performed the duty of a good wife in keeping Isaak from blessing Esau: which if he had done, he had sinned against h Gen. 25. 23. God's express word. Though she failed in the manner of doing it, yet her end was good. As that love they owe one to another, so that care which they By preventing sin in each other, they keep judgements from themselves. ought to have of themselves requireth as much, for sin provoketh God's wrath, his wrath sendeth down vengeance, that vengeance which falleth on the husband can hardly miss the wife, or that the husband, which falleth on the wife; and that by reason of their near union: though it fall not on both their pates, yet it cannot but much affect, and even afflict the party that escapeth. The wives of those rebels who were Num. 16. 27, 32 swallowed up quick in the wilderness, perished in like manner with their husbands. For they who are so near as husbands and wives, and do not what they can to prevent one another's sins, make themselves accessary thereto. For the better effecting of this duty, husbands and wives Direction for preventing sin. must be watchful over one another, and observe what sins either of them are given unto, or what occasions are offered to draw either of them into sin. If either of them be choleric or prone to be angry on a sudden, the other must endeavour to take away all occasions of offence: and if both should be testy and hasty to wrath, when the one seeth the other first moved, the party whose passion is not yet stirred, ought the rather to be settled and composed to all meekness and patience, lest, if both together be provoked, the whole household be set on fire. If either of them be given to drunkenness, covetousness, or any other sin, the other aught by wise and gentle persuasions to keep them (as much as they can) from those sins. Yea they may also get others, that are discreet and able, to dissuade them: or use what other good means they can to that purpose. §. 26. Of husbands and wives redressing sin in one another. When either husband or wife is fallen into any sin, a mutual duty it is for the other, to use what redress may be of that sin: as if one of them were wounded, the other must take care for the healing of that wound. Abigail performed 1 Sam. 25. her duty in this kind, when, after she had heard what churlish entertainment her husband gave to David's servants, she hastened to carry store of provision to David, and humbled herself before him, and so moved David to assuage his wrath: yea she took a seasonable time also to tell her husband his fault, and the danger whereinto he brought himself thereby. More directly, and with better success did jaakob redress the superstition, or rather Idolatry of his wife Rachel, as may be gathered by comparing Gen. 31. 19, 34 Gen. 35. 2, 4. A brother at large must not suffer sin to lie on his brother: Leu. 19 17. much less may husband or wife the one upon the other. Thou shalt not hate thy brother (saith the law) and suffer It is a branch of hatred to suffer sin to lie on any. sin to lie on him. To do this then is a token and fruit of hatred. If an husband should see his wife, or a wife her husband lying in the fire, or water, ready to be burnt or drowned, and not afford their best help to pull them out, might they not justly be thought to hate them? But sin is as fire and water, which will burn and drown men in perdition. This duty may be performed by meek instructions, pithy persuasions, gentle reproofs: yea, and by the help of some Mat. 18. 16. good Minister, or other discreet and faithful friend. §. 27. Of husbands and wives helping forward the growth of grace in each other. Hitherto of preventing, and redressing hindrances of grace. Hereunto must be added an helping forward of the growth thereof: which man and wife must mutually endeavour to effect one in another. The care which Elkanah had to carry his 1 Sam. 1. 4. etc. wives along with himself unto the Tabernacle of the Lord year by year, showeth that his desire was to uphold them in the fear of God: yea the gifts and portions, which at that time he used to bestow on them, imply the care that he had to encourage them to hold on in serving the Lord. It was without question the main end which the Shunamite aimed at in 2 King. 4. 10. providing lodging for the Prophet, that both she and her husband might be built up in Grace. This duty may be the better effected by these means following. How growth in grace may be helped forward. 1. By taking notice of the beginning, and least measure of Grace: and approving the same. 2. By frequent conference about such things as concern the same: mutually propounding questions one to another thereabouts, and answering the same. 3. By their mutual practice and example: making themselves each to other a pattern of piety. 4. By performing exercises of religion, as praying, singing psalms, reading the word, and the like together. 5. By maintaining holy and religious exercises in the family. Nemo magister ita persuadere poterit quemadmodum uxor. Chrys. hom. 19 1 Cor. 7. Though this duty especially appertain to the husband, yet the wife must put her husband in mind thereof, if he forget it; and stir him up, if he be backward: Thus did the good Shunamite, 2 King. 4. 9, 10. No man's persuasion in this kind, can so much prevail with a man as his wives. 6. By stirring up one another to go to the house of God, Maritum co adducito ut sanctorum dierum rationem habeat. Greg. Naz. ad Olymp. to hear the word, partake of the Sacrament, and conscionably perform all the parts of God's public worship. Great need there is, that husbands and wives should endeavour to help forward the growth of grace in each other, because we are all so prone to fall away and wax cold, even as 1. Great need thereof. water if the fire go out, and more fuel be not put under. 2. Husbands and wives may be very helpful one to another therein. And of all other, husbands and wives may be most helpful herein, because they can soon espy the beginning of decay by reason of their near, and continual familiarity together. §. 28. Of the sins of husbands and wives contrary to a mutual care of one another's salvation. The vices contrary to that general mutual duty of husbands and wives in procuring the Salvation of one another, and to the particular branches comprised under it, are many: As 1. A careless neglect thereof: when as husbands and wives 1. Care only for temporal things. so mind earthly things, as they think it enough if they be provident one for another in the things of this life. Hereof most that live in this earth are guilty: and among others, even many of them who have the name of very good and kind husbands and wives. But whatsoever the opinion of others be of them, the truth is, that if they fail in this point, they go no further than the very heathen have done, and their kindness may be as the apes kindness, which causeth death. 2. The unworthy walking, and unchristian carriage of a believer 2. Unworthy walking. that is married to one that believeth not: hereby the unbeliever is kept off from embracing the Gospel, and made the more to dislike and detest it. If a popish or profane husband be married to a wife that maketh profession of the truth of the Gospel, and she be stout, proud, wanton, waspish, wasteful, or given to any other like vices, will he not be ready thereupon to inveigh against the religion she professeth, and utterly protest against it? So also a popish or profane wife, if she be married to such an husband. 3. Negligence in observing one another's disposition or conversation: 3. Negligence in preventing sin. whereby it cometh to pass that they keep not back, nor restrain one another from running into any sin: but prove such husbands and wives one to another as Eli proved a father to his sons: whence it fell out, that God's severe vengeance fell upon the neck of the one, and of the other. Pilat's wife though an heathenish woman, shall rise up in judgement against many such wives, for she did what she could to keep Mat. 27. 19 her husband from shedding innocent blood. 4. Acomplement all soothing of one another's humour, and seeking 4. Man-pleasing. mutually to please one another in all things, without respect of good or evil. Such as these the Scripture termeth Eph. 6. 6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 men-pleasers. Hence it cometh to pass that husbands and wives are so far from drawing one another from sin, that the better rather yields unto the worse, and both run into Diabolus saepe sollicitus est subvertere viros per os coniugum. Orig. in job. lib. 2. evil, as Adam was persuaded by his wife to transgress against God's express charge: and wise Solomon was drawn by his wives unto Idolatry, 1 King. 11. 4. and Sapphira consented to the sacrilege of Ananias her husband, Act. 5. 2. 5. An undue fear of offending one another by Christian instruction, 5. Undue fear of offence. admonition, reproof, and the like. Many who are oft moved in conscience to make known to their husbands and wives the sins wherein they live, and the danger wherein they lie by reason thereof, do notwithstanding through careless and causeless fear, refrain and forbear to do so. 6. An impious, and envious disposition, whereby many husbands 6. Scoffing at the signs of grace. and wives are moved to mock, and scoff at that holy zeal, and forwardness which they observe in their bedfellows: as Michal who resembled David to a fool, or 2 Sam. 6. 20. vaine-fellow, because he manifested his zeal by dancing before the Ark. Thus do many nip the work of the spirit in the very bud, and cause grace soon to wither. But cursed be that husband, or wife, that thus perverteth the main end of their near conjunction. §. 29. Of husbands and wives mutual care over one another's body. After the good of the soul followeth the good of the body, wherein husband and wife must show their provident care each over other: and do what lieth in them to procure the welfare of one another's person, and to nourish and cherish one another's body. This duty the Apostle layeth down under the comparison of a body which he calleth flesh, saying, a Eph. 5. 29. No man hateth his own flesh, but nourisheth and cherisheth it: now man and wife are b Eph. 5. 31. one flesh. This duty the Apostle in particular applieth to husbands. At the first institution of marriage it was in particular applied to the wife, whom God made to be c Gen. 2. 18. an help meet for man: so as it is a mutual duty appertaining to both. It seemeth that d Gen. 27. 14. Rebecha was so careful of Isaak in this respect, that she could readily make savoury meat for him, such as he loved. This duty extendeth itself to all estates both of prosperity and adversity, of health and sickness: for so much do they mutually covenant and promise when they are first joined together in marriage, I take thee (saith each to other) for better for worse, for richer for poorer, in sickness and in health to love and to cherish. Wherefore they ought mutually both to rejoice in the welfare of one another, and also in all distress to succour and comfort each other, putting their shoulders under one another's burden, and helping to ease one another as much as they can. That which Solomon said of a friend and a brother, may fitly be applied in this case to husband and wife, a friend loveth at all times, and a brother is borne for adversity, Pro. 17. 17. that is, a trusty and faithful friend is constant in his goodwill, and ready to perform all duties, of kindness at any time, whether it be prosperity or adversity: the change of outward estate maketh no alteration in his loving affection and friendly carriage: yea he seemeth to be as it were borne and brought forth against the time of trouble and affliction, because then is his provident care and tender affection most manifested. Of all friends none ought to be more careful, none more faithful one to another then man and wife. How then ought they to love at all times, and if any trial come to either of them, the other so to carry himself, as it may be truly said they were joined together for adversity? Thus shall they verify the truth of that whereby God was moved to creare of mankind male, and female, namely that it was not good for man to be alone, but that it was rather good, Gen. 2. 18. that is, needful, profitable, and comfortable for man and woman to be together. In which respect the wiseman saith, he that findeth a wife findeth a good thing; and by the rule of Pro. 18. 22. relation we may infer, she that findeth an husband findeth a good thing. §. 30. Of husbands and wife's backwandnesse to help one another in time of need. Contrary to this duty is a certain unnatural affection in sundry husbands and wives, who much grudge to provide the things that are needful for one another. The man commonly thinks the charge too great, the woman thinks the pains too much: they are affected one to another as if they were mere strangers: nay many strangers will be more ready to perform, and more cheerful in performing needful duties (as occasion is offered) then such unnatural husbands and wives. If a little sickness, or other like cross fall on one of them, the other thinks, never any had such a burden; and by their discontent make the burden much more heavy than otherwise it would be: even as when two oxen are in one yoke, and the one holdeth back, the draught is made much harder to the other. Thus do they pervert one of the principal ends of marriage, which is to be a continual comfort and * Gen. 2. 18. help each to other, and to ease the burdens of one another: in which respect they are made yokefellowes. jobs wife by her unnatural carriage towards him in his affliction job 2. 9 did much aggravate his misery: when he stood in most need of her help, she afforded least unto him: it appears by jobs complaint of her, in these words, my breath is strange to job 19 17. my wife, that she altogether neglected him in his misery. The common speech of many after their husband or wife having long lain sick is departed, bewrayeth their unnatural affection: their speech is this, if my husband (or wife) had died so much sooner I had saved so much money. What doth this intimate but that they could have been contented their husband (or wife) should have died sooner that they might have spared the more. §. 31. Of Husbands and Wives mutual respect of one another's good name. The provident care of husbands and wives ought further to extend itself to the credit and good name of one another. As dear aught the good name of the wife be unto the husband, and of the husband to the wife, as their own. a Mat. 1. 19 The great regard that joseph had of the credit of Marie his espoused wife, made him think of putting her away privily when ●e observed her to be with child and knew not of whom: ●or he was not willing b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. to make her a public example. The ●ame respect moved c 2 Sam. 11. 5. Bethsheba to send secretly to David, and ●ell him that she was with child. The commendation which he good husband ( Pro. 31. 28. 1. A good name is precious. noted by Solomon) giveth of his wife being approved by the holy Ghost, sheweth how man and wife ●●aght in that respect to honour each other: and that on good ●ounds. For 1. A good name is a most precious thing: e Eccl. 7. 3. better than pre●ious ointment, which giveth a sweet savour, and f Pro. 22. 1. to be chosen ●oue great riches. 2. The good name of the one is the honour of the other. 2. So nearly are husbands and wives joined together, the good name of the one cannot but tend to the honour and credit of the other; so that herein they seek their own honour also. §. 32. Of husbands and wives preventing each others discredit. For direction herein, consider we how this duty may be Directions concerning a good name. performed, and how it may be manifested. For the better performing of it, care must be had both to prevent and redress an ill name, and also to procure and preserve a goodname. To prevent an ill name respect must be had of these three things following, 1. Prevent an ill name, and that 1. What one relateth of another, and how. 2. What ear they give to things related by others. 3. What censure they give of one another. For the first, husbands and wives may in no case delight to 1. By concealing things of ill report. discover unto others, and spread abroad the infirmities, and imperfections of one another, or any thing that may tend to the discredit of either of them: but rather cover and conceal them as much as they may with a good conscience. It is expressed that g Mat. 1. 19 joseph being a just man laboured to conceal that blemish which he imagined to be in his wife, so as this may stand with justice: yea also it is a part of jove, for h 1 Pet. 4. 8. love covereth a multitude of sins. For the second, husbands and wives must not have their 2. By closing ears against ill reports. ears wide opened to hear every tale and report that shall be brought to one against the other, but rather show themselves displeased and offended with them that are ready to relate things of evil report. If an husband or wife manifest a willingness to hearken after tales and reports of one another, the devil will stir up instruments enough to fill their heads with tales, and those for the most part both frivolous and forged: not only strangers, but children, servants, and they which are of the same family will ever be telling some tale or other, to curry favour, as we speak. But an utter dislike of such flattering tale-bearers, will take away occasion from them of telling untrue, or slight reports. For the third, the judgement and censure which husbands 3. By forbearing to censure rashly. and wives give one of another must either be very charitable, or very sparing. If one hear reported any notorious crime of the other, they may not be over-headie or hasty to judge and condemn, no though they think they see some evidence thereof, but rather suspend their judgement. This seemeth to be the mind of joseph: though he observed Marie to be with Mat. 1. 19 child, yet would he not presently judge her to be a notorious adulteress, or condemn her for an hypocrite, unworthy to live, and therefore would not make her a public example. In brief, that husbands and wives may be the more sparing in censuring one another, they must not rashly believe any evil report of one another, but rather suppress all light suspicions as much as they can. That the judgement which they give one of another, may be charitable, in judging they must well observe the properties of love, which are 1. To interpret doubtful things in the better part. 2. To mitigate, so far as truth and justice will suffer, the faults which are evident. Michal offended against 2 Sam. 6. 20. the first in an high degree, and was cursed. Abigail observed 1 Sam. 25. 25. the latter, and was blessed. §. 33. Of the wisdom of husbands and wives, in redressing one another's ill name. To redress an ill name, husbands and wives must first give one another notice of the report that goeth of them, and endeavour 2. Redress an ill name. to work in them both a sight, and also a sense of those evils which are in the mouths of others: after notice given, they must labour to bring them to repentance of those sins, for which they are ill reported of, and to a manifestation of repentance, by doing things meet for repentance, which is by a zealous and conscionable practice of such vettues as are clean contrary to the vices for which they were evil spoken of. It may with good probability be gathered out of the history of the Levite, whose wife played the whore, that thus he judg. 19 1, 2, etc. dealt with her. And thus Abigail endeavoured to deal with her husband. 1 Sam. 25. 37. §. 34. Of husbands and wives care in procuring one another's good name. To procure a good report, husbands and wives must 3. Procure a good report. First, take notice of the good qualities which are in one another, and as one hath occasion to speak of the other, to make those good qualities the subject of their speech: as we l Pro. 31. 28, 29. heard it before commended in the husband of that wife which is described by Solomon. Secondly, they must lend a willing and joyful ear to such as shall (so far as they can conceive) truly and unfeignedly, without flattery or hypocrisy, speak any thing in commendation of the one or of the other: not thinking themselves dispraised (which is the conceit of many) when their bedfellow is praised: but rather having their hearts the more enlarged to praise God, for bestowing on them such an excellent token and pledge of his favour. Thirdly, they must imitate those good things which they behold, or hear to be in one another, and so imitate them as they which have before time known both husband and wife, may say, this she learned of him, or this he learned of her. §. 35. Of husbands and wife's wisdom, in preserving each others good name. To preserve a good name, it will be meet for an husband or 4. Preserve a good name. wife, wisely and seasonably to give one another notice of that good fame which is raised of them, thereby to provoke them both to give glory to God for the same ( m Col. 1. 3, 4. as the Apostle thanketh God for that report which was spread abroad of the faith and love of the Colossians) and also to walk worthy of that good report (as the Apostle who had given a great testimony of the bounty of the Corinthians, earnestly exhorteth them to finish their benevolence, lest (saith he) I should be ashamed in 2 Cor. 9 4. this my constant boasting.) For if they of whom there is once a good report raised, decay, wax cold, grow backward, or fall into notorious and scandalous sins, they will clean extinguish and put out their good name among men, and turn it into an evil report, according to that which Solomon saith, Dead flies cause the ointment of the Apothecary to send forth a Eccles. 10. 1. stinking savour: so doth a little folly him that is in reputation for wisdom and honour. 5. Manifest a care of one another's good name. §. 36. Of husbands and wives like affection towards one another's credit. In the last place, to manifest a mutual provident care of one another's good name, husbands and wives must be so affected with the report that goeth of either of them, as if the report were of their own selves. If the report be good, to be glad thereof, and to rejoice thereat; if it be evil, to be grieved, and after an holy manner vexed at it: thus shall they show a true sympathy and fellow feeling of one another's credit, according to that general rule of the Apostle, n Rom. 12. 15. Rejoice with them that rejoice, and weep with them that weep. §. 37. Of the vices contrary to that mutuallcare, which man and wife should have of one another's credit. Vices contrary to these duties concerning the good name of Contrary vices. an husband and wife, are in general two. One is a readiness to disgrace and discredit one another, 1. To discredit each other, and that like Michal the wife of David, of whom we heard before. A hateful and detestable vice this is, which cannot stand with 2 Sam. 6. 20. true matrimonial love, but rather argueth an utter dislike, and a plain hatred of one another. Husbands and wives discredit one another, either by procuring an ill name, or hindering a good name. An ill name in procured by these means following. 1. By blazing abroad one another's infirmities: as when 1. By blazing one another's infirmities abroad. tattling Gossips meet, their usual pra●e is about their husbands, complaining of some vice or other in them: My husband, saith one, is covetous: I cannot get of him any thing almost: he maketh me go as no body goeth. And my husband, replieth another, is so furious as none can tell how to speak to him: so one after another goeth on in this track, some discovering such infirmities as should be concealed; others (which is worse) plainly belying their husbands. In like manner also husbands when they meet with their boon companions, make their wives the common subject of all their talk: one accusing his wife of one vice; another his, of another. There are two respects for which this vice (most detestable in itself) is made more odious in an husband or a wife. 1. Because they know more than any other of one another's infirmities: so as if they be so evilly minded, they may much more discredit one another, than any other can. 2. Because in regard of their near union they are most bound to conceal and cover each others imperfections. p Gen. 9 22, 25. Cam was cursed for revealing his father's nakedness. but a more horrible curse do husbands and wives deserve, that so do. 2. By opening their ears, and giving credit to every light 2. By hearing and believing others ill reports. report that any shall raise. More secret heartburning of one against the other, and more open quarrels and contentions betwixt them, ordinarily arise from hence then from any other thing. 3. By perverting and misinterpreting one another's actions, 3. By turning every thing to the worst. words, yea and thoughts also: taking every thing in the worst part. 4. By concealing from one another the common evil rumours 4. By concealing evil rumours. which are raised of them, and are in every man's mouth: of all other, bedfellows are most fit to disclose such things one to another: and most bound to do it. Most fit, because of their mutual familiarity: most bound, because of their near union. Many husbands and wives do hinder one another's good 5. By envying and gainsaying good reports. name by envying one at the good report that is made of the other, and gainsaying the same: as if the credit of the one must needs turn to the discredit of the other. Thus as water quencheth hot iron, so this envious disposition is a means to extinguish the heat of fame, and to put out the glorious light of a good name. Whereby as they impair the credit and honour of one another, so they monstrously discredit and dishonour themselves. The other general vice in this kind, is a careless regard, 2. Neglect of each others fame. or plain neglect of one another's fame: when the husband is no way affected with any report that goeth of his wife, nor the wife with any of the husband: but as if they were mere strangers one to another, they pass by all reports made of one another. What mutual love can there be in such? howsoever their hands have been joined together, surely their hearts were never united, so as it had been better they had never known one another, unless the Lord do afterwards knit their hearts, and unite their affections more nearly and firmly together. §. 38. Of husbands and wives mutual providence about the goods of the family. Yet there remaineth one thing more, whereabout husbands Treatise 3. §. 29. and wives ought to manifest a mutual provident care each over other: and that is about the goods of this world. Howsoever the husband, while he liveth with his wife, hath the truest property in them, and the greatest title unto them, yet I refer this to those mutual duties which man and wife owe each to other, in three respects. First, because in conscience they appertain to the use of the wife, as well as of the husband. Secondly, because the wife is by God's providence appointed a joint governor with the husband of the family, and in that respect ought to be an help in providing such a sufficiency of the goods of this world, as are needful for that estate wherein God hath set them, and for that charge which God hath committed to them. Thirdly, because the wife, if she survive the husband, aught to have such a portion of those goods, as are meet for her place and charge. In these respects we see it requisite, yea a bounden duty, that husband and wife, even in a mutual regard one of another, be as provident as they can be with a good conscience in getting, keeping, and disposing competent goods and riches for the mutual good one of another. Concerning the husband's duty in this respect no question is made: the practice of all good husbands mentioned in Scripture, the care of providing for their a 1 Tim. 5. 8. See Treat. 4. §. 46. own enjoined to them, their place and office to be their wife's head, with many other like arguments, whereof we shall more distinctly speak, when we come to declare the particular duties of husbands, do prove as much. The greatest question is concerning the wife, whether she be bound to take any care about the goods. But if the Scripture be thoroughly searched, we shall find proof enough to show that even ●he also is bound hereunto. For first, the general end which God aimed at in making the woman (namely to be b Gen. 2. 18. helpe●o ●o man) implieth as much: for herein may she be a very great help, as we shall see by and by in sundry particulars. 2. That general property attributed to a wife to be c Prou. 18. 22. a good thing, confirmeth as much: for that which is profitable is called good: and it is one respect wherein a wife is termed a good thing, that she may by her providence and diligence bring much profit to her husband: and therefore in this, among other respects, the good wife which Solomon describeth, is said d Prou. 31. 12. to do good to her husband all the days of her life: for by her industry and providence she did so preserve and increase his goods, that e Vers. 11. the heart of her husband trusted in her, and he had no need of spoil. If the particular actions whereby that good wife is described be well noted, we may easily observe that she was an especial help unto her husband, even in his outward estate. From all which, we may infer these two points. First, that this provident care about outward temporal goods is lawful, not unbeseeming a Christian man or woman. Secondly, that it is a mutual duty appertaining both to husband and wife. For the first, how needful the goods of this world are for preservation of life and health, estate of the family, good of Church and Commonwealth, relief of the poor, with the like uses, no man can be ignorant. God hath given them as blessings to his children, and that often times in great abundance; and his children have accordingly been thankful for them: so as a provident care about them is not unlawful, but very expedient and needful. For the second, If there should not be a joint care herein, the care and pains of the one might be altogether in vain. For suppose an husband be industrious, as f Gen. 31. 40. jaakob was, and get much abroad, if the wife either by her unthriftiness, idleness, negligence, or the like vices, suffer that which is brought home to be embeaseled and wasted; or by her prodigality, bravery, or love of vain company, consume it herself, where will be the profit of the husband's pains? Or on the other side, if a wife should be as painful and prosperous in getting, as g Prou. 31. 10. etc. the good housewife before mentioned was, and the husband by carding, dicing, drinking, revelling, or other like means should waste all away, what fruit would remain of the wife's providence? In this mutual provident care of husband and wife, each of them must have an eye to their own place: affairs abroad do most appertain to the man, and are especially Externa negotia viro permit. Greg. Naz. ad Olymp. to be ordered by him: that which the wife is especially to care for, is the business of the house: for the Apostle layeth it down as a rule for wives (as we shall hereafter more particularly declare) that they h Tit. 2. 5. keep at home, and i 1 Tim. 5. 14. govern the house. By this means may they be very profitable each to other. §. 39 Of the vices contrary to the good providence of husband and wife, about the goods of the family. Contrary to that duty, are these vices following. 1. Covetousness, and overmuch care for themselves: as Contrary vices. when an husband so raketh, and scrapeth, and hoardeth up for himself, as he neither affordeth unto his wife so much as is 1. Covetousness. meet for her place while he liveth with her, nor thinketh of providing sufficient maintenance for her, if she over-live him, but rather thinketh how to defraud her of that which the law casteth upon her. Or when a wife secretly hoardeth up whatsoever she can get, either by her own industry, or else by purloining from her husband: sometimes selling corn, wares, householdstuff, or other like commodities, so privily as the husband shall never know it: sometimes taking money out of his counter, box, bag, chest, or the like, so as either it shall not be miss, or if it be, it shall not be known who had it. Many there be who in mistrust of their husband's providence, or in dislike of them, or on some other by-respects, commit whatsoever they can get to the trust and custody of others, whereby it oft cometh to pass, that they themselves, meeting with deceitful friends, are utterly defeated, even because they dare not make their fraud known. As Covetousness is in itself an odious sin; so it is made much more heinous by defrauding husband or wife, who ought to be as dear each to other as themselves. 2. Prodigality, and too lavish spending upon themselves, 2. Prodigality. and those things which are most agreeable to their own corrupt humour: as when husbands without any mean or mea●ure, spend their goods abroad in hunting, hawking, carding, ●icing, eating, drinking, or the like, and suffer their wives to want at home, and yet took their wives to maintain them, and therefore had their portion. Or when wives bring their husbands into debt, and weaken, if not clean overthrow their estate, by gorgeous decking and adorning their houses, by brave and costly apparel, by dainty fare, by gossipping abroad, with the like. Many wives are so violent herein, that if their desire and humour be not satisfied, their husbands shall have no rest (forsooth they brought a portion, and maintained they must and will be; it skilleth not whether their husband's estate can bear it or no) in so much as many are forced wittingly, for quietness sake, to suffer their estate to sink. O foolish and wretched wives! how little do they consider that they were married to do their husband's good, and not evil all the days of their life? is this to be an help to man? or rather is it not clean to thwart God's counsel, and pervert his purpose? can we think that God will forbear, and not be avenged of them? yet much more will God be avenged of the forenamed husbands, because of that image of himself which he hath placed in them, and because of that place and authority wherein he hath set them. The Apostle expressly saith of them, that they are worse than Infidels, which being so, they must look for 1 Tim. 5. 8. the greater judgement. 3. Idleness, and a careless neglect of their estate. Many 3. Idleness. men spend day after day, like a bird that flieth up and down, as it falleth out, from tree to tree, from twig to twig: they go from place to place, but know not for what end: as they meet with any company, so they abide as long as the company tarrieth, and then seek after other company, and are ready to go with any to Alehouse, Tavern, Playhouse, Bowling-alley, or other like places. Many women also spend all the forenoon in lying a bed and tiring themselves, and the afternoon as occasion is offered in sitting idly at home, or walking forth to little purpose, but only to wear out time, little regarding their husband's estate, whether it increase, or diminish. Thus by the idleness and carelessness of husband and wife, come fair estates many times to ruin, and both of then brought to penury and beggary. §. 40. Of husbands and wives joint care in governing the family. Hitherto I have delivered such common duties as mutually respect the husband and wife, and are to be performed of each to other. There are other common duties which they are both jointly bound to perform to other persons: and those either members of the family, or strangers coming to the family. Concerning the members of the family, though there be some peculiar duties belonging to the master, and some to the mistress, some to the father, and some to the mother, of which we shall speak in their due place; yet in general the government of the family, and the several members thereof belongeth to the husband and wife both (if at least they have a family) and a joint common duty it is to be helpful one to another therein. Object. Seeing it is not necessarily required, that a husband and wife should have a family to govern, for two may be married and have neither children nor servants (as many are) and yet be true husband and wife; why is this care of a family ranked among the duties of husband and wife? Answ. 1. Because ordinarily when two are married they gather a family, and are the governors thereof: so as though it fail in some particulars, yet for the most part it holdeth. 2. Because the joint government whereof I speak in this place is by virtue of the mariage-bond: for if a man and a woman should live together in an house, and by mutual consent have a joint authority and government, this would be very offensive to all that should know it, or hear of it: neither were they by any ordinance of God bound to be so helpful one to another as husband and wife: nor the members of a family so bound to subject themselves to both. 3. The duty whereof I speak, though it be about the government of a family, yet hath it respect to an husband as he is an husband, and to a wife as she is a wife; namely, that by virtue of their mariage-bond, and near union, they be helpful one to another in well-ordering the things of the family. Whether the man ought to look to the good government of his house is a question without all question. He is the highest in the family, and hath both authority over all, and the charge of all is committed to his charge: he is as a king in his own house: as a king is to see that land well governed where he is king, so he that is the chief ruler in an house. The duty which the Apostle applieth in particular to Bishops & Deacons, in general appertaineth to all husbands, a 1 Tim. 3. 4. that they rule their own house honestly: and again, b Vers. 12. that they be such as can rule their children well, and their own households. The care of many husbands is in this respect commended in Scripture, as of c Gen. 18. 19 Abram, of d & 35. 2, etc. jaakob, of e J●s● 4. 15. josuah, of f Psal. 101. 2. etc. David, the g joh. 4 53. Ruler at Galilee, and of many other. That the wife also ought to be an help to him therein, is very evident: for the Apostle layeth it expressly to their charge, h 1 Tim. 5. 14. that they govern the house: would the Wise man have so highly commended a wife i Prou. 31. 11, etc. for well governing her husband's house if it had not appertained to her? It is very likely that wise Abigail had a great hand in governing Nabals house, because the servants made complaint to her of Nabals' churlishness, and because she had the servants at command, readily to do what she would have them; yea also, because she could so readily prepare such store of provision for David and his men, as she did. Hence is it that the wife is called k Mater-familias. mistress of the house, as well as the husband l Pater-familias. master of the house. Object. m 1 Tim. 2. 12. A woman is not to teach, nor to usurp authority over the man. Answ. 1. That branch of teaching hath respect to public assemblies, and Churches, in which she may not teach: but not to private families, in which she may, and aught to teach: for n Pro. 31. 4. Barthshebah taught Solomon. When o Acts 18. 26. Apollos was brought to the house of Aquila, Priscilla the wife of Aquila did help to expound to Apollo's the way of God more perfectly. 2. The other branch concerning authority, hath not reference to the inferior members in the family, over which the wife of an household governor hath authority, but only to the husband, over whom if she take any authority, she usurpeth it. Therefore neither this place of Scripture, nor any other doth exclude the wife, being jointly considered with the husband, to rule & govern those in the family which are under them both. 2. Object. This joint government of the wife doth much impair the dignity and authority of the husband. Answ. Nothing less: for she is subordinate to her husband, and must so rule others as she be subject to her husband, and not command any thing against his command, (provided that his command be not against the Lord, and his word.) We see that in all estates the king or highest governor hath other Magistrates under him, who have a command over the subjects, and yet thereby the kings supreme authority is no whit impaired, but rather the better established, and he the more honoured. So is it in a family. 1. Reason. Husbands and wives by their mutual assistance bring great help one to another. Plus vident oculi quam oculus. Arist. Polit. li. 3. c. 7. Let therefore husbands and wives herein assist one another, for so they may be very helpful one to another, and bring, by their mutual help in governing, much good to the family. The husband by his help aiding his wife, addeth much authority unto her, and so causeth that she is not despised, nor lightly esteemed. The wife by her help causeth many things to be espied, and so redressed, which otherwise might never have been found out: for two eyes see more than one, especially when one of those is more at hand, and in presence, as the 2. Reason. Many things in a family more fit for the one to meddle with, then for the other. wife is in the house. Besides there are many things in well governing a family more fit for one to meddle withal then for the other: as for the husband to meddle with the great and weighty affairs of the family (as performing God's worship, appointing and settling good orders, providing convenient houseroom, and other necessaries for the family: keeping children when they grow In familia dispertita sunt officia: suntque alia viri, alia uxoris propria. Pro▪ sunt ergo uterque alteri sua in commune confe rents: ob eamque causam suavitas in hac tali amicitia inest, utilitasque maxima. Arist. Eth. li. 8. ca 12. great, or wax stubborn, in awe: ruling men servants, with the like) And for the wife to meddle with some less, but very needful matters, as nourishing and instructing children when they are young, adorning the house, ordering the provision brought into the house, ruling maid servants, with the like. Yea further, as the man especially is to perform the very actions of prayer, reading the word, catechising, and other like duties in the family, so the wife may be a great help in putting her husband in mind both of the duty itself, and of the time of performing it, and encouraging him to do it, in gathering the family together, and exhorting them to be forward, in making herself an example to the rest by her diligent and reverend attention, in oft urging and pressing to her children and servants such points of instruction as her husband hath taught; yea, in praying, reading, teaching, and performing like exercises herself, so far as she is able, when her husband is absent, or negligent and careless, and will not himself do them; or it may be, is not able to do them: or if she perform them not herself, in getting some other to perform them. §. 41. Of the vices contrary to a joint care of governing the family. The mind and practise of many, both husbands and wives, Vice's contrary. is contrary to this duty. Many a husband because the wife's office is especially to 1. When husbands put off all government to their wives. abide at home, will put off all government to the wife: leaving it to her not only to order the things in the house, but also to bring in all needful things, to order and govern the children both young and old, yea even to provide for them also, to take in, to put out, to use all sorts of servants as pleaseth her: yea, if servants shall be stubborn and stout against her, he will take no notice of it, nor endure to be told of it, much less afford her his assistance, but suffer her to be disgraced and despised. As for religious duties, he will no way meddle with them. Oh base minded men, unworthy to be husbands and heads of wives! shall your wives who were made to be an help to you, have no help from you, ●o not in those things which especially belong to your charge? shall the weaker vessels bear all the burden? Assuredly as the man carrieth away the greatest reputation and honour when a family is well governed (though it be by the joint care and wisdom of his wife) so lieth he most open to the judgement of God if the government thereof be neglected, and through the neglect thereof, children and servants grow impious: instance a 1 Sam. 3. 12, 13. Elie, and b 2 Sam. 15. David. For as in a commonwealth, the greatest honour of good government, victorious battles, happy peace, and prosperity, and the greatest dishonour and damage of the contrary, redoundeth to the king, so to the man who is chief governor in a family: for it is presupposed, that all which do any good are instruments of the highest governor: if any evil or mischief fall out, that it is through his negligence. On the other side, because the husband is the most principal, 2. When wives refuse to add their aid. many wives think that the government of the family nothing at all appertains to them, and thereupon are careless of the good thereof, and will not stir their least finger to order any thing aright: but, if any thing be amiss, lay all the blame on their husbands. Do not such pervert that main end for which God made them, even to be an help? Do they not carry themselves most unworthy of the place wherein God hath set them, namely to be joint-governours with their husbands, and partakers of their dignities? As by their negligence they make themselves accessary to all the evil which falleth out in the family, so assuredly shall they have their part in those judgements which are executed on the head thereof. Most contrary to the forenamed duty is the practice of 3. When husbands or wives are hindrances each to other. such as are hindrances one to another in governing the family: as when wives are not only negligent themselves in coming to religious exercises, but keep back children and servants, and so are a great grief unto their religious husbands: or when they use any of the children or servants to be instruments of iniquity; or are themselves disquiet and troublesome in the house, like to her of whom Solomon speaketh in this proverb, It is better to dwell in the corner of the house Pro. 21. 9 top, then with a contentious woman in a wide house. Husband's also are oft an hindrance to that good government which their wives would help forward, when they scoff and scorn at that good counsel which their wives give them for that purpose, or when they will not suffer their wives to meddle with any thing at all, nor endure that they should find any fault, much less take in hand to redress any thing that is amiss. These and such like perverse dispositions are in husbands and wives, whereby it cometh to pass that they who were joined together to be a mutual help each to other, prove heavy, yea intolerable burdens. §. 42. Of husbands and wives mutual help in hospitality. The next common duty of husband and wife respecteth such as come to their house, but are no particular members thereof, whether they be kindred, alliance, acquaintance, or strangers, especially if they be Saints, to whom a Heb. 13. 2. Rom. 12. 13. hospitality, that is, a kind and courteous entertainment, is due. Herein therefore must husbands and wives be helpful one to another: for as it is required of b 1 Tim. 3. 2. husbands, so also of c & 5. 10. wives to be harbourous, namely while they are married, together with their husbands, and when they are widows, of themselves. d Gen. 18 6. etc. Abraham and Sarah were herein an help one to another, when the three Angels in shapes of men came to their house: so were e 2 King. 4. 8. the Shunemite and her husband when Elisha the Prophet came to their house. For hospitality, that it is a commendable duty belonging Reasons. 1. Hospitality a commendable duty. to such as are housekeepers and able to give entertainment, is evident by the precepts and examples before specified, as also by the blessing which God thereupon hath brought to the houses of them that were given thereunto, which the Apostle intimateth in these words, f Heb. 13. 2. thereby some have entertained Angels unawares. Now therefore husbands and wives being (as we have heard) joint governors, as in other things, so in this they ought to lend an helping hand each to other, and that for these reasons. 1. Because in giving entertainment there are sundry 2. The entertainment will be the better by a mutual help. things to be done, whereof some are proper to the husband's place, and some to the wives. To take order for the provision of things without doors is more fit for the husband, g Gen. 18. 7. Abraham did it: to order the smaller things within doors is more fit for the wife; that was left to h Vers. 6. Sarah. 2. Because it is meet that guests should know they are welcome 3. Guests will be more cheerful. both to the husband and to the wife, that so they may be the more cheerful. 3. Because a mutual consent, and cheerful help herein will 4. Mutual love will be more firm. be an especial means, as to manifest their mutual affection, so to hold the hearts of man and wife firm and close together, and make them the better like and love one the other: especially if the husband shall show himself as ready and willing to entertain his wife's friends and kindred as his own, and so the wife her husbands (as they ought.) For as they themselves are made one flesh, so ought each of them to esteem of the others friends as of their own. 4. Because thus they show a mutual desire of bringing 5. A desire of one another's good manifested. God's blessing on each other, and upon their whole family. §. 43. Of vices contrary to mutual help in hospitality. Contrary to this duty is for the most part covetousness in the husband, and laziness in the wife. The man, because the charge of the family lieth on him, distrustfully feareth lest he should want for his own. I deny not but that a provident care for our own, & namely for them of the family, is needful and commendable, i 1 Tim. 5. 8. he that provideth not for them is worse than an infidel: so as a man may be overlavish in giving entertainment, if he go beyond his means, impoverish his estate, and disable himself to provide for his own, as many do: yet when a man hath sufficient, yea and abundance, when there is no just cause, but merely upon an undue fear too carkingly, and distrustfully to pinch, and grudge to give entertainment to any, is unbeseeming a Christian, yea also to be worse than an infidel; not worthy to have an house, or any thing fit for entertainment; no nor worthy of common society. The woman on the other side grudgeth at the pains she must take, and trouble she must undergo about entertaining guests, and thereupon is loath that any at any time should come to their house. Concerning a wife, I deny not but that an husband may be in this kind overburdensome to her, by being too ioveall, as they speak, and bringing guests too often into the house, especially if they be guests of no good name; and by that means make her even weary of her life: but yet for a wife to refuse all pains in that kind, and to be discontented when her husband invites any friends, or when any come (as the three Angels did to Abraham) unawares, argueth not a loving affection, nor a wivelike subjection unto her husband, to be in her. These faults are so much the greater when the husband, or wife, are free and forward in entertaining their own kindred and friends: but are backward, and grudge at the entertainment of each others friends and kindred. Hence commonly ariseth much heartburning of one against the other: yea much jar and contention betwixt them: and from dislike of the practice of one another in this kind oft followeth a dislike of one another's person: so that as the fault is bad in itself, it proves to be much worse in the mischiefs that follow upon it. §. 44. Of husbands and wives mutual help in relieving the poor. The last common and joint duty wherein husband and wife ought to be helpful each to other, respecteth those that are without the house, namely the poor, and such as stand in need of their help, who are to be relieved and succoured. Because man and wife usually meal together, and are joint partakers of Gods good creatures, they must put one another in mind of that precept of charity which was given to the jews when they were at their meals, a Neh. 8. 10. send part unto them for whom none is provided. The good wife which is set forth by the holy Ghost for a pattern and example unto others to follow, together with her husband, are noted to be helpful one to another in this duty: for she is said b Pro. 31. 20. to stretch out her hand to the poor, and to the needy: and he is said c Vers. 28. to praise her, thereby encouraging her to hold on in doing those good things which she did. What liberty the wife hath, or howfar forth she may be restrained in case her husband utterly refuse to give consent, we shall * Treat. 3. §. 23. 33. hereafter declare in the particular duties of wives: the point here noted is, that both the husband himself must according to his ability be bountiful to the poor, and suffer his wife, yea provoke her so to be, and withal allow her wherewithal to be bountiful: and that the wife also must stir up her husband to liberality in this respect, and herself open her hand to the poor in the things which lawfully she may give. There is nothing whereby a man or wife can bring more profit to the house, then by giving to the poor: that which is given to the poor is e Prou. 19 17. lent to the Lord, and he will repay it with great increase: it is as f 2 Cor. 9 6. seed, which being liberally sown, will bring forth a plentiful harvest: yea, it is a means to make us g Luke 16. 9 friends, to speak a good word for us at the bar of Christ's judgement seat: and it bringeth not only the h job 29. 13. & 31. 20. blessing of men, but i Matth. 5. 7. of God also, even the greatest blessing of all, the k Mat. 25. 34. blessing of eternal life: for it is l Heb. 13. 16. a sacrifice with which God is well pleased. The Apostle noteth this to be one of Christ's oracles, which by word of mouth he left unto his Disciples, m Acts 20. 35. It is more blessed to give then to receive. Besides, husbands and wives in distributing alms, may receive 2. Husband and wife in place to give good direction one to another. good direction one from another: the husband by telling the wife who are fit to be relieved (for commonly husbands better know those which are abroad out of the family) the wife by telling the husband what things are fittest to be given away: for wives commonly know of what things there is greatest store, and what may in the house be best spared. §. 45. Of husbands and wife's unmercifulness to the poor. Contrary is the unmercifulness of many husbands, who Vice's contrary. are not only hardhearted themselves (never giving any thing unless by the law of the land they be forced, & then they part 1. unmercifulness of the husband. with that which is given, so grudgingly, as it is nothing at all acceptable to God (for n 2 Cor. 9 7. God loveth a cheerful giver) but also tie their wife's hands, and suffer them to give nothing. Wherein 2. Binding his wife's hands. they bring both the cry of the poor, and also the groans and grief of a merciful wife who is thus restrained, upon their own necks, and aggravate their sin in an high degree. On the other side, the unmercifulness of many wives is also contrary to the forenamed duty: for there are many, who though they have liberty to give of the common goods, and also allowance of their own out of which they may give, yet covetously hoard up all they can get, give not a pennies worth, out rather suffer victuals and other things to perish in the house, and when they are naught to fling them away, then that any thing whilst it is good should be given out of the house. Shall not the creatures which are spoiled in an house, and the poor that have wanted, make a loud cry in the ears Read jam. 5. 1, 2. etc. of the Lord against them? Yea further, many wives are grieved at their husband's bounty, and still moving him to shut his hand, and give no more. Are they not plain devils herein, opposing against that which is good? The third Treatise. Of wife's particular duties. §. 1. Of the general heads of this treatise. EPHES. 5. 22. Wives submit yourselves unto your own husbands as unto the Lord. Vers. 23. For the husband is the head of the wife, even as Christ is the head of the Church: and he is the Saviour of the body. Vers. 24. Therefore as the Church is subject to Christ, so let wives be subject to their husbands in every thing. IN the particular declaration of wife's duties, the Apostle noteth two points, 1. The duty required. 2. The reason to enforce it. In setting forth the duty, he declareth 1. The matter wherein it consisteth. 2. The manner how it is to be performed. In the matter we may note, 1. The thing required, a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. subjection. 2. The person whom it respecteth, their b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. own husbands. The manner respecteth, 1. The quality of that subjection. 2. The extent To declare the quality of wife's subjection to their husbands, two rules are set down. 1. That it be such a subjection, as c As unto the Lord. should be performed to Christ. 2. That it be such a subjection as the d As the Church is subject to Christ. Church performeth unto Christ. The extent of wife's subjection doth stretch itself very far, even to e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, In every thing. all things. The reason to enforce all these points is taken from that place of eminency and authority, wherein the husband is set above his wife: which is, 1. Propounded under the metaphor of an head (for the husband is the head of the wife.) 2. Amplified by that resemblance which therein he hath unto Christ. In which resemblance two points are noted. 1. That the husband, by virtue of his place, carrieth the very image of Christ (even as Christ is the head of the Church.) 2. That the husband by virtue of his office is a protector of his wife (and he is the saviour of the body.) §. 2. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 2. subjection in general. The first point to be handled in the treatise of wives particular duties is the general matter of all (Subjection) under which all other particulars are comprised, for it hath as large Maritum habere Dominum meruit mulieris culpa, quod tamen nisi seruetur, depravabitur ampliùs natura, & augebitur culpa. Aug. de Gen. ad lit. lib. 11. c. 37. Ante peccatum non aliter factam fuisse decet credere mulierem nisi ut vir ei dominaretur. Ibid. an extent as that Honour which is required in the first commandment, being applied to wives. When first the Lord declared unto woman her duty, he set it down under this phrase, Thy desire shall be subject to thine husband, Gen. 3. 16. Object. That was a punishment inflicted on her for her transgression? Answ. And a law too, for trial of her obedience, which if it be not observed, her nature will be more depraved, and her fault more increased. Besides, we cannot but think that the woman was made before the fall, that the man might rule over her. Upon this ground the Prophets and Apostles have oft urged the same. Sarah is commended for this, that she was subject to her husband (1. Pet. 3. 6.) Hereby the holy Ghost would teach wives, that Subjection ought to be as salt to season every duty which they perform to their husband. Their very opinion, affection, speech, action, and all that concerneth the husband, must savour of subjection. Contrary is the disposition of many wives, whom ambition hath tainted and corrupted within and without: they cannot endure to hear of subjection: they imagine that they are made slaves thereby. But I hope partly by that which hath been before delivered concerning those common duties which man and wife do mutually owe each to other, and partly by the particulars which under this general are comprised, but most especially Quem vocavit ad culpam mulier, iustum est ut eum gubernatorem assuma●, ne iterum foeminea facilitate labatur. Ambr. Hexaem. l. 5. c. 7. by the duties which the husband in particular oweth to his wife, it will evidently appear, that this subjection is no servitude. But were it more than it is, seeing God requireth subjection of a wife to her husband, the wife is bound to yield it. And good reason it is that she who first drew man into sin, should be now subject to him, lest by the like womanish weakness she fall again. §. 3. Of an husband's * Treat. 4. §. 6, 7. superiority over a wife, to be acknowledged by a wife. The subjection which is required of a wife to her husband implieth two things. 1. That she acknowledge her husband to be her superior. 2. That she respect him as her superior. That acknowledgement of the husband's superiority is twofold, 1. General of any husband. 2. Particular of her own husband. The general is the ground of the particular: for till a wife be informed that an husband, by virtue of his place, is his wives superior, she will not be persuaded that her own husband is above her, or hath any authority over her. First therefore concerning the general, I will lay down Proofs that the husband is above the wife some evident and undeniable proofs, to show that an husband is his wives superior, and hath authority over her. The proofs are these following. 1. God of whom, b Rom. 13. 1. the powers that be ordained, are, hath power to place his Image in whom he will, and to whom God giveth superiority and authority, the same aught to be acknowledged to be due unto them. But God said of the man to the woman, he shall rule over thee, (Gen. 3. 16.) 2. Nature hath placed an eminency in the male over the Mari & foeminae ae natura tribuium est, ut high, praesit, illa obediat, cum mas praestantior sit. Arist. Pol. lib. 1. female: so as where they are linked together in one yoke, it is given by nature that he should govern, she obey. This did the heathen by light of nature observe. 3. The titles and names, whereby an husband is set forth, do imply a superiority and authority in him, as c 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Lord, (1 Pet. 3. 6.) d 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Master, (Est. 1. 17.) e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Guide, (Prou. 2. 17.) f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Head, (1 Cor. 11. 3.) g 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Image and glory of God, (1 Cor. 11. 7.) 4. The persons whom the husband by virtue of his place, and whom the wife by virtue of her place, represent, most evidently prove as much: for an husband representeth Christ, and a wife, the Church, (Eph. 5. 23.) 5. The circumstances noted by the holy Ghost at the woman's creation imply no less, as that she was created after man, for man's good, and out of man's side, (Gen. 2. 18, etc.) 6. The very h Sicapilli pro velamine dati sunt, qua gratia aliud addendum est velamen? Vt non tantum natura, sed etiam voluntate subiectam se esse confiteatur. Chrys. in 1 Cor. hom. 26. attire which nature and custom of all times and places have taught women to put on, confirmeth the same: as long hair, veils, and other coverings over the head: this and the former argument doth the Apostle himself use to this very purpose, 1 Cor. 11. 7, etc. The point then being so clear, wives ought in conscience to acknowledge as much: namely that an husband hath superiority 1. Wife's must acknowledge a superiority in husbands. and authority over a wife. The acknowledgement hereof is a main and principal duty, and a ground of all other duties. Till a wife be fully instructed therein and truly persuaded thereof, no duty can be performed by her as it ought: for subjection hath relation to superiority and authority. The very notation of the word implieth as much. How then can subjection be yielded, if husbands be not acknowledged superiors? It may be forced, as one King conquered in battle by another, may be compelled to yield homage to the conqueror, but yet because he still thinketh with himself, that he is no whit inferior, he will hardly be brought willingly to yield a subject's duty to him, but rather expect a time when he may free himself and take revenge of the conqueror. §. 4. Of a fond conceit, that husband and wife are equal. Contrary to the forenamed subjection is the opinion of many wives, who think themselves every way as good as their husbands, and no way inferior to them. The reason whereof seemeth to be that small inequality Of all that are inferiors, the wife cometh nearest to a paritic. which is betwixt the husband and the wife: for of all degrees wherein there is any difference betwixt person and person, there is the least disparity betwixt man and wife. Though the man be as the head, yet is the woman as the heart, which is the most excellent part of the body next the head, far more excellent than any other member under the head, and almost equal to the head in many respects, and as necessary as the head. As an evidence, that a wife is to man as the heart to the head, she was at her b Gen. 2. 21. first creation taken out of the side of man where his heart lieth; and though the woman was at first c 1 Cor. 11. 12. of the man created out of his side, yet is the man also by the woman. Ever since the first creation man hath been borne and brought forth out of the woman's womb: so as neither the man is without the woman, nor the woman without the man: yea, as d 1 Cor. 7. 4. cum de pudicitia sermonem habet, magna paritas. Chrys. hom. 19 in 1 Cor. 7. the wife hath not power of her own body, but the husband, so the husband hath not power of his own body, but the wife. They are also e 1 Pet. 3. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. heirs together of the grace of life. Besides, wives are mothers of the same children, whereof their husbands are fathers (for God said to both, f Gen. 1. 28. multiply and increase) and mistresses of the same servants whereof they are masters (for Sarah is called g & 16. 4. Object. Answ. mistress) and in many other respects there is a common equity betwixt husbands and wives; whence many wives gather that in all things there ought to be a mutual equality. But from some particulars to infer a general is a very weak argument. 1. Doth it follow, that because in many things there is a common equity betwixt judges of Assize, justices of peace, and Constables of towns, that therefore there is in all things an equality betwixt them? 2. In many things there is not a common equity: for the husband may command his wife, but not she him. 3. Even in those things wherein there is a common equity, there is not an equality: for the husband hath ever even in all things a superiority: as if there be any difference even in the forenamed instances, the husband must have the stroke: as in giving the name of Rachel's youngest child, where the wife would have one name, the husband another, that name which the husband gave, stood, (Gen. 35. 18.) Though there seem to be never so little disparity, yet God having so expressly appointed subjection, it ought to be acknowledged: and h Possunt coniuges per charitatem seruire invicem, sed mulierem non permittit Apostolus dominari in virum. Aug. de Gen. ad lit. l. 11. c. 37. though husband and wife may mutually serve one another through love: yet the Apostle suffereth not a woman to rule over the man. §. 5. Of a wife's acknowledgement of her * Treat. 4 §. 9 own husband's superiority. The truth and life of that general acknowledgement of husband's honour, consisteth in the particular application thereof unto their own proper husbands. The next duty therefore is, that wives acknowledge their All wives must acknowledge their own husbands worthy of honour. own husbands, even those to whom by God's providence they are joined in marriage, to be worthy of an husband's honour, and to be their superior: thus much the Apostle intendeth by that particle of restraint ( b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Eph. 5. 22, 24. own) which he useth very often: so likewise doth c 1 Pet. 3. 1, 5. S. Peter, exhorting wives to be in subjection 1 Cor. 7. 2. to their own husbands: and hereunto restraining the commendation of the ancient good wives, that they were in subjection to their own husbands. Object. What if a man of mean place be married to a woman of eminent place, or a servant be married to his mistress, or an aged woman to a youth, must such a wife acknowledge such an husband her superior? Answ. Yea verily: for in giving herself to be his wife, and Wife's inferior to those over whom they were before marriage. taking him to be her husband, she advanceth him above herself, and subiecteth herself unto him. It booteth nothing what either of them were before marriage: by virtue of the matrimonial bond the husband is made the head of his wife, though the husband were before marriage a very beggar, and of mean parentage, and the wife very wealthy and of a noble stock; or though he were her prentice, or bondslave; which also holdeth in the case betwixt an aged woman and a youth: for the Scripture hath made no exception in any of those cases. 2. Object. But what if a man of lewd and beastly conditions, as a drunkard, a glutton, a profane swaggerer, an impious swearer, and blasphemer, be married to a wife, sober, religious Matron, must she account him her superior, and worthy of an husband's honour? Answ. Surely she must. For the evil quality and disposition Subjection due to husbands of evil qualities. of his heart and life, doth not deprive a man of that civil honour which God hath given unto him. Though an husband in regard of evil qualities may carry the Image of the devil, yet in regard of his place and office he beareth the ●mage of God: so do Magistrates in the commonwealth, Ministers in the Church, parents and masters in the family. Note for our present purpose, the exhortation of S. Peter to Christian wives which had infidel husbands, d 1 Pet 3. 1, 2. Be in subjection to them: let your conversation be in fear. If Infidels carry ●ot the devil's Image, and are not, so long as they are Infidels, vassals of Satan, who are? yet wives must be subject to them, and fear them. §. 6. Of wife's denying honour to their own husbands. Contrary thereunto is a very perverse disposition in some A perverse opinion to think other husband's worthy of honour, and not their own. wives, who think they could better subject themselves to any husband, than their own. Though in general they acknowledge that an husband is his wives superior, yet when the application cometh to themselves they fail, and cannot be brought to yield, that they are their husband's inferiors. This is a vice worse than the former. For to acknowledge no husband to be superior over his wife, but to think man and wife in all things equal, may proceed from ignorance of hind, and error of judgement. But for a wife who knoweth and acknowledgeth the general, that an husband is above his wife, to imagine that she herself is not inferior to her husband, ariseth from monstrous self-conceit, and intolerable arrogancy, as if she herself were above her own sex, and ●ore than a woman. Contrary also is the practice of such * See Treat. 2. part. 1. §. 9 women, as purposely ●ary men of far lower rank than themselves, for this very end, that they may rule over their own husbands: and of others who being * See Ibid. aged, for that end mary youths, if not very boys. A mind and practise very unseemly, and cleaneth warting Gods ordinance. But let them think of ruling Indecens est ut mulier magistra viri fiat. Orig. in Isa. hom. 7. what they list, the truth is, that they make themselves subjects' both by God's law and man's: of which subjection such wives do oft feel the heaviest burden. Solomon noteth this to be one of the things for which the earth is disquieted, when Prou. 30. 21, 22. a servant reigneth. Now when can a servant more domineer, then when he hath married his mistress? As for aged women who are married to youths, I may say (as in another case it was said) woe to thee o wife whose husband is a child. Unmeet it is Eccle. 10. 16. that an aged man should be married to a young maid, but much more unmeet for an aged woman to be married to a youth. §. 7. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 11 inward fear of her husband. Hitherto of a wife's acknowledgement of her husband's superiority. It followeth to speak of that answerable respect which she ought to bear towards him. A wive-like respect of her husband consisteth in two points: 1. Reverence. 2. Obedience. The reverence which she oweth to him is Wive-like fear. 1. Inward. 2. Outward. Inward reverence is an awful respect which a wife in her heart hath of her husband, esteeming him worthy of all honour for his place, and office sake, because he is her husband. Doubtless Sarah had in her heart a reverend respect and honourable esteem of her husband, when a Gen. 18. 12. being alone, and thinking of him in her very thought she gave him this title Lord. This inward reverence the Scripture compriseth under this word Fear: as where our Apostle saith, b Eph. 5. 33. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Let the wife see that she fear her husband: and where c 1 Pet. 3. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. S. Peter exhorteth wives to have their conversation in Fear. It is no slavish fear of her husband which ought to possess the heart of a wife, dreading blows, frowns, spiteful words, or the like; but such an awful respect of him as maketh her (to use the Apostles word) d 1 Cor. 7. 34. care how she may please him. This wive-like Fear is manifested by two effects: one is joy, when she giveth contentment to her husband, and observeth him to be pleased with that which she doth: the other is grief, when he is justly offended and grieved, especially with any thing that she herself hath done. Unless this inward reverence and due respect of an husband True fear a ground of other duties. be first placed in the heart of a wife, either no outward reverence and obedience will be performed at all, or if it be performed, it will be very unsound, only in show, hypocritical and deceitful: so that as good never a whit as never the better. For according to one's inward affection and disposition will the outward action and conversation be framed. e 2 Sam. 6. 16. Michal first despised David in her heart, and thence it followed that she f Uers. 20. How fear may be wrought in a wife's heart. utteredmost unreverend and vile speeches of him, even to his face. Wherefore after the judgement of a wife is rightly informed of an husband's superiority, and her will persuaded to account her own husband her head and guide, it is very needful that her heart and affection be accordingly seasoned with the salt of good respect, and high esteem, which breedeth fear: and that thus her heart may be seasoned, she ought oft and seriously to meditate of his place and office, and of that honour which the Lord by virtue thereof hath planted in him. And if he have gifts worthy his place, as knowledge, wisdom, piety, temperance, love, and the like, she ought to take notice thereof, and to think him worthy of double honour. §. 8. Of a wife's base esteem of her husband. Contrary to this inward reverence of the heart is a base and wile esteem which many have of their husbands, thinking no better of them then of other men; nay worse than of others; despising their husbands in their heart, like Michal, of whom we heard before. This, as it is in itself a vile vice, so is ●t a cause of many other vices, as of presumption, rebellion, A base esteem which wives have of their husbands, ariseth yea and of adultery itself many times: and it is also a main hindrance of all duty. It commonly riseth either from self-conceit (whereby wives overween their own gifts, thinking them so excellent 1. From self-conceit. is they need no guide or head, but are rather fit to guide and rule both their husband and all the household: of which proud and presumptuous spirit jezabel seemeth to be, who with an audacious and impudent face said to Ahab her husband, g 1 King. 21. 7. Dost thou now govern the kingdom of Israel? Up, I will give thee the vineyard of Naboth. So also all those wives which are noted to draw away their husband's hearts from the Lord, as the wives of h 1 King. 11. 4. Solomon, i 2 King. 8. 18. jehoram, and others: which they learned of their great grandmother k Gen. 3. 6. Euah:) or else from some infirmities of mind or body, or of life, which they behold in their 2. From their husband's infirmities. husbands (whence it cometh to pass, that many husbands who are highly honoured and greatly accounted of by others, are much despised by their wives, because their wives always conversing with them are privy to such infirmities as are concealed from others:) or, which is worst of all, from unjust surmizes 3. From unjust suspicions. and suspicions, suspecting many evil things of their husbands whereof they are no way guilty, and misinterpreting, and perverting things well done, as l 2 Sam. 6. 20. Michal perverted David's holy zeal. For redress of this enormous vice, wives ought first in regard How wives may redress a light esteem of their husbands. of themselves to purge out of their heart's pride, and self-conceit, thinking humbly and lowly of themselves, and that even in regard of their sex and the weakness thereof: and if the Lord have endued them with any gift above the ordinary sort of women, to note well their own infirmities, and to lay them by their eminent gifts: thus by looking on their black feet, their proud-peacock-feathers may be cast down. Yea also when they behold any infirmities in their husbands, they ought to reflect their eyes on their own infirmities, which it may be are even as many and as grievous, if not more in number, and more heinous in their nature and kind: at least let them consider that they are subject to the same, if God leave them to the sway of their own corruption. Secondly, wives ought in regard of their husbands to surmise no evil whereof they have not sure proof and evidence: but rather interpret every thing in better part: and follow the rule of love, m 1 Cor. 13. 7. which beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things, endureth all things. If they note any defects of nature, and deformity of body, or any enormous and notorious vices in their husband, than ought they to turn their eyes and thoughts from his person to his place, and from his vicious qualities to his honourable office (which is to be an husband) and this will abate that vile esteem which otherwise might be occasioned from the forenamed means. §. 9 Of * Treat. 4. §. 4. wive-like sobriety. A wives outward reverence towards her husband is a manifestation of her inward due respect of him. Now then seeing A wives outward reverence. the intent of the heart, and inward disposition cannot be discerned by man simply in itself, that the husband may know his wife's good affection towards him, it is behooveful that she manifest the same by her outward reverence. A wives outward reverence consisteth in her reverend Gesture. Speech. For the first, that a reverend gesture & carriage of herself to A wife's reverence in her gesture. her husband, and in her husband's presence, beseemeth a wife, was of old implied by the veil which the woman used to put on, when she was brought unto her husband, as is noted in the a Gen. 24. 65. example of Rebekah: whereunto the Apostle alludeth in these words, b 1 Cor. 11. 10. the woman ought to have power on her head. That cover on the woman's head, as in general it implied subjection, so in particular this kind of subjection, viz. a reverend carriage and gesture. But most expressly is this duty set down by c 1 Pet. 3. 1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Saint Peter who exhorteth wives to order their conversation before their husbands, so as it be pure, with reverence. This reverend conversation consisteth in a wive-like sobriety, mildness, courtesy, and modesty. By sobriety I mean such a comely, grave, and gracious carriage, as giveth evidence to the husband that his wife respecteth his place & the authority which God hath given him. Sobriety in general is required of all women by reason of their sex; and surely it doth well become them all: but much more doth it become wives: most of all, in their husband's presence. d 1 Tim. 3. 11. The Apostle in particular enjoineth it to Deacons wives, yet not so as proper unto them, but in a further respect appertaining to them not only as wives, but as the wives of Deacons. Contrary to this sobriety is lightness and wantonness: which vices in a wife, especially before her husband, argueth little respect, if not a plain contempt of him. Object. Thus shall all delightful familiarity betwixt husband and wife be taken away. Answ. Though the forenamed sobriety be opposed to lightness Difference betwixt wantonness and familiarity. and wantonness, yet not to matrimonial familiarity: which is so far permitted to man and wife, as if any other man and woman should so behave themselves one towards another as an husband and wife lawfully may, it might justly be counted lightness and sin: instance the example of Isaak and Rebekah, who so sported together, as Abimelech, Gen. 26. 8, 9 knowing them to be such as feared God, gathered by that sporting that they were man and wife: for he thought that otherwise they would not have been so familiar together. * See Treat. 4. §. 42. This familiarity argueth both liking and love: and showeth that the man and wife delight in one another's person. But the lightness here condemned in a wife, is not so much a mutual familiarity with her husband by his good liking, as a wanton dallying with others to his grief and disgrace. §. 10. Of * Treat. 4. §. 13, 22. wive-like mildness. Mildness in a wife hath respect also to the ordering of her countenance, gesture, and whole carriage before her husband, whereby she manifesteth a pleasingness to him, and a contentedness and willingness to be under him and ruled by him. Excellently is this set forth in the spouse of Christ whose eyes are said to be as doves eyes, her lips to drop as honey combs, and Cant. 4. & 6. & 7. she herself every way pleasant: whereupon it is noted that she appeared to her husband as the bright morning, and that his heart was wounded with her. Assuredly the clear sky is not more pleasant in time of harvest, than a mild and amiable countenance and carriage of a wife in her husband's presence. Is cui leonum cura commissa est, blanda manu, mollique verborum sono permulsos domat. Greg. Naz. ad Olymp. And though her husband should be of an harsh and cruel disposition, yet by this means might he be made meek and gentle. For the keepers of Lions are said to bring them to some tameness by handling them gently and speaking to them fairly. Contrary to this mildness is a frowning brow, a lowering eye, a sullen look, a pouting lip, a swelling face, a deriding mouth, a scornful cast of the arms and hands, a disdainful turning of this side and that side of the body, and a fretful flinging out of her husband's presence: all which and other like contemptuous gestures are as thick clouds overspreading the heavens in a Summer's day, which make it very uncomfortable. They oft stir up much passion in the man, and bring much mischief upon the wife herself. §. 11. Of * Treat. 4. §. 15. wive-like courtesy and obeisance. Courtesy is that virtue whereby a wife taketh occasion to testify her acknowledgement of her husband's superiority by some outward obeisance to him. Rebekah, so soon as she saw Isaak, whom she had taken for her husband, lighted from her Camel and came to him on foot, which was a kind of obeisance. This is not so to be taken as if no difference were to be made betwixt the carriage of a servant, or child, and a wife: or as if a wife should bow at every word that she speaketh to her husband. Though in the kind and extent of many duties the same things are required of wives which are required of children and servants, because God hath made them all inferiors, and exacted subjection of all: yet in the manner and measure of many duties there is great difference: as in this, the obeisance of children and servants ought to be more submissive, and more frequent. Yet because God hath placed authority in the husband over his wife, she is every way to testify her reverend respect of her husband, and therefore at some times, on some occasions (as when he is going on a journey for a time from her, or when he returneth home again, or when she hath a solemn and great suit to make unto him, or when he offereth an especial and extraordinary favour unto her, or (as I have observed such wives as know what beseemeth their place, and are not ashamed to manifest as much) when she sitteth 1. A wive-like courtesy worketh a good respect in her husband to her. down or riseth up from table) to declare her reverence by some obeisance. This cannot but much work on the heart of a good and kind husband, and make him the more to respect his wife, when he beholdeth this evidence of her respect to him. Yea it cannot but be a good pattern to children 2. It maketh her husband be honoured of others. and servants, and a motive to stir them up to yield all submissive obeisance both to her husband and to herself. For it may make them thus to reason with themselves, shall 3. It bringeth honour to herself. we scorn or think much to yield that to our father or master which our mother or mistress thinketh not much to yield to her husband? shall-she bow to him, and shall not we much more bow to her? Thus a wives honouring of her husband by yielding obeisance to him, maketh both him and herself to be more honoured of others. Contrarily minded are they, who not only altogether omit Contrary scorn in wives. this duty, but also gibe and scoff at the very hearing thereof, saying, thus wives shall be made no better than children or servants. But though scornful dames deride these outward evidences of their subjection, yet such wives as fear the Lord ought not to be hindered thereby from doing their duty: for by such evil examples they might be discouraged from every good duty. It is sufficient that such holy women as trusted in God so behaved themselves. But for this particular, we know that equals scorn not upon occasions to perform this kind of courtesy in making obeisance one to another: how much less ought wives, who are their husband's inferiors? §. 12. Of * Treat. 4. §. 49, 52. 1 Tim. 2 9 1 Pet. 3. 3. wifelike modesty in apparel. Modesty appertaining to a wife is much manifested in her apparel. S. Paul requireth this modesty in general of all sorts of women: but S. Peter presseth it in particular upon wives. For as it well beseemeth all women, so wives after a peculiar manner, namely, in attiring themselves, to respect rather their husband's place and state, than their own birth and parentage, but much rather than their own mind and humour. A wife's modesty therefore requireth that her apparel be neither for costliness above her husband's ability, nor for curiousness un beseeming his calling. As a poor man's wife must not affect costly apparel, so neither Ministers, grave Counselors, sage Magistrates, no nor conscionable Professors wives, hunt after new fashions, or in light and garish apparel attire themselves. It is a token of great reverence in a wife towards her husband, to have an eye to his place and state in her apparel. On the contrary, such proud deigns as must have their own will in their attire, and think it nothing appertaineth Contrary wives attire not fitting their husband's state or place. to their husbands to order them therein, who care not what their husband's ability, or what his place and calling be, they show little respect and reverence to their husbands. Such are they, who are no whit moved with their husband's example: but though the man's apparel be plain and grave, yet the wives shall be costly and garish. Yea many there be that stand in some more awe of their husband's sight, but show little more respect unto him, who have their silken gowns, Beaver hats, and other like attire not agreeable to their place and state, lie in the country, if they be of the city; or in the city, if they be of the country, in a friend's house where their husbands shall Quae se pingit comitque secus quam viro gratum esse novit, satis declarat sese pluribus velle placcre quam oportet mulierem pudicam, cuius praecipua laus est uni placuisse cui desponsata est. Erasm. Instit. Matr. not know it, and when their husbands are not with them, wear them, and paint their faces, lay out their hair, and in every thing follow the fashion. What can they which behold this think, but that such a wife's care is more to please other light vain persons, than her grave, discreet husband: or that her husband can nothing at all prevail with her: which as it staineth her own credit, so it leaveth a blot of dishonour even upon him. If the care of a wife were to give evidence of the reverence which she beareth to her husband, his desire and example would in this respect more prevail with her, than the humour of her own heart. §. 13. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 24. reverend speech to her husband. As by gesture, so by speech also, must a wife's reverence be manifested: this must be answerable to that. For by words as well as by deeds, the affection of the heart is manifested, a Matt. 12. 34. Out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh. A wife's reverence is manifested by her speech, both in her husband's presence, and also in his absence. For this end in his presence her words must be few, reverend and meek. First few: For the A wife's words in her husband's presence must be few. Apostle enjoineth b 1 Tim. 2. 12. silence to wives in their husband's presence, and enforceth that duty with a strong reason in these words: I permit not the woman to usurp authority over the man, but to be in silence: the inference of the latter clause upon the former showeth that he speaketh not only of a woman's silence in the Church, but also of a wife's silence before her husband: which is further cleared by another like place, where the same Apostle enjoineth wives to c 1 Cor. 14. 35. learn of their husbands at home. The reason before mentioned for silence, on the one side implieth a reverend subjection, as on the other side too much speech implieth an usurpation of authority. Object. Then belike a wife must be always mute before her husband. Answ. No such matter: for silence in that place is not opposed to speech, as if she should not speak at all, but to loquacity, to talkativeness, to overmuch tattling: her husband's presence must some what restrain her tongue, and so will her very silence testify a reverend respect. Otherwise silence, as it is opposed to speech, would imply stoutness of stomach, and stubbornness of heart, which is an extreme contrary to loquacity. But the mean betwixt both, is for a wife to be sparing in speech, to expect a fit time and just occasion of speech, to be willing to hearken to the word of knowledge coming out of her husband's mouth. This argueth reverence. d job 32. 6. Elihu manifested thereverend respect, which as a younger he bore to his elders, by for bearing to speak while they had any thing to say. How much more ought wives in regard both of their sex and of their place? Contrary is their practice, who must and will have all the Contrary too much prate. prate. If their husbands have begun to speak, their slippery tongues cannot expect and tarry till he have done: if (as very hastile and forward they are to speak) they prevent not their husbands, they will surely take the tale out of his mouth before he have done: Thus-they disgrace themselves, and dishonour their husbands. §. 14. Of the * Treat. 4. §. 24. titles which wives give their husbands. As their words must be few, so those few words must be reverend and meek: both which are also implied under the forenamed word a 1 Tim. 2. 12. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. silence: which in the original signifieth also a 1 Tim. 2. 12. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. quietness. Reverence hath respect to the titles whereby a wife nameth her husband. Meekness to the manner of framing her speech to him. Reverend titles to be given to husbands. For the titles which a wife in speaking to her husband, or naming him, giveth unto him, they must be such as signify superiority, and so savour of reverence. Such are the titles wherewith husbands are named in the Scripture; * See §. 3. they are titles of honour. Such also are the titles which the Church (who by our Apostle is made a pattern for wives in all subjection) giveth to her Spouse Christ jesus, as may be gathered out of the Song of songs. It is likely that Sarah did usually give this title Lord to her husband. For having occasion to think of him, presently this title b Gen. 18. 12. Lord was in her heart: which would not so suddenly have risen up, if she had not ordinarily used it. According to the usual titles which we give to any, do we in our hearts name them, when we have occasion to think of them. Among all other titles the name husband, as it is the most usual, so it is the fittest and meetest title. It intimateth reverence, and savoureth not of niceness & singularity, as these titles, Head, Guide, Master, Man, and the like do: which though they be lawful titles, because the Scripture attributeth them to husbands, and they signify superiority, yet because they are unusual and savour of singularity, they are not so meet. Common use and practice hath made the addition of the husband's surname to this title Master, more meet. c 1 Pet. 3. 6. Saint Peter by this argument proveth that Sarah obeyed Abraham, because she called him Lord. Contrary are those compellations which argue equality or inferiority rather than superiority, as Brother, Cousin, Friend, Man, etc. if a stranger be in presence, how can he tell by this manner of compellation, that he whom thou speakest unto is thy husband? If he espy any matrimonial familiarity betwixt you, what can he judge of it otherwise to be, lightness and wantonness? Remember the fearful issue that had like to have fallen out by reason of such compellations given by d Gen. 12. 19 & 20. 2. Sarah and e & 26. 9 Rebekah to their husbands. Not unlike to those are such as these, Sweet, Sweeting, Heart, Sweetheart, Love, joy, Dear, etc. and such as these, Duck, Chick, Pigsney, etc. and husbands Christian names, as john, Thomas, William, Henry, etc. which if they be contracted (as many use to contract them thus, Iack●, Tom, Will, Hall) they are much more unseemly: servants are usually so called. But what may we say of those titles given to an husband by his wife, not seldom in passion, but usually in ordinary speech, which are not fit to be given to the basest men that be, as Grub, Rogue, and the like, which I am even ashamed to name, but that the sins of women are to be cast as dirt on their faces, that they may be the more ashamed? Object. Many of the forenamed titles are titles of amity and familiarity. Answ. Subjection is that mark which wives are directed to aim at in their thoughts, words, deeds, and whole conversation towards their husband. Such tokens of familiarity as are not withal tokens of subjection and reverence, are unbeseeming a wife, because they swerve from that mark. §. 15. Of wife's * Treat. 4. §. 24. etc. meekness in their speeches. Meekness in a wife's manner of framing her speech to her husband, doth also commend her reverend respect of him. This is an especial effect of that meek and quiet spirit which S. Peter requireth of wives; which duty he doth strongly enforce by this weighty argument, a 1 Pet. 3. 4. which is before God a thing much set by. Is a wife's meekness much set by before God, and shall not wives hold it both a bounden duty, and comely ornament, and grace unto them? As the form of words which a wife useth in ask or answering questions, or any other kind of discourse which she holdeth with her husband, so her moderation in persisting, arguing and pressing matters, yea and the mild composition of her countenance in speaking, declare her meekness. If she be desirous to obtain any thing of him, fairly she must entreat it, as the b 2 King. 4. 10. 22. Shunemite: If she would move him to perform a bounden duty, mildly she must persuade him. If she would restrain and keep him from doing that which is evil, even that also she must do with some meekness, as c Matt. 27. 19 Pilat's wife: If she have occasion to tell him of a fault, therein she ought to manifest humility and reverence, by observing a fit season, and doing it after a gentle manner as d 2 Sam. 25. 31, 37. Abigail: who as she wisely behaved herself in this respect with her husband in observing a fit season, so also with David by intimating his fault unto him, rather than plainly reproving him, when she said, It shall be no grief nor offence unto my Lord, that he hath not shed blood causeless. This meekness requireth also silence and patience, even when she is reproved. Contrary is the waspish and shrewish disposition of many Contrary wives shrewish speeches to their husbands. wives to their husbands, who care not how hastily and unadvisedly they speak to them, like e Gen. 30. 1. Rahel; nor how angrily and chidingly, like f 1 King. 21. 7. jezabel; nor how disdainfully, and spitefully, like g Exo. 4. 25, 26. Zipporah; nor how scoffingly, and frumpingly, like h 2 Sam. 6. 20. Michal; nor how reproachfully and disgracefully, like i job 2. 9 jobs wife. If they be reproved by their husbands, their husbands shall be reproached by them: & they are ready to answer again, not only word for word, but ten for one. Many wives by their shrewish speeches, show no more respect to their husbands, then to their servants, if so much. The least occasion moveth them not only inwardly to be angry and fret against them, but also outwardly to manifest the same by chiding and brawling. The very object whereupon many wives usually spit out their venomous words, is their husband; when their stomaches are full, they must needs ease them on their husbands: wherein their fault is doubled. Let wives therefore learn first to moderate their passion, and then to keep in their tongues with bit and bridle, but most of all to take heed that their husbands taste not of the bitterness thereof, no not though they should by some oversight of their husbands be provoked. It is to be noted how Solomon calleth the jars which are between man and wife, the contentions of a wife, whereby he intimateth that she commonly Prou. 19 13. is the cause thereof, either by provoking her husband, or not bearing with him. §. 16. Of a wife's speech of her husband * Treat. 2. Part. 2. §. 36. in his absence. The reverence which a wife beareth to her husband, must further be manifested by her speeches of him in his absence. So did Sarah manifest her reverence, and so must all such as desire Gen. 18. 12. to be accounted the daughters of Sarah. The Church speaking of her Spouse, doth it with as great reverence, as if she Cant 5. 10. etc. had spoken to him. It was for honour and reverence sake, that the Virgin Mary called joseph the Father of jesus, when she Luke 2. 48. spoke of him. This showeth that a wife's reverend speeches in presence of her husband and to his face, are not in flattery to please him and fawn upon him, but in sincerity to please God and perform her duty. Contrary therefore to their duty deal they, who in presence Contrary wives bitter speeches behind their husband's backs. can afford the fairest and meek est speeches that may be to their husband's face, but * See more hereof Treat 2. part 2. §. 36. behind their backs speak most reproachfully of them. §. 17. Of a wife's obedience in general. Hitherto of a wife's reverence, it followeth to speak of her obedience: The first law that ever was given to woman since her fall, laid upon her this duty of Obedience to her husband, in these words, a Gen. 3. 16. Thy desire shall be to thine husband, and he shall rule over thee. How can an husband rule over a wife, if she obey not him? The principal part of that submission which in this b Ephes. 5. 22. text, and in many other places is required of a wife, consisteth in obedience: and therefore it is expressly commended unto wives in the example of Sarah who c 1 Pet. 3. 6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. obeyed Abraham. Thus by Obedience doth the Church manifest her subjection to Christ. The place wherein God hath set an husband; namely, to be an d Ephes. 5. 23. head; the authority which he hath given unto him, to be a e 1 Pet. 3. 6. Lord and f Ester 1. 17. Master; the duty which he requireth of him g Gen. 3. 16. to rule, do all require obedience of a wife. Is not obedience to be yielded to an Head, Lord, and Master? Take away all authority from an husband, if ye exempt a wife from obedience. Contrary is the stoutness of such wives as must have their Contrary to obedience, stoutness. own will, and do what they list, or else all shall be out of quiet. Their will must be done, they must rule and overrule all, they must command not only children and servants, but husbands also, if at least the husband will be at peace. Look into families, observe the estate and condition of many of them, and then tell me if these things be not so. If an husband be a man of courage, and seek to stand upon his right, and maintain his authority by requiring obedience of his wife, strange it is to behold what an hurly burly she will make in the house: but if he be a milksop, and basely yield unto his wife, and suffer her to rule, then, it may be, there shall be some outward quiet. The ground hereof is an ambitious and proud humour in women, who must needs rule, or else they think themselves slaves. But let them think as they list: assuredly herein they thwart God's ordinance, pervert the order of nature, deface the image of Christ, overthrow the ground of all duty, hinder the good of the family, become an ill pattern to children and servants, lay themselves open to Satan, and incur many other mischiefs which cannot but follow upon the violating of this main duty of Obedience, which if it be not performed, how can other duties be expected? §. 18. Of the cases wherein a wife hath power to order things of the house without her husband's consent. A wife's obedience requireth Submission. Contentment. Submission in yielding to her husband's mind and will. * See §. 49. Contentment in resting satisfied and content with his estate and ability. That Submission consisteth in two things. First, in abstaining from doing things against her husband's mind. Secondly, in doing what her husband requireth. The former of these requireth that a wife have her husband's consent for the things which she doth. For the better clearing whereof we are to consider, 1. What kind of husbands they must be whose consent is required. 2. How many ways his consent may be given. 3. What are the things whereabout his consent is to be expected. For the first, as on the one side it oft falleth out that a wife, In two cases a wife hath power to order things of herself, without her husband's consent. provident, and religious man is married to a foolish woman, a very idiot, that hath no understanding, of whom there can be no question, but that such a wife is to do nothing of herself, and of her own head, but altogether to be ordered by her husband: So on the other side, it oft falleth out that a wise, virtuous, and gracious woman, is married to an husband destitute 1 In case of her husband's impotency. of understanding, to a very natural (as we say) or a frenzy man, or to one made very blockish, and stupid, unfit to manage his affairs through some distemper, wound, or sicknesle. In such a case the whole government lieth upon the wife, so as her husband's consent is not to be expected. Quest. What if the husband be a wicked and profane man, and so blinded and stupefied in his soul, doth not this spiritual blindness and blockishnese give a religious wife as great liberty as natural stupidity? Answ. No verily: For S. Peter exhorteth faithful wives 1 Pet. 3. 1, 2. that were married to Infidel husbands to be subject to them, and that in fear. The reason is clear: For spiritual blindness disableth not from civil government: indeed nothing that such a man doth is acceptable to God, or available to his own salvation; but yet it may be profitable to man: a wicked man may be provident enough for wife, children, and whole family in outward temporal things. Again, it oft falleth out, that an husband is a long time 2 In case of impossibility for her husband to do it. far off absent from the house: sometimes by reason of his calling, as an Ambassador, Soldier, or Mariner; sometimes also carelessly or wilfully neglecting house, goods, wife, children and all: and in his absence hath left no order for the ordering of things at home: in this case also there is no question, but that the wife hath power to dispose matters without her husband's consent: provided that she observe those rules of God's word concerning justice, equity, truth and mercy, which an husband in his disposing of them ought to observe. The first of these cases declareth an impotency in the husband: the other an impossibility for him to order matters: wherefore the wife being next to the husband, the power of ordering things is devolved on her: she is not bound to have his consent. §. 19 Of diverse kinds of consent. II. A consent may be general or particular. A general 1. A general consent. consent is given, when without distinct respect to this or that particular, liberty is granted to a wife by her husband to do all things as seemeth good in her own eyes. a Prou. 31. 10, etc. That excellent good wife, and notable good housewife that is set forth by the Wiseman, had such a consent. For first, it is said, b Vers. 11. The heart of her husband trusteth in her; and than it is inferred, that she ordereth all the things of the house, whereof many particulars are there specified. Whence I gather, that her husband observing her to be a godly, wise, faithful, and industrious woman, gave her power and liberty to do in the household affairs, what she thought good, (he being a public magistrate, for c Vers. 23. he was known in the gates, sitting among the Elders of the land) and accordingly she used her liberty. A particular consent is that which is given to one or more particular 2. A particular consent. things, as that consent d Gen. 16. 6. which Abraham gave to Sarah about Hagar; and e 1 Sam 1. 23. that which Elkanah gave to Hanna about tarrying at home till her child was weaned. This particular consent may be expressed or implied. An expressed consent is when the husband manifesteth his good liking by word, writing, message, or sign, and that whether his consent be asked (as was noted in the example of Elkanah) or freely offered. An implicit consent, when by any probable conjecture it may be gathered that the husbands will is not against such a thing, 4. An implicit consent, though he have not manifested his mind concerning that very particular. This implicit consent may be gathered either by his silence when he is present to see a thing done, or otherwise hath knowledge thereof: or else when he is absent, by his former carriage or disposition in other like cases. The Scripture accounteth an husband's silence, when he knoweth a thing and may, but doth not forbid it, to be a consent: as f Num 30. 8. in the case of a wife's vow. For any thing we read to the contrary g 2 King. 4. 10, 23. the Shunemite had no other consent to prepare a chamber for the Prophet, and to go unto him, than her husband's silence, and not forbidding it when he knew it. As for the other kind of implicit consent, it may be set forth in this following instance: suppose a good wife hath an husband whom she knoweth by his former carriage and disposition to be a pitiful and charitable man, taking all occasions to show mercy, and in his absence there falleth out a fit and needful occasion of showing mercy; if she take that occasion to show mercy, she hath an implicit consent, for she may well think that if her husband knew it he would approve what she doth. It is to be supposed that h 1 Sam. 1. 11. Annah upon some such ground vowed her child to God. For it is not likely that she who would not tarry at home to wean her child without her husband's consent, would much less vow him to the Lord (which was a far greater matter) without some persuasion of her husband's good liking thereof. Now that a wife may show she dealeth uprightly in this case upon a true persuasion of her heart concerning her husband's mind, she ought (when conveniently she can) to make known to her husband what she hath done: as without all question Annah did; and so much may be gathered out of these words which Elkanah uttered to Annah, i 1 Sam. 1. 23. the Lord establish his word. §. 20. Of the things whereabout a wife must have her husband's consent. The things whereabout an husband's consent is to be expected, are such as he by virtue of his place and authority hath power to order: as for example, ordering and disposing the goods, cattle, servants, and children of the family, entertaining strangers; yea, also ordering even his wives going abroad, and making of vows, with the like: now then distinctly to lay down a wife's duty in this first branch of obedience, it is this: A wife must do nothing which appertaineth to her husband authority simply without, or directly against his consent. Do not these words of that old law (thy desire shall be to thy husband) Gen. 3. 16. imply as much? I deny not but that there may be sundry things proper and peculiar to a wife, wherein I will not restrain her liberty: and therefore I use this phrase (which appertaineth to her husband's authority.) And I grant the forenamed general and implicit consent, to be a true consent, so as there needeth not an express particular consent for every thing, and therefore I have added these clauses (simply without, or directly against consent.) That is done simply without consent which is done without all warrant from the husband, and that so covertly as she is afraid it should come to his notice, imagining he would by no means like it: As Rahels taking her father's idols without all Gen. 31. 32. consent of jaakob. That is done directly against consent which is expressly forbidden and disclaimed by the husband. But to descend to the particulars before mentioned: First concerning the goods of the family: It is a question controverted whether the wife have power to dispose them without or against the husband's consent. Before I determine the question, I think it needful to declare, 1. What goods, 2. What occasion of giving the question is about. §. 21. Of the things which a wife may dispose without her husband's consent. 1. For the goods, some are proper and peculiar to the wife: Quaedam bona sunt propria uxoris, ut sunt bona paraphernalia. Greg. Sayr. Clau. reg. l. 9 c. 16. others are common. Goods proper to the wife are such as before marriage she herself, or her friends except from the husband to her sole and proper use and disposing, whereunto he also yieldeth: or such as after marriage he giveth unto her to dispose as she please: suppose it be some rent, annuity, fees, ●ailes, or the like. These kinds of goods are exempted out of the question 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 bona apud iurisconsultos, dicuntur 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 (i) quae sponsa praeter dotem à parentibus pactam secum fert: vel (ut Sayrus loc. citat.) habet legata ei, seu donata. in hand; the wife hath liberty to dispose them as she please without any further consent than she had by virtue of her hausbands former grant. To these I may refer other goods, but of another nature, namely such as some friend of hers, suppose father, mother, brother, or any other, observing her husband to be a very ●ard man, not allowing sufficient for herself, much less to distribute on charitable uses, shall give unto her to dispose as ●e please, charging her not to let her husband know thereof. How because it is in the power of a free donor to order his ●ift as he please, and because he so ordereth this gift as he will not have her husband know of it, I doubt not but she may of herself according to the doners mind without her husband's consent, dispose such goods. She is herein but as a feoffee in trust. Again of common goods some are set forth by the husband to be spent about the family, other he reserveth for a ●ocke, or to lay forth as he himself shall see occasion. Concerning those which are set forth to be spent, I doubt ●ot but the wife hath power to dispose them; neither is she ●ound to ask any further consent of her husband. For it is the wife's place and duty to guide or govern the house, 1 Tim. 5. 14. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. by virtue whereof, providing sufficiently for the family, she may, as she seeth good occasion, of such goods as are set apart to be spent, distribute to poor, or otherwise. This I have noted for such tender consciences as think they cannot give a bit of bread, or scarp of meat to a poor body, or make a mess of broth or caudle for a sick body, except they first ask their husband's consent. Provided that if her husband expressly forbid this liberty, she take it not except necessity require it. But our question is concerning such goods as the husband hath not set apart, but reserved to his own disposing. §. 22. Of a wife's liberty in extraordinary matters. II. For the occasion of disposing goods it may be ordinary or extraordinary. Extraordinary for the good of the husband himself, and others in the family, or such as are out of the family. If there fall out an extraordinary occasion whereby the wife by disposing the goods without or against the consent of her husband may bring a great good to the family, or prevent and keep a great mischief from it, she is not to stay for his consent; instance the example of a 1 Sam. 25. 18. etc. Abigail. Thus a faithful provident wife observing her husband to riot, and to spend all he can get in carding, dicing, and drinking, may without his consent lay up what goods she can for her husbands, her own, her children's, and whole households good. This is no part of disobedience, but a point wherein she may show herself a great good help unto her husband; b Gen. 2. 18. for which end a wife was first made. Concerning such as are out of the family, if they be in great need, and require present relief, though the wife know her husband to be so hardhearted, as he will not suffer her to relieve such an one, yet without his consent she may relieve him. The ground of this and other like cases is that rule laid down by the Prophets, and by Christ himself, viz. c Ose. 6. 6. Mat 9 13. & 12. 7. I will have mercy and not sacrifice. If God in case of mercy dispenseth with a duty due to himself, will he not much more dispense with a duty due to an husband? §. 23. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 54. restraint in disposing goods without consent of her husband: and of the ground of that restraint. Out of all these things thus premised I gather the true state Non potest uxor ex bonis communibus occulte accipere ad donandum vel ad erogandum in alios usus sine expressa, aut praesumpta saltem viri licentia. Gre●. Sayr. loc. citat. of the question in controversy concerning the power of wives in disposing the goods of the family to be this, Whether a wife may privily and simply without, or openly and directly against her husband's consent distribute such common goods of the family as her husband reserveth to his own disposing, there being no extraordinary necessity? The most ancient and common answer unto this question hath been negative, namely, that a wife hath not power so to do: whereunto I for my part subscribe. The ground of this answer is taken from that primary law of the wife's subjection, a Gen. 3. 16. Thy desire shall be unto thine husband. How is her desire subject to her husband, if in the case propounded she stand not upon his consent? It is further confirmed both by the b §. 17. forenamed, and also by all other proofs that might be produced out of the Scripture concerning the subjection of wives unto their husbands. If in ordering the goods of the family she yield not subjection, wherein shall she yield it? Against this groundwork some object that c Gen. 4. 7. the same law of subjection is imposed upon a younger brother in the very same words, and yet a younger brother was not thereby bound How the law of subjection is applied to younger brothers. to have his elder brother's consent in disposing his goods. Answ. The law of the regality (as I may so speak) and preeminency of the first borne was under those words ordained: and therefore a younger brother was made a subject to his elder, while he remained in the family, as a son to the father. The elder brother was as a lord over his other brothers: whereupon when Isaak conferred the right of the first borne upon jaakob (thinking he had been his eldest son Esau) he used these words, Be lord over thy brethren, and let thy Gen. 27. 29. mother's sons bow down to thee. Which being so, questionless the younger brother might not simply without or directly against the elder brothers consent dispose the goods of the family: so as this objection more strongly establisheth the forenamed argument. Again it is objected that that old law is to be expounded of weighty matters. Answ. The Apostle who was guided by the spirit of the Eph. 5. 24. lawmaker, extendeth that law to every thing: But is not this matter of disposing goods a weighty matter? The consequences which I shall by and by note to follow hereupon will show it to be a matter of moment. §. 24. Of the example of the Shunemite in ask her husband's consent. 2 King. 4. 9, 22. As another reason may be alleged the Shunemites' pattern who asked her husband's consent before she prepared the things that were thought meet for the Prophet's entertainment: and before she used the things which were meet for her journey. Object. It is indeed commendable for wives to seek their husband's consent as she did, but where such consent cannot be had, it is not necessary. Answ. This example being grounded upon a law (as we showed * §. 23. before) it doth not only declare what may be done, but also what ought to be done. And if a wife be bound to have her husband's consent for doing of a thing, by consequence it followeth that she is bound from doing it, without her husband's consent. 2. Answ. They that except against this reason taken from example, use themselves the like reason in other points, as the examples of Abigail, joanna, and Susanna for the contrary. 2. Object. In the Shunemites' example there was more than a merciful relief of the Prophet, namely bringing him into the house to diet and to lodge, wherein the husband must have a chief stroke. Answ. The word of God maketh not that difference betwixt relieving and entertaining: it extendeth a wife's subjection to every thing: wherefore the husband hath a chief stroke as well in the one, as in the other. §. 25. Of the law of a wife's vow. A third reason is taken from the law of a wife's vow: whereby Num. 30. 7. etc. in general is implied, that a wife might not make a vow without her husband's consent: whence it followeth as an argument taken from the greater to the less, that she may not dispose the goods without his consent. Yea, b Vers. 13. the Law further expressly saith, that though she hath vowed, yet her husband hath power to disannul her vow. Note here, how the Lord will rather depart from his own right (as I may so speak) then have that order which he hath appointed betwixt man and woman broken. The Lords right, was to have what was vowed to him performed: the order which he appointed, was to have the wife subject to her husband: rather than the wife should do that which the husband would not have done, the Lord remitted a wife's vow in case her husband would not consent to have it performed. Now than I demand, is the disposing of goods a greater matter than the performing of a vow? or hath a wife in these days more liberty then in former? if she have, by what law? was there ever under the Law a straighter charge laid upon wives then this, Let wives be subject to their husbands in every thing. Object. That point of a woman's subjection in performing her vow, is a particular ruled case: but not this of disposing goods. Answ. The Scripture by particular Laws and examples teacheth directions for other cases like to them: and arguments drawn by just and necessary consequence, are counted as sound as express testimonies. Whereas it is said, that this particular in question is not expressly decided, I take the reason thereof to be this, that in former times they so well marked the extent of the general law of a wife's subjection, as they made no question of doing this or other like things without their husband's consent. Neither did good wives take that liberty, neither had they any patrons of such liberty. 2. Object. The case of a wives disposing goods is unlike to that of vows, because vows are voluntary, but disposing goods, as a work of mercy, is necessary. Answ. Though it were a voluntary thing to make, or not to make a vow: yet a vow being made, it was not in the power of the party that made it, not to perform it: it was a c Num. 30. 3. Deut. 23. 21. Eccles. 5. 4. necessary duty to perform a vow, even expressly commanded. As for the pretended work of mercy, I will §. 34. hereafter show, that a wife is not necessarily tied thereunto. §. 26. Of humane laws which restrain wives from disposing goods, without or against their husband's consent. A fourth is taken from the laws of men whereunto we are subject, and which we must obey even for conscience sake, so far as they thwart not God's Law, which in this case they do not, as the reasons before gathered out of God's word do show. Now our Law saith, that a 45. E. 3. Fitz. Coven 18. every gift, grant, or disposition of goods, lands, or other thing whatsoever made by a woman 1. H. 5. 12. b. Perk. cap. de Grant. Nat. Breu. fol. 120. G. covert, and all and every obligation and feoffment made by her, and recovery suffered, if they be done without her husband's consent, are void. Yea, b Nat. Breu. fol. 188. H. if she do wrong to another, she hath not any thing to make satisfaction during coverture: either her husband must do it, or by imprisonment of her person must it be done. And c Perk. fol. 2. a. though she have inheritance of her own, yet can she not grant any annuity out of it during her coverture, without her husband: if any deed be made to that purpose without his consent, or in her name alone, it is void in law. Yea, d Perk. fol. 2. b. if there be debate between the husband and his wife, whereby certain lands of the husbands be assigned to the wife with his consent, if out of such lands she grant an annuity to a stranger, the grant is void. And e 27. H. 8. 27. p. 12. if he covenant to give her yearly such and such apparel, she cannot dispose it as she list without his consent, but only use and wear it herself. f Perk. fol. 3. a. Neither can she lease her own land for years, for life, etc. if she do, it is void, and the Lessee entering by force thereof, is a Disseisor to the husband, and Trespassor. And g 21. H. 7. 18. p. 29. Nat. Breu. fol. 120 G. if she sell any thing, the sale is void, except she be a merchant, where by the custom she is enabled to merchandise. Finally, h Ognels' case, Coke Rep. 4. 3 ● 3. Deu. 12. she cannot make executors without the consent of her husband, nor a device, or will. i Ploughed. Come 344. a. Bret and Rigdons' case. If she make a will, and thereby devose her own inheritance, and her husband die, and she after die without any new publication of it, it is of no force, because it was void at first. These and many other like cases which might be alleged evidently show that by law a wife hath not power of herself, without her husband, to dispose the common goods of the family. §. 27. Of the inconveniences which may follow upon a wife's disposing goods without or against her husband's consent. A fit reason may be taken from the mischiefs which would 1. A man's estate may be wasted before he can tell how to redress it. fall out if this liberty were given unto women: which are these that follow: 1. The estate of the family might be wasted before any redress could be thought of: for if the wife may dispose the goods without her husband's consent, it must also be granted without his knowledge: for it is to be supposed that if he knew of the disposing of that which he liketh not, he would hinder it: if without his knowledge, then may that which he thinketh to be remaining as a stock for the family, be laid out by the wife, and nothing left: whereas if he knew of the spending of that stock, it might be he would be more thrifty and sparing in other expenses. Object. This liberty is not granted to wives beyond their husband's ability. Answ. Wife's cannot always know their husband's ability: for their husbands may be much indebted, and yet to maintain his credit, whereby he hopeth to raise his estate, may allow liberal maintenance for his house, if thereupon his wife shall gather that he is very rich, and accordingly be very bountiful in her gifts, she may soon go beyond his ability, and so increase his debt, as he shall never be able to recover himself. 2. Persons of contrary religions and dispositions being 2. Professors of contrary religions may be sustained by the goods of the same family. out of the family, might be maintained by the goods of the same family: for if the husband were of one religion, and the wife of another, he without her knowledge might maintain those of his religion, and she without his knowledge might maintain them of her religion. Object. This liberty of disposing goods given to the wife is limited within the bounds of the household of faith. Answ. If Divines grant them this liberty, they will themselves judge and determine who be of the household of faith: Popish wives will say (say we what we can to the contrary) that Jesuits, Priests, and Friars, are of the household of faith, principal members thereof. 3. Many jars and contentions would thence arise betwixt 3. jars would arise betwixt man and wife. husband and wife: for if a wife shall persist to do that which her husband will not consent unto, assuredly one of a thousand will not well brook it, but will rather seek all the ways he can to cross her; thinking himself despised, if she, whether he will or no, have her mind. Object. Wife's must use this liberty with all due respect unto their husband's authority. Answ. If the husband peremptorily stand upon his authority, and by all the fair means that can be used, will not yield this liberty, I know not what better respect she can show to this authority, then to forbear and abstain from doing that which otherwise she would most gladly do: But if when it cometh to the uttermost point, and she shall say it is her right, and if she cannot have his consent, she will do it without his consent, she therein showeth no great respect. Many other inconveniences might be reckoned up, but I will not longer insist on them, only from these let it be well considered, whether it were not better for a family, that the husband should be bard from disposing the goods without consent of his wife (so as there might be according to the proverb, but Though she had a propriety, yet hath she not thereupon liberty to dispose the goods. one hand in the purse) than both husband and wife to have liberty to dispose them without each others consent. §. 28. Of property in goods, whether it give liberty to dispose them as a wife will. To justify a wife's liberty in disposing the common goods Licet uxor proprietatem habeat, administrationem tamen, & usum. fructum bonorum vivente marito non habet. Greg. Sayr. clau. reg. lib. 9 cap. 16. of the family without her husband's consent, it is said, that she hath a true right and property in those goods. 1. Answ. Though it were granted that a wife hath a true property in the goods, yet this conclusion would not follow thereupon, that she hath power of herself to dispose the goods without her husband's consent: for the authority which God hath given an husband, and subjection which he hath laid on a wife, restrain her power and liberty in that which is her own: as for example, suppose * See Doctr. & stud. fol. 13. that a woman at the time of her marriage have a lease for years, or the wardship of the body and lands of an infant, or have it by gift or Perk. plito. 560. 26. H. 8. 7. p. 1. Ploughed. comment. 418. b. purchase after marriage, she cannot give it away whatsoever the extremity be: but her husband may any time during coverture, dispose of it: and such his disposition shall cut off the wife's interest. Or suppose that the only child of her father be an inheretrix of land, and have in herself (her father being dead) the full possession thereof: or that a widow have the right unto, and possession of her husband's estate, and thus possessed be married to an husband, hath she being a wife liberty to dispose that estate which she brought with her without or against her husband's consent? I think none will say it. Sure I am that what she giveth, dareth, selleth, or otherwise disposeth without his consent, he if he will, may for his life-time recover again: and yet no man will deny but that she hath the truest interest and property in the forenamed lands and inheritance. Object. May she not as well dispose of her own inheritance, as of those goods, or revenues which her husband giveth her? Answ. No, for the gift of the husband is a general consent of his for her to dispose that which is given her as she seeth meet. §. 29. Of the reasons against a wife's property in the common goods of the family. 2. Answ. It may safely be denied that a wife hath a property in the common goods of the family whereof she is no heir, for property in goods is a civil matter, and to be limited according to the law of man under which we live. Where the law, or custom of the place, make all the children coheirs, all have an equal right to their several parts: where the eldest only is made heir, he hath a right to all: where the youngest only is made heir, he hath a right to all: but neither the law of nations, nor of the land where we live give the wife a property. a 12. H. 7. 22. Coke rep. 5. fo. 36. 28. H. 6. Dier fol. 6. plito. 5 Doct. & stud. fo. 13. Ploughed. Comment. Bracebriges Case. By the common law marriage is a gift of all the goods and chattels personal of the wife to her husband, so that no kind of property in the same remaineth in her. b 4. H. 6. 31. And all personal goods and chattels during marriage given to the wife are presently ipso facto transferred (as to the property of them) to the husband. So that by our law she is so far from gaining any property by her marriage in her husband's goods, as she loseth all the property she formerly had in her own goods. Yea c 18. E. 4. 11. p. 4 her necessary apparel is not hers in property. While she remaineth a wife she is (to use the law-phrase) under covert baron. d See §. 26. She can neither let, sell, alien, give, nor otherwise of right make any thing away, no nor yet make a will so to dispose any goods while her husband liveth without his consent: which yet an husband may while his wife liveth, and that without or against her consent. Object. The law states a wife in a great part of the husband's goods, providing for her jointer or thirds which the husband cannot make away without her consent. Answ. This provision is only for the time of her widowhood in case she overlive him: but for the time that she remaineth his wife he may make away all, and she can recover none, till he be dead. Object. This restraint of wives is only in the court of men. Answ. Seeing it is not against the law of God, it must also hold good in the court of Conscience. Nay it is agreeable to the law of God and grounded thereupon. For (to omit the proofs before alleged) what might be the reason that the daughters of Zelophehad, who were heirs to their father, were forbidden to marry out of their father's tribe, and that a law was made that no daughters that possessed any inheritance should marry out of their father's tribe, but because all that a woman had before marriage, passed upon the husband and became his by virtue of marriage? This also for that purpose is by some not unfitly, nor without probability noted, that it is the common phrase of Scripture to term husbands Si quis abduxerit uxorem cum bonis familiae dicitur abducere uxorem cum bonis viri. Fitzherb. Nat. breutum fol. 89. (but not wives) rich, implying thereby that riches by a property appertain to husbands: yea usually in Scripture goods and lands are said to be the husbands. Object. The wives of jaakob do term the goods which their husbands had theirs, saying, the riches which God hath taken from our Father is OURS, Gen. 31. 16. Answ. They use the word Ours in opposition to their father's house, and in relation not to their persons, but to their Ut vinum temperatum licet maiori ex parte aquae constat, vinum appellamus: sic census quamuis plus contribuerit uxor, nuncupandus viri est. Plut. in praec. connub. husband's family, and therefore they add and our children's: So as by that place no greater right can be proved for wives, then for children. When the holy Ghost speaketh of the same goods, he saith not in relation to husband and wives both, their flocks, their substance, but only in relation to the husband, his flocks, his substance. For as in mixture of wine and water, though the greater quantity be water, yet we call the whole, wine: so in the common goods of the family, though the wife should bring the greater part, we call all the husbands. §. 30. Of answers to the reasons for a wife's property. To prove a wife's property in the common goods of the family the reasons following are alleged. 1. Object. Marriage giving a wife right of her husband's body, Cor. 7. 4. doth much more of his goods. Answ. I deny the consequence. For the use of the body is a proper act of the matrimonial bond, wherein the difference betwixt superiority and subjection appeareth not: the wife hath as great a power over the husband's body as the husband over the wives: which is not so in the goods: no one thing can be named, wherein the power and authority of the husband more consisteth, then in the goods. 2. Object. In the form of marriage the man saith to his wife, with all my worldly goods I thee endow. Answ. 1. Those words are to be taken of the use of his goods, and not of a property in them. 2. If an husband shall intend a property by them, that property which she hath thereby, she hath not by virtue of the general law of marriage, but of his particualar free donation. 3. In all countries those words are not used in the form of marriage. If those words give the wife her property, than such wives as are married without those words used, have no property: so as this cannot be a general ground of liberty for all wives. 3. Object. A wife hath as good an estate in her husband's goods as the Church in Christ's blood: but there the Church hath a property. Answ. Neither of those points can be proved. But if a wife's right in her husband's goods be as the Churches in Christ's blood, what is gotten thereby? The Church hath not power without or against Christ's consent to dispose his blood: The Church of Rome is counted a proud usurping strumpet for taking upon her so to do. §. 31. Of the privileges of wives above Children and servants in and about the goods of the family. Quest. Where then is the preferment of the wife above servants and children, if she have not a property? I answer, Much every manner of way. 1. a Treat. 4. §. 52. 54. There is due to her a more free and plentiful use of all the goods, then unto them. 2. By her place she hath the ordering and disposing of the goods allotted for the common use of the family: as was b §. 21. before granted. 3. Her husband ought to give her a portion to dispose as she shall see good, c Treat. 4. §. 54. as we shall after show, when we come to the husband's duties. 4. She is a joint governor with her husband over the children and servants, as was showed d §. 4. before. Again I answer, that this argument might as well be alleged against that fear, subjection, and obedience which the Scripture expressly requireth of wives, and it might be demanded, if wives must fear and obey their husbands and be subject unto them, where is their preferment above their children and servants. But e §. 11. it hath been showed that though the same things for matter be required of wives which are required of children and servants, yet there is a great difference in the manner of performing them. §. 32. Of examples and other reasons alleged for liberty of wives to dispose goods. 2. Abigails example is alleged for a wife's liberty: and 2. Reason. Examples. 1 Sam. 25. 18. etc. Pro. 31. 11, etc. the example of the good house wife described by Solomon. Answ. 1. Abigails example was extraordinary; beside, who can tell whether the heart of her husband so trusted not in her as he referred the whole government of the house to her, and so she had a general consent for what she did. 2. It is clear that the other goodwife had her husband's consent for what she did: for besides that it is said the heart of her husband trusted in her, it is also said, that he praised her. Therefore he was neither ignorant of that which she did, nor unwilling she should do it: it was neither without nor against his consent. 3. It is alleged that wives have as great a care in getting 3. Reason. Wives have a like care in getting goods. goods, or in preserving them for the good of the family: therefore it is just and equal, that they should have a like power in disposing them. Answ. Though question may be made of the former part, at least for the greater sort and number of wives, yet for answer to this reason I need not question it; for the consequence doth not follow, though that be granted. The right of disposing goods doth not simply rise from the care and pains of getting and preserving them: but from that order that the Lord hath been pleased to set down. A wise and industrious child may be a means to raise and increase his father's estate, when his father taketh little care and pains about it: yea a faithful and wise steward or other servant (as jaakob and joseph were) may do much more by his pains and care in getting and preserving the goods of the family, than his master: yet will it not thereupon follow, that such a child, or such a servant hath as great a right and power to dispose such goods as his father or his master. 4. The near conjunction betwixt man and wife is alleged: 4. Reason. Wives are yoak-fellowes with their husbands. they are said to be yoake-fellowes, and thence is inferred that they have a like power in disposing goods. Answ. They are yoak-fellowes in mutual familiarity, not in equal authority; and in relation to others as children and servants, not in opposition each to other. In this respect she is subject, not equal. If therefore he will one thing, and she another, she may not think to have an equal right and power, she must give place and yield. §. 33. Of the * Treat. 4. §. 54. subjection of wives in distributing goods to charitable uses. Some that grant that a wife is so subjected to her husband in a civil manner, as she may not dispose any part of his goods at her pleasure to any civil use, deny this subjection to extend to giving of alms, and such like charitable uses. Before I come to determine this question, let it be remembered, that it was before granted, that a § 22. ordinary duty must give place to extraordinary need, so that relief in present necessity is not controverted. Let it be also remembered that b §. 21. a wife may have goods proper to herself, yea c Treat. 4. §. 54. it shall be showed that an husband ought according to his ability to commit something to her discretion and disposition: of these and such like goods she is as much bound as her husband to expend something to charitable uses: and (as God offereth occasion) d Pro. 31. 20. to reach forth her hand to the poor and needy. Yea further let this be premised, that in case a wife be forbidden or restrained by her husband, she ought to use all the good means she can by herself and her friends to move her husband to grant her some liberty, that she may have some trial of her merciful and charitable disposition: if herein she cannot prevail, than she ought to make known unto her husband such persons cases as she thinks meet to be relieved, and use all the motives she can to persuade him to afford them some relief. But put the case a wise, religious, merciful wife, be married State of question. to a covetous worldling, who though he have wit, and understanding enough to manage civil affairs, and to provide for the outward temporal estate of the house, yet hath no heart to relieve the poor, and is not only unwilling himself to do good in that kind, but will not suffer his wife to do it, whether may a wife privily take of such goods as he hath reserved to his own disposing, and simply without any kind of consent distribute them to charitable uses, or though he expressly forbid her, yet directly against his consent dispose them? With reverend respect to better judgements, I think she may Non excus●bit bona intentio uxoris, etiamsi ea acciperet ad eleemosynam faciendam. Greg. Sayr. clav. reg. lib. 9 cap. 16. not (except before excepted.) For it being before proved in general, that she had no such liberty in disposing goods, I cannot see how this particular end of giving alms can dispense with her general subjection in every thing, except there were some particular warrant for it in God's word. §. 34. Of general exhortations to works of mercy. How far they bind wives. Object. The many general exhortations unto works of mercy, which without limitation to any particular persons, are indefinitely directed to all, do give sufficient warrant to wives: such as these, a Luke 11. 41. Give alms. b Gal. 6. 10. Let us do good. c Heb. 13. 16. To distribute forget not, etc. Answ. All these are strong motives to provoke wives to be merciful and charitable in such things as they may, by any means with their husband's consent, or in such things as by their husbands are given to them. Yea also they are strong motives to provoke husbands to allow them liberty to give alms. But in the case propounded they give no liberty to wives: for it is a ruled case laid down by Christ himself, that works of charity must be done, and alms must be given of such things d Luke 11. 41. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. as we have, or which are in our power to give. Now if the husband will not give her that power, she hath not power to give, and so is excused. Date quae habetis eleemosynam Tertul. contr. Martion. l. 4. 2 Cor. 8. 12. In this case her true will, and her faithful and earnest desire shall be accepted for the deed, according to that which the Apostle saith, if there be first a willing mind, it is accepted according to that a man hath, and not according to that he hath not. Many cases may be given wherein inferiors are restrained from works of mercy; as suppose a son or servant be desirous to visit one sick ●r in prison, but his Parent or Master (though leave be asked) will not suffer him, but charge him not to stir out of doors, or ●o go with him another way, shall this son or servant notwithstanding that charge, do that work of mercy? §. 35. Of obedience to an husband in such things as he sinfully forbiddeth. Object. 2. This restraint is not in the Lord, but rather against him and his word, therefore a wife is not bound thereunto. Answ. Though the husband sin in restraining his wife, yet she in that restraint may obey, and that in the Lord: because the Lord who hath commanded her to be subject in every thing, hath no where warranted her not to be subject in this particular. It is expressly said in the law concerning a wife's vows, that if her husband break them after he hath heard them, he shall bear her iniquity. Numb. 30. 16. Did not he then sin in restraining her, and was not she guiltless though she yielded to his restraint? The condition betwixt husbands and wives in this case, is not unlike the case betwixt other superiors in authority, and their inferiors in subjection. But other inferiors may lawfully abstain from such things as their governors do sinfully charge them to abstain from. For suppose a son grown to be a man, live in his father's house at his father's finding, and have no set portion of his own, and his father will not give him leave to bestow any thing on charitable uses, is he now bound to give alms? shall the curse be executed on him if he give not? A cross indeed I acknowledge it to be, both to such a son, and also to a wife to be so restrained: but not a curse or sin; the sin and curse lieth on their head, who restrain them by virtue of their authority, wherein they abuse their authority: as other governors may do and oft do, and yet neither liberty granted thereby to subjects, nor authority taken from governors. In this resemblance betwixt a son and a wife I desire not to be mistaken; for I allege it not to make the state of a wife and a son all one: but to show that those general precepts of giving alms, may have their exceptions, as they which in particular handle that point, give other examples. There must therefore be a further ground than the general commandment of alms-giving to prove the forenamed liberty of wives. §. 36. Of Zipporah's case in circumcising her son. Object. 3. A wife was made to be an help to her husband: in those things therefore wherein he faileth, she must make supply, as Zipporah who performed a duty which belonged to her Exod. 4. 25. husband, and not unto her. Answ. She may be an help in many other things, though this be out of her power: yea and in this also by counsel, persuasion, and other like means she may be a great help. The case of Zipporah was extraordinary, and of an urgent present necessity, even to save the life of her husband. Besides, Moses was of himself unable to do it, but willing that she should do it. Now what is this to ordinary cases, and such cases as husbands are able enough themselves to do, but altogether unwilling that it should be done by their wives? Factum Zephorae singular est, & extraordinarium, neque constat illud simpliciter à Deo approbatum fuisse. Simler. in Exod. 4. Luke 8. 3. But what if Zipporah's example herein be not warrantable? for it doth not appear that it was simply approved of God: God doth oft remove temporary judgements for the very works sake that is done, though in the manner it be sinfully done. Instance the repentance of Ahab, 1. King. 21. 29. §. 37. Of the wife of chuza's case in ministering to Christ. 4. Object. joanna the wife of Chuza, Herod's steward, ministered unto Christ of her substance without her husband's consent. Answ. If this could be proved it were somewhat to the purpose; but this clause without her husband's consent (wherein the main state of the question consisteth) is not in the text, nor by any good probability can be gathered out of it. All the show of probability that can be showed for it is, that joanna is there said to be the wife of Chuza, Herod's steward. But to show that that is nothing, let it be noted, 1. That phrase doth not imply that Chuza was then living. It is said that David begat Solomon of the wife of Vriah, but Matth. 1. 6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Vriah was not then living: therefore the translators for perspicuity sake do insert these words (her that had been) the wife of Vriah. So likewise Onan is commanded to go in to his Gen. 38. 8. brother's wife, yet doth not this imply that his brother was then living. Object. Why should mention be made of Chuza, Herod's steward, if he were not then living? Answ. To show that joanna was a woman of great place, whereby this fruit of her faith in following Christ was the more commended. Thus in another kind Matthew is entitled Matth. 10. 3. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the Publican, after he had clean relinquished that office, the more to commend his faith. I do not here directly affirm that Chuza was then dead, but for aught that this phrase doth imply, he might be dead. 2. Some gather that this steward was that Ruler whose Chemnit. Harm. Euang. cap. 33. joh. 4. 53. son Christ healed, who thereupon believed with all his house. Which if he were, than it cannot be doubted, but that his wife followed Christ with his good liking and consent. 3. Chuza being Herod's steward, and so a man of great place, and public employment, might, if he were then living, depute the managing of all affairs at home to his wife, as the Prou. 31. 11. husband of the good wife commended by Solomon, and so she might have at least a general consent. I do not certainly determine any of these expressly to be so, I do but note them as probabilities, yet such as do sufficiently overthrow the surmised liberty of a wife in giving alms without any consent of her husband: for this of all other probabilities seemeth to be most improbable. Into my heart it can never enter to imagine that Christ would give such an occasion of slander unto his enemies, as to say he carried about with him other men's wives, without or against the consent of their husbands, and suffered them to spend the goods of their husbands upon him. I had much rather think that either such women as followed him had no husbands living, or if they had, that they did that which they did with the consent of their husbands. §. 38. Of the * Treat. 4. §. 18. 52. restraint of wives about allowance for themselves or families without their husband's consent. That which hath hitherto been delivered concerning a wife's subjection in disposing goods, may also be applied to other things concerning herself, children, servants, etc. whereof I will give some examples. A wife hath not power to appoint what she list herself without or against her husband's consent, either for her own allowance, or for her family; she must rather rest satisfied with that which he appointeth: for he being the head, must have the overruling stroke therein. Besides he better knoweth what may be afforded. Quest. What if an husband make himself poorer than he is: and the allowance which he appointeth be meaner than his means, and unbeseeming his place and state? Answ. She ought, if possibly she can by her own instant persuasion, or any other fair means, move him to that which tendeth to his honour and reputation: but if she can no way prevail, her subjection requireth contentment and patience. §. 39 Of a wife's Treat 4. §. 18. subjection to her husband about children. A wife may not simply without, or directly against her husband's consent, order and dispose of the children in giving them names, apparelling their bodies, appointing their callings, places of bringing up, marriages, or portions. 1. For giving names to children, besides that it is throughout 1. Names. the Scripture for the most part enjoined to the husband, as to a Gen. 17. 19 Abraham, to b Luk. 1. 13. Zacharias, and to others, and that accordingly husbands have ordinarily done, as c Gen. 5. 3. Adam, d 29. Lamech, e & 21. 3. Abraham, and others. It is to be noted that when there was a difference betwixt the man and his wife in giving a child's name, he giving one name, she another, the name which he gave, stood; though f Gen. 35. 18. Rachel named her youngest son Benoni, yet Benjamin (which name jaakob gave) was the child's name. So also when g Luk. 1. 62. Elizabeth told her friends that her child's name must be john, they would not rest therein, till Zacharias had ratified that name. Yea though joseph were but the supposed father of jesus, yet because he was the husband of Mary the mother of jesus, h Mat. 1. 21. he had this honour given him, to give the name unto her child. Whereas in Scripture it is sometimes said that the mothers named their children, as i Gen. 29. 32. Leah, k & 30. 24. Rahel, and others, it is upon the forenamed ground to be supposed that they had their husband's consent. 2. For appointing place and marriage it is noted that l Gen. 27. 43, etc. Rebekah 2. Place and marriage. asked the consent of her husband: though she told her son jaakob that he should go to Haran to his uncle Laban to be there kept in safety from the fury of Esau, yet she would not send him till m Gen. 28. 1, 2. Isaak had given his consent for his abode there, and taking a wife from thence. 3. For deputing unto a calling, it is noted of n 1 Sam. 1. 11. Annah, that 3. Calling. though before her child was borne she had by solemn vow dedicated him to the Lord, yet when the child was borne Verse 22. she asked her husband's consent about it. 4. Apparel. 4. That which is noted of p 1 Sam. 2. 19 Annah's carrying a little coat to her son year by year when she went up with her husband, showeth that she did it not without her husband's consent. Women are for the most part prone to prank up their children above their husband's place and calling, and therefore good reason that therein they should be governed by their husbands. Object. What if husbands be more forward to have their children attired vainly and unseemly, than wives? Answ. A wife must do what she can to hinder it: if she can no way prevail with him, she by reason of her subjection is much more excused, than he could be, if he would suffer his wife therein to have her will. 5. The law that layeth the charge upon husbands to give 5. Portions. Deut. 21. 15, etc. such and such portions to his children, and the answerable practice of husbands from time to time, show that the wife of herself hath not power to order them. §. 40. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 18. subjection to her husband about ordering servants and beasts. If wives must have their husband's consent in ordering and disposing of their children which come out of her womb, much more of their servants. They may not take in, or thrust out servants against their husband's mind. In this point, as in many other, Sarah manifested her wive-like obedience; in that a Gen. 16. 5. she would not deal roughly with her maid though she were provoked: much less b & 21. 10. put her out of doors till she had made the matter known to her husband. Though she failed in the manner, yet in the thing itself she is a good example. It is further noted and approved in the c 2 King. 4. 22. Shunemite that she asked her husband's consent about sending a servant with her. My meaning is not that such wives as have servants allowed them to attend upon them should ask their husband's consent whensoever they have occasion to use them; for their husbands by allowing them men for their attendance manifest their will and consent that they may use them as they see occasion: but that they should not use and employ their servants in such things as they know their husbands would dislike, except they can gain their husband's consent. Against those particulars of children and servants it may be objected, that wives are parents of their children as well as husbands, and mistresses of servants as well as they masters, and therefore have altogether as great power over them as their husbands. Answ. Indeed if the authority of the husband come not between, that may be granted in relation betwixt her and them: but her power being subordinate to her husbands in relation to him she hath not so great a power: the power of a wife that now we speak of is directly in relation to her husband. The like may be said of their beasts and cattle, a particular point noted also in the example of the Shunemite, who having occasion to use a beast went to her husband, and said, send I pray thee with me one of the asses. 2 King. 4. 22. §. 41. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 18. subjection in entertaining strangers journeying abroad, and making vows. If wives may not at their pleasure use the things appertaining to the house, much less may they bring strangers into the house and entertain them without or against their husband's consent. The good Shunemite so often named as a precedent 2 King. 4. 10. for good wives, first asked her husband's consent, before she lodged a Prophet of the Lord. The same pattern is also commended unto wives to move them not to journey abroad without their husband's consent. For though that good wife had a very weighty and just occasion 2 King. 4. 22. to go unto the Prophet, yet she would not before she knew her husband's mind. As for a wife's power to make vows, in that the law giveth an husband power to disannul her vow when he knoweth it, it implieth that she ought to have his consent in making it, if Num. 30. 9 at least she desire to have it established, which she ought to desire, or else she mocketh God. I have thought good to mention these particular points for illustration of a wife's subjection, because they are all of them grounded on God's word: many other might be added to them, but these are sufficient. §. 42. Of aberrations contrary to a wife's subjection in doing things without or against their husband's consent. Now consider we the usual vices and aberrations contrary to those duties: the general sum of all is, for a wife to take on her to do what she list, whether her husband will or no, either not willing that he should know what she doth, or not caring though it be against his mind and will. Of this sort are 1. Such as privily take money out of their husband's closerts, 1. Privy purloining husband's goods. counters, or other like places where he layeth it, never telling him of it, nor willing that he should know it: likewise such as after the like manner take ware out of the shop, corn out of the garner, sheep out of the flock, or any other goods to sell and make money of: or to give away, or otherwise to use so as their husbands shall never know, if they can hinder it. Such wives herein sin heinously, and that in many respects. First they disobey the ordinance of God in a main branch of their particular calling, which is subjection. 2. They ill repay the care and pains which their husbands take for their good. Many such wife's recompense evil for good, which is a devilish quality. 3. They are oft a means to impair and impoverish their husband's estate. 4. They show themselves no better than a Si uxor ex bonis communibus si●e viri licentia saltem praesumpta accipiat, verè furtum commi●●it. Greg. Sayr. clau. reg. l. 9 c. 16. pilfering thieves thereby. All that can be justly and truly said for their right in the common goods, cannot defend them from the guilt of theft: they are the more dangerous by how much the more they are trusted, and less suspected: and their fact is so much the more heinous by how much the more dear their husbands ought to be unto them. 5. They are a very ill example to other inferiors in the house, for seldom hath a man a deceitful wife, but some of the children or servants, are made accessary thereunto, being made her instruments to take the goods, and bestow them as she ordereth, and so are made unfaithful. 6. They make themselves slaves to their own children and servants, whom they dare not displease, lest they should tell what was done. 7. They teach their children and servants to be thieves: for besides that such as are used by their mistresses to purloin for them, are thereby made accessary to their sin, they will also purloin for themselves, when their mistresses shall not know. So as what with the wives purloining one way, and the children's or servants another way, a man's estate may be wasted as dew before the Sun, and he not know which way. 2. Such as will have what allowance they think best for 2. Taking what allowance they list. themselves and family, and scornfully say, They will not be at their husbands finding: they know best what allowance is fittest for the family, and that it shall have. Many will make their husband's ear tingle again, yea and make the whole house (if not the street also) ring of it, if they think their allowance be not answerable to the uttermost extent of their husband's estate. This impatiency and insolency, as it crosseth God's ordinance, so it maketh both their lives uncomfortable. 3. Such as cocker, attire, or any way bring up their children 3. Ordering children against their husband's mind. otherwise then their husbands would, even to the grief and dishonour of their husbands: keeping them at home when their husbands, for their better education, would have them abroad: as these sin in hindering the good of their children, so also in not yielding to their husbands. 4. Ordering servants against their husband's mind. 4. Such as will have their own will about servants, taking in, and putting out whom they please, and when they please: using some servants whom they find for their turn to the prejudice of their husbands: and carrying themselves so sharply 5. Lending forth their husband's cattle. and shrewishly to others that are for their husband's turn, as a good, trusty, faithful servant cannot long stay in the house. 5. Such as secretly lend out their husband's horses, or other 6. Feasting when their husbands shall not know it. absent marito compotationes domi ne excita. Greg. Naz. ad Olymp. like cattle, more respecting to pleasure a vain friend, then to please a good husband. This fault is so much the greater, when it is done to the damage and prejudice of the husband. 6. Such as are then most frolic and jolly, when their husbands are furthest off and cannot know it. Solomon sets it down as a note of a strumpet, a Prou. 7. 19 then to trick up her house and to seek for guests, when her husband is gone a journey far off. Then ought she to be most solitary, and by abstaining from merry meetings, to show that there can be no greater damp to her mirth, than the absence of her husband. 7. Such as think their houses a prison unto them, that cannot 7. Gadding abroad at their own pleasure. Noli pedem tuum limine crebro efferre. etc. Naz. loc. citat. long tarry at home: they think they have power to go when and whither they will, and to tarry out as long as they list, think their husbands of it what they will. b 1 Tim. 5. 13. The Apostle layeth down this as a mark of a wanton wife, and an idle housewife, being idle (saith he) they go about from house to house: therefore in c Tit. 2. 5. another place he exhorteth them to be keepers at home. The Wiseman goeth further, and maketh this to be another note of a strumpet, that d Prou. 7. 11. her feet cannot abide in the house: which we may see verified in e Judg. 19 2. the Levites adulterous wife, whose fearful end was a stamp of God's judgement on such loose lewdness. 8. Such as care not how or what they bind themselves unto 8. Binding themselves without consent of husband. without their husband's consent, or knowledge: Herein especially offend such as being seduced by Jesuits, Priests, or Friars, take the Sacrament, and thereupon by solemn vow and oath bind themselves never to read an English Bible, nor any Protestants books, no nor to go to any of their Churches, or to hear any of their Sermons: and such most of all as enter into some Popish Nunnery, and vow never to return to their husbands again. Object. f 1 Sam. 1. 15. Annah vowed her child to God without her husband's consent, why may not they much more vow themselves to God? Answ. Assuredly she was persuaded that her husband would not be against it, and so had an implicit consent: which may well be gathered, because afterwards she made it known to him, as both the * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 componitur ex diversis vocibu● 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Petivi eum a Deo, I have asked him of God. name given to the child, and g 1 Sam. 1. 22. that speech of Annah, I will bring him that he may appear before the Lord, and there abide for ever, and the answer of her husband, h Uers. 23. The Lord establish his word, and i 1 Sam. 2. 19 his going up with her when he was dedicated to the Lord, do all show. Thus far of the first branch of a wife's submission in abstaining from doing things without her husband's consent. The second followeth, in doing the things which herequireth. §. 43. Of a wife's active Obedience. It is a good proof and trial of a wife's obedience, to abstain from doing such things as otherwise she would do, if her husband's contrary will did not restrain her: but yet that is not sufficient, there must be an active, as well as a passive obedience yielded. That old Law before mentioned (thy desire shall be subject to thine husband, and he shall rule over thee) implieth so much also. If she refuse to do what he would have her to do, her desire is not subject to him, but to herself, neither doth he rule over her. This active part of her obedience hath respect 1. To his commandments, readily to do what he lawfully A wives active obedience respecteth first her husband's commandment. commands. 2. To his reproofs, carefully to redress what he justly blameth. For the first, so far ought a wife to be from thinking scorn to be commanded by her husband, that the very knowledge which by any means she hath of her husband's mind and will, ●ought to have the force of a strait commandment with her. This readiness to obey is commended in the wives of jaakob, to whom when jaakob had declared what motives he had to depart from their father's house, intimating thereby that he meant to depart, and would have them to go with him, yet before he particularly expressed his will, they readily answered, Whatsoever God Gen. 31. 16. hath said unto thee, do: whereby they gave him to understand that they were ready to yield unto whatsoever he would have done. §. 44. Of a wife's willingness to * Treat. 4. §. 18. dwell where her husband will. To make this part of a wife's obedience somewhat more clear, I will exemplify it by two or three particular instances, recorded and approved in God's word. The first is, that a wife ought to be willing to dwell where her husband will have her dwell. The wives of Abraham, Isaak, and jaakob, herein manifested their wive-like obedience: though their husbands brought them from their own country, and from their father's house, yet they refused not to go with them, but dwelled in a strange country, and that in tents. Note in particular what jacob's wives say to their husband in this case, Is there any portion or inheritance for us in our father's Gen. 31. 14. house? implying thereby, that seeing it was their husband's pleasure to be gone, they would not any longer tarry in their father's house, to look for any more portion or inheritance there. These examples do further show that if an husband have just occasion to remove from one country to another, and in those countries from place to place, his wife ought to yield to go with him, if he require it at her hands. Note what the Apostle saith, have we not power to lead about a wife? That interrogation 1 Cor. 9 5. implieth a strong asseveration. The husband then having power to lead about a wife from place to place, she ought to submit herself to that power. This clause (as well as other Apostles, and as the brethren of the Lord and Cephas) showeth, that this was not only a power which might be used, but which was used by husbands, and yielded unto by wives. Object. The forenamed examples are extraordinary, and that upon extraordinary occasions. Answ. Yet they may be patterns for ordinary occasions which are lawful and warrantable. Was it not an extraordinary fact of Eliah to pray first that there might be no rain, and jam. 5. 17. then again that there might be rain? yet is this propounded as a general pattern to move us to pray for things lawful. Now in laying down this duty I added the clause and caveat of just occasion, to meet both with such as upon discontent, or superstition, leave the land where the true Gospel is maintained, and preached, and go into idolatrous places: and also with such wand'ring giddy heads as only to satisfy their own humour, and to see fashions, as we speak, can never rest in a place, but are continually removing from country to country, and from place to place: I think (to use the words of the Apostle) a wife is not under bondage in such cases. 1 Cor. 7. 15. But if a man be sent of an ambassage by his Prince, or country: or if a Preacher or Professor be called into another country, as Bucer and Peter Martyr were into England in King Edward's days (which to this day is usual in other countries) or if a man be adjudged unto long imprisonment, and upon these and other like occasions shall require his wife to be with him, she ought in duty to yield unto his demand. Contrary is the mind and practise of many wives, who Contrary, when a wife makes her husband dwell where she will. being affected and addicted to one place more than another, as to the place where they were bred and brought up, where their greatest, best, and most friends dwell, and where they have good acquaintance, refuse to go and dwell where their husband's calling lieth, though he require, and desire them never so much. Thus many husbands are forced to their great damage for peace sake to yield unto their wives, and so either to relinquish their calling, or to have two houses; whence it followeth, that sometimes they must neglect their servants and calling, and sometimes be absent from their wives, if not from their children also. Some wives pretend that they cannot endure the smoke of the city, other that they cannot endure the air of the country: whereas indeed their own humour and conceit stuffs them more than either city smoke or country air. I cannot call such the daughters of Sarah herein: 1 Pet. 3. 5, 6. they are not like those forenamed holy women that trusted in God, and were subject to their husbands, but rather like to that light housewife of the Levite, who would not dwell in her husband's judg. 19 2. house at mount Ephraim, but at her father's house in Bedlam judah. Such wives as I speak of, in matrimonial chastity may be more honest, but in wivelike subjection are little more dutiful. Let this be taken for a fault, and it will be the sooner amended. §. 45. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 29. readiness to come to her husband when he requires it. Another particular instance of a wife's readiness to yield unto her husband's commandment is, to come to her husband when her husband requireth it, either by calling her, or sending for her. The forenamed a Gen. 31. 4. wives of jaakob being sent for to their husband in the field where he was, made no excuse, but came presently. So far ought wives herein to subject their wills to their husbands, that though it may seem to them some disparagement to come, yet if their husbands will have it so they must yield, otherwise they seem even to b Esth. 1. 17. despise their husbands. Contrary is Vashtie-like stoutness, when wives think and Contrary, stoutness in refusing to come. say, it is a servant's part to come when they are called or sent for, and they will never yield to be their husband's servants, to come at his command. By the same reason may all duties of subjection be rejected. But for this particular, let such stout Es●h. 1. 16, etc. dames note the issue of Vashties stubbornness. As many excuses might be alleged for her as I think for any: for First, she was Hebraei docent Vast●am natam fuisse ex Baltbasare rege Chaldaeorum. Fevard. in Esth. 1. Alij, ex Cyro. Merl. in Esth. royally descended, being the daughter of a King. Secondly, she was then among the honourable women of the kingdom. Thirdly, the King was in drink when he sent for her. Fourthly, he sent for her to show her beauty before multitudes of men, which was not seemly. But all these were not sufficient to excuse her fault, and free her from blame. First, though she were of royal parentage, yet she was a wife, and her husband sent for her. Secondly, being among the noble women of the kingdom, she should the rather have showed herself a pattern of subjection in this kind. Thirdly, though he were in drink, yet remained he an husband: and the thing which he commanded was not such but that she might have done it without sin. Fourthly, if she thought the thing unseemly, she should first have used all the fair means she could to have been spared; but if by all she could not have prevailed, then (the thing being not simply unlawful and a sin) she should have yielded. Object. Her fault was not in that as a wife she came not to her husband, but in that as a subject she came not to her Sovereign. Answ. Her fault was in both: and in the judgement passed against her, that former was most urged, namely that by her Esth. 1. 17. example all women might learn to despise their husbands. 2. Object. Her fact is so censured but by heathen men, that had no understanding of God's word. Answ. 1. The holy Scripture by the several circumstances so distinctly noted intimateth that her rebellious fact was a notorious fault: and accordingly both * Pelican. Lauater. Gualt. Strigel. Cuper. Merlin. Fevard. Bellator. Rupert. Isiodor. Hisp. Raban. alijque Comment. in Esth. judicious commenters, and also Preachers do tax her of sinful disobedience to her husband. 2. Though they were heathen, yet they showed what subjection is required of wives to their husbands by the very light of nature, whereby this sin is aggravated. 3. Abimelech was but a heathen man, yet his sentence concerning a woman's subjection in these words, he is to thee a Gen. 20. 16. covering of the eyes, is taken to be judicious, and being approved by the holy Ghost, to be a good proof. As for that particular of Uashtie, why is it so largely recorded in the Scripture but for instruction, and admonition unto wives? §. 46. Of a wife's readiness to * Treat. §. 29. do what her husband requireth. A third particular instance of a wife's readiness to yield unto her husband's commandment, is, to perform what business he requireth of her. When of a sudden there came three men to Abram, and he was desirous to entertain them, he bid his wife make ready quickly three measures of meal, etc. and she Gen. 18. 6. did it accordingly. jeroboam having a weighty occasion to send to Ahijah the Prophet, thought it meet to send by his 1 King. 14. 2, etc. wife, she accordingly (though a Queen) went: she did as her husband would have her. Contrary is the humour of many wives who will not do Contrary, stubbornness in refusing to do a thing upon command. any thing upon command. If such a wife's husband being desirous to entertain a friend on the sudden, shall use Abraham's phrase, make ready quickly, etc. she will say, let him come and do it himself, if he will have it so quickly done, I will not be his drudge: or if, having a matter of moment and secrecy, he will his wife herself to do it, she will reply, I am none of your servants; cannot you put it to one of them, or do it yourself? Yet will such wives be ready to command their husbands to do every toy, and if he do it not, they can reply, is this such a matter? and may not a wife speak to her husband? Were the point of obedience well learned, it would cast such wives into another mould. These few particulars may serve for direction in many hundreds. I proceed to the other part of a wife's active obedience, which respecteth the reproofs of her husband. §. 47. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 34, 35. meek taking a reproof. The husband having authority over his wife, by virtue thereof he hath power, yea it is his duty as there is needful cause to rebuke her: By just consequence therefore it followeth, A wives active obedience to her husband's reproof. The best trial of obedience. that it is her duty to yield obedience thereunto. Which ought the rather to be done because the chiefest trial of sound obedience lieth herein. For nothing goeth so much against ones stomach as reproof: she that yields when she is rebuked, will much more when she is entreated. This point of obedience is manifested two ways. 1. By meekness in taking a reproof. 2. By endeavour to redress what is justly reproved. The very point of obedience especially consisteth in this latter: the former is as a good preparative thereunto, without which it will hardly be done, at least not well done. Meekness in this case is one of the most principal fruits of 1. She must meekly take reproof. 1 Pet. 3. 4. Gen. 30. 1. that meek and quiet spirit which S. Peter commendeth unto wives. Howsoever Rachel justly deserved blame for coming in a fuming chafe, and with an imperious command to her husband, yet in that she meekly took his sharp reproof (for she replied not against it, but meekly gave a direction for the better accomplishment of her desire) her example is commendable: commendable I say, not in the matter of her direction, but in her patient bearing of reproof. Much wisdom may be learned hereby: for when any Wisdom learned. meekly take a reproof, thereby they suppress their passion, and keep it from rising as a cloud before their understanding and darkening it, and so may they better judge of the matter reproved whether it be just or no: and whether it need redress or no: whereof they who are impatient of reproof, and fret and fume against it, cannot so well judge. The virgin Mary made good use of Christ's reproving her, and thereby Joh. 2. 4, 5. learned and taught a good point of wisdom, namely so to refer our affairs to Christ as we expect his pleasure; and not prescribe time, means, manner, or any other like circumstances unto him. Quest. What if the husband's reproof be bitter? Suadeo mulieribus ut viros etiam asperiores perserant. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1. Cor. 11. Answ. He therein forgets his place, yet thereupon she must not forget her duty. If jacob's reproof be well noted, we shall find it very tart, for it is expressly said that his anger was kindle● against her, (Gen. 30. 2.) so as he spoke in anger: the manner and form of his words being with an interrogation, and the Excandescenti marito cede, & molli oratione iuva. Greg. Naz. ad Olymp. matter also, am I in God's stead, etc. declare tartness: yet (as was declared before) she showed meeknese. Quest. What if his reproof be unjust? 2. Answ. Yet may not meekness be forgotten. In such a case a wife may make a just apology to clear her own innocence, and manifest her husband's error: but if he refuse to hear her, or will not believe her, than (as S. Peter speaketh in another 1 Pet. 2. 19, 20. case) she must endure grief for conscience toward God. The two reasons which there he rendereth in that other case may not unfitly be applied to this. 1. In general this is thankworthy, it is a grace, a glory to 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. her: a matter that deserveth praise and commendation. 2. In particular it is acceptable to God: howsoever their husbands 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. may deal roughly and untowardly with them, yet God will graciously respect them, if they shall patiently in obedience to his ordinance bear their husband's unjust reproofs. 3. I may add this reason also, that thus they shall show themselves good Christians indeed, in that they are not overcome Rom. 12. 21. of evil. Contrary is their mind who by no means will brook a rebuke at their husband's hands: it skills not whether it be just or unjust: if their husbands reprove them, they shall be sure to have the reproof rebounded back again upon their faces, and that with greater violence than ever it came from them. There be some that seem to be very good wives till they be tried by the touchstone of reproof: but then though the reproof be for matter most just, for manner most mild, and that in private betwixt their husbands and themselves, yet they grow so impatient, or rather mad, as they forbear not to give their husbands the most scornful speeches that they can invent, using withal bitter imprecations and execrations, and threaten to drown or hang themselves if they be crossed of their wills. Yea further, if wise husbands shall forbear them in their passion, and after it is allayed tell them how unbeseeming their places they carried themselves, they will seek to justify themselves, and lay all the blame on their husbands for crossing them in their will: or if they cannot but see their fault, yet they will only say, it is my infirmity: but yet ever continue in that infirmity: and though they make show of fearing God, yet labour not to purge this corrupt humour out of their hearts. Hence is it for the most part that contentions arise betwixt man and wife. If wives would learn in this point to be subject, many jars, which from time to time arise betwixt them, would be allayed, if not prevented. Michal 2 Sam. 6. 20, etc. job 2. 10. the wife of David, and jobs wife (though they gave just occasion to be most sharply reproved, yet) shall rise up in judgement against these wives, because they were silent after they were reproved, and replied not. Solomon oft titles such as cannot bear rebuke scorners: so as hereby wives show that Prou 9 7, 8. they are very scornful. §. 48. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 35. readiness to redress what her husband justly reproveth in her. A further degree of obedience in bearing reproof is, that 2 She must redress what is justly reproved. a wife readily redress what is justly reproved by her husband: I say justly, because where no fault is, there needs no amendment: patience may be needful (as was before showed) but no repentance of that which is not amiss. But where any thing is amiss, there must be a redress. Rachel did amiss in a Gen. 31. 19 bringing Idols into her husband's house: her husband in b & 35. 2, 4. bidding her among others to put away their strange gods, reproved them all. Whereupon she with all the rest gave to him all their strange gods. This was a good redress. A reproof may be justly given either for a good duty omitted; or for an evil thing committed: and accordingly must the redress or amendment be. A duty formerly omitted must after the reproof be more carefully observed and performed, if it be a continual duty, and may be again performed: otherwise the redress is a testification of true sorrow for that fault. When an evil is committed, if any means can be used to make up the hurt, and redress the mischief that followed thereupon, it must be done: if not, sorrow as before, must be testified, and care taken that the same, or the like be not committed again. As a good conscience requireth as much of all Christians by whomsoever they be reproved, so the respect which a wife oweth to an husband doth after an especial manner require it. Otherwise her fault is doubled, 1. by continuance in her sin; 2. by disobedience to her husband. Contrary is their spirit who for reproof wax the worse: Contrary, to be worse for reproving. Prou. 9 8. being like those scorners (of whom Solomon speaketh) that hate those that reprove them. It is the speech of some wives, that if their husbands would let them alone they would do the better: but upon rebuke they will never amend: the more their husbands find fault, the more will they go on, in doing what they do. What other judgement can be given of such, then that which the wise man giveth, there is more hope Prou. 26. 12. of a fool then of them. §. 49. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 50 contentment with her husband's present estate. Of submission hitherto. Contentment is also a part of obedience: it hath respect to a man's outward estate and ability, in and with which a wife must rest satisfied and contented, whether it be high or low, great or mean, wealthy or needy, above, equal, or under that estate wherein she was before marriage: yea though a man have been sometimes great in estate, yet, if he decay therein, and be brought to a mean estate, she ought to rest content. Thus much job implieth in his reply to his wife, saying, shall we receive Job 2. 10. expounded. good at the hand of God, and not receive evil? The evil he speaketh of was the loss of his goods, servants, and children, together with other miseries that Satan through God's permission inflicted upon him: the receiving of evil which he speaketh of was a resting content with it, and a patient bearing of it. Evil may be laid on any, and so they forced to bear it: but they only receive it, who are content with it. Now in that he useth the plural number (WE) and speaking to his wife saith (shall not we receive evil) he showeth that his wife ought as well as he to have rest contented in that poor and miserable estate: For 1. Man and wife being one flesh, by virtue of their matrimonial union, both his advancement, and also his abasement is hers: as she riseth with him, so she falleth with him. Wherefore as she is willing to be advanced with him, so she must be content to be abased with him. 2. If at the time of marriage her husband was of meaner estate than she, she voluntarily put herself into that mean estate: for a wife taketh her husband (as he her) for better for worse, for richer for poorer. And shall she not be content with her own act? If after marriage his estate decay, and wax meaner than it was, she is to be persuaded that by God it was so ordered, and that God aimed at her humiliation as well as his: and thereupon she ought in her dutiful submission to God's overruling providence to be patient and content: this job implieth under this phrase, shall we not receive evil at the hand of God? and under this, The Lord taketh away. 3. A wife's contentment is a great ease to her husband lying under a cross: and it maketh the burden seem much lighter than otherwise it would, if at least he be a kind husband, and affected with his wife's passion, as he ought to be. For a loving husband in every distress is more perplexed for his wife, then for himself. §. 50. Of wife's discontent at their husband's estate. Contrary is the impatiency, and discontent of wives at Discontent manifested. the meanness, and (as they think) baseness of their husband's estate: which is many ways manifested. 1. Some when they are married finding their husband's estate 1. By repenting their marriage. weaker than they imagined, repent their marriage, and stick not to tell their husbands, that if they had before known them to be no better men than they find them to be, they should have been no husbands for them. Wherein first they bewray their foolish indiscretion by saying, when it is too late, if I had Non est sapientis dicere non putâram. Cic. Offic. lib. 1. thought this; and withal they manifest their own rashness and unadvisedness, in that they gave their hands and plighted their troth to those whom they knew not. If they say, they were deceived by their friends whom they put in trust, I answer that marriage is too weighty a matter to be wholly referred over to the trust of friends: every one that yieldeth to be married, ought well to know the party unto whom in this case they yield: and above all they ought to seek direction, help, and blessing from God. If notwithstanding all the means which possibly they could use, they be deceived, they are to look unto God, and to behold his providence therein: and duly to weigh whether the Lord have crossed their desire for their humiliation, or for trial of their patience, wisdom and other like graces, or else to wean them from some vain and worldly delights, whereunto they were too much addicted. 2. Others observing their husband's estate to be decayed 2. By impatient carriage. and wasted, never search after the occasion, but lay all the blame upon their husbands, and with their discontented looks, passionate words, and impatient carriage, so vex their hearts, as they make the cross much more heavy than otherwise it could be. Though the estate should be overthrown by the unthriftiness of an husband, yet ought a wife to look unto God's providence therein, as was noted before. 3. Others scorning to stoop, and to come down to their 3. By refusing to stoop. husband's present condition, through their pride and vainglory are a great means to make his estate much the worse: for they, so long as by any means they can get it, will not abate any thing of their brave apparel, dainty cheer, rich furniture, and other like things, which are causes of great expense to their husbands: hereby also it cometh oft to pass that husbands are thought to be wealthier than indeed they are, and so greater taxations and charges than they can bear are laid upon them for King, Country, Church, Poor, and the like. 4. Others, through discontent lie long lazing in their beds, 4. By refusing to help. or idly sit still when they are up, and will not take any whit the more pains to raise up and increase their husband's estate: whereby God is provoked more and more to weaken their estates, that so he may the more punish such pride and laziness in wives. §. 51. Of * Treat. 4. §. 26. cases wherein a wife ought not to forbear what her husband forbiddeth. So much of the distinct branches of a wife's subjection. The limitation and manner of performing it next followeth. To know the limitation of a wife's obedience, and the manner how she ought to yield subjection unto her husband, two things must be considered: 1. The place of an husband. 2. The place of a wife. The husband's place is noted in this phrase, as to the Lord: Eph. 5. 22. whereby is showed that the husband even by virtue of his place is to his wife in Christ's stead: which is further more plainly laid down in these words following, the husband is Vers. 23. the head of the wife, as Christ is the head of the Church. The wife's place is intimated in these words, as the Church Vers. 24. is subject unto Christ, so let wives be to their own husbands: whereby it is clear that the obedience which a wife performeth to her husband must be such an obedience as the Church performeth to Christ. From the place of an husband, I gather this general ground concerning a wife's subjection, that Subjection must be yielded to the husband as to Christ, whence will follow two conclusions, one negative, which is this, The wife must yield no other subjection to her husband then what may stand with her subjection to Christ. The other affirmative, which is this, The wife must subject herself to her husband in that manner that she would or should subject herself to Christ. The former is a necessary condition required of all inferiors in their subjection, and obedience (as I showed * Treat. 1. §. 6. before) much more in a wife's subjection to her husband, because there is of all unequals * See §. 4. of this Treat. the least disparity betwixt husbands and wives. Hence for our present purpose, I gather these two other more particular conclusions, The first whereof is this, 1. If God expressly command the wife any duty, and her husband will not by any means give consent that she shall do it, but forbid her, she may and aught to do it without, or against his consent. Two cautions are warily to be observed about this conclusion: 2. Cautions for limiting a wives persisting to do that which her husband forbids. 1. That the wife be sure that God hath commanded her that which she doth without or against her husband's consent. If she doubt, than she must stay, and for bear till she gain his consent. When two opposite cases meet together, and the one be doubtful, the other plain and express: the doubtful case must give place to the more evident. Now the law of subjection is indefinite, thy desire shall be subject to thine husband; Gen 3 16. the extent of it is general, in every thing; the only reservation and exception is in the Lord; wherefore if the wife be not sure that that which her husband forbiddeth her is against the Lord, she must forbear to do it. The second caution is that she use all good means she can to gain her husband's consent, before she do, even that which is commanded, against his consent. Thus shall she testify her subjection both to God and her husband. To God, in that nothing can keep her from doing his express commandment: she will rather offend her husband then God, when one of them must needs be offended. To her husband, in that she putteth it to the uttermost push, and useth all the means she can to avoid his offence, in so much as he himself might see (if the god of this world blinded not his eyes) that the offence is no way given on her part, but merely taken on his. For proof of this, it is without all contradiction true, that the wife is not bound to greater subjection unto her husband then the subject is unto the magistrate: but a subject ought not to forbear a bounden duty commanded of God, because his governor forbids him. Instance the example of Daniel, Dan. 6. 7, etc. who daily made his prayers to God, though the King had made a solemn decree that none should ask any petition of God or man within thirty days but of the king. Instance also the Apostles, Act. 4. 18, etc. who preached the Gospel, though they were expressly forbidden. Though the Scripture be plentiful in affording examples of wife's subjection, yet it is very sparing in recording examples of those who in such warrantable cases refused to be subject, lest wives from thence should take too great liberty. Some are recorded, but such as are either extraordinary, or not every way instifiable. Abigails example was extraordinary, 1 Sam. 25. 18. and therefore not imitable but in such like extraordinary cases. The example of Rebekah, which may seem somewhat more Gen. 27. 6. pertinent, is not every way to be justified. For though the thing which she intended were for the substance of it very good, and aught to have been done, namely the blessing of jaakob, (for God foreshowed that the blessing appertained to jaakob, in that he said, The elder shall serve the younger) yet Gen. 25. 23. because she put not her husband in mind of God's word, nor laboured to persuade him to fulfil the same, but went about the matter deceitfully, she cannot therein be justified. But in the general this example showeth that God's word must be yielded unto rather than an husbands will. For better application of this point I will lay down some particular instances agreeable to God's word. Suppose a wife well instructed in the true religion be married to an idolatrous or profane husband, and he without any just cause forbid her to go to the Church, especially on the Lords days, to pray in English, to read the word, to teach her children the principles of religion, to restore that which she hath unjustly and fraudulently gotten, with the like, she may, and must do them notwithstanding. Object. Why may not giving of alms be reckoned among these? Answ. 1. Because the husband hath a greater power over the goods, then over these things. 2. Because alms-giving is not simply commanded to all, but to such as have wherewithal to give: but these things are simply commanded to all. §. 52. Of cases wherein a wife ought to forbear what her husband requireth. The other particular conclusion is this, that If an husband require his wife to do that which God hath forbidden she ought not to do it. Two cautions like the former are likewise to be observed 2. Cautions for limiting a wives refusing to do that which her husband commands. about this point. First, that she be sure (being truly informed by God's word) that that which she refuseth to do at her husband's command, is forbidden by God. Secondly, that she first labour with all meekness and by all good means that she can to dissuade her husband from urging and pressing that upon her, which with a good conscience she cannot do. A like proof may be brought for this as was for the former: for we know that a wife is not bound unto greater subjection to her husband then a son is unto a father: but a son may in the case propounded forbear to do that which his father requireth and commandeth him to do: instance the approved example of jonathan, who refused to bring David 1 Sam. 20. 31. unto Saul to be slain, though his father commanded him so to do. I might also instance the same in Saul's subjects and 1 Sam. 22. 17. servants, who refused to slay the Priests of the Lord at his command. Though an husband be not reckoned in particular among those to whom we are forbidden to hearken if they Deut. 13. 6. entice us to idolatry, yet by the rule of relation he is implied, and by just consequence gathered from this clause, thy friend which is as thine own soul; for who so dear as an husband? To exemplify this in some particulars as I did the former, If an husband shall command his wife to go to Mass, to a stage play, to play at dice, to prostitute her body to uncleanness, to go garishly and whorishly attired, to sell by scant weights, short measures, or the like, she ought not to do so. §. 53. Of wife's faults in showing more respect to their husbands then to God. Contrary to this limitation is on the one side a fawning flattering disposition of such wives as seek to please their husbands, so as they care not to displease God, (jezabel was such an one; to please her husband most lewdly she did 1 Ki. 21. 7. etc. practise Naboths death) and on the other side a fainting timorous heart which maketh them fear their husbands more than they fear God. Good Sarah, that worthy precedent of Gen. 12. 13. etc. good wives in other things, somewhat failed herein. Did wives duly consider, and always remember that they have an husband (namely Christ) in heaven, as well as on earth, and that there is greater difference betwixt that and this husband, then betwixt heaven and earth, and that both in giving reward, and taking revenge, there is no comparison betwixt them, their care of pleasing, or their fear of offending their husband in heaven would be much more than of pleasing, or offending their husband on earth: if any thing were commanded or forbidden them by their husbands on earth against Christ, they would say, If I do this, or forbear that, I should work falsehood against mine own soul; for nothing can be hid from mine husband in heaven: yea I should herein obey Satan, rather then God. §. 54. Of the manner of a wife's subjection to her husband. The second general conclusion concerning the manner of a wife's subjection, which was gathered from the place of an husband, was this, that The wife must subject herself to her husband in that manner, that she would or should subject herself to Christ. The particle As in this clause (as unto the Lord) importeth so much. This very conclusion is also inferred out of the place of a wife: In the same place that the Church is to Christ, a wife is to an husband: therefore such subjection as the Church yieldeth to Christ, must a wife yield to her husband; which the very words of the Apostle do expressly affirm. Now we Ephes. 5. 24. know that every Christian wife in her particular aught to yield that obedience to Christ which the Church in general doth: therefore also she must yield such subjection to her husband as she should to Christ. Quest. * See §. 5. of this Treatise. What if an husband be an enemy of Christ? must such subjection be yielded to an enemy of Christ as to Christ himself? Answ. Yea: because in his office he is in Christ's stead, though in his heart an enemy. In this case will the wisdom, patience, and obedience of a wife be best tried. It is noted of the Church, that she is a Lily among thorns. She remaineth Cant. 2. 2. Lilly-like, white, soft, pleasant, amiable, though she be joined with thorns, which are scraggie, prickly, sharp: so a wife must be mild, meek, gentle, obedient, though she be matched with a crooked, perverse, profane, wicked husband: thus shall her virtue and grace shine forth the more clearly, even as the stars shine forth most brightly in the darkest night. Among wife's Abigail deserveth great praise, that forgot not her duty, though she were married to a churlish, covetous, drunken sot, a very Nabal in name and deed. As for those who take occasion from the wickedness of their husbands to neglect their duty, they add to their cross a curse: for a cross it is to have a bad husband, but to be a bad wife is a sin, which pulleth down a curse. Let wives therefore remove their eyes from the disposition of their husband's person, to the condition of his place: and by virtue thereof, seeing he beareth Christ's image, be subject to him as unto Christ. This general conclusion might be applied to the matter of subjection as well as to the manner, for the Church acknowledgeth Christ her superior, feareth him inwardly, reverenceth him outwardly, obeyeth him also both by forbearing to do what he forbiddeth, and also by doing what he commandeth, which points having been before distinctly and largely handled and applied to wives, I will not repeat them again. Wherefore now to insist in the manner only, there are four Four graces needful to season a wife's subjection. virtues which are especially needful hereunto, whereby the Church seasoneth her subjection to Christ, and wives also may and must season their subjection to their husbands. These are the four, 1. Humility, 2. Sincerity, 3. Cheerfulness, 4. Constancy. §. 55. Of wife's * Treat 4. §. 15. humility in every duty. Humility is that grace that keeps one from thinking highly of himself above that which is meet: and in regard of that mean conceit which he hath of himself maketh him think reverendly, and highly of others: so as if humility be placed in a wife's heart, it will make her think better of her husband then of herself, and so make her the more willing to yield all subjection unto him. The Apostle requireth it of all Phil. 2. 3. Ephes. 4. 2. Christians as a general sauce to season all other duties: but after a peculiar manner is it needful for inferiors: most of all for wives, because there are * See before §. 4. many prerogatives appertaining to their place, which may soon make them think they ought not to be subject, unless they be humbly minded. That the Church doth herewith season her subjection, is clear by the book of Canticles, where oft she acknowledgeth her own meanness, and the excellency of her spouse. Therefore as the Church is humbly subject to Christ, so let wives be to their husbands. §. 56. Of wife's pride. Contrary is pride, which puffeth up wives, & maketh them think there is no reason they should be subject to husbands, they can rule themselves well enough, yea and rule their husbands too, as well as their husbands rule them. No more pestilent vice for an inferior, than this: it is the cause of all rebellion, disobedience, & disloyalty: only by pride, cometh contention. Pro. 13. 10. §. 57 Of Wife's * Treat. 4. §. 63. sincerity in every duty. II. Sincerity is that grace that maketh one to be within even in truth, what without he appeareth to be in show. This is that a Ephes. 6. 5. Singleness of heart which is expressly required of servants, and may be applied to wives, for indeed it appertaineth to all sorts. Because it is only discerned by the Lord, who is the b Acts 1. 24. searcher of all hearts, it will move a wife to have an eye to him in all she doth, and to endeavour to approve herself to him above all: therefore uprightness and walking before God are oft joined together: he that is upright will assuredly walk before God, that is, endeavour to approve himself to God, as c Gen. 6. 9 Noah did, and as d & 17. 1. God commanded Abraham to do. Though there were no other motive in the world to move her to subjection, yet for conscience sake to Christ she should yield it. e 1 Pet. 3. 5. S. Peter testifieth of holy women, that they trusted in God and were subject to their husbands: implying thereby, that their conscience to God made them be subject to their husbands. Was not Sarahs' subjection seasoned with sincerity, when f Gen. 18. 12. within herself, in her heart she called her husband Lord? Great reason there is that wives should in sincerity subject Reasons for sincerity. themselves: for 1. In their subjection even to their husbands they have to 1 Because wives have to do with Christ. do with Christ, in whose room their husbands stand: so as, though their husbands who are but men, see only the face and outward behaviour, yet Christ seeth their heart and inward disposition: though their husbands see only the things which they do before their faces, and can hear only of such things as are done before others: yet Christ seeth and knoweth the things that are done in the most secret places that can be, when no creature beside themselves is privy thereunto: Now let it be granted that in their outward carriage they give very good contentment unto their husbands, and please them every way, yet if sincerity have been wanting, with what face can they appear before Christ? he will take another manner account of them: before Christ all their outward compliment will stand them in no stead at all. 2. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt true, Christian, 2. This maketh a difference betwixt holy women and others, religious wives, and mere natural women: these may be subject on by-respects, as namely, that their husbands may the more love them, or live the more quietly and peaceably with them, or that they may the more readily obtain what they desire at their husband's hands, or for fear of their husband's displeasure and wrath, knowing him to be an angry, furious man, so as otherwise it might be worse with them, they might want many needful things, or carry away many sore blows if they were not subject. But the other have respect to Christ's ordinance, whereby their husbands are made their head, and to his word and will, whereby they are commanded subjection. Thus g 1 Pet. 3. 5. holy women subjected themselves; they cannot be holy that do not thus subject themselves: for this is a sweet perfume that sendeth forth a good savour into Christ's nostrils, and maketh the things we do pleasant and acceptable to him. 3. The benefit of this virtue being planted in a wife's heart 3. Great is the benefit hereof. is very great, and that both to her husband, and also to herself. To her husband, in that it will make her manifest her respect of him before others, behind his back, as well as before himself in his presence: and also will make her faithful to him, and careful to do his will wheresoever he be, with her, or from her. To herself, in that it will minister inward sweet comfort unto her, though her husband should take no notice of her subjection, or mif-interpret it, or ill requite it; for she might say as Hezekiah did, n Isa. 38. 3. Remember o Lord how I have walked before thee in truth, and with a perfect heart, and have done that which is good in thy sight. That the Church doth season all her subjection with sincerity is clear, in that she is said to be i Psal. 45. 13. all glorious within: (there is no glory within, without sincerity) and in that she is oft said k Cant. 3. 1, 2. to seek him whom her soul loved: if her soul loved him, in sincerity of heart she was subject to him: Therefore as the Church is sincerely subject to Christ, so let wives be to their husbands. §. 58. Of wife's complemental subjection. Contrary to sincerity is dissimulation, and mere outward, complemental subjection: when a wife doth even despise her husband in her heart, as Michal did David and yet carry a fair 2 Sam. 6. 16. Pro. 30. 20. face before him, as that adulterous woman, who eateth, and wipeth her mouth, and saith I have not committed iniquity. Solomon maketh it a note of a lewd wife to flatter with her words. Pro. 2. 16. Though such a wife should perform all the duties named before, yet would those all be nothing to God, if they were done with a double heart, and not in singleness of heart. For as many outward imperfections are pardoned by God, where sincerity is, so no outward actions are accepted of him though they seem never so fair, where there is no sincerity. §. 59 Of wife's * Treat. 4. §. 65, 74. cheerfulness in every duty. III. Cheerfulness is more apparent than sincerity, and maketh subjection the more pleasing not only to God, but also to man, who by the effects thereof may easily discern it. For God, as he doth himself all things willingly and cheerfully, so he expecteth that his children should therein follow him, and thereby show themselves his children. God loveth a 2 Cor. 9 7. cheerful giver: not only a cheerful giver of alms, but of all duty to God and man. For men, it maketh them also much better accept any duty when they observe it to be done cheerfully: this did even ravish David with joy, to see his people offer their gifts willingly 1 Chro. 29. 9 unto the Lord: when an husband seeth his wife willingly and cheerfully perform her duty, it cannot but raise up love in him. This cheerfulness is manifested by a ready, quick, and speedy performance of her duty. Sarahs' readiness to obey, Gen. 18. showeth that what she did, she did willingly. That thus the Church subiecteth herself to Christ is evident by that which David saith, They shall be willing in the day Psal. 110. 3. of thy power. Therefore as the Church is cheerfully subject unto Christ, so let wives be to their husbands. §. 60. Of wife's sullen and forced obedience. Contrary to this cheerfulness is the sullen disposition of some wives, who will indeed be subject to their husbands, and obey, but with such a lowering and sour countenance, with such pouting and muttering, as they grieve their husbands more in the manner, than they can be pleased with the thing itself that they do: herein they show themselves like to a cursed cow, which having given a fair soap of milk, casteth all down with her heel, and so verify the proverb, A good never a whit as never the better. Such subjection is in truth no subjection, it can neither be acceptable to God, nor profitable to their husbands, nor comfortable to their own souls. §. 61. Of wife's * Treat. 4. §. 72. constancy in doing their duty. FOUR Constancy is a virtue which maketh all the rest perfect, and setteth the crown upon them; without which they are all nothing. This is in those who after they have begun well, continue to do well unto the end, and thereby reap the fruit of all. It hath respect both to continuance without intermission, and also to perseverance without revolting, and giving clean over. So as it is not enough to be subject by starts and fits: one while yielding all good obedience, another while stout and rebellious: neither is it sufficient in former times to have been a good wife, and after prove bad: but there must be daily proceeding and holding on from time to time, so long as husband and wife live together. This grace was in her of whom it is said, She will do him good, and not evil all the days of her life. Such were all the holy wives commended in Scripture: among other particulars, mention is made of the wife of Phinehas, who on her deathbed showed the reverend 1 Sam. 4. 21. good respect she bore to her husband, though he were a wicked and lewd man. This grace doth the Church add to all her other virtues, she in all parts of her subjection remaineth constant, & faithful unto the death, whereby it cometh to pass, that at length she receiveth the reward of her holy obedience, which is full and perfect communion and fellowship with her spouse Christ jesus in heaven. In regard of her unmoveable constancy it is said, that the gates of hell shall never prevail against Matth. 16. 18. her. Therefore as the Church is constantly subject unto Christ, so let wives be to their husbands. §. 62. Of wife's repenting their former goodness. Contrary, 1. Intermission. Contrary to this Constancy is first intermission of duty, a returning to it, and a leaving it off by turns: like one that is sick of an ague, sometimes well, sometimes ill, one while hot, another while cold. That sometimes ceasing taketh away all the virtue, grace and glory, from sometimes doing. Besides, it is twenty to one that through the corruption of nature, that diversity and intercourse of fits at length will cease, and end in the worse. It is very likely that Michal was such an one: for one while she showed herself so full of respect to David, as 1 Sam. 19 11, etc. for his sake she incurred the King her father's displeasure: another while in her heart she despised him, and with her tongue 2 Sam. 6. 16, 20. taunted him. Contrary also to the forenamed Constancy is Apostasy, 2. Apostasy. that is, a clean relinquishing of the former good course, as if a wife repented her of her former good beginning. Such an one is she that is said to for sake the guide of her youth, and forget the Pro. 2. 17. covenant of her God. For aught we read to the contrary, jobs wife was such an one. And such are many who in their younger years, while their religious parents lived (as joash while 2 Chron. 24. 2. old good jehoiada lived) have behaved themselves very well like good dutiful wives, but being grown to elder years, have grown also so stout and rebellious, as if they clean repented themselves of their former good beginning. This revolt ariseth sometimes from the evil counsel of wicked Gossips, and sometimes from their own proud humour. I may say of these wife's subjection, as the Prophet saith of the righteousness of revolters, Ezek. 18. 24. their subjection shall not be remembered, but in their rebellion they shall die. Therefore as the Church is subject to Christ, let wives be to their husbands. §. 63. Of the * Treat. 4. §. 26. extent of a wife's obedience. The extent of a wife's subjection (which remaineth now to be handled) is set down under these general terms (in every thing) which are not so generally to be taken as if they admitted no restraint or limitation, for than would they contradict such cautions as these, in the fear of the Lord, as to the Lord, in Eph. 5. 21. & 22. Col. 3. 18. the Lord. For man is so corrupt by nature, and of so perverse a disposition, that oft he willeth and commandeth that which is contrary to Gods will and commandment: which when he doth, that Christian principle laid down as a ruled case by the Apostle must take place, we ought rather to obey God then men. Acts 5. 29. Quest. Why then is this extent laid down in such general terms? Answ. 1. To teach wives that it is not sufficient for them to obey their husbands in some things, as they themselves think meet, but in all things whatsoever they be wherein the husband by virtue of his superiority and authority hath power to command his wife. Thus this general extent excludeth not God's will, but the wives will. She may do nothing against God's will; but many things must she do against her own will if her husband require her. 2. To show that the husband's authority and power is very large: it hath no restraint but God's contrary command, whereof if a wife be not assured, she must yield to her husbands will. §. 64. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 28, 29. labouring to bring her judgement to the bent of her husbands. From that extent I gather these two conclusions: 1. A wife must labour to bring her judgement and will to her husbands. 2. Though in her judgement she cannot think that most meet which her husband requireth, yet she must yield to it in practice. In the former of these, I say not simply that a wife is bound to bring her judgement to the bent of her husbands; for he may be deceived in his judgement, and she may see his error, and then unless her understanding should be blinded, she cannot conceive that to be true which he judgeth so: but I speak of endeavour (when she hath not sure and undeniable grounds to the contrary) to suspect her judgement when its contrary to her husbands, and to think she may be in an error, and thereupon not be too peremptory and resolute in contradicting her husband's opinion. This submission even of her judgement respecteth not only things necessary, for which her husband hath an express determinate warrant out of the Scripture, but also things doubtful & indifferent: for even so far doth this clause (in every thing) extend: and the subjection of a wife respecteth not her practice only, but her judgement and opinion also: which if she can bring to the lawfulness and meetness of that which her husband requireth, she will much more cheerfully perform it. To this purpose (as I take it) may be applied that exhortation of the Apostle unto women, that they learn in silence with all subjection: 1 Tim. 2. 11. which though it be principally meant of learning in the Church, yet it excludeth not her learning at home of her husband: for in the next words he addeth, I suffer not a woman to usurp authority over the man, but to be in silence. §. 65. Of wife's overweening conceit of their own wisdom. Contrary is the presumption of such wives as think themselves wiser than their husbands, and able better to judge matters than they can. I deny not but that a wife may have more understanding than her husband: for some men are very ignorant and blockish; and on the other side, some women well instructed, who thereby have attained to a great measure of knowledge, and discretion; but many though they have husbands of sufficient and good understanding, wife and discreet men, yet think that that which they have once conceived to be a truth, must needs be so: and such is their peremptoriness, that they will not be brought to think that they may err: but say they will never be brought to think otherwise then they do, though all the husbands in the world should be of another opinion: not much unlike to the Wiseman's fool, who thinketh himself wiser than seven men Pro. 26. 16. that can render a reason. §. 66. Of a wife's * Treat. 4. §. 27. yielding to her husband in such things as she thinketh not to be the meet est. The latter conclusion concerning a wives yielding in practice to that which her husband requireth, though she cannot bring her judgement to think as he doth about the mee●nesse of it, Si res aliqua occurrat, quae consilio opus habeat, quin ipsa quoque quid censeas di● as minimè prohibe●: sed viri tui sententiam vim maiorem semper obtinere volo. Gre●. Naz. ad Olymp. hath respect to indifferent things, namely, to such as are neither in their particulars commanded, nor forbidden by God: as the outward affairs of the house, ordering it, disposing goods, entertaining guests, etc. Quest. May she not reason with her husband about such matters as she thinketh unmeet, and labour to persuade her husband not to persist in the pressing thereof, yea endeavour to bring her husband to see the unmeetnesse (as she thinketh) of that which she seeth? Answ. With modesty, humility, and reverence, she may so do: and he ought to hearken unto her, as the husband of the Shunemite did, 2. King. 4. 23, 24. but yet, if notwithstanding all that she can say, he persist in his resolution, and will have it done, she must yield. First, her subjection is most manifested in such cases: herein she apparently showeth, that what she doth, she doth in respect of her husband's place, and power: were it not for that, she would not do it. Other things are not so evident proofs of her subjection to her husband: for if he command her to do that which God hath expressly commanded, and so she ought to do it, whether her husband commanded it or no, it may be thought she doth it on God's command, and not on her husbands. If her husband command her to do that which God hath expressly forbidden, then ought she by no means to yield unto it: if she do, it may rather be termed a joint conspiracy of husband and wife together against God's will (as S. Peter said to Sapphira the wife of Ananias, How is it that ye have agreed together to tempt the Acts 5. 9 spirit of the Lord?) than subjection to the image of God in her husband. Secondly, her yielding in indifferent things tendeth much to the peace of the family, as subjects yielding to their Magistrates in such cases maketh much to the peace of the Common wealth. For in differences and dissensions one side must yield, or else great mischief is like to follow: now of the two, who should yield but the inferior? §. 67. Of wife's making their own will their law. Contrary is the custom of many wives, who never will do any more than they themselves think meet, though their husbands require it never so much: surely they come far short of this Apostolical extent (in every thing) though in their own eyes they may seem to be very much subject. But when wives will no further be subject, than their own judgements, wills and affections concur with their husbands, what can be thought but that they are subject rather to their own wills, then to the will of their husbands? Many such wives, from the least difference in judgement & opinion, even in the smallest matters, take occasion to refuse subjection, and think they have warrant enough so to do: whence oftentimes there ariseth much contention, the fault whereof lieth especially on the wife's neck, though the occasion may arise from the husband: and I think that wives themselves would so judge of the like cases betwixt them and their children. §. 68 Of care in choosing such husbands as wives may without See Treat. 2. Part. 1. §. 11. grief be subject unto. Object. If the case be such betwixt man and wife, it is not good to marry. Answ. This is no good inference; for all the seeming hardness of a wife's case is in the lewdness of an husband, who abuseth his place and power: and not in that subjection which is required by God. For if an husband carry himself to his wife as Tutum obsequium est, quoties qui dux est, ipse Dei Spiritu ducitur. God requireth, she will find her yoke to be easy, and her subjection a great benefit even unto herself. Wherefore I would exhort parties that are unmarried, whether maidens or widows, to be very careful in their choice of husbands: and in their choice to respect above all, their good qualities and conditions, therein bearing the image of Christ, as well as in their office, and authority: so as their wives may with joy and comfort, not with grief and anguish, be subject unto them: then will subjection prove a vexation, when the husband is an ignorant, profane, idolatrous, worldly, wicked man: wives of such husbands are oft brought into many straits. Ye widows and maidens who are free, be not too free and forward in giving your consent to whom you know not: among other motives, oft think of this point of subjection, to which all wives are bound: this I say, both of the several branches, and also of the extent thereof. After you are married it is in vain to think of freedom from subjection. By taking husbands, and giving yourselves to be wives, you bind yourselves to the law of the man, as long as he liveth. Then as you desire to be accepted of God, and to find mercy and comfort from him, you must bear this yoke, how heavy and grievous soever it seem to be. §. 69. Of the reasons to move wives to do their duties. Hitherto of wife's duties: The reasons noted by the Apostle to enforce those duties now follow. They are laid down in these words. EPHES. 5. 22. — As unto the Lord. Vers. 23. For the husband is the head of the wife, even as Christ is the head of the Church: and he is the Saviour of the body. Vers. 24. Wherefore as the Church is subject, etc. THe main ground of all the reasons which the Apostle here intimateth, is taken from the place wherein God hath set an husband, which is first by consequence implied in these words, as to the Lord: and then more plainly and directly expressed in these, the husband is the head of the wife. The particle prefixed before these words (for) being a causal conjunction, doth show, that they are here set down as a reason, which is first propounded under a metaphor (head) and then amplified by that resemblance which an husband hath therein unto Christ (even as Christ, etc.) which resemblance is further commended by the virtue and benefit that proceedeth from the head-ship of Christ properly, and of an husband also by consequence, in these words (and is the Saviour of the body.) Upon an husband's resemblance unto Christ, he inferreth that a wife should have a resemblance unto the Church, and so concludeth, Therefore as the Church is in subjection to Christ, so let wives be to their husbands. Out of the forenamed ground of a wife's subjection, and the several amplifications thereof, and the inference thereupon made, five several and distinct reasons may be gathered to enforce a wine's subjection to her husband. The first is taken from an husband's place: he is in the Lord's stead to his wife (as to the Lord.) The second from his office: he is an head to his wife. The chird from the image he beareth, or from the resemblance betwixt him and Christ (even as Christ &c.) The fourth from the benefit that his wife receiveth from him (he is the Saviour etc.) The fifth from the example and pattern of the Church (as the Church is in subjection, etc.) § 70. Of an husband's place. The place wherein God hath set an husband as it serveth 1. Reason. to direct a wife in the manner of her subjection, whereof I have spoken * §. 51. before, so also it serveth to move a wife to yield such subjection as is required: which will evidently appear by these two conclusions following from thence. 1. A wife by subiecting herself to her husband, therein is subject unto Christ. 2. A wife by refusing to be subject unto her husband, therein refuseth to be subject unto Christ. That these two conclusions are rightly and justly gathered from the forenamed ground I prove by like conclusions which the holy Ghost inferreth upon the like ground. It is evident that Christ jesus, even incarnate and made flesh, was in the room and stead of his father, whereupon Christ said to Philip that desired to see the father, he that hath seen me hath seen the father: Now mark what Christ thence inferreth both on joh. 14. 9 Mat. 10. 40. joh. 5. 23. the one side (he that receiveth me receiveth him that sent me) and on the other (he that honoureth not the son, honoureth not the father that sent him.) It is also evident that Ministers of the Gospel stand in the room and stead of Christ: for thus saith the Apostle of himself and other Ministers, we are ambassadors for Christ, as though God did beseech you by us, we pray you in Christ's stead, etc. Now mark again the conclusions inferred thereupon by Christ, on the one side, he that heareth Luk. 10. 16. you, heareth me, and on the other, he that despiseth you, despiseth me. On this ground it was that God said to Samuel concerning the people that rejected his government, they have not cast thee away, but they have cast me away. 1 Sam. 8. 7. To apply this reason, I hope such wives as live under the Gospel have so much religion and piety in them as to acknowledge, it becometh them well to be subject unto the Lord Christ jesus: here then learn one especial and principal part of subjection unto Christ, which is to be subject unto your husbands: thus shall you show yourselves to be the wives of the Lord Christ, as the Apostle saith of obedient servants, they are the servants of God. 1 Pet. 2. 16. Again I hope none are so void of all religion and piety as to refuse to be subject unto Christ: here then take notice, that if wilfully ye refuse to be subject to your husbands, ye wilfully refuse to be subject to Christ: fitly on this ground may I apply that to wives, which the Apostle speaketh of subjects, whosoever resisteth the power and authority of an husband, Rom. 13. 2. resisteth the ordinance of God: and they that resist shall receive to themselves judgement. A strong motive is this first motive. If it were duly considered of wives, they would more readily, and cheerfully be subject, than many are; they would not so lightly think of their husband's place, nor so reproachfully speak against God's Ministers who plainly declare their duty unto them, as many do. §. 71. Of an husband's office. The second reason is like unto this taken from an husband's 2. Reason. 1 Cor. 11. 3. office, he is the wife's head: which is also urged to this very purpose in other places. This metaphor showeth that to his wife he is as the head of a natural body, both more eminent in place, and also more excellent in dignity: by virtue of both which, he is a ruler and governor of his wife. Nature teacheth us that this is true of the head of a natural body: and the Apostle by intituling an husband, an head, teacheth us that it is as true of an husband: whence it followeth, that it standeth with common equity, and with the light of nature, that the wife should be subject to her husband. This argument doth the Apostle in plain terms urge in another place, saying, doth not nature teach you, etc. 1 Cor. 11. 14. Go therefore, o wives, unto the school of nature, look upon the outward parts and members of your bodies. Do they desire to be above the head? are they loath to be subject unto the head? Let your soul then learn of your body. Were it not monstrous for the side to be advanced above the head? If the body should not be subject to the head, would not destruction follow upon head, body, and all the parts thereof? As monstrous, and much more monstrous is it for a wife to be above her husband: and as great, yea and greater disturbance and ruin would fall on that family. The order which God hath set therein would be clean overthrown thereby: and they that overthrow it would show themselves oppugners of God's wisdom in establishing order. This reason drawn from nature is of force to move very Pagans, and Savages to yield subjection, how much more Christian wives, it being also agreeable to God's word, and ratified thereby? §. 72. Of the resemblance betwixt Christ and an husband. The third reason taken from an husband's resemblance unto 3. Reason. Christ herein, addeth an edge unto that former reason: in being an head, he is like Christ. So as there is a kind of fellowship and copartnership betwixt Christ, and an husband: they are brethren in office, as two kings of several places. Object. There is no equality betwixt Christ the Lord from heaven, and an earthly husband: the disparity betwixt them is infinite. Answ. Yet there may be similitude, resemblance, and fellowship: inequality is no hindrance to these. Two kings may be more different in estate then a subject and a king; yet those two kings brethren and fellows in office. There may be a resemblance where there is no parity, and a likeness where there is no equality. The glorious and bright Sun in the firmament, and a dim candle in an house, have a kind of fellowship, and the same office, which is to give light: yet there is no equality betwixt them. So then an husband resembleth not only the head of a natural body, but also the glorious image of Christ, and is that to his wife which Christ is to his Church. To apply this point, mark how from it two positions (worthy to be noted) do arise. 1. Subjection is due to an husband as well as to Christ. Subjection due to an husband as well as to Christ. I say not as great, because of the difference in glory: but as well, because of the likeness in office. A Constable (though a poor mean man) must be obeyed as well as an high sheriff: A beggar's child must obey his father, as well as a king's child. Such wives therefore who are not subject, wrong their husbands, as well as they wrong Christ who are not subject to him. 2. They who by their subjection maintain the honour of their husband's place, maintain thereby the honour of Christ's place: and again by the rule of contraries, They who by refusing to be subject impeach the honour of their husband's place, impeach thereby the honour of Christ's place. The obedience of a poor man's child or servant justifieth that obedience which kings children and servants owe their father and sovereign: and so on the contrary, disobedience in mean ones, dishonoureth the place of great ones. The argument of Memucan drawn from the greater to the Est. 1. 16. less (in these words, Vashty the Queen hath not done wrong to the king only, but also to all the princes, and all the people) may be applied from the less to the greater. Disobedient wives do wrong not only to their own particular husbands, but also to all heads, even to Christ the head of the Church. If a natural body, and the Church were flexible, and could be seduced, and drawn to presume, and rebel against their heads, the ill example of wives were enough to move them thereunto, for, as much as in them lieth, they by example seduce them. From the last forenamed positions (viz. that the obedience of a good wife maintaineth the honour of Christ's place, and on the contrary side that the disobedience of an ill wife impaireth the honour thereof) I may justly infer two other conclusions. 1. That Christ will assuredly reward the good subjection of Christ will reward the good subjection, and revenge the rebellion of wives. good wives: for he hath said (and what he hath said he can and will perform) them that honour me will I honour. 2. That he will sorely revenge the rebellion of evil wives: for again he hath said, they that despise me, shall be despised. We know that fellows in office are ready to stand for the 1 Sam. 2. 30. credit of one another's place, and to maintain the honour thereof: and that not without good reason: for thereby they maintain their own honour and credit. Wherefore as good wives may well expect a reward at Christ's hands, howsoever their husband's respect their obedience, whether well or ill: (a great encouragement for wives to perform their duties, though their husbands be never so ill) so evil wives have just cause to fear revenge at Christ's hand, how soever their husbands bear with them. They who duly weigh this reason taken from that resemblance which is betwixt Christ and the Church, cannot but hold it to be a motive of great moment. §. 73. Of the benefit which a wife hath by an husband. The fourth reason taken from the benefit which a wife receiveth 4. Reason. from her husband, doth yet further press the point in hand. Though Christ be properly the Saviour of the body, yet even herein an husband carrieth a resemblance of Christ, and is after a manner a saviour: for by virtue of his place and office he is on the one side her protector, to defend her from hurt, and preserve her from danger; and on the other side, a pronider of all needful and necessary things for her: in which respect she is taken from her parents and friends, and wholly committed Gen. 31. 14. to him: (as jacob's wives said, Have we any more portion or inheritance in our father's house?) yea she herself, and all she hath is given to him: and he again communicateth what soever he hath to her good, and for her use. David compareth a wife to Psal. 128. 3. a Vine, in relation to her husband: intimating thereby, that by him she is raised to that height of honour she hath, as a vine by the tree, or frame near unto which it is planted. By his honour is she dignified, by his wealth is she enriched. He is, under God, all in all to her; in the family he is a King to govern and aid her, a Priest to pray with her and for her, a Prophet to teach and instruct her. As the head is placed in the highest place over the body, and understanding placed in it, to govern, direct, protect, and every way seek the good of the body, and as Christ is united to the Church as a spouse, and made her head, that she might be saved, maintained, and provided for by him; so for this end was an husband placed in his place of superiority; and his authority was committed to him, to be a saviour of his wife. Wherefore if none of the former motives prevail with wives, and move them to be subject to their husbands, yet ought this. For from this reason flow these two conclusions. 1. The subjection required of a wife is for her own good. 2. In refusing to obey she showeth herself both ungrateful to her husband, and also injurious to herself. That her subjection is for her own good, is evident by this A wife's subjection tendeth to her own good. end for which an husband is made an head, to be a saviour: not to puff him up, to make him insult and tyrannize over his wife. So as if she be subject unto him, she may reap much good from him. As the Church is wisely governed, and safely protected by subiecting herself to her head Christ jesus; and as the body partaketh of much good, and is preserved from much evil by subiecting itself to the head, so if a wife be subject to her husband, she will far much the better thereby, all the ease, profit, and benefit thereof will be hers. If therefore she tender her own good, this is a way and means ordained of God for this end; let her herein seek it. If notwithstanding this she refuse to be subject unto her husband, doth she not (as we say) stand in her own light? She being by her sex the weaker, and the more unable to help herself, ●f she shall reject this good help which God hath provided for her, is she not most injurious to her own self? And considering Gratitude requireth a wife to be subject. the care and pains her husband undergorth for her sake, is it not most unnatural and monstrous ingratitude, inwardly to despise, or outwardly to scorn such an head? No better testimony ●f a grateful heart can be given by a wife to her husband, then cheerful and ready subjection: and no greater ingratitude can ●e showed, than rebellion, and disdain. Now among vices ingratitude is one of the most odious to God and man: so as both ●o avoid the black spot of ingratitude, and to carry away the ●ame of gratefulness, ought wives to be subject. §. 74. Of the example of the Church set before wines. The last reason taken from the example of the Church is also 5. Reason. ●f good force to persuade wives unto subjection. Example more prevails with many then precept. If any example may be of ●orce, than this most of all: for it is not the example of one only, ●ut of many; not of many ignorant, and wicked persons, but of understanding, wise, holy and righteous persons, even all the ●aints that ever were, are, or shall be: for the Church compriseth ●●l under it, even that whole society of Saints, which are chosen of God in his eternal counsel, redeemed of Christ by his precious blood, and effectually called by the Gospel of salvation, God's spirit working inwardly and powerfully upon them, those very souls of just and perfect men now triumphing in heaven, not excepted: note how this Church is described in the 26, and 27. verses. Let this example therefore be oft thought of: it will never repent any to follow it: for it treadeth the only right path to eternal glory, whereunto they shall assuredly come that follow it. But to show the force of this reason a little more distinctly, note these two conclusions following from it. 1. Wives are as much bound to be subject to their husbands, as the Church to Christ. Else why should this example be thus set before them, and pressed upon them? why are husbands set in Christ's stead, and resembled to him? 2. A wife's subjection to her husband, answerable to the Church's subjection unto Christ, is an evidence that she is of the Church, guided by the same Spirit that the Church is. For it cannot be performed by the power of nature, it is a supernatural work, and so an evidence of the Spirit. Wherefore, o Christian wives, as your husbands by their place resemble Christ, so do you by your practice resemble the Church. Of the two this is the more commendable: for that is a dignity, this a virtue: but true virtue is much more glorious than any dignity can be. These reasons being well poised, and the force of them all joined together, they cannot but work on the stoutest stomach that is: wherefore if this point of subjection seem to be too bitter a pill to be well digested, let it be sweetened with the syrup of these reasons, and it will much better be swallowed, and have the more kindly work. The fourth Treatise. Husband's Particular Duties. §. 1. Of the General Heads of this Treatise. EPHES. 5. 25, etc. Husband's love your own wives, even as Christ also loved the Church, etc. AS the wife is to know her duty, so the husband Husbands bound to duty. Propterea debent mulieribus suis ad virtutis exemplum se praebere, quia viri sunt. Aug. de adult. Coniug. l. 2. c. 8. much more his, because he is to be a guide, and good example to his wife, he is to dwell with her according to knowledge, (1 Pet. 3. 7.) the more eminent his place is, the more knowledge he ought to have how to walk worthy thereof. Neglect of duty in him is more dishonourable unto God, because by virtue of his place he is a 1 Cor. 11. 7. the Image and glory of God, and more pernicious not to his wife only, but also to the whole family, because of that power and authority he hath, which he may abuse to the maintenance of his wickedness, having in the house no superior power to restrain his fury: whereas the wife, though never so wicked, may by the power of her husband be kept under, and restrained from outrage. Wherefore to go on in order, in laying down the husband's Husband's particular duties. duties (as we have the wives) we are to consider, 1. The Duties themselves. 2. The reasons to enforce them. In setting down the duties we must note 1. The matter wherein they consist. 2. The manner how they are to be performed. The Apostle compriseth the whole matter of them all under Love, which is the sum and head of all. This we will first handle: and then proceed to other particulars. §. 2. Of that * Treat. 3. §. 2. 1. Husband's must love their wives. love which husbands owe their wives. This head of all the rest, Love, is expressly set down, and alone mentioned in this, and in many other places of Scripture, whereby it is evident, that all other duties are comprised under it. To omit other places, where this duty is urged in b Eph. 5. 25, 28, 33. this place, Love is four times by name expressed, beside that it is intimated under many other terms and phrases. Whosoever therefore taketh a wife, must, in this respect that she is his wife, love her: as it is noted of Isaak (the best pattern of husbands noted in the Scripture) c Gen. 24. 67. he took Rebekah, she was his wife ana he loved her. Many good reasons hereof may be rendered. No duty well performed without love. 1. Because no duty on the husband's part can be rightly performed except it be seasoned with love. The Apostle exhorteth all Christians to do all their things in love: much more 1 Cor. 16. 14. ought husbands: though in place they be above their wives, yet love may not be forgotten. 2. Because of all persons on earth a wife is the most proper 2. A wife the most proper object of love. Deut. 13. 6. object of love: nor friend, nor child, nor parent ought so to be loved as a wife: she is termed, the wife of his bosom, to show that she ought to be as his heart in his bosom. 3. Because his place of eminency, and power of authority 3. Love keeps a man from abusing his authority. may soon puff him up, and make him insult over his wife, and trample her under his feet, if a entire love of her be not planted in his heart. To keep him from abusing his authority is love so much pressed upon him. 4. Because wives through the weakness of their sex (for 4. Love maketh him bear with her infirmities. 5. His love draweth love from her. they are the weaker vessels) are much prone to provoke their husbands. So as if there be not love predominant in the husband, there is like to be but little peace betwixt man and wife. Love covereth a multitude of imperfections. 5. Because as Christ by his love first manifested provoketh the Church to love him, so an husband by loving his wife should provoke her to love him again: showing himself like the Sun which is the fountain of light, and from which the Moon receiveth what light she hath: so he should be the fountain of love to his wife. Object. Love was before laid down as a common duty appertaining both to man and wife: how is it then here required as a particular and peculiar duty of an husband? Answ. In regard of the general extent of love it is indeed a common duty belonging to the one as well as to the other, yea How love is an husband's particular duty. 1 Cor. 13. 5. belonging to all Christians, to all men: for it is the very nature of love, and an especial property thereof, to seek not her own things, but the good of others, which all are bound to do by virtue of the bond of nature; more than others, Christians by virtue of the bond of the spirit: among Christians, especially wives and husbands by virtue of the matrimonial bond: of married couples, most of all husbands by virtue of their place and charge. Their place is a place of authority, which without love will soon turn into tyranny. Their charge is especially and above all, to seek the good of their wives: as wives are the chiefest, and greatest charge of husbands, so their chiefest and greatest care must be for them: the parents and friends of wives as they give over all their authority to their husbands, so they cast all care upon them: wherefore that husbands may take the more care of their wives, and the better seek their good, they ought after a peculiar manner to love them. Husband's are most of all bound to love: and bound to love their wife's most of all. Thus this affection of love is a distinct duty in itself, peculiarly Love a common condition to be annexed to every duty. appertaining to an husband: and also a common condition which must be annexed to every other duty of an husband, to season and sweeten the same. His look, his speech, his carriage, and all his actions, wherein he hath to do with his wife, must be seasoned with love: love must show itself in his commandments, in his reproofs, in his instructions, in his admonitions, in his authority, in his familiarity, when they are alone together, when they are in company before others, in civil affairs, in religious matters, at all times, in all things: as salt must be first and last upon the table, and eaten with every bit of meat, so must love be first in an husband's heart, and last out of it, and mixed with every thing wherein he hath to do with his wife. §. 3. Of an husband's hatred and want of love. Contrary hereunto is hatred of heart: which vice as it is Contrary, 1. Hatred. very odious and detestable in itself, so much more when the wife is made the object thereof. As love provoketh an husband to do his wife what good he can, so hatred, to do her what mischief he can. Moses noteth a man's hatred of his Deut. 22. 13, etc. wife to be a cause of much mischief: for the nearer, and dearer any persons be, the more violent will that hatred be which is fastened on them. Hence was it that a divorce was suffered to be made betwixt Deut. 24. 3. a man and his wife, in case he hated her: which law questionless was made for relief of the wife, lest the hatred which her husband conceived against her should work her some mischief, if he were forced to keep her as his wife: which Christ seemeth to imply in these words, Moses, because of the Mat. 19 8. hardness of your hearts, suffered you to put away your wines. This therefore being so pestilent a poison, let husbands take heed how they suffer it to soak into them. Neither is it sufficient for an husband not to hate his wife, 2. Want of love. for even the want of love, though it be only a privation, yet is it a great vice, and contrary also to the forenamed duty of love. Where this want of love is, there can be no duty well performed, even as when the great wheel of a clock, the first mover of all the rest, is out of frame, never a wheel can be in good order. They that think lightly hereof, plainly discover that there is little or no love of God in them at all: for if the Apostles inference be good, taken from a man's neighbour or brother whom 1 joh. 4. 20. he hath seen, it will much more be good having relation to a wife: for how can he who loveth not his wife, (whom God hath given to him as a token of his favour, and as an help meet for him, to be in his bosom, and ever in his sight, yea to be no more two, but one flesh) love God whom he hath not seen? If any man saith, he loveth God, and hate his wife, he is a liar. Let husbands therefore by loving their wives give evidence that they love God. §. 4. Of an husband's * Treat. 3. §. 9 Branches of love. wise maintaining his authority. All the branches which grow out of this root of love, as they have respect to husband's duties, may be drawn to two heads: 1. A wise maintaining of his authority. 2. A right managing of the same. That these two are branches of an husband's love, is evident by the place wherein God hath set him, which is a place of authority; for the best good that any can do, and so the best fruits of love which he can show forth to any, are such as are done in his own proper place, and by virtue thereof. If then an husband relinquish his authority, he disableth himself from doing that good, and showing those fruits of love which otherwise he might. If he abuse his authority, he turneth the edge and point of his sword amiss: in stead of holding it over his wife for her protection, he turneth it into her bowels to her destruction, and so manifesteth thereby more hatred than love. Now then to handle these two severally, and distinctly: I. That an husband ought wisely to maintain his authority, II. Husbands must maintain their authority. is implied under this Apostolical precept, Husbands dwell with your wives according to knowledge, that is, as such as are well able to maintain the honour of that place wherein God 1 Pet. 3. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. hath set you: not as sots and fools without understanding. The same is also implied under the titles of pre-eminence which the Scripture attributeth to husbands, as Lord, Master, See Treat. 3. §. 3. Reasons. head, guide, image and glory of God, etc. The honour and authority of God, and of his Son Christ 1. God's authority maintained by the husbands. jesus, is maintained in and by the honour and authority of an husband, as the King's authority is maintained by the authority of his Privy Council and other Magistrates under him; yea, as an husband's authority is in the family maintained by the authority of his wife: (for as the man is the glory of God, so 1 Cor. 11. 7. the woman is the glory of the man.) The good of the wife herself is thus also much promoted, 2. The wife's good promoted thereby. even as the good of the body is helped forward by the heads abiding in his place; should the head be put under any of the parts of the body, the body and all the parts thereof could not but receive much damage thereby: even so the wife and whole family would feel the damage of the husband's loss of his authority. 1. Quest. Is it in the power of the husband to maintain his own authority? Answ. Yea, in his more than in any others: for note the It is in the man's power to maintain his authority. 1 Tim. 4. 12. counsel of the Apostle to Timothy, (though in another case, yet very pertinent to this purpose) Let no man despise thy youth. It was therefore in Timothy's power to maintain his honour, and not to suffer it to be despised; and so is it in an husband's power. 2. Quest. How may an husband best maintain his authority? Answ. That direction which the Apostle giveth to Timothy How a man's authority may be well maintained. Ad viros pertinet virtute vincere, & exemplo regere foemina●. Aug. de Adult. Coniug. lib. 2. cap. 8. to maintain his authority, may fitly be applied for this purpose unto an husband; Be an ensample in conversation, in love, in spirit, in faith, and in pureness: as if he had said, If thou walk before them worthy of thy place and calling, and worthy of that honour and respect which is due thereunto, showing forth the fruits of love, faith, and other like graces, assuredly they will reverence thy youth; but if otherwise thou carry thyself basely, and not beseeming a minister, thou givest them just occasion to despise thee. Even thus may husbands best maintain their authority by being an ensample in love, gravity, piety, honesty, etc. The fruits of these and other like graces showed forth by husbands before their wives and family, cannot but work a reverend and dutiful respect in their wives and whole house towards them: for by this means they shall more clearly discern the image of God shine forth in their faces. Object. Very goodness and grace itself is hated of wicked and ungodly wives: it was an act of piety that made Michal despise David. Answ. 1. Grant it to be so: yet this may be a good direction for such husbands as have not such wicked wives. 2. This doth not always so fall our, no, nor yet for the most part in those that are wicked; true virtue and integrity doth oft cause admiration in such as love it not. 3. Though some be of so crooked and perverse a disposition as to take occasion of contempt, where none is given, yet shall that husband justify himself before God and man, that carrieth himself worthy of his place. §. 5. Of husband's losing their authority. Contrary is their practice who by their profaneness, riotousness, Contrary, 1. base carriage drunkenness, lewdness, lightness, unthriftiness, and other like base carriage, make themselves contemptible, and so lose their authority: though a wife ought not to take these occasions to despise her husband, yet is it a just judgement on him to be despised, seeing he maketh himself contemptible. Contrary also to the forenamed directions is the stern, 2. Cruel dealing. rough, and cruel carriage of husbands, who by violence and tyranny go about to maintain their authority. Force may indeed cause fear, but a slavish feat, such a fear as breedeth more hatred than love, more inward contempt, then outward respect. And contrary is their servile disposition, who against their 3. Yielding in unlawful things. own judgement yield to the bent of their wife's mind in such things as are unlawful: they will lose their authority rather than give discontent to their wives: which is a fault expressly forbidden by the a Dent. 13. 6, 7. law: and yet a fault whereinto not only wicked b 1 King. 21. 7, 9 Ahab, but also wise Solomon fell: how heinous a fault, and how grievous a fall this was in Solomon, the fearful issue thereof showeth. Like to him not in wisdom, but in this point of egregious folly, are such as upon their wife's 1 King. 11. 4. instigation, suffer Priests and Jesuits, to lurk and celebrate Masses in their houses, and yield to be present thereat themselves. Like to Ahab are such Magistrates as suffer their wives to oversway them in course of justice: hence it cometh to pass that more petitions and suits are made to the wives of Magistrates in the cases of justice then to the Magistrates themselves: and the favour of their wives is more esteemed than their own: so as the power of governing, and the main stroke in determining matters, is from their wives; they are but the mouths and instrument of their wives, in so much as among the common people the title of their places and offices is given to their wives. Some husbands suffer this by reason of their fearful, and foolish disposition, wanting courage and wisdom to maintain the honour of their places against the insolency of their wives: others upon a subtle, covetous, wicked mind, that by the means of their wives there may be more freedom for receiving bribes. Among these I may reckon those who against their own mind, to satisfy their wife's mind, suffer both wives and children to follow the fashion, to attire themselves unbeseeming their places, to frequent light company, with the like; and also those who upon their wife's importunity are moved (as Samson was) to reveal such secrets Maximè obseruate vos atque attendite anim bus vestris ô viri ab uxoris concitationibus atque malis instigationibus, per hanc enim in ultimo supplantare Job visus est diabolus, etc. per istas etiam nunc plurimos subvertit. Orig. in joh. lib. 2. as are not meet to be known. Husband's may hearken to their wives moving good things, but they may not obey them in evil things: if they do, their fault is double: 1. in doing evil: 2. in losing their authority. Let husbands therefore be very watchful against their wife's evil instigations. Satan laboured to supplant job by his wife: and by this doth he subvert many in these days. §. 6. Of husband's * Treat 3. §. 3. How a man's authority may be well managed. high account of wives. As authority must be well maintained, so must it be well managed: for which purpose two things are needful: 1. That an husband tenderly respect his wife. 2. That providently he care for her. An husband's tender respect of his wife is Inward. Outward. Inward in regard of his Opinion of her. Affection to her. Outward in regard of his carriage towards her. For an husband's opinion of his wife, two things are to be weighed, Her place, Her person. 1. Her place is indeed a place of inferiority, and subjection, yet the nearest to equality that may be: a place of common Husband's must account their wife's yokefellowes. 1 Pet. 3. 7. equity in many respects, wherein man and wife are after a sort even fellows, and partners: Hence than it followeth that The husband must account his wife a yoke-fellow and companion. This is one point of giving honour to the wife: and it is implied under that phrase whereby the end of making a wife is noted, Gen. 2. 18. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 which in our English is translated, meet for him, word for word as before him that is, like himself, one in whom he might Eph. 5. 28. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. see himself, or even (to use our Apostles word) himself. These phrases imply a kind of fellowship: as also the many prerogatives that are common to both, which have been noted * Treat. 3. §. 4. before. As a wife's acknowledgement of her husband's superiority is the groundwork of all her duties, so an husband's acknowledgement of that fellowship which is betwixt him and his wife, will make him carry himself much more amiably, familiarly, lovingly, and every way as beseemeth a good husband towards her. §. 7. Of that fellowship which is betwixt man and wife, notwithstanding a wife's inferiority. Object. Fellowship betwixt man and wife cannot stand with a wife's inferiority and subjection. Answ. They are of very mean capacity that cannot see how these may stand together. Is there not a fellowship betwixt superior and inferior magistrates in relation to their subjects? yea the Scripture mentioneth a fellowship betwixt Christ the head and other Saints in relation to the glory Rom. 8. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. whereof all are made partakers (for it termeth us joint heirs with Christ:) and in relation to God's people a fellowship betwixt God and his ministers (for it termeth them labourers together 1 Cor. 3. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. with God) yet none can deny the Saints, and ministers to be inferior and in subjection to Christ, and God. But distinctly to answer the objection. 1. There may not only be a fellowship, but also an equality in some things betwixt those that in other things are one of them inferior and subject: as betwixt man and wife in the power of one another bodies: for the wife (as well as the husband) Vxor & serua & domina est viri, Chrysost. in 1 Cor. 7. hom. 19 is therein both a servant, and a mistress, a servant to yield her body, a mistress to have the power of his. 2. There may be fellowship in the very same things wherein is inferiority: for fellowship hath respect to the thing itself, inferiority to the measure, and manner: as in giving light the Sun and Moon have a fellowship, but in the measure and manner the Moon is inferior: the Moon hath not so much light as the Sun, and that which it hath it hath from the Sun: and as in governing, the king and other magistrates have a fellowship, but in the measure, and manner of government they are inferior to him: Even so is it betwixt man and wife, in many things wherein there is a fellowship, the wife is notwithstanding inferior: so as inferiority may stand with fellowship. 3. There are no unequals betwixt which there is so near a parity as betwixt man and wife: if therefore there may be a fellowship betwixt any that are superior, and inferior one to another, then much more betwixt man and wife. * Debet in uxorem vir dominari, ut animus in corpus, consentiens ei, & conspirans benevolentia. Plut. praec. connub. As the soul therefore ruleth over the body, by a mutual and loving consent and agreement, so must a man over his wife. §. 8. Of husbands too mean account of wives. Contrary is the conceit of many who think there is no Non es dominus sed maritus: non ancillam sortitus es, sed uxorem: gubernatorem ●e Deus voluit esse sexus inferioris, non praepotentem. Ambr. Hexaem. lib. 5. cap. 7. difference betwixt a wife and servant but in familiarity: and that wives were made to be servants to their husbands, because subjection, fear and obedience are required of them: whence it cometh to pass that wives are oft used little better than servants. A conceit and practise savouring too much of heathenish, and sottish arrogancy. Did God at first take the wife out of man's side, that man should tread her under his feet? or rather that he should set her at his side next to him above all children, servants, or any other in the family, how near, or dear unto him soever? for none can be nearer than a wife, and none ought to be dearer. §. 9 Of husband's good esteem of their * Treat 3. §. 5. FOUR Husbands must account their own wife's best for them. own wives. 2. For the person of a wife, An husband ought to esteem that particular person to whom by God's providence he is joined in marriage, to be the fittest, and best for him. This is implied under that particle of restraint (OWN) noted by the Apostle where he saith a Eph. 5. 25. husband's love your OWN wives, and again presseth it under a comparison of the body (as b Ves. 28. your OWN bodies) Every one thinketh his own body best and fittest for him. A man might happily wish some defects or enormities in his own body to be amended, and desire that his were like an others, more straight, strong, and comely than his own, yet would he not have his head to be upon that other man's body: the same opinion ought a man (that would love his wife) to have of her. Good reason there is for him so to do: for true is the proverb, Reason. Every one's wife is provided by God. if it be rightly taken, marriages are first made in heaven, that is, God hath an overruling hand in ordering them: which c Pro. 19 14. Solomon implieth by that opposition which he maketh betwixt wealth and a wife: that is from our fathers, this from the Lord: in which respect he saith, d & 18. 22. he which findeth a wife receiveth favour of the Lord. If therefore thou art loved of God, and lovest him, he will make thy wife prove a good thing to thee. Object. A wife may be a very lewd and wicked woman: how then can she be accounted the best wife? Answ. 1. It may be she was good enough when first she was brought to thee, but thou by thine evil example, or negligent government, or hard usage, hast made her so bad as she is. Which if it be so, then is she to be considered not as thou hast marred her, but as thou didst marry her. 2. Though she be not in relation to other wives the best in condition, yet in relation to thee she may be the best in event: if not for thine ease and quiet, yet for trial of thy wisdom and patience: and so as e Socrates interrogatus qua gratia uxoris mores toleraret, respondit, ut gymnasium & palaestram philosophiae domi habeam. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. a school of virtue she may be unto thee. As f Ars tua Tiphy iacet si non sit in aequore fluctus Ouid. de Trist. l. 4. eleg. 3. a skilful pilots sufficiency is tried and known by tempestuous seas, so a man's wisdom by a troublesome wife. Yea she may be given thee as a punishment of some former sins, as seeking after a beautiful, honourable, rich, proper wife, rather than a religious and honest one: or seeking her without any direction or help first sought of God, or otherwise then thou hast warrant from God, as by stealth, and without parent's consent; or some other sins in another kind, to bring thee to repentance: or as a means to restrain and wean thee from some future sins whereunto thou are subject, and so prove a blessed cross to keep thee from a fearful curse. §. 10. Of husband's preposterous opinion of their own wives. Contrary is a corrupt and perverse opinion which many have of their own wives, thinking them of all other the worst and unfittest; yea though they be such as every way both in gifts and qualities of mind, and also in grace and comeliness of body deserve all good respect and esteem. Whereas others (which look with a single eye) commend their good parts, they Misinterpret and misjudge all: if their wives be religious, they think them hypocrites: if grave, sober and modest, melancholic: if cheerful, wanton: if they keep at home, idle drones: if they take occasion (though never so just) of going abroad, gadders, and lightfooted. This bad opinion of their wives is a cause that their hearts are clean removed from their own, and set upon strange flesh: whereby the devil gaineth what he desireth, that is, to put asunder such as God hath joined together, and to join those whom God hath put asunder. §. 11. Of husband's * Treat. 3. §. 7. V. Husbands must entirely delight in their wives. entire affection to their wives. An husband's affection to his wife must be answerable to his opinion of her: he ought therefore to delight in his wife entirely, that is, so to delight in her as wholly and only delighting in her: In this respect the Prophet's wife is called the a Ezec. 24. 16. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 desire, or delight, or pleasure of his eyes: that wherein he most of all delighted, and therefore by a propriety so called. Such delight did Isaak take in his wife as it drove out a contrary strong passion, namely the grief which he took for the departure of his mother: for it is noted that he b Gen. 24. 67. loved her, and was comforted after his mother's death. This kind of affection the wiseman doth elegantly set forth in these words, Rejoice with the wife of thy youth: Let her Pro. 5. 18, 19 expounded. be as the loving Hind, and pleasant Roe, and be thou ravished always with her love. Here note both the metaphors, and also the hyperbole which are used to set forth an husband's delight in his wife. In the metaphors again note both the creatures whereunto a wife is resembled, and also the attributes given to them. The creatures are two, an Hind and a Roe, which are the females of an heart and a Roebuck: now it is noted of the heart and Roebuck, that of all other beasts they are most enamoured (as I may so speak) with their mates, and even mad again in their heat and desire after them. These metaphors hath Solomon used to set forth that unfeigned and earnest, entire and ardent affection which an husband ought to bear unto his wife: which being taken in a good sense, and rightly applied, so as they exceed not the bonds of christian modesty and decency, are very fit, and pertinent to the purpose: if we stretch them beyond modesty, we wrong the penman of them, or rather the Holy Ghost that directed him, and propound a pernicious pattern unto husbands. The attributes given to the forenamed creatures much amplify the point: the former is termed a loving Hind, the latter 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Col. 1. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a pleasant Roe, word for word an Hind of Loves, a Roe of favour, that is, exceedingly loved and favoured: (for to set forth the extent of God's love unto his Son, Christ is called the son of his love:) These comparisons applied to a wife, do lively set forth that delight which an husband ought to take in her, and yet is it much further amplified by the hyperbole used in this phrase, be thou ravished with her love, word for word err thou in her love, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 by which no sinful error, or dotage is meant, but a lawful earnest affection: implying two things especially: First so far to exceed, as to make a man oversee some such blemishes in his wife, as others would soon espy and mislike: or else to count them no blemishes, delighting in her never a whit the less for them. For example, if a man have a wife, not very beautiful, or proper, but having some deformity in her body, some imperfection in her speech, sight, gesture, or any part of her body, yet so to affect her, and delight in her, as if she were the fairest, and every way most complete woman in the world. Secondly, so highly to esteem, so ardently to affect, so tenderly to respect her, as others may think him even to dote on her. An husband's affection to his wife cannot be too great if it kept within the bonds of honesty, sobriety and comeliness. The wife's affection ought to be as great to her husband, yet because of the husband's place of authority, he must especially take all occasions to manifest this his inward affection. Read the Song of Songs, and in it you shall observe such affection manifested by Christ to his Spouse, as would make one think he did (with reverence in an holy manner to use the phrase) even err in his love and dote on her. A good pattern and precedent for husbands. For nothing is more lovely them a Nihil viro uxore bona amabilius. Hier. in Ezec. 24. good wife. §. 12. Of the Stoical disposition of husbands to their wives. Contrary is the disposition of such husbands as have no heat, or heart of affection in them: but Stoick-like delight no more in their own wives then in any other women, nor account them any dearer than others. A disposition no way warranted by the word. The faithful Saints of God before mentioned, as also many other like to them, were no Stoics, without all affection: nor did they think it a matter unbeseeming them after a peculiar manner to delight in their wives (witness isaack's sporting with his wife) for this is a privilege which appertaineth Gen. 26. 8. to the estate of marriage. But that I be not mistaken herein, let it be noted that the affection whereof I speak is not a carnal, sensual, beastly affection, but such an one as may stand with Christian gravity and so briety: having relation to the soul of a man's wife as well as to her body, grounded both on the near conjunction of marriage, and also on the inward qualities of his wife. Thus far of an husband's inward respect of his wife. It followeth to speak of his outward carriage towards her. §. 13. Of an husband's * Treat. 3. §. 10. kind acceptance of such things as his wife doth. S. Peter giveth a general rule for an husband's outward carriage to his wife, which is, that he dwell with her according to knowledge, that is, as a man able to order his carriage wisely to his own honour and his wives good, that so she may have just cause to bless God that ever she was joined to such an husband. Out of this general these two branches sprout forth. 1. That an husband give no just offence to his wife. 2. That wisely he order that offence which is given by her. To avoid giving of offence he must have respect, 1. To that which she doth as duty to him. 2. To that which he doth as duty to her. In regard of the former two things are requisite: 1. That he kindly accept what she is willing and able to do. 2. That he wisely commend and reward what she doth well. Thus having for order's sake laid down these heads, I will distinctly handle the several points. The first particular wherein an husband showeth himself VI Husbands must kindly accept every good duty of his wife. Gen. 21. 8. to be a man of knowledge in walking before his wife, is by a kind and respective acceptation of every good duty which his wife performeth. Abraham in testimony of his good acceptance of Sarahs' pains in nursing her child, made a great feast when the child was weaned: and Elkanah on a like respect gave liberty 1 Sam. 1. 23. to his wife to do what seemed her best. A great encouragement must this needs be unto wives to be subject unto their husbands in all things, when they observe no part of their subjection to be carelessly neglected, but rather graciously accepted: it quickens the spirit of a wife to think that her care and pains in pleasing her husband shall not be in vain. §. 14. Of husband's slighting and rejecting their wife's goodness. Contrary is their practice who thinking all which a wife Contrary, 1. To take no notice of their wife's goodness. doth to be but her duty, take little or no notice thereof; or if they cannot but take notice of it, yet lightly regard it, and slightly pass it over. This oftentimes maketh a wife even repent the good she hath done, as David repented the service 2. Slightly to pass it over. 1 Sam. 25. 21. which he had done for Nabal. The truth is that wives ought rather to look unto God for his acceptation then unto their husbands: and though their husbands will take no notice, or not regard what good thing they do, yet for conscience sake, and for the Lords sake to do their duty: But yet notwithstanding considering our weakness and backwardness unto every duty, it can not be denied but that an husband's sleight regarding of his wife's goodness is an occasion to make her weary thereof: and that he doth as much as in him lieth to make her repent thereof. But what may we say of such as scornfully reject their wife's 3. Scornfully to reject it. duty, yea like them the worse for making conscience thereof, and so (clean contrary to the rule of christianity) overcome goodness with evil? Surely they show a very diabolical spirit Rom. 12. 21. to be in them: and cannot but minister much grief, and offence to their wives, and make that which they do to be very irksome and tedious. Father's ought not to provoke their Ephes. 6. 4. children, much less husbands their wives. §. 15. Of husband's * Treat. 3. §. 11. 55. courteous accepting their wife's reverend carriage. For the better conceiving of this so needful a point I will How a man's good acceptance of his wife's duty is manifested. somewhat more particularly and distinctly apply the same to the several duties of a wife: which were drawn to two heads Reverence. Obedience. For the first, if a wife manifest her dutiful respect of her 1. By answering reverence with courtesy. Depone asperitatem morum cum tibi sedula uxor occurrit, etc. Ambr. Hexaem. lib. 5. cap. 7. husband by any reverend behaviour, gesture, or speech, he ought to meet her (as we say) in the midst of the way, and manifest his gracious acceptance thereof by some like courteous behaviour, gesture, and speech, being seemly, not foolish. Object. Thus shall an husband abase himself, and disgrace his place. Answ. The courtesy which I speak of as it cometh from a superior, being a mere voluntary matter and a token Courtesy may stand with superiority. of kindness and favour, is no abasement of himself, but an advancement of his inferior: a great grace to her, no disgrace to him. Abram was counted of the Hittits a Prince of Gen. 23. 6, 7. God, yet in communing with them he bowed unto them. It is noted as a commendable thing in Esau, that though at that time he was his brother's superior (at least he took himself so to be) yet observing how jaakob reverenced him, bowing seven times to the ground, he ran to meet him, and embraced Gen. 33. 3, 4. him, and fell on his neck. Most pertinent to the point is the example of King Ahashverosh, who beholding esther's reverend Esth. 5. 2. standing before him, held out his Sceptre unto her, which in a King is great courtesy. But to put the matter out of all question, let the example of Christ noted in Salomon's song be observed, and we shall find his courtesy every way answering the reverence of his Spouse. §. 15. Of husbands too great loftiness. Contrary is a lofty carriage of husbands to their wives, who overlook all reverence showed by wives, no more respecting their wives in this case, than children or servants: or than Kings do respect the reverence of their subjects. Oft have I noted that there is a great difference betwixt a wife and all other inferiors, in which respect all evidences of reverence should much better be respected; yet we know that Kings and Queens will put out their hands to be kissed by their subjects when they kneel before them, which is a token of courtesy: how much more ought husbands to show courtesy? Unworthy they are to be reverenced of their wives, who too Lordlike overlook them. §. 16. Of husband's * Treat. 3. §. 15. ready yielding to their wife's humble suits. Again, it being a token of reverence in a wife humbly to 2. By granting her humble request. make known her desire to her husband, he ought to show so much courtesy as readily to grant her desire: this courtesy the forenamed a Est. 5. 3. Ahashuerosh afforded to Esther: b 1 King. 1. 28. etc. David to Bathsheba: c Gen. 28. 1. Isaak to Rebekah: d & 16. 6. Abraham to Sarah, and many other husbands to their wives. e & 21. 10. 11. Abraham showed herein such respect to his wife, that though the thing which she desired were grievous to him, yet he yielded to his wife. Object. God first commanded him so to do. Answ. This addeth the more force unto the argument, showing that it is Gods express will, that an husband should show this kind of courtesy to his wife. Much more ought a man to do at his wife's request then at any others, whether friend, child, or parent: yea much more free, forward and cheerful aught he to show himself in granting his wife's request then any others: provided notwithstanding that her desire be of that which may lawfully be granted: to yield in things unlawful is to lose his authority, as was showed * §. 5. before. §. 17. Of husband's harshness to their wives. Contrary is the harshness of their disposition who yield to their wife's request as an hard-milch-cow letteth down her milk, not without much ado: whereby the grace of all their yielding is taken away. There can be no courtesy in yielding, when it is against their mind and will forced from them: their wives must ask, and entreat again and again, yea be forced to use the mediation of others to persuade their husbands to yield to their request before they will yield, if at all they yield. What is this but to proclaim to all the world that there is no affection in them to their wives? If a wife's breath be strange to her husband, assuredly his heart is first strange to her: which is the ready way to make him set his heart on strange women. §. 18. Of husband's * Treat. 3. § 38, 39, etc. & §. 43 44, etc. forbearing to exact all that they may. As a wife's reverence so also her obedience must be answered with her husband's courtesy. In testimony whereof, An husband 3. By accepting what she is willing to do. must be ready to accept that wherein his wife showeth herself willing to obey him. He ought to be sparing in exacting too much of her: in this case he ought so to frame his carriage towards her, as that obedience which she performeth, may rather come from her own voluntary disposition, from a free conscience to God-wards, even because God hath placed her in a place of subjection, and from a wive-like love, then from any exaction on her husband's part, and as it were by force. Husband's ought not to exact of their wives, whatsoever 4. By forbearing to exact too much. wives ought to yield unto if it be exacted. They must observe what is lawful, needful, convenient, expedient, fit for their wives to do, yea and what they are most willing to do before they be too peremptory in exacting it. For example. 1. Though the wife ought to go with her husband, and 5. By suffering her to dwell where it is meetest for her. dwell where he thinks meet, yet ought not he (unless by virtue of some urgent calling he be forced thereto) remove her from place to place, and carry her from that place where she is well settled without her good liking. a Gen. 31. 4, etc. jaakob consulted with his wives, and made try all of their willingness, before he carried them from their father's house. 2. Though she ought cheerfully to entertain what guests 6. By forbearing to tyre her with guests. he bringeth into the house, yet ought not he to be grievous and burdensome therein unto her: the greatest care and pains for entertaining guests lieth on the wife: she ought therefore to be tendered therein. If he observe her conscionable and wise, well able to manage 7. By suffering her to manage the affairs of the house. and order matters about house, yet loath to do any thing without his consent, he ought to be ready and free in yielding his consent, and satisfying her desire, as b 1 Sam. 1. 23. , Elkanah: and if she be bashful and backward in ask consent, he ought voluntarily of himself to offer it: yea and to give her a general consent to order and dispose matters as in her wisdom she seeth meet, as the said Elkanah did: (Do (saith he to his wife) what seemeth thee good:) and c Pro. 31. 11. the husband of that good housewife which Solomon describeth. A general consent is especially requisite for ordering of household affairs: for it is a charge laid upon wives to d 1 Tim. 5. 14. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. guide the house: whereby it appeareth that the businesses of the house appertain, and are most proper to the wife: in which respect she is called the * Materfamilias'. housewife: so as therein husbands ought to refer matters to their ordering, and not restrain them in every particular matter from doing any thing without a special licence and direction. To exemplify this in What things are to be put to the wife's disposing. some particulars, it appertaineth in peculiar to a wife, 1. To e Pro. 31. 21, 22. order the decking and trimming of the house. 2. To f Uers. 15. dispose the ordinary provision for the family. 3. To g Gen. 16. 6. rule and govern maid servants. 4. To h 1 Tim. 5. 10. 'tis 2 4. bring up children while they are young, with the like. These therefore ought he with a general consent to refer to her discretion: with limitation only of these two 2 King. 4. 19 cautions. 1. That she have in some measure sufficient discretion, Cautions about referring matters of the house to the wives ordering. wit, and wisdom, and be not too ignorant, foolish, simple, lavish, etc. 2. That he have a general oversight in all, and so interpose his authority as he suffer nothing that is unlawful or unseemly to be done by his wife about house, children, servants, or other things: for 1. The general charge of all lieth principally upon him. 2. He shall give an account unto God for all things that are amiss in his house. 3. The blame of all will also before men lie upon him. But those two cautions provided, he ought together with his general consent i Pro. 31. 11. put trust in his wife, (as k Gen. 39 6. Difference betwixt the trust put in a wife, and in others. Potiphar did in joseph) making herein a difference betwixt a wife, and all others whether children of years, friends, or servants whom he employeth in his affairs. Them in every particular he may direct for matter and manner, and take a straight account of them for expenses laid out, or other things done: because what they do is wholly and only for another. To his wife (who is a joint parent of his children, and governor of his house, to whose good the husband's wealth redoundeth, and in that respect doth for herself that which she doth for her husband) greater liberty, and licence must be given. §. 19 Of husbands too much strictness towards their wives. Contrary is the rigour and austerity of many husbands, who stand upon the uttermost step of their authority, and yield no more to a wife then to any other inferior. Such are they 1. Who are never contented or satisfied with any duty the In what things an husband manifesteth too much strictness. wife performeth, but ever are exacting more and more. 2. Who care not how grievous and burdensome they are to their wives: grievous by bringing such guests into the house as they know cannot be welcome to them: burdensome by tu frequent, and unseasonable inviting of guests, or imposing other like extraordinary businesses, over and above the ordinary affairs of the house. Too frequent imposing of such things, cannot but breed much wearisomeness. Unseasonable (as when the wife is weak by sickness, child-bearing, giving suck or other like means, and so not able to give that contentment which otherwise she would) cannot but much disquiet her, and give her great offence. 3. Who hold their wives under as if they were children or servants, restraining them from doing any thing without their knowledge and particular express consent. 4. Who are over busy in prying into every business of the house, and will have their hand in all. Besides that such husbands afford no opportunity to their wives of giving proof of that understanding, wit, wisdom, care, and other gifts which God hath endowed them withal, they take away that main end for which a wife was given a man, namely, to be a● help. Such husbands cannot but neglect other more weighty Gen. 2. 18. matters, which more properly belong unto them. For observe it and you shall find, that such husbands as are most busy about the private affairs of the house appertaining to their wives, are most negligent of such affairs as appertain unto themselves: they think they walk in integrity, but yet are they not just nor wise therein: for the just man walketh in HIS integrity, Pro. 20. 7. & 14. 8. and the wisdom of the prudent is to understand HIS way: (i) that integrity which appertaineth to his own peculiar place; and his own way: but every fool will be meddling, namely, with things not belonging to his place. & 20. 3. 5. Who are over suspicious of their wives, and thereupon over strict in taking account of them. S. Paul calleth surmizes 1 Tim. 6. 4. evil, and that not without just cause: for evil they are in their nature, and evil in their effects, being occasions of many mischiefs: but in none so evil as in husbands over their wives. If a wife's fidelity (to whose good the welfare of the family, and increase of the stock redoundeth as well as to the husbands) be without just cause suspected, who shall be trusted? It is the overthrow of many families, that servants are trusted, and not wives. Thus far of an husband's kind acceptance of that which his wife is willing and able to do. §. 20. Of Husband's encouraging their wives in good things. The love which an husband oweth to his wife, further requires Husband's must commend and reward good things in their wives. that he wisely commend and reward what she hath well ●one. That which the Apostle faith of the Magistrates authority, may fitly be applied to an husbands in relation to his wife, Do that which is good, and thou shalt have praise of the same. It is expressly noted in the description of a good husband, a Rom. 13. 3. ●hat he praiseth his wife: and in that he saith, c Vers. 31. Give her of the b Prou. 31. 28, 29. ●uit of her hands, it is implied also that he rewardeth her. This is an undoubted evidence of his good acceptance of ●er duty, and a further encouragement to stir her up to go on and continue in well doing. Yea this is also an evidence of his by and delight both in her person, and also in her well doing. 〈◊〉 there be no delight in ones person, well doing will rather stir up envy then joy: and they that envy a man's well doing, will never commend, or reward him for it. In an husbands commending of his wife this caveat must be put: that he so order his commendation as it savour not of flattery, or dotage: nor yet * Lege apud T. Liv. Dec. 1. l. 1. quid inde evenit, quòd regij iwenes suam quisque uxorem miris modis laudare. stir up lust or envy in others. §. 21. Of husband's ungrateful discouraging their wives. Contrary is an ungrateful, if not envious disposition of such Quisque suam laudot, studijs certamina crescunt. Ouid. Fast. lib. 2. husbands, as passing by many good things ordinarily and usually every day done by their wives without any approbation, commendation or remuneration, are ready to dispraise the least slip, or neglect in them; and that in such general terms as if they never did any thing well, so as their wives may well complain and say as it is in the proverb, Oft did I well, and that hear I never: Once did I ill, and that hear I ever. Yet such will be ready to praise other men's wives, and up braid their own wives with the examples of those other, when their own do far excel them in all kind of goodness. What doth this show but that either they take no notice of their own wife's goodness, or else by reason of the commonness thereof little regard it? If their wives have not the more grace in them, this disposition is enough not only to discourage them from doing any good duty, but also to breed jealousy in them, and to alienate their hearts from them. §. 22. Of an husband's * Treat. 3. §. 10. mildness. Hitherto of that respect which an husband is to have of that duty which his wife performeth to him. For avoiding just offence, an husband must further have good respect to that which as duty he doth to his wife. As kindly he must accept duty at his wife's hands, so mildly he must perform that Oportet virum praecsse uxori oblectando, & indulgendo. Plut. praec. Connub. duty which he oweth to her. This mildness is an especial fruit, and evidence of love, and a notable means to take away all offence that otherwise might be taken from many things which he doth. Sugar and Hony are not more pleasant to the tongue, than mildness to the heart; it causeth such things as otherwise are irksome and grievous to the soul, to be well taken and applied, even as bitter pills dipped in sweet syrup, or rolled up in the soft pap of an apple, are soon swallowed down and well digested. If an husband desire to be accounted a servant of the Lord he must learn this lesson: For the servant of the Lord must be gentle to all men. If any other servant of the Lord, much more husbands: 2 Tim. 2. 24. if to all men, most of all to their wives: and that in many respects. 1. Because of the near union betwixt man and wife. 2. Because of the joint authority she hath with him over others: that herein he may be a precedent and example to her. 3. Because of her weakness: glasses are tenderly handled: a small knock soon breaks them. §. 23. Of husband's bitterness. Contrary is bitterness, a vice expressly forbidden, and that in particular to husbands. A vice that cannot stand with an husband-like love: whereupon the Apostle commanding the one forbiddeth the other, Love (saith he) and be not bitter. Nothing Col. 3 19 more turneth the edge of his authority, perverteth the use of his government, provoketh the stomach of his wife, maketh his words and deeds less regarded, than bitterness. It is as gall and wormwood mixed with sweet and wholesome meats, which causeth that they cannot be well digested, but with violence are spit out again so soon as ever they be tasted. Men in authority are much prone hereunto: and therefore O husbands be so much the more watchful against it, love your wives and be not bitter unto them. §. 24. Of the * Treat. 3. §. 13. 14. Wherein a husband's mildness is manifested. Titles which an husband giveth to his wife. The forenamed mildness of an husband must be manifested in his Speech, Carriage. For so far as reverence extends itself in the duties of wives, must mildness be extended in the duties of husbands. Whether an husband's speech be to his wife before her face, or of her * Of his speech about her behind her back, See Treat. 2. Part. 2. §. 36. The speech of husbands to their wives sweetened with mildness. behind her back, it must be sweetened with mildness. 1. For his speech to her, 1. The titles wherewith he calleth her. 2. The instructions which he giveth her. 3. The commandments which he layeth upon her. 4. The reproofs wherewith he checketh her, must all be mixed with mildness. Among other titles, the most ordinary and usual title (wife) 1. Mild and kind titles. is a mild and kind title, and least offensive of all other: if an husband give any other title to his wife, it must be such an one as manifesteth kindness, familiarity, love, and delight. Such are all the titles which Christ giveth to the Church, as Spouse, Love, Dove, with the like. I do not deny but that in the Song of Solomon, and in other places of Scripture many titles are given and speeches used by Christ to the Church which are not meet to be used by husbands to their wives, because they are metaphorical, and hyperbolical: but yet in them all we may observe tokens of amiableness, kindness, and mildness, which is the end for which I have alleged his example. But contrary are such titles as on the one side set the wife Contrary, unseemly titles. in too high a place over her husband, as Lady, Mistress, Dame, Mother, etc. And on the other side set her in too mean a rank, as woman, wench, etc. And their Christian names contracted, as Sal, Malipiero, Bess, Nan. etc. and names of kindred, as Sister, and Cousin: and, opprobrious names, as stut, drab, queant; and names more befitting beasts than wives, as Cole, Browne, Muggle, etc. Object. These are titles of mildness, kindness, and much familiarity: for husbands call their wives by these names, not when they are angry with them and displeased, but ordinarily, and usually, even when they are best pleased. Answ. The mildness and familiarity which is required of an husband must be such as may stand with his authority and place of eminency (as some of those names do not,) and with that near conjunction which is betwixt man and wife about all others (as other do not,) and with Christian gravity and discretion (as other do not.) Christians therefore must take heed that by their practice they justify not corrupt customs. §. 25. Of an husband's manner of instructing his wife. 2. To instruction the Apostle expressly annexeth meekness, Instruction to be given with meekness. Instruct (saith he) with meekness, those that oppose themselves. If ministers must use meekness when they instruct their people, much more husbands when they instruct their wives: if 2 Tim. 2. 25. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. in case of opposition meekness must not be laid aside, then in no case, at no time. In this case to manifest meekness, let these rules be observed. Directions to instruct with meekness. 1. Note the understanding and capacity of thy wife, and accordingly fit thine instructions: if she be of mean capacity, give precept upon precept, line upon line, here a little and there a little: a little at once oft given (namely every day something) will arise in time to a great measure, and so arise, as, together with knowledge of the thing taught, love of the person that teacheth will increase. 2. Instruct her in private betwixt thyself and her, that so her ignorance may not be blazed forth: private actions passing betwixt man and wife are tokens of much kindness and familiarity. 3. In the family so instruct children and servants when she is present, as she may learn knowledge thereby: there can be no more meek and gentle manner of instructing, then by one to instruct another. 4. Together with thy precepts mix sweet and pithy persuasions, Contrary, harshness. which are testimonies of great love. Contrary is an harsh and rough manner of instructing, when husbands go about to thrust into their wife's heads, as it were by violence, deep mysteries which they are not able to conceive, and yet if they conceive not, they will be angry with them, and in anger give them evil language, and proclaim their ignorance before children, servants, and strangers. This harshness is ordinarily so fruitless, and withal so exasperateth a woman's spirit, as I think he were better clean omit the duty then do it after such a manner. §. 26. Of an husband's manner of * Treat. 3. §. 43, 51, 52. 63, 64. etc. Commandments to be ordered with mildness. commanding his wife any thing. 3. The commandments which an husband giveth to his wife, whether they be affirmative (bidding her to do something) or negative (forbidding her to do this or that) must all be seasoned with mildness. For which end respect must be had to the matter and manner of his commandments. In regard of the matter the things which he commandeth What things he may command his wife. his wife to do, must be 1. Such as are indeed lawful and honest. 2. Such as she is persuaded to be so. 3. Such as beseem her place. 4. Such as are of weight and moment. And on the contrary, the things which he forbiddeth must be 1. Such as are indeed unlawful to be done. What things he may forbid his wife. 2. Such as he can evidently prove unto her to be unlawful. 3. Such as are unbeseeming her place. 4. Such as will have some evil and mischievous effect if they be done. 1. To command a thing unlawful, or forbid a thing which ought to be done, is to bring his own authority into opposition with Gods: in which case he bringeth his wife into this straight, either to reject God's commandment or his. How then can she think that her husband loveth her, when he bringeth her into such snares and straits, that she must needs fall into the gulf of God's displeasure, or knock against the rock of her husband's offence? Mildness is far from such commandments. 2. The like may be said of such things as to a wife's conscience Such things as a wife maketh doubt of, not to be pressed upon her. seem to be sinful, if they be enjoined to her; or her bounden duty, if they be forbidden: especially if she have any ground for her conscience out of God's word. The conscience is subject to God alone: if it be forced it will be a fearful horror, and a very hell in that party whose conscience is forced: She that doubteth is condemned if she do that whereof Rom. 14. 23. she maketh doubt. 1. Object. In doubtful matters the commanding power Of what doubtful things the commanding power of a governor may be a warrant. of a governor is sufficient warrant and ground to resolve the conscience of them that are under authority. Answ. 1. In things merely doubtful concerning which the party in subjection hath not warrant out of God's word one way or other, it may be so. But when the conscience doth not doubt and hang in suspense, but is out of some ground taken from God's word persuaded that that which is commanded is unlawful, or that which is forbidden is a bounden duty, then to do this, or to leave that undone, is to the party so persuaded a sin: and this is the doubting (whereof the Apostle speaketh) that condemneth a man. In this case to urge a wife to do this, or not to do that, is to urge her to sin: which a mild spirit and loving heart will not do. 2. Though the husbands command be sufficient warrant to the wife, and if he peremptorily press her to this or that, she ought to yield, yet the love and mildness required of an husband should make him so to tender her as to remit something of his power, and when he seeth her conscience troubled about his command, to relieve her conscience by for bearing to press that which seemeth so burdensome to her. A husband may sin in pressing that too much upon his wife, which she upon his pressing may without sin yield unto. §. 27. Of an husband's * Treat. 4. §. 66. wise carriage when his wife is erroneeusly scrupulous. 2. Object. What if an husband upon his knowledge observe his wife to be erroneously scrupulous, and to misinterpret and misapply the word of God which she maketh the ground of her scruple? Answ. He must first labour to resolve her conscience by a plain discovery of her error; which is a true and a great token of love: if notwithstanding all that he can do in that kind she cannot be brought to yield to that which he would have, than he must carefully observe these two things. 1. Whether her refusing to yield, be an obstinacy, or weakness. 2. Whether it be about a sleight or weighty matter. By the reasons which she rendereth, and her manner of pressing How a wives refusing to yield may be discerned to be on obstinacy or weakness. them, he may discern whether weakness or obstinacy make her stand out against him: if the reason which she resteth on taken from God's word be doubtful, and to one that hath not a good sound judgement, and a sharp discerning wit, it may appear to make something for her, it is to be presupposed that there is more weakness than stoutness in her. But if she can render no good reason, but only take every show that any way seemeth to incline to her words, and peremptorily holdeth the conclusion, and stiffly standeth on her own resolution, though the vanity of her pretences be evidently discovered to her, so as she hath not any thing further to object; or if she render no reason at all but her own thought, conceit and will, and yet refuseth to yield, surely obstinacy possesseth her heart. In case of obstinacy it is very expedient that an husband stand upon his power to maintain his authority, and by the best wisdom he can (using only such means as are lawful) bring her to yield from her stoutness to that which he requireth: especially if the matter be weighty: as in case a religious man have been married to a Popish wife, and she by no reason will be moved to forbear going to Mass, or yield to go to the preaching of the Gospel. But if through weakness she cannot be persuaded of the lawfulness of that her husband requireth, and the matter required be of no great consequence, nor the weakness of her conscience cause any great error, an husband ought so far to manifest his mildness as to forbear to press her conscience. §. 28. Of an husbands * Treat. 3. §. 43, 44. etc. forbearing to press things unbeseeming a wife's place. 3. Things unbeseeming the place of a wife are dishonourable unto her: for an husband to urge his wife by strict charge to do them, implieth more rigorousness than mildness. Had the spirit of that stout Monarch Ahashuerosh been more mild towards his wife, he would not have so far pressed his wife unto so unseemly a thing as he did, namely, to come before all his Princes and people to make show of her beauty. It is true indeed (as we showed * Treat. 3. §. 28. before) that she offended in refusing to yield thereunto, he peremptorily requiring it; but that offence on her part doth not justify his fact, and free him from all blame: it is noted, that he was merry with wine, when he gave that commandment, Est. 1. 10. whereby is intimated, that his practice was more beseeming a drunken, than a sober man: such is their practice who exact of their wives to do such businesses as beseem maidservants rather than wives, or strumpets rather than honest women; as to go to taverns, alehouses, playhouses, and such places where light companions be. §. 29. Of an husbands pressing his authority in weighty matters. 4. To use a man's authority about weighty matters, matters of moment, maketh it to have such weight in it, as it will much better be regarded: for thus a wife will either be brought to yield unto that which is commanded, or to condemn herself for not yielding: yea thus a wife may see, that it is not his own will so much which maketh him to use his authority in commanding, as the necessity of the thing itself, which redoundeth especially to her good that doth it: for the performance of a duty is for the most part most advantageable to the party that performeth it, so as hereby an husband showeth love to his wife in pressing that which he presseth. This token of love that it may the better appear, it is behooveful Reasons of pressing a commandment to be rendered. that an husband add to his commandment just & weighty reasons, that thereby his wife may the better discern the meetness, lawfulness, expediency, and necessity of the things commanded. We know that all the things which God commandeth are weighty and necessary: yea his will (being the very rule, and ground of all goodness) maketh things absolutely necessary, yet unto his commandments he useth to add weighty reasons; showing on the one side the benefit and blessedness that will come to such as obey his commandments; and on the other side, the mischief and misery that will fall on their pates who refuse to obey; whereby he showeth the great good respect which he beareth to us, and the earnest desire he hath of our good. Thus may an husband even in his commandments show much love and kindness. §. 30. Of husbands too great pride in commanding. Contrary is the peremptory pride of husbands, when they will have their own will done: it booteth not whether the thing commanded be lawful or unlawful, whether their wife's consciences can yield unto it or no, whether it stand with the honour of their places or no, and whether it be weighty or light; their will it is it should be done, and done it shall be, there is all the reason they will give. Some think it a glory to command what they list; and think that there is no proof of their authority, and of their wife's subjection, but in such things as upon their own will, without any further ground or reason, they command. If such husbands meet with confronts; if though they command much, they find not answerable performance; they may thank themselves, who run the ready course to have their authority contemned and even trodden under foot. §. 31. Of husband's rare and mild using their commanding power. Respect must be had by husbands to the manner of using their authority in commanding as well as to the matter. In regard of the manner his commandments must be 1. Rare, not too frequent. 2. By way of entreating, not too peremptory. Authority is like a sword, which with over much using will 1. Commanding must be rare. be blunted, and so fail to do that service which otherwise it might when there is most need. A wise, grave, peaceable man, may always have his sword in readiness, and that also very bright, keen, and sharp: but he will not be very ready to pluck it out of his scabbard; he rather keepeth it for a time of need, when it should stand him in most steed. Such husbands therefore as are too frequent in their commands, show themselves nor grave, nor wise, nor lovers of peace. As the use of an husband's authority in commanding must be 2. Commanding must be by way of entreating. Philem. 9 rare, so when there is occasion to use it, it must be with such mildness and moderation tempered, so as (according to Saint Paul's example) though he have power to command that which is convenient, yet for love's sake he rather entreat it. Note how mildly Abram frameth his speech to his wife, Say I pray thee Gen. 12. 13. (saith he) thou art my sister. Though the thing he required favoured of too much weakness, yet his manner of requiring it was well beseeming a kind husband. §. 32. Of husband's insolency and peremptoriness. Contrary is the insolency of many, who cannot speak to their wives, but in commanding-wise. Their authority is like a swaggerers sword, which cannot long rest in the sheath, but upon every small occasion is drawn forth. This frequent use of commanding, maketh their commandments nought regarded. The like may be said of them who are too peremptory in commanding: there must be no saying of nay, to that which they say: upon command they will have their mind done, and no other way: no persuasion, no entreaty shall be used: they will rather not at all have their will done, than not upon absolute command: nay they will not suffer others, in case of any refusal, to entreat, or persuade, but will try what absolutely they can do by authority. Thus as by trying to bend steel how far it will go, it oft breaketh; so by putting their authority to the uttermost trial, they oft lose all their authority: in which case the mends (as we speak) is in their own hands. §. 33. Of an husbands * Treat. 3. §. 47. Husband's ought to reprove. reproving his wife. 4. The authority and charge which God hath given to an husband over his wife, do require that as good and just occasion is offered, he should reprove her: for this is an especial means to draw her from those sins, wherein otherwise she might live and lie, yea and die also; and so live, lie, and die under God's wrath: out of which misery and wretchedness to free a wife, is as great a token of love, as to pull her out of the water when she is in danger of drowning, or out of the fire when she is in danger of burning. Solomon thus styleth reproofs, a Pro. 15. 31. reproofs of life, and expressly noteth b & 6. 23. reproofs to be the way of life, a means to breed and preserve spiritual life, and to bring one unto eternal life, and so to escape death and damnation. In these respects rebukes are called a precious balm, or excellent oil, which may heal a wound, but make none: it c Psal. 141. 5. See the fruits of reproof, Treat. 3. §. 47. breaketh not the head, as the Psalmist speaketh. Upon this ground, no doubt, it is noted of many good husbands, who were without all question, loving, kind, meek, and mild husbands, that they reproved their wives: as d Gen. 30. 2. jaakob, e job 2. 10. job, f 2 Sam. 6. 21, 22. David, and others. §. 34. Of neglecting reproof. Contrary is a servile and timorous mind of many husbands, who are loath to offend, and (as they think) to provoke their wives; and thereupon choose rather to let them continue in sin, then tell them of it. Wherein they both dishonour their place, and the image of God, which by virtue of their place they carry, and also in effect and in truth hate their wives; which the Law implieth, where it saith, Thou shalt not hate thy brother in thine heart, Levit. 19 17. but shalt plainly rebuke thy neighbour, and not suffer sin upon him. §. 35. Of * Treat. 3. §. 47 An husband's reproof must be sweetened with mildness. well ordering reproof in the matter thereof. That an husband may evidently demonstrate that his reproving of his wife is indeed a fruit of his love, he must have an especial care to sweeten it, especially with mildness: for it is the bitterest pill that by an husband can be given to a wife. It is a verbal correction, & in that respect a middle means (as I may so speak) betwixt admonition and correction; partaking somewhat of both: it goeth no further than words, and so is an admonition: the words of a reproof are sharp, and so it is a correction: though it be but a mild correction, yet it is a sharp admonition; and all the correction which by himself an husband can give his wife: for we shall * §. 44. after show that he may not proceed to blows, and strokes. To sweeten reproof with mildness respect must be had (as before was noted of commanding) both to the matter, and also to the manner thereof. The matter of reproof must be Matter of reproof. 1. Just. 1. Just. 2. Weighty. justice requireth that it be a truth, and a known truth, even a thing whereof he is assured, for which he reproveth his wife. Christ in giving direction for reproving aright, layeth down this as a ground, If thy brother shall trespass, etc. a trespass Matth. 18. 15. therefore must go before reproof: where no trespass is, there reproof is unjust. Again, the Apostle adviseth that an accusation should not 1 Tim 5. 19 be received but under two, or three witnesses; whereby he implieth that a light report must not be received, but where blame is laid, there must be two or three witnesses to confirm it, so as he that censureth may have good and sure ground for that which he doth: indeed that advice was in particular given about an elder, but from the less to the greater it will follow to be a good advice concerning wives: for no kind of person must be more wary in laying blame upon another and reprooving for the same, than an husband on his wife. Equity further requireth that the matter for which an husband 2. Weigh. y. reproveth his wife be weighty; namely for some fault that is dangerous to her soul, hurtful to their estate, contagious by reason of ill example to children, and others in the family, but most of all for sin against God which provoketh his wrath, and pulleth down his heavy curse upon him, her, and the whole family. When that for which a wife is reproved is a truth, a known truth, and a weighty truth, the husband in performing this duty justifieth his deed, showeth that there was need thereof, and so giveth evidence of his love, maketh his reproof to pierce the more deeply, and so maketh her the more ashamed of her fault; whence it will follow, that either she will amend her fault or at least will have her mouth stopped, so as she shall have nothing to except against it. The reproof of the three Saints before mentioned, m Gen. 30. 2. jaakob, n job 2. 10. job, and o 2 Sam. 6. 21, 22. David, were answerable to these points of justice and wisdom: and the effects thereof answerable to those which we have noted in this reason, as the silence of the three wives implieth: for none of them replied again. §. 36. Of undue reproof. Contrary to the forenamed justice and equity are overlight Contrary, 1. Credulity. credulity and undue suspicion. Credulity is when credence is given to every light report, and thereupon blame laid upon the wife before any just proof be made of that for which she is blamed: whereby it oft cometh to pass, that she is wrongfully and unjustly blamed: which if she be, what good fruit can proceed from such reproofs? yea what evil fruits are not like to proceed from thence, as secret discontent (if not malice and hatred) and open contentions and brawlings? The like may be said of light and causeless suspicion, which 2. Suspicion. is the mother of jealousy, and the very bane of marriage, from whence the devil taketh great advantage against them both, seeking thereby to unloose that knot which God hath so firmly knit betwixt them. Suspicion to the mind is as a coloured glass to the eye, which representeth things to the sight not as indeed they are in their own true colour, but as the colour of the glass is. Suspicion will make a man pervert every thing that his wife doth, and blame her many times for such things as are praiseworthy: in which case what can be thought, but that an husband seeketh advantage against his wife, rather than any good unto her? If to those two forenamed vices (credulity and suspicion) he 3. Rashness. ●dde rashness and hastiness in reproving, and make every ●mall and light matter which any way he disliketh, matter of reproof, doth he not proclaim to all that shall know it, that he loves chiding more than he loves his wife? Yea is not this the ready way to make all his reproof (if not scorned) lightly regarded? What then will be the profit of them? §. 37. Whether an husband may reprove his wife for such things as he is guilty of. To the matter of reproof some add, that an husband ought not to reprove his wife for that fault whereof he himself is guilty: but I make doubt of this direction. I deny not but that he ought to have an especial care that he be not guilty of that crime for which he blameth his wife; otherwise, 1. he blunteth the edge of his reproof, so as readily it cannot pierce into her heart. 2. He causeth it to rebound back again upon himself with these reproaches, Physician healethy Luk 4. 23. Mat. 7. 5. Rom. 2. 21. Rom. 2. 1. self: Hypocrite first cast the beam out of thine own eye. Thou that teachest another teachest thou not thyself? 3. He is an heavy witness against himself; for in that he judgeth another he condemneth himself. But thereupon to infer, that because he is guilty of such vices as are in his wife, he ought not to reprove her though she be worthy to be reproved, is scarce sound and good divinity: for thus he maketh himself guilty of a double fault, one of committing the sin himself, the other of suffering his wife to lie therein: whereas if he reproved his wife, he might thereby reclaim both her and himself: for I doubt not but his reproving of his wife would strike deeper into his own conscience then if a third should reprove them both. How were judah and David strooken to Gen. 38. 26. 2 Sam. 12. 13. the heart after they had given sentence against such crimes as they themselves were guilty of? It is a good advice that no man be guilty of that which he reproveth in his wife, but it is no good rule to say, no man ought to reprove his wife of that whereof he is guilty. §. 38. Of well ordering reproof in the manner thereof, Like directions to those which were given for the manner Manner of reproving. of commanding must be observed in the manner of reproving. Reproofs therefore must be Rare. Meek. When reproofs are seldom used, not but upon urgent and 1. Seldom. necessary occasion, 1. It showeth that an husband taketh no delight in rebuking his wife, but is even forced thereto. 2. It maketh his wife much more regard it. 3. It is like to work a more perfect cure, for seldom and rare reproofs do commonly pierce most deeply. Contrary is continual chiding, and finding fault with a Contrary, continual chiding. wife for every thing amiss: if not only the wife herself, but a child, or servant, or any else in the house do amiss, the wife shall be blamed for it. This is too common a fault in husbands: whereby they much provoke their wives; yea and many times make them no more regard a reproof then any other word. For as birds which always abide in Belfries where much ringing is, are not a whit affrighted with their loud sound; so wives who have their ears from time to time filled with their husband's rebuke, by use are brought, nothing at all to be moved therewith. 2. That a reproof must be given in meekness is clear by 2. Reprove mildly. Gal 6. 1. the Apostles general precept of restoring one in the spirit of meekness: for a right manner of reproving is thereby particularly intended. Now of all with whom we have to do, no fitter object for meekness then a wife, who in a more peculiar manner then any other is thine own flesh. Meekness hath respect both to secrecy of place, and to softness of words. When an husband is alone with his wife, then is the fittest 3. Reprove in secret. Mat. 18. 15. season for reproof: thus will reproof be answerable to Christ's direction: tell him his fault between thee and him alone (saith Christ of a brother:) but no brother must be tendered more than a wife. Thus will it also soak better into her soul, when no conceit of dishonour and discredit shall arise up to hinder the work of it: which conceits will be ready to arise when a reproof is given in public before others. Thus likewise will occasion be taken away from children and servants of despising her: which otherwise they would quickly take, ●f before them she should be rebuked; gathering from thence, ●hat she is kept under as much as they: now because she is with him a joint governor of them, he ought by all means to maintain her reputation before them. 1. Quest. What if she regard not a rebuke in secret? Direction for reproving such a wife as regardeth not a secret reproof. Mat. 18. 15. Answ. He may follow Christ's direction, Take one or two more, namely wise, grave, faithful friends, if it may be, of her kindred, as her parents (if she have any living) or such as are in course of nature next to parents (if they be not partial on her side) and before them rebuke her: but by no means before any of the house under her government. 2. Quest. What if her fault be public, such an one as Direction for reproving a wife whose offence is public. may be an ill example to them of the house, it being committed in their sight, or brought some other way to their knowledge? Answ. Wisely he must so manifest his dislike of her fault, as he no way impair her honour: he may therefore declare that such a thing was not well done, and fore-warne his household of committing the like; yea roundly threaten them that if any of them do the like they shall dear repent it; and if such as are under correction offend therein, the more surely and severely correct them, even because they have taken example. Thus shall he testify a great good respect of his wife, and also a thorough dislike and hatred of her sin. 2. A soft tongue (as Solomon noteth) breaketh the bones, 4. Reprove gently. Pro. 25. 15. that is, softeneth an hard heart, and beateth down a stout stomach. How will it then work upon a soft heart, and gentle disposition? If therefore an husband look to do good by reproving his wife, his reproof must be so ordered, as it may seem to be rather a gentle admonition, than a sharp rebuke. He may and ought plainly to declare her fault unto her, but in mild and meek terms, without reviling, opprobrious and ignominious words. Quest. What if her fault be an heinous notorious sin? Answ. In an extraordinary case some sharpness may be A reproof may be sharp not bitter. Gen. 30. 2. job 2. 10. used: as the reproofs of jaakob, job, and David do show, for they were every one of them sharp: but yet this sharpness must not be made bitter by any evil language. A woman's wickedness may not move an husband to be froward, and 2 Sam. 6. 21, 22. Rebuke never to be given by a man in passion. outrageous; but rather to be the more watchful over himself, that he contain himself within the bounds of discretion and moderation. For which end it is meet that husbands lay it down for a rule, never to rebuke their wives when they are in passion. Passion raiseth a dark mist before the eyes of reason; which, while it remaineth, keepeth reason from giving any good direction. Yea passion is as a fire, and it so incenseth a man, and distempereth him, that in his disorder he can keep no mean or measure. Howsoever a man be not able to rule himself when passion is stirred up, yet, if before hand while his eye is single, and his whole body light, while he is in tune (as we Mat. 6. 22. speak) and well tempered, he resolvedly determine with himself not to do such or such a thing in his passion; that foregoing resolution will be an especial means to make him forbear doing that in passion, which if he should do, he could not in passion well order and moderate. For if once he begin to do a thing in passion, the least provocation that can be, will be as bellowes to blow up that fire into a flame. In regard of the violence of passion (wherein women by Rebuke to be put off while a wife is in passion. reason of the weakness of their judgement are for the most part most violent) it is also the part of a wise man to forbear this duty of reproving his wife even when she is in passion. For as it is needful that he should be in case well to give a reproof, so as needful it is that she should be in case well to take a rebuke. Passion both filleth and festereth one's heart. The heart then being full of passion, what room is left for good advice? will a man powre wine into a vessel full of water, or stay, till all the water be dreaned out? The heart also being so festered as it savoureth of nothing but passion, what good can then good advice do? It is therefore an especial point of wisdom, and showeth a good respect that a man beareth to his wife, yea it savoureth of much meekness and moderation for an husband, well to weigh both his own and his wife's temper when he reproveth her, and to forbear doing it while either he or she be in passion. §. 39 Of undiscreet reprooving a wife. Contrary is the indiscretion of husbands who regard nor place, nor persons, nor time, nor temper of themselves or their wives, nor any other circumstance in reproving, but like Saul (who at a table where a great feast was, in presence of his Nobles and Captains, when he was enraged with anger, with most virulent and bitter speeches not rebuked only but reproached also his son, and that with such words as he spared not his own wife; for in his passion he called his son, son 1 Sam. 20. 30. of the perverse rebellious woman:) like this foolish and furious Saul, I say, they take the most open place of the family before children, servants, and whole house, to reprove their wives; and that with such bitter and disgraceful terms, as either they provoke their wives to answer again for maintaining (as they think) their own credit and reputation, (thus jonathan 1 Sam. 20. 32. was provoked to answer his father again:) or else give them of the house that behold her thus trampled under foot, occasion to set their feet also upon her. Most husbands are forward enough to reprove, but few do it in meekness, and moderation. They cannot do it but in company, nor without bitter words. Many in rebuking their wives, stick not to use all the evil terms that they can think of, even such as tend not only to their wife's dishonour, but also to their own and their children's infamy. The reason whereof is, because they never rebuke but when they are in passion, and so scarce know what they do: whereby also they stir up passion in their wives, and yet for all that refrain not any whit the more, but rather grow more violent: as when the heat of two fires meet together, the flame must needs be the greater. This being the preposterous practice of many husbands, is it any marvel that ordinarily so little good, and so much hurt is done by reproving? Nay, would it not be a wonder, if any good, and no hurt should be done thereby? This therefore though it be a duty, yet a duty rarely and with great moderation to be used. Thus far of an husband's mildness in his speeches to his wife. §. 40. Of an husband's * Treat. 3. §. 10. amiable countenance towards his wife. An husband's carriage towards his wife must be answerable An husband's carriage must be mild. to his speech, or else all the mildness thereof will seem but complemental. A man's carriage compriseth under it, his Countenance, Gesture, Actions: in all which must mildness be seated. 1. His countenance in his wife's presence, and towards his 1. A mild countenance. wife, must be composed to an amiable pleasantness. His authority over her, and eminency above her, may not make him forget the near conjunction and union betwixt them. Under the face and countenance I comprise head, brow, eyes, lips and such other parts which are, according as they are framed, signs of amiableness, or discontentedness. Now among, and above other parts of the body, the outward composition of the countenance doth soon and best declare the inward disposition of the heart. By Esau's pleasant countenance jaakob perceived that he was pacified in his heart towards him, and thereupon said, I have seen thy face as though I had Gen. 33. 10. seen the face of God, that is, an amiable, gracious countenance. On this ground David desired God, to lift up the light of his Psal. 4. 6. countenance upon him, that thereby he might know the favour and love of God towards him. On the other side by a frowning and lowering face, by hanging down the head, putting out the lips, with the like, anger, malice, grief, with other like affections of heart, are manifested: by Cain's casting down Gen. 4. 6. of his countenance God discerned anger and envy to be in his heart: by Laban's countenance jaakob observed that his affection Gen. 31. 2. was turned from him. A wife then beholding mildness and amiableness in her husband's face, beholds it as the face of God, and therein as in a looking glass beholds the kindness and love of his heart, and so hath her heart thereby the more firmly knit unto him, and is moved the more to respect him. §. 41. Of husbands too great austerity. Contrary is 1. A lofty proud countenance, as of an imperious Contrary. 1. A lofty brow. Lord over his vassals. 2. A grim stern countenance, as of a judge over poor prisoners. 2. A grim look. 3. A lowering frowning countenance, as of a discontented 3. A frowning forehead. creditor over a desperate debtor. 4. A fierce fiery countenance, as of an angry King over a 4. A fiery eye. ●biect that hath displeased him. These and such like countenances as they manifest a proud, stout, furious discontented disposition of heart, so they cannot but give great discontent to a wife, yea and much affright her being but a weak vessel, and alienate her heart and affection from him. §. 42. Of an husband's familiar gesture with his wife. II. An husband's gesture ought to be so familiar, and amiable 2. Mild geslure. towards his wife, as others may discern him to be her husband, and his wife may be provoked to be familiar with him. They which this way are ready to show themselves kind and mild husbands, are prone to exceed and so to fall into an extreme on the right hand: for some are never well but when they have their wives in their laps, ever colling, kissing, and dallying with them, they care not in what company; thus they show more lightness, fondness, and dotage, then true kindness and love, which forgetteth not an husband-like gravity, sobriety, modesty and decency. Some stick not to allege isaack's sporting with Rebeckah, to Object. countenance their lasciviousness. Gen. 26. 8. But they forget that what Isaak did, was when he and his Answ. wife were alone: he was seen through a window. Much greater liberty is granted to man and wife when they are alone, then in company. Besides there are many other ways to show kindness and familiarity, then by lightness and wantonness. §. 43. Of an husband's strangeness to his wife. Contrary to the familiarity I speak of, is (as we speak) strangeness, when an husband so carrieth himself towards his wife as if she were a stranger to him: if he come in company where his wife is, of all other women he will not turn to her, nor take notice of her. This fault is so much the greater if such a man be of a free pleasant carriage, and use to be merry and familiar with other women. Though his mirth and familiarity be such as is not unbeseeming a Christian, yet his carriage being of another temper towards his wife, it may be a means to breed jealousy in her. Many think outward kind gesture towards wife to be fondness, but if they knew what a means it is to stir up, increase, and preserve love in a wife's heart to her husband, they would be otherwise minded. §. 43. Of an husbands giving favours to his wife. III. Actions are of all other the most real demonstrations of true kindness, wherein an husband must not fail, as he would have his kind speech, countenance, and gesture to be taken in the better part. Kindness and mildness in action consisteth in giving favours (as we speak) unto his wife. This is expressly noted in Elkanah, who every year gave favours to 1 Sam. 1. 4, 5. his wives. Thus an husband as he testifieth his love to his wife, so he will much provoke her to do all duty to him. A small gift, as an action of kindness freely given, not upon any debt, but in testimony of love, doth more work on the heart of her to whom it is given, then much more given upon contract, or for a work done, whereby it may seem to be deserved. In giving favours to a wife, an husband ought to be more bountiful and liberal, then to others, that so she may see thereby he loves her above all; as it is noted that Elkanah gave Annah a worthy portion, because he loved her. And in giving 1 Sam. 1. 4. favours it is best to bestow them with his own hands, unless he be absent from her. §. 44. Of husband's beating their wives. Contrary are the furious, and spiteful actions of many unkind husbands (heads too heady) whose favours are buffets, Vipera virus ob venerationem nuptiarum evomit. Et tu duritiem animi, tuferitatem, tu crudelitatem ob unionis reverentiam non deponis? Basil. Hexaem. hom. 7. Ambr. Hexaem. l. 5. c. 7. urget hanc ipsam similitudinem. blows, strokes, & stripes: wherein they are worse than the venomous viper. For the viper for his mates sake casteth out his poison: and wilt not thou, o husband, in respect of that near union which is betwixt thee and thy wife, lay aside thy fierceness and cruelty? Many wives by reason of their husband's fury, are in worse case than servants: for 1. Such as will not give a blow to a servant, care not what load they lay upon their wives. 2. Where servants have but a time and term to be under the tyranny of such furious men, poor wives are tied to them all their life long. 3. Wife's can not have so good remedy by the help of law against cruel husbands, as servants may have against cruel masters. 4. Master's have not such opportunity to exercise their cruelty over servants as husbands over wives, who are to be continually at board and bed with their husbands. 5. The nearer wives are, and the dearer they ought to be to their husbands, the more grievous must strokes needs be when they are given by an husband's hand, then by a masters. Huiusmodi virum (siquidem vir appellandus est potius quam fera) & patricidae, & matricidae similem dixeris. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. 6. The less power and authority that an husband hath to strike his wife, than a master to strike a servant, the more heavy do his strokes seem to be, and the worse doth the case of a wife seem to be in that respect, then of a servant. Not unfitly therefore is such a man (if he may be thought a man rather than a beast) said to be like a father-queller and mother-queller. Quest. May not then an husband beat his wife? An husband may not beat his wife. Answ. With submission to better judgements, I think he may not: my reasons are these. 1. There is no warrant throughout the whole Scripture Reasons. 1. No warrant in the word. by precept, or example for it: which argument though it be negative, yet for the point in hand is a forceable argument in two respects. 1. Because the Scripture hath so plentifully and particularly declared the several duties of husbands and wives: and yet hath delivered nothing concerning an husbands striking and beating his wife. 2. Because it hath also plentifully and particularly spoken of all such as are to correct, and of their manner of correcting, and of their bearing correction who are to be corrected, and of the use they are to make thereof; and yet not any thing at all concerning an husbands punishing, or a wife's bearing in this kind. The Scripture being so silent in this point, we may well infer that God hath not ranked wives among those in the family who are to be corrected. 2. That small disparity which (as I have * §. 4. before showed) is 2. Small disparity. betwixt man and wife, permitteth not so high a power in an husband, and so low a servitude in a wife, as for him to beat her. Can it be thought reasonable that she who is the man's perpetual bedfellow, who hath power over his body, who Summa iniuria est vitae sociam, & in rebus necessarijs tibi coniunctam, taquàm mancipium ignominia affioere. Chrys. ibid. is a joint parent of the children, a joint governor of the family, should be beaten by his hands? What if children or servants should know of it? (as they must needs: for how can such a thing be done in the house and they of the house know it not?) can they respect her as a mother, or a mistress who is under correction as well as they? 3. The near conjunction, and very union that is betwixt 3. near conjunction. man and wife suffereth not such dealing to pass betwixt them. The wife is as a man's self, a Eph. 5. 31. They two are one flesh. No man but a frantic, furious, desperate wretch will beat himself. Two sorts of men are in Scripture noted to cut and launch their own flesh, idolaters, as the b 1 King. 18. 28. Baalites, and Daemoniacks, as c Mar. 5. 5. he that was possessed with a legion of devils. Such are they who beat their wives, either blinded in their understanding, or possessed with a devil. Object. He that is best in his wits will suffer his body to be pinched, pricked, launched, and otherwise pained, if it be needful and behooveful. Answ. 1. A man's heart will not suffer him to do any of these himself: their are Surgeons whose office it is to do such things: if the Chirurgeon himself have need of any such remedy for his own body, he will use the help of another Chirurgeon. If the case so stand as a wife must needs be beaten, it is fitter for an husband to refer the matter to a public Magistrate (who is as an approved and licenced Chirurgeon) and not to do it with his own hands. 2. Though some parts of the body may be so dealt withal, yet every part may not, as the heart, which the wife is to the man. 3. The comparison holdeth not. For the forenamed pinching, launching, etc. is no punishment for any fault, as the beating of a wife in question is, there is no question but a man that hath skill may if need be open a vein, launch a boil, splinter a broken bone, or disjointed joint in his wife's body, which may be more painful than correction: and herein the comparison holdeth, but not in the other. 2. Object. There is as near a conjunction betwixt Christ and his Church, as betwixt man and wife: yet Christ for beareth not to correct and punish his Church. Answ. There is a double relation betwixt Christ and the Church: he is an husband unto it, having made it of his flesh, and of his bones: and a supreme Lord over it, having all power Eph. 5. 30. Mat. 28. 18. in heaven and earth committed unto him. In this latter respect he punisheth, not in the former. An husband is not such a supreme Lord over his wife: therefore Christ's example, is no warrant to him. 4. There is no hope of any good to proceed from an husbands 4. No profit: much mischief. beating of his wife: for where the party corrected is persuaded that the party which correcteth hath no authority or right so to do, it will not be brought patiently to take it: but will resist, and strive if it be possible to get the mastery. Let a stranger strike such a child of years or a servant as will patiently bear many strokes at a parents or master's hand, they will turn again at that stranger, and endeavour to give him as good as he brings: now a wife having no ground to be persuaded that her husband hath authority to Adhibitis verberibus morbus non tollitur, sed augetur, & exasperatur. Melch. jun. quaest. Polit. par. 2. beat her, what hope is there that she will patiently bear it, and be bettered by it? Or rather is it not likely that she will, if she can, rise against him, overmaster him (as many do) and never do any duty aright? A fault in a wife is not taken away but increased by blows. Object. Smart and pain may make her dread her husband, stand in awe of him, and do her duty the better. Answ. Such dread and awe beseems neither the place of an husband to exact it, nor the place of a wife to yield it. Though perforce she may be brought to yield some outward subjection, yet inward hatred of her husband's person may be joined therewith, which is as bad, if not worse than outward disobedience. Object. She may be of so outrageous a disposition, as, but by Nullum sit tam magnum peccatum, quod ad verberandum uxorem compellat. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. force, she will not be kept in any compass. 1. Answ. It hath been of old time answered, that no fault should be so great, as to compel an husband to beat his wife. 2. Answ. Other forceable means may be used besides beating by her husband's hands: she may be restrained of liberty, denied such things as she most affecteth, be kept up, as it were, in hold; and, if no other means will serve the turn, be put over to the Magistrates hands, that if she be of so servile a disposition, as by no other means she will be kept under then by fear and force, by smart and pain, she may fear the Magistrate, and feel his hand, rather than her husbands. Object. If a wife wax so mannish, or rather mad, as to offer to strike and beat her husband, may he not in that case beat her to make her cease her outrage? Answ. I doubt not but that that good provision which is made in law to preserve a man's life, may be applied to this purpose. The law simply condemns all murder; yet if a man be so assaulted, as there is no way to preserve his own life, but by taking away his life that assaults him, it condemneth not him as a murderer, because he did it in defence of himself. So if an husband Sedefendendo. be set upon by his wife, it is lawful and expedient that he defend himself, and if he can do it no other ways but by striking her, that is not to be reckoned an unlawful beating her. §. 45. Of an husbands bearing with his wines infirmities. Hither to of the husbands avoiding of offence, a word concerning his bearing with offence. A general duty it is, common to all of all sorts, to bear one Gal. 6. 2. another's burden: in which extent even a wife is to bear her husband's burden, because he, as every one else, is subject to slip and fall, and so hath need to be supported. Yet after a more special and peculiar manner doth this duty belong to an husband, and that in two respects. 1. Of the two, he is more bound then his wife, because in relation to his wife he is the stronger: for she is the weaker vessel, Considera mulierem debile vas esse: tu autem vir propterea princeps factus es, ut subditae feras imbecillitatem. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1. Cor. 11. 1. Pet. 3. 7. But the strong are most bound to bear with the infirmities of the weak, Rom. 15. 1. 2. He is bound to bear with his wife more than with any other, because of that near conjunction which is betwixt them: he that cannot bear with his wife, his flesh, can bear with no body. The reason alleged by the Apostle to move a man to dwell with his wife according to knowledge, and to give honour to her, intimated in this phrase, as to the weaker vessel, showeth that this is a peculiar duty belonging to an husband, wherein, and whereby he 1. Pet. 3. 7. may both manifest his knowledge and wisdom, and also do honour to his wife. For why is he put in mind of her weakness, but to show he should bear with her? As that phrase intimateth the duty, so also it intimateth a good reason to enforce it. For precious things, whereof we make high account, the weaker they be, the more tenderly, and charily are they handled, as Cheney dishes, and crystal glasses: and of all parts of the body, the eye is most tenderly handled. Now what things, what persons are more dear and precious than a wife? yet withal she is a weak vessel: therefore she is much to be borne withal. For an husband's better direction herein, difference must be Directions to husbands for bearing with their wife's infirmities. made betwixt infirmities: for some are natural imperfections, other are actual transgressions. Natural imperfections are inward, (as slowness in conceit, dulness in apprehension, shortness of memory, hastiness in passion, etc.) or outward, (as lameness, blindness, deafness, or any other defect, and deformity of body.) These infirmities should breed pity, compassion, commiseration, yea and greater tenderness and respect, but no offence. Note Abraham's example in this case: his wife was barren, yet he despised Neque Saram tanquam sterilem contempsit Abraham: n●que quicquam tale exprobavit. Si uxor pauper sit, noli exprobare: & si stulta, noli ei insultare, Ibid. Uxor iracunda etc. admonenda & adiuvanda consilio, & omni conatu anniten. dumb, ut illis liberetur affectibus, Ibid. her not for it, nor upbraided her with any such thing. Actual transgressions are breaches of God's law: whereof such are here meant, as are most directly tending to his own disquiet, and disadvantage, as shrewishness, waywardness, niceness, stubbornness, etc. In the bearing of these must an husband especially show his wisdom, and that sundry ways. 1. By using the best and mildest means he can to redress them, as meek admonition, seasonable advice, gentle entreaty, and compassionate affection. Elkanah supposing that his wife offended in her passion, thus dealt with her and supported her. 2. By removing the stone whereat she stumbleth, by taking away the occasion (so far as conveniently he can) which maketh her offend. Thus Abram, and that by God's advice, put Hagar and her son out of the house, because they were an offence to Sarah. 3. By turning his eyes away (if the matter be not great, but 1 Sam. 1. 8. Gen. 21. 14. such as may be tolerated) and taking no notice of the offence, but rather passing by it, as if he perceived it not. Solomon saith, that it is a man's glory to pass over a transgression: and he exhorteth a Prou. 19 11. Eccls 7. 23. man not to give his heart to all the words that men speak. 4. By forgiving and forgetting it (if notice be taken thereof.) jaakob took notice of Rachel's rash, and froward demand, for he Gen. 30. 1. 2, etc. rebuked her for it: yet in that he readily yielded to that which afterwards she moved him unto, it appeareth that he forgave the offence, if not forgot it. The best trial of a man's affection to his wife, and of his wisdom Reason. Best trial of a man's wisdom & love. in ordering the same, is in this point of bearing with offences. Not to be offended with a wife that giveth no offence is not praiseworthy: heathen men may go so far. Note what Christ saith of this case, If ye love them which love you, and do good to Matth. 5. 46. Luk. 6. 32, 33. them that do good to you, what thanks and reward have ye? for publicans, and sinners do the same: but gently to forbear, and wisely to pass over offences when they are given, not to be provoked when there is cause of provocation ministered, is a true Christian virtue, a virtue beseeming husbands better than any other kind of men. §. 46. Of husband's testiness. Contrary is testiness, and peevishness, when husbands are moved with the least provocation, like tinder catching fire at the least spark that falleth upon it: yea many are like gunpowder, which not only taketh fire, but also breaketh out into a violent flame, upon the least touch of fire: as gunpowder is dangerous to be kept in an house, so such husbands to be joined so nearly to wives as marriage joineth them. If it be said, that as gunpowder doth no hurt, if fire come not at it; so they are good and kind, if they be not provoked and displeased. I answer, that we have a proverb that saith, The devil is good while he is pleased, yet it is not safe to have the devil too near. It is as impossible (considering man's weakness) that he should live and converse with any, and not give offence, as for flint stones long to beat and dash against one another, & no spark of fire to come from them. How then may it be thought possible for a wife, who is so continually conversant with her husband, and the weaker vessel, to live without giving him offence? It is no very kind speech, which husbands use, especially if they be told of their unkindness, Let my wife deserve favour, and she shall have it. How little favour would such husbands have of Christ their husband, if he should be of that mind towards them? Thus far hath been handled the first part of an husbands well managing his authority, by a tender respect of his wife. The second is a provident care for her. §. 46. Of an husband's provident care for his wife. An husband that tenderly respecteth his wife, but providently careth not for her, showeth more affection than discretion: he may have a kind heart, but he wants a wise head. How then can he be a good head unto his wife? Some present contentment she may have by him: but small profit and benefit can she reap from him. Those duties therefore which have been delivered must be done, but these that follow must by no means be left undone. An husband's provident care is noted in that office of Christ, wherein an husband resembleth him, namely, to be a Saviour of Eph. 5. 23. the body, as hath been * Treat. 1. §. 15. & Treat. 3. §. 73. before declared. It consisteth 1. In providing things needful for his wife. 2. In protecting her from things hurtful. 1. A careful providing of things needful, is a principal part of 1. Providing things needful. that honour, which husbands are to give unto their wives. For where the Apostle saith, that Elders are worthy of double honour, 1 Pet. 3. 7. 1 Tim. 5. 17. he meaneth maintenance as well as reverence. The Apostle counteth him worse than an Infidel, that provideth not for his own, and specially for those of his own house. Who are of an husband's house, 1 Tim. 5. 8. if not his wife? in his house, who more properly his own, than his wife? If then an husband provide not for his wife, what is he Recordare quòd pater uxoris tamquam depositum quoddam filiam tibi tradidit, & omnibus relictis, matre, domo, & seipso, omnem eius curam tuae dexterae commisit. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1. Cor. 11. to be accounted? Great reason he should provide for her, because he hath taken her from her parents and friends, and hath received that portion which they allotted her, and hath authority committed unto him over her, and she is put in subjection under him: her friends having given away her portion, and their power over her, and committed all to him, will take no further care for her: she being in subjection under him cannot without him provide for herself. Who then shall provide for her if he do not, whose wholly and only she is? Contrary is their mind, who take a wife only for their own Contrary, to take a wife only for himself. content, or delight, or gain, and never think of that charge which together with a wife they take upon them. According to their mind is their practice: for when they have a wife they neglect her in every thing but what may stand with their own ends. Much have they to answer for: and so much the more, because a wife is an especial pledge of God's favour. Pro. 18. 22. §. 47. Of an husbands providing means of spiritual edisication for his wife. In this provident care which an husband ought to have of his wife, we will consider the Extent thereof. Continuance It aught to extend both to herself, and to others. In regard of herself, to her Soul. Body. For her Soul, means of spiritual edification must be provided, and those both private and public. Private means, are Private means of edification. holy and religious exercises in the house, as reading the word, prayer, catechising, and such like; which being the spiritual food of the soul are to be every day, as our bodily food, provided and used. An husband as a master of a family must provide these for the good of his whole house; but as an husband, in special for the good of his wife: for to his wife, as well as to the whole house he is a King, a Priest, and a Prophet. By himself therefore, for his wife's good, ought he to perform these things, or to provide that they may be done by some other. C●raelius himself performed those exercises. Act. 10. 2, 30. judg. 17. 10. Micah hired a Levite (though his Idolatry were evil, yet his care to have a Levite in his house was commendable.) The 2 King. 4. 11. Shunemites' husband provided a chamber for the Prophet, and that especially for his wife's sake, for it was at her request. Public means are the holy ordinances of God publicly Public means of edification. performed by God's Minister. The care of an husband for his wife in this respect is, so to order his habitation, and provide other needful things, as his wife may be made partaker thereof. It is expressly noted of Elkanah that he so provided for his 1 Sam. 1. 7. & 2. 19 Luk. 2. 41. wives, that they went with him every year to the house of God: the like is intimated of joseph the husband of the virgin Mary. In those days there was a public place and house of God, whither all God's people (how far soever they dwelled from it) were to resort every year: the places where Elkanah and joseph dwelled, were far remote from the house of God, yet they so provided, as not only themselves, but their wives also went to the public worship of God. Now there are many houses of God, places for the public worship of God, but yet through the corruption of our times, the ministry of the word (the most principal means of spiritual edification) is not every where to be enjoyed: therefore such aught an husband's care for his wife in this respect to be, as to dwell where she may have the benefit of preaching the word, or else so to provide for her, as she may weekly go where it may be had. If men of wisdom and ability make a purchase, or build an house for their habitation, they will be sure it shall be where sweet rivers and waters are, and good pasture ground, and where all needful provision may be had. God's word preached is a spring of water of life; the place where it is preached a pleasant, profitable pasture; all needful provision for the soul may there be had. Let this therefore be most of all inquired after: and no habitation settled but where this may be had. §. 48. Of neglecting their wife's edification. Contrary is their practice, who having their calling in places where the word is plentiful, yet upon outward respects of pleasure, delight, ease, and profit, remove their families into remote places where preaching is scarce, if at all; and there leave their wives to govern the family, not regarding their want of the word, for as much as they themselves oft coming to London or other like places by reason of their calling, enjoy the word themselves. Many Citizens, Lawyers, and others are guilty of great neglect of their wives in this respect. So also are they, who abandon all religious exercises out of their houses, making their houses rather stews of the devil, than Churches of God. If for want of means, either public or private, a wife live and die in ignorance, profaneness, infidelity, and impenitency, which cause eternal damnation, assuredly her blood shall be required at his hands: for an husband Ezek. 3. 18. etc. is God's watchman to his wife. §. 49. Of an husbands providing things needful for his wife's boay. To the body also must an husband's provident care of his wife extend: and that both in health and sickness. In health by providing such things as are needful to preserve health, as competent food, raiment, and the like necessaries. Where the b Jsa. 4. 1. Prophet to aggravate the misery of the people saith, Seven women shall take hold of one man, saying, We will eat our own bread, and wear our own apparel, only let us be called by thy name, intimateth, that it was an husband's duty to provide bread and apparel, that is, all necessaries for his wife. Which the c Exo. 21. 10. law also implieth, where it inioyneth him that taketh one wife upon another, not to diminish the food and raiment of the former. In sickness such things are to be provided as are needful either to recover her health, or to comfort, cherish and refresh her in her sickness. This was * Treat. 2. Part. 2. §. 29. before noted among common mutual duties; for by virtue of the matrimonial bond it belongeth both to man and wife: but to the man it appertaineth by virtue of that power and charge which he hath over his wife: and therefore it was needful here to be touched. §. 50. Of an husband's Treat. 3. §. 49. provident care for his wife about her childbearing. Most proper to this place is that provident care which husbands ought to have of their wives both before and in the time of their travel and childbed: and that in two things especially. 1. In procuring for their wives to the uttermost of their power and ability, such things as may save their longing, in case they do long (as in all ages women in the time of breeding and bearing child, have been subject thereunto.) For it is well known, that it is very dangerous both for mother and child to want her longing: the death sometimes of the one, sometimes of the other, sometimes of both hath followed thereupon. 2. In providing such things as are needful for their travel and lying in childbed. This time is especially to be provided for, in many respects. 1. Because it is a time of weakness, wherein the woman cannot well provide for herself. 2. Because her weakness is joined with much pain: the The pains of women's travel. pain of a women in travel is the greatest pain that ordinarily is endured by any for the time: none know it so well as they that feel it: and many husbands because they are not subject thereto, think but lightly of it: but if we duly weigh Psal. 48 6. Isa. 13. 8. & 21. 3 jer. 4. 31. & 30. 6. Mic. 49. that the holy Ghost when he would set forth the extremity of any pains and pangs, resembleth them to the pains of a woman in travel, we may well gather, that of all they are the greatest: which is further manifested by the nulls and outcries which not only weak, and faint-hearted women utter in the time of their travel, but also are forced from the strongest, and stoutest women that be, and that though before hand they resolve to the contrary. Neither may we wonder thereat; for their body is as it were set on a rack (if at least the travel be sharp) and all their parts so stretched, as a wonder it is they should ever recover their health and strength again: or that they should hold out the brunt, and not die with their travel, as Rachel, and the wife of Phinchas, and many in all ages have Gen. 35. 16, etc. 1 Sam. 4. 19 20. done. Surely among ordinary deliverances I know none so near a miracle, none wherein the Almighty doth so evidently manifest his great power and good providence, as in the safe delivery of women. Besides the great pang of travel, women are also after their delivery subject to many after-throws which are very painful. From all these pains and great weakness which befalleth women in childbed, especially if they nurse their children, men by reason of their sex are freed: Now then to apply this point, seeing women are brought to such pains and weakness in bringing forth those children which are the mans as well as hers, and he freed from all; is it not very just and meet that he should provide all things needful for her welfare, ease, and recovery of strength? 3. Because the want of things needful is at that time very dangerous: dangerous to the health and life of the woman and child also. §. 51. Of neglecting wives in their weakness. Contrary to an husband's provident care in general are those vices which were taxed in the treatise of common duties, * See Treat 2. Part. 2. § 30. 39 as grudging at the charges bestowed on a wife: Covetousness, Prodigality, and Idleness. But contrary in particular to an husband's care for his wife in childbed, is the inhuman and more than barbarous unkindness of many husbands, who no whit consider the weakness of their wives in this case, to help, ease, and comfort them, but rather make their burden much more heavy. For, 1. Some through covetousness refuse before hand to afford means to their wife to provide such things as are needful for herself and child: & when the time cometh, if their wife be desirous of a Midwife that requireth somewhat more charges than she that is next, she shall have none if she will not have the next. And as for a nurse to tend her, they think their Maid will serve the turn well enough: they need not be at the charges to bring a Nurse into the house. In regard of convenient lodging some will not stick to say, Cannot my wife be brought to bed in a room without a chimney as well as the Virgin Mary? Why should my wife need more things than she did? Yea further there be many that when the time that their wife should be delivered approacheth near, carry her from all her friends into a place where she is not known, lest her friends should by importunity draw him to expend and lay out more upon his wife then he is willing. In the time while their wife is weak in childbed, many are loath to allow them any other diet than is for themselves and children provided in the house, not considering that her stomach cannot be like theirs. Many other such bitter fruits of unkind husbands arising from covetousness might be reckoned up, whereby husbands plainly show that they love their wealth better than their wives: they had rather lose them, than part with that. 2. Others through jealous suspicion forbear not even in Si quid uxor peccaverit consolare & noli moerorem augere. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. the time of their wife's pain and weakness, to upbraid them with lightness, and to say that the child is none of theirs. To lay this to a wives charge unjustly, is at any time a most shameful and odious reproach: but in the time of childbirth whether just or unjust, a thing too too spiteful and revengeful. Some wives are so far overcome thereby, (especially in the time of their weakness) as they are not able to bear it, but even faint and die under the reproach: others more stout vow never to know their husbands again. Many like mischiefs follow on such unkindness. §. 52. Of an husbands * Treat. 3. §. 38. providing for his wife according to his estate and ability. In an husbands providing for the body of his wife respect must be had to the measure, and to the manner. The measure must extend to his ability: for an husband ought to maintain his wife in as good an estate and fashion as himself; by marriage she is advanced to as high an estate, and dignity in relation to others as he is: and for her own use she is made a partner of all his goods, and accordingly aught to partake thereof. For the manner, he must suffer her (if at least he observe her to have any competent discretion) to order such things as are needful for herself according to her best liking: as Elkanah in another case said to his wife, Do what seemeth thee best. 1 Sam. 1. 23. Both in the measure and in the manner of providing, there must be a difference put betwixt a wife, and servants or children. These may have their portions of meat, apparel, and like necessaries, proportioned out and stinted unto them, which is unmeet to be done to a wife. Neither is it needful that so plentiful a provision be made for them as for her. §. 53. Of an husband's nigardlynesse to his wife. Contrary is an husband's niggardly dealing with his wife: when the allowance she hath is both far under his estate, and also so given her by little and little, as if she were a child. Many husbands make their wife's drudge at home, fare hardly, and go meanly; who are themselves brave in apparel, frolic in their feasting abroad, and so exceed their wives as they are ashamed to be seen in company with them. They who marry their maids, or others of meaner rank than themselves, oft so deal with them: esteeming them but as servants and mean persons though they be their wives. But it hath been * §. 6. before showed, that wives by marriage are advanced to their husband's dignity, how mean soever they were before. §. 54. Of husband's * Treat. 3. §. 23. 29. 33. allowing their wives to bestow on others, as they see good occasion. So far ought the provident care of an husband for his wife to extend, as she may have (beside things needful to herself) to bestow on such as it is requisite for her to give unto: as namely, on children and servants in the house, and others also out of the house. For so much is noted in Salomon's description Pro. 31. 15. etc. Verse. 21. Uers. 28. of a good wife; She giveth meat to her household, and a portion to her maidens: all her household is clothed with scarlet (namely, by her ordering and disposing the matter.) Her children rise up and call her blessed, as for her general carriage in the family, so for her particular favours bestowed on themselves. As for Vers. 20. others out of the house, it is also noted, that she stretcheth out her hand to the poor, and reacheth forth her hands to the needy. These things she did by virtue of that power and liberty which her husband gave her: as appeareth by two points there noted: 1. In that before any mention is made of those things Vers. 11. which she did, it is said, The heart of her husband doth safely trust in her. 2. In that, after all her good deeds are reckoned up, it is Uers. 28. said, Her husband praiseth her. After this pattern it is meet that other husbands (whose wives are wise and faithful) should deal with their wives: that in the house they might have the more honour of children and servants: and that out of the house they might give the better trial of their charity. For considering the many excellent promises that are made to works of mercy and charity, and the many terrible threatenings that are denounced not only against such as exercise cruelty, but also against such as show no mercy: considering also that wives together with their husbands, are heirs of the 1 Pet. 3. 7. grace of life, it is very needful yea even necessary, that they should manifest their faith by some work of mercy and charity. Now unless her husband do give unto her something at her own discretion to bestow on others, true and through try all of her merciful and charitable mind cannot be made. If she give of that which her husband hath reserved to himself, as her giving is unlawful, so she may be thought liberal, not because she is merciful, but because notwithstanding her liberality she parteth with nothing of her own: yea though she have a general consent to give as she seeth cause of the common goods of the family, yet is not that so sure and sound a trial of her charity, and mercifulness, as if she had something of her own which she might retain or give away as pleaseth herself; and what she gives not away, lay up as her own stock proper to herself. For there is naturally such a self love in man, and a desire to keep that which is proper to one's self, that he is very loath to part with any of it, unless conscience and grace alter this corruption of nature, and so move him readily to lay out something on charitable uses. But otherwise of that which in whole or in part belongeth to another (be that other, husband, parent, master, friend, or any else) he is easily moved to be liberal and bountiful: a man will willingly cut a large thong (as we speak) out of another's leather. It is known that many children and servants, who, when they come to be possessers of their own, are very niggards and misers, have been liberal of their parents and masters goods unto the poor. Yea partners in a stock will be much more forward in giving away that which is common with another, then that which is proper to each of them. The truest trial of a merciful and charitable heart lieth in the distribution of that which is proper to one's self. It is therefore meet upon this very ground, that an husband should according to his ability let his wife have some stock, and portion of her own, free to herself to dispose as she seeth good: intimating unto her that the principal end why he provideth so plentifully for her, is, that she may show forth the fruits of her faith by some works of charity: and exhorting her so to do. Many religious, wise, kind husbands thus do: some giving quarterly allowance in money to their wives, others giving their wife's power to receive a certain portion of rent out of certain lands or houses; others making their wives an absolute estate of some inheritance, and suffering them to receive the profits and revenues thereof; others giving them certain fees of their offices, or of their trade; others, that are poor, suffering them to work for themselves, & dispose their earnings as they see cause: some one way, some another: every one in his place best knoweth the means how to gratify his wife in this kind: it shall be sufficient for me to have laid down the general rule. §. 55. Of husbands too great straightness over their wives. Contrary is their strait-handednesse to their wives, who allow them no more than may be for their own private use. They think it a great matter and as much as an husband is bound to do, to let her have apparel, meat and drink, and such necessaries as are befitting her rank, but all other overplus they think needless. Thus their wives are not only deprived of means to gain respect of their children and servants at home, and to gratify such as are obedient and ready to do service to them, but also to perform such works of mercy as both opportunity requireth, and also their conscience moveth them to do. Yea many wives of rich husbands are brought to great shame hereby, in that being in places where there is just occasion of contributing to some charitable use, and by reason of their rich and costly apparel it is expected they should be bountiful, they have not any thing at all to bestow. The fault of some husbands in this respect is great many ways. As 1. in that they bring shame and grief to their wives, whom they ought with all tenderness to respect. 2. In that they dishonour their own places: for they who take notice of this straightness to their wives, will be ready to judge them both covetous, and unkind. 3. The omitting of that work of mercy which their wives should have done shall be laid to their charge: they shall hear that dreadful doom; Go ye cursed into everlasting fire, for I was an hungered and ye fed me not etc. and if they answer, When saw we thee an hungered etc. it shall be replied, In that ye suffered not your wives to do it, you did it not. Thus much of the extent of an husband's provident care for the good of his wife. It followeth to speak of the continuance thereof. §. 57 Of an husband's care to provide for his wife so long as she shall live. The continuance of an husband's provident care for his wife must be so long as she liveth, yea though she outlive him: not that he can actually when he is dead provide for her, but that he may before his death so provide for her, as she may have wherewithal to maintain herself, and to live according to that place whereunto by him she is advanced: at least that he leave her not only so much as he had with her, but something more also in testimony of his love to her, and care for her. Husband's have the example of Christ to press this duty upon them: for when he went away from his Church here on Eph 4. 8. earth, he left his spirit, which furnished it with gifts as plentifully, as if Christ had still remained with her, if not more abundantly. For the better performance of this duty, husbands which die before the wives, must observe among other things two especially. 1. That plainly and expressly they declare their mind and Husband's before they die must make their will even for their wife's good. will before they die, lest their wives should be circumvented and defrauded of that which they intended them. Thus did David upon the motion of Bathshebah, he settled his estate, and caused Bathshebah's son to be actually crowned before he himself gave up the Ghost: which he did, as for other weighty reasons, so in particular for his wife's good, as may be gathered from that reason she alleged to the King in these 1 King. 1. 21. Husbands on their deathbed must commend their wives to some faithful friend. job. 19 26, 27. Reason. Truest trial of love at departure. words; Else when my Lord the King shall sleepe-with his fathers, I shall be reputed vile. 2. That he request some faithful friend in his steed to be an helper unto her; (as Christ commended his mother unto his disciple john) which will be needful in regard of her weakness, by reason of her sex, and want of experience to manage such affairs especially as are out of the house. At the time of a man's departure out of this world from his wife, will the truest trial of his affection to his wife be given: for many that bear their wife's fair in hand while they live with them, at their death show that there was no soundness of affection in their heart towards them: all was but a mere show for some by-respects. §. 58. Of husband's neglect of their wives future estate. Contrary are diverse practices of unkind husbands. For Contrary. 1. A wilful inability. 1. Some through improvidence, unthriftiness and prodigality, disable themselves from doing good to their wives after their death; and so leave their wives nothing, or (that which is worse than nothing) in debt, and with a great charge of children. That care which husbands ought to have of their wives should make them think before hand of the time to come, and even for their wife's sake be somewhat the more diligent, thrifty, and provident, and cut off many unnecessary expenses, else their sin is doubled. 1. By a needless wasting their estate. 2. By neglecting their wives. 2. Others by fawning, or forcing means draw their wives 2 Making away their wife's jointer, or any other right. to yield up that interest they have in money, goods, house or land by jointer, inheritance, or any other way, and yet make them no sufficient recompense in another kind: but at their death leave their wives in a far worse estate than they were in before marriage, beside a greater charge than they had before. As this is a great part of unkindness, so also a main point of injustice. 3. Others grudging against the laws under which they 3. Defeating of thirds. ●iue for providing for a wife by thirds or otherwise, use all the fraudulent means they can to deprive her of that which otherwise the law would lay upon her. The civil politic awes of the place where we live aught to be the rule of our civil actions (so far as they are not repugnant to God's word) and we ought for conscience sake to be subject unto Rom. 13. 5. them. Besides an husband ought (though the law forced him ●ot) to leave at least the thirds to his wife, as a testimony of his love to her, and care for her: so as this also is a dou●le fault. 1. A transgression of the law. 2. A note of unkindness. 4. Orthers having aged and sickly wives, or otherwise 4. Making no will. ●hinking that their wives may, or rather hoping that their wives will die before themselves, put off the making of their wills of purpose that they might not put in their wife's thirds, but dispose them some other way. Besides that these husbands show no good affection towards their wives, they provoke God to disappoint them of their hopes: and so he doth oftentimes: for he taketh them away before their wives, and so taketh them away, as having no time to make their will, not only their wives enjoy their thirds (which they so much desired to avoid) but also some other (whom of all in their life time they misliked) seize upon the other two parts. §. 58. Of an husbands protecting his wife from danger. Having showed how an husband is to provide things needful for his wife: It remaineth to show how he is to protect her from things hurtful. In regard of that protection which an husband oweth his wife, he is called the veil of her eyes: which phrase as it implieth Gen. 20 16. Subjection on the wife's part, so also Protection on the husbands: to protect one, is as it were, to cover them, namely, from danger; to be negligent and careless of them, is, as it were, to lay them open to danger. The same duty is implied under another like phrase of spreading his wing over his wife. Ruth 3. 9 The metaphor is taken from winged fowls, which to keep their young ones from hurt, use to spread their wings over them: this phrase and metaphor is also attributed to God, to Ruth 2. 12. set forth his protection. But most pertinent to this purpose is the title, * Treat. 1. §. 15. and treat. 3. §. 73. saviour, given to an husband in relation to his wife. For this end the Lord who subjected a woman unto her husband, gave to his sex greater strength, courage and boldness then to hers, that he might protect her which is the weaker vessel. In this duty of protection Christ showeth himself an excellent pattern and precedent unto husbands. The better to perform this duty, an husband must be careful, 1. To prevent, as much as he may, such dangers as his wise is like to fall into. 2. To recover her out of such as she is fallen into. For this purpose did David carry his wives into Gath, lest, if 1 Sam. 27. 3. they were left in Israel, Saul should work them some mischief: and again, when they were taken by the Amalakites, he recovered & 30. 18. them. According to that danger whereunto wives are subject, must an husband's care of protecting his wife be manifested. 1. If she be in danger to be seduced and enticed, as Euah was, A wife must be kept from being seduced. by any evil instruments of the devil, as jesuits, Priests, Friars, profane, blasphemous, lascivious, or riotous persons; his care must be either to keep them away that they come not at her, or to put them away from her so soon as he can: he may not suffer them to harbour in his house. 2. If by any sleight she be drawn from his house, he must A wise stolen away must be fetched home. judg. 19 2. 2 San. 3. 13, 14. 1 Sam. 30. 18. A wife's credit must be maintained. seek her, and fetch her again, as the Levite did his wife: or cause her (if he can) to be brought home again, as David caused Michal to be brought: especially if they be taken away by force, as Ahinoam, and Abigail, David's wives, were. 3. If she be unjustly slandered, he is to maintain her credit and reputation as much as his own: as Christ accounteth himself despised, when his Church is, so must he. This care must he See Treat. 2. Part 2. §. 31. etc. have of his wife's credit, even after her death, as well as while she liveth. 4. What other mischief so ever is intended or practised against Luke 10. 16. A wife must be defended against strangers, servants, and children. Est. 7. 7, 8. etc. her, he must be a tower of defence to protect her, (as Ahoshuerosh was to Ester against Haman) and that not only against strangers without the house, but also against children and servants in the house. Children grown to years, that are stout and stubborn, will be ready to rise up against their mother, especially if she be a mother in law, because she is the weaker sex: the countenance of a father for the most part keepeth most in awe. Wherefore the husband must be an help to his wife, and maintain her honour against them: yea though they be children of a former wife. §. 59 Of an husbands maintaining his wife against children of a former venture, and servants. Object. Mothers in law often prove unkind, and unjust stepmothers, and deal unmercifully with their husband's children: must an husband in such cases assist his wife against his children? Answ. The protection, I speak of, is in case a wife be wronged, than her husband is to do what he can to right her (as we speak.) But if she be the wrongdoer, he may by no means bolster her up against his children, and so make their wrong the greater. Yet so far ought he to respect his wife, as by all the fair means he can, to labour to pacific her mind, and turn her heart towards them: and if he observe her heart to be clean alienated from them, then to put them forth to be brought up in some other place, and so to take away from her the object of her displeasure, that he and she may live more quietly together. For if a man must forsake father and mother, he must also forsake children, and cleave to his wife. Peace and unity betwixt man and wife must of all other be kept inviolable. Though thou cast away Licèt omnia proijcias, nihil molestius continget quam non habere benevolam domi uxorem: peccatum nullum magis dolendum inveneris, quam cum uxore seditionem habere. Chrysost. hom. 26. in 1. Cor. 11. Genes. 16. 6. & 21. 14. all, nothing can happen more troublesome to thee than not to have a quiet wife at home. Thou canst find no sin more grievous then to have contention with a wife. If a wife must be maintained against the stubbornness of children, much more against the insolency of servants: for which purpose the example of Abraham is recorded, whose servant might have a privilege above others, because he had made her his bedfellow; yet when she waxed insolent against her mistress, first he put her into her mistress' hand to do to her as it pleased her; and afterwards he cast her out of his house. §. 60. Of neglecting to maintain their wives. Contrary is a dissolute carelessness of husbands, who care no more to help and succour their wives then any other. 1. Some more fear to offend their wives then they care to do Contrary, Dissolute carelessness. 1. In suffering seducers to come to the house. them good, and in that respect they let any sort of people come to their wives that are welcome to them. If Magistrates in a Commonwealth shall answer for suffering seducers to come into their dominions to deceive their people, much more shall husbands answer for suffering them to come and deceive their wives. 1. Because they have a greater charge over their wives then Magistrates over their people. 2. Because wives ought to be dearer to husbands then people to Magistrates. 3. Because they may sooner espy them in their house, than Magistrates in the Commonwealth. 4. Because they may be much more easily kept out of an house, than out of a Commonwealth, or a City. 2. Others care not whither their wives wander: and if they 2. In suffering do go out of their house, they shall never be sought after by their wife's to go whither they list. husbands: though this may be a just punishment on wand'ring wives, yet is it not just for husbands so to deal with them. If Christ our husband should so deal with us, we should soon be lost: for we oft go astray like wand'ring sheep, but he is that good shepherd, who seeketh after the lost sheep until he Luke 15. 4. find it. 3. No marvel then that many husbands are no more affected 3. In not regarding ill reports of wives. with the ill reports and rumours raised against their wives, when they so little regard who come to them, or whither they go. Assuredly the discredit of a wife will turn to the man's dishonour: for as a virtuous wife is a crown to her husband, so by the Pro. 12. 4. rule of contraries, an infamous wife is a shame to her husband. If therefore not for his wife's sake, yet for his own sake a man ought not too carelessly pass over the ill reports which are raised against his wife. 4. There be such unkind husbands as are moved with no ill 4. In suffering wives to be misused. usage done unto their wives, nor will hear any complaint that they make unto them: yea if they see them misused, they will either not seem to see it, or but smile at it, and so go their way, and suffer their wives to right themselves as well as they can. As this beseemeth not any Christian to suffer his neighbour to be wronged, (for it is noted as a commendable matter in Moses, that Exod. 2. 13. when he saw two Hebrews striving together, he took his part that had wrong done to him, and reproved the other) so much ●esse an husband, to whose safeguard his wife is committed. Nature teacheth us that the head is as much affected with a wrong ●one to the body, as to itself: so ought an husband. 5. In boulstring up children or servants against wives. 5. As the wrong which is done by those who are in subjection ●n the house under the wife, is greater than that which is done by stranger's: so is the husband's fault the greater in suffering it: for ●e hath more power over them in his house, then over others. Si illam quae secundum post te locum obtinet contumelia afficis, non parum tui principatus honori derogas. Chrys. loc. cit. What then may we think of such, as either by their connivance, ●r by taking part against their wives, suffer both children and servants to insult over them? Assuredly those husbands themselves will find some smack of the bitter and evil fruit thereof: ●●d that not only by that great discontent which their wives must ●eeds take thereat; but also by that contempt which will follow on their own persons, both by their wives (who cannot think them meet heads to govern others) but also by their children and servants, who thereby will take occasion to wax proud, and presumptuous against him. By despising the weaker, men grow by little and little to despise the stronger. This men of wisdom and experience well know: whereupon in Commonwealths and Policies governed by wise men, the authority of inferior Magistrates is upheld and maintained: superior Magistrates will not suffer them who are in authority under them to be despised: for it is well known, that it tends not to the honour and ease only, but to the safety also of the supreme Magistrate, to have the power and authority of inferior Magistrates respected, and not trampled under feet. It argueth therefore both want of affection, and of discretion and understanding in husbands, to suffer child, servant, or any other in the house, to insult over their wives, who are joint governors with them over the house. §. 61. Of an husband's first beginning to love his wife. The general matter together with the particular kinds of husband's duties being thus far handled, The manner also of performing them is to be delivered. To instruct an husband in the manner of performing his duties to his wife, the Apostle layeth down two patterns, 1. Christ, vers. 25. 2. Ourselves, vers. 28. As Christ loveth his Church, and as we love ourselves, so must men love their wives. That we may the better follow these patterns, we must distinctly note how Christ loveth his Church, and how we The manner of an husbands love set forth by Christ's manner of loving his Church in six branches. 1. Christ first loveth the Church. love ourselves. The love of Christ to his Church is commended unto us in six several points: which are 1. The order 4. The quality thereof. 2. The truth 5. The quantity 3. The cause 6. The continuance I. For the Order, Christ began to love his Church: he mafested his love to her before she loved him: as the air heated by the Sun is hot, and a wall on which the Sunbeams smite, giveth a reflection of heat back again: so the Church, as it were heated and warmed at heart by the sense of Christ's love, loved him, as the Apostle expressly noteth, (We love him 1 Joh. 4. 19 because he loved us first:) and the Church herself acknowledgeth saying, Because of the savour of thy good ointments Cant. 1. 2. (wherewith we are revived, and cheered) the virgins love thee. There is in us by nature no spark of love at all: if Christ Husband's must by their love provoke their wives to love. Pro. 2. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 by his loving of us first, did not instill love into us, we could no more love him then a living bird rise out of a cold egg, if it were not kept warm by the dams sitting upon it. Thus must an husband first begin to love his wife. His place of eminency, and authority requireth, that he should be to his wife, a guide, which title is expressly given to him by the holy Sicaput est vir, praecedere debet in omnibus bonis factis uxorem suam, ut illa imitetur virum, & sequatur caput suum. Aug. de decem chor. c. 3. Ghost, to teach him to go before her, and by his example to instruct, and incite her to do her duty. What a shame would it be for a man who is the Image and glory of God, the head of his wife, in the same place to her that Christ is to his Church, to be provoked by his wife's wive-like carriage (she being the weaker vessel, under him, to learn of him) to love her? * Treat. 1. §. 10. Reason's there be to stir up a wife to endeavour to prevent her husband in doing her duty, which if she do, it is the greater glory to her; but this pattern of Christ should stir him much more to strive to go before her. §. 62. Of husband's repaying unkindness for love. Contrary, is their disposition, who having loving and dutiful wives, are notwithstanding nothing moved to love them again: but are as unkind and churlish as if they had the most peevish, and perverse wives that could be. But what shall we say of such as love their wives the less, yea and hate them for their forwardness to love, and (in testimony of true love) to perform all good duty? What, but that they are very devils ●ncarnate? For it is the devil's property to overcome good with evil. These make the doctrine of a wife's subjection to seem harsh, and a careful performance thereof, an heavy burden. Never shall they partake of Christ's love, that in their place ●ew themselves so unlike to Christ. §. 63. Of the Treat. 3. §. 57 2. Christ loveth in truth. truth of husband's love. II. The truth of Christ's love was manifested by the fruits thereof to his Church: He gave himself for it. It was therefore not in word only, no nor only in heart, but in deed also. Thus his love proved profitable, and beneficial to his Church, which thereby was cleansed, and made a glorious Vers. 26, 27. Church. Had he only borne a tender compassion and pitiful affection towards it, or laboured only with comfortable and sweet words to uphold and succour it, it had still lain polluted with sin, in the power of the devil, and under God's wrath, and so received no profit and benefit at all. So must husbands love their wives in truth and in deed. Husband's must love in deed. * 1 joh. 3. 18. Such a love is required of a man to his brother: much more therefore to his wife, who is not only a sister (as * 1 Cor. 9 5. the Apostle expressly styleth her) but nearer than sister, mother, daughter, friend, or any other whatsoever. This therefore serveth to press the practice of all the forenamed duties appertaining to an husband. §. 64. Of husband's dissimulation. Contrary is their dissimulation and hypocrisy, who make great show of much love, and pretence of earnest affection, using many outward compliments, but fail when they come to the truest trial, the deed. Some like suitors or wooers, will promise mountains, but not perform moul-hills: others will college and kiss their wives much, but trust them with nothing, nor provide for them things requisite: there be that will weep much when their wives are sick, yet not afford physic and such like things for their recovery: yea many will carry a fair face all their life long towards their wives, and at their death leave them nothing to live by. Hence it is that many who by others are accounted to be very kind husbands, are by their wives found to be far otherwise. If trial be made of husband's love by their practice and performance of the forenamed duties, it will be found that they for the most part come as far short in love, as wives in subjection. §. 65. Of the freeness of husband's love. III. The cause of Christ's love, was his love, as Moses noteth, 3. Christ loveth freely. Deut. 7. 7, 8. He set his love on you, because he loved you. His love arose only, and wholly from himself, and was every way free: as there was nothing in the Church, before Christ loved her to move him to love her, so can there be nothing that he could hope for afterwards, but what himself bestowed. Indeed he delighteth in that righteousness wherewith, as with a glorious robe, she is clothed; and with those heavenly graces, wherewith as with precious jewels she is decked: but that righteousness, and those graces are his own, and of his free gift, He presents it to himself a glorious Church. Eph. 5. 27. Husband's love must be free. In imitation hereof husbands should love their wives, though there were nothing in wives to move them so to do, but only that they are their wives: yea though no future benefit could after be expected from them: true love hath respect to the object which is loved, and the good it may do thereunto, rather than to the subject which loveth, and the good that it may receive. For love seeketh not her own. 1 Cor. 13. 5. Christ's love in this branch thereof should further move husbands to do what lieth in their power, to make their wife's worthy of love: thus will it be in truth said, that they dwell with their wives according to knowledge: and thus will their 1 Pet. 3. 7. ●oue appear to be as Christ's love, free. §. 66. Of husband's loving for advantage. Contrary is their love which is only for their own content ●nd advantage. Many can love no further than they may have ●ome bait to allure their affections, as beauty, wealth, honour, ●r the like by-respects; or at least hope of some inheritance or ●ortion above that which they have, or of some favour that they expect from their wife's friends. This cannot be a true sound ●●ue: such a man may be thought to love his wife's beauty, inheritance, and friends rather than his wife. This love cannot last. §. 67. Of the purity of husband's love. FOUR Christ's love for the quality is an holy, pure, chaste, 4. Christ's love pure. Eph. 5. 26, 27. ●●ue: as he himself is, so is his love, as is evident by the ●●fect thereof: for it moved him to sanctify and cleanse his Church, to make it a glorious Church without spot: he did therefore no way pollute or defile his Spouse: and that his love might the better appear to be chaste love, cast only upon one Spouse and not many, he united all his Saints together by the 1 Cor. 12. 12, 13 bond of his Spirit, and made them all one body. Hereby husbands must learn so to be affected towards Husband's love must be chaste. Heb. 13. 4. their wives as may stand with holiness, and chastity: though much love be required, yet it may not overflow those banks. Marriage is honourable and a bed undefiled. It must therefore be used as an undefiled thing. This indeed appertaineth to the wife as well as to the husband. But because he is the head, and guide of his wife, and aught to be as a pattern and precedent before her, as Christ is before him, therefore is it more specially applied to him. The purity of an husband's love here spoken of, hath a double use, 1. It restraineth an husband's love to his own wife. There is a general Christian love whereby all occasions of doing good are taken, with which an husband may, and aught to love others: and a particular matrimonial love, whereby he is moved to prefer his wife before all, and to have his heart set and fixed on her, and so proper and peculiar to her. 2. It orders and moderates his love, so as it turneth not into sinful lust, whereby that estate, (which in itself by virtue of God's ordinance, is holy) is polluted. §. 68 Of husband's lightness. Contrary, is not only adultery, whereof we have spoken * Treat. 2. part. 2. §. 5, 8. before, but also wantonness, lightness, and uncleanness with his wife. For many intemperate and unchaste husbands, giving the reins to their headstrong lusts, manifest as much unseemliness and plain filthiness in their words, gestures, and actions (to say nothing of their thoughts which are not seen) to their wives, as other do to strumpets and harlots which is a most shameless thing, and I am even ashamed ● mention: but because it is mentioned, let such know, th● they shall be accounted among such whoremongers and adul●rers Heb. 13. 4. as God will judge. §. 69. Of husband's loving their wives more than themselves. The quantity of Christ's love cannot be expressed: for the 5 Christ's love extended to the giving of himself measure of it was above measure. a Ephes. 5 25. He gave himself for his Church, and in that respect he calleth himself that b john. 10. 11. Good shepherd that gave his life for his sheep. c & 15. 13. Greater love than this hath no man. What will not he do for his spouse, that gave his life for her? This may seem to be too high a strain, and pitch of love for an husband to attain unto: a matter wherein he is to How husbands must love their wives more than themselves. 1 john. 3. 16. leave his pattern, and not to follow Christ: but yet S. john addeth even this extent to the love of our brethren: We ought saith he) to lay down our lives for the brethren: therefore by ●ust consequence for our wives. But that this extent be not stretched too far, and husbands cast into a pit of needless peril, two cautions must be noted, 1. That there be an absolute necessity, to bring us to this Cautions about an husbands loving his wife more than himself. ●raite of parting with our life: which is, when the good we ●ime at in the behalf of our wives cannot any other way be ●ffected, but by venturing our life. There was no other way ●● redeem the Church, but by the blood of Christ. 2. That the good we intent in this case to our wives be of greater value than our temporal life: as is the good of her ●ule, the saving of it. Thus the Apostle saith, I will most gladly bestowed for your souls. Which mind men must much more 2 Cor. 12. 15. ●rie towards their wives. It was for our salvation that Christ ●ue himself. §. 70. Of husband's unkindness. Contrary is their unkindness that prefer every trifle of ●●eir own before the good of their wives: their profit, their ●easure, their promotion, clean draw away their hearts and affection's from their wives. If any extraordinary charge must ● laid out, or pains taken for their wife's good, little love ●ll then appear: whereby it appears that there was no true ●●d sound love settled in their hearts towards their wives. As ●ld and other like metals are tried by the fire, so love by evictions and crosses. §. 71. Of combats in pretence of wife's honour. Contrary in another extreme is the overbold and over-heady pretended manhood of such husbands as upon every jealous surmise and sleight report, are ready to make challenges of fight, and to enter into single combats and duels, on pretence of maintaining their wife's honour. This being no warrantable course of righting a wrong, no honour can redound to the wife thereby, but much dishonour and danger to the husband. If he prevail over his adversary and kill, he is made guilty of murder thereby, and so reproach and shame must needs come to himself, wife, and whole family: if he be overcome and slain, she may be reputed more guilty than she was before. And oft it falleth out that God in just judgement giveth over the challenger into his adversary's hand, because he hath undertaken so indirect a course. §. 72. Of husband's * Treat. 3. §. 6. 6 Christ's love perpetual. Constancy in love. VI The continuance of Christ's love was without date: a joh. 13. 1. Having loved his own, he loved them unto the end. His love was constant (not by fits, now loving, then hating) and b Hos. 2. 19 everlasting (never repenting thereof, never changing or altering his mind) no provocations, no transgressions could ever make him forget to love, and cease to do that good which he intended for his Church: note what he said to her even when she revolted from him, Thou hast played the harlot with many jer. 3. 1. 2 Sam. 7. 15. lovers, yet return again to me: and again, My mercy shall not depart away. For his love resteth not on the desert of his Church, but on the unchangeableness of his own will. As this manifested Christ's love to be true sound love, so it made it profitable and beneficial to the Church, which, notwithstanding her many frailties, by virtue hereof is glorified. This last branch must be added to all the former branches Husband's must be constant in their love. of an husband's love, or else they will be all in vain and to no purpose. This giveth the truest trial of sound love. Such was the love betwixt David and jonathan: the soundest love that ever was, betwixt party and party. This bringeth the greatest glory to the party which loveth: and the greatest benefit to the party which is loved. That a man's love may thus remain firm and inviolable, 1. He must be sure to lay a good foundation; he must ground his love on God's ordinance: and love his wife in regard of the matrimonial bond which knitteth them together, and that near union which thence ariseth; and so it will last so long as that knot lasteth. 2. He must further support and strengthen it with an inviolable resolution to be changed and altered with no provocation, but rather to pass by all infirmities; endeavouring in love to redress them if possibly he can: if not, to bear with them. §. 73. Of husband's variableness. Contrary is their variableness, whose love is ready to turn as a weather cock with every blast of a contrary wind: now tender-hearted, than again hardhearted: now smiling, then ●owring: now giving this and that favour, then denying every thing, even such things as are needful. Many whose love was as hot as fire while their wives were ●oung, or their friends lived, or while they pleased them, when ●hose occasions are taken away, prove in their love as cold ●s ice. Again others by some continuance in doing good to their wives, think it a burden: and waxing weary clean leave off ●heir former good course; which plainly showeth that they ne●er truly and entirely loved their wives. By this pattern of Christ here propounded to husbands, ●e have on the one side a good direction to teach us how to ●●ue our wives, as hath been particularly declared; and on the ●ther side, matter of humiliation, in that it showeth us how ●●re short we come of our bounden duty. Howsoever, wives ●ay most complain of their burden, because it is a subjection whereunto by nature we are all loath to yield: yet I am sure See Treat. 1. §. 10. ●●e heaviest burden is laid upon the husband's shoulders: and ●uch more easy it is to perform the part of a good wife, than a good husband. §. 74. Of husband's loving their wives * Treat. 3. §. 59 as themselves. To the example of Christ the Apostle annexeth the pat●●ne of one's self, in these words: So ought men to love their Eph. 5. 28. ●●es as their own bodies. Quest. Is not the former pattern sufficient? Is this latter more excellent, or more perfect? Answ. Christ's example is a full, complete, perfect, and To Christ's example, the pattern of ones self is added. every way sufficient pattern; far more excellent than this of a man's self: this is not annexed to add any thing to that, or in regard of the excellency hereof, but only in regard of our dulness, to make the point somewhat more plain and perspicuous. 1. Because it is more sensible. For this pattern is more sensible and better discerned. Every one knoweth how he loveth his own body: but few or none know how Christ loveth his Church. Besides, 2. Because it is more imitable. that example of Christ may seem too high and excellent for any to attain unto, even inimitable; therefore to show that he requireth no more than a man may perform, if he will set himself with care and conscience to do his duty, he addeth the pattern of ones self; that which one doth to his body, if he will, he may do to his wife. No direction can be taken from this latter pattern, but The pattern of loving ones self setteth forth the same things that Christ's love doth. might be referred to the former, as most of the former (though in a far meaner manner) may be referred to the latter. For the love which a man beareth to himself is true, and entire without all dissimulation: the most dissembling wretch in the world (who in his dealings with other men doth nothing uprightly) nor will nor can dissemble with himself; though other men shall never know the depth of his heart, yet the spirit 1 Cor. 2. 11. which is in him, even himself, knoweth it: so as this pattern also presseth truth and sincerity on husbands in their affection towards their wives: of all other they may not dissemble and deal doubly with them; but let them know the entireness of their affection towards them: and see they neither faun o● them, nor flatter them. They which pretend great love to their wives in show only, offend against nature itself. As the foresaid love of a man's own self is for manner entire and true, so also free not forced: and for measure as great as possibly i● can be, and for continuance, constant, and so like to Christ love. But there are two points especially to be considered in the love of ones self which above others are most sensibly discerned Man is tender towards himself. in this pattern. 1. Tenderness. 2. Cheerfulness. No other man will or can so tenderly handle a man's hand arm, leg or any other part of his body, as himself: he is very sensible of his own smart. The metaphors which the Apostle useth in these words, He nourisheth and cherisheth it, do lively set forth this tenderness: Eph. 5. 29. for they are taken from fowls and birds which very charily, and tenderly hover over their young ones, covering them all over with their wings and feathers, but so bearing up their bodies as no weight lieth upon them. Thus ought husbands with all tenderness, and mildness Husband's must deal tenderly with their wives. to deal with their wives, as we have before noted in many particulars: only this example of a man's self I thought good to set before husbands, as a lively pattern wherein they might behold a precedent without exception, going before them, and whereby they might receive excellent direction for the better performing of the particulars before noted. Again, no friend, no parent, no other party will or can so Man is cheerful in doing himself good. willingly and cheerfully do any kindness for one, as a man for himself. This among other is one especial point which the law aimeth at, when it enjoins a man to love his neighbour Leu. 19 18. as himself, namely, as willingly and readily as himself. Whatsoever a man doth for himself he doth much more cheerfully then for another. There needeth no other proof than experience. Let men take notice of their own mind and disposition when they do things for themselves, and this will be as clear as the light when the Sun shineth forth at ●oone day. Such an affection ought husbands to have to their wives: Husband's must be cheerful in seeking their wife's good. they ought more willingly and cheerfully to do any thing ●or their wives then for parents, children, friends or any other. Though this cheerfulness be an inward disposition of the ●eart, yet may it be manifested by a man's forwardness and readiness to do his wife good: when his wife shall no sooner desire a kindness, than he will be ready to grant it: as coz saith to Ruth, I will do to thee all that thou requirest; yea, Ruth 3. 11. by any means he may know that this or that will be behooveful to her, though she desire it not, yet to effect it for her: which was the mind of the said Booz to Ruth, as the history ●● many particulars showeth. Contrary is the disposition of those husbands who so grudgingly, repiningly, and discontentedly do those things which they do in their wife's behalf, as their wives had rather they were not done at all. The manner of doing them causeth more grief to tender hearted wives, than the things themselves can do good. Hitherto of the manner which husbands ought to observe in performing their duties. The reasons to enforce the same remain to be handled. §. 75. Of Christ's example, a motive to provoke husbands to love their wives. The forenamed examples of Christ and of ourselves as General reasons. 1. Christ's example. they are patterns for our direction, so general motives to provoke and stir us up the more to perform all the forenamed duties after the manner prescribed. A greater, and stronger motive cannot be yielded then the Christ's example the greatest motive that can be. example of Christ. Example in itself is of great force to provoke us to do any thing: especially if it be the example of some great one, a man of place and renown. But who greater than Christ? What more worthy pattern? If (as was * Treat. 3. §. 74. showed) the example of the Church be of great force to move wives to be subject to their husbands, the example of Christ must needs be of much greater force to move husbands to love their wives. A great honour it is to be like unto Christ: and his example is a perfect pattern. Two things there be which in Christ's example are especially Two things in Christ's pattern provoke husbands to love their wives. to be noted to move husbands to love their wives. 1. That great inequality which is betwixt him and his spouse. 2. That small benefit which he reapeth by loving her. For the better discerning of that inequality, the greatness of 1. The great inequality betwixt Christ and his spouse. Christ on the one side, and the meanness of the Church on the other, are duly to be weighed. Christ's greatness is in Scripture set forth by comparing him with creatures, and the Creator. Compared with creatures he is far more excellent than the most excellent, as the Apostle by many arguments proveth in the first chapter to Hebr. that whole chapter is spent in proof of this point: And in another place it is said that a Eph. 1. 21. He is set far above all principality and power, and might, and dominion, and every name that is named not only in this world, but also in that which is to come. Compared with the Creator he is no whit inferior to him, but b Phil. 2. 6. equal: c Heb. 1. 3. Being the brightness of glory, and the express image of his person: and that d job. 1. 1, 3. word of whom it is said, In the beginning was the word, and the word was with God, and the word was God: All things were made by him etc. So as he is the very Creator himself, eternal, infinite, incomprehensible. Thus is Christ's greatness inexplicable. The meanness of the Church is as low on the other side: she is a creature, fashioned out of the earth, proceeding from the loins of corrupt Adam, not only finite, but in itself vile and base: The Prophet e Ezec. 16. 1. etc. Ezechiel doth set her forth in her lively colours as she is in herself. Compared therefore unto Christ she is f Isa. 40. 17. nothing, less than nothing. What equality, what proportion can there then be betwixt Christ and her? But if man and woman be compared together, we shall find a near equality: and that both in the points of their humiliation, and also of their exaltation. In regard of the former, they are both of the same mould, of the same corrupt nature, subject to the same infirmities, at length brought to the same end. In regard of the latter the best and greatest privileges are common to both of them: they are both made after the same image, redeemed by the same price, partakers of the same grace, and heirs together of the same inheritance. Quest. What is then the preferment of the male kind? What is the excellency of an husband? Answ. Only outward and momentany. Outward, in the things of this world only: for g Gal. 3. 28. in Christ jesus they are both one. Momentany, for the time of this life only: for h Mat. 22. 30. in the resurrection they neither marry, nor are given in marriage, but are as the Angels of God in heaven: then all subjection of wives to husbands ceaseth. To conclude this point, the inequality betwixt Christ and the Church, and equality betwixt man and wife being such as hath been declared; seeing Christ vouchsafeth to love his Church, ought not man thereby be moved to love his wife? The other point concerning the small benefit which Christ 2. The small benefit that Christ reapeth by loving his Church. reapeth by his Church, will yet further enforce the point: for illustration whereof we will note the great benefit which man reapeth by his wife. The benefit which Christ reapeth from the Church is in one word nothing. For Christ is in himself all-sufficient: he neither needeth any thing, nor can receive any thing: i job 35. 7. If thou be est righteous, what givest thou to him? Or what receiveth he of thine hand? Yet abundantly he bestoweth all manner of gifts, temporal, and spiritual, earthly and heavenly. It was not therefore his own good that he respected in loving the Church, but her good: for he being k 1 Tim. 3. 16. God became man; being Lord of heaven and earth, he took upon him l Phil. 2. 6, 7. the form of a servant; being m 2 Cor. 8 9 rich he became poor: having the n Reu. 1. 18. Keys of hell and of death, and being o Act. 3. 15. the Lord of life, he p Phil. 2. 8. humbled himself, and became obedient unto the death: thus to show love to his Church he left much for her sake, but received nothing of her. But the benefit which man reapeth from a wife is very great: for q Gen. 2. 18. It was not good for a man to be alone: in so much as r Pro. 18. 22. He who findeth a wife findeth a good thing; and that in all the points of goodness, a profitable thing, a comfortable thing, a delightful thing. They know not the benefit of the married estate, who * See Treat. 2. Part. 1. §. 27. prefer single life before it, especially if the married estate be ordered by God's word, and man and wife careful to perform their own duty each to other. To apply this point also, and to bring it to the conclusion: Christ's example removeth all pretences which men make for not loving their wives. If Christ who can receive nothing from the Church notwithstanding love her, ought not men much more to love their wives, who many ways receive much good from them, and without whom they cannot well be? This example of Christ is the rather to be noted, because it clean wipeth away all those false colours, and vain pretences which many allege as reasons, to show that there is little reason they should love their wives: some of their pretences are these. 1. Their wives are of a far meaner rank than 1. Object. themselves; should they then perform duty to their inferiors? They commonly who marry their kitchen maids, or others far under their degree, allege this pretence. Answ. I might reply, That marriage advanceth a wife to the degree of her husband: and that it was his own folly to marry one so mean: but for the purpose and point in hand, let any tell me, whether the supposed disparity betwixt them & their wives, be in any degree comparable to that which is betwixt Christ and the Church: yet Christ thinketh not much to do duties of love to his Church. 2. There is nothing in their wife's worthy to be loved. 2. Object. Answ. This very thing, that such an one is thy wife, is matter enough to make her worthy of love. But what was there in the Church to make her worthy of Christ's love? If it be said that she is endued with many excellent graces, which make her amiable in Christ's sight: I answer, that of herself she hath none of those graces, Christ hath bestowed them upon her, and so made her amiable: and thus oughtest thou to endeavour by using all good means thou canst to make thy wife answerable to thy love: but howsoever, to love her. 3. Their wives give just occasion to be hated by reason of their 3. Object. beevishnesse, stoutness, insolency, and other like intolerable vices. Answ. No occasion may seem just to move an husband to hate his wife: nor any vice seem to him intolerable: with goodness he ●●ught to overcome evil. If notorious sins seemed intolerable to Christ, or that he thought any occasion just to cause hatred, many ●hat are of his Church would oft draw his hatred upon them: but Christ hateth never a member of his Church. 4. There is no hope that ever I shall receive any help of my 4. Object. wife, or benefit from her. Ans. There is little charity in such as can conceive no hope: for ●ue hopeth all things: but yet the case so standeth with Christ. The 1. Cor. 13. 7. Church is so utterly unable to help or benefit him, as he may justly ●y, he cannot hope to receive any thing from her. Christ loveth the church for her own good, not for his; so ought husbands. Thus if Christ's example be well weighed, & observed of husbands, it will iford matter enough to remove every doubt or scruple raised to ●enate their affections from their wives. Fitly therefore hath the Apostle set it before husbands, both to direct them how to love their wives, and also to move them so to do. §. 76. Of a man's love to himself, a motive to provoke him to love his wife. To the same purpose that Christ's example tendeth, tendeth also the pattern of a man's self. Great is the affection that a man beareth to himself, to his own flesh, his own body: he never hateth, but ever loveth himself: no sore, no disease, no pain, no stinch that the flesh bringeth to a man, can make him hate it: but rather all manner of infirmities do make him the more to pity, tender, and cherish it. This is a work of nature: the most heathenish, and barbarous, that ever were, do it. Now a wife being to a man as his body and his flesh (for they two are one flesh) and God having commanded men to love their wives as their own bodies, these conclusions will necessarily follow from this motive: 1. He that loveth not his wife is more carried with the instinct of nature, then with the express charge of the God of nature. Nature's instinct moveth him to love his body. But Gods express charge moveth him not, to love his wife. 2. He that loveth not his wife is worse than an infidel and a barbarian, yea then a very beast: for all these love their own bodies, and their own flesh: but a wife (by God's ordinance) is as ones body, and his flesh. 3. He that loveth his wife loveth himself: the Apostle himself vers. 28. in these very words layeth down this conclusion: from whence by the rule of contraries this also will follow, He that loveth not his wife, loveth not himself. 4. He that loveth not his wife cannot but bring woe and mischief upon himself. For the damage and mischief which followeth on a wife, through any neglect of duty on her husband part, followeth also on him: as the mischief which followeth on the body through any negligence of the head, lighteth also on the head. If these be not motives sufficient to provoke an husband to love his wife, I know not what can be sufficient. The fifth Treatise. Duties of Children. §. 1. Of the general Heads of children's duties. EPHES. 6. 1. Children obey your Parents in the Lord: for this is right. 2. Honour thy father and mother (which is the first commandment with promise.) 3. That it may be well with thee: and thou mayst live long on the earth. THe second couple in a family are Parents. Children. In laying down their duties, the Apostle beginneth with children: his direction, and instigation unto them is laid down in the three first verses of the sixth chapter: wherein 1. He declareth their duty. 2. He addeth reasons to enforce the same. In laying down their duty he noteth three points. 1. Wherein it consisteth, (obey, honour.) 2. To whom it is to be performed (your parents.) 3. After what manner it is to be done (in the Lord.) The reasons used by the Apostle are four. 1. The place of parents (in the Lord.) 2. The equity of the thing (this is right.) 3. The charge of God (Honour thy father, etc.) 4. The reward promised (That it may go well, etc.) Under this word (obey) which the Apostle useth, and that word (honour) which the law useth, are all those duties comprised, which any where throughout the whole Scripture are enjoined to children. We will therefore set them down in some order, and handle them distinctly one after another. 1. The Fountain of children's duties is to be searched out. 2. The Streams that flow from thence are to be observed. The Fountain is an inward disposition of the heart compounded of love and fear. The Streams issuing from thence extend unto parents, both while they are living, and also when they are dead. children's duties which are to be performed to their parents while they live, have respect to their Authority. Necessity. The Authority of parents requireth of children Reverence. Obedience. Their Necessity requireth Recompense. The duties which children owe to their parents deceased, respect their Body. Credit. Their Body with decency must be buried. Their Credit with honour must be maintained. §. 2. Of children's love to their Parents. I make the fountain of children's duties to be a mixed and compound disposition, in respect of that authority and affection which is mixed together in parents. The authority of parents requireth fear in children: and their affection, love. So entire and so ardent is parent's affection towards their children, as it would make children too bold and insolent if there were not authority mixed therewith to work fear: and so supreme and absolute is their authority over them, as it would make children like slaves to dread their parents, if a fatherly affection were not tempered therewith to breed love. But both these joined together make a very good composition: love like sugar sweeteneth fear, and fear like salt seasoneth love: and thus, to join them both together, it is a loving-feare, or a fearinglove, which is the ground of children's duties. Where Christ forbiddeth an excessive love in children to Mat. 10. 37. their parents, he implieth that parents are a fit object for children to love (so as their love be well moderated:) yea he implieth that it is an affection even by nature ingraffed in children to love their parents. joseph is commended unto children as a worthy pattern in loving his father, and that from his youth till the decease of his father: in testimony whereof in his younger years he brought to his father the evil report of his Gen. 37. 2. brethren, whereby he incurred their envy and hatred, which he would never have done, if he had not loved his father: and having been long absent from his father, when by God's providence there was offered an occasion for him to meet with his brethren, one of his first questions to them was about their father: Gen. 43. 7. and hearing that he was living, he thought it not enough to send him food for his need, but must also needs see his face, Gen. 45. 9 and have him dwell with him: and while his father was in the way he went out to meet him, and at first sight fell on his neck, Gen. 46. 29. and wept a good while (a token of great affection.) That love which naturally parents bear to their children, Reasons. 1. Equity. aught in equity to breed in children a love to their parents. For love deserveth love: and most unworthy are they to be loved, who cannot love again. The love of parents above all others is to be answered with love on children's part to the uttermost of their power, because it is free, great, and constant. Besides, there is a necessity of love in children to their parents, 2 Necessity. lest for want thereof, their subjection (which of all others ought to be most free) should turn into slavish servitude. This ought children the rather to labour after, because by nature they are nothing so prone to love their parents, as their parents are to love them. Love is weighty, and, as weighty things, it descendeth. Children therefore with conscience of duty must labour to make supply of this defect, and help nature by grace. I deny not but naturally there is in children a greater love to their parents, then to others: yet in comparison of the heat of parents love to them, their love to their parents is but cold. Wherefore as the heat of the Sun shining much and long on a stone wall, draweth a reflection of heat from that wall: so the hot beams of parents love, which with fervency and constancy is cast on children, aught to provoke and stir up children to send forth a reflection of love on their parents. Two extremes are contrary to this affection of love. One is want of natural affection, which is a vice most odious 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Rom. 1. 30. 2 Tim. 3. 3. and abominable in all, but most of all in children. The Apostle reckoneth this among the most heighnous vices that be. The other is hatred and despite of parents: a vice more than monstrous, and unnatural. From thence cometh mocking and cursing of parents, whereof we shall afterwards hear. §. 3. Of a child's fear of his parent. To the forenamed duty of love, must fear be added, which is a child's awful respect of his parent. This awful respect ariseth from an honourable esteem which a child in his judgement and opinion hath of his parent, as he is his parent; and from it proceedeth on the one side, a desire and endeavour in all things to please the parent, and on the other side a loathness to offend him. In this respect the fear of a child is opposed to the fear of a slave. For a child's fear being mixed with love, hath respect to the offence which a parent may take; but a slaves fear, which is ordinarily mixed with hatred, hath respect to nothing but the punishment which his master may inflict upon him. The forenamed fear is so proper to children, as that awful respect which the Saints bear to God, is called a * See Treat. 1. §. 4. silial or childlike fear. This fear in a child is an especial branch of that a Exo. 20. 12. honour which the law requireth of children to their parents: and it is in b Leu. 19 3. express terms enjoined to children by the law. That phrase which God useth of Miriam ( c Num. 12. 14. If her father had but spit in her face, should she not be ashamed seven days?) showeth that there ought to be such a fear of the parent in a child's heart, as should work shame in it when the parent is offended. A worthy pattern we have hereof in d Gen. 27. 12. jaakob, who was loath to gain the blessing with offence of his father. This fear keepeth love in compass: and restraineth a child Reasons. 1. Fear ordereth love. from overmuch sauciness, and malipartnesse. And it is a cause of a child's reverend and dutiful carriage 2. It well guideth the carriage. to his parent. For as the heart is affected the carriage will be ordered. Contrary hereunto is that light, or (which is more abomi●nable) Contrary, light and base esteem of parents. that base and vile esteem of parents, which is in the heart of many children: especially if parents be poor, of low degree, unlearned, ignorant, or subject to any infirmities. It cannot be but that c Gen. 9 22. Cham had too light, if not a base esteem of his father, when he derided him. A true filial fear would have restrained him from that extreme. Wherefore to breed and cherish this fear, and to prevent, How to breed and cherish a filial fear. ●r redress the contrary extreme, let children well inform themselves of their parent's place and authority, how they are in God's stead, and a means under God of their children's being: children have received their very substance from the substance of their parents. In which respect though they should ●eeme contemptible to others, yet not to their children. Thus much of a child's inward disposition towards his parent. The manifestation thereof must be by his outward carriage: and that in two things; Reverence, and Obedience: both which respect a parent's authority. §. 4. Of a child's Reverence in refraining speech before his parent, and in harkening to his parent. The outward reverence which children owe to their pa●●nts consisteth partly in their speech, partly in their carriage. Their speech both to and of their parents must savour reverence. To their parents in presence. OF their parents in absence. In presence, by refraining their speech. well framing For refraining speech two virtues are requisite Silence. Patience. Silence in forbearing to speak. breaking of speech. Children ought to forbear speaking in their parent's presence Patience in harkening to their parents. The two branches of silence, in forbearing to speak (especially when parents are speaking, or till parents give leave to their children to speak,) and in breaking off speech, when parents come into the place where children are speaking, are tokens of great reverence. Thus children testify that there are some in place whom they much respect and honour. job doth thus set forth the respect which Princes and others did bear to him in his prosperity, The Princes (saith he) refrained job. 29. 9, 10. talking, and laid their hand upon their mouth, the Nobles held their peace, etc. Namely, while he was in presence, or while he spoke. The like may be said of children's patience in enduring Children must patiently hearken to their parent's speech. Vers. 25. their parent's speech; which job also noteth in these words, Unto me men gave ear, and waited, and kept silence. Though parents in their speech seem to be long and tedious, yet must children endure it. And it is very needful that patience be added to silence, because many parents in tender love of their children, and earnest desire of their good, think they can never speak enough in instructing and admonishing them. The many exhortations Gen. 49. 2. Pro. 1. 8, & 4. 1. & 7. 1. given in Scripture unto children to hear, harken, give ear, give heed, mark, and observe the words of their parents, do imply the forenamed silence and patience: for they who jam 1. 19 ought to be swift to hear must be slow to speak. I deny not but much more is intended under those phrases, namely, obedience: yet must these also be presupposed: for he that will not in silence patiently hearken to his parents while they speak, will much less obey what they say. Contrary to silence is sauciness (as we speak) and overmuch Contrary, 1. boldness of speech. boldness in children, when, without due respect of their parent's presence, they will be prating of this thing or that thing: insomuch as if strangers should come into the room where such children are, they would not think that their parents were in presence; or if they knew it, they might well think that such children bear little respect to their parents. Contrary to patience in hearing, is fretting and murmuring 2. Impatient harkening to parents. against parents (if at least their speech be any whit long) an● flinging or slinking away before they have done. These faults are the greater, if children by their loquacity, or impatiency hinder or interrupt their parent's speech when they are giving any admonition or instruction: for thus they show both too light a respect of their parents: and also too little regard of the means of their own good. §. 5. Of a child's reverend framing his speech to his parent. A child's reverence in well framing his speech to his parents A child's reverence in speech is manifested, 1. By reverend titles. may many ways be manifested, as 1. By giving unto them reverend and honourable titles. No title can be more honourable than that which is most proper and usual, Father to the one parent, and Mother to the other. God taketh the title a Jer. 31. 9 Gal. 4. 6. Father unto himself, as a title of great dignity. Object. This title is so proper to God, as * Matt. 23. 9 We are to call none ●n earth Father. Answ. This is not simply to be taken of the title itself, but of the mind of him that giveth or affecteth that title. If it be affected or given to obscure God's Fatherhood, or to make a man a Father of himself without dependence on God, ●r reference to him, who is properly the father of all, it is an impious and sacrilegious title. But otherwise lawful and warrantable. In Scripture the title Father is given to all degrees of dignities among men, as to b 1 Sam. 24. 12. Kings, c 2 Kin. 5. 13. Captains, and other chief Governors, to d Judg. 18. 19 Priests, e 2 King. 6. 21. Prophets, f 1 Cor. 4. 15. Apostles, and other g 1 Tim. 5. 1. Ministers. In the fifth commandment all superiors are comprised under it, therefore Father is a title of great honour: and ●y the rule of relation Mother is a title of as great honour to ●●e female sex. Religious and dutiful children have ever used ●● give those titles to their parents. My Father, saith h Gen. 22. 7. Isaak to Abraham, and i & 27. 18. jaakob to Isaak. k 1 King. 2. 20. My Mother, saith Solomon to ●athsheba. I find also the title of l Matt. 21. 30. Sir or Lord, used: a title 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Gen. 31. 35. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ●f honour. 2. By using few words before their parents: and those few 2. By few words. ●ot without just occasion, being first spoken to by their pa●●nts, or having leave of them, or making known to them me needful matter: at least not against their parents liking, as their parents should be offended thereby. And if they observe their parents to be unwilling to hear them speak any ●ore of such and such a matter, then ought they to lay their hands upon their mouths, as Isaak (Gen. 22. 7.) and jaakob (Gen. 27. 12.) This is a token of great respect. 3. By meek and humble speeches. Such was the speech of 3. By humble speech. m 1 Sam. 19 4. jonathan the natural son of Saul, and of n & 24. 10. David his son in law, wherewith he was much contented, and his wrath pacified. 4. By observing a fit opportunity: as when parents are not 4 By seasonable speech. seriously busied, or in company, or in passion. When o 1 Sam. 19 6. Saul was out of passion, how well did he accept Jonathan's Apology for David? but p & 20. 30. in his passion, how ill did he take it? This wise observing of fit opportunity showeth great reverence. 5. By a present, ready, willing, pleasing answer, when by 5. By ready answers. their parents they shall be spoken unto. Eli was as a father to Samuel: therefore when q 1 Sam. 3. 4, 6, Samuel thought that Eli called him, he presently and readily answered, Here am I: and when Eli was instant to know what the Lord had said to him, r 18. Samuel told him every whit, and held nothing from him. s Mat. 21. 30. The younger son (noted in the parable) showed a son-like reverence in giving a willing and ready answer to his father, though he failed in his obedience, by not performing what he promised. §. 6. Of the vices in children contrary to the forenamed reverence in speech. Contrary to those branches of reverence in speech are, Contrary, 1. Scorning to acknowledge a parent. 1. Pride: when children scorn to give the title of Father, or Mother, to their parents. This is the mind of many who have gotten more wealth or honour, then ever their parents had. In public especially such children most refuse to give those titles. Solomon was not so minded. He being a great king, sitting upon his throne, in sight and hearing of all his people that were about him, called Bathsheba Mother. 1 King. 2. 20. If children had that regard to the honour of their parents which they should, they being themselves in places of honour and dignity, would the rather openly call their parent's Father and Mother, that they might be known to be the father and mother of so eminent a person. 2. Loquacity, and too much importunity, or rather impudence 2. Too much importunity. in speech, when children having to do with their parents, can never have done (as we speak) but must needs v●● matters to the very uttermost. Many parents are oft much provoked hereby. It skilleth not that the child have the right, especially in a matter of no great consequence. For reverence sake the child must forbear, at least for a time. And if the matter of difference be weighty, as in points of religion, the child must either take some other opportunity of better informing his parent, or else get some other wise friend to do it. 3. Stoutness, when children answer their parents as if they 3. Stout answers. Ne filius cum patre quoquo modo expostulet, cum lex interdixit, tum anteleges ipsa natura. Greg. Naz. in senten. Matt. 21. 29. Luke 15. 29. were their equals: giving word for word. It doth as ill become children to answer again, as servants (to whom the Apostle hath expressly forbidden it, Tit. 2. 9) Both law and nature forbiddeth children to be provoked hereunto, by any thing that their parents say or do; how great then is their fault who give scornful and stout words to their parents when they are no way provoked, as the elder son noted in the pa●able, and the elder brother of the prodigal child? 4. Indiscretion, when children have no respect to any time, business, or temper, of their parents in speaking to them, and 4. Unseasonable speech. Ephes. 6. 4. so, much provoke them. It is laid down as a caveat to parents, that they provoke not their children to wrath. How much more must children observe that caviar? 5. Stubborness, when children pout, louvre, swell, and give 5. stomachful silence. ●o answer at all to their parents. This is too common a fault in children, and many parents are much offended and grieved ●hereat. We heard * §. 4. before of a childelike silence which was ●ery commendable, and a token of great reverence; but this is worthy of much blame, a token of great undutifulness; and carefully to be avoided, as that to be practised. §. 7. Of children's reverend speeches of their parents. So true and entire aught that reverend respect to be which children bear to their parents, as their speech not only them●efore ●efore their faces, but also of them behind their backs, must 〈◊〉 so framed both for matter and manner, when they have any ●●casion to fall into speech of their parents, as all that hear ●●em may note them to bear a revererend respect to their parents'. Direction for children how to speak of their parents. As a general direction for the better performing of this ●●ty, let children speak nothing of their parents that they would be loath should come to their parent's ear. More particularly, let them speak of those things which most tend to their commendation, that so (as Christ said of his father john 8. 49. ) they may honour their parents. Let other things be buried in silence so much as in them lieth. And if others speak of matters disgraceful to their parents, let them interpret in the better sense things doubtful, and, so far as they may, extenuate things evident, and sharply reprove them that slander their parents. This is that blessing which children owe to their parents, for neglecting whereof the wiseman taxeth children saying, There is a generation that doth not bless their Prou. 30. 11. mother. Contrary to that kind of blessing is discovering of parents' children's unreverend speeches of their parents. infirmities, noted in cursed b Gen. 9 22. Cham, and broaching untruths of them, noted in impious c 2 Sam. 15. 3. Absolom, and mocking and cursing them d Prou. 30. 11. expressly condemned. The reward whereof is by e Leu. 20. 9 God's law death: yea a shameful and ignominious death, for the f Pro. 30. 17. Ravens of the valley shall pluck out his eyes, and the young Eagles shall eat it: g Gen. 40. 19 which phrase setteth forth the end of a notorious malefactor that is hanged. §. 8. Of a child's reverend carriage to his parent. As the speech, so the carriage of children towards their parents must be seasoned with reverence: for 1. This is a fruit, and proof of filial fear as well as that. 2. Of the two, this is the surer evidence: for actions are better signs of the disposition of the heart than words. 3. Fair words joined with contrary deeds, cannot but be accounted merely complemental and hypocritical. 4. Where there is a contrariety betwixt words and deeds, the one will be a witness against the other, and that man's condemnation the greater. children's reverence to their parents manifested, 1. by meeting them. Wherefore let all reverence be manifested in children's behaviour to their parents, and that in these and such like instances. 1. If a parent be coming to a child, and the child observe it, let him haste to meet his parent: so did a Gen. 46. 29. joseph to his father, and 1 King. 2. 19 Solomon to his mother. Which two examples are the rather to be noted, because both were in eminent place: one a great governor, the other a king. 2. Let such childlike obeisance be performed as becometh 2. By obeisance to them. the age and sex, either in going to, remaining before, or going from a parent: as uncovering the head, bending the knee, bowing the body, standing up, with the like. The two forenamed eminent persons, c Gen. 48. 12. joseph and d 1 King. 2. 19 Solomon, bowed, the one to his father, the other to his mother. 3. Let the countenance, and gesture of the body be so soberly 3 By well composing the countenance. and modestly ordered in the presence of the parent, as may argue due respect. 4. Let the upper place, and hand be given to parents: and 4. By giving the upper hand. if occasionally a child be above his parent, let him come below him. For that is a manifest token of inferiority and subjection. What maketh men to strive for the upper hand, but because they would be accounted better than those with whom they strive? But that ought not to be the mind of children to their parents. Quest. What if children be in estate more wealthy, or honourable than their parents, are they then to give the hand to them? Answ. No honour is comparable to the dignity of fatherhood: it giveth a greater eminency to the parent over his child, than any other honour can to the child over his parent. I grant that a child may by some office, and outward dignity be so advanced above his father, as other men may more honour and reverence the child, and give the upper place to him: and for order sake the child may and aught to take it in company: but when they are alone, the child must rather reverence the father. 5. According to the custom of the time and place wherein 5. By ask blessing. they live, let children ask their parent's blessing. §. 9 Of children's ask their parent's blessing, whether it be lawful or no. Some doubt is made of this duty both in regard of the thing itself, and also of the gesture of kneeling used in the performance thereof: I will therefore distinctly prove both. For the thing, it is noted of jaakob that he carried savoury meat to his father, that he might bless him: and of joseph, that Gen. 27. 19 he went to his father, and carried his two sons with him, Gen. 48. 1. etc. that his father might bless both him and them: for which end the twelve sons of jaakob assembled to their father. Gen. 49. 1. etc. How the blessings which the patriarches gave their children are patterns to others. Object. These were extraordinary examples: the Patriarches were endued with the spirit of prophecy, whereby they revealed to their children what their estate should be in the times to come: for knowledge whereof their children came to them. 1. Answ. Their blessings were more than predictions of things to come: they were confirmations and assurances to the See Treat. 6. §. 58. children that God would indeed perform that blessing which their parents had pronounced. For they sustained a double person: the person of a Prophet, and of a father; as prophets they foretold things to come: as fathers they obtained the blessings pronounced, and an assurance thereof to their children, Heb. 11. 20. and that by faith and prayer. 2. Answ. Though all parents cannot with such an extraordinary spirit assure unto their children any distinct particular blessing, yet the faithful prayer of parents is an especial, and ordinary means to obtain a blessing from God upon their children: and that because of God's promise which extends Gen. 17. 7. Act. 2. 39 itself not only to faithful parents, but also to their seed. Wherefore as the children of the patriarchs came to their fathers to be assured of some extraordinary blessing, so may other children go to their parents as a means to obtain an ordinary blessing. It is noted of Eliah that by an extraordinary spirit in prayer he obtained extraordinary matters: Yet jam. 5. 17. the Apostle setteth forth that example to all Christians as a motive to stir them up in faith to pray for ordinary blessings. But for further clearing of this point, note the phrase 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 used in the fifth commandment as a reason to move children to honour their parents: this it is word for word, That they may prolong thy days, etc. how can parents prolong their children's days, but by begging that blessing of God? * See Treat. 6. §. 4. Prou. 15. 8. How wicked parents may bless their children. The prayers then of parents are a great blessing to children, and children ought to seek this blessing of their parents. Object. If parents be wicked, their prayer is abomination: what blessing then can children look for from wicked parents? Answ. Though God hear not wicked parents in love and goodness to themselves, yet for the good of their children he may and will hear them: and that the rather to maintain a reverend respect of parents in the heart of their children. For ask a blessing is an acknowledgement of superiority and authority, according to that of the Apostle, The less is blessed Heb. 7. 7. of the greater. Concerning the gesture of kneeling, it is answerable to the It is lawful for children to kneel to their parents. Gen. 48. 12. gesture which of old was used by God's people in like case: of joseph it is said that he bowed down himself with his face to the earth. Object. Kneeling is a gesture proper to God's worship. Answ. It is not so proper, but that it may be used in civil cases: else Christ would have reproved the young man for kneeling before him as well as for calling him good: for he conceived Mar. 10. 17. Christ to be but a mere man, and the worship he did him was but civil. It is not simply the gesture, but the occasion of the gesture, the mind of him that performeth it, and the end why he performeth it that maketh it divine, or civil. Cornelius fell down before Peter with conceit of some divine excellency in him, and was not allowed: his manner of worshipping was divine. The jailer fell down before Paul and Silas in acknowledgement of some outward eminency in them, and was not reproved: his manner of worshipping was merely civil. The same gesture may be performed to different persons with a different respect. A child may kneel to his parent, and to the king. Yet it followeth not that he maketh his parent a king. Neither will it follow that by kneeling to his parent he maketh him a God, because men kneel to God. §. 10. Of the vices contrary to children's reverend gesture towards their parents. Contrary to the forenamed branches of reverend gesture, are, Vnreverend gestures of children. 1. Rudeness and unmannerliness, when children know not how to put difference betwixt their parents and strangers, but can 1. Rudeness. suffer their parents to come to them, and they abide in their place and not stir to meet them. 2. Disdainful stateliness, when they think much to stand 2. Stateliness. bareheaded any while in their parent's presence. It falleth out many times, that when parents and children are together before their betters, they will show more reverence than these: for the father will stand, and be uncovered, when the son sitteth down and puts on his hat, upon conceit that his father doth more reverence than is meet: but if it were so, yet the son for the father's sake should stoop somewhat the lower. 3. Wantonness and boldness, when children are over-familiar 3. Boldness. with their parents: toying and giggling upon every light occasion. This kind of carriage cannot but much tend to the disgrace and dishonour of parents. For what can they who behold it think, but that such children have been too much cockered and ill nurtured? 4. Ambition, when children are so ambitiously desirous of place, 4. Ambition. especially in company, as rather than be under some whom they suppose to be at least their equals, they will be above their parents. This oft falleth out, when parents being of a lowly mind, give place to such as their children, being of a lofty mind, think meaner than themselves. Now rather than they will be under their inferiors (as they suppose) they will be above their parents. A point of great insolency. Such aught to be the respect of a child to his parent, as he should debase himself below those that are his inferiors, rather than exalt himself above his parent. As with other men, for peace sake, in many cases, a man must depart from his right; so especially with his parent, in case of superiority. Would not every one that knows what honour a child owes to a father, condemn that child's ambition, that should so stand upon the place and hand, as to take them of his parent? 5. An overnice and erroneous opinion of those, who think it 5. Refusing to ask blessing. unmeet for any child to ask their parent's blessing. Their own conceit more swayeth them, than the continually approved practice of God's people in all ages: not unlike him whom Solomon saith to be wiser in his own conceit, than seven men that can render Pro. 26. 16. a reason. Others, though they do not so generally disavow this duty, yet they think it meet only for young children: not considering of what years, stature, and state, joseph was, when he performed it. As for those, who think it not unlawful, yet carelessly neglect it, they little consider the benefit of a parents blessing. Profane Esau shall another day rise up in judgement against them. He Gen 27. 34. Heb. 12 17. begged and begged again and again, and that with a loud cry and salt tears, a blessing of his father. Thus much of children's reverence. Their obedience followeth. §. 11. Of children's obedience. The obedience of children doth most prove the authority of parents, and is the surest evidence of the honour a child giveth to his parent: therefore is it a Eph. 6. 1. Col. 3. 20. by name in the text expressed, and all other duties are comprised under it. Reverence without obedience is a mere mockage, nothing at all acceptable. Of the two, a child were better fail in the former: instance the b Matt. 21. 31. parable of the two sons. Reverence in comparison of obedience is but a complemental honour. Obedience is a true real honour; the surest trial of a dutiful child. Obedience is a duty so proper to children, as the Apostle applieth it to them as a proper attribute, saying, c 1 Pet. 1. 14. as obedient children fashion not, etc. The example of Christ is herein set before us as a pattern: d Luk. 2. 5 1. he was subject to his parents. Solomon counteth the neglect thereof a e Pro. 23. 22. despising of a parent. Contrary is disobedience and rebellion: the greatest impeachment Disobedience most contrary to parent's authority. of parent's authority that can be. For to what end is authority over those who resist it, and rebel against it? The f 2 Tim. 3. 2. Apostle reckoneth disobedient children among the lewdest persons that be: and setteth forth their disobedience by g 'tis 1. 6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a metaphor taken from untamed, headstrong beasts, that will not be brought under the yoke: the word therefore is not unfitly translated unruly: and it is somewhat answerable to an h Deut. 13. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ex non & profuit. Hier. absque iugo. quasi 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Hebrew phrase given to disobedient children, viz. sons of Belial, which is according to the notation as much as sons without profit; or, as some will have ●it, sons without yoke, that is, such children, as refusing to be in subjection unto parents, are no way profitable, but work much mischief, and cause great grief. The i Deut. 21. 18, etc. punishment which by God's law was appointed to disobedient and rebellious children, was a public shameful death. §. 12. Of children's forbearing to do things without consent of parents. That children may the better know their duty in this respect, The parts of a child's obedience. I will distinctly set forth, both the parts, and also the extent of a child's obedience: 1. Wherein it consisteth. 2. How far it extendeth. The general parts wherein it consisteth are two: 1. A forbearance from doing things without consent of parents. Of the several ways whereby consent may be given, see Treat. 3. 2. A performance of such things as parents will have done. The former of these is a duty whereunto children are must bond while they are under their parent's government. For that §. 19 Num. 30. 17. time the consent of parents is not only meet, but necessary: and that for these reasons. 1. Children are as the goods of their parents, wholly in their power, to be ordered and disposed by them. On this ground Satan having all that job had put into his hand, took liberty over job 1. 12, 19 his children as well as over his goods and chattel. 2. Children while they be under government, (even the eldest that are heirs) differ nothing from servants. Galat. 4. 1. 3. By God's law given to the jews, parents had power to sell Exod. 21. 7. their children. 4. Parents had power to disannul such things as children had done. Instance the case of a vow made to God, which was one of Num. 30. 4. the most inviolable things that one could do. Contrary is the opinion and practice of many, who hold parents consent at the most but a matter of conveniency: that it is good, if children will, to have their parent's consent: if they have it not, the matter is not great: their contracts or other things which they do, are as firm, and good, without, as with their consents. If this were so, wherein is the authority of a parent more than of a wise experienced friend? It is meet, and good to have such an one's consent. But that the power of parents, and duty of children in this point, may the better be seen, I will exemplify it in five particular cases. 1. Entering into a calling. 2. Making marriage. 3. Disposing of goods. 4. Ordering apparel. 5. Making vows. §. 13. Of consent of parents for children's entering into a calling. I. That children ought to have the consent of their parents in making choice of their calling, and not place themselves as they please, is evident by the approved practice of the Saints recorded in God's word. a Gen. 28. 2. jaakob was sent by his parents to Laban to be educated under him. b 1 Sam. 16. 11, 19 David was appointed by his father to keep sheep: when Saul was desirous to have David attend upon him, he sent to Ishai, David's father, for him. In that c 1 Sam. 17. 17. Ishai was ●o careful to send provision to his three eldest sons that followed Saul to the war, we may well think, that they went to the war with his consent. It is noted of d Jer. 35. 7. jonadab, that he appointed his ●onnes to dwell in tents, and that accordingly they did so, and are commended and rewarded for this their obedience. It is collected ●oth by e justin. Mart. in Dial. cum Tryph. contr. jud. ancient and f Erasm. paraphr. in Mar. 6. Bez annot. in Mar. 6. later Divines, that our Lord jesus Christ Basil. lib. de vit. solit. cap. 15. Theod. Eccl. hist. l. 3. 6. 23. 〈◊〉 his younger years, before he began to exercise his public ministry, occupied himself in his father's trade: and that this was ●●e thing wherein he manifested his subjection to his parents. This collection is made by comparing Luk. 2. 51. (where his sub●●ction is noted) with Mar. 6. 3. and Mat. 13. 55. where he is cal●●d Muscul. in Mat. 13. Danaeus schol. in Mar. 6. Gualt. hom. 46. in Mar. Muthes. in Mar. 6. alijque. Reasons. the Carpenter, and the Carpenter's son. Equity requireth that parents should have an hand in placing ●●th their children, because they brought them forth into the ●orld, and brought them up with much care, pains, and charge, ●hile they were young, and till they were fit for a calling. Besides, Godhath laid it as a charge upon parents, that they ●ould see their children well trained up: great reason therefore 1. Equity. at parents consent be had in setting forth children to a calling. 2. God's charge. Bellarm. de Mon. lib. 2. cap. §. 14. Of the unlawfulness of children's entering into religious orders without consent of parents. Contrary is the opinion of Papists, who say, that children may 36. Licet filijs ingredi religionem invitis parentibus. ●er into religious orders, not only without consent, but also against the mind and good like of their parents. Whereby they 〈◊〉 not only patronise apparent disobedience in children, against the express word of God; but also disable children from helping their parents in case of necessity: for both which Christ rebuked the Scribes and pharisees in a like case. Object. Papists do grant that if parents be in such necessity, Conditio est, ut parentes non sint in tali necessitate, ut sine siliorum auxilio vivere non possint. Tunc enim tenentur ex praecepto Dei parentibus adesse. Bellarm. loc. cit. as they cannot live without their children's help, their children may not by entering into any religious order forsake their parents. For they are bound by the law of God to succour their parents. Answ. 1. This caution hath been extorted from them by evidence of argument taken from God's word, and pressed by their adversaries. 2. It toucheth not the principal argument taken from God's precept, which they make of none effect by this their tradition. 3. Though parents be not at that present, when children first enter into their religious order, in such extreme need, yet they may be afterwards. But after that children are once entered, they hold it utterly unlawful that children for any necessity of the parent, should attend upon them for their succour. Object. Children being entered into religious orders may Eos iuvant quomodo religiosos decet, nimirum precibus apud Deum. Bellarm. ibid. help them, as becometh religious persons, by their prayers to God. Answ. 1. This is jump the pharisees Corban, whereof Christ maketh mention, Mar. 7. 11. and whereby he notably discovereth the hypocrisy of the pharisees, who made pretence of religion, an hindrance to that obedience which God required of children. 2. To pray for that which a man endeavoureth not to do, when he may do it, is a plain mocking of God. The arguments which they allege for confirmation of their erroneous opinion, are taken from extraordinary examples, or from mystical resemblances, as 1. Abraham's leaving his father's house. Gen. 12. 1. Deut. 33. 9 2. Levies speech of his father and mother, who said, I have not seen him. 3. The advice given to the royal Queen, Forget thy father's Psal. 45. 10. house. 4. The trial of our love of Christ by loving him more Mat. 10. 37. than father or mother. 5. Christ's forbidding one that followed him to go and Luk. 9 60. bury his father. Answ. 1. For Abraham's example, 1. it cannot be proved that he left his father's house without the consent of his father. 2. He was then married, and so of another house. 3. He had Gen. 12. 1. an express particular charge of God to leave his father's house, even as he had to sacrifice his son. Except the like charge can be showed, his example maketh nothing to the purpose. 2. For Levies speech, 1. It was noted by Moses in relation Exo. 32. 26, etc. to a particular zealous fact of the Levites in executing the vengeance of the Lord, and so to be reckoned among such extraordinary things as are not exemplary. 2. That which moved the Levites to make no difference betwixt their parents and others, was the Lord's cause: their parents and kindred as well as others had notoriously sinned against God, and in that respect the Levites took no notice of them. But they are not such parents which Papists teach children to forsake, but any parents. Now what consequence is this; Some children have been Gods Ministers in executing just punishment on their wicked parents, therefore children may enter into such places as shall exempt them from helping any parents, though well deserving? 3. The Levites had an express charge for that which they did: but that which Papists infer from their Exo. 32. 27. example doth make the commandment of God of none effect. Mat. 15. 6. 3. For the * Psal. 45. 10. advice to the Queen, 1. It is mystically to be taken. 2. If it should be literally taken, it is to be taken as given to her after marriage, when she was out of her parent's government. 3. It hath relation to the * Gen. 2. 24. law of marriage, ●nd implieth not a simple forsaking of parents, but a preferring of a husband before them. 4. For the loving of father and mother more than Christ, 〈◊〉. It doth not necessarily imply a forsaking of our parents: ●or we may love Christ more than them, and yet perform ●uty to them. 2. If they be forsaken, it must be in opposition to Christ, that either Christ or they must be forsaken, in that if we cleave to them they will draw us from Christ. 5. For Christ's forbidding one that followed him to go and bury his father: 1. It was because of an extraordinary calling which he had. 2. It is set down as a pattern to Ministers, to show that they should especially attend upon their proper function, and leave other secular matters to be performed by such as can perform them well enough. To apply it to children's forsaking of parents, is to pervert the sense of it. Thus we see to how little purpose the forenamed arguments are alleged to prove that erroneous opinion of children's entering into religious orders without their parents consent. I might further show how irreligious their pretended religious orders be, and so show how unlawful it is to enter into them, even with consent of parents: but that maketh nothing to the point in hand. §. 15. Of the unlawfulness of children's travelling, and binding themselves prentices without consent of parents. Contrary also to the forenamed part of children's obedience, is the practice of such children as travel, and seek their fortunes (as they speak) without consent of parents, like the Prodigal child, if not worse: for it is likely that he forced Luk. 15. 12, etc. from his father a general consent, in that he obtained of him his portion of goods. These usually bring great grief to their parents, and many times make them fear more than is cause, as old jaakob feared, when he knew not what was become of Gen. 37. 35. his son. Among those aberrations may be reckoned a custom in this land more usual than lawful, for children to bind themselves prentices without consent of parents: to which fault they who take indentures of such children, or otherwise covenant with them without knowledge of their parents consent, make themselves accessary. Arguments to prove that children may not marry without parent's consent. §. 16. Of parent's consent to the marriage of their children. II. That children ought to have their parents consent unto their marriage is without all question evident. For 1. God himself hath given us herein a pattern: He first brought the woman to the man (Gen. 2. 22.) whereby he would show that he who gave a being to the woman, had a right to dispose her in marriage: which right parents now have: for from them under God, children receive their being. In this case parents stand in God's room, and are as it were God's hand to join their children in marriage. 2. God hath given express laws concerning this point. To omit that general moral law, Honour thy father and thy mother (which, as it is the ground of all other duties appertaining to children, so of this also) the authority and charge which God by his law (Deut. 7. 3) hath laid upon parents, to give their daughters to husbands, and to take wives for their sons, hath the force of a law to bind children from taking wives or husbands, without or against their parent's consent. This law was not proper to the jews only; but as a branch of the moral law it is pressed upon Christians, 1 Cor. 7. 36. 37. To this may be added the judicial law (if it be to be accounted merely judicial) of a parents power in giving his daughter, or refusing to give her in marriage to him that had deflowered her, Exo. 22. 17. 3. Answerable to the law hath been the practice of God's Saints recorded and approved in Scripture. Isaak married the wife which his father provided (Gen. 24. 67.) jaakob both obeyed his father in going to Laban's house for a wife (Gen. 28. 2.) and also when he came to Laban asked his daughter of him (Gen. 29. 18. etc.) Though Samson saw a daughter of the Philistims which Non est virginalis pudoris eligere maritum: electionem mariti parentibus deferat. Ambr. de Patr. l. 1. c. 9 pleased him well, yet would he not marry her before he had his parent's consent, judg. 14. 2. 4. These words of Thamar (2 Sam. 13. 13.) Speak unto the King (who was her father,) for he will not withhold thee from me, show that children were not wont to be married without consent of parents: Which is further confirmed by this oath of the Israelites, There shall not any of us give his daughter Legitimum non est coniugium nisi uxor petatur a parentibus. eucharist. in epist. ad eccles. Africa. unto Benjamin to wife, judg. 21. 1. 5. a Filij sine consensu parentum ritè & iure nubere non possunt. Tertul. ad uxor. l. 2. The ancient fathers of the Church have in their ages taught children this duty, and pronounced marriages of children without consent of parents, to be unlawful. 6. The very b Tempore crevit amor: tedae quoque iure coissent: Sed vetuere patres. Ouid. Metam. 4. Me parenti potius quam amori obsequi oportet. Teren. in Hecyra. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Eurip. in Androm. heathen have observed the equity hereof. Though Shechem loved Dinah, and had deflowered her, yet would he not marry her without the consent of his and her father, Gen. 34, 3. etc. Ishmael had learned as much either by the instruction he had received out of Abraham's house, or else by the light of nature; for he stood to the choice which his mother made for him, Gen. 21. 21. 7. Though c Concil. Trid. decr. de reform. matr. c. 1. Papists in other cases make the authority of parents to be of no effect, yet in this case they count it utterly unlawful for children to marry without or against their parent's consent: and have thereupon made Canons against it. 8. The d Matris voluntatem in tradenda filia omnibus natura praeponit. August. epist. 233. law of nature and nations, the civil and canon law, the common and statute law of our Land, all manner of law is agreeable to God's law in this point. 9 e Cum sponsus & sponsa benedicendi sunt a sacerdote, offerantur ecclesiae a parentibus. Grat. 30. quast. 5. Cau. It hath been a custom in all Christian Churches throughout all ages, for the parent, or some in the parent's Quod ipsi Philosophi mirati saint, seruate virgins. Ambr. de patr. l. 1. c. 9 room, to give the Bride to the Bridegroom at the time of the marriage: whereby the parent's consent is openly manifested. 10. f Erasm. in colloq. de Matrim. Luth. in serm. de Matrim. Bucer. in Mat. 19 Calu. Instit. l. 4. c. 19 §. 37. Bez. de Divort. Zanch. de Oper. Dei par. 3. l. 4. c. 1. Chemn. in Exam. part. 2. Brent. in Catec. Melanc. loc. de coniug. Perkins in Oecon. c. 6. alij●. Many Divines of good note and name have judged such marriages as have been made simply without, or directly against parent's consent (especially if parents have just cause of exception against those marriages) to be of no force till the parent be brought to ratify them: and in many Churches upon due examination of the matter, they use to account them as no marriages. Experience hath manifested the boldness of many children in setting light by their parents consent in those places where marriages once consummated are ratified, Hoc fieri debere & civilis & naturalis ratio suadet. justin. Instit. l. 1. tit. 10. Digest. l. 23. tit. 2 and made indissoluble, though they have been made simply without or directly against parent's consent. Many children think, though it be unlawfully done, yet being done it shall stand. Whereupon if they doubt of their parents consent, they will cast how to get their marriage consummate, so as their parents may not know of it to hinder it before it is done: and after it is done, impudently resolve to bear out as well as they can, the storm of their parent's displeasure. To prevent such contempt of the power of parents, and to establish that authority which God hath given them over their children, marriages without or against parents consent as aforesaid, are in many Churches made void. §. 17. Of the equity of the point, and reasons why children should have their parents consent unto their marriage. 1. By marriage children are put from their parents: for The reasons alleged §. * Gen. 2. 24. Man must leave his Father and Mother, and cleave unto his wife. Is it not then great reason that they from whom children 12. may be applied to this particular. had their being, and by whom they have been maintained and trained up till the time of their marriage, should have notice of that kind of leaving them, and consent thereto? 2. A parent's power by the marriage of his child is passed over to the husband or wife of the child. And shall such a power be taken away without consent of parent? 3. Children for the most part being heady and rash for want of experience; and seeking more to satisfy their present carnal desire, then to provide a good lasting help for themselves: but parents by the instinct of nature loving their children as well as children love themselves, and having by much experience better understanding of a meet help, and better able to use their discerning gift in this case, because it is not their own case, and yet the case of one whom they love as themselves, and to whom they wish as much good as to themselves; is it not meet even for the child's good, that in a matter of such moment as marriage, the parent should have a stroke? §. 18. Of a child's carriage in case a parent provide an unfit mate or none at all. Quest. What if parents urge their children to marry such Whether parents may force their children to marry, or no. as they can not affect and love: must children therein against their mind and liking yield obedience? Answ. If there be no just exception against the party commended, they ought with the uttermost of their power to endeavour See Treat. 6. §. 54. to bring their affection to the bent of their parents will: and as an help thereunto, be persuaded that their parents are as careful of their good as they themselves are, and wiser than themselves: yea above all they ought to make instant prayer unto God (in whose hand man's heart is to turn it Prou. 21. 1. whither soever he will) that he would be pleased to alter the course of their affection, and to settle it on the party whom their parent hath chosen for them; if at least they see no just cause to the contrary. But if notwithstanding all the means that they can use, they still find their heart altogether averse, they may in a reverend manner entreat their parent to forbear to press that match, and to think of some other. 2. Quest. What if the parent be negligent, and in due time provide no fit match, may not the child provide one for himself? Answ. A parent's negligence is not a sufficient pretext to make a child cast off that subjection which he oweth to his parent. Yet I deny not but that a child knowing where a fit match is to be had, may make known as much to his parent (as Samson did) and crave both his consent and help thereunto. judg. 14. 2. And if his parent give no ear to his humble suit, he may use the mediation of his kindred or other friends. Yea if necessity require that the child be married, and his parent add wilfulness to negligence, and will not be moved at all, neither by the humble suit of his child, nor by the earnest solicitation of any friends, means may be made to the Magistrate (who is in God's place over the parent as well as over Qui liberos iniuria prohibuerint ducere ux eres vel nubere, per praesides cogantur in matrimonium collocare Di est. lib. 23. tit. 2. § 19 the child, and aught to afford relief unto the child) and what the Magistrate doth in that case is as good a warrant to the child as if the parent had done it. The like means may be used if a parent be an Idolater, Heretic, or Atheist, and will not yield that his child be married to any but to one of his own profession and disposition. §. 19 Of the sin of Children in marrying without their parents consent. Contrary is the mind and practise of such children as over lightly esteeming their parent's power, take matches of their own choice: and that sometimes privily without giving any notice at all to their parents: and sometimes most rebelliously against their parent's mind and charge: not much unlike those who in the old world are condemned for taking wives of all that Gen. 6. 2. they chose (which was one branch of that wickedness for which the world was drowned) or rather like Esau who took Gen. 26. 35. such wives as proved a grief to his parents. What blessing can be expected to fall upon such marriages? or rather what curse may not be feared to follow them? God's law is transgressed thereby: his Image in parents despised, that which is more proper to them then any goods; or fraudulently, or violently taken from them: their souls grieved thereat: and they See more mischiefs following such marriages, §. 21. oft provoked to cast off their children, and curse their marriages. Now God's curse doth oft follow the just curse of a parent. §. 20. Of objections for children's marrying without parent's consent, answered. 1. Object. Though jaakob married one wife according to his parent's direction, yet he married other three (at least the two maids) without their consent. 1. Answ. jacob's example in marrying more wives than one is not justifiable. 2. Answ. jaakob had a general consent of his parents to Gen. 28. 2. take a wife of the daughters of Laban: if therefore his marrying of two wives had been lawful, neither this nor that daughter had been taken without all consent of his parents. As for the two maids of whom he had children, neither of them was his wife: for long after they had children they are called his maids, Gen. 32. 22. and distinguished from his wives. 2. Object. Servant's may marry without their master's consent: why then not children without their parents? 1. Answ. * See Treat. 8. §. 17. It is not lawful for servants so to do while the ●ate of their covenant lasteth. 2. Answ. Though the servitude of a servant be greater ●hen of a child, yet a parent hath in many respects a greater ●ower over his child, than a master over his servant. The ●ower which a master hath is by a mutual covenant betwixt him and his servant, and by the voluntary subjection of a ser●ant unto his master. But the power of a parent is by the bond of nature, in that a child hath his being from his parents. Be●ides, this subjection of a child to his parents in case of marriage, is not for servitude but * See the third reason in §. 17. for the good of the child. 3. Object. Children marry for themselves and not for their parents, why then should parents consent be so much stood upon? 1. Answ. Though they marry not for their parents, yet they marry * See the second reason in §. 17. Psal. 127. 3. from their parents: by marriage they are freed from the power of their parents. 2. Answ. Children are not their own: they are the inheritance of the Lord: the Lord hath given them to parents as an inheritance: a child therefore may no more marry for himself without consent of parents, then alienate his parents goods for himself. §. 21. Of stealing children from parents for marriage sake. To the * §. 19 forenamed sin, and to the vengeance thereof, do they make themselves accessary, who fraudulently allure, or violently take away children to marry them otherwise then their parents would. This is a worse kind of felony then stealing away the goods of a man. For children are much more properly a man's own, than his goods: and dearer to him then any goods can be: yea and so much more highly to be esteemed, by how much reasonable creatures are to be preferred before senseless, and sensual things. Our * Anno 4. & 5. Phil. & Mar. stat. 8. statute law expressly condemneth this, and imposeth a severe punishment on such as shall offend therein. And justly do such offenders deserve to be severely punished, both in regard of the heinousness of the sin, and also in regard of the many Mischief's arising from marriages without parents' consent. mischiefs which follow thereon, as, Alienation of parent's affection from their children, Disinheriting heirs, Enmity betwixt the friends of each party so married, Litigious suits in law, Ruin of families, and (if the personages, whose children are married without their parents consent, be great and noble) Disturbance of whole towns, cities, and nations. Instance the destruction of the Shechemites Gen. 34. * Causa mali tanti coniux. Virg. Aeneid. 6. Qui rapta longum cum coniuge bellum Attulit in patriam. Ouid. Met. l. 12. lege. Hor. Carm. l. 1. Od. 15. This is said to have been the cause of the ten years' war betwixt the Grecians and Trojans, and of the ruin of Troy. §. 22. Of minister's sin in marrying children without parents' consent. Such ministers also as through Carelessness, not taking due account of the parties whom they marry, whether they have their parent's consent or no; or through bribery, being hired by reward, do marry such children as they know have not their parent's consent; do in an high degree make themselves accessary to the * §. 19 forenamed sin. Their fact is as bad as the fact of the principals themselves. Their solemnisation of such marriages emboldeneth both the parties that are so married, and also all the persons that are present thereat. They highly dishonour Gods holy ordinance, in that bearing the person of God they say of such as God hath forbidden to be so joined together, Those whom God hath joined together let no man put asunder. If ministers had not their hand in such unlawful marriages, they could not be made: for our Church ratifieth no marriage but what is made by a minister. Wherefore some minister or other is guilty of this foul sin, whensoever any child is married without consent of parents. Well therefore doth our Church (to prevent this sin) expressly forbid ministers to marry any without parent's consent: and inflict a severe censure on them that shall offend therein. §. 23. Of children's forbearing to dispose any of their parents goods without consent. A third branch of the subjection of children in forbearing to do any thing without their parents consent, is about their parents goods. That children though living in their parent's house, ought not without their parents consent to dispose their goods, is evident by the extent of their obedience, in all things. In that Isaak was pleased to send jaakob to Padan Aram without any great provision, it seemeth that jaakob made conscience of taking any thing privily, but went as his father sent him a Gen. 32. 10. with his staff. And the b Gen. 31. 36. apology which he made to Laban his father in law concerning things taken away, sheweth that he held it unlawful for children privily to convey ●way their parent's goods. What is my trespass? what is my sin? (saith he) what hast thou found of all my householdstuff? Doth he not hereby imply, that if Laban's daughters had ●aken away any of their father's goods, it had been a trespass ●nd sin? The Apostle saith of the heir (who of all the children may Reasons. 1. Children under parents are as servants. seem to have the greatest right) that as long as he is a child (that is, under the government of his parents) he differeth nothing from a servant, though he be Lord of all. If he differ not from a servant, what right can he have at his pleasure Gal. 4. 1. to dispose his parents goods? Hath a servant any such right? It is very requisite that children herein should be tied to their parent's consent, both for the good of parents, and of children themselves. Of parents, that they may know what they have, or have 2. Good of parents. not, and accordingly order their expenses. How can parents tell what they have, if children privily without their knowledge purloin and dispose their goods? Of children, that their lavish humour might by this means 3. Good of children. be restrained: (for youth is much prone beyond moderation to spend, if it have wherewithal) and that their parents may the better lay up for them. 2 Cor. 12. 14. §. 24. Of the sin of children in purloining and wasting their parents goods. Contrary is both the opinion and practice of many It is a sin for children. children. For opinion, many think and say, that whatsoever is their 1. To mutter at their parent's allowance. parents, is theirs also: and thereupon being through the watchful eye and provident care of their parents restrained from overlavish spending, or from laying out any thing with their own hands, they murmur against that restraint. Knowledge and persuasion of their subjection in this case, would be a good means to suppress that repining humour. For practise, 2. Privily to purloin their parents goods. Gen. 31. 19 Who counsel children to convey away parents' goods are accessary to theft. 1. Some privily take away and purloin what goods, money, wares or any thing else they can come by of their parents. This the holy Ghost accounteth plain theft: for Rachel having privily taken away her father's idols, the Scripture saith that she stole them. Hereunto do they make themselves accessary, who counsel and encourage children so to do: as many busibodies, and deceitful persons advice daughters, when God hath taken away their mothers, to take away linen, and other-like householdstuff from their father, pretending that their father may marry another wife, who will carry all away: And upon like pretence also persuade sons when their fathers die, to convey away what they can from their mother. But such pretences are no sufficient warrant unto children to deceive their parents. It were better for children to be deprived of their parents goods, then to enjoy them with such deceit: for they will be like that bread which is sweet to a man, and afterward his Pro. 20. 17. mouth is filled with gravel. 2. Others riotously spend their portion, like the prodigal 3. Wastefully to spend. Luk. 15. 13. child, and run into debt, and so make their parents either to pay it, or to leave them to the law. Many Scholars at the Universities, Gentlemen at Inns of Court, and such children as are somewhat liberally trained up in their parents, or other friends houses, do much offend herein. Little doth this excess and riot differ from the forenamed kind of theft: and ordinarily it bringeth as many mischiefs as that doth. 3. Some also be so ungracious and ungrateful, that being 4. To defeat their parents of their goods cunningly. come to years, and their parents grown old, seek to defeat their parents of all they have, and to bring their parents under them, to be ordered by them: labouring to get possession of all before their parents be dead, or before they be willing to resign any such right unto their children. Such were 2 Sam. 15. 10. etc. Absolom, and Adoniah. How highly displeasing such practices are to God, the vengeance which fell upon the pates of 1 King. 1. 5. etc. those two Brethren in evil, traitorous, and disloyal children, doth show. All such children as seek after the forenamed, or any other like means to defraud their parents, do very ill repay their parents care over them, and more like Barbarians, than Christians, recompense evil for good: they oft bring poverty and ignominy upon their parents and themselves: they are worse than other thieves, because they are more dearly accounted of, and more freely trusted: yea they are a very bad example to servants in the house, or subjects in the commonwealth. §. 25. Of children's contentedness to be apparelled after their parent's mind and liking. FOUR A fourth branch of the foresaid subjection of children is about their apparel, that it be no other, then may stand with their parents good liking. It is noted that Israel Gen. 37. 3. made joseph a coat, doth not the particular mentioning of that circumstance show, that parents must have the ordering of their children's apparel? Which is also intimated in the reason given of tamar's garment of diverse colours, namely because 2 Sam. 13. 18. with such garments were the king's daughters, that were virgins, apparelled. And whereas Rebekah had the keeping of her Gen. 27. 15. son Esau's clothes, it appeareth that his clothes were to the mind of his parents: else he would have hid them from them: for further confirmation whereof it is noted that his apparel was pleasing to his father. Contrary is the vainglorious humour of many children, children's sin in apparelling themselves to the grief, and disgrace of their parents. who to the grief and discredit of their parents, apparel themselves both against the mind, and also above the ability, and unbeseeming the place and calling of their parents. Among others, many ministers children bring much discredit on their parents hereby. Let all such proud Youths note how the Lord hath threatened to visit even King's children that are clothed Zeph. 1. 8. with strange apparel. §. 26. Of children's forbearing to bind themselves to do any thing against their parent's consent. V. The fifth and last branch wherewith I will exemplify the forenamed subjection of children, shall be that which is expressly noted in the law, namely a child's binding of itself by a vow. The law giveth the parent power to disannul his child's Num. 30. 4. vow. It is therefore a child's duty to abstain from vowing without his parents consent. Contrary are such vows as Papists allure children to make, Unlawful vows of children. namely, vows of continency, perpetual virginity, regular obedience, voluntary poverty, with the like. Though by these they be not drawn to forsake their parents (which * §. 14. before we proved to be utterly unlawful:) and though these in their nature were lawful (which they are not, because they are against God's law and ordinance, and against Christian liberty, and savour too rankly of judaism, yea of a worse superstition,) yet without parents consent might they not be made. As unlawful are oaths, and other like means, whereby children bind themselves to the performance of such indifferent things, as their parents are not willing they should do. What doth this but bring a snare upon the consciences of children, and cause a necessity of breaking one of God's commandments? either the third, in breaking their vow or oath; or the fifth, in disobeying their parents. §. 27. Of children's active obedience. The affirmative and active part of a child's obedience, consists in yielding himself pliable to his parents will; which must be added to the forenamed negative and passive part of obedience in forbearing to do things without consent of parents, for manifestation of a true childlike affection and disposition toward the parent. Passive obedience may arise from mere sullenness, and stoutness of stomach. For there are many who will forbear to do this or that without consent of parents, because they are loath to ask their consent: they had rather have their own wills crossed in the things they desire, then be made subject to their parents will. What doth this argue, but a stout stomach, and a disdainful heart? Besides, to forbear the doing of an unlawful thing, is but to abstain from evil. But it is required of Christians a Psal. 34. 14. to do that which is good, as well as to abstain from that which is evil. This is it which is commended in jaakob: he did not only forbear to take such a wife as would be a grief to his parents (wherein his b Gen. 26. 34, 35. brother Esau had offended) but also obeyed his parents in c Gen. 28. 2. & 29. 18. taking such a wife as they willed him to take. This general point we will exemplify in four particular instances, namely, in a child's obedience to his parents commandments, instructions, reproofs, corrections. §. 28. Of children's obedience to their parents commandments. I. What lawful commandments soever parents give to their children, they must be ready to the uttermost of their power to obey. d Ephes. 6. 1. Obey your parents, saith the Apostle to children. Parents, by virtue of their place, have power and authority to command: Children therefore must obey, or else that power is to no purpose. To demonstrate this by some particulars: 1. If a parent call his child, or send for him, he must readily A child must come at the parents call. come, yea though he know not the occasion. Eli was in place of a parent to Samuel, whereupon the child supposing that Eli called him, b 1 Sam. 3. 5, etc. ran to him once, and again and again. c & 16. 12. David when he was sent for by his father out of the field to be anointed King, knew not the occasion, yet came. d Gen. 49. 1. The twelve sons of jaakob, though men grown, yet called for by their father, assembled themselves together before him. 2. If a parent be disposed to send his child any whither, or of A child must go at his parent's word. any errand, though it be far off, and may seem somewhat troublesome, yet he ought to go, and do it. The * §. 27. forenamed example of e Gen. 28. 5. jaakob, the example also of f & 37. 14. joseph (being sent to see whether it were well with his brethren) and of the g & 42. 2, 3. ten sons of jaakob (being sent by their father into Egypt,) and of h 1 Sam. 17. 17, David (sent to visit his brethren in the host) are in this case commended by the holy Ghost. Of David it is noted, that i 20. he arose up early and went as Ishai had commanded him: which setteth forth his ready obedience. 3. If a parent require his child to attend upon him, he must A child at command must attend upon the parent. also do that. When Abram was going up to the top of Moriah his will was that his servants should tarry behind, and that his son Isaak should attend him, and carry the wood for the sacrifice, and accordingly Isaak obeyed. Gen. 22. 6. 4. If a parent enjoin any task, or commit any business to A child must do the message his parent will have him do. his child, he ought faithfully to perform it. This kind of faithful obedience is commended in d Gen. 50. 5. joseph, in the e jer. 35. 8. Rechabites, and in f 1 Sam. 17. 20. David, with many others. joseph, by reason of his great place, might not go out of Egypt, yet to perform that which his father enjoined him, he asked leave. The Rechabites were tempted to break their father's charge, yet they would not. David when he was sent by his father, from the sheep which were committed to his custody, was careful to leave them with a keeper: 1 Sam. 17. 20. and again, when a Bear at one time, and a Lion at another came vers. 34. to the flock, he put his life in hazard to preserve the flock: all these circumstances are thus noted, to set forth the great care that these children had to discharge that charge which their parents had committed to them. §. 29. Of children's disobedience to their parents commandments. Contrary is a rebellious disposition in children, manifested by these and such like practices, 1. By refusing to be at their parents call; or coming (as we speak) at leisure, and making their parents wait for them. 2. By a lazy, sluggish pretending of vain and frivolous excuses, when their parents would send them of an errand, like that sluggard, who saith, a Prou. 22. 13. A lion is without, I shall be slain in the streets. Such pretences are as b & 10. 26. vinegar to the teeth, and smoke to the eyes. 3. By scorning to wait on their parents; and in that respect they will slink out of doors, and absent themselves, when they imagine their parents will use their service in that kind: they forsooth will not be their parents servants: and impious conceit. 4. By refusing to do what their parents enjoin them to do, and require at their hands, like c Matt. 21. 30. the younger son, that went not to work in the vineyard at his father's command. Such children for the most part offend herein, as through pride think the business enjoined to them too mean, and base to do. Had David, or the daughters of Reguel been of this mind, the one would 1 Sam. 16. 13, 21. & 17. 15. not have returned to his father's sheep, after he was anointed to be King over Israel, and after he had been called to the Court; and the other would not have watered their father's sheep, especially Exo. 2. 16, 17. among such rude and biosterous clowns, as without all respect to their place and sex, would drive them away. §. 30. Of children's obedience to their parent's instruction. II. Such wholesome instructions as parents give their children for the well ordering of their carriage, children ought conscionably ●o obey: a point which a Pro. 1. 8. 9 & 4. 1. Solomon much presseth: My son, saith ●he, hear the instruction of thy father, and forsake not the law of thy another, etc. And to move children the rather to do so, he sets before them b Pro. 4. 3. his own example, showing that he required no more of them then himself had performed. c Exo. 18. 24. Moses, though grown to years, and a prince among his people, testified his obedience to his father in law hereby. 1. Parents have an express commandment to instruct their Reasons. 1. Parents ought to instruct. children (as we shall * Treat. 6. after show.) Great reason therefore that their children hear and obey them therein. The good instructions of any one are to be regarded, much more of parents. 2. Great wisdom may be attained thereby: for the desire that §. 26, etc. parents have of their children's good, maketh them give the best 2. Children get much wisdom thereby. directions they can unto them, even what themselves have learned of others, or observed by their own experience: in this respect, Solomon styleth him d Prou. 13. 1. a wise son that obeyeth the instruction of his father: and resembleth the fruit and benefit thereof, to e Prou. 1. 9 & 4. 9 acomely ornament, to chains, and bracelets, and to a crown of glory. 3. Much joy and comfort is brought to parents by seeing 3. Much joy is brought to parents. their children observe their instruction: for f Prou. 10. 1. a wise son maketh a●glad father. Now this is a thing which children ought to aim at, g Prou. 27. 11. to rejoice their parent's heart. Esau is taxed for h Gen. 26. 35. grieving his parents. Contrary is their proud and foolish humour, who think they need no instruction, their parents are too jealous of them, they are wise enough of themselves; if their parents would but let them alone, they should do better: thus they show themselves impious against God, rebellious against their parents, and injurious to themselves. Such were i 1 Sam. 2. 25. Elies, and k Gen. 19 14. Lots sons. Now note the vengeance that fell upon them. §. 31. Of children's patience to their parent's reproof. III. The obedience of children must further * Treat. 3. §. 47, etc. The reasons alleged, and the directions given concerning a wife's subjection to her husband's reproof, may fitly be applied to this part of children's obedience. Here therefore the same order is observed, and the several points confirmed by proofs pertinent to children. extend itself to their parent's reproof: and that by patient bearing all manner of reproofs, and by amending what is justly reproved. That shame, whereof the Lord speaketh, which should be in a child, Num. 12. 14. when her father hath spit in her face, that is, by some outward sign manifested his anger, implieth a child's patient bearing of a parents reproof. This patience in a child must be manifested to his parent, whether his reproof be mild or bitter, just or unjust. In this respect a child must more consider the person who reproveth, than the matter or manner of the reproof. jacob's reproof of joseph, for his dreams which came of God, was unjust: Gen. 37. 10. the manner of uttering it, with many short pauses, and that interrogatively, implieth some tartness: yet such was his patience, as we read not of one discontented word that he gave. But most memorable is the patience of jonathan in this kind. His father Saul's 1 Sam. 20. 30, etc. reproof of him was directly unjust, and out of measure bitter: yet with what patience did he bear it? all that he replied was to make some little apology for David: he replied nothing against his father's opprobrious speeches. Great wisdom may be learned by this patience: for so may a Reason. Wisdom learned. child better judge of his parent's reproof, whether it be just or no. Though it be unjust, yet thereby may he observe what is displeasing to his parents: at least he may observe his parent's infirmity, and so know the better how to carry himself towards them. Contrary is the practice of such children, as upon every reproof of their parents are ready to * answer again. Our parents See. §. 6. are wayward, say they, who can bear them? If none else could bear them, yet should children: for parents ordinarily bear such waywardness, and untowardness at their children's hands, especially while they are young, as none else would or could. Quest. If a parent be mistaken in a matter, and unjustly reprove his child, may the child make no answer? Answ. Yes, he may, so he do it mildly, reverendly, and seasonably: not too peremptorily crossing or thwarting his parent. Object. Christ took up his mother very roundly for reproving Luk. 2. 49. him unjustly. Answ. Christ as God-man was greater than his mother, and in that respect with authority blamed her for her unjust reproof. The Virgin Marie was not ignorant thereof, and therefore was silent. §. 32. Of children's readiness to amend what is justly reproved by their parents. If a child be justly for his fault reproved by his parents, See Treat. 3. §. 48. both conscience toward God, and obedience to his parent, requireth that he readily redress that which is amiss. Unless amendment of the thing justly reproved be added to patient bearing of reproof, that patience can be no better accounted of, than dissimulation, and plain mockage. When the father Exo. 18. 17. in law of Moses told him, that what he did was not well, he forthwith amended it. But contrarily many lewd and ungracious children continue to go on in their wicked courses, though their parents again, and again rebuke them for it. Just was Elies' reproof of his children, but yet no amendment followed. Now note the inference made thereupon by the holy Ghost, They obeyed 1 Sam. 2. 25. not the voice of their father, because the Lord would slay them: whereby is implied, that to despise the just reproof of parents is an evident sign, and forerunner of God's heavy judgement. Solomon calls the child which will hear no rebuke, a Scorner, Pro. 13. 1. which noteth out a most obstinate sinner that cannot be reclaimed, and in that respect is scorned of the Lord. Pro. 3. 34. §. 33. Of children's submission to their parent's correction. FOUR Correction is a real reproof, a reproof in the highest degree, even the severest kind of reproof: so as by subjection hereunto great trial of obedience is made. By the same means must a child's submission to his parent in this kind of reproof be manifested, as in the former: namely, 1. By bearing patiently the correction which his parent shall give him. 2. By amending readily that for which he is justly corrected. The former of these is noted by the Apostle as a ruled case, a matter not to be denied, in these words, a Heb. 12. 9 We have had fathers of our flesh which corrected us, and we gave them reverence. One special part of this reverence is a patient suffering: therefore he infers thereupon, ought we not to be in subjection? etc. The latter is set forth by Solomon under an effect which followeth upon the performance thereof: for having advised a parent to correct his child, he addeth this reason, b Pro. 29. 17. He shall give thee rest, yea he shall give delight unto thy soul: how can this rest, and delight be given, but by the child's amendment of that for which he is corrected? A parent taketh no delight in the pain, and smart of his child, but in the fruit that followeth thereupon. As a child's transgression is c Gen. 26. 35. a grief, and vexation to the parent, so his amendment causeth rest and delight. Now this effect followeth not simply upon correction, but upon the good use thereof which is made by the child. It lieth therefore in the child, and so lieth upon him as a duty, to give this rest and delight to his parent by amending the fault for which he is corrected, as he brought grief to him by provoking him to use correction. Thus shall neither parent repent the inflicting, nor the child repent the enduring of correction. That a child may attain to this degree of obedience, he Direction for well using correction. must duly consider both the Cause whereby his parent is moved to correct him, and also the End which he aimeth at therein. The cause is the d Pro. 13. 24. love he beareth to his child. The end which he aimeth at, is his child's c & 22. 15. good. If these motives work not obedience, what can? §. 34. Of refusing, or abusing correction. Contrary is disdain on the one side, and obstinacy on the other. Disdain, when children scorn to be corrected by their parents: and in that respect when by all the means they can use, they cannot avoid it, they will mutter and murmur, fret and fume, rage and rave against their parents, and despise and hate them for it. Obstinacy, when they will be no whit bettered thereby, but still run on in their lewd courses, and rather wax the worse for being corrected. This may be counted the highest pitch of a child's rebellion: for this is the last means which a parent can use to reclaim his child from desperate courses. If this prevaileth not, the law of God requireth, Deut. 21. 18. &c that a parent should give up his child into the hand of the Magistrate, that he may be put to death. Hitherto of the distinct branches of children's Obedience. The Extent thereof followeth. §. 35. Of children's conforming their judgements to their parents. The extent of children's obedience is only implied in this Epistle to the Ephesians, but it is expressed (Col. 3. 20) in these words, Children obey your parents a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. IN ALL THINGS. A large extent, but not simply to be taken without any limitation: for the Apostle himself noteth a restraint in these words, b Eph. 6. 1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. In the Lord. So far forth as children transgress not any of God's commandments in obeying their parents, they ought to obey. This is to obey in all things, in the Lord. * Treat. 3. §. 63, 64, etc. The extent of children's obedience. The extent of children's duties being the very same that was of wife's duties: and the restraint also the same, that order which was there observed shall here also be kept. Only other proofs more pertinent to children's place, shall be brought to confirm those general propositions which may be applied to any inferiors. Many general reasons there alleged for proof of the propositions shall here be omitted. Wherefore compare this place with that. Thus we see that parent's authority is very large: there is no restraint of it but God's contrary command, whereof a child must be assured, if he refuse to obey his parent in any thing. It is not enough for a child to say I have thus long, and in thus many things obeyed my parent, I hope in some things if I have mine own will, I may be excused. No: All things comprise more than many things. Wherefore Many are not enough. And though Gods will be exempted, yet is not thine own will exempted: though thou mayest do nothing against God's will, yet thou oughtest to do many things against thine own will, if it be contrary to thy parents. Two things are to be laboured after by children for attaining to this extent of obedience in all things. 1. They must labour to bring their judgement and will to the bent of their parents: to think that meet and convenient for them to do which their parents will have them do. Though Isaak thought it somewhat strange that he should Gen. 22. 6, 7. carry wood up to an hill to offer sacrifice where was nothing for a burnt offering, yet it being the will of his father that he should do so, he thought it meet enough for him to do so. This subjection of judgement and will is to be yielded in all the particular cases of obedience which were * §. 13. 14. etc. before propounded, as in their calling, marriage, apparel, allowance, etc. So as children are to think that kind of calling, that particular match, that apparel, and that allowance to be meetest for them, which their parents think meet. If the judgement be persuaded of the meetness of a thing, Reason. and the will inwardly brought to yield unto it, outward obedience will more readily and cheerfully be yielded thereunto. Contrary is the overweining conceit which many children children's overweining conceit of their own judgement above their parents, causeth much mischief. have of their own judgement and will, who think they can better discern what is fit and meet for themselves, than their parents. They imagine their parents to be too strict and precise, or too suspicious and jealous, or too covetous and worldly. This maketh them take what callings, what matches, what apparel, what allowance they think best; whence many mischiefs arise, which would all easily be avoided, if they would lay down that presumptuous conceit, and labour to observe the forenamed direction. §. 36. Of children's yielding to practice at their parents command, such things as in their judgements they cannot think very meet. 2. Though children cannot in their judgements think that which their parents require to be the fittest and meetest, yet being pressed thereto by the peremptory command of their parents, in practice they ought to yield unto it, saying to their parents as Peter to the Lord, Nevertheless at thy word I will do this, Thus did a Gen. 27. 6. etc. jaakob yield to Rebekah: he thought by doing that which his mother bid him, he should seem a ●●ocker to his father, yet she urging him, he did it. Quest. May not a child, yielding better reason than his parent, refuse to do what he thinketh unmeet, or at least for●eare to do what he is commanded, till he be better informed ●f the meetness thereof? Answ. With reverence and humility he may render his reason why he thinketh it not meet, and desire his parent not to urge it upon him. (This did b Gen. 43. 3. judah one of the sons of jaakob, and is not blamed for it:) and parents ought in such a case to yield to their children (as c Vers. 11. jaakob did.) But yet if in things indifferent, parents be otherwise minded then their children, and will have their children yield to them, they must yield. For, 1. In in different things the command of a parent is a warrant to the child, by reason of this extent (all things:) so as the parent may sin in commanding that, in doing whereof the child may not sin. Who can clear Rebeckah of sin in commanding jaakob to deceive his father? yet I take it, that jaakob cannot justly be blamed for obeying. 2. Children do thus manifest an high esteem of their parents, and very great respect towards them: they show how desirous they are to please them, and how fearful to offend them. When the will of parent and child consent, there is no such trial. 3. By this means peace and love is better preserved betwixt parent and child: a parent's anger is stopped, the effects thereof avoided, and many other mischiefs prevented, which oft fall out when inferiors refuse to yield to their superiors who have authority over them. Contrary is their preposterous peremptorines who will do A fault for children to be too peremptory- against their parents command. nothing against their own mind & will, though their parents require it never so much. This phrase ( f Gen. 43. 5. If thou wilt not send, we will not go down) which judah used to his father, though in a good cause, was too peremptory for a child. They who obstinately refuse to do those things which are against their own mind, must needs come short of this extent, Obey in all things. Yea they show that what they do is rather for their own sakes because they like it, then for their parent's sake. What obedience then may that be thought to be? Yet this is all the obedience which many children will yield. If they think not that which their parents require to be meet, nor fair, nor foul means shall move them to do it; whereby many children do much provoke their parents. Let such children know, that it is every way more safe for them at the instant command of their parent to do that which they conceive to be unmeet, then peremptorily to disobey their parents, which is more than unmeet, even unlawful. §. 37. Of the restraint of children's obedience. The restraint of children's obedience is expressed in this clause, in the Lord: which phrase affordeth a necessary limitation Heb. 12. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. in obeying their parents, who are but parents of our flesh, men and women, subject to err in their commandments, and to require such sinful things as their children may not with a good conscience perform. The limitation then which the forenamed clause (in the Lord) affordeth, is this, Children must perform no other obedience to their parents, then may stand with their obedience to God. The reasons rendered by the Apostle prove as much: This is right, this is well pleasing to Ephes. 6. 1. Col. 3. 20. the Lord. But to obey parents against the Lord is neither right nor well-pleasing to the Lord. If therefore parents command their children to do any thing See the two pair of cautions annexed to like limitations of a wife's obedience, Treat. 3. §. 51. & 52. and apply them to these limitations of children's obedience. which the Lord hath forbidden them, they ought not to do it. On this ground did Michal well in suffering her husband David to escape out of the hands of Saul her father. I justify not her manner of carrying the matter, with untruths, and false tales; but her refusing to yield to her father's mind and will is justifiable, and that in two respects. 1. In that the difference was betwixt her husband and father. Now e Gen. 2. 24. & 3. 16. by God's law a wife is to yield to her husband rather than to her father. 2. Because she knew her father sought to slay him: if then she had delivered him into the hands of her father, she had made herself accessary to murder. In this latter respect Io●●athan also did well in refusing to fetch David at his father's 1 Sam. 20. 31, 32. command. Thus if a father command his child to go to Mass, to forswear himself, to marry an Idolater, to steal, to lie, or to commit any other sin forbidden by God, the child ought not to obey: those things cannot be done in the Lord. Again if parents forbid their children the doing of any necessary duty commanded of God, the child ought to do it notwithstanding the parent's inhibition. We may well think that Ahaz who set himself so violently to deface the holy things of God, to profane his ordinances, and to shut up the doors of God's House, gave straight charge to his son that he 2 Chr. 29. 3. etc. should not repair them again; yet Hezekiah so soon as he had power did repair all. If a parent forbid his child to go to the Protestants Churches, to hear a Sermon, to pray in a known tongue, to give just weight, and measure, to speak the truth when he is called to witness it, with the like; he must be of daniel's mind, Dan. 6. 10. and notwithstanding that prohibition, do the things which God requireth. requireth 38. Of children's sin in yielding to their parents against God. Contrary to this limitation is on the one side a flattering eye-service in many children, who care not what they do, be 1. Eye service. it good or evil, lawful or unlawful, so they may please their parents thereby: and on the other side a slavish fearfulness, 2. Fearfulness. which maketh them so to dread their parents as they fear not God at all: they will rather choose to sin and so provoke God's wrath, then do any thing whereby their parent's wrath may be provoked. It is a brand set upon evil kings that they a ½ Kin. 22. 52. walked in the ways of their fathers, and mothers: and did wickedly b 2 Chr. 22. 4. as they counselled them. Wherefore the following and obeying of their parents in evil was so far from extenuating their sin, as it did rather aggravate the same. The preferring of father and mother before the Lord Christ showeth that such a child is c Matt. 10. 37. not worthy of Christ: In comparison of Christ d Luke 14. 26. Father and mother must be hated. But that undue and unchristianlike respect of parents above Christ, is it that maketh so many young Papists, young swagerers, swearers, Motives to provoke children to prefer God before their parents. liars, deceitful persons, and lewd livers. For avoiding the two forenamed extremes let thine heart be filled with a true fear of God, and withal consider the difference betwixt our earthly parents and our heavenly Father. They are but parents e Heb. 12. 9 of our flesh, he is the Father of spirits. f Luk. 12. 4, 5. They can but touch the body, he can cast body and soul into hell. They are but a while over us, he for ever. Their authority is subordinate to his, his supreme & absolute of itself. They can give but a light temporary reward; he, an eternal weight of glory. They cannot shelter us from his wrath, he can from theirs. Hitherto of such duties of children as respect their parent's authority, such as respect their necessity follow. §. 39 Of children's Recompense. The general head whereunto all the duties which children owe to their parents in regard of their Necessity, is in one word Recompense, which is a duty whereby children endeavour as much as in them lieth, to repay what they can for their parent's kindness, care, and cost towards them, and that in way 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Arist. Ethic. l. 8. c. 14. of thankfulness; which maketh a child think he cannot do too much for his parent, & well may he think so, for a parent doth much more for his child before it is able to do for itself, than the child possibly can do for the parent. So as if the parent's authority were laid aside, yet the law of equity requireth this duty of Recompense: so also doth the law of piety and charity. Wherefore of all other Duties this is most due. 1 Tim. 5. 4. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. It is in express terms given in charge to children by the Apostle, who willeth them to learn to requite their parents. Contrary is neglect of parents in their need, which is more It is monstrous ingratitude for children to neglect their parents. than monstrous ingratitude. As all ingratitude is odious to God and man, so this most of all, and yet very many are guilty thereof. In them the proverb is verified that love is weighty. For it is the property of weighty things to fall down apace, out to ascend slowly, and that not without some violence. Thus love from the parent to the child falleth down apace, ●ut it hardly ascendeth from children to parents. In which respect another proverb saith, One father will better nourish nine children, than nine children one father. Many children in his kind do no more for their parents, then for strangers. They either consider not how much their parents have done for them; or else they conceit that what their parents did, was of mere duty, and needeth no recompense. Fie upon such barbarous and inhuman children! §. 40. Of infirmities whereunto parents are subject. The rule of the forenamed recompense is on the one side A rule of recompense. the parent's Necessity, and on the other, the child's Ability. So as in every thing wherein a parent needeth his child's help, the child to his power must afford his best help. Beyond ones power nothing can be expected. Ultra posse non est esse. A parent's Necessity may be through Natural infirmities. Casual extremities. Natural infirmities are Inward. Outward. Inward Infirmities are weakness of judgement, slipperiness of memory, violence of passion with the like; whence proceed frowardness, testiness, suspiciousness, jealousy, fear, grief, etc. Outward Infirmities are such as arise from some instant temptation, as were a Gen. 9 21. Noah's and b & 19 33. Lot's drunkenness; b & 19 33. Lots and c 2 Sam. 11. 4. David's uncleanness; d Gen. 12. 13. abraham's and e & 26. 7. Isaakes dissimulation; f & 37. 34, 35. jacob's and g 2 Sam. 18. 33. David's excessive lamentation, etc. Some of these latter, which may seem most heinous and odious sins, are then to be accounted infirmities, when they who commit them make not a sport of them, nor delight to live and lie in them, as swine to wallow and lie in the mire: but only at some times, through some temptation, as it were unawares, fall into them; and after they are committed they are themselves more ashamed of them, and more grieved for them, than any other that see them, or hear of them. In regard of the natural infirmities of parents, the duty of children is both to bear with them, and also to cover them so far as they can. §. 41. Of children's bearing with their parents infirmities. Children bear with their parents infirmities when they do not the less reverendly esteem their place, or person, nor perform the less duty to them because of their infirmities. This is the first particular branch of recompense. For children in their younger and weaker years are subject to many infirmities: if parents had the less respected them for their infirmities, and from thence had taken occasion to neglect them, and would not have borne with them, surely they could not have been so well brought up. That great patience, longsufferance, and much forbearance which parents have showed towards their children, requireth that children in way of recompense show the like to their parents as occasion is offered. It was a great infirmity in Isaak to prefer Esau a profane child, before jaakob a religious child, especially against God's express word concerning jaakob; yet jaakob respected not his father a whit the less for it, as appears by his a Gen. 27. 12. fear to offend him, and by his b & 28. 5. readiness to obey him. c & 37. 10. jacob's unjust reproof of joseph was no small infirmity, and yet how much joseph reverenced and every way respected his father the history following showeth. Saul's infirmities were far more and much greater than any of theirs, yet what duty and faithfulness did jonathan his son perform to him, even to their deaths? for d 1 Sam. 31. 2. he died with him. We have herein the pattern of Christ himself: how great infirmity did his mother bewray, when over-rashly she rebuked him being about a good work, a bounden duty, his Father's business? yet immediately thereupon it is noted that he went down with his parents, and was subject to them: which Luk. 2. 51. manifesteth the honour he gave to his mother, notwithstanding her infirmity. Contrary to this duty do they, who take occasion from their parents infirmities to think basely of their person and A child may not despise a parent for any infirmity. their place, and thereupon grow careless in duty, either refusing to do any duty at all, or else doing it carelessly, grudgingly, disdainfully, and scornfully. Absolom made a supposed infirmity of his father the ground of his rebellion. Had 2 Sam. 15. 3. his pretence been true, yet had it not been a sufficient cause for him to disgrace, and rise against his father, as he did. The law that threateneth God's vengeance against such children as mock at their father, or despise to obey their mother, maketh Pro. 30. 17. no exception of parents' infirmities. §. 42. Of children's covering their parents infirmities. Children cover their parents infirmities both by passing by them (as we speak) and taking no notice of them, and also by concealing them from others as much as they can. The Scripture noteth it to be a property of love to cover a multitude 1 Pet. 4. 8. of sins: now in whom should love abound, if not in children? And who should more manifest this property of love then children? Of passing by and concealing from others a parents infirmity, we have a worthy pattern in Shem and japhet: when Noah their father being drunken lay uncovered in the midst of his tent, they went backward (that they might not themselves Gen. 9 23. see their father's infirmity) and covered his nakedness (that others might not see it.) The blessing which upon this occasion was then promised to them and their posterity, showeth how acceptable this duty was to God. Contrary was Cham's practice, who discovered, and made A Sin for a child to discover a parent's infirmity. known his father's nakedness. The curse thereupon denounced against him, sheweth how odious that sin was unto God. Too many there be of Cham's cursed brood, who blaze abroad their parents infirmities, and make such things known of them, Gen. 9 22. Vers. 25. as otherwise would not be known: whereby they bring much dishonour and shame upon their parents (which can be no honour Parent is imprecatione nihil perniciosius excogitari potest. Plato de Leg. lib. 11. to the children,) and withal a curse from their parents on themselves, which the heathen accounted very dreadful. More contrary was Absoloms' practice, who raised a most malicious slander of his father, and thereby alienated his subject's hearts from him. Too many Absolom-like seek to raise a supposed More than monstrous for a child to raise a slander of a parent. reputation and honour to themselves by vilifying and disgracing their parents: but let them note Absoloms' end. Assuredly, if they hold on in that course, the like, or a worse, shall be their end. §. 43. Of children's bearing with their parents casual necessities. 2 Sam. 15. 3. Casual extremities, are all manner of crosses which by the providence of God are laid upon a man: whether upon his body, as blindness, lameness, sickness, etc. or on his person, as captivity, banishment, imprisonment, etc. or on his estate, as poverrie, penury, etc. In all these, children must bear with their parents, as in the forenamed infirmities; neither less reverendly esteem of them, nor perform the less duty because of them. These are such necessities, as are not sinful in themselves; and therefore in regard of these, parents are much more to be borne withal. Though Isaak were blind, yet did not jaakob a whit the less respect Gen 27. 1. Ruth 1, 16, 21. him. Though Naomi were poor, yet Ruth her daughter in law continued to do a child's duty and service unto her. Contrary is the unnatural disposition of such children, as Unnatural to despise a parent for any casual infirmity. take occasion from these casual necessities of their parents to despise them. God hath made an express law against despising those who are by any outward defects impotent, as deaf, blind, etc. If no person may despise another, for these, much less children Leu. 19 14. their parents. They are worse than Cham that do so, and may look for an heavier curse. §. 44. Of children's relieving their parents according to their need. Besides bearing with parents' necessities, in such cases as parents stand in need of their children's relief and succour, they must afford it them. In sickness they must visit them, as a Gen. 48. 1. joseph visited his father. In time of mourning, they must comfort them, as b & 37. 35. the children of jaakob. In want, they must provide things needful for them, as c & 42. 8. the sons of jaakob, who went up to buy food for their father; and as d & 47. 12. joseph, who sent for jaakob into Egypt, and there nourished him. It is noted of e Ruth 2. 18. Ruth, that she did not only glean for her mother a poor woman, but also reserved some of that food which was given to herself to eat, for her. In time of danger they must do what they can for their protection and preservation, as f 1 Sam. 22. 3, 4. David had in this respect an especial care of his father and mother. Yea, if God be pleased to Vetustissima lex erat inscripta mentibus omnium, ut liberi si hoc officij graventur impendere quod pulli ciconiarum reponunt suis parentibus, velut impij conijciantur in vincula. Erasm. Instit. Matrim. take children out of this world before their parents, and their parents be succourless, they must take what order they can for the well-being of their parents after their own departure, as g john 19 27. Christ, who commended his mother to his disciple john a little before his death. These and such like duties are particular branches of recompense, and are all comprised under that h 1 Tim. 5. 4. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. requital, which the Apostle requireth of children: And they are but a small part of requital of all the pains, care, and charges, that parents have been at with their children. Yea, this only thing, that parents have brought forth children into the world, can children never sufficiently requite. Nature hath taught thus much, not only unto heathen men, but also unto the unreasonable creatures. Among other unreasonable creatures, the example of the * Arist. Plin. Suidas. Stork is worthy to be noted: for it is recorded of that kind, that when the dams are old, the young ones feed them; and when through age, they are ready to faint in their flying, the young ones will help; and when they are passed flying, the young ones carry them on their backs. The * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Sin of pharisees in freeing children from relieving their parents. Greek name of a Stork is taken from that word, which signifieth, to requite a parent's kindness: or else this word is taken from that name: they are both of the same notation. Contrary is the opinion of pharisees, who thought that children by consecrating their substance to the Temple, might be freed from this duty of recompense to parents, which is the mystery of that Hebrew word i Mar. 7. 11. Corban. They made a mere pretext of piety to God, a cause of manifest impiety against parents. Christ giveth this verdict of them, that k vers. 13. they make the word of God of none effect. * See §. 14. 1. Sin of children in denying relief to parents. Papists are of the same opinion, and so under the same censure. Contrary also is their practice, who having the goods of this world, suffer their parents to want. l 1 joh. 3. 17. Iniquissimum est patrem egere, cum filius sit in facultatibus. Digest. lib. 25. tit. 3. §. 5. S. john saith, that the love of God dwelleth not in him, who shutteth up his compassion from his brother in that case; how then can it dwell in such a child? Not they only who suffer their parents to starve, offend in this extreme, but they also who suffer them to live poorly, and basely, when themselves m Luk. 16. 19 2. In bringing parents into extremities. Dives-like fare delicately, and go gorgeously attired every day. In an higher degree do they offend, who bring their parents to such extremities, as to poverty by their lavish spending; to prison by importuning them to be their sureties; to excessive grief by their mischievous practices, as n Gen. 37. 34. 3. In striking parents. the sons of jaakob. But what shall we say of such graceless children, as dare strike their parents? o Exod. 21. 15. 4. In murdering parents. God's law accounteth such a child unworthy of life, and adjudgeth him to death. Nay, what may be said of father-quellers, and mother-quellers? There was of old no particular law made against them, because it is, supposed, that no child can be so unnatural and inhuman. In imitation whereof p Solon cum interrogaretur, cur nullum supplicium constituisset. in eum qui parentem necasset, respondit, se id neminem facturum putasse. Cic. pro Ros. Amer. Solon, that wise lawmaker among the heathen, made no law against them: and his reason being asked, he answered, that he thought no child would commit such a fact. When afterwards such inhuman impiety was manifested in the world, the Civil Law ordained this punishment; q Si quis parentus fata propera verit, neque gladio, neque ignibus, neque ulli alij solenni poenae subiugetur, sed insutus culeo cum cane, & gallo gallinaceo, & vipera, & simia, vel in vicinun mare, vel in amnem proijciatur, etc. Justin. Cod. l. 9 tit. 17. Cur voluerint parricidas insui in culeum vivos, atque ita in flumen deijci, docet Cicero pro Ros. Amer. Ad famam filij attinet, ut videatur honorem debitum patri defuncto praestitisse. Cic. Philip. 9 If any shall kill his parent, let him not be put to the sword, nor fire, nor any other usual punishment: but let him be sowed in a sack with a dog, and a cock, and a viper, and an ape, and cast into the next sea, or river; that while life is in him, he may begin to want all use of the elements, and be deprived, while he liveth, of the air, and when he is dead, of the earth. This sin having been committed among the heathen, the Apostle reckoneth it up among other most notorious and barbarous sins, 1. Tim. 1. 9 As murder is one of those sins, which the earth can least bear, and which cryeth loudest to heaven for vengeance; so among the several kinds of murder, this is the most unsupportable, and crying. Thus much of the duties of children, which they are to perform while their parents live. It remaineth to speak of those which they are to perform when their parents are dead. §. 45. Of children's care to bury their parents being dead. The duties which children owe to their parents after they are dead, concern the Body of their deceased parent. Credit It is the duty of children to bring the bodies of their parents deceased, with such decency and honour, as may be answerable to the place and reputation wherein they lived. So as both the thing itself, and the manner of doing it, is to be observed. Burial a means to maintain hope of resurrection. The thing itself, namely Burial of the corpse of such as are deceased, hath ever been in use in God's Church: and it hath been used as a means to maintain our hope of the resurrection of our bodies. Many of the heathen, who never dreamt of the resurrection, Constituere pyras: huc corpora quisque su●rum More tulere ●a●rum, subject sive ignibus, etc. Virg. Aeneid. 11. were wont to burn the dead bodies of their friends: other heathen learned this manner of burial from the Church, though they knew not the mystery thereof. It is more clear than needs be proved, that God's people, from the beginning of the world, have performed this duty of burial to their friends; but it is not pertinent to the point in hand, to insist upon the general: that it belongs especially to children to procure this duty to be performed, is now the point to be proved, which is readily done by the approved examples of a Gen. 25. 9 Isaak, b & 35. 29. jaakob, c & 50. 7. joseph, and others expressly recorded in Scripture. And great reason there is for it: for 1. It is a testimony of great love and good respect to the party 1. Reason. deceased. Now who should manifest more love, and greater respect than a child? 2. It is a kind of d 1 King. 14. 13. 2 King. 22. 20. blessing, promised by God to his Saints, to 2. Reason. be buried: as on the other side, it is a f jer. 22. 19 1 King. 21. 23, 24. Psal 79. 3. curse threatened against obstinate sinners, not to be buried. In this respect, g 2 Sam. 2. 5. David blesseth the men of jabesh Gilead for burying Saul, and acknowledgeth it a kindness done to Saul. Now who ought rather to procure a blessing, and do a kindness to parents, than children, who are oft blessed through their parents means? 3. It being a great deformity to have a man's corpse lie above 3. Reason. ground (for no carcase will be more loathsome than a man's if it lie unburied) children, who are most bound to cover their parent's deformity, are in this respect bound to bury their corpse. Sin of children to neglect their parents dead corpse. Contrary is their practice whose minds are so set on their parents goods, as they clean neglect their bodies. So soon as their parent's breath is out of their body, they so busy themselves about the things which they have left behind them, as their corpse is ready to stink before care be taken for the burial of it. Yea, some will purposely keep their parent's corpse above ground till they be exceeding noisome, for receiving some revenues, or debts, or other accounts, which must be paid before the corpse be buried. If their corpse must needs for sometime be kept above ground, let them be imbalmed, or so used as they may not savour. They who are careless hereof, show that they respect their parent's wealth Sin of children entering upon their parent's estate before they are dead. 1 King. 1. 5. more than his person and honour. In which respect they also heinously transgress, who are so greedy of their parent's estate, as they must needs prevent his departure, and like Adoniah enter upon their father's estate, and take possession of his goods before breath is out of his body: whereby they do oft cause great disquietness to him that would depart in peace. Again, others bearing an inward grudge and secret hatred Sin of children disturbing their parent's funeral. against a brother, or other kinsman, whom their parent entirely loved, and in that respect durst not meddle with him in their parent's life-time, so soon, as their parent is dead, pick a quarrel with the party hated, and so disturb and hinder their parent's funeral. Such a plot Esau intended: but God defeated Gen. 27. 41. it, whereby it appeareth that God is displeased therewith. §. 46. Of the decency wherewith children ought to see their parents buried. The manner after which children ought to see their parents buried, must be with such decency as is agreeable to the commendable custom of the country and Church where their parents die, and with such honour as is in some measure answerable to the estate, and place of their parents while they lived (at least if it be not above the means that the parent hath left, or above the ability of the child that maketh the solemnity.) joseph was a great Governor in Egypt, by reason whereof his father when he came thither was highly accounted of: accordingly Gen. 50. 7. with great honour did he carry him to his grave. There are two extremes contrary to the forenamed decency Contrary, 1. Too sumptuous funerals. ●nd honour. One is an overlavish and prodigal sumptuousness ●nd solemnity at their parent's funeral, far above the estate, ●nd far beyond the means which the parent hath left, and far also above the estate and ability of the child himself. ●ome by the needless solemnity of their parent's funeral are ●● far cast into debt, as they are never able to recover themselves again, and so bring more dishonour to their parents by ●he weakness of their child's estate, than honour by the solemnity of the funeral: there may be great honour, and much decency in a funeral, where is not extraordinary char●es: instance Stevens funeral. Act. 8. 2. The other extreme is too base and private a manner of 2. Too base funerals. burying their parents, much unbeseeming both their parents ●nd their own estate, and means; which ariseth from a mixture ●f pride, and covetousness possessing their hearts. Pride ma●eth them have no solemnity at all, because covetousness will not suffer them to exceed in their solemnity. Hence it cometh to pass that they choose out strange places where neither their parents or selves are known, and the dead of the night that none may espy them; and appoint an uncertain time, that no friend may accompany them. God oft meeteth with such proud, covetous children in their kind, and causeth them with like dishonour to be brought to their graves. §. 47. Of children's paying their parents debts after their death. As children must have respect to the body of their parents children's respect to the credit of their deceased parents. deceased, so also to their credit and name, which is a thing of greater account, and honour: a thing wherein they may bring a kind of blessing to their parents and make them live after their death. Parents themselves cannot do any thing when they are dead to preserve the same: children therefore being the living Image of their parents must endeavour to do it. Three things there be which children must make conscience of, even in regard of their deceased parents credit, and reputation; one, to pay their debts: another, to suppress ill rumours: a third, to imitate their good example. I. If the estate of parents, their goods or lands come to their children, their duty is to pay their debts, so far as they can: especially if by law those debts may be recovered at their hands. For what law may force others to do in equity and justice, conscience must move good children to do in charity, and recompense to their parents. The holy Ghost makes it a Psal. 37. 21. note of a wicked man to borrow and not to pay. Wherefore to wipe away that blot from the name of a parent deceased, children must be ready in this kind to do what the parent himself, if he were living, would, or should do. Yea if children of themselves be well able, though their parents left not sufficient to pay all their debts, they ought to pay them. Herein especially a childlike affection is manifested to the parent. Contrary is their practice who strive to get all they can of their parents, and yet make no conscience of paying any debts at all, unless law force them thereto. What they do in this case cannot be thought to be done for their parent's sake, but rather for their own sake. Many so little respect their parents credit in this kind, as they privily convey away and utterly conceal much of their parent's estate, of purpose to defeat Creditors: which as it is a part of apparent injustice, so it is a cause of opening the mouths of men against their parents, to their discredit and shame. §. 48. Of children's suppressing evil reports against their parents deceased. * The direction given before concerning children's speech §. 7. of their parents behind their backs, may fitly be applied also to the care which children ought to have of the speeches and reports which are made of their parents after their departure. It followeth as from the less to the greater, that what children do for their parent's credit in absence behind their backs, they must much more do when they are dead: for then there is no hope, no possibility that parents should do any thing to right their own wrong in that kind: it lieth therefore upon children to do it. Do not they clean contrary, who take occasion from the departure of their parents, both to open their ears to receive any ill reports of them, and also to open their mouths to speak ill of them: then blazing abroad all their infirmities, and stretching their ill reports of their parents beyond the lists of truth. Ill birds they are that so bewray their own nest. They know that their parents being dead can have no notice thereof: whereby they show what little piety to God or parent is in their heart. But there is an everliving, allseeing, and all-knowing Father that taketh notice of all: who beside other ●engeance will cause such measure to be meated out to them, ●s they meet to their parents. There is no one thing wherein this proverb, (With what measure you meet it shall be measured Mat. 7. 2. ●o you again) is more often verified then in children's ingratitude Quaecunque parentibus stipendia intuleris, eadem ipse a filiis expecta. Thal. Miles. apud Di●g. Laert. l. 1. to their parents. All ages have given many instances thereof. (The very heathen observed it.) Which showeth Gods great indignation against it. §. 49. Of children's imitating their parents good example. If parents have been persons of good carriage in their life time, as religious towards God, just in their dealings with men, merciful to such as stood in need of their help, doing much good in their place, and so ended their days with much credit; it is an especial means to maintain and continue this their credit, for children to walk in their steps, and to endeavour to be like them. Thus is a blessed memory of their parents kept fresh and green (as we speak) though their bodies be rotten. For when they who knew the parents behold the like good qualities and actions in their children, they will thereby be put in mind of the parties deceased, and say, Oh how such parents yet live! behold a lively, and living Image of them. Thus did Solomon, Asa, jehosaphat, Hezekiah, josiah and such like good Kings which came of the stock and lineage of David, keep the memory of their father David, fresh, fair, and flourishing (long after his body was rotten) as is evident by these and such like phrases, He walked in the ordinances of David his 1 King. 3. 3. father: he walked in all the ways of David his father: he did 2 King. 22. 2. that which was right as David his father, etc. There can be no 1 King. 15. 11. better monument of a parents piety, honesty, and virtue, than a child's lively representation of the same. Wherefore Nullum monumentum clarius relinquere potuit, quam effigiem morum suorum, virtutis, constantiae, pietatis filium. Cic. Philip. 9 as a motive to stir up children to walk in the good ways of their parents, God hath promised to show mercy to thousands of them that love him and keep his commandments, that is, such as having religious and righteous parents walk in their steps. Contrary are both those that are unlike good parents, and those that are like evil parents. The former sort do much impeach and dishonour the reputation of their parents, as Rehoboam, who by his foolish rigorous and unjust carriage, made the people speak contemptuously of David. 1 King. 12. 16. The latter sort continue in memory the evil name, and the shame of their parents, and cause them to stink more and more: as the sons and successors of jeroboam, who following his idolatrous course, made it the more remembered, and caused this blur to remain in his style from age to age, jeroboam which made Israel to sin. 1 King. 15. 26. As they stop the current, and hinder the passage of the blessing of righteous parents: so these propagate, and open a way for the curse of unrighteous parents. §. 50. Of the superstitious duty enjoined by Papists to children after their parent's decease. To the two forenamed duties of burying the corpse, and preserving the credit of parents, Papists add a third, and Heathen a fourth, whereof neither are warrantable by God's word, but directly contrary thereto. That which Papists add is, that children after their parent's Bellar. Tom. 2. Contr. 3. De Purgator. l. 2. c. 16. etc. death ought to procure Diriges, Masses, Pardons, Releases, and such like toys for them, and make continual prayers to free them out of Purgatory, and bring them to rest in heaven: of the vanity of these prayers, and folly of the other toys I have * In whole armour of God Treat. 3. §. 39 40. in Ephes. 6. 18. elsewhere spoken. The Scripture expressly teacheth that after death the soul goeth to the place appointed for it, of endless bliss or woe: so as there is no means of altering the one, or helping forward the other. §. 51. Of the unlawfulness of children's seeking to revenge their parents wrongs. That which Heathen add, is, that children after their parent's Seneca in Agamen. Poetae tradiderunt filios patris ulciscendi causa supplicium de matre sumpsisse, idque deorum iussis, atque oraculis fecisse. Cic. pro. Sex. Ros. death revenge such wrongs as have been done to them in their life time. And they press this so far upon children, as they affright them with their parent's Ghost, saying, that if they neglect to revenge their parents wrongs, their Ghost will follow them, and not suffer them to live in quiet, but molest them continually. This conceit ariseth from the corruption of nature, which is exceeding prone to revenge: but it is expressly forbidden in Scripture, in these and such prohibitions, Resist not evil, b Rom. 12. 17, Recompense to no man evil for evil. c 19 Avenge not Mat. 5. 39 ourselves &c. Yet some in justification thereof allege d 1 King. 2. 5. 8. Da●ids charge to Solomon of taking vengeance on joab and She●●ei, after his death. Answ. The charge which David gave, & Salomon's execution thereof, was no matter of private revenge, but only a lawful execution of justice which children may and aught to do. Just reasons there were to move David to put off the execution of ●ustice upon the one & the other so long. e 2 Sam. 3. 39 joab was too mighty to have execution done on him in David's time: and Shemeis & 19 23. offence was committed in the time of David's humiliation, which made him swear that he would not himself take Vengeance of him. Besides, Solomon executed justice on the one and the other, not for the wrongs they did to his father, but for other crimes which they committed in his time: only their former offences were remembered to aggravate the matter. Thus farrc of children's duties. The manner of performing them followeth to be declared. §. 52. Of the manner of performing children's duties. That clause which * § 37. noted out the limitation of children's duties, affordeth also an excellent direction for the manner of performing them. It is this, in the Lord: that is, Children must so perform their duty to their parents as they would or should perform it to the Lord. More particularly it implieth these six points: How children obey their parents in the Lord. 1. That their duties be performed in conscience, or for conscience sake, which is all one as for the Lords sake: for the Lord only is judge of the conscience and hath power over it. Thus 1. By obeying for the Lords sake. Rom. 13. 5. 1 Pet. 2. 13. Col. 3. 20. must subjects perform duty to magistrates: much more children to parents. The reason which the Apostle rendereth in these words, This is wel-pleasing to the Lord, sheweth that children in obeying their parents must labour to approve themselves too God. 2. Their duties must be in sincerity, which is when children 2 In sincerity. pretend in show to do no more, then in truth and heart they mean: Whatsoever ye do, do it heartily as to the Lord, saith Col. 3. 23. the Apostle. Parents use to deal with none more heartily then with their children: accordingly must children deal with parents. 3. They must be performed cheerfully, with a willing and 3. With cheerfulness. ready mind: for the Lord loveth cheerfulness. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt a filial and servile, a child 2 Cor. 9 7. like and slave-like obedience. 4 With revetence. 4. They must be performed reverendly as to them which bear the Image of God. Hereof we spoke * §. 3. before. 5. They must so be performed, as in performing them no 5. In the fear of God. sin be committed against God. Hereof also we spoke * §. 37. & 38. before. 6. Constancy must be added to all other virtues. For as the 6. With perseverance. Lord himself is constant in all his ways and works, so he expecteth that children should be in the duties which he requireth at their hands. He that beginneth well, and holdeth not on, loseth all the glory of his good beginning. If the examples of all good children commended in Scripture be well weighed, we shall find their duties, so far forth as they were acceptable to God, performed after the foresaid manner, in all the branches thereof. §. 53. Of the aberrations of children in the manner of their obedience. Contrary are these aberrations. 1. When children perform their duties on by-respects: Faults in the manner of doing duty. 1. By-respects. for fear of parent's wrath, and the punishment following thereon: for hope and expectation of greater portion and allowance: upon instant persuasion of friends, with the like: these respects simply in themselves are not for the Lord. 2. When they perform them only outwardly in show, 2. Complemental. complementally while parents are in presence, or may know thereof. This is not with respect to God who seareheth the ●eart. 3. When they perform them grudgingly, mutteringly, 3. Rudely. disdainfully: as if their parent's authority were an usurped ●ower and not given them of God. Is this in the Lord? 4. When they perform them rudely and unmannerly: 4. Grudgingly. his showeth they consider not the glory of God's Image shi●ing in their parents. 5. * §. 38. When they care not how they sin against God, so 5. Only to please man. ●●ey may please their parents. 6. When, as if they repented of what they have well done, 6. Vnsetledly. ●●ey refuse to do any more duty to their parents. They wax ●eary, thinking that God hath laid too heavy a burden upon ●●em. Many show themselves more dutiful in their young●● then in their riper years. That which maketh children ●eary in doing duty, is commonly the great and long need of ●●eir parents, as long sickness, long impotency, long poverty, with the like. It appears that such children look only on their parents as men, which, as they imagine, can never recompense their pains and cost: they look not to God who is able abundantly to recompense all. These therefore perform not their duty in the Lord. §. 54. Of the equal respect that children are to bear to both parents. As the distinct duties of children have been set forth, so I think it requisite to declare distinctly who the parties be to whom those duties are to be performed. These principally are the natural parents, both Father and Mother. Secondarily such as are in the place of parents. The first point then to be noted is, that children bear an equal respect to both their natural parents, and perform duty to both alike. The law expressly mentioneth both, Honour thy Father and thy Mother. Well may we think that there was some just and urgent cause, that the law which so briefly under as few words as well could be, compriseth exceeding much matter, should expressly mention father and mother, when as there is one word, parent, which includeth both. Now what other reason can be rendered then the point in hand? It is worthy to be noted, how the Apostle contenteth not himself to have named parents, which implieth both, but also annexeth the express words of the law, which in particular setteth down, father and mother. It is expressly set down of jaakob that he obeyed his father and his mother. Among other Gen. 28. 7. penmen of Scripture Solomon expressly mentioneth both father and mother, even almost twenty several times in Prou. Many reasons there be to enforce this point. 1. Both parents are under God a like means of their children's Reasons. being. Children come out of the substance of both alike. 2. The care and pains of both for the good of the children is very great: I know not of whether the greater. The mother's pains and care in bringing forth the child is indeed the greater, and it may be also the greater in bringing up the child, especially while it is young, at least if she give it suck herself: yet afterwards the fathers exceedeth in providing fit calling, sufficient means of maintenance, yea and portion or inheritance for it, and that after he himself is dead. Thus one way or other the child is equally bound to both: and accordingly Gods law maketh no difference betwixt them. Object. The wife is subject to her husband: therefore a child ought to prefer his father before his mother. Answ. Though there be a difference betwixt father and Both parents to be of like account with children. mother in relation of one to another, yet in relation to their children they are both as one, and have a like authority over them. Now children are not to look to that difference that is betwixt their parents in that mutual relation that is betwixt husband and wife, but to that authority which both parents have over their children: and so to carry an equal respect to both. 2. Object. What if the fathers and mother's disposition Direction for a child when one parent commandeth one thing, the other another. be contrary: and the one command what the other forbids. Answ. The thing commanded or forbidden must be observed: if it be about a thing simply good or evil, lawful, or unlawful, than the parent which would have the thing lawful to be done, or unlawful to be for borne (though it be the mother) must be obeyed: for in this case she is backed with God's authority. But if the matter be merely indifferent, than I doubt not but the father must be obeyed: yet so as the child no way show any contempt to his mother, but with all reverence and humility make it known to her that it is best both for herself and himself, that his father be obeyed. But if the father's contrary authority be not interposed, or if the father be dead, then is a mother as simply and absolutely to be obeyed in all things, as a father. §. 55. Of pretences alleged to obey father rather than mother. Contrary on the one side is their childish fondness who so wholly respect their mother, and seek to please her, as they little regard their father, unless through fear they be forced thereto: and on the other side, their scornful spirit who only bear respect to their father, and altogether neglect their mother, if not despise her. For the most part, of the two, the mother is less regarded. The reasons whereof I take to be these following, whereunto I will annex particular means to remove the seeming force of those reasons, as antidotes or remedies unto them. 1. The mother by reason of her sex is commonly the weaker, and subject to more infirmities. Answ. Children ought rather to look upon their mother's place and authority, than their person and infirmity: so these would no whit impair their respect of the other. 2. The mother is more indulgent and tender to her children: and useth more familiarity towards them: now familiarity Familiaritas parit contemptum. Teren. in Andr. breedeth contempt. Answ. This is the abuse of familiarity: love should breed love: and love must be ordered according to the condition of the parties loving, and loved. As children with one eye behold the affection of the mother, so with another they should behold God's image in the mother; and then (that which is * §. 2, 3. noted as the ground of all children's duty) a loving-feare would be wrought in their heart, which would cast out all contempt. 3. The mother hath not that power to reward or revenge that a father hath. Answ. 1. This is not to obey in the Lord. No outward respect should move the child to obey his parents so much as conscience to God-wards. If children duly considered God, how he hath made no difference, but commanded them to obey both alike, and how he is able abundantly to reward, and severely to revenge, that reason would be no reason. 4. The mother is subject to the father. Answ. This was removed * §. 54. before. As a general answer to these and all other such pretences as can be alleged, let it be noted that the Lord doth not only in express terms charge children to fear their mother, but also (the more to press this point) sometime setteth the mother in the first place, thus; Ye shall fear every man his mother, Leu. 19 3. and his father: which is not so to be taken as if the mother of the two were the more excellent (in this respect the father for the most part is first named) but because it is the truest trial of a child's subjection to be subject to his mother. He that willingly and conscionably subiecteth himself to her, who is in relation to her husband the inferior, in sex the weaker, in condition subject to more infirmities, in her affections less moderate, in power less able to reward, or to punish, will much rather (no doubt) subject himself to his father. §. 56. Of the difference of children's subjection to natural parents, and to such as only are in the place of parents. Beside natural parents, there are others by God so set over children, as they owe in conscience childlike duty unto them. These in general are such as are in the place of parents, and so perform, or at least ought to perform, the duty of parents to children. They are of two sorts. 1. Such as are joined to a natural parent in marriage, commonly called Step-fathers', and stepmother's, or fathers in law, and mothers in law. 2. Such as have the government and tuition of children committed to them, commonly called Guardians, Tutors, Governors: yea also foster-fathers', and foster-mothers. Quest. Is the same duty in every respect due to those who are in place of parents, as to natural parents themselves? Answ. Not so. There is such a prerogative appertaining to natural parents from whom children have received their being, that many things wherein children by an absolute necessity De necessitate. are bound to them, are bound unto the other who are but in place of parents, only by the law of honesty, of meetness & De honestate. conveniency. Whence it cometh to pass that such things as being done by children rebelliously without, or against the consent of natural parents prove mere nullities, will stand in force though they be done without or against the consent of such as are only in the place of parents: instance contracts made about goods, lands and such other things as parents retain a right in: whereunto many good Divines add * See §. 16. contracts of marriage, of calling and the like. Yet notwithstanding seeing in conscience we are bound to those things which the law of honesty, and conveniency requirety (for whatsoever things are honest, just, and of good report, Phil. 4. 8. are to be done) great is that duty which children owe to those who are in place of parents. §. 57 Of children's subjection to fathers and mothers in law. Fathers and mothers in law are to be ranked in the first degree of those who are in the place of natural parents. Very good proof there is in Scripture for children's subjection to them. The respect which Moses bear to his father in law, Exo. 18. 7. Ruth. 1. & 2. Luk. 2. 51. and Ruth to her mother in law, and Christ himself to his supposed father, are commended for this very purpose. Subjection is noted in Christ's example: Reverence in Moses: Recompense in ruth's. The marriage bond maketh man and wife one flesh: whereupon 1. Reason. the natural parent that marrieth another, maketh that other one with him, and in that respect is as a parent to the children, and by them aught to be accounted so. The law of God maketh it plain in●●st for a son to uncover Leu. 18. 8, 17. the shame of his mother in law, or for a father in law to uncover the shame of his daughter in law. Whereby it appeareth that fathers and mothers in law, are by God's law in the very place and steed of natural parents to their children, and accordingly as natural parents are to be honoured. Besides it is a great honour which a child doth to his natural 2. Reason. father or mother to respect such as they have made one flesh with themselves, as they do their own parent. So as to honour a father, or mother in law, is to honour a natural parent. Contrary is the mind and carriage of most children. Very few bear a reverend, dutiful, and childlike respect to stepfathers, and stepmother's: but for the most part despise them in heart, grumble at them in speech, and are very undutiful in their behaviour: whence it cometh to pass that they bring much grief to their natural parent, and oft cause much discord and dissension betwixt their natural, and step-parent● being herein set on work by Satan, who laboureth what he can to disunite those whom God hath nearly united together and made one flesh. Lamentable experience showeth that the second, third, or any after-mariages are seldom so comfortable and peaceable as the first: especially if either the one, or other, or both have children. The cause thereof, for the most part, is in children, who brook not fathers or mothers in law. Object. Nature cannot so well brook a step-parent, as a natural parent. Answ. 1. If not so well, yet despise them not: there is a difference betwixt extremes. 2. Conscience and religion ought to alter corrupt nature. Look to God's ordinance: and let Gods fear possess thine heart, that that may bring thee to do what nature cannot. 2. Object. Fathers and Mothers in law seldom respect their husbands or wives former children. Answ. This objection more beseemeth the mouth of a barbarian than a Christian. The Gospel teacheth to be subject not 1 Pet. 2. 18. Rom. 12. 21. only to the good and gentle, but also to the froward: and not to be overcome of evil, but to overcome evil with goodness. The Scripture reckoneth such as rise up against their parents Mic. 7. 6. in law, among such as rise up against their natural parents: showing thereby that the impiety of those, is as blame-worthy, as the impiety of these. §. 58. Of children's subjection to Guardians, Tutors, etc. For children's subjection to Governors, Guardians, and Tutors, the Apostle saith that a child is under them. If by the law Galat. 4. 2. children are under them, they ought in equity to be subject to them. It is expressly noted of Esther, even after the King had chosen her for his wife, that she did the commandment of Mordecai Esth. 2. 20. (who was as a Guardian to her) like as when she was brought up with him. A memorable pattern for this purpose. What pretences might she have made to have cast off all manner of subjection? Mordecai was but her cousin: she was now advanced above him: a wife she was, and so subject to her husband: yea a King's wife, and so herself a Queen: yet she was subject, and her subjection commended. We read that the children of the Prophets much 2 Kin. 2. 15, etc. & 6. 1. respected Elisha, did reverence to him, and were obedient to him, because he was as a father and tutor unto them: in which respect also Elisha was as a child subject to Eliah, whom he called 2 King. 2. 12. father. Guardians, Tutors, and such like overseers of children, have a parents charge laid upon them, as we shall * Treat 6. §. 74, etc. after show: great reason therefore that childlike duty should be yielded to them. Their honour must be answerable to their charge and care. Contrary is the conceit of many lawless children, whose parents being dead, or they being sent and placed abroad out of the government of their parents, think they are clean free from all government, and may live as they list. Their practice being correspondent to this opinion, they run into all riot, and in time bring themselves to utter ruin. It is the overthrow of many children, that they regard not their Guardians, Tutors, and Governors: and God in judgement bringeth many such refractory children to some fearful & shameful end or other. Let children therefore be wise, and not take too much liberty to themselves. Thus far have been handled the duties of children in their several kinds, the manner of performing them, and the parties to whom they are to be performed. It remaineth to speak of the reasons which the Apostle allegeth to enforce those duties. §. 59 Of the place of parents, whereby children ought to be moved to obey them. The reasons which the Apostle useth to move children to perform their duty are four: The first is taken from the place of the parent. The second from the equity of the thing. The third from God's express charge. The fourth from God's promise. I. The place of a parent is noted forth by this phrase, IN THE LORD: which as it affordeth a * ●. 37. limitation, and giveth a * §. 52. direction to children, so it addeth a spur unto them, to stir them up to perform their duty: for it showeth that parents are to then children in the Lord's steed: as an evidence thereof hath God Liberis suis pater Dei vice est. Greg. Naz. ad Vitit. communicated to them this glorious and honourable title (FATHER) which is * See §. 5. proper and peculiar to himself. Now then parents being to their children in God's steed, and by virtue of their place bearing God's image, children in obeying their parents, obey God; in refusing to obey them, refuse to obey God. A strong motive is this first motive. For who is so void of religion, but will think it most meet, that God should be honoured? or who so impious, as to refuse to yield duty to God? Here than children may learn in one main point how to honour the Lord, & show themselves children of God. And let them here by know, that disobedient and undutiful children, that resist the authority of parents, resist the ordinance of God, and receive to themselves Rom. 13. 2. damnation. §. 60. Of the equity whereby children should be moved to obey their parents. II. The second reason in these words, for this is right, though it be not of greater force, yet is it more plainly and expressly noted to be a reason, as the causal particle (for) prefixed before it, sheweth. It is a general reason drawn from common equity; a reason which may move all sorts, even Infidels and Pagans: therefore much more Christians. In saying, It is right, he implieth three things. 1. That it is agreeable to all law. To the law of God, which Right implieth three things. 1. It is agreeable to all law. is the fountain of equity. To the law of Nature, which proceeds from thence. And to the law of Nations, which is answerable in many respects. The forenamed proofs out of God's word, show it to be agreeable to God's law. The precepts which heathen men have given of this point, show it to be agreeable to the law of nature. And the many Constitutions of Lawmakers, in all ages, show it to be agreeable to the law of nations. 2. That the place of parents requireth as much. For RIGHT 2. It is due by virtue of parent's place. requireth that every one have his own, that which is his due. It being therefore right, that children obey their parents, that duty ●s due to them. 3. That parents deserve as much: for right presupposeth desert. 3. It is a debt. That which is done of right, is done by way of recompense. The cause of this desert, is the love which parents bear to children, the pain, pains, care, and cost they have been at, in bringing them forth, and bringing them up. These things being implied under right, note what followeth from the force of this reason, 1. Disobedient and undutiful children, transgress against God's law, against common equity of all nations, and against light ●f nature: so as they are unworthy of the name of Christians, ●hey are worse than Infidels, yea worse than the brute beasts. 2. They have no respect to the place of their parents, they disgrace the image of God, which their parents by virtue of their place carry, and they disturb that comely order and degree, which God hath set among men. 3. They ill repay their parent's care and pains for their good, and show themselves both ungrateful and unnatural: which are two most monstrous and odious sins. §. 61. Of God's accepting children's obedience. The forenamed reason is by this same Apostle in another place thus set down, This is wellpleasing to the Lord. By comparing Coloss. 3. 20. that place with my text, I observe, that What is right is wellpleasing to the Lord. And again, What is wellpleasing to the Lord is right. These two propositions, are (as we speak in Schools) convertible and reciprocal; either of them true of the other every way. Wherefore the Apostle, in another place, joineth them both together. For having exhorted children to recompense their parents, he saith, That is good and acceptable before God. b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Good or 1 Tim. 5. 4. honest is in effect the same that c 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. right. This showeth, that dutiful children, as they do that which is good, or honest, and right unto their parents; so also therein they highly please God: so as they may be sure not to lose thereby. At God's hand they shall receive a reward, though their parents should little regard their dutifulness. Thus God dealt with jaakob. His father in law ill repaid his faithfulness: but God looked Gen. 31. 7, etc. vers 42. upon him, and abundantly recompensed all his pains. This showeth again, that undutiful children, as they do not that which is right, but rather wrong unto their parents; so they highly displease God: they may be sure therefore not to escape unpunished, though their parents, through overmuch indulgency, should let them alone: instance the two impious children of Elie, Hophni and Phinehas: and the two rebellious children of 1 Sam. 2. 34. 2 Sam. 18. 9 1 King. 2. 25. David, Absolom, and Adoniah. This therefore addeth force to the second reason, and moveth children to do right to their parents, by obeying them, as they respect God, his good pleasure, or displeasure: as they look for recompense, or fear vengeance from him. §. 62. Of God's charge, how inviolable a bond it is to tie children to obey their parents. III. The third drawn from God's charge is not only in express terms noted, but for more weight the very words of the moral law are quoted (Honour thy father and thy mother:) and it is added, that this is a commandment, yea the first commandment, and that with promise, all which is for amplification of the point. Here then consider we 1. The reason itself. 2. The amplification thereof. From the reason that it is God's charge, I gather these three points. 1. That it is no arbitrary matter left to children's discretion children's obedience to parents is, 1. No arbitrary thing. whether they will obey their parents or no: but a matter whereunto in conscience they are bound, even as they owe allegiance to God himself the great lawgiver: so as in neglecting duty to parents, children sin even against God himself: for the same God who hath commanded us to honour himself, hath commanded us to honour father and mother. 2. That this is a perpetual and a general law: a law whereunto 2. An eternal law, and general to all children. all children of all times, places, sexes, estates and degrees always have been, still are, and ever shall be bound. For the moral law is of that extent: it is general for all persons: perpetual for all times. Therefore no children may think to be exempted from it. Quest. What if children be grown to years, and not under their parent's government? Answ. There may be some difference both in some parts of subjection, and also in the manner of subjection betwixt such children as remain under their parent's government, and such as are freed from it: but yet so long as a child hath a parent, of what age or estate so ever he be, he oweth an honour unto his parent. a Gen. 47. 12. & 48. 12. & 50. 5. joseph when he was a great Governor of Egypt, a man grown, having wife and children, yet performed the honour of reverence, obedience, and recompense unto his father. b 1 King. 2. 19 3. Indispensable. Solomon when he was in an higher place than joseph, even an absolute King, did the honour of Reverence to his mother. 3. That no man can give children any dispensation, or ex emption from their duty to parents. If any may, he must be either the lawmaker himself, or one greater than he, one that hath power over him. Now God is the author and giver of that law, God spoke all these words, etc. But is any greater than Exo. 20. 1. God? hath any power over him? Who then can dispense with children in this kind? Hence than I infer these two conclusions. 1. That the Pope's dispensation is nothing worth: they who make it to be of force, must make him greater than God, which is a horrible blasphemy. 2. Though parents themselves should not exact duty of their children, yet children were bound to perform duty to them, because of God's charge. To this therefore are children to look. This showeth that there is no less pain hanging over the heads of the transgressors of this charge, than the curse of the law, eternal condemnation. §. 63. Of the title FIRST given to the fifth commandment. In the amplification of the forenamed reason, the Apostle styleth the commandment of honouring parents the first with promise, as to show that it is the first which hath a particular promise annexed to it; so it is the first that God gave of any duty to be performed unto man. The very order of the decalogue manifesteth the truth hereof. The reason is clear: Honour due to parents is the ground of all the duties required in the second table: for if duty be not performed to such as we are bound unto by some peculiar bond, may we think that it will be performed to such as we are bound unto at large? Now of all to whom we are first and most bound, and to whom we owe our first duty, our parents are the persons. They therefore who are rebellious against their parents, and refuse to do their duty to them, will hardly perform duty to any other. Little hope that a disobedient child will prove a profitable member in Church or commonwealth. Absolom, who was a rebellious child, proved but a traitorous subject: and Hoph●● and Phineas that refused to hearken to the voice of their father, proved but sacrilegious Priests. Wherefore if any precept of the second table be conscionably to be observed (as all are, for the same lawmaker gave all, and Christ hath said that the second table is like the first) then is this of honouring father Mat. 22. 39 and mother, among the rest, and above the rest to be observed, at least if difference of observing any may be made, But this particle (first) being set down, not simply but with a connexion of promise with it (The first with promise) we are duly to consider the promise thereof: whence a fourth reason ariseth. §. 64. Of God's promise moving children to obey their parents. The fourth reason taken from God's promise, is both generally propounded and particularly exemplified. Propounded in this clause (first with promise.) Exemplified in the third verse. For the General. Gods promise made to the performance of any duty, cannot but be a strong motive to stir us up to perform it. Men hereby do stir up, and provoke one another Promise of reward a great motive. to perform any thing. Thus Kings when they would fain have their subjects do this or that, promise such and such rewards unto them: Thus masters incite their servants, parents their children, and one man another. If the promises of men encourage us to perform the things which they give us in charge, how much more ought the promise of God? Men How Gods promise is a stronger motive than any man's. ●re deceitful, and may deal doubly, pretending one thing with their mouths, and intending another with their heart, ●nd never mean to perform what they promise: But God is faithful and true: his words are as deeds: his promises as performances; so as he never maketh show of more than he means ●o perform. Again, man's power is limited; though he truly ●●tend what he promiseth, yet in the performance he may fail ●ither in that he knew not his own power, but thought when ●e made the promise he could have done more than in the e●ent he findeth he can do; or in that he is after wards by some occasion hindered, or disabled. But God's power cannot be so ●aitned, or hindered. Besides, men may be taken away before betime of performing their promise is come: but God ever ●●eth, and changeth not. If then man's promises be any moves to any thing, much more Gods who ever remaineth the ●me. Betwixt God and man there is no proportion, no com●rison. How Gods promise commendeth God's love. This motive doth exceedingly commend God's fatherly indulgency towards us, and the earnest desire he hath of our good. For he hath such power and authority over all his creatures, that the very knowledge of his will ought to provoke them to perform any duty which he shall command: and if they obey not, he might presently execute vengeance upon them. But considering that we are his children, and need many allurements to draw us on by little and little, he accordingly dealeth with us. He standeth not wholly and only upon his authority, but addeth promises thereto: (for this is a commandment with promise.) If notwithstanding all this, children refuse to obey their parents, may not the Lord justly expostulate the matter with them, as sometimes in another case he did with the Israelites, and say, judge between me and these children: Isa. 5. 3, 4. what could I have done more that I have not done? I gave them an express charge to honour their parents: I laid it down in the first place as a main and principal charge: to encourage them to keep it, I added a promise of good to redound to themselves: what could I do more? Do not they justly deserve vengeance that regard none of these? Thus, in that this is a commandment with promise, we see how children disobedient to their parents are both rebellious against God in regard of the commandment which they transgress, and injurious to themselves in regard of the promise which they make to be void and of no effect. Of this particular promise see more in the first treatise, §. 97, 98, etc. The sixth Treatise. The Duties of Parents. §. 1. Of the heads of Parent's duties. EPHES. 6. 4. And ye Fathers provoke not your children to wrath, but bring them up in the nurture and admonition of the Lord. NExt to children's, follow Parent's duties, which the Apostle layeth down in this fourth verse: where he noteth, 1. The duties 2. The parties 1. That are to perform the duties, Fathers. 2. To whom they are to be performed, Children. The duties are set down, 1. By prohibition. 2. By precept. The prohibition noteth out one extreme, which is overmuch rigour, (Provoke not to wrath) The inference of the precept upon the prohibition noteth out another extreme, which is over-much-remisnesse. The precept itself enjoineth to parents three duties. 1. To nourish children, namely with food, apparel, and other like necessaries (Nourish them.) 2. To nurture them, namely with good discipline (In nurture.) 3. To instruct them, namely in the ways of God (And admonition of the lord) Nature teacheth Unreasonable Creatures to do the First Civility Reasonable Men Second Piety Christians Third. To these heads may all the several points which I shall deliver concerning parents duties, be referred. That Parents may the better discern how one duty followeth another, I will proceed in this order. 1. The fountain of all duties, shall be declared. 2. The streams that issue thence, The streams shall be divided into two rivers. In the first are those general duties that are continually to be done. In the second, such particular duties as are to be applied to the several ages of children. There are two principal general duties. 1. Faithful prayer to God. 2. Upright walking with God. All the particulars may be comprised under this one head, A provident care. And this hath respect, 1. To the Infancy of children, 2. To their Youth, 3. To the time of their placing forth, 4. To the time of parents departing out of this world. §. 2. Of that Love which parents owe to their children. The Fountain of parents' duties is Love. a Tit. 2. 4. This is expressly enjoined to them. Many approved examples are recorded hereof: as b Gen. 22. 2. Abraham's, c & 25. 28. isaack's, d Ibid. Rebekahs, and others. Great reason there is why this affection should be fast fixed in the heart of parents towards their children. For great is that pain, pains, cost, and care, which parents must undergo for their children. But if love be in them, no pain, pains, cost, or care, will seem too much. Herein appeareth the wise providence of God, who by nature hath so fast fixed love in the hearts of parents, as if there be any in whom it aboundeth not, he is counted unnatural. If love did not abound in parents, many children would be neglected and lost. For if parents look not to their children, who will? If none look to them, they must needs perish: for they are not able to help themselves. As God by nature hath planted love in all parents, so Christians ought even for conscience sake, to nourish, increase, and blow up this fire of love, that they may thereby be made more forward to do every duty with cheerfulness. The more fervent love is, the more readily will every duty be performed. As I have heretofore laid down Love a fountain of wives, husbands, and children's duties; so must I continue my course, and set it forth as the fountain of parents' duties. For the Scripture hath noted it as a duty belonging to all and every of them: and therefore I might not omit it in any of them. Yet let not any thereupon think, that the same point is oft handled, and repeated again and again. For according to the several parties, and the several relation they have to others, there are several fruits of love: even as the same moisture of the earth causeth several and diverse fruits, according to the several kinds of plants that receive that moisture. Compare the several places, where this general duty of love hath been handled, and you will find the manner of handling to be different, and to afford new matter. Object. As too much fire is dangerous, so too much love. Answ. True. Wherefore as in other things, so in this, the golden means must be kept. No duty so holy and necessary, ●ut may be perverted. Let the extremes be avoided, and the mean will better be kept. §. 3. Of the contraries to love. The extreme contrary to love in the defect is want of natural Want of natural affection in parents. affection, which is reckoned in the a Rom. 1. 30. Tit. 3. 3. catalogue of notorious ●●nnes. Though love of children be by nature engraven in man's heart, yet many clean put it out through covetousness, ●●st, vainglory, superstition, idolatry, and other vices: whereby it cometh to pass that in stead of the good which they ●ould do for their children, they bring much mischief upon ●hem. Some spare not the precious life of their children. Among these, barbarous idolaters do most exceed in this kind of unnatural cruelty, sacrificing their children, and offering them up to devils. To this the great bloodsucker Satan of old brought not only the heathen, who being ignorant of God did service to the devil, but also the b 2 King. 16. 3. & 21. 6. Ezek. 16. 20. Israelites to whom jehovah the true God made himself known, and expressly c Leu. 18. 21. forbid this cruelty, and that d & 20. 2. under pain of death. Behold how superstition and idolatry blind the eyes of men. * Purc. Pilgr. in Americ. cap. 7. & cap. 11. They who have been among the Savadges in Virginea, Florida, India, and other like places testify that such cruelty is used to this day. And it is rendered as a main reason why, notwithstanding such spacious places as they have, they increase no more in multitude, because many of their children from time to time are offered up in sacrifice. Reasonable men herein show themselves more unreasonable than unreasonable beasts, which do what possibly they can to preserve their young ones. Though not so high, yet too high on this ladder of unnaturalness Haters of children for piety. do they climb, who hate their children, and that (which maketh the sin to be out of measure sinful) for piety and integrity; as many Popish and profane parents, who have children truly religious: and in that respect ought so much the more to be loved. The extreme in the excess is too much doting upon children: Doting on children. as they do who so unmeasurably love them, as they make reckoning of nothing in comparison of children. Even God himself is lightly esteemed, his worship neglected, his word transgressed, all duty to others omitted, their own souls forgotten thorough care of children. Is not this mee●● apish kindness? for Apes kill their young ones with hugging. This is no love, but plain dotage. But what may be said of those that are so hellishly enamoured with their children as to commit incest or buggery with them? §. 4. Of Parents praying for their children. The first and best stream which issueth out of the forenamed fountain of love is faithful and fervent prayer. This extendeth itself to all things, at all times, throughout the whole course of the child's life. It is the first and it is the last duty which parents ought to perform to their children: 1 Thes 5. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. even that which they must do without intermission; Pray without ceasing. Though prayer be a general duty which all Christians owe Prayer a peculiar duty of parents. one to another, yet after a peculiar manner doth it appertain to parents: and of all others they are most bound to it. For the promise which God maketh to a parent is extended to his seed and children, as these and such like Scriptures show, b Gen. 17. 7. I will be thy God, and the God of thy seed: c Deut. 5. 29. That it may be well with them and with their children: d Act. 2. 39 The promise is unto you, and unto your children. Parents therefore with most assurance of faith may call upon God for their children. For God's promise is the ground of faith: so far as God's promise is extended, so far our faith may and aught to extend itself. Hence hath arisen the commendable custom of children's ask Treat 5. §. 9 their parent's blessing: which intimateth a desire that parents would pray for God's blessing on them. This duty of prayer must be performed before parents have children (that they may have some, as e Gen. 25. 21. Isaak, f 1 Sam. 1. 10. Paulam antè votis quam utero concepisti. Hier. ad 1 aet. Annah and others did e Gen. 25. 21. ) and so soon as children are conceived, especially if they observe them to be quick in the womb (as g Gen. 25. 22. Rebekah did) and again when they are borne (as h Luk. 1. 64. Zachariah did) and throughout the whole course of their life (as i job. 1. 5. job did) and when they are going out of this world, and leaving their children (as k Gen. 27. 4. Isaak did.) There is no one thing wherein and whereby parents may do more good for their children, then in and by true prayer. God hath sanctified prayer as a means to receive all needful blessing from himself the fountain of all blessing. If therefore God's blessing be of use to children (what Atheists are they that believe it not?) then also is prayer by which it is obtained. §. 5. Of vices contrary to parents praying for their children. The very neglect of this duty is a sin contrary to the duty Parents neglect of prayer. itself: and many parents there be that stand guilty of this sin. Some think it needless to pray for a child before it be borne, not considering that in sin it is conceived. When it is borne they refer this duty to the midwife, whereas it properly appertaineth to the father. After it is grown to any ripeness, they put it off to the child to pray for itself. And when they are on their deathbed, they think it enough if they can pray for their own souls. Such parents show little true love to their children: but less faith in God. But what may we say or think of such impious parents as Parent's imprecations against children. fear not to make fearful imprecations against their children? God oft in wrath and vengeance heareth such imprecations to the woe of parent and child: whereby he showeth his great indignation against them for the same. §. 6. Of parents endeavouring to be righteous that they may leave God's blessing to their children. Another general branch proceeding from parents love to their children, is, that for their children's sake they endeavour to walk uprightly before God, and to please him. This I do the rather note, because I find the reward promised to righteous parents to be extended unto their children a Psal. 1. 12. 2. The generation of the righteous shall be blessed, saith David. And Solomon, b Pro. 20. 7. Blessed shall his children be after him: and again, c & 13. 22. The good man shall give inheritance unto his children's children. d Deut. 5. 29. This motive is therefore urged by the holy Ghost to provoke parents unto all righteousness. Thus doth the Lord extend the reward of righteous parents unto their children to show his great good liking, and high approbation of righteousness. Read for this purpose, 1 King. 11. 34. & 2 King. 10. 30. 1. Object. e Ezec. 18. 20. The righteousness of the righteous shall be upon himself. Answ. That is meant rather of a man's personal righteousness, and grace itself which is not communicated to children, then of the fruit thereof: That faith in Christ, fear of God, obedience to God's word, or any other personal grace which is in righteous parents, shall not justify or save their children. For the just shall live by his own faith. Yet this hindereth Hab. 2. 4. not but that the benefit and blessing of righteous parents may fall upon their children according to the extent of God's promise. 2. Object. By experience we find it verified, that the children of some righteous parents are cursed: and the Scripture giveth us many examples thereof: as g Gen. 4. 11. Cain, h & 9 25. Cham, i 2 Sam. 18. 15. Absolom, and others like them. 1. Answ. Such children by their unworthy, and degenerate carriage make forfeiture of God's covenant and k 1 Sam. 2. 30. so deprive themselves of the benefit thereof. 2. Answ. Many good reasons may be given why God should sometimes alter his course, and withhold his blessings from the children of his servants. As 1. Lest God's gifts and blessings should otherwise seem to come rather by natural propagation from the parent, then by free donation from God. 2. Lest parents should thereby be drawn to neglect the means of good education. 3. Lest children also themselves, trusting too much to their parent's righteousness, should take too much liberty, and wax licentious. 4. Lest Gods free election should seem hereby to be restrained. 3. Object. If this be so, what motive can it be unto parents to labour after righteousness for their children's sake? Answ. Though God do reserve in himself a freedom to order his blessings as it pleaseth him, and to bestow them upon whom he will: and thereupon sometimes blesseth the child of a wicked parent (instance l 2 Chr. 28. 27. Hezekiah) & denieth his blessing to the child of a righteous parent (instance m 2 Sam. 13. 14, 29. Relinque bonam filijs memoriam magis quam divitias multas. Bas serm. in Scrip. loc. Ammon) yet in that it is a very usual course with him to extend his blessing (according to his promise) to the children of the righteous, it is a strong motive to such as desire the good of their children, the rather for their children's sake to endeavour after righteousness: for thus do they use the means which by God's word is warranted and sanctified for procuring God's blessing to their children. Leave therefore a good memory to thy children rather than much wealth. §. 7. Of the preposterous course which covetous and unjust parents take for the good of their children. Contrary is the course of such parents as by unrighteous means think to provide well for their children. For many do not only too carkingly, and distrustfully moil and toil to scrape together great masses of money, or great store of land, or other stocks for their children, neglecting duties of piety and mercy, but also by unjust and wrongful courses defraud others to make their children rich. So common is this undue course of providing for children, as thence hath arisen this proverb, Happy are those children whose parents go to the devil. A cursed proverb. For what other thing can it intend, but this, that they who fear not God, nor take care for their own saulation, will have most respect to the outward estate of their children, and be most careful to make them great, and rich in this world? Wherein note how many ways they bewray their notorious folly. 1. They prefer the outward estate of their children before the eternal salvation of their own souls. Yea and before God himself. 2. They place the happiness of their children in the goods of this world; a Pro. 23. 5. than which nothing more vain. 3. They make themselves drudges to their children, and so debase themselves below that dignity which by reason of God's image on them, appertaineth to them. 4. They with much pains, care, grief, and fear are long gathering that which their children in short time most riotously and prodigally will lavish out. 5. They make themselves vassals to Satan and seek by him to be made rich: whereas indeed b Tro. 10. 22. it is the blessing of God that maketh rich. Thus they take a wrong course to get wealth. If it be said that many are thus made rich, I answer, that as c Hos. 13. 11. Ne liberos praetexas. Qui enim filium fecit, & te fecit: qui etiam tibi occasiones nutriend praebet, & filio praebebit vitae subsidia. Basil. loc. ●it. God gave a King to Israel, so he giveth wealth to them, in wrath: and in wrath will he take it away. 6. They bring Gods curse into their house, and leave it unto their children: So as these are the riches that are reserved to the owners thereof for their evil. Let not therefore care for children draw thee to any covetous or unjust courses: but know that he who made thy son made thee also, and he who afforded thee means of nourishment, will also afford thy children sufficient succour. §. 8. Of Parent's providence for their children. How far parent's providence extendeth itself. The head, whereunto all the particular duties, which parents owe to their children, may be referred, is A provident care for their children's good. This extendeth itself to all times, and to all things. To all times, as to the infancy, youth, and man-age of their children: and that not only while parents live, but after their departure. To all things, namely, tending both to the temporal good of their children, and also to their spiritual good. Children are of the very substance of their parents, & therefore ought parents so far to seek their children's good as their own. The patterns of holy parents recorded and commended in Scripture, do lively set forth this provident care. But this general we will exemplify in the particulars: and in order declare how parents must provide both for the temporal, and also for the spiritual good of their children in every degree of their age. They who at any time in any thing are negligent and careless of their children's good, offend in the contrary to this general duty. The heinousness of which offences will appear in the particulars. §. 9 Of a mother's care over her child while it is in her womb. The first age of a child is the infancy thereof. I will therefore first show how therein parents must procure the temporal good of their children, and then their spiritual good. The first part of a child's infancy is while it remaineth in the mother's womb. Here therefore the duty lieth principally upon the mother: who so soon as she perceiveth a child to be conceived in her womb, aught to have an especial care thereof, that (so much as in her lieth) the child may be safely brought forth. ( * Gravidae corpora curare debent. men's item earum quietem desiderat. Quae enim procreantur à matre in cuius aluo continentur, alimentum capiunt, ut à terra ea-quae gignantur ex ea. Arist. Pol. lib. 7. The heathen Philosophen, by light of nature, observed this to be a duty; and prescribed it to mothers.) A mother than must have a tender care over herself when she is with child: for the child being lodged in her, and receiving nourishment from her (as plants from the earth) her well-being tendeth much to the good and safety of the child: but the hurt that cometh to her, maketh the child the worse, if it be not a means to destroy it. Why was the charge of a judg. 13. 4. abstaining from wine, strong drink, and unclean things, given to Manoahs' wife, but because of the child which she conceived? In this case there is a double bond to make mothers careful of themselves. 1. Their own, 2. Their child's good. Husband's also in this case must be very tender over their wives, and helpful to them in all things needful, both in regard of that duty which they owe to their wives, and also of that they judg. 13. 11, etc. owe to their children. Why was Manoah so desirous to hear himself the forenamed direction which the Angel gave to his wife? and why did the Angel again repeat it to him, but to show it belonged to him to see her observe it? They who through violence of passion, whether of grief, or Contrary. anger, or through violent motion of the body, as by dancing, striving, 1. To miscarry through negligence. running, galloping on horseback, or the like: or through distemper of the body, by eating things hurtful, by eating too much, by too much abstinence, by too much bashfulness in concealing their desires and longings (as we speak) cause any abortion or miscarriage, fall into the offence contrary to the forenamed duty. If women were persuaded that in conscience they are bound to the forenamed duty, they would, I think, be more careful of themselves. For if through their default, they themselves or their child miscarry, they make themselves guilty of that miscarriage: if both miscarry, they make themselves guilty of the blood of both; at least in the court of conscience before God. But they who purposely take things to make away their children 2. To make away a child in the womb. Omne quod formatam animam à Deo accepit vindie abitur si iniuslè interimatur. Constit. Apost. l. 7. c. 4. in their womb, are in far higher degree guilty of blood: yea even of wilful murder. For that which hath received a soul form in it by God, if it be unjustly cast away, shall be revenged. So far forth as husbands are careless of their wives being with child, denying them things needful, they are accessary to the hurt, which the woman, or child taketh, guilty of the sin, and liable to the judgement. §. 10. Of providing things needful for the child, so soon as it is borne: and of cruelty contrary thereunto. The next degree of a child's infancy, is while it is in the swaddling bands, and remaineth a sucking child. In this also the care especially lieth upon the mother: yet so as the father must afford what help he can. The first duty here required is, that sufficient provision of all things needful for a child in that weakness be before hand provided. What the particulars be, women better know, than I can express. For me, it is sufficient, to lay down the duty in general: which is commended unto us in that worthy pattern of the Virgin Marie, who though she were very poor, and forced to travel far, and brought to bed in a strange place, where she was so little respected, as she was not afforded a place meet for a woman in her case, but was fain to content herself with a stable in a common Inn, yet she provided for her child. For it is said, She wrapped him in swaddling clothes, Luk 2. 7. Contrary is the practice of such lewd and unnatural women, as leave their newborn children under stalls, at men's doors, in Church porches, yea many times in open field. It is noted as a point of unnaturalness in the Ostrich, to leave her eggs in the earth, and in the dust: in which respect she is said to be hardened against her young ones, as though they were not hers, job 39 14, 16. Much more hardened are the foresaid lewd women. The Eagle is Iniquiffima volucris Aquila dicitur, quiae taedio nutriendi pullum quem genuit, ipsa fugat. Tales parents ij sunt, qui liberos suos infantes exponunt. Basil. Hexam. hom. 8. Necare videtur qui partum abijcit, & qui publicis locis misericordiae causa, quam ipse non habet, exponit. Digest. l, 25. tit. 3. §. 4. 1 Pet. 2. 2. counted an unnatural bird, because she thrusteth her young ones, which she hath brought forth, out of her nest. Are not then such mothers much more unnatural? They oft lay their children forth in public places, for others to show that mercy, which they themselves have not. The Civil Law judgeth this to be a kind of further. §. 11. Of giving suck to children. Among other needful things, the milk of the breast is fit for ●oung babes, and with it they are to be nourished. I think none doubt of the equity of this. It hath in all ages, and in all counties, been accounted the bestfood that can be for young babes. The metaphor, which S. Peter useth, taken from young infants in these words, As newborn babes desire the sincere milk of the ●ord) confirmeth as much. So doth also the desire which such infant's have to the milk of the breasts: and the ability, and ●omptnesse which is in them to suck: and God's providence in ●using a woman's breasts to yield forth such milk: and the constant manner of nourishing little infants after this manner, commended in the Scriptures: and (to conclude) the natural instinct which many unreasonable creatures have thus to nourish their young ones. They who on mere curiosity (where no urgent necessity requireth) try whether their children may not as birds be nourished without suck, offend contrary to this duty; and reject that means which God hath ordained as the best: and so oppose their shallow wit to his unsearchable wisdom. §. 12. Of mother's giving suck to their own children. Of nourishing children with breastmilk, there is no great question: therefore I have with a touch passed it over. The chiefest question of doubt is concerning the party who is bound to this duty; namely, whether the mother be bound to do it herself or no. Many strong arguments there be to press it upon the consciences Postquam ablactaveris came, etc. dixit Hier. ad Laetam de filia sua. of mothers, and to show that (so far as they are able) they are bound to give suck to their own children. Some are taken from the light of God's word; and some from the light of nature. God's word doth in many places by just consequence imply, that it is a bounden duty: in other places it doth expressly commend it by the practice of holy women: and again in other places it taketh it for a granted truth, and ruled case, not to be denied. 1. The consequences whereby the word implieth this duty are these: 1. In the blessing given to joseph thus speaketh old jaakob, God shall bless thee with the blessing of the breasts, and of the Gen. 49. 25. womb. By the blessing of the womb, what can be meant, but children? By the blessing of the breasts, what, but milk, whereby those children are nourished? As if he had said; I will bless thee with such women, as shall both bear thee children, and also give suck to them which they bear. The consequence than is this: As it is a blessing to have children of a true lawful wife; so to have those children nursed of the same wife their mother. Object. They have the blessing of breasts that have other women to nurse their children. Answ. By the same reason it may be said, they have the blessing of the womb who have strange women to bear them children. But the joining of these two branches of blessing together, sheweth that both must be taken in the same kind: so that as the blessing of the womb is to have children of a man's wife, so the blessing of the breasts is to have them nursed of his wife. If it be a blessing for the woman which beareth the child to give it suck, than mothers are bound to perform this duty. 2. It is denounced as a curse, that women shall have a barren Ose. 9 14. womb and dry breasts. If it be a curse for women to have dry breasts, then may not women wittingly make them dry: which all mothers do, that give not suck to their children. 3. Manoahs' wife being promised to bear a son, had this charge given her, Drink no wine, nor strong drink. etc. those things were especially hurtful for her milk. It is therefore implied thereby, that she should so order her diet, as she might well nurse her child, and have good milk for him. 4. God by his good providence brought it to pass, that the mother of Moses (though she were forced to cast out her Exo. 2. 7, etc. child) should nurse her own child. Yea the mother herself was desirous to do it, and therefore appointed her daughter ●o watch who should take it up. These two circumstances emplie that it appertaineth to a mother to nurse her children. 5. The Apostle layeth this down as a note of a good woman, 1. Tim. 5. 10. who in her place hath been careful to do her duty, ●nd thereupon fit to do service in God's Church (If she have 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. ●ourished her children, or word for word, If she have fed her children.) Now the proper food for young babes is breast-milk, which, by the Apostles rule, the mother must give. 6. The same Apostle commandeth mothers to love their Tit. 2. 4. children. How can a mother better express her love to her ●oung babe, then by letting it suck of her own breasts? As his is a testimony of love, so it is a means of preserving and increasing love: for daily experience showeth that mothers ●ue those children best to whom they themselves give suck. Summe these several consequences together, and we ●all find the duty in question to be very strongly enforced hereby. 1. As a blessing it is promised, that mothers shall give suck to the children that they bear. 2. As a curse it is threatened, that women shall not be able to give suck. 3. An Angel gave direction to a mother so to carry herself as she might have store of good milk for the child which she should bear. 4. God by his special providence manifested that the proper mother was the best nurse for a child. 5. It is the note of a good woman to perform this part of her particular calling, namely to nurse her own child. 6. Women ought to do all the best duties of love that they can to their children. Therefore mothers ought to nurse their own children. II. Some of the most worthy patterns, in whose example this duty is commended to mothers, are these. 1. Sarah gave suck to Isaak. This example is to be noted Gen. 21. 7. especially of the greater sort: as rich men's wives, honourable men's wives, and the like. For Sarah was an honourable woman, a princess, a rich man's wife, a beautiful woman, aged and well grown in years, and a mistress of a family. Are not these excuses pretended by many mothers for not nursing children themselves? 2. The virgin Mary gave suck to jesus. This example is to be noted especially of the meaner sort, for the virgin Man was young, poor, persecuted, forced to remove and fly with her child from country to country. Are not these excuses pretended by other mothers? These two patterns do not only commend the duty, but also strip all mothers that are negligent therein, of all excuse. To these may be added the examples of m 1 Sam. 1. 22. Annah, of n Psal. 22. 9 David's mother, and of many others. What if also I add the example of that true, natural, affectionate mother who stood before Salomon's throne to plead for her child? she thus saith of herself, o 1 King. 3. 21. I arose to give my son suck, etc. If this had not been a good motherly duty, she would not then and there have pleaded it. III. The places of Scripture which take this duty for a matter granted, and for a ruled case, are such as these. 1. Where Sarah saith, Who would have said to Abram that Gen. 21. 7. Sarah should have given children suck? In this phrase she setteth forth God's blessing in giving Abram a son by her. Now in that she expresseth the blessing under this phrase of giving suck, she taketh it for grant, that the mother which beareth children must give them suck. 2. Where David saith, thou didst make me hope upon my Psal. 22. 9 mother's breasts, he doth not only imply that his mother gave him suck, but by the phrase maketh it a ruled case that the child which sucks must hang upon the mother's breast. 3. Where Solomon saith, O that thou wert as my brother that Cant. 8. 1. sucked the breasts of my mother, he taketh if also for grant, that brothers and sisters, as they come out of the same womb, so they should suck the same breasts, even the breasts of her out of whose womb they came, their own mother's breasts. 4. Where the woman said to Christ, Blessed is the womb that Luk. 11. 27. bore thee, and the paps which thou hast sucked, she taketh it for grant (as it was an usual practice in those days) that the ●aps of that woman, whose womb bear him, gave him Ipsa suggerit natura matribus ipsis lactandos esse suos foetus. Idoirco enim animanti enixae lactis alimentum omni praebuit▪ Sapiens verò etiam providentia mammas foeminis binas effinxit, etc. Plut. de Justit. lib. In iis animantibus quae lacte aluntur, omnis ferè cibus lactescere incipit. Cic. de Nat. D. ●ucke. These arguments we have from the light of God's word: other we may have from God's works and the light of nature, as 1. God hath given to women two breasts fit to contain ●nd hold milk: and nipples unto them fit to have milk drawn from them. Why are these thus given? to lay them ●rth for ostentation? There is no warrant for that in all God's ●ord. They are directly given for the child's food that cometh out of the womb; for till the child be borne, there is ●o milk in the breasts: anon after it is borne, milk ordinari●● floweth into the breasts: yea a great part of the meat which ●●ey eat turneth into milk. They make this admirable work ●f God's providence to be in vain, that dry up this spring, ●●d suffer not their children to partake of the benefit of it. 2. That nourishment whereon the child fed in the mo●●ers womb, and whereby it was there sustained, turneth into milk, and cometh into the breasts when the child cometh out of the womb. Whence we may gather, that of all women's milk, that woman's milk is fittest for the child, out of whose womb the child came. 3. Together with the milk passeth some smack of the Mater Bernardi liberos suos alienis uberibus nutriendos committere refugiebat, quasi cum lacte materno materni quodammodo boni infundens eis naturam. Guil. Abb. de vit. Bern. l. 1. c. 1. affection and disposition of the mother: which maketh mothers to love such children best as they have given suck unto: yea and oft times such children as have sucked their mother's breasts, love their mother's best: yea we may observe many who have sucked others milk, to love those nurses all the days of their life. 4. Other things are nourished by the same that they are bred. The earth out of which plants grow, ministereth nourishment to the said plants: trees that bring forth fruit yield sap to that fruit, whereby it groweth to ripeness: unreasonable creatures, and among them the most savage wild beasts, as Tigers and Dragons, yea sea-monsters give suck to their young ones; whereupon the Prophet saith of women that give not suck Lam. 4. 3. to their Children, that they are more cruel than those sea-monsters, Like the Ostriches in the wilderness: for the cruel Ostrich, and the hateful Cucco are the two kind of creatures which are noted to leave their young ones for others to nourish; the Ostrich leaveth her eggs in the dust: the Cucco leaveth hers in other birds nests. Other creatures (if nature afford them not milk and dugs, as to birds it doth not) feed their young ones other ways, yet by themselves. 5. Shall I add another argument which daily experience confirmeth, namely God's blessing upon this motherly duty: Matres maiore study & cura nutrient, nempe ex ipsis visceribus diligunt liberos suos. Cum nutrices utpote quae mercedem ament, charitatem praebeant subditiciam. Plut. de Instit. lib. commonly such children as are nursed by their mothers, prosper best. Mother's are most tender over them, and cannot endure to let them lie crying out, without taking them up. and stilling them; as nurses will let them cry and cry again, if they be about any business of their own. For who are commonly chosen to be nurses? even poor country women which have much work to do, and little help; and so are forced to let the child lie and cry, many times till it burst again. Children nursed by their mothers are for the most part more cleanly, and neatly brought up, freer from diseases; not so many die; I am sure not so many through negligence cast away. The number of nurse children that die every year is very great. It hath been observed in many country villages, that the most part, that from time to time die there, are nurse children. Are not mothers that might have nursed their own children if they would, accessary to the death of those that are cast away by the nurse's negligence? On these and other like reasons heathen women, and very Arist. Oecon. l. 2. c. 3. Plutarch. loc. citat. A. Gellius Noct. Attic. comment. li. 12. cap. 1. savages, have in all ages been moved to nurse their own children: and some heathen Philosophers have urged and pressed the necessity of this duty. Never was it more neglected, then among those that bear the name of Christians. Let mothers know of what rank or degree so ever they be, that (out of the case of necessity) they have no warrant to put forth their children to others to nurse. We read not in all the Scripture of any holy women that ever did it. §. 13. Of the objections for putting children forth to nurse. Object. Many nurses are mentioned in Scripture, as Rebekah's Gen. 24. 59 2 Sam. 4. 4. 2 King. 11. 2. nurse, Mephibosheths' nurse, joash his nurse, and others. 1. Answ. Such nurses mentioned in Scripture were commonly dry nurses. Rebekah's nurse went with her before she was married: how can it be thought that she was a milch nurse? Could they tell when Rebekah should have a child? or when Gen. 35. 8. he had one, that Deborah (the nurse there mentioned) should have milk for her? It is said that Naomi became nurse to ruth's Ruth 4. 16. & 1. 12. child: now Naomi was old, long before this she was passed childbearing, without an husband for many years: how then was it possible that she should give suck? She was therefore a ●rie nurse, as other nurses mentioned in Scripture. 2. Answ. The mothers of those children which are said to ●aue nurses (if those nurses were milch-nurses) might be ●ead: or if living, not able to give suck for want of milk, ●ipple, or for some other like defect: or if able, sin in putting forth their children. 3. Answ. Though it be said that there were nurses, yet is no where said, that a mother put forth her child to suck. 2. Object. Pharohs daughter put forth the child which she Exod. 2. 7. ●●oke for her own to nurse. Answ. She bore not this child, nor was the natural mother of it, so as this is nothing to the purpose. Yea it maketh against the objectors, in that the true mother of this child nursed it. 3. Object. The metaphor taken from nurses is oft used, Num. 11. 12. 1 Thes. 2. 7. and applied to God, and to God's ministers. 1. Answ. The using of a thing by way of comparison and resemblance doth not simply justify it: instance the parable of the unjust steward, and of a thief. Luke 16. 1. etc. Reu. 15. 16. 2. Answ. The metaphor may be taken from a dry nurse as well as a milch nurse: for the comparisons are not used of giving suck, but of bearing and carrying in arms, as dry nurses use to carry children. 3. Answ. The metaphors are most fitly taken from mothers that are nurses to their own children. 4. Object. Many mothers have not such skill in giving suck as nurses have. Answ. Let them learn seeing it is their duty. 5. Object. Mother's that are of great wealth and high place cannot endure the pain of nursing, nor take the pains in handling young children as they must be handled. 1. Answ. The greatest that be must set themselves to do that duty which God requireth at their hands, though it be with pain and pains. Note Sarahs' example before recorded. 2. Answ. By this it appeareth, that if other women could bear their children in the womb nine months, and endure the pain of travel for them, they would hire them to do it. But seeing they do the one (namely bear and bring forth their own children with hard labour) why should they not do the other? If they say there is an unavoidable necessity of bearing and bringing forth their children; I answer, that conscience ought to move them to nurse those children, which necessity forceth them to bring forth. God by this latter o● nursing children maketh trial of women whether they will for conscience sake, do that duty which they may if they will put off. But because God knew that many will do no more than necessity layeth upon them, he hath made it a matter o● impossibility for women to bear and bring forth their children by another. 3. Answ. If women would with cheerfulness set themselves to perform this duty, much of the supposed pain and pains would be lessened. 4. Answ. Though they put not forth their children to nurse, they may for their ease entertain a nurse, so they give suck themselves. 6. Object. A mother that hath a trade, or that hath the care of an house, will neglect much business by nursing her child: and her husband will save more by giving half a crown a week to a nurse, then if his wife gave the child suck. Answ. No outward business appertaining to a mother can be more acceptable to God than the nursing of her child: this is the most proper work of her special calling, therefore all other businesses must give place to this, and this must not be left for any other business. As for the husbands saving by putting the child forth to nurse, no gain may give a dispensation against a bounden duty. 7. Object. It will break tender fair women, and make them look old too soon. 1. Answ. God's ordinance must not give place to women's ●●icenesse. Sarah was fair and old: The Virgin Mary was fair and young. 2. Answ. Drying up a woman's milk will more break her, than her child's sucking of it: for it is a means both of better health, and also of greater strength, as to bear children, so to give them suck. Barren women and bearing women which put forth their children to suck, are most subject to sickness and weakness. The drawing forth of a woman's milk by her child is a means to get and preserve a good stomach, which is a great preservative of good health. 8. Object. Husband's are disturbed in the night time, and hindered of their sleep by their wives giving suck to their children. 1. Answ. By this reason neither mothers nor other nurses which have husbands, should give suck to children. 2. Answ. Seeing children come from the loins of the father, as well as out of the womb of the mother, they must be content to endure some disturbance as well as their wives, and so much the rather that they may the more pity their wives, and afford unto them what help they can. 9 Object. Many husbands will not suffer their wives to nurse their children themselves. Answ. Because it is a bounden duty, wives must use all the means they can by themselves or others to persuade their husbands to let them perform it: they must take heed that they make not this a pretext to cover their own sloth, and loathness to this duty: they may not make themselves accessary to their husband's fault by providing a nurse, and sending the child away themselves: if their husbands will stand upon their authority, and be persuaded by no means to the contrary, they must be mere patients in suffering the child to be taken away. 10. Object. Many poor women maintain their house by nursing other folk's children. Answ. If they were not that way employed, they might take pains in some other thing. But the gain of one may not make another neglect her duty. 11. Object. Some mothers cannot give suck, they have no milk: others cannot very well, in that they have no nipples, or they have sore breasts, or are sickly, or it may be that they have such a disease, as the child, if it should suck of their milk, would draw to itself, and so the sucking might prove very dangerous to the child. 1. Answ. God requireth no impossibilities: wherefore in propounding the duty I put in this caution (so far as they are able.) 2. God requireth mercy, and not sacrifice: if therefore in Hos. 6. 6. Matt. 9 13. truth it be so that the mother's giving suck to the child will be dangerous to herself or to the child, she may and aught to forbear: for giving suck is but as sacrifice to preventing of danger, which is mercy. But women must take heed that they pretend not inability, and danger without just cause. Some are themselves the cause of wanting milk because they will not let it be drawn down; or because they will not use means (for means there are) to get and increase milk. There are means also to raise nipples where the breasts are very flat. Refusing to give suck many times causeth some sickishnesse in a woman, and sore breasts, which might be prevented with the child's sucking. If the foreness be only in the nipples, a mother with enduring a little more pain may safely give the child suck. Many mothers have given their children suck when blood hath run by the mouth of the child by reason of sore nipples, and yet both mother and child done very well. 12. Object. divers children being nursed by the mother have died one after another. Answ. Due and thorough search must be made by those that are skilful: and if any cause be found in the mother, than the rule holdeth, Mercy and not sacrifice: but if none can be found, the issue must be referred to God's providence: and the uncertain even must not be an hindrance to a known duty. Thus the answering of the forenamed objections maketh the point so much the more clear. §. 14. Of the father's duty in encouraging his wife to nurse her child. The duty which on a father's part in this respect is required, is that he encourage his wife, and help her with all needful things for the performance of this duty. It is noted of Elka●ah, that he suffered his wife to tarry at home while she gave suck to her son, and would not force her to go up to the tabernacle as his other wife did, but gave her all the ease and content he could, saying to her, Do what seemeth thee good. 1 Sam. 1. 23. And of Abraham it is noted, that after Sarah had done giving the child suck, he made a great feast, even the day that Gen. 21. 8. Isaak was weaned: one end whereof was to testify his rejoicing for God's blessing on her motherly duty so well performed. §. 15. Of the faults contrary to a mother's nursing her child. Contrary to this duty do all such mothers offend, as for any by-respects when no necessity requireth put forth their children to be nursed by others. 1. Some do it for ease and quiet, because they cannot endure to have their sleep broken, or to hear their child wrangle and cry. 2. Others do it for niceness, because they are loath to open their breasts, or to soil their clothes. 3. Others upon pride, conceiting that their beauty would be impaired, and they look old too soon. 4. Others upon gain, because they can have a child cheaper nursed abroad then at home, where, at least, they must hire a maid the more. 5. Others upon pleasure, that they might more freely ride abroad, and meet their Gossips. 6. Others upon other by-respects: all which do argue much self-love: little love to their child, and little respect to God. They can be counted but half-mothers: for nursing a child is as much as bearing and bringing it forth. §. 16. Of a father's fault in hindering his wives nursing of her child. To the forenamed fault of mothers do all such fathers make themselves accessary, as forbid their wives to nurse their children, or are a grief to them by their complaints of trouble, disquiet and expense: or afford not things needful, or do not encourage them all they can to do it. The mothers both pain and pains is the greatest: it is in comparison but a small thing that fathers can endure therein. Their fault therefore must needs be the greater, if any way they be an occasion of their child's putting forth to nurse: which I have the rather noted, because husbands for the most part are the cause that their wives nurse not their own children: and that partly by suffering, and partly by egging them on to put out their children. If husbands were willing that their wives should perform this duty, and would persuade and encourage them thereto, and afford them what helps they could, where one mother now nurseth her child, twenty would do it. §. 17. Of parents joint care about their children's Baptism. There is a further duty to be performed of parents to their children even in their infancy, and that is in regard of their spiritual good, which is this, Parents ought to procure that their children be rightly baptised in due season. This is indeed a common duty appertaining to both parents, but most principally to the father, and that for two reasons. 1. The father is the chief and principal Governor, and hath the greatest charge: accordingly he ought to have the greatest care even in such matters as are common to both. 2. The mother at that time by reason of her travel and delivery is weak, and not in case to have her head much troubled with many cares; much less able herself to take order for such weighty matters. Only the husband is to make known to his wife (if she be not extraordinarily weak) what his purpose is concerning the place, time, manner, and other like circumstances of baptising the child, and to advise with her about the name, witnesses, and such like points. And if the husband be too backward and negligent, the wife ought so far as she is able to put him in mind of his duty therein, and to stir him up by herself or some other to perform it. §. 18. Of the reasons to move parents to see their children baptised. That parents are bound to procure Baptism for their children these reasons declare. 1. The commandment of God concerning circumcising Veraciter conijcere possumus quid valeat in parvulis baptismi sacramentum ex circumcisione, etc. Aug. de Bap. l. 5. c. 24. Gen. 21. 4. Luk. 1. 59 & 2. 21. Ios. 5. 5. children: in the room whereof Baptism succeedeth now ●nder the Gospel (Col. 2. 11, 12.) God's commandment to ●his duty was first given to Abraham: and that for himself ●nd all his posterity to observe (Gen. 17. 10.) After this it was ●n the law laid down as a positive statute, Leu. 12. 3. 2. The practice of the jews in a faithful and constant observance of this ordinance: as of Abraham; of Zachary and elizabeth: of joseph and Mary, and many others. Object. The children which were borne in the wilderness were not circumcised. Answ. They had no abiding place in the wilderness, but were ever and anon removing: so as it would have been dangerous for the children to have been circumcised: in that extraordinary case this rule took place, I will have mercy and Mat. 12. 7. not sacrifice. 3. The practice of Christians, who believing were themselves Act. 16. 15, 33. and their whole household baptised. Under whole household children must needs be comprised. 4. Christ's embracing and blessing such children as were Mat. 19 13. brought to him: and rebuking those that would have kept them from him. 5. The promise of God made to them: for seeing God is so Gen. 17. 7. Act. 2. 39 gracious as to extend his promise to our children: our care must be to procure the seal which God offereth for the confirmation of that promise. 6. The right they have to God's Kingdom. Baptism is an Mat. 19 14. evidence of that their right. It is parent's duty to get them that evidence. If children have just title to any lands and revenues, or to any earthly honours and dignities, parents will do what they can to make that title sure unto them even in their infancy: much more careful should they be to make that rich and glorious inheritance, which is in heaven reserved for them, as sure unto them as they can: now no better means for the effecting of this then Baptism. 7. Their conception and birth in sin. Children drew contagion Psal. 51. 5. from their parents: therefore great reason it is that their parents should see them washed with the water of regeneration. 8. The comfort which from the performance of this duty will arise to Christian parents, yea and to the children also themselves when they come to the age of understanding. When parents behold the covenant of God surely sealed and confirmed to their children, they cannot (if at least they bear any love to their children) but much rejoice therein. And it must needs also much comfort the child when (being of understanding) he shall know that from his infancy he hath carried the seal and pledge of his regeneration. 9 The constant continued custom of the true catholic Consuetude matris Ecclesiae in Church, which ever since the Apostles time hath afforded the baptizandis paruulis nequaquam spernenda est. Aug. de Gen. l. 10. c. 23. sacrament of baptism to children. §. 19 Of Parents procuring their children to be rightly baptised. There being such forceable motives to stir up parents to perform the duty, (which motives show it to be a weighty duty) I will further show how this duty ought to be performed. Two things in children's baptism ought to be observed. 1. That it be rightly done. 2. That it be seasonably done. In the right performance thereof, some things are necessary, and some expedient. Things of necessity are these especially: 1. That the child be baptised by a Minister of the word. Matth. 28. 19 joh. 3. 5. 2. That it be baptised with the element of water: the only element sanctified to this purpose. 3. That the form prescribed by Christ (Matth. 28. 19) be In Patrem, & in Filium, & in Spiritum Sanctum baptizamur, ut Trinitatis unum appareat sacramentum: sed in uno nomine quod intelligitur Deu●. Hier. in Eph. 4. used, In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: whereby the unity of the Godhead, and trinity of Persons is plainly set forth. 4. That the proper rite be used of applying the water to the body of the child, so as at least the face of the child may be sprinkled therewith. Things of expediency are, 1. That the child be baptised in a public place, where God's people ordinarily meet together, being set apart for the worship and service of God. 2. That such a time be chosen out, as an assembly of Saints may be there present. These two circumstances are the rather to be observed, because Baptism is one of the solemn parts of God's public worship; a pledge of our incorporation into the body of Christ, and communion of his Saints, and therefore with the more solemnity, (as a matter of great moment) before many witnesses, with the assistance of the faithful prayers of an assembly of Saints, to be performed. §. 20. Of Parent's care to give a fit name to their child at his Baptism. A third matter of great expediency about a child's baptism, is, that Parents be careful in giving a fit name. It belongeth to Parents to give the name to their child: for so Parents must give the child's name. holy parents (whose pattern in Scripture is in this respect commended unto us) have done from time to time: and for their warrant to do it, it is worthy to be noted, that when God was pleased to appoint a name to a child, he gave in charge to the Parent so to name him, saying to him, a Gen. 17. 19 Matth. 1. 21. Luk. 1. 13. Thou shalt call his name thus and thus. It is also evident, that the time of Baptism is the fittest time for giving the name. c Luk. 1. 59 & 2. 21. Under the Law, children's names were given at their Circumcision: and so under the Gospel it hath in all ages been used: and that for these reasons. 1. That their names may be a testimony of their baptism. Why the name is given at baptism. 2. That so oft as they hear their names, they may be put in mind of their baptism. 3. That they might know how by name they are given to Christ to be his soldiers, and therefore there must be no starting from him. 4. That they may also be assured, that being baptised with water and the spirit, by name they are registered in heaven. Now because names are so solemnly given, and of so good use, Fit names to be given. most meet it is that fit names should be given to children. And for proof hereof, let the names which in Scripture are recorded to be given by God himself, and by such holy men and women as were guided by his spirit, be observed; and we shall find them to be holy, sober, and fit names. For direction to parents in this duty, I will set down some sorts and kinds of names as be fit, and beseeming Christians. 1. Names which have some good signification: and among them such as are warranted by the Scripture, as john (the grace of God) jonathan (the gift of God) Andrew (manly) Clement (meek) Simeon (obedient) Hannah (gracious) Prudens (wise) and such like: that thus their name may stir them up to labour after the virtue signified thereby. 2. Names which have in times before us been given to persons of good note, whose life is worthy our imitation, as Isaak, David, Peter, Marie, Elizabeth, and such like: that the names may move them to imitate those worthies. 3. Names of our own ancestors and predecessors, to preserve a memory of the family: which appeareth to have been an ancient practice even among God's people, in that the friends would have had Zachariah's son named Zachariah; and when the Luk. 1. 59, etc. mother had just cause to name him john, they answer, none of thy kindred is called by this name. 4. Usual names of the country, which custom hath made familiar, as Henry, Edward, Robert, William, and such like among us. §. 21. Of Parent's care in bringing their children to be baptised in due season. Though Christians are not so strictly tied to a set day, as the jews were to the eight day; yet from that strict direction given to the jews, we may well gather, that it is not meet for Christians to defer the baptising of their children beyond eight days: for a young child of that age may with more ease, and less danger, be baptised, then circumcised. The most seasonable time I take to be the day whereon God's Read the rubric before the form of administering Baptism in our Common Prayer book. people use in the place where the child is borne, publicly to assemble together to worship God next after the birth of the child, if at least it fall not out within two or three days after, which is somewhat with the soon both for mother and child. Whether we respect the honour of God (the riches of whose mercy is lively set forth in the sacrament of baptism) or the good of our child (which in that sacrament receiveth a pledge and seal of that rich mercy of God) Baptism is of great consequence: and therefore the first season of performing it to be taken. For parents by their diligence and due speed therein, give evidence both of their zeal to God's glory, and also of their earnest desire of the child's spiritual good. §. 22. Of Parent's faults in neglecting their children's Baptism. Contrary to the forenamed duty of Parents about well baptising their children, are many aberrations, as 1. The corrupt opinion of Anabaptists, who deny the lawfulness of baptising children. The arguments before noted are sufficient to stop their mouths. 2. The practice of Separatists (coming too near to Anabaptism) who excepting against the ministry and orders of our Church, do what they can to keep their children from that Sacrament. And to that end carry their wife's ready to be delivered unto a strange place, where they are not known, and anon after they are delivered, privily convey wife, child, and all away, that so the Magistrate may not, against their will, cause their child to be baptised: and having no ministry of their own, nor means to convey the child over sea, keep it many years unbaptized. Where is the evidence of their faith in God's promise, of their Christianorum filij si baptisma non receperint, scelus refertur ad eos qui dare noluerint: maxim eo tempore quo contradicere non pote rant qui accepturi erant. Hier. ad Laet. respect to God's ordinance, and of their desire of their child's spiritual good? Though it be a great wrong to children to be kept from baptism, yet the sin lieth on such parents as procure not baptism for their children: especially at that age when their children cannot gainsay it. 3. The perverse opinion and practice of certain ancient heretics, who in stead of baptising children with water, had them branded with an hot iron. They grounded their error on a false interpretation of this phrase (he shall baptise with the Holy Ghost and with fire.) Seleuciani baptismum in aqua non accipiunt. Aug. de Haer. 59 Chemnit. harm. Euang. cap. 16. Answ. 1. They err in taking this word (fire) literally and properly, which was meant mystically and metaphorically. 2. They err in applying that to the outward action of a Minister, which was meant of the inward operation of Christ. By this their misinterpretation they thwart the main scope of him who first used that phrase, which was to manifest the difference betwixt Sine mysterio Trinitatis quicquid in unam aut alteram personam accipitur imperfectum est. Hier. in joel. 2. all other Ministers and Christ jesus. 4. The opinion and practice of those, who use other forms of Baptism, besides this, (In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.) Their opinion and practice is grounded on certain concise phrases used by the Apostles: such as these, Baptised in the name of jesus Christ: In the name of the Lord: In Act. 2. 38. & 10. 48. & 19 5. the name of the Lord jesus, etc. Answ. Those phrases rather set forth the very substance and inward matter of Baptism, than the form thereof. 5. Their opinion and practice, who care not by whom their children are baptised, whether heretics, idolaters, laics, or women: Little do they regard the comfort of conscience, and strength of faith, that ariseth from this; that a lawful Minister in God's room and name, as God's ambassador, putteth the seal of God to his covenant. 6. The practice of those as (I know not upon what niceness or state) must have their children baptised at home in their private house. This manner of baptising taketh away much from the honour of that high ordinance, which ought to be done with all the seemly solemnity that may be. 7. Their practice who bring their child to Church to be baptised, accompanied only with the Midwife, and three witnesses. It were almost as good be baptised in a private house: for it is not the walls of the Church, but the assembly of Saints, that addeth to the honour of the Sacrament, and is most of all to be respected. 8. Their practice who upon state, or for great witnesses, or such by-respects put off the baptising of their children longer than is meet, some, two or three weeks, some, two or three months, some longer: whereby they show too light esteem of this Sacrament, in that they prefer mere complemental circumstances before a matter of so great moment. God oft showeth his just indignation against such, in taking away their children unbaptized before the time set down by them for baptism be come. 9 Their practice who care not what heathenish, idolatrous, Lasciva nomina paruulis baptizandis imponenda non saint. joh. de Bur. ridiculous names they give to their children. What respect ●oe they show either to God in whose name their child is baptised, or to the holy Sacrament itself, or to the congregation of Saints before whom the name is given, or to the child ●● self who all his life is to carry that name? §. 23. Of parents providing things needful for the life and health of their children. Hitherto of the duties of parents respecting their children's Infancy. Such as respect their childhood follow. The childhood of a child is ●eckoned from the time that it begins to be of any discretion and understanding till it be ●t to be placed forth: even so Many distinguish the whole course of a man's life into four parts. 1. Childhood 2. Youth. 3. Man-age 4. Old-age. long as ordinarily it liveth under the parent's government. The duties which parents for this time must perform to their children may be drawn to these two heads. 1. Care to bring them up. 2. Care to place them forth. For their well training up, respect must be had both to their temporal and also to their spiritual good. Two things are required of parents, in regard of the temporal good of their children. 1. To nourish them well. 2. To nurture them well. Children must be well Fed. Taught. Childhood from his birth to 14. years. Youth from 14 to 25. Man-age from 25. to 50. Old age from thence to his death. But for better distinguishing the duties which parents are to perform, I follow not so accurate a division, but rather distinguish the degrees of age according to the times wherein new duties are to be performed: and therefore I make a distinction betwixt infancy and childhood. Feed them in discipline, saith the Apostle. Under nourishment are comprised all needful things for 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. In prole attenditur ut amanter suscipiatur, benignè nutriatur, religiosè educetur. Aug. de Gen. ad lit. l. 9 c. 7. Refectionis tempus, & mensura, & qualit as pueris competenter discernantur. Basil. Ascet. c. 15. health and life: which parents ought to provide for their children, as 1. Food, which Christ taketh for a ruled case. Whence he draweth his argument to show that God will provide for his children. What father (saith he) if his son ask him bread would give him a stone, etc. Mat. 7. 9, 10, 11. 2. Apparel, for it is expressly noted, that Israel made his son a coat, (Gen. 37. 3.) 3. Recreation, which in young children especially is needful for their health. In that Zachary chap. 8. vers. 5. told the jews, and that in way of blessing, that boys and girls should be playing in the streets, he implieth that it is a lawful and meet thing, which parents should permit unto their children. But yet the time, and measure, and kind of recreation must be well ordered. 4. Means for recovery of health when they are sick: for this end was it, that a 1 King. 14. 2. jeroboam sent his wife to the Prophet, in behalf of his son who was sick: that b joh. 4. 47. the Ruler came to Christ for his son also who was at point of death; and that many others came to him for their sons and daughters being ill. Whatsoever other things are needful, parents to their power 1 Tim. 5. 8. must provide for their children: else the Apostle counteth them worse than Infidels. Both equity and necessity require thus much of parents. Equity, in that children owe all their pains and service to their parents while they are under them, and are wholly at their command, and in that regard have no means to provide needful things but by their parents help. Parents therefore in all right must herein be helpful to them. Necessity, in that, if the life and health of children be not well provided for, no duty, no service can be expected at their hands. §. 24. Of parents too much niggardliness, and carelessness toward their children. There are two extremes contrary to the forenamed provident 1. Contrary, Covetousness Non est boni parentis qucm procrearit, & eduxerit, cum non & vestire & ornare. Cic. de Orat. Nun ipsae ferae foetus suos arctissimè amant? Nihilne fando de pardis, apris, boumque armentis audijsti, quanto cum tremore eorum saluti consulant? Greg. Naz. ad Ueial. care of parents for their children's good: In the defect, Covetousness. In the excess, Lavishness. Some parents so far fail in the defect, as they almost starve their children through want of necessaries: not affording them sufficient wholesome food, nor meet and comely apparel, but suffer them to go tagged and ragged like beggars ●rats: if they be sick, God may recover them if he please, but the parents will use no means when they are well, they afford them no time of refreshing themselves by any recreation, but ●uer-strictly hold them in. There is not only want of charity, ●ut plain unnaturalness in such parents: even more than in ●●e most cruel beasts. For the wild beasts do with much tenderness provide for their young ones. ones 25. Of parents too much lavishness and indulgency upon their children. Others surpass as much in the excess, feeding them too ●●intily: attiring them too garishly: tending them too cockeringly: and letting them spend too much time in sport and play. Many and great are the mischiefs that follow thereupon: as 1. They who are in their childhood daintily fed, and too much pampered, besides that for the most part they are most sickly, they will in time grow so squeamish, and choice of meats, as their parents shall not know what to provide for them, or when to give it them: The full soul loatheth an honey Pro. 27. 7. comb: yea if a stranger cometh to the table, where such a child sitteth, he may soon observe that he hath been too daintily fed. If at first children be fed with ordinary moderate diet, they will afterwards both be in better health and liking, and also more contentedly, and thankfully accept whatsoever shall be provided for them. But excess breedeth diseases both in body and mind. 2. Vanity in apparel doth also much corrupt young children: for there is in them even from the cradle a natural disposition to outward bravery: now for parents to prank them up, what is it but to blow up the fire of that vanity, and make it arise into such a flame as in time may much scorch the parents themselves, and utterly consume the children: and yet how usual a fault is this? how monstrously do many parents offend therein? what foolish fashion is used of the greatest swaggerers, and lightest strumpets, which they will not bring their children unto, and that when their children are not able to discern betwixt stuffs or colours? what can this proclaim but parent's pride and folly? Proud maids are many times the instruments of pranking up children (especially when they are little ones) more than is meet: but yet the blame lieth on parents for suffering it. 3. Tending children too cockishly maketh them too long children, and too tender: and oft altereth a good constitution of body. Some are so overmuch tender of their children, as if a child never so little complain, or refuse the meat (though for daintiness or fullness) the Physician must presently be sent for, and the Apothecary sent unto, and the child with supposed and apish kindness made much worse. 4. Too much sport maketh them wild, rude, unfit to be trained up to any good calling, and spendeth their spirits, and wasteth their strength too much. Yet many parents care not how much time their children spend in sport, and how little in learning: they think it dulls their children too much to be held to school, or to any learning: whereas indeed too much play infatuates them more, and learning would much sharpen their wits. §. 26. Of well nurturing children. I refer good nurture in part to the temporal good of children, because (as afterwards we shall hear in the particulars) it is an especial means of the outward temporal welfare of the child even in this world. Unless this be added to nourishing, wherein do reasonable men and women exceed unreasonable beasts? the most cruel beasts that be are very tender (as we heard before) towards their young ones, nourishing them, and providing all things needful for them till they can shift for themselves. But as God hath given to man a reasonable soul, an understanding head, capacity, docility and aptness to learn, so ought parents to make use of those parts and gifts, lest for want of using them, in time they be lost: and so children prove little better than bruits. In this respect the proverb is true, better be unfed then untaught. Experience showeth that good education is better than a great portion. The Holy Ghost doth very much press this point on parents, as we shall after hear in the particulars. For I will handle these three points. 1. The kinds of nurture. 2. The time when it is to be done. 3. The means of well doing it. §. 27. Of parent's neglect in nurturing children. Contrary to good nurture is too much liberty: which oft bringeth much woe, and utter ruin upon children: it is the greatest enemy that can be of good education, and the nurse of all vice Yet many parents care not to let their children live as they list: all the care they take, is that they be fed and apparelled. This is a common fault both of rich, and of poor parents. The rich pretend that their children need no education, because they have enough to leave them: not knowing that education is an especial means to make them keep and well use that enough. The poor pretend that they are not able to bring up their children to any thing: not considering that the Lord by his providence hath so ordered the affairs of men, that as there are fit employments for the greatest, so also Si parentum incuria filij in intemperantiam labentur, genitores rei animarum illarum fient. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 11. I. The kinds of nurture. for the meanest, which without much cost may be used. The fault therefore wholly resteth in the negligence of parents. And if thereupon children fall into any riot, their parents shall answer for it. §. 28. Of parents teaching their children good manners. The nurturing of children before mentioned consisteth 1. In teaching them good manners. 2. In training them up to a good calling. Not only heathen men, and other moralists which were but mere natural civil men, but also the Holy Ghost himself hath prescribed many rules of good manners, and much urged and pressed the same. 1. The word * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See Treat. 1. §. 110. nurture mentioned by the Apostle in this text which we have in hand, implieth as much: and the phrase which Solomon useth, b Pro. 22. 6. Train up a child in the way he should go: that is, teach him how to order the course of his life. 2. The many c Leu. 19 32. Pro. 25. 6. Luke 14. 8. precepts of reverencing our superiors, and carrying ourselves with respect one to another, are rules of good manners. Hereof there be very many in scripture. 3. Those rules are d Gen. 23. 7. & 43. 33. job 32. 4, 6. commended by many examples of holy men recorded in Scripture. 4. Such as have e job 30. 1, 12. Luke 14. 7. failed in the rules of good manners, and rudely carried themselves, are reproved by the Holy Ghost. Neither is it without good reason that this point is so set forth. For 1. Good manners are a very comely and seemly thing. But 1. Cor. 14. 40. it beseemeth Christians to do all things decently. That decency is not only to be applied to the affairs of God's Church, but also to the whole course of our life, in which respect we are commanded to walk * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Rome 13. 13. 1 Thes. 4. 12. decently, that is, to order all our actions and the whole course of our life mannerly. 2. They are a thing of good report, and that both to parents and children: Now we must do all things that are of good report. Phil. 4. 8. 3. They work a kind of delight, and love, and admiration, in those that behold them, as is noted of the Queen of 1 King. 10. 5. Sheba when she beheld the comely carriage of Solomon's servants: and of the Egyptians when they beheld the orderly Gen. 43. 33. sitting of Joseph's brethren. 4. They are an outward ornament to piety and religion, and make it to be much more respected: in which respect S. Peter exhorteth believing wives well to order their conversation 1 Pet. 3. 1. before infidel husbands: and S. Paul exhorteth all sorts of christians to walk decently toward them that are without. 1 Thes. 4. 12. The Holy Ghost having thus urged the point of good manners, we may not think it a mere complemental matter, and a needless point, but a bounden duty. §. 29. Of the objections against good manners. 1. Object. Religion and grace consisteth not in good manners: many that have not a spark of God's fear in their hearts, are able to carry themselves in their outward behaviour very orderly and mannerly. Answ. Though grace consist not wholly in it, yet cannot grace well be without it: it is a great ornament and comeliness thereunto. And though mannerliness may be severed from a fear of God, yet God's fear will not be severed from it. Restraining grace may be in him who hath no renewing grace: but renewing grace presupposeth restraining grace, even as reason presupposeth sense, though sense may be without reason. If such as fear not God can carry themselves comely and mannerly, what a shame is it for such as seem to fear God, not to do so? shall not those be a witness against these? 2. Object. Good manners are an hindrance to grace: they who are most diligent in teaching or practising the one, are commonly most negligent in the other. Answ. This is a mere cavil. Sure I am that grace is no hindrance to good manners. If any make good manners an hindrance to grace, it is their fault. 3. Object. Good manners to grace are as mint, anise and cummin, to the great and weighty things of the law. Answ. Grant it to be so: yet seeing both may stand together, why should they be severed? Christ's rule is this, These things ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. Matt. 23. 23. 4. Object. Many that make great show of religion are very rude, and unmannerly. Answ. If there be only a show of religion in them, no marvel that they have no manners. If some examples of such as are truly religious and want good manners should be showed, their pattern is no precedent, much less can it prove that to be no duty which Gods word hath set down for a duty. Many that well perform some duties, much fail in other duties. Who almost followeth God's word as he should in every thing? §. 30. Of parents suffering their children to be rudely brought up. Contrary to parents care in teaching their children good manners, is dissoluteness: when parents suffer their children to grow up in rudeness, not caring how they carry themselves at home or abroad, toward their parents, or toward others. Rude bringing up maketh children to be of a crooked, perverse, stubborn, churlish, furly, doggish disposition; as on the other side, good nurture in this kind breedeth in genuity, amiableness, courtesy, and kindness. If such as are rudely brought up be children of professors of the true religion, they bring a stain upon their profession: yea they dishonour God, as if he were the author of unmannerliness and confusion, against which the Holy Ghost protesteth: and they make 1 Cor. 14. 33. themselves and their children a scorn in the eye and mouth of profane persons, who will be ready to point and say, Behold the children of professors, how rudely they are brought up, and ill taught: they have not so much as good manners in them. For avoiding this blemish, Schoolmasters and all such as Admonition to Schoolmasters. have the charge of training up young children, must bean help to parents in teaching children good manners. §. 31. Of parents training up their children to some good calling. The second branch of good nurture is a training up of children unto a good calling. This charge (train up a child in Pro 22. 6. the way that he should go●) directly condeth to this purpose. This duty hath from the beginning of the world been performed by parents, and their performance thereof commended by the holy Ghost. Adam brought up his sons to several callings: one was a a Gen. 4. 2. keeper of sheep, another a tiler of ground. The like is noted of b Gen. 37. 12. jacob's sons, c Gen. 29. 9 Laban's, and d Exo. 2. 16. Reguels daughters, e 1 Sam. 16. 7. Ishas' son, and many others. Much good may from hence arise to parents themselves, to their children, and to the people and places where such children Benefits of a good calling. shall live. 1. A good calling is an especial means for children to maintain themselves and family, to relieve those that stand in need, to ease their parents, and (if the need of parents require it) to relieve and maintain them. 2. It is that way wherein God's Angels have a charge to Psal. 91. 11. keep them while they walk in it. 3. It is a means wherein and whereby they may be serviceable to the common wealth where they live. 4. It is the best place wherein the general duties of Christianity may be most manifested, and best performed. 5. It is the best ordinary means that can be prescribed to keep a child from the vanities of youth, from immoderate pursuit of pleasures, from unlawful games, from idleness, from ill company, and such like evils; which, as they are sins in themselves, so occasions and provocations to other most ●grieuous and enormous sins, and prove to be the very ●bane of youth. Object. Many parents have good lands to leave to their children: what need is there of a calling to such? Answ. 1. Much land may soon be consumed by such as have not skill well to use it. 2. Maintenance is but one end of a calling, and that not the chiefest and most principal. 3. More good may be done by skill in a calling, then by great store of land. 4. We are borne for others as well as for ourselves: it is not therefore sufficient to say I have enough to maintain myself. §. 32. Of parent's care in choosing a fit calling for their children. The point in general being declared to be a duty, I will Directions for choice of callings. 1. General principles are to be taught. add some directions for the better performing of it. 1. Children are to be trained up in those things which are the ground work of all callings, as reading, writing, and principles of learning. Whatsoever the particular calling be, these will be of great use to any one. Many that have not been taught them at first, would give much for them afterwards. Parents at the first might teach their children those things with much ease and small charge, which afterwards cannot be Non sunt contemnenda quasi parua, sine quibus magna constare non possunt. Hier. ad Laet. 2. The calling must be lawful. so well learned, partly for want of leisure, and partly because the parts of those who are grown in years are not so fresh and fit to learn, as in childhood they were. Those things are not to be contemned as small, without which great things cannot stand. 2. The calling whereunto children are trained up must be lawful, approved by God's word, and not against the general rules thereof: so may they keep a good conscience in the exercise thereof. 3. The calling must be fit for the child that is trained up 3. The calling must be fit for the child's ability. to it. As there are diverse callings, so there are diverse abilities of sundry children: some are fittest for callings of wit and learning: others for callings that require an able and strong body. Wherein the wise disposing providence of God is much commended: for thus are men much more useful one to another. Now for choice of a fit calling, a child's best ability wherein especially it consisteth, whether in the exercise of mind or of body, is duly to be observed: and also his inclination, to what calling he is most disposed. 4. Among fit callings (for there may be many) that which 4. The best callings must be preferred. 1 Cor. 12. 31. is best and the most excellent is to be preferred. To this purpose not unfitly may I apply that of the Apostle, covet earnestly the best gifts. On this ground let parents be exhorted to train up such Children to be trained up to the ministry. children as they find fit, to the great and weighty calling of the ministry: no calling wherein any may do more good, and wherein (if they be able and faithful Ministers) they can receive more comfort and contentment. This exhortation is the more to be regarded, because in comparison of those who are trained up to other callings, so few are trained up to this. § 33. Of parents' faults contrary to their duty of training their children up to a calling. On the contrary, many parents much offend in not training up their children to a calling as they should. And the offence in this kind is committed many ways. As 1. When parents suffer their children to live like little masters at home, and pass over all their youth in idleness. Thus they prove very drones, and caterpillars in the common wealth: if they have a patrimony, they soon waste it: if they have none, they oft prove either thieves or beggars: they are fit for all companies: the readiest prey for the devil that can be: for they are like the house empty, swept and garnished, which Mat. 12. 44. when the evil spirit espieth, he presently entereth into it with seven other spirits worse than himself. The wise lawmaker among the heathen is said to order Solon legibus cavisse legitur, ut filius, quem parentes nullam artem docuissent, non cogeretur illos alere senio confectos, aut ad inopiam redactos. Eras. Instit. Matrim. that the child which by his parents had been taught no Art, should not be forced to nourish them though they were old or poor. This I all allege not to justify the law (for it is against the Christian rule of overcoming evil with goodness) but to show how the very heathen judged the neglect of this duty a great fault in parents. 2. When parents neglect to teach their children in their childhood the general and common grounds of all callings: some upon niggardliness; others upon carelessness. Thus poor men make their children unfit for many means, whereby they might well maintain themselves: and rich men make theirs unfit for magistracy, and for good society. Yea poor and rich are thus nuzzled up the more in ignorance, and made the more unfit to profit by the preaching of the word, and other means of spiritual edification. 3. When parents bring up their children in unwarrantable and unlawful callings, as to be of popish and idolatrous orders; to attend upon papists; to be stageplayers, keepers of dice-houses, etc. Some (which is horrible to think of) train up their daughters to be common strumpets: and some Phoenices Veneri donum dabant de prostitatione filiarum, antequam iungerent eas viris. Aug de Ciu. D. l. 4 c. 10. vide Lud. Uiu. in hunc loc. Recte dicuntur parentes filios daemoniorum sacrilegijs obligare conantes, spir taliter homicidae. Aug. Epist. 23. (which is yet more horrible) train up their children to be sorcerers and witches. How can they in these keep a good conscience, when the very works of their calling are sin? Is not this to thrust them headlong into hell? They who thus bind their children to the devil's sacrileges are spiritual murderers of them. 4. When parents have no respect at all to the fitness of the calling: as when they train up children of able bodies, but dull and slow capacity, of a stuttering tongue and other like imperfections, to learning, wherein they prove very dunces, and lose all their time, or are not able to make use of the learning which they have: or when they train up children which have a great inclination to learning, and are very fit thereunto, in some other trade, which, after many years' speut therein, they are forced to leave. 5. When parents only seek after the most gainful trade, and never think to educate their children most to the honour of God. How can such expect God's blessing upon the means used for their children's good? Hence is it that among Papists so many are trained up to Ecclesiastical orders and functions: and so few among Protestants. For there is very great maintenance and revenues for such among Papists: but little in comparison among Protestants: Infans tibi est? ab infantia sanctitate imbuatur: abipsis unguiculis Spiritui consecre tur. Greg. Naz. Orat. 40. in S. Bapt. Lege Hier. Epist. ad Laet. protestants 34. Of parents teaching their children piety. The spiritual good of children, and that in their childhood, is to be procured by parents as well as their temporal. Wherefore Parents must train up their children in true piety. This is expressly commanded in my text under this phrase admonition of the Lord. Under the law God did both simply b Deut. 4. 9 & 6. 7 & 11. 19 Psal. 78. 5, 6. command it, and that very often, and also ordained diverse outward c Exo. 12 26. & 13. 14. rites, and caused many visible and extraordinary d jos 4. 6, 7, 21. monuments to be set up, that thereby children might be occasioned to ask of their parents the mystery of them, and that parents from that inquiry of their children might take occasion to e Deul. 6. 20. teach them the ordinances of the Lord. This express charge of the Lord is further commended by that practice which holy parents from time to time have yielded thereunto: instance the examples of f Gen. 18. 19 Abraham, g Pro. 4 4. David, h & 31. 1. Bathsheba, i 2 Tim. 1. 5. Reasons. 1. Benefit of piety. Lois and Eunice, with many others. 1. Piety is the best thing that a parent can teach his child: for as reason maketh a man differ from a beast; and as learning and civility maketh a wise and sober man differ from savages and swaggerers; so piety maketh a sound Christian much more to differ from the most civil and well ordered natural man that can be. Learning, civility, calling, portion, are all nothing without piety. Now it is an especial point of wisdom, to seek the best good that we can, as for ourselves, so also for our children: yea this is an evident sign of a parents true love of his child. 2. There is a necessity that children be taught piety, because 2. Necessity of piety. Fiunt non nascuntur Christiani. Hier. ad Laet. they are not borne but made Christians: by nature they are utterly destitute of all piety: for by nature every imagination of the thoughts of man's heart is only evil continually (Gen. 6. 5.) and in that respect man is borne like the wild ass colt (job 11. 12.) so as a man were better be unborn than not taught piety. 3. The charge and office of parents bindeth them to teach their 3. Charge of parents. children piety: for they are by God made watchmen over their children: if therefore their children live and die in impiety through their parent's negligence, their blood shall be required at their parents hands: instance the example of k 1 Sam. 3. 13. Elie. Object. This duty appertaineth to Ministers. Why Parents as well as Ministers are bour●d to teach piety. Answ. 1. God hath given an express charge hereof to parents, as we heard before. 2. In the family a parent is all in all over his child: a King, a Priest, and a Prophet. Therefore that which a Minister is to do for matter of instruction in the Church, a parent must do at home. 3 Children have need of daily instruction: the parents pains in this kind must be added to the Ministers: and both are little enough. 4. Parents having more familiarity with their children then Ministers, must needs better know their capacity, and their disposition: and so may better know after what manner to instruct them: whether to give them milk or strong meat, whether to deal mildly or roughly with them. 5. Instructions from parents are commonly more kindly accepted then from others: and children will the better relish them, when they come from their parents. They say that a plant will best grow in the soil out of which it first sprung: so instructions coming from those who both brought us forth, and first brought us up, are like to do most good. 6. There is no such means to breed love in a child's heart, as to be an instrument of bringing piety thereinto. Now who should more seek the true love of a child then a parent? In this respect a parent is more bound to this duty than a Minister. 7. It is impossible, that a Minister, who, it may be, hath many hundred children under his charge, should well instruct them all: It is therefore requisite, that each parent look to his own children. As these distinct answers satisfy the objection, so they serve as so many more reasons to enforce the duty: wherefore to proceed in adding other reasons, 4. Great equity there is that parents teach their children piety, 4. Equity. because they p Psal. 51. 5. conceived and brought them forth in iniquity. If they suffer them to lie and die in that corrupt estate, they are more cruel than the Ostrich and Dragon. 5. Children are most properly Gods: q Ezec. 16. 20, 21. borne to God: he is the 5. God's children. most proper parent of them: in comparison of God, fathers and mothers of the flesh are but nurses. They must therefore nurture them in the admonition of the Lord. 6. Piety is that, which of all other things, will make the child 6. 'Cause of obedience. most obedient, and grateful to his parents: for thus there is a double bond to bind him: 1. his birth. 2. his new birth: especially when the cause of the one hath been also the cause of the other. 7. Nothing can more settle the heart of a wise parent on his 7. Comfort of parents on their deathbed. deathbed concerning his children, than assurance that piety is planted in them: for than may he with stronger confidence commend them to God's providence, and with greater assurance expect his blessing upon them after he is dead. 8. Parents, by teaching their children piety, are an especial 8. Propagation of piety. means of propagating true religion from age to age, and from generation to generation. No better means can be thought of. For if all parents were careful of their duty in this kind, as there is a succession of children, and thereby a preservation of mankind, so there would be a succession of those that fear God, and thereby a preservation of true religion. My children that are taught by me, may be fathers of children, and so teach that to their children, which they have learned of me: yea after them may grandchildren prove fathers of other children, and they teach their children the same, and so from age to age others after them. This is the means on our part: and in our time we must do our part: and for those who come after us, leave the issue to God. Not only the great benefit of this point, but also the too much neglect thereof, in most families, hath moved me the longer to insist on it, and the more forcibly to press it. For the better performing thereof, I will add some directions. §. 35. Of directing parents how to teach their children true piety. 1. Whatsoever principle of piety, parents do teach their children, 1. Principles of piety to be all taken out of God's word. they must be sure that it be grounded on God's word: thus much this phrase (admonition of the Lord) implieth. Thus shall parents be sure to feed them with good wholesome spiritual food, such as shall make to their spiritual nourishment, and eternal life. In this respect principles of religion grounded on God's word are called sound, or wholesome, or healthful words: 2 Tim. 1. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and that both in regard of their matter and substance, and also in regard of their effect; they cause and preserve good, sound, spiritual health. We know that natural men have a care to give their children such food as is wholesome for their body: (for will a father Mat. 7. 9, 10, 11. that is evil, give his child a stone, or a serpent, and not that which is good?) Conscience must move religious parents, to have the like care of the souls of their children, as nature teacheth all parents to have of their bodies. If parents be careful to draw those principles, wherein they instruct their children, out of God's word, they shall be sure not to poison their souls with any error, heresy, superstition, or idolatry. 2. When children begin to read, let them read the holy Scripture: 2. Let children at first read the Scripture. so was Timothy trained up from a child (2 Tim. 3. 15.) Thus will children suck in religion with learning: for there is a secret virtue lurking in the holy Scripture (which is Gods own word) more than in any books of men: so as through God's Sacrae Scripturae nominibus utantur, & loco fabularum selectae illis historiae narrentur, & sententijs proverbialibus ex Solomone instituantur. Basil. Ascet. c. 15. 3 Catechise children daily. Deut. 6. 7. blessing there may by this means be an inward work of grace in children even in their young years. Besides, no books are more easy than many parts of Scripture; and no histories more admirable and delightful, than the histories of the Scripture. It is the advice of an ancient Father, that young children be made acquainted with the words and names of holy Scripture: and that, in stead of tales and fables, choice histories of the Bible be made known to them: and that they be instructed in the Proverbs of Solomon. 3. Let children be catechised constantly from day to day: rehearse them continually unto thy children, saith the Law. That which is daily done, is in Scripture said to be done continually: as the sacrifice which was daily offered was called a continual offering. Here let this caveat be noted, that in giving this spiritual food, parents deal with their children, as skilful nurses and mothers do in feeding infants: they will not at once cram more into their mouths, than their stomach is able to digest, but they will rather oft feed them with a little: so it is not meet, that parents be too tedious; that will but dull a child's understanding, and breed wearisomeness, and make it loath to be again instructed: but precept upon precept, precept upon precept, line upon line, line upon line, Isa. 28. 10. here a little, and there a little. Thus shall they learn with case and delight: and this being oft performed, in time a great measure of knowledge will be gained thereby. If a vessel have a little mouth, we use not to fill it by pouring whole pailefuls upon it, for so all may be spilt, and it receive little or nothing: but we let the liquor fall in by little and little, according to the capacity of the mouth; so is nothing lost, and the vessel filled the sooner. Thus are children to be dealt withal. 4. To the set times of catechising children, let other occasions 4. Take all occasions from sensible things to make a spiritual use. of teaching them piety be added: as at table, by resembling the spiritual food of their souls, to that corporal food, whereby their bodies are nourished: when they are walking abroad, by showing them the stars, how they remain steadfast in their course; the trees, how they bring forth fruit in their season; how all things are for the use and benefit of man, and thereupon make spiritual uses: note the direction which for this purpose the Law giveth to parents, Thou shall talk to thy children of my words, Deut. 6. 7. when thou sittest in thine house, and when thou walkest by the way, and when thou liest down, and when thou risest up. 5. Let parents open to their children the mysteries of those 5. Open the mysteries of the rites of the Church. Exo. 12. 26. & 13. 14. outward rites which God hath ordained in his Church, as of Preaching, Baptising children, administering the Lords Supper, ceasing from work on the Lords day, with the like. This was expressly commanded under the law. Visible rites are great helps to the weak understanding of children, when they are plainly opened and applied: yea they are also especial means of keeping in memory the mysteries contained under them: as course threads or wiars are means to preserve pearls put upon them. So oft as they see the rites they will be put in mind of the mysteries implied under them. 6. To this may be referred a declaration of such great and 6. Let Gods great works be declared. admirable works as God in former times hath done for his Church: especially such works as have been done in their time: and if any memorial be remaining of them, make them known to children. This direction was also given under Jos. 4. 6, 21. the law, concerning the monuments which were set up of the great deliverances that God gave to his people. In particular when the day of the gunpowder-treason is solemnised, parents ought to teach their children the occasion of solemni●ing that day. And as God doth any great works of mercy ●r of judgement, point them out to children. When there is great famine, plague, or any mortality, instruct children in ●he causes thereof: when victory, plenty, peace, or the like, ●ach children from whence these come. Outward sensible things do best work upon children. 7. Let religious school masters be chosen for children: so●●ewise 7. Let religious masters be chosen. other masters to whom children are put forth: and religious houses where they are placed. Hannah commended ●er first borne child to old Eli, a good, religious high Priest. 1 Sam. 1. 25. Magister probae aetatis, & vitae, atque eruditionis est eligendus. Hier. ad Laet. ● 〈◊〉 ● master's themselves be religious, there is good hope that they will instruct in piety such as are under them: which if they ●oe, what an help will that be to parents? If both parents and masters join therein, it must needs be very profitable to ●e children. If parents should fail, yet might masters make a ●ood supply. 8. Let parents be to their children a good pattern and example 8. Be an example. in piety. I and my house (saith a Ios. 24. 15. josua) will serve the Lord: he setteth himself first as a guide to the rest. b Psal. 101. 2. Nihil in te & in Patre suo videat, quod si fecerit peccet. Mementote vos parents virgins, magis eam exemplis doceri posse, quam voce. Hier. ad Laet. I will walk in mine house with a perfect heart, saith David, whereby he would make himself an example, as to others of his family, so to his children. Example is a real instruction, and addeth a sharp edge to admonition. Much more shall a religious parent do by practice then by precept. For children are much inclined to follow their parents: let them go before, children will soon follow after. Practice is an evident proof of the necessity of the precept delivered. §. 36. Of Parent's faults contrary to their duty of teaching their children piety. Many are the aberrations contrary to the forenamed care of teaching piety. For 1. Most parents care only for the temporal and civil good of their children: so their children may be well fed and clothed, and brought up in some profitable calling, whereby they may well maintain themselves in this world, little thought is job non tantum pro corpore filiorum sollicitus erat, sed plus de anima cogitabat. Orig. in job. lib. 1. had, or care taken for their spiritual life in this world, or eternal life in the world to come. Wherein are these parents better than heathen? job was otherwise minded: he was more careful for their souls then for their bodies. 2. Many are so far from teaching piety, as they teach their children profaneness, pride, riot, lying, deceit, and such like principles of the devil. It had been better for such children to have lived among wild beasts, then under such parents. As the children hereby are thrust headlong to hell, so their blood shall be required of their parents. 3. Others think it enough that their children be taught a religion, but what religion it skilleth not. Such are they as having rich kindred but popish, commend their children to the education of such kindred, in hope of some temporal benefit, that their children may reap from them. If they were as careless of their children's bodies, they would be accounted little better than murderers: and is not the soul more precious than the body? 4. So far are many from catechising their children and that daily, as they teach them not so much as the Lords prayer, the Belief, and the ten Commandments. Wherein Papists shall rise up in judgement against them, that are very diligent in teaching their children, Pater noster, Aue Maria, and such like Latin principles, as the children cannot possibly understand. 5. Few use the forenamed outward helps, as the holy rites appointed of God, the great and glorious works of God, his extraordinary works of mercy or judgement, to instruct their children thereby. As they themselves care not to take notice of any such thing, so they care not whether their children do it or no. 6. So much do some prefer a little pelf before the true Alexander & in moribus, & in incessu l. eonidis paedagogi sui non potuit carere vitijs, quibus adhuc paruulus fuit infectus. Hier. ad Laet. good of their children, as they care not to what schoolmaster they put their children, be he profane, or popish, or unlearned, especially if he be a kinsman, or one of their friends. Few will so do in case of their health or outward estate: but will rather get the best Physician, or the best Lawyer that they can. Children oft learn such evil qualities of their schoolmasters as they can never shake off again. 7. Many prove very bad patterns to their children, and give very ill example by profanensse, riotousness, swearing, drinking, playing at unlawful games, etc. These parents as they brought forth their children in sin, so they lead them on forward to hell. Their evil example is not only an hindrance to the good instruction of others, but also maketh all their own counsels (if at any time they do give any good counsel) to be in vain: for the left hand of evil example Parents non educant filios in erudition domini quia solliciti non sunt pro salute vel perditione eorum. Orig. loc. citat. soon pulleth down more than the right hand of instruction can build again. To conclude, those parents whose children are not brought up in the instruction of the Lord, show plainly that they regard neither the salvation or damnation of their souls. §. 37. Of instructing children so soon as they are capable. Hitherto of the Kinds of nurture. The Time thereof followeth. In handling the time of II. The Time of nurture. Nurture must be begun betimes. good nurture, I will show 1. When it ought to be begun. 2. How long it ought to be continued 1. Parents ought to begin to nurture their children so soon as they are capable of any instruction. Even as young birds are taught by their dams to fly so soon as their wings can carry them. b Pro. 22. 6. Train up a child (saith Solomon) that is, while he is young and tender: and again, c & 13. 24. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 maneinde in Picl 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 mane facere, id est, mature. He that loveth his child nurtureth him be times. Thus was Samuel sent when he was very young to be trained up under Eli, (1 Sam. 1. 24.) and Solomon was instructed by his father when he was tender, (Pro. 4. 3.) and Timothy was taught the Scriptures d 2 Tim. 3. 15. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Puer recens natus. Reasons. 1. Evils prevented. from a young child, or infant. There are both privative, and positive reasons to press this point. Privative, in regard of the mischiefs that may be prevented thereby. Positive, in regard of the good that may be gained thereby. 1. Many are the evils which children by nature are prone unto, even as rank ground is subject to bring forth many weeds: for e Gen. 8. 21. the imagination of man's heart is evil from his youth: and f Pro. 22. 15. foolishness is bound in the heart of a child. If therefore they be not well nurtured betimes, what can be looked for, but the fruits of evil, and folly. But timely nurture will prevent such fruits, and be an excellent preservative against their own natural corruption, against Satan's temptations and against the allurements or discouragements of the world 2. Continuance in evil maketh children obstinate, and 2. Continuance in evil maketh inflexible. 1 Sam. 2. 25. inflexible therein. Elies' sons being suffered to go on in wickedness till they came to ripeness of years, would not afterwards hearken to the voice of their Father. What creature can be tamed, if it be not begun with while it is young? 3. When children first begin to be capable of instruction 3. Young children most pliable. they are most pliable to follow the direction of their parents as is evident by the ordinary course of nature in all things Clay, wax, and such other things while they are soft receive any impression: twigs while they are tender are bowed any way: birds and beasts are easily tamed when they are young: corn sown betimes bringeth a timely and plentiful harvest. 4. That which in childhood is learned, is longest retained: 4. What first learned best remembered. Prou. 22. 6. Quo sem●lest imbuta recens seruabit od●rem Testa diu. Hor. Train up a child in the way he should go, and when he is old he will not depart from it. A vessel longest keepeth that savour with which at first it is seasoned: and by experience we may note old men best to remember the things which in their childhood they learned: yea by well educating children from their infancy much labour may afterwards be spared: for constant use of virtue bringeth it unto a law. Si liberis ab ipsis statim initijs leges optimas imponamus, minimum posthac laborabimus. Consuetudo ipsa virtutis in legem transiet. Chrys. in 1. Tim. Hom. 9 Object. To teach children while they are young, is but as to teach a Parrot or such like unreasonable creatures: they may learn what is taught them, but they cannot conceive it. 1. Answ. Though children have not so deep an apprehension while they are young, as they have when they come to riper years, yet so soon as they are capable of instruction, they do much better conceive what is taught them, then unreasonable creatures can do. 2. Though that were granted, yet it would not thereupon follow, that it is better not to be taught while they are young. For, first it is better that they should be framed and squared to a good course, before they can discern betwixt good and evil, ●hen be suffered to run on in evil, till they get an habit ●herein; which after it is got, will hardly be cast off. Secondly, by teaching them before they can well conceive, their apprehension is much helped. What may be the reason that children of kings, and great men are commonly of more understanding at 12. or 14. years of age, then poor and mean ●ens children at 17. or 18. but that they are sooner, and better instructed? Thirdly, as by age their understanding cometh to more and more ripeness, they will more and more conceive that which at first they did not so well understand. Then scholars first learn their Latin rules, they learn them ●eerely by rote, without understanding the meaning of them, Obsequentes facite filios vestros ab infantia, attendentes ne in vos potestantem habeant praeter vestram sententiam. Constit. Apost. l. 7. c. 4. ●t afterwards come to make very good use of them. Where●● children are to be instructed betimes even for the benefit at may be after reaped, as corn is sown in winter to receive ●●op the harvest following: and to prevent the mischiefs at may fall out, lest they get head over their parents against ●ir mind. §. 38. Of mother's peculiar care in nurturing young children. By the way let mothers especially note this point of timely nurture, as a point in peculiar appertaining to them. The b Compare 2 Tim. 1. 5. with 3. 15. grandmother Lois, and mother Eunice, first taught Timothy, c Prou. 31. 1. Bathsheba taught Solomon when he was young. Oft doth Solomon warn children d & 1. 8. & 6. 20. not to forsake their mother's teaching. Whereby he implieth that mothers should teach their children especially while they are young: which duty so belongeth to a mother, as e Prou. 29. 15. Solomon layeth the blame, and shame of the neglect thereof upon her: on the other side the honour of well nurturing children redoundeth especially to the mother. To this purpose is it, that the f 1 King. 15. 2, 10. particular names of the mothers of the kings are recorded in Scripture: intimating thereby that mothers were a main cause of the piety, or impiety of such children. Solomon and Absolom had both one father, but diverse mothers. May we not well think that Salomon's mother's care to instruct him was an especial means of his piety: and that Absoloms' mothers neglect of this duty, was some cause of his impiety? It is expressly noted of Ahaziah's mother, that she was his counsellor to do wickedly, which made him so wicked 2 Chro. 22. 3. as he was. Home-experience confirmeth as much: for if father and mother be of diverse religions, most of the children will follow the mother. For while children are young, their mother is most in their sight: she feedeth, she appareleth them, she tendeth them when they are not well, (when the Shunemites' child being ill, said to his father, my head, my head, he said to his servant, carry him to his mother.) Her precepts therefore 2 King. 4. 19 and practise in that respect are best heeded by the children, and she hath the best opportunity to persuade them to what she liketh best: so as what they learn in their younger years, commonly they learn of their mothers: and that which then they learn, for the most part sticketh most close unto them, and is longest retained by them, as was noted * §. 37. before. I have not thus in particular pressed this point upon mothers, as if I exempted fathers from all care of nurturing their children in the beginning: for in my text the Apostle named Fathers: and Solomon saith, that his father taught him eue● while he was tender: and David felt the smart of neglecting hi● other children. It is therefore (as hath before been proved) a joint duty belonging to both. Father's therefore must do their best endeavour, and see that mothers do theirs also, because he is a governor over child, mother, and all. §. 39 Of letting slip the best time for nurture. Contrary is the negligence of most parents, who let the best years wherein their children are most docible pass over in wantonness, vanity, and folly: and so lose that which can never be recovered again, most precious time. Hence is it that when they go about to reclaim their children, they find them exceedingly perverse and headstrong: much like to a strong big arm of a tree, which if a man go about to straiten, he cannot easily make it bow: and though it bow, yet will it not continue to stand as he would have it: nay it may be that it will rather break then bow much. Such a branch was Adoniah. It is apparent that in his childhood he was not well nurtured, for his father would not displease him from his childhood. 1 King. 1. 6. The father's putting off this duty to the mother, and the mother's putting it off to the father, is a great cause of the neglect thereof. Were both of them persuaded that it belonged to them both, and in that respect would to their power be helpful each to other, children would much better be instructed. §. 40. Of parents continuing to nurture their children. As parents must begin betimes to nurture their children, so they must hold on therein, as long as they retain any government over them: yea so long as they remain to be parents unto them. Some difference there may be in the manner of performing this duty: for children are to be used as children: and they who are grown in years, and of riper understanding, accordingly to be dealt withal: yet still must parents have a care of their well doing. The word used in my text and translated Children, is a general word which in Scripture and other 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. writers is used to set forth all sort of children, of what sex, of what age, of what degree soever they be. In handling the duty of children we * Treat. 5. §. 62. showed, that children owed a subjection to parents so long as they lived together: wherefore by the rule of relation, so long also an authority remaineth in parents over their children, and accordingly they aught to have a fatherly care for their good. On this ground Eli did well in admonishing 1 Sam. 2. 25. job 1. 5. Hoc faciebat ille beatus vir, non semel, aut secundo, neque uno anno, aut duobus, sed sic faciebat Iob omnibus diebus vitae eorum. Orig. in job lib. 1. his children after they were married: his fault was that he went not far enough in doing his duty: somewhat he did, but not all that he should and might have done. job is commended for the care he had over his children when they were grown in years: for day by day he sent for them and sanctified them: and that after they had several houses of their own, and dwelled apart: and this all their days. For the performance of that which is now urged, parents must so carry themselves from time to time towards their children, as they ever keep the reins in their own hands, and Direction. retain a power to curb their children as they see occasion. They may, as their children grow up in years, slaken the reins more and more, but never let them clean go, and cast them lose on their children's neck. §. 41. Of parent's folly in letting go all their power over their children. Contrary is their folly who put themselves in their children's power, and let go all their authority over them. Many Aegrè reprendas quod sinis consuescere. Hier. ad Laet. parents that have thus done, having by woeful experience found the mischief and inconvenience that hath followed thereupon, have much repent their folly, and used means of redress, but all too late. For a mischief is much more easily prevented then redressed. All the power that David had could not hold in Absolom after he was permitted to have 2 Sam. 15. 1. horses, and chariots, and men at his command. If David, as he begun, had continued to keep him within a compass, and still held him under, all the treasonable plots which he put in execution, might easily have been prevented. Our times afford too many examples of parents' folly in this kind, and of the mischiefs following thereupon. Of Time of nurture thus far. The means thereof follow. §. 42. Of adding admonition to instruction. The means of helping forward the good work of nurture III. The means of nurture. are especially two. 1. Frequent admonition. 2. Due correction. Both of them are implied in this text: one in the word translated admonition, which (according to the notation of the 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See Treat. 1. §. 120. Greek word) is a putting of a thing into the mind, an urging and pressing of it: the other in the word translated nurture. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See Treat. 1. §. 119. Now both these are to be joined together, as being very helpful each to other. For admonition without correction is like to prove but mere vanity: and correction without admonition will be too much austerity. The duty which the first of these setteth forth, is this, Parents must oft whet instruction upon their children: they Annuncia, praecipe, impera, suade eyes, etc. Aug. de salut. docum. cap. 29. may not think it enough to tell their children what they ought to do, but to instruction they must add admonition: and, as it were, beat into their children's heads the lessons which they teach them: that so they may make a deeper impression in their hearts. Thus shall their instructions be like the words of the wise which are as nails fastened, or fast knocked Eccl. 12. 11. in: they remain firm where they are once fastened, and cannot easily be plucked out: for as many blows do knock a nail up to the head (as we speak) so many admonitions do settle good instructions in a child's heart, and cause that the heart be established in that which is taught, e Heb. 13. 9 which is a thing to be laboured after. The general exhortation of being f 2 Tim. 4. 2. instant in season and out of season may be applied to this purpose: but more pertinently that g Deut. 6. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Acuit. in Piel acuit valde, vel frequenter. Metaphora ducta à gladio, qui dum acuitur saepius impellitur ad cotem. Vatab. in annot. in hunc loc. vide Treat. 1. §. 120. direction which is in particular given to parents of whetting Gods words upon their children. To this purpose is it that Solomon useth to double his instructions, and urge them again and again, as h Pro. 1. 8. hear the instruction, forsake not the law: i & 2. 1, 2. Direction. receive my words, hide my commandments within thee: incline thine ears, apply thy heart, etc. yea of the repeateth the very same precepts. The apprehension of children is fickle, and their memory weak: if they be but once, or seldom, or slightly instructed, that which is taught will soon slip away, and do little or no good. For the better performing of this duty, parents must think of the best means they can to fasten their instructions upon their children: and observe their inclination and disposition, and see with what they are most moved. Constant exhortations, and powerful persuasions are comprised under admonition, which in their kinds, as occasion requireth, are to be used. §. 43. Of parent's wearisomeness in instructing their children. Contrary is the practice of those parents who soon wax weary in instructing their children. The Apostle layeth it down as a general caveat in good duties that we wax not Gal. 6. 9 weary: if in no good thing we must wax weary, shall parents wax weary in doing good to their children? Yet how many be there that having once taught their children, think they have done duty enough in that kind: if their children will take it, they may. They are loath to take too much pains in often urging the points which they have taught them. Thus that teaching vanisheth away: and so it falleth out, as we say in the proverb, as good not at all as never the better. This is one point wherein old Eli failed: for he gave very good instruction to his children: but because he there stayed, neither was that accepted of God as a sufficient discharge of his duty, nor were his children any whit bettered thereby. If this were a fault in him notwithstanding his children were come to years of discretion, and to ripeness of understanding, how much greater is the fault in those whose children are but young? Object. If a child take not instruction at first, he is but of an untoward and perverse disposition: all the pains that can be taken will be lost. Answ. It may be childishness rather than perverseness, or some imperfection, rather than obstinacy. Considering the necessity of good nurture, no pains may be thought too much. There is more perverseness, and untowardness i● such parents as wax weary in doing this duty, then in such children as at first are not wrought upon: for this is a means ordained of God to cure this untowardness. §. 44. Of parents reproving their children. The other means of helping nurture is correction. Which is of two sorts; Verbal, by Words. Real, Blows. The former is reprehension: and it must always go before the latter, which is most usually and properly called Correction. Reprehension is a kind of middle thing betwixt admonition and correction: it is a sharp admonition, but a mild correction. It is the rather to be used because it may be a means to prevent strokes and blows, especially in ingenuous, and good natured children (for b Pro. 17. 10. a reproof entereth more into him that is wise, than a hundred stripes into a fool) and because it may be used, when it is not so meet to use strokes and blows: as when children are grown to man-age. The many good fruits which the holy Ghost noteth to proceed from due reproof do show that it is a duty whereof parents ought to make conscience as they desire to promote the good of their children: and so much the rather because many good fruits redound to the parents that reprove, as well as to the children reproved. In regard of their good who are reproved, it is said, c Pro. 6. 23. Reproofs for instruction are the way of life: they cause d & 15. 32. understanding; and make e & 15. 5. prudent. In regard of their good who reprove, it is said, f & 24. 25. To them that rebuke shall be delight (that is, much comfort and matter of rejoicing, so as they shall not need to repent what they have done) and a blessing of good shall come upon them, that is, either a blessing of good men, who will bless, praise and commend them: or a blessing of good things, and that from the Lord who will reward them for this conscionable performance of their duty. Upon these grounds g Gen. 9 25. & 34. 30. & 49. 4. holy men have not spared to rebuke their children as there was occasion. Though h 1 Sam. 2. 23. Eli dum filijs molestus esse severa increpatione recusat, & illos & seipsum ●na perdidit, Chrys. in 1 Tim. hom. 9 1 King. 1. 6. Eli did somewhat in this duty, yet because he was not more severe therein, ●he brought destruction both upon himself and his children. The direction noted §. 40. and 47. and Treat. 4. §. 35. may be here applied. §. 45. Of parent's cockering their children. Contrary is their too much doting on children, who are ●oth to give them a foul word. David (though otherwise a ●very wise man) herein manifested much folly, for he displeased ●ot Adoniah at any time in saying, why hast thou done so? and like enough it is, that also he so cockered his other rebellious son Absolom. Note the fearful issue that followed thereupon both to father and children. Though their father would not displease them, yet they cared not to displease their father, yea to grieve his heart, and vex his soul. The like may all foolish doting parents look for at their children's hands. For first parents by neglect of this duty highly displease God: therefore in just revenge will God give their children over to Omnia quae deliquerint filij, de parentibus requiruntur qui non erudierint silios suos. Orig. in job. lib. 1. displease and vex them. Secondly, neglect of reproof is a means to make children rude, presumptuous, rebellious, and so careless to please their parents. Yea all things where in children offend through want of education shall be required at their parents hands. §. 46. Of correcting children. The latter and more proper kind of correction which is by stripes and blows is also a means appointed by God to help the good nurture and education of children. It is the last remedy which a parent can use: a remedy which may do good when nothing else can. It is by the holy Ghost both expressly commanded, and also very oft pressed under these and such like phrases, b Pro. 19 18. Chasten thy son: c & 29. 17. correct thy son: d & 23. 13. withhold not correction from the child: e Vers. 14. thou shalt smite him with the rod. Were there no other motive, this were sufficient. God's charge was such a motive to Abraham, as at it he would have sacrificed his son: Gen. 22. 2, 3. and wilt not thou at Gods command correct thy child? It is further commended by Gods own example, which is not only set forth in some particular instances, but by his general constant dealing with all, and that as an especial token and fruit of his love. For whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, Heb. 12. 6, 8. and scourgeth every son whom he receiveth. If ye be without chastisement whereof all are partakers, then are ye bastards and not sons. Let this example of God be well weighed, for it is of great weight. Who can better tell what kind of dealing is fittest for children than God? Who can better nurture children then God? Who doth more truly aim at, and procure the good of children than God? Yea who doth more tender children than God? If God the father of spirits in wisdom and love thus deal with his children, fathers of the flesh may not think by the contrary to show wisdom or love. Their wisdom will be folly, their love hatred. Upon these grounds it is taken for a thing granted, that parents (who tender the good of their children as they should) do chastise their children as need requireth: for it is said, that the h Pro. 3. 12. Lord correcteth whom he loveth, as a father the son in whom he delighteth. If parents used it not, this were no good inference to say, as a father: again, as a thing without controversy it is said, i Heb. 12. 9 we have had fathers of our flesh which corrected us. The grounds of the equity of this duty, respect partly the Reasons to move parents to correct. children corrected, and partly the parents that correct. In regard of children, it freeth them from much evil, and worketh in them much good. Correction is as physicke to purge out much corruption 1. Benefits of correction to the parties corrected. which lurketh in children, and as a salve to heal many wounds and sores made by their folly. In which respect Solomon saith, that k Pro. 22. 15. Foolishness is bound in the heart of a child, but the rod of correction shall drive it far from him: and again, l & 20. 30. The blueness of a wound is a purging medicine against evil: so do stripes the inward parts of the belly. In regard of the inward operation of this physic, correction is further said to preserve a child from death, ( m Pro. 23. 13. if thou beatest him he shall not die) and that not only from temporal death (as many children are thus preserved from the Magistrates sword) but also from eternal death ( n Vers. 14. thou shalt deliver his soul from hell.) Note this ye cockering parents, whose overmuch lenity is very great cruelty. For may we not justly count him a cruel parent, that should suffer diseases, boiles, sores, and wounds to remain, increase, and fester in his child, and give him no physic, nor apply any plasters, or medicines to him? Nay rather who seeth his son running into a flaming fire, or deep water, and would not hold him back? Even so cruel, and more cruel are they, who suffer their children to run on in evil, rather than correct them. Object. Who can endure to make his own child smart, and to put him to pain? Answ. The future fruit is more to be considered, than the present pain. Potions, pills, and corrosives, are fulsome, bitter, and painful; but because there is a necessity of using them, and great mischief is prevented by the use of them, wise parents will not forbear them for the sensible bitterness, and pain. Fitly doth the Apostle thus answer that objection, No chastning for the Heb. 12. 11. present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous; nevertheless, afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness. This may be applied to parents' corrections as well as to Gods. The good which correction bringeth to children, is by Solomon noted in this and such like phrases, The rod giveth wisdom: Pro. 29. 15. for it maketh children observe, what is good, and what evil; what commendable, and what blame-worthy: and accordingly to do the good, and leave the evil, which is a great point of wisdom. Object. Instruction will better do this. Answ. Instruction may give them more knowledge, but it is correction which bringeth them to practise what they know, which is the q Matt. 7. 24. chiefest point of wisdom. In regard of parents, due correcting of their children both freeth them of many inconveniences, and also bringeth to them 2. Benefits of correcting to him that correcteth. much quiet. 1. It spareth them much pains. For many admonitions oft repeated, and inculcated again and again, will not make many children so much to heed wholesome and good advice, as a little correction. They are much more sensible of smart, then of words. 2. It preventeth much grief, shame, and vexation: for r Pro. 17. 25. a foolish son is a grief to his father, and bitterness to her that bore him. But it is s & 22. 15. the rod of correction that driveth away foolishness, and so preventeth that grief and bitterness. 3. It freeth them from the guilt of their children's sin, so as they are not accessary thereto, as t Sam. 3. 13. Eli was. For correction is the last remedy that a parent can use: if by that he can do no good, it is presupposed that he hath done his uttermost endeavour: in which respect, though the child die in his sin, yet the parent hath delivered his own soul. The quiet which is brought to parents by correcting their children, is thus noted out by Solomon, u Pro. 29. 17. Correct thy son, and he shall give thee rest, yea he shall give delight unto thy soul. For children well nurtured, and by correction kept in a filial awe, will so carry themselves, as their parents may rest somewhat secure, and not disquiet themselves (as they do with children set at liberty) yea, as trees well pruned, and ground well tilled, they will bring forth pleasant and abundant fruit; and so their parents will have just cause to rejoice in them. §. 47. A direction to parents in correcting their children. For well using this biting corasive of correction, parents must have respect to the matter for which they do correct, and to their manner of correcting. In regard of the matter, these three things must be noted. Three things noted in the matter, for which correction is to be given. 1. That they be sure there is a fault committed: that so there be just cause of correcting: else more hurt then good will proceed from thence. If a corasive be laid where there is no sore, it will make one. If correction be unjustly given, it may provoke to wrath, but will do little good. This is it wherein earthly fathers are taxed, and made unlike to God, for that many times they correct after their own pleasure: which is a point of great injustice. Heb. 12. 10. 2. That the fault be made known to the child corrected: and he apparently convinced thereof. Correction must be for instruction, which cannot be, except the child know why he is corrected: for it is all one to him, as if he were corrected for no fault, if he know not his fault. God thus a first proceeded with the serpent, Gen. 3. 11, etc. with Eve, and with Adam. Thus judges proceed in punishing malefactors. Yea thus will men deal with a dog. Should they not much more with a child? 3. That the faults be such especially, as the parents can show to their children (if at least they be of so much discretion) to be against God's word; as swearing, lying, pilfering, and the like: for 1. these are most dangerous faults, and therefore more carefully to be purged out. 2. the child corrected will thus be the better evicted of his fault, the more condemn himself, and more contentedly bear the correction. In regard of the manner of correcting, four general, and four Four general rules for the manner of correcting. particular rules are to be observed. The general rules are these. 1. An eye must be had to God's manner of correcting his children, and in particular of Gods correcting the parent himself: no better general direction can be given: for God's pattern is a perfect rule. 2. Prayer must be made by parents for themselves and for their children: for themselves, to be directed in doing it: for their children, to be bettered by it. Thus will good Physicians in ministering physic. In all duties is prayer to be used; especially in this: for a parent is ready, partly through his own intemperate passion, and partly through the child's impatiency, to fall into one extreme or other. This is not to impose upon all, whensoever they take up the rod, to go and make a solemn prayer, but to lift up the heart for direction and blessing. 3. Correction must be given in love. All things must be done in 1 Cor. 16. 14. love: much more this, that carrieth a show of anger and hatred. In love they will give physic to their children, and splinter a joint, if need be. God correcteth his children in love: so must Reu. 3. 19 parents. Love will make them do it with tenderness and compassion. 4. Correction must be given in a mild mood, when the affections Nunquam, iratus qui accedit ad poenam, mediocritatem tenebit, Cic. Offic. lib. 1. jer. 10. 11. Four particular rules for the manner of correcting. are well ordered, and not distempered with choler, rage, fury, and other like passions. Disturbed passions cast a mist before the understanding, so as a man cannot discern what is enough, what too much. When passion is moved, correction must be deferred. God correcteth in measure. The particular rules are these. 1. Due order must be kept. Correction by word must go before correction by the rod. b Reu. 3. 19 Vt ad urendum & secandum medici, sic nos ad castigandun, rarò, invitique veniamus, nec unquam nisi necessario, sinulla reperietur alia medicina. Cic. Offic. lib. 1. I rebuke and chasten, saith the Lord. Thus a parent will show that he taketh no delight in smiting his child: it is necessity that forceth him thereunto. Thus a parent showeth himself like to God, who doth not punish willingly, Lam. 3. 33. Physicians, when they minister strong physic, will give a preparative: rebuke may be as a preparative. Good and pitiful Surgeons will try all other means before they come to lance and sere. 2. Due respect must be had to the party corrected: if he be young and tender, the lighter correction must be used. Solomon oft mentioneth a rod, as meetest for a child; for that is the lightest correction. So if the child be of a flexible and ingenuous disposition, soon sneaped, the correction must accordingly be moderated. If he be well grown, and withal be stout, and stubborn, the correction may be more severe. 3. Due respect must be had to the fault: Sins directly Cavendum ne maior poena, quam culpa sit. Cic. loc. citat. against God, open, notorious, scandalous sins, known sins, sins often committed, in which they are grown up, and whereof they have gotten an habit, are with greater severity to be corrected. 4. A parent must behold his own faults in correcting his child's: so more compassion will be wrought in him. §. 48. Of parents too much indulgency. Contrary to this duty of correcting are two extremes. 1. Too much lenity. 2. Too much severity. Many so cocker their children, as they will suffer them to Qui non corripiunt filios suos, & eorum animas igni inextinguibili in interitum tradunt, & semetipsos in furorem iudicij dem●rgunt. Orig. in job. lib. 1. 1 Sam. 2. 29. run into any misdemeanour, rather than correct them. They cannot endure to hear their children cry: and therefore their children must be pleased in all their humours and evil desires. These parents bring shame to themselves, and mischief upon their children: for God is oft forced to correct such. Heavy are God's corrections: and oft light on parent and child both: as appeareth by the judgement on Eli and his sons: for such parents make themselves accessary to their children's sins: yea also to the judgements laid upon their children. God saith of such parents, that they honour their children above God. It is therefore a fond indulgency which maketh parents regard neither God's honour, nor their own or children's safety. Mothers for the most part offend herein, who are so far from performing this duty themselves, as they are much offended with their husbands if they do it. And to proclaim their folly to all the world, they cannot commit their children to a Tutor or Schoolmaster, but with a straight charge, that they correct them not. Object. Correction maketh children sots and blocks. Answ. If God's spirit deserve to have more credence than such foolish women, that objection is most false, for we heard * §. 46. before how correction giveth wisdom, and driveth out foolishness. 2. Object. Mother's may be the more borne with herein, because with long trouble they did bear, and with great travel bring forth their children. Answ. That may be a good motive for them to seek the true good of their children, that so their trouble and travel may not be in vain: but not to uphold them in the broad way that leadeth to destruction. §. 49. Of parents too much severity in correcting their children. They who offend in the other extreme of severity, of the Patres non oportet asperos esse circa filios. Cyp. Testim. l. 3. c. 71. two are the more unnatural parents; they offend directly against the first branch of this text (Provoke not to wrath.) Nothing more provoketh then immoderate severity: for 1. It argueth no love in the parent, but rather hatred, at least wrath, and other such like distempered affections. 2. It softeneth not the child's heart, but hardeneth it rather. Uerendum ne, si parentes ob quaevis errata filios coarguant, frontem tandem ipsi perfricent. Greg. Naz. ad Vital. 3. It maketh him dull, and stupid, and clean perverteth the right and true end of correction. 4. It oft maketh a child think of doing some mischief to his parent or himself. That parents may the rather take heed of this extreme, I will briefly note wherein excess in severity is showed. It is showed, when correction is given 1. For no fault. In this case, though correction be never so light, it is too severe. 2. For small faults, in wrath and fury, though the stripes be few and light, yet the parents behaviour is too much severity. 3. To children that are young and tender, or soft, mild and ingenuous, as if they were in some years, the most obstinate and perverse that could be. 4. Too often: for every thing done amiss: whereas parents Multa quae vident parentes videre se dissimulent; multa se minime audisse fingant quae auribus infixa habent. Greg. Naz. ad Vital. should seem not to see or hear many things which they see, and hear. 5. Too sorely: so as the child is lamed, or some way so hurt as he shall feel it as long as he liveth. lives 50. Of Parent's care in providing fit callings for their children. Having laid down such duties of parents as especially respect the childhood of children, I proceed to lay forth such as have respect to their riper years wherein they are to be placed forth. Here we are to note 1. The kinds of those duties. 2. The means of performing them. The kinds may be drawn to two heads. 1. Providing fit places and callings for them to exercise their gifts. 2. Providing fit marriages for them. We heard * §. 31. before how children were to be trained up, and fitted to some good calling even in their childhood. Now further, when by virtue of good education they are enabled to discharge the functions and duties of a calling, and by years they are well grown up, so as it is time they should be set to some particular calling: Parents ought to provide fit callings for their children, and fit Fit callings to be provided. places for them to exercise the gifts which by nature or education they have gotten. For example, If children have been brought up in learning, parents must use what lawful and honest means they can to settle them in such a place and course as they may profess and exercise their gifts, according to their several kinds, be it Divinity, Law, Physic, or the like: or if they have been brought up in any trade, to provide that they may set up (as we speak) and exercise their trade. The two first children that ever were borne of woman, a Gen. 4. 2. Cain and Abel, were placed forth in several callings; and without doubt their places were so ordered by their parents. The like may be gathered out of these phrases, b & 25. 27. Esau was a man of the field, and jaakob dwelled intents. c 1 Sam. 8. 1. It is noted of Samuel, that he made his two son's judges. Had they been as faithful in well using their places, as their father was careful in providing them, they might have lived well themselves, and done much good to others. Ishai having many sons, had a care hereof: for d 1 Sam. 17. 13. he sent his three eldest sons to the war; and placed them in a soldier's course of life: e &. 16. 11. his youngest he made a shepherd, which was in those days and places a calling of greater reckoning then now it is with us. 1. Thus shall they make use of that ability whereunto by The benefits of a fit calling. their parent's providence, and their own diligence they have attained: otherwise that ability may soon be lost. Doth not daily experience show that many who have been well trained up by their parents in learning, so far as they have been fit to have entered into the ministry, for want of place and employment, have in time so forgotten all, as if they had never been trained up in learning: and so in other sciences. 2. Thus come they to do much more good in Church or Commonwealth: till men be placed in distinct callings, they are but fitting and preparing for future times. I deny not but that both Church and Commonwealth may reap much benefit by the pains and labour of the younger sort, who are trained up under others: but most properly are they counted members of the Church and Commonwealth, and actual instruments of the good thereof, who have some particular distinct calling, whereby they do good to others. 3. Thus they come to live of themselves, and to be able to relieve others also. All the time of their education, they are commonly at the charge of others: at least, though by their pains they may gain much, yet the gain returns to others: they themselves for the most part have but a bare maintenance, meat, drink and cloth (as we say:) little have they to lay up for themselves for the time to come, or to give to others for the present. 4. They thus come to train up others against after times, as they themselves have been trained up: whereby a continual and perpetual succession of all kinds of callings, is from time to time preserved: and thus Family, Church, and Commonwealth upheld and maintained. In short time would all callings and functions utterly decay, if a continual supply were not thus made. §. 51. Direction for parents in providing callings for their children. Two especial cautions are to be observed by parents in Cautions in providing callings. providing callings for their children. 1. That such callings be provided as their children have been trained up unto, and are in some measure fitted and enabled to perform the duties thereof: as to provide a Minister's place for him that hath been brought up in learning and studied divinity: so in other callings such, as their children may be their crafts-masters therein. Thus shall their children do the more good therein, both to others and themselves. Bezaleel and Aholiab were chosen to build the tabernacle because they were filled with wisdom to work all manner of work: likewise Exod. 35. 35. the servants of Hirom were chosen to hew Cedar trees for the temple, because among the jews there were not any that 1 King. 5. 6. could skill to hew timber, like unto the Sidonians. Pharaoh was careful to have men of activity rulers over his cattle. Gen. 47. 6. 2. That such means be used for providing a calling as parents in using them may with faith call upon God for his blessing. They that by lawful means are brought into a calling whereunto they are fitted, are set therein by God, as is implied by this phrase, as God hath called every one, etc. A lawful entrance into a calling is a matter of great moment: he that so entereth may in a right use thereof cast himself upon God's blessing, and with strong confidence expect the same, saying as the Prophet did, Lord I have not thrust in myself thou jer. 17. 16. knowest. §. 52. Of the extremes contrary to a parents lawful care in providing fit callings for his children. 1. Extreme in the defect. The extreme in the defect contrary to a parents provident care in providing a fit calling, is, a careless neglect of children after they are well educated, a leaving them to shift for themselves. * Imitari noli crudelitatem earum avium quibus ungues aduncisunt: high cum suos senserint foetus volandi iom potestatem consecutos esse, alis eos verberantes ac impingentes nidis pellunt, nullamque prorsus erga illos extrusos curam d●inceps adhibent. Basil. Hexam. hom. 8. It is noted of the ravenous fowls that have sharp talents, that so soon as they perceive their young ones to be able to fly, they will flap and beat them with their wings, and drive them out of their nests, and after that take no further care of them. We may not be like such cruel birds: reason ●nd religion teacheth us otherwise. Good education is a good duty, but not a parents whole duty: the stay which is here made, may make all the former care and pains to be of little ●●se. Object. This is to be left to God's providence. Answ. Means rightly used are subordinate to God's providence, and by them doth God manifest his providence and bring his counsel to pass: to neglect means is to thwart and cross the divine providence. It is therefore well done to rely on God's providence: but ill done to neglect the means of effecting it. God's blessing is best discerned in the use of means. The extreme in the excess is a preposterous greediness in 2. Extreme in excess. parents to bring their children to a calling. This is manifested two ways. 1. When they care not how fit their children be for the 1. Unfit caling. place, so it be a place of gain and honour. Experience showeth that this is the bane of Church and commonwealth. Hereby it falleth out in the politic body, as it would in a natural body; if the hand should take upon it to see, or the leg to hear, or the foot to taste, what could from thence be expected but ruin to the body? Tradesmen oft undo themselves, their families and friends, by undertaking such trades as they have no skill in, or whereof they are not crafts-masters. The more excellent the calling is, the more mischief is done by this greedy preposterousness. This extreme is so much worse than the former, as it is worse to do much hurt, than no good. 2. When they make no conscience of the means which 2. Undue entrance. they use to bring their children into callings: but by unlawful means purchase their desires: as, by Simony to procure an ecclesiastical function (whence oft followeth also perjury) or by bribery to procure an office. These indirect means take away difference betwixt fitness and unfitness of persons: for the unfittest that be may by money purchase a place. Besides, though children be never so 〈◊〉 for these callings, yet there is little hope of any blessing from God, when the first entrance is without him: yea against his will and word. Who can think that God hath placed such a● one in his place? if God have not placed him, with what faith can he seek a blessing? with what hope can he expect a blessing? Much terror is by this means brought to many men conscience: and they are oft in a great strait, not knowing whether it be fittest for them to retain, or relinquish the●● What is to be done after one is unlawfully settled in a fit calling. place. But by the way to resolve that doubt, if one that hath unlawfully entered be fit for the performance of his place, it then safest for him to seek pardon for the former offence, and reconciliation with God, and upon true and unfeigned repentance to hold the place (if at least the law under which he liveth establish him therein) and be so much the more faithful in the discharge of the duties thereof. §. 53. Of parent's care in providing fit marriages for their children. God hath further laid a charge upon parents to provide marriages Date operam ut cum ad adultam aetatem filij pervenerint matrimenio iungantur. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 11. lege Chrys. in 1. Tim. hom. 9 for their children: for thus saith the Prophet in the name of the Lord unto parents, b jer. 29. 6. Take wives to your sons, and give your daughters to husbands: and thus the Apostle, c 1 Cor. 7. 36. If any man think that he behaveth himself uncomely toward his virgin, if she pass the flower of her age, and need so require, let them marry. This direction was given in times of persecution, when by reason of the present necessity it was better not to marry: if then a parent ought to be careful (need requiring) to provide a marriage for his daughter, much more ought he in times of peace. Holy parents commended by the Holy Ghost have been careful in performing this duty, as d Gen. 24. 4. Abraham, e & 28. 2. Isaak, f Rut. 3. 1. Naomi, and others: yea g Gen. 21. 21. Hagar had learned this duty in Abraham's house. But the perfect pattern (which surpasseth all other examples) is of h & 2. 18. God himself, who provided a fit match for his i Luke 3. 38. Reasons. son Adam. 1. Children may not marry without consent of parents, (as was * Treat. 5. §. 16, 17. before showed) Parents therefore must be careful in time to provide for them. 2. Parents are to children in God's place: they must therefore take upon them this care of God. 3. Marriage is the means which the Lord hath sanctified to preserve our bodies chaste and undefiled: as parents therefore desire to keep their children from uncleanness and pollution, they must take care that this means be used. Not only holy Apostles, but also * Liberos qui voluptatibus nimis sunt dediti dabis operam ut coniugio astringas: vinculum enim hoc est tutissimum inventutis. Plut. de Instit. lib. heathen Philosophers, and that by the light of nature, have found this to be the fittest course. 4. This also is a means as to k Gen. 1. 28. increase the commonwealth, and l Mal. 2. 15. preserve an holy seed, and to erect new families, so to continue parents own houses and name. §. 54. Direction to parents in providing marriages. Two cautions are to be observed of parents in providing marriages for their children. 1. That the match which they provide be meet: so said God when he was about to provide a match for Adam, I will Gen. 2. 18. make him an help meet for him. Therefore * See Treat. 2. Part. 1. §. 9, 10 etc. the match provided must not be too near of kin, of a contrary religion, of too unequal an age, of too great disparity in estate. These things will hinder love, and cause disdain and hatred of one another. 2. Though the match may seem meet in the parent's eye, yet he may not force his child thereto. Could a fitter match have been found out for Rebekah then Isaak? yet Rebekah's friends g Gen. 24. 57 What to be done if children like not such a match as parents think meet. Non cogitur filius-familias uxorem ducere. Digest. l. 23. c. 2. §. 21. asked her consent. I deny not but parents may use all manner of fair means to move their children to yield to that which they see good for them: but if they cannot move them to yield, to refer the matter to God, and not against their children's minds to force them. When God had made a most meet match for Adam, he brought her to the man: namely to see how he would like her. For the nearest bond of all is betwixt man and wife; a man must leave father and mother, and Gen. 2. 22. Sacra in hoc negotio parentibus authoritas esse debet: sed tenenda est media ratio, ut sponte ac mutuo consensu inter se contrahant parts. Cal. in Gen. 24. vers. 57 cleave unto his wife; man and wife must always live together: great reason therefore that at the first joining them together there be a mutual liking of one another, lest ever after there be a perpetual dislike: and though the authority of parents ought in this case to be inviolable, yet a middle course is so to be held, as the parties may willingly with a mutual consent join themselves together. §. 55. Of the extremes contrary to parents care in providing fit marriages for their children. The extreme in the defect is, when parents carelessly let their children pass the flower of their age: and never consider whether need require that they should marry or no. Their children may sit long enough before they seek out a match for them, unless it be brought to them: and when one is offered though it be never so fit, yet except they may make an advantage thereof to themselves, they will hardly yield to it. Thus they make their children to seek out marriages for themselves, and without their consent to make them up: or else to live in discontent, Si filij innupti feruore aetatis in consuetudinem sornicandi inciderint, vos parents in die iudicij rationem deo estis reddituri. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 11. if not in uncleanness. By the carelessness of parents in this respect are children oft made a prey to the devil: whereof at the day of judgement parents shall give an account to God. The extreme in the excess is, * See Treat. 2. Part. 1. §. 2. when parents through a covetous desire to get great and rich matches for their children, marry them before they be of years of discretion to like or dislike, to know what is meet or unmeet; or able to perform even the essential duties of marriages: seldom do such unlawful marriages prosper. In a like excess do they offend who for outward advantages match their children to such as by nature are unfit for marriage, to idiots, to * See Treat. 2. Part. 1. §. 11, 12. idolaters, to profane persons, or they care not to whom. And if their children like not these matches, they will do to the uttermost of their power what they can to force them thereunto. Many mischiefs ordinarily fall out upon such marriages, as utter dislike betwixt husband and wife, continual complaining one of another, enquiring after divorce, or any other separation, wishing, yea practising one another's death. To all these mischiefs do parents, the cause thereof, make themselves accessary. §. 56. Of parents providing a stock for callings and marriages of their children. An especial outward means whereby parents may be the better enabled to provide fit callings and marriages for their children, is, before hand to lay up some stock, or competent portion for their children. This is comprised under that general provision, whereof he that is careless is counted by the Apostle b 1 Tim. 5. 8. worse than an infidel: but more expressly is it noted in these words, c 2 Cor. 12. 14. Parents ought to lay up for their children: and commended in d Gen. 25. 5, 6. Abraham's example. While children are under their parents they have no means to lay up for themselves: for all their service is for their parents. But in regard of the times wherein we live, it is needful for setting up in a good calling, and for obtaining a fit match, that children have some stock and portion. It lieth therefore upon the parents, and their duty it is to provide it. Object. Christ forbiddeth to lay up treasures on earth. Ma●. 6 19 expounded. Answ. If the scope of that place be rightly marked, it will appear that Christ there forbiddeth not simply the thing itself, but 1. The mind of him that layeth up: namely when it is filled full of carking, and distrustful thoughts: fearing that in the time to come he shall not have sufficient. To this purpose doth Christ propound God's providence over fowls and Vers. 26, 28. lilies. 2. The manner of laying up, when temporal things are preferred before spiritual and heavenly: therefore he addeth this precept, but lay up treasures in heaven, etc. Uers. 20. 3. The measure, when men never think they have laid up enough: but scrape what they can come by justly or unjustly; and spare more than needs, even things necessary, from themselves and others, to make a great stock and portion for their children. The word of * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Direction for laying up portions. treasuring up (which Christ there useth) implieth an immoderate measure. Among other needful cautions for parents to be observed in laying up for their children, these three are especially to be noted. 1. That justly they come by that which they lay up: and lay nothing towards a child's portion which is any way unjustly gotten; for the treasures of wickedness profit nothing: they may Pro. 10. 2. prove a fire to consume parents themselves, their children, their house, and whole posterity. 2. That they covet not too much to make their children rich, and for that purpose live meanly and basely themselves, yea and deprive themselves of many necessaries. An egregious Eccl. 5. 12. point of folly is this, which Solomon hath much taxed. 3. That all needful duties of charity to the poor, and of justice to the Church and commonwealth be performed, and pretext of laying up for children hinder none of these. §. 57 Of the extremes contrary to a parents providing portions for his children. The extremes contrary to the forenamed duty are these: 1. When parents live at the uttermost extent of their estate, and from time to time spend all their revenues or all their gains, and so are scarce able to make even at quarter day, or years' end. What stock or portion can they lay up for children? 2. When parents live above their estate, and spend riotously their ordinary gains, or revenues, and for other necessary affairs are forced to run into debt. Many are so far from helping their children in this kind, as they are main hindrance unto them, urging their eldest son especially who is their heir, to be bound for them, and so lay such a burden on his back, as (to use the common phrase) they make it crack again. 3. When parents have enough for themselves and their children, and yet so covetously dote upon their wealth, as they will not bestow a groat to help them in calling and marriage, but say they keep all for them. What a wretched and foolish disposition is this, that they should still lay up more and more for their children, and yet refuse to bestow any part thereof upon them in their greatest need, when it might redound to their greatest benefit? God oft meeteth with such covetous misers, and crosseth their purposes, by making strangers to enjoy that which they greedily hoarded up. §. 58. Of parents last speech to their children. The last duty which parents owe to their children, is, when they cease to be parents: that is, when they are going out of this world. Their duty at that time in general is to do what lieth in them, that it may go well with their children after their departure. Both * See §. 6. the reasons which are oft urged by the Holy Ghost, to stir up parents to yield obedience to God, taken from extent of God's blessing (in this kind of phrase, b Pro. 20. 7. Blessed shall their children be after them) and Gods c Deut. 5. 29. promises made to that purpose do prove as much. For the better performing of this duty, three general points, tending both to the temporal, and also to the spiritual good of children, are to be observed: and two particular points most tending to their temporal estate. The three generals are these. 1. Good direction. 2. Faithful prayer. 3. A wise choice of some friends to be as parents to them. 1. Parents on their deathbed to leave good lessons to their children. For direction. When parents observe their time to draw near, they ought to commend some wise and wholesome precepts unto their children, the better to direct them in their Christian course. So did d Gen. 28. 2, 4. Isaak, and e & 49. 1. etc. jaakob. Ob. These Patriarches had an extraordinary spirit of prophesying, & by virtue thereof foretold their children things to come. Answ. * See Treat. 5. §. 9 They sustained a double person: one of a prophet, another of a father: as prophets, they had an extraordinary spirit; as parents, they performed ordinary duty: by their extraordinary spirit, they foretold things to come: the ordinary duty which they performed, was to direct their children how to carry themselves in those times to come. For their prophecies were not only predictions, but also instructions, to direct and teach them what to do. What they did by an extraordinary spirit in extraordinary things, we must do in ordinary duties by the ordinary spirit of understanding and wisdom which the Lord giveth us. But the direction which d Gen. 28. 2. etc. Isaak gave to jaakob, when he sent him to Laban, was no extraordinary prophecy: nor that which e 1 Chro 28. 9 David, when he was old, gave to Solomon: and again, f 1 King. 2. 2, 3, etc. when he lay on his deathbed. Now these things are thus written for our imitation. And great reason there is to imitate those holy men in these things. For 1. The words of a dying parent are commonly most regarded: his last words do make a deep impression ( g Gen. 50. 16. this do the brethren of joseph press upon him.) If ever therefore there be a time seasonable for a parent to give good instructions to his children, then is the time when parents are clean departing from their children. 2. Thus shall a parent manifest his true affection, and earnest desire of his children's good: for now they cannot think that he seeketh his own ease, and profit, more than their good: as at other times some will be ready to say of their parents instructions and admonitions, Our parents know what is good for themselves. That the last words of parents may be the more seasonably and Direction. profitably delivered to their children, they must note, on the one side, what evils their children are most prone unto, what temptations they are most assaulted withal, what snares they are most like to fall into; and on the other side, what virtues and graces are most needful for them, and wherein they fail most, and accordingly they must order and frame their last words. Note for a pattern herein b Gen. 28, 2, etc. Isaaks counsel to jaakob, when he sent him to Laban, and thought he should never see him again: and c 1 King. 2. 2, 3. David's to his son Solomon. §. 59 Of Parents last blessing to their children. II. Concerning the prayers of parents for their children, I noted it * §. 4. before to be a general duty never to be omitted: yet here in particular I mention it again, because a parent's blessing consisteth therein especially: and then is the most proper time for parents to bestow a blessing on their children, as b Gen. 28. 3. Isaak, c & 48. 15. jaakob, d 1 Chro. 29. 19 David, and others did. Let parents therefore as they commend their own souls into God's hand, so commend their children unto God's grace and blessing. God's providence is a good inheritance: many children do thereby exceedingly prosper, though they have but small outward means; whereas others that have great means used for their good, come to ruin; Gods curse following them. Now no such means can be thought of to procure God's blessing, or to withhold his curse, as the faithful prayers of parents for their children; especially when parents are leaving their children, and going to God. §. 60. Of parent's care to commend their children to some faithful friends. III. The third general point of making choice of some faithful friends to commend their children unto, is especially in behalf of such as are not of sufficient age and discretion to look to themselves, or to those weighty affairs which belong unto them. The friends, which in this case are made choice of, aught to be such as the parents themselves by good experience have found to be honest, wise, faithful, and loving to them and theirs; whom parents are to set in their own place for the good of their children. This means did David use when he was old in the behalf 1 Chro. 22. 17. & 28. 21. of his son Solomon. Many children have found much help thereby. Such may make a good supply of the departure of parents. These are so much the more needful, by how much the more unstable, and unbridled youth is; and by how much the less able children are to help and guide themselves. §. 61. Of parent's neglect of their children for the time to come. Contrary to a parents providence for the good of his children after his departure, is the carelessness of parents for the time to come. They think the world is gone with them when they are gone, and therefore they will take no thought for the future times that shall be after them; as if it were enough for every one to look to his own time. There may seem to be more self-love in such parents than love of their children, in that their care determineth with their own time, and extendeth not itself to the time and continuance of their children. Hence is it, that not a word of direction and exhortation cometh out of their mouths to their children when they are departing, no blessing that they will leave behind them, no friends shall be deputed by them, to be as parents to their children. Let God provide, say they. But where there is a referring of matters to God's providence, without the use of those means which God hath warranted and commended by his word, there can be little hope that God should take care of that which is so commended to him. Such men do not in faith depend upon God's providence, but make the very name thereof a pretext to cast off that care, which God as a bounden duty requireth of them. As there is little love of their children in such parents, so there is less zeal of God's glory: for a parents care of his children's welfare, especially of their continuing to fear and serve the Lord after their own departure out of this world, is an especial means of preserving Gods fear in the world, and propagating it from age to age: so as this neglect is a greater fault than many are aware of. §. 62. Of parents making a Will before they die. The two particular things to be observed by parents for manifestation of their provident care over their children for the time to come, even after their departure, especially in regard of their temporal estate, are these, 1. That they make a will. 2. That they leave their estates to their children. 1. It hath been an ancient commendable practice both among A Will to be made. God's people, and others also, that have been guided with common civility, when they who have any estate, wax old, or sick, and have any occasion of expecting death offered unto them, to make their last Will and testament. This is set forth in the old Testament under this phrase (Put thy house in order.) A duty it is expressly b 2 King. 20. 1. commanded by God: and that not without good reason. For 1. A parents Will is an especial means to settle peace among children after his departure, and to make them content with that allowance which he hath set out unto them, because by the Will they know it was their father's pleasure they should have such and such a portion. If controversies should arise, yet a Will is a means for the law speedily to determine the same without any tedious and chargeable suits: for the Apostle taketh it for a ruled case, that no man disannulleth or addeth any thing to a man's ' testament. Gal. 3. 15. 2. After a parent hath made his Will, he may the more quietly settle himself for heavenly contemplations, and preparations to death: and think of such good instructions as are most fit to give as his farewell to his children: and the more willingly expect the moment of his dissolution: and the more patiently submit himself to the very stroke of death. In performing this duty, a man must both observe a fit time, Direction. and also take good advice. The fit time is while his understanding is good, and his memory perfect: so as he may call to mind his debts, what he oweth, and what is owing to him: as also what goods he hath to bestow, and with discretion and wisdom order his estate. And because through the cavils which many unconscionable lawyers and others are like to make, his true meaning may be perverted, it is meet to have the advice of such as can in distinct words and phrases so express his meaning, as they shall be free from exception. Matters of weight are wisely to be managed. §. 63. Of neglecting to make a Will. Contrary is the daily practice of too many parents who are not willing to make any will at all: or else on vain hope that they may live longer, and when they are sick, upon conceit that they may recover, or at least longer continue to enjoy the use of their understanding and memory, put off the making of their Will till it be too late: and so die without Will, or make such a Will as ministereth more matter of suit, then if they had no Will at all; either because doubt is made whether he that made it had his understanding and memory or no: or because his Will is so abrupt and ambiguous, as his meaning cannot be known. The mischiefs that follow these neglects, Inconvenience of dying without a Will. are many. As 1. Discredit to the party deceased. 2. Contentions among his surviving children. 3. Wasting a great part, if not his whole estate, in suits of law. 4. Defeating many creditors of their due debt. The reason which maketh many to put off the making of their Will is a foolish conceit, that if a man's Will be once made, than he must needs die out of hand. But what ground have men for any such conceit? If sickness grow upon a man, so long as his Will is unmade his mind is unsettled, his mind being unsettled, the physic that is ministered to him cannot so kindly work; so as his death may be the more hastened for not making a Will. Besides, if his speech fail before his understanding, the thought that then he shall die without a Will may so perplex him, as his departure will be very unquiet and troublesome. §. 64. Of parents leaving their estate to their children when they die. It was * §. 56. before showed that parents were to lay up a portion for their children against their entrance into a calling, and marriage: There is a further duty required when they are going out of the world, namely that they leave their whole estate The estate of parents to be left to their children. to their children. (Where I say whole, I exempt not works of charity, nor payment of debts, which is a point of justice, but I include more than is given as portions or stocks in their life time.) That estate especially which parents have received from their progenitors are they most bound to leave unto their children. It is expressly recorded that Abraham gave all Gen. 25. 5. that he had to Isaak. God's law did provide for this among the jews: for a man might not sell his land to cut it off from Leu. 25. 23. his posterity. This was it that made Naboth refuse to sell his vineyard to Ahab, as his answer implieth, God forbid that I 1 King. 21. 3. should give the inheritance of my fathers unto thee: because it was the inheritance of his fathers, that is, he had received it from them, he thought it unlawful to deprive his children of it. This phrase (if children, than heirs) taketh it for a granted Rom. 8. 17. truth that children have a right to their parent's estate: and if they have a right thereto, they may not be defeated thereof. God giveth wealth unto parents but for their life time: in which time they are but as Guardians unto God's children, and are accountable to God: so as they have not an absolute power to do with it what they will, but according to the directions of the great Lord and Master they must use it, reserve it, and leave it. For this end parents must order their manner of living according Direction. to that portion which the Lord hath appointed unto them, and by his providence bestowed upon them; they must (as it is said in the proverb) cut their coat according to their cloth. Of the two it is much better for parents to live under, then above their means. Provided that they neglect no duty of charity, or justice: nor through miserableness and niggardliness carry themselves unbeseeming the place wherein God hath set them, and estate which he hath bestowed upon them. He that liveth somewhat under his means, hath opportunity to lay up portions for other children (if he have many) and to reserve his inheritance entire to his eldest (beside many other good works of charity as God shall offer occasion) which he that liveth above his means cannot do. §. 65. Of the inconveniences which improvident parents bring their children unto after their death. Contrary to this branch of a parents providence, are many courses of improvident parents: For 1. Some parents lavish and bezzle out all their estate in their own life time, making it to determine in their persons. Unworthy they are to receive any inheritance from ancestors. Their fault is double. 1. In spending prodigally above their estate. 2. In wronging their children, and depriving them of their right: for particular persons succeeding one another are but as diverse links of a continued family, which are by God's providence added one to another: this chain is not to be broken at any man's pleasure; but for the preservation thereof, that which hath been received of the predecessors, must be left to the successors. 2. Others leave their estate to their children, but so encumbered with debts, bonds, recognizances, and statutes, as their children were better be without it, then have it. For the having it maketh them live at an answerable rate, and bringeth many burdens upon them: beside, the debts wherein they stand obliged make them as d Pro. 22. 7. servants to their creditors: and in time they must be forced to sell all, or as captives lie in prison. 3. Others though they deal not so hardly with their children, yet they deal too hardly by peeling and polling their inheritance as much as they can: they will not forbear to make any present gain that they can, though it tend never so much to the prejudice and damage of their children after them: as they who cut down all the timber and wood that they can, and take out all the heart of their land. 4. Among these may be reckoned such parents as by mere negligence suffer things to go to decay for want of timely reparations: whereby it cometh to pass, that such damages as in the parent's time might have been prevented with laying out a few shillings, cannot be renewed with many pounds. 5. Such also as care not in their life time to clear the titles of those things which they leave to their children: but leave all things so unsettled and litigious, as it oft costs children more in suit of law to maintain the inheritance which their parents leave them, than the inheritance is worth: and yet after all their pains and cost lose the inheritance too: whereas the parent that knew more than the child can, might with small pains and charge have well settled and cleared all. These are mischiefs that many children have been brought into by the improvidence of their parents: which are the rather to be made known, that such as come after, may prove the more provident for their children. §. 66. Of parents impartial respect to all their children. Hitherto of parents' duties. The persons to whom those duties are to be performed, are distinctly to be considered. The parties to whom parents are to perform all the forenamed duties are expressed under this word (Children) which 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. hath not any special respect to priority of birth, to constitution of body, to affection of parent, or any such thing, as if first borne, proper, beautiful, darling, or the like children were only meant, but all that are begotten and borne of parents, all their children are meant. Whence I observe, that Parents ought to have an impartial respect to all their children, and perform duty indifferently and equally to all. We have for proof hereof God's pattern, who accounteth all his children dear or beloved children. The Greek word translated 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Eph. 5. 1. dear is very emphatical: it is properly attributed to an only child: the seventy that translated the Hebrew Bible into Greek, do with this word interpret that phrase, Only Son: Gen. 22. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Hesychius 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 exponit 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Plutarch dicit 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 vocari 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. for where in Hebrew it is thus said to Abraham, take thy son, thine only one, they thus translate it, take thy son, thy dear one, or thy beloved one. Other Greek authors do so attribute the same word to an only child, yea also and to an only eye: as when a man hath but one eye they call it a beloved eye. This word than showeth that God so respecteth all his children, as if all were but one, all a firstborn, all a darling child. So rare a virtue this impartial respect is (rare in the excellency of it, rare also in the scarcity of it) as throughout the Scripture I can scarce find a perfect pattern thereof Arist. Rhet. 1. vocat unicum oculum 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. among the sons of men. Many may be given of the contrary, as we shall after hear. But the more rare it is, the more we must labour after it, that so we may resemble God's fatherhood. 1. All our children come from our own substance and Reasons. bowels. Why then should we respect one child above another, more than we do one eye, or one ear above another? We are as tender over one as over another, though it may be we have more use of one then of another. 2. All our children are alike committed to us by God: the same precepts and directions given for all alike: the like account to be given for all. If a King should commit many of his children to one nurse, would not he be offended (and that justly) if she should put such a difference betwixt them, through a foolish partiality, as to respect some, and neglect others? §. 67. Of parents preferring a dutiful child before a disobedient child. Object. What if one child be more pious to God and parent, another more rebellious, may not a parent respect that more than this? 1. Answ. He may take notice of their different carriage, and accordingly reward the one, and punish the other, and yet carry an equal desire of doing good to both of them alike: for the punishing of the rebellious child is a parents duty; an evidence of love, and a means of doing him good. 2. Answ. It is no partiality to like grace and goodness in a child, and for grace and goodness sake to love his child so much the more, as also for impiety and obstinacy in rebellion to have his heart the more alienated from his child: this is rather a virtue in a parent. Partiality is when on by and undue respects one child is preferred before another. §. 68 Of the prerogative of the firstborn son. Quest. May not a parent prefer his firstborn child, and heir before his other children? Answ. We must put difference betwixt a father's disposing his estate upon his children, and the ordering of his affection towards them. A parent's affection, and care of good education, and desire of true good, and faithful prayers to God, may be as great towards his younger children, as towards his eldest son and heir, and yet may he bestow the greatest patrimony upon the heir: which is no partiality. 2. Quest. Is it then just and equal that the eldest son should have a greater patrimony than any of the rest? Answ. It is most just and equal. For 1. God hath so appointed it: yea b Deut. 21. 17. he made this to be one of the prerogatives of the firstborn, to have a double portion. Upon this ground c 1 Chr. 5. 2. joseph, who was the firstborn of the true wife, had a double portion; and as a testimony thereof his posterity made two tribes. 2. The laws of all nations do order as much. 3. Our law giveth the whole inheritance of freeholds to the eldest son: in which respect it is due unto him. For in civil and temporal matters this rule is true, we live by law. I take it to be a matter of conscience for a parent to leave that to every child which by law is due to him. Neither is it without good reason that the law ordaineth that a parents whole estate of freehold land should descend: for 1. There is an excellency in the first borne, as is evident by jacob's speech to his eldest son, d Gen. 49. 3. thou art my first borne, my might, and the beginning of my strength, the excellency of dignity, and the excellency of power. And thereupon e Exod. 13. 2. God took the first borne as peculiar to himself. 2. Houses and families by this means are upheld and continued from age to age. How needful it is for the establishment of a commonwealth that families should thus be continued, is evident both by experience to all such as have but half an eye to see wherein the stability of a common wealth consisteth, and also by the many laws which God ordained among the jews for this purpose: as 1. That f Leu. 25. 23. no land should be quite cut off from a family. 2. That g Vers. 25. if any through poverty were forced to sell his land, the next of kin was to buy it. 3. That h Vers. 28. if a man that had sold his land, could by no means redeem it again, at the year of jubilee he was to have the possession of it again. 4. That i Num. 36. 8. if daughters were heirs they should not marry out of their father's tribe: and this reason is given, that every man may enjoy the inheritance of his fathers. Object. By leaving the whole inheritance to the eldest, he may be made a Gentleman, and all the other beggars. Answ. In this respect parents ought to be so much the more provident for their other children, in training them up to callings, or laying up portions, or settling other estates upon them beside the main inheritance, or in taking order that comp●ent portions be raised out of the inheritance of the eldest son, ●n case God take them away before they have otherwise provided for their children. Out of this answer may a third reason be gathered, to show that it is a behooveful law for the commonwealth that the heir should have all the land. For this law maketh parents more careful in training up their younger sons to sundry callings which are profitable to a commonwealth. If every child should have a part of his father's lands, they would all so depend thereupon, as none of them would exercise themselves to such callings as are means of men's maintenance. §. 69. Of parent's partiality towards some children. Contrary to the forenamed duty of a parents equal respect to all his children, is partiality in fathers and mothers, manifested sundry ways. For 1. Many parents have their darling children, to whom so Iniquissima volucris aquila in educanda sua prole dicitur esse. Pullorum enim alterum alis percussum abigit: alterum solum uti suum educat. Basil. Hexaem. hom. 8. much affection is showed, as in comparison none is showed to others. When some are hugged in the bosom, others are neglected as if they were none of their own, but basely borne. The unnaturalness of the eagle is noted in this kind, that she flappes and drives out of the nest one of her young ones, and feedeth only the other as her own. From such partiality in parents proceed many mischiefs: as these, 1. They give occasion to such as observe it, to suspect that those children who are so little respected, are none of their own. 2. They cause envy, malice, and much contention to arise among children. When Joseph's brethren saw that their father Gen. 37. 4. loved him more than all them, they hated him, and could not speak peaceably unto him. 3. They provoke God to inflict some judgement on those children that are so cockered, and preferred before the rest: that so they may the better see their folly. This sin of parent's partiality is so much the greater, when upon outward respects they prefer the wicked and ungodly children before pious and gracious children. Isaak herein much failed, for c Gen. 25. 28. he loved Esau (a d Heb. 12. 16. profane wretch) because he did eat of his Venison. 2. Other parents so set themselves to raise their house, as a● their care is to advance their eldest son, by education, by liberal allowance, and by leaving all they have to him: and i● the mean while neglect their younger children. Though (as was noted * §. 68 before) the main inheritance may justly without show of partiality be left to the heir, yet to be careful only for him, and to neglect the other, savoureth rank of partiality. It is most agreeable to natural reason, that as life is given to all Consentaneum est rationi naturae ut aequè tribuere cuique vitam, sic etiam vivendi facultates praestare. Basil. loc. citat. children, so means of maintaining life should be given to all. 3. In the number of partial parents may they be reckoned, who unjustly disinherit their first borne. For the inheritance of right belonging to them, and they not deserving to be disinherited, assuredly it is some by respect or other which maketh parents prefer the younger before the elder: and this is plain partiality. This kind of partiality is commonly in such parents as have had children by several wives. Sometimes dislike of a former wife maketh a father dislike the children he hath by her, and through dislike to disinherit the heir by her. God gave the jews an express law against this kind of Deu. 21. 15. etc. partiality. Sometimes again a gripulous seeking of advantage to themselves maketh parents to disinherit the right heir: as when a man after he hath buried the mother of his first borne, hearing of another woman which is of great wealth, maketh suit for her. She refuseth because he hath an heir of a former wife. He to remove that block entereth covenant to make the son which he hath by her (if he have any) his heir: hereupon the marriage is consummate: his second wife bringeth forth a son: he for his covenant sake disinheriteth the first heir. An unjust, and unlawful practice. §. 70. Of the causes for which the firstborn may be disinherited. Quest. May not then a firstborn son be disinherited? Answ. Yes, The Scripture noteth two causes wherein the firstborn may be put from the inheritance. 1. If he be illegitimate: for such an one hath no good title: The son of the bondwoman shall not be heir with my son, Gen. 21. 10. saith Sarah, and that justly. To like purpose say the sons of Gileads wife to jephthah, Thou shalt not inherit in our father's house, judg. 11. 2. for thou art the son of a strange woman. Just was that blame which jotham laid upon the men of Shechem for making Abimelech judg. 9 18. the base son of jerubbaal King: and just was God's vengeance upon them for that wrong done to jerubbaal's legitimate children. 2. If he be notoriously wicked. Thus e Gen. 49. 4. 1 Chro. 5. 1. Reuben for committing abominable incest lost his birthright. Many particular crimes are reckoned up by the * Sum. sylvest part. 1. Tract▪ de haered. civil Lawyers, which would be too long here to recite. §. 71. Of the duty of fathers and mothers in law. The extent of this title (Fathers) is in the last place to be Who are in place of parents. considered. Not only natural parents themselves, but also all that are in their place are comprised under it. As they who are in the place of parents, 1. By the bond of marriage. 2. By propinquity of blood. 3. By voluntary appointment. The first sort are fathers and mothers in law: who are so reckoned either by the marriage of parents themselves, or by the marriage of their children. That man or woman which is married to a parent that had children before their marriage, is in the place of a natural parent: thus joseph was a b Luke 2. 48. father to jesus, and c Gen. 25. 1. Keturah a mother to Isaak. So again the natural parents of that son that hath married a wife, or of that daughter that is married to an husband, are in the place of parents to the wife of their son, and to the husband of their daughter. Thus d Exod. 18. 1. jethro was a father to Moses, and e Ruth 3. 1. Naomi a mother to Ruth. All these are to account their children in law (that is, the Parents in law to perform like duties as natural parents. children of their husband and wife, or the wives of their sons, and the husbands of their daughters) as their own natural children, and according to the age and place of these children to perform the forenamed duties, and every way to seek their good (except in such duties as after a peculiar manner belong to natural parents, as nursing to a natural mother, leaving the inheritance to a natural parent.) For a pattern hereof take the forenamed examples of joseph and Naomi. What natural parents could do more for their own children than joseph did for jesus, and Naomi for Ruth? The history noteth how joseph took care to have his wife's child f Luk. 2. 21, 22. circumcised, and presented in the temple: how he g Mat. 2. 14. fled from place to place to preserve the child's life: how h Luk. 2. 48. perplexed he was when he thought the child was lost: how he i Uers. 51. trained him up in his own house. The history also noteth how k Ruth 1. 22. Naomi brought Ruth her son's wife into her own country, and retained her with herself, and l & 2. 22. directed her whither to go, and m & 3. 1. what husband to have, and n & 4. 16. became a nurse to her child. 1. Marriage maketh man and wife one flesh: in which respect Reasons. they ought to have one mind, and the same affections, as mutually each to other, so jointly to the children of each other. On which ground also the husband and wife of a child, being one flesh with the child, aught as the child to be respected. On this ground God counteth the Saints his o Eph. 5. 1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. dear children, because they are p 2 Cor. 11. 2. espoused to his natural son. 2. To respect the children of an husband or wife as their own, is a great evidence of entire love to the husband and wife. And to respect the husband and wife of a child is a great evidence of love to the child itself. If the world's proverb hold true (love me and love my dog) how much more true is this Christian rule, love me and love my child: or love me and love mine husband: or love me and love my wife. 3. This also is an especial means to kindle and preserve mutual love betwixt man and wife, who have children of former husbands and wives: as also betwixt parents and children. §. 72. Of the perverse carriage of fathers and mothers in law to their children. Contrary is the carriage of most fathers and mothers in law: especially of those who are married to husbands or to wives that had children before marriage: so far they are from performing the forenamed duty, as rather they envy at the prosperity of their husbands and wives children: and secretly endeavour to hinder it in what they can: and cunningly leake to alienate the natural parent's affection from them: whence Senecae Hippolytus. fearful tragedies have been made, and lamentable mischiefs have followed. What other reason can be given hereof Ouid. Metamorph. l. 15. sab. 45. but a plain instigation of the devil, who thus laboureth to disunite those whom God hath joined together? For avoiding this snare note the mischiefs that follow from thence. 1. Such parent's sin against God's ordinance: and as Eve, lean more to Satan's suggestion then to God's direction. 2. They alienate the hearts and affections of one from another: not only from their children, but from themselves. 3. They provoke their children in law to contemn and despise them, and to yield no duty unto them. Hence note into what an hell unkind fathers and mothers in law do cast themselves. If this were duly weighed, I think they would be otherwise minded. But the god of this world doth so blind their eyes with self-love, and with envy, that they cannot see the mischiefs whereinto they implunge themselves. This is a point the more to be weighed, because the fault here taxed is so common, and hath in all ages been too common. Lurida terribiles miscent aconita novercae. Ouid. Metam. l. 1. fab. 4. What grievous complaints have in former times been made, and still are made by children against fathers and mothers in law? Whence also direful imprecations have followed. Let widowers and widows that have children seriously think of it before hand: and be the more circumspect in taking a second or third husband or wife: and after they are married let them take heed of Satan's snares: and let conscience of duty more prevail with them, than corruption of nature. §. 73. Of the faults of parents to their children's husbands and wives. Many parents to the husbands and wives of their children do also much transgress and swerve from their duty: for 1. They will show much more respect to their own children then to the children of their husbands or wives: as by coming to their daughters when their husbands are abroad, and never but then: and sending for their sons to their house, but not for their wives. 2. In all differences they will take part with their own children, though it be in the worse part, and show great partiality. 3. They will oft give very ill counsel: advising their sons to keep their wife's short: advising their daughters not to be too subject to their husbands, yea privily to purloin from their husbands. 4. If they live with their children, they will so pry into every thing that their children's husband or wife doth, and show such suspicion and jealously in every thing, as they cannot but cause much discord: and hence it oft cometh to pass, that either parent and child, or husband and wife must be parted: they cannot all in peace live together. These faults I thus note, that they may the more carefully be avoided. §. 74. Of their duty who are in stead of parents to Orphans. The next sort of those who are in stead of parents, are those who in blood and kindred are next to parents: as grandfathers, grandmothers, uncles, aunts, elder brothers, or sisters, their husbands or wives, and cousins. These commonly are counted to be in the place of parents, The next of kin to Orphans to be as natural parents. when God taketh away natural and immediate parents from their children: so as they are parents to Orphans. The duties which were prescribed to natural parents appertain to them (except * §. 71. before excepted.) Their duty is to see these Orphans well educated, well placed in some good calling, well married, and (if the Orphans be left destitute of means) well provided for. Mordecai is a worthy precedent and pattern for this kind of parents. b Est. 2. 7. He brought up Esther his uncle's daughter (for she had neither father nor mother) he took her for his own daughter: when she was taken from him, c Vers. 11. he went to know how she did, and what should become of her: and d Vers. 20, 22. Chap. 4. vers. 13. he gave her advice from time to time how to carry herself. Let such as are parents to Orphans take this example as a direction, and as a motive to perform the other duties prescribed to natural parents as need requireth, and occasion is offered. God by his providence taking away natural parents committeth their Orphans as a charge to the next of kin: that as their natural parents brought them forth, these should bring them up: therefore for their recompense let them look to God, (who taketh upon himself to be f Psal. 68 5. a father of the fatherless) and for their encouragement remember the reward which Mordecai received of the Lord: yea also let them remember the blessing that God bestowed upon Esther. God doth oft so bless the means used for the education of Orphans, as they who take the care thereof have no cause to repent their pains and cost, but rather have much matter of comfort, joy and thanksgiving. §. 75. Of the common neglect of Orphans. Too too common is the contrary disposition of most kinsmen, and kinswomen; they think they are bound to none but their own children, and if they have no children, to none at all. Many are of ruth's kinsman's mind, they fear to mar Ruth 4. 6. their own inheritance. Though they be themselves exceeding rich, and spend much in apparel, pastimes and house-keeping, yet they can suffer the Orphans of their poor kindred to want, and to beg for need. This is it that maketh the loss of natural parents to be so much the greater. And herein many Christians are more inhuman than the heathen: which the Apostle implieth, where he faith, they are worse than infidels: for Orphant's next of kin 1 Tim. 5. 8. are to be reckoned among those whom the Apostle termeth a man's * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. OWN. §. 76. Of the duty of Guardians. The last sort of those who are in place of parents, are such as have the charge of children committed to them by voluntary appointment of parents, or are chosen by children themselves, or by the magistrate when parents are dead, or lunatic, or any other way impotent, and unable to train up their own children. Of these care and conscience is rather required, than cost and charges: for commonly both their charges are allowed, and their pains recompensed. They who by reason of the death or impotency of natural parents have the charge of children committed to them, are commonly called Guardians: of whom two general duties are required. 1. That they look to their Pupils good education. 2. That they preserve their patrimony and inheritance. For their education, the directions given before to natural parents are to be observed by them. For preservation of their patrimony, they must do for their Pupils what they would do for their own children; and so carry themselves, as with good conscience they may give that account to their Pupils, or any other, which the law requireth. The two forenamed duties, are the rhaine ends for which Guardians are chosen: in performing whereof, if they be faithful, great redress will be made of the untimely death of parents; and notwithstanding parents die before their children be of discretion to manage their estate, yet will their houses and families be maintained, and young heirs kept from cunnie-catchers and cheaters. It is noted of john, who had the mother of jesus commended joh. 19 27. to him, that he took her to his own home: whereby is implied his provident care for her good. §. 77. Of the fraud of Guardians. Contrary is the practice of most Guardians, who take Pupils Tutela ad utilitatem eorum qui commissi sunt, non ad corum quibus commissa, gerenda est. Cic. Offic. l. 1. for their own advantage, and make a prey of them. The heathen could say, that Guardianship is to be performed for the benefit of the Pupil, and not of the Guardian. Yet among Christians is the forenamed fault of Guardians. 1. There are few children (that have not natural parents to look to their good education) but are exceedingly neglected therein, and brought up very rudely and licentiously: yea many times too sparingly and niggardly for diet, apparel, and other needful things, though they have sufficient to discharge all that shall be laid out upon them. 2. The main estate & patrimony of many Pupils is much impaired: and if they have lands, as much waste is made upon them as possibly can be: and when a reckoning is to be given, it shall be a large, unjust, and most unconscionable reckoning of the Guardian can but get a general release, it is all that the caveth for. 3. Marriages are after a for forced upon many Pupils: and such matches put upon them as they cannot like; yea such as are no way fit for them, neither for estate, nor years, nor proportion of body, nor qualities of mind. Little do these Guardians think of that account where unto they shall be brought an other day before the Lord, who styleth himself the c Psal. 10. 14. helper of the fatherless, and who beholdeth mischief to requite it. Fearful is that judgement which the Lord hath d Exo. 22. 22, etc. threatened against those that oppress the fatherless. Let not therefore unjust Guardians think, that the gain they get wrongfully from their Pupils shall prosper: but rather let them look for Gods curse upon their own children, and goods. If such as parents themselves have upon their deathbeds committed their children unto, in confidence of their faithfulness, shall deal deceitfully with their Pupils, their sin is doubled, and trebled. For 1. They violate the bond of friendship, faithfulness, and trust reposed upon them. 2. They sin directly against justice. 3. Most monstrously they transgress the rules of charity. §. 78. Of the duty of Schoolmasters and Tutors. Among those who are by voluntary appointment set in the place of parents, are Schoolmasters and Tutors to be reckoned. The authority and charge of a parent is for a time committed to them: therefore for that time they ought to perform a parent's duty. Their duty is appropriated to education: it appertaineth not to them to maintain the children committed to them: they are rather themselves by their pains that way maintained. All the duties which were before comprised under nurture, belong to Schoolmasters and Tutors. More particularly they are to instruct children in three things. 1. In learning. 2. In civility, and good manners. 3. In true piety, and religion. I shall not need to speak more of these points then hath * §. 28, 34. before been delivered: only to provoke them to be diligent in well nurturing children in those three points, let the benefit of good Schoolmasters and Tutors be well noted. Schoolmasters commonly cast the first seed into the hearts of The benefit of a good Schoolmaster. children: they first season them: as the seed is, such will the crop be: as the first seasoning is, so will the savour continue to be. If they sow no good seed at all, what harvest can be looked for? If they sow a corrupt seed of rudeness, licentiousness, profaneness, superstition, and any wickedness, the crop must needs be answerable thereto. But if they sow the good seed of learning, civility, and piety, there is great hope of a good crop. Hence it followeth that they are of great use, and may bring much good, not only to the children themselves, and their parents, Scholas & phrontisteria virorum & mulierum philosophiae ethnicae addictorum construe it. Nicep. eccls hist. l. 10. c. 21. The benefit of a good Tutor. but also to the Church and Commonwealth. julian the Apostate was not ignorant hereof: and therefore endeavouring to root Christianity out of the world, he suffered no man that professed himself a Christian, to teach a school: but in stead of Christian Schoolmasters, he set up in every part of his dominions, heathenish Schoolmasters. Tutors, to whose government young scholars, that are sent to the Universities, are committed, have to deal with children in their riper years; even when the time of settling them in a course is come: the very time wherein much good may be done to children, or else wherein they may be utterly perverted. There will be little hope of bowing them, and drawing them into another course after they be freed from the government of a Tutor. Tutor's therefore, as they have need of great wisdom, so of good conscience, that they may have the greater care of their Pupils, and take the greater pains in teaching them the three forenamed points, learning, civility, and piety. A good Tutor may do much to repair the negligence, and amend the defects of a Schoolmaster: but there remain none to redress the failings of a Tutor: children for the most part are past redressing, when they cease to have a Tutor. §. 79. Of the negligence of Schoolmasters and Tutors. The vices contrary to the forenamed duty of Schoolmasters, are these. 1. unskilfulness. Many that are more fit to be taught then to teach, take upon them this weighty calling. Some have not sufficient learning: some again are rude, and know not themselves good manners: and some know not the first principles of the oracles of God. No good can be expected from these. 2. Covetousness. All that many seek, is to multiply the number of their scholars, and to get as much as they can for boarding, and teaching: they aim more at their own gain then at their scholar's profit. Children are not like to thrive well under them. 3. Negligence. Many are loath to take the pains of a Schoolmaster, and thereupon come as little into the school as they can: take every small occasion to be gone again: care not how much their children play: if they be able to hire a poor Usher, all the burden shall be cast upon him. Little is that fruit that can be looked for from them. 4. Want of piety. Many skilful and painful Schoolmasters, under whose teaching children come forward exceeding well in learning, think it nothing appertaineth to them to teach the grounds of religion, so as they altogether neglect piety. Assuredly they want it themselves: for were their own hearts seasoned with true piety, their consciences would move them to teach it to their children. The things of the kingdom of God are like unto ●eauen, which seasoneth the whole batch of dough with that season and savour which itself hath. When children spend almost all their time with their Schoolmasters, of whom should they learn it, if not of them? What blessing can be hoped from the pains of such Schoolmasters? I might to these add the overmuch remissness of some (whereby children get too great an head) and the too great severity of others, either in frequency of correcting, as if they delighted therein; or in the measure thereof, as if they had to do with beasts, whereby they affright children, make them dull, yea and impudent also. But these extremes were * §. 48, 49. before handled. The common fault of Tutors is altogether to neglect their Pupils. Many think a Tutor to be a meeretitular matter: no more to be required of them but to bear the very name; and to undertake that the College be discharged for their Pupils diet. This conceit, and the practise answerable thereunto, is the blemish and bane of the Universities. Many children well trained up in schools, utterly lose the benefit of all their former education when they are sent to the University, because their Tutors altogether leave them to themselves: and so they are made a prey to idle and lewd companions. By reason hereof many parents are utterly discouraged to send their children to the University. The seventh Treatise. Duties of Servants. §. 1. A Resolution of the Apostles direction to Servants. EPHES. 6. 5. Servants be obedient to them that are your Masters according to the flesh, with fear and trembling in singleness of your heart, as unto Christ. 6. Not with eye-service, as men-pleasers, but as the servants of Christ, doing the will of God from the heart. 7. With good will doing service, as to the Lord, and not to men. 8. Knowing that whatsoever good thing any man doth, the same shall he receive of the Lord, whether he be bond or free. THe third and last couple of a family are— Masters. Servants. The direction which the Apostle giveth to servants, is in this text set down. Therein he 1. Declareth their duties. 2. Addeth motives to perform them. I. In declaring servants duties he noteth— 1. The kinds of them. 2. The manner 3. The extent 1. The kinds of servants duties are noted in two words,— Obey, vers. 5. Serve, vers. 7. 2. The manner is set down Affirmatively, vers. 5, 7. Negatively, vers. 6, 7. 1. Affirmatively by showing what graces are requisite: to which purpose he reckoneth up four particulars. 1. Fear and trembling. 2. Singleness of heart. 3. Conscience to Christ. 4. Good will. Under which are comprised— 1. Cheerfulness. 2. Readiness. 3. Diligence. 4. Faithfulness. 2. Negatively, by showing what vices are to be avoided, and these are two especially, 1. eye-service, which is opposed to doing of things— as Christ's servants. from the heart. 2. Men-pleasing, which is opposed to doing the will of God. 3. The extent of servant's duties is noted in these four phrases,— 1. Masters after the flesh, vers. 5. 2. As to Christ, vers. 5. 3. As servants of Christ, vers. 6. 4. Doing Gods will, vers. 6. II. The motives which the Apostle useth are partly— Implied. Expressed. They are implied three ways. 1. By declaring the place of a Master (as to Christ.) 2. By noting out the honour of their service (as servants of Christ.) 3. By showing the ground of servant's subjection (Gods will.) The motive expressed is the Recompense which seruans shall have for their pains largely laid forth, vers. 8. Therein these distinct points are noted in order. 1. The assurance thereof (knowing.) 2. The ground thereof, taken from a general rule (whatsoever good thing any man doth.) 3. The particular application thereof (whether bond or free.) 4. The kind thereof (the same shall he receive.) 5. The author and giver thereof (of the Lord.) §. 2. Of the lawfulness of a master's place and power. In handling servants duties I will proceed according to the order propounded. In the first place therefore I will note out the kinds of servants duties. For finding out the kinds, I will observe the method followed in handling children's duties. Note then 1. The Fountain of servant's duties. 2. The Streams that issue from thence. The Fountain resteth partly in the opinion, and partly in the affection of servants. In their Opinion they must be informed and resolved that the Servant's must be informed of the lawfulness of a master's authority. place of a master and a servant is lawful and warrantable: that God in general ordained degrees of superiority and inferiority, of authority and subjection: and in particular gave to masters the authority which they have, and put servants in that subjection wherein they are. Till the judgement be resolved hereof, nor reverence, nor obedience will be yielded as it ought. For Reverence hath reference to Eminency and superiority: and Obedience to Authority and power. Who will reverence or obey him whom he taketh to be his equal? This was the ground of the conspiracy of Corah, Dathan and Abiram, that they thought a Numb. 16. 3. Moses and Aaron took too much upon them, and lift themselves up above the congregation of the Lord. Wherefore I will here note the grounds of a master's authority, and servant's subjection. Grounds of masters and servants places. 1. God hath given express commandment unto masters to govern their servants: and unto servants to be subject to their masters. b Exo. 20. 10. In the fourth commandment God giveth a charge to masters over their servants, to see that they do no manner of work. And the Angel biddeth Hagar c Gen. 16. 9 humble herself under her mistress hands. And here servants are commanded to obey their masters. 2. Many directions are given both to masters and servants in regard of their different places how to carry themselves one to another. Read for this purpose the many laws which Moses prescribed to both: the many counsels which Solomon, in his proverbs especially, giveth also to both: and particularly the directions of this and other Apostles. 3. Saints in all ages have been set in these places: some in the places of masters, and some in the places of servants: and according to the place wherein God hath set them, they have performed their duty: masters the duties of masters, and servants the duties of servants. 4. The many parables which Christ useth taken from the power which masters have and exercise over their servants, and the subjection which servants yield to their masters, show that the authority of the one, and subjection of the other, are things without question granted and not denied. 5. God hath made many promises of reward both to masters, and servants, that conscionably perform the duties of their place: and hath made many threatenings against the one and the other that are negligent therein. All these grounds are so clearly and plentifully noted in the Scripture, that any one who is any whit acquainted therewith may know them to be so. Were there no other arguments than this text which I have in hand, it were enough to confound all gainsayers: and to move such as believe the rather Serui cum crediderint plus dominis carnalibus seruire debent. Cypr. Testim. l. 3. c. 72 See Treat. 1. §. 123. for their faith and profession sake to serve their masters after the flesh. §. 3 Of the Anabaptists arguments against the authority of masters, and subjection of servants. Contrary to this first ground of servant's subjection is the opinion of Anabaptists, who teach that all are alike, and that there is no difference betwixt masters and servants. Their reasons, whereby they would make show to prove their unreasonable opinion, are these. 1. Object. Master's are either Infidels or Christians, and so servants either one or other. If masters be Infidels, and servants Christians, how unmeet is it that Christians should be subject to Infidels? and if master and servant be both Christians, they are brothers: but brothers are equals, and neither subject to other. Answ. Rule and subjection are matters of outward policy, they tend to the outward preservation of Church, Commonwealth, and family, in this world: but faith, piety, and such graces are inward matters of the soul, tending to a better life. These being thus different, one that is more excellent in the one, may be inferior in the other. Yea though there be an equality in the one, namely, in spiritual things, yet there may be a disparity in the other, namely, in civil and temporal matters. And though Saints may be far inferior to infidels in outward estate, yet they are not a whit the less glorious before God. The honour proper and peculiar to Saints is inward, not visible to the carnal eye of a natural man. 2. Object. It is against nature for one to be servant, especially a bondservant to another. Prima seruitutis causa peccatum est, etc. Verum & poenalis seruitus ea lege ordinatur, qua naturalem ordinem conseruari iubet, etc. Aug. de Ciu. Dei l. 19 c. 15. Answ. To grant that it is against that absolute and perfect nature wherein at first God created man, and that it came in by sin, yet is it not against that order and course of nature wherein God hath now settled man. God hath turned many punishments of sin to be bounden duties; as subjection of wife to husband, and man's eating bread in the sweat of his brow. 3. Object. It is the prerogative of Christians to be b Gal. 3. 28. all one: but subjection of servants to masters is against that prerogative. Answ. That prerogative is merely spiritual: for in Christ all are one, as they are members of Christ, which is a spiritual body: not as they are members of a politic body. A politipue inequality is not against a spiritual equality. 4. Object. This subjection is against the c Gal. 5. 1. liberty that Christ hath purchased for us, and wherewith he hath made us free. Answ. It is not. For that liberty is from the curse and rigour of the moral law: from the ceremonial law and the rites thereof: from Satan, sin, death, and damnation: but not from those degrees which God hath established betwixt man and man, for the good of mankind. 5. Object. We are expressly forbidden to be d 1 Cor. 7. 23. servants of men. Answ. To be a servant in that place is not simply to be in subjection See Treat. 1. §. 124, 125, 126. under another, and to do service unto him, but to be so obsequious to a man, so addicted to please him, and so subject to his will, as to do whatsoever he will have done: to regard nothing but his pleasure: to prefer it before God's word and will. It is not therefore the thing itself, but an excess therein which is there forbidden. §. 4. Of a servants fear of his master. The other part of that fountain, from whence the duties Servant's ought to fear their masters. of servants flow, resteth in the affection: and it is in one word Fear: which is an awful dread of a master. An awe in regard of his master's place: a dread in regard of his master's power. An awe is such a reverend esteem of his master, as maketh him account his master worthy of all honour: which b 1 Tim. 6. 1. S. Paul expressly enjoineth servants to do. A dread is such a fear of provoking his master's wrath, as maketh him think and cast every way how to please him. This is it which the Apostle here intimateth under these two words, fear and trembling. In both these respects S. Peter commandeth servants to be subject in all fear. 1 Pet. 2. 18. So proper is this fear to a servant in relation to his master, as where it is wanting, there is a plain denial of his master's place and power; which God intimateth under this expostulation, If I be a master, where is my fear? that is, you plainly Mal. 1. 6. show that you account me not your master, because in your heart there is no fear of me. This fear will draw servants on, cheerfully to perform all duty: the more it aboundeth, the more desire and endeavour there will be to please, and to give good contentment (and this is a point commanded to servants, to please well in all things:) Tit. 2. 9 yea it will glad the heart of a servant to see his service prosper well: hereof we have a worthy pattern in Abraham's servant, Gen. 24. whose care to do his business, as his master would have it, and prayer for God's assistance therein, and thanks for God's blessing thereon, showeth an awful respect which he bore to his master. Again, on the other side, this fear will keep men from of fending their masters (which was one reason that moved joseph not to yield to his mistress) and in this respect it may Gen. 39 8. prevent many mischiefs which their master's offence and wrath might bring upon them. One especial means to breed and preserve this fear in servants, is, a due consideration of the ground of their master's Direction. place and power: which is God's appointment: God hath placed them in his stead, and in part given them his power: they are the Deputies and Ministers of God, and therefore in Scripture the title ( * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Gen. 24. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Eph. 6. 5. Lord) is after a peculiar manner given to them. What maketh subjects stand in awe of inferior Magistrates? Is it not because they bear the King's person, and have authority and power given unto them of the King? §. 5. Of the extremes contrary to servants fear of their masters. Two extremes are contrary to this servant-like fear. 1. In the excess a slavish fear: when they fear nothing but Slavish fear in servants. the revenging power of their master: the staff or the cudgel, as we speak: so they may avoid that, they care not whither their master be pleased or no. This maketh them oft to wish that their masters had no power over them: or that they were dead. This was that fear which possessed the heart of that unprofitable servant, who said to his master, I knew thee that Mat. 25. 24, 25. thou art an hard man, and I was afraid. Such servile servants will never be profitable. 2. In the defect, a light esteem and plain contempt of Servants despising their masters. Mal. 1. 6. masters. That this is contrary to fear is evident by that opposition which God maketh betwixt them in these words, If I be a master, where is my fear, o ye that despise my name? As if he had said; Hereby ye show that ye fear me not as a master, because ye despise me. This sin of despising masters is expressly c 1 Tim. 6. 2. forbidden: and for it was d Gen. 16. 6. Hagar dealt hardly withal. When masters are poor, mean, weak, aged, or otherwise impotent, then proud servants are prone to despise them: which argueth a base mind, showing that they respect their master's power more than his place: the poorest and weakest have the same place and authority over servants, that the richest and strongest have; all bear God's image alike: but disdainful proud servants show that they regard not God's image at all. §. 6. Of servant's reverence in speech. The two main streams which issue out of the forenamed fountain, are— Reverence. Obedience. Reverence is manifested in Speech. Carriage. In Speech by Refraining Speech. Well ordering Servants reverence in refraining speech is manifested 3. ways. 1. By sparing to speak, without just cause in their master's presence or audience: This phrase ( a 1 King. 10. 8. they stand continually before thee and hear thy wisdom) spoken of Salomon's servants, showeth that they were slow to speak and swift to hear in their master's presence. 2. By forbearing to reply when they observe their masters unwilling that they should speak any more. Thus did Peter forbear when his master gave him this short answer, b john 21. 22. What is that to thee? 3. By attending to that which their masters shall deliver to them: for servants ought to show such a respect to their masters speaking to them, as Samuel did to God, when he said, c 1 Sam. 3. 10. Speak for thy servant heareth. The titles of Lord and Servant do show, that this speech is taken from the duty of servants. The notation of the d 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. See Treat. 1. §. 96, 124. Greek word used by the Apostle, & translated Obey, implieth as much. This reverence did Abraham's e Gen. 24. 9 servant show to his master, when he gave him a charge about choosing a wife for his son. Servants for well ordering their speech unto their masters must observe five cautions. 1. That they have just occasion to speak: and that is either when their masters require them to speak (as f Mat. 16. 14. the disciples) or when they see it behooveful for their masters that they should speak. In such cases speech argueth reverence, as well as silence in other cases. The general points which were before delivered of the reverence of * Treat. 3. §. 13. wives to their husbands, and of * Treat. 5. §. 4. 5. etc. children to their parents, may be applied to servants: and pressed upon them as an argument from the less to the greater thus, If wives (who in many things have a joint authority with their husbands) & children (who are not in so servile a degree subject to their parents, as servants to their masters) must manifest their inward fear of their husbands and parents by outward reverence, much more must servants to their masters. To declare the force of this consequence so much the more, let it be noted that the Apostle addeth another kind When behooveful for servants to speak to masters. of word here, than he did before, either in wives or children's duties, namely * See Treat. 1. §. 124. trembling. Quest. In what cases may it be behooveful for masters that their servants speak to them? Answ. 1. When they know any thing that may be profitable for their masters, they ought to declare it, though they be not asked: as g 2 King. 5. 3. that maid which told her mistress naaman's wife, that there was a Prophet in Samaria that could deliver him of his leprosy. 2. When masters through ignorance, passion, or such like cause, refuse to do that which their servants know to be good for them, they ought to persuade their masters to do it; as Naaman's servants persuaded their master to wash himself in 2 King. 5. 13. jordan as the Prophet advised him. 3. When servants are not fully instructed in those things which they ought to do for their master, they ought to ask of him what is to be done, as the disciples who said to their master, where wilt thou that we prepare for thee to eat the Mat. 26. 17. passover? 4. When some scruple ariseth in their minds about any charge that their master shall give them, they may inquire of their master, as Abraham's servant when he said, what if the woman Gen. 24. 5. will not come with me? 5. When their master unjustly suspecteth any evil of them, they may speak to clear their own innocency, as David 1 Sam. 24. 10. did to Saul. A second caution for servants well ordering their speech is, Directions for servants well framing their speech to masters. That the very form and manner of their speech when they have just occasion to speak to their masters, do savour of reverence: for which purpose let these particulars be noted. 1. That servants give reverend titles to their masters. It was in an honourable respect of their master that the servants of Naaman, called him Father. In Scripture * §. 4. one of 2 King. 5. 13. God's titles is attributed to masters, as Lord. 2. That their words be few, no more than must needs, even when they have occasion to speak: as may be gathered out of the forenamed examples alleged to show when servants might and ought to speak. 3. That all their words spoken to their master be meek, mild and humble: note for this purpose how the children of the Prophets framed their speech to their master. 2 King. 6. 2. etc. 1. They humbly beg leave for themselves to go to Iorden. 2. They entreat him to go, in these words, vouchsafe I pray thee to go with thy servants. 3. When one of them had lost the head of his hatchet, as if he durst not be so bold as to speak to his master to get it him again, he referreth the thing to his good pleasure, saying, Alas master it was but borrowed. A third caution is, That they observe a fit season to speak to their master: as when he is at leisure to hear them: (thus it is noted of the disciples that when their master was alone they propounded their questions unto him) or when his mind is quiet, not Mar. 4. 10. troubled with passion (thus when David observed that Saul's mind was somewhat pacified towards him, by that speech he used, Is this thy voice my son David, than he took occasion more freely to speak to him.) 1 Sam. 26. 17. A fourth caution is, That they give a ready and present answer to their master. This is oft commended in Peter, that when Christ propounded any question to his disciples, he would presently and Mat. 16. 16. joh. 6. 68 readily answer. A fifth caution is, That all their speeches and answers to their master be true, not daring to tell a lie unto them: this argueth a very reverend respect of a master. When Eli demanded of Samuel what the Lord had said to him, Samuel told him every whit and hid nothing from him. And when David bid the woman of Tekoah 1 Sam. 3. 18. 2 Sam. 14. 18, 19 not to hide the thing that he should ask her from him, she told him the whole truth. There is a double bond to tie servants hereunto. 1. Their conscience towards God, who is a God of truth. 2. Their respect to their masters with whom they ought to deal faithfully. Lastly, a servant's reverence ought to be manifested by his speech of his master even behind his back: speaking good of him, and no evil: this part of reverence also did Abraham's servant show to his master. Thus shall they show themselves Gen. 24. 35, etc. good, truehearted, faithful servants, and not parasites. §. 7. Of the vices contrary to a servant's reverence in speech. Offences contrary to the forenamed Reverence of servants to their masters are these. 1. Sauciness and boldness in servants when they have no more respect to their master's presence then to any others, but are full of prate, and loud in speech before their master, or in the room next to him, where they may be heard as well as if they were in the same room: much offence is thus oft times given to masters. 2. Importunity in speaking, and replying again and again, though their masters do not only show their dislike thereof, but also expressly charge them to speak no more. Scolding maids that will have the last words of their mistress much offend herein. This is directly against the Apostles prohibition to servants, that they answer not again. Tit. 2. 9 3. Impatiency, when they cannot endure to hear their master make an end of his speech, but either they will interrupt him, or fling away. 4. Stoutness, when (as Solomon noteth) though they understand, Pro. 29. 19 they will not speak: though they know very well that it is their master's pleasure they should speak, yea though they are bidden to speak, yet their stout stomach, and sullen heart will not suffer them to speak: no though it be never so behooveful for their masters: if they know that their master goeth on in a course very prejudicial to him, yet will not they tell him of it: nay if their master unjustly suspect any evil of them, they will let him abide in that jealously rather than speak to clear themselves: and if their master do not expressly appoint them from time to time what to do, they will never ask: nor if they be doubtful of that which he giveth them in charge, will they further inquire to be resolved thereof. This kind of silence, in these and such like cases, argueth more doggedness than dutifulness. 5. Disdain, when they * See §. 5. scorn to give the title Master to him that is set over them, because he is a poor and mean man. 6. Arrogancy, when their words are high and lofty against their master, pretending that they are as good as he, though for a time they be under him. Clerks, prentices, waiting women, and such like, being borne of gentlemen, and men of good degree, are for the most part guilty of this fault: the reason is, because their birth and parentage maketh them forget their present place and condition; or else (which is worse) maketh them wilfully presume above it. 7. Muttering and murmuring upon every occasion of discontent: whereby it cometh to pass that they oft provoke much wrath (for grievous words stir up anger.) Pro. 15. 1. 8. Unseasonable interruption of their master: speaking to him when he is seriously occupied in some weighty business (as they who told Christ of his mother and brethren when he was preaching) or unseasonably speaking unto him while he Mar. 3. 32. is in passion, whereby they oft bring much mischief upon themselves. 9 Answering their master at their own leisure, suffering him to call, and call again and again. This doth job complain of, saying, I called my servant and he gave me no answer. job 19 16. 10. Flapping their master in the mouth with a lie: like Gehazi, who, when he had lewdly fetched money and apparel of Naaman, and his master asked him where he had been, said with a fair face, Thy servant went no whither. Let the judgement 2 King. 5. 25. executed on him make all servants take heed of the like sin. For Lying is in itself an heinous sin: yet so much the more heinous when it is told to one that hath authority over us, and by reason thereof standeth in God's place. Lastly, Evil language of their master behind his back. This is a sin, though that which is spoken to a master's disgrace be true: for the infirmities of a master ought rather to be covered, then revealed and laid open by a servant. How monstrous a sin is it then, to raise slanderous reports against a master which are untrue? This was Zibas sin against Mephibosheth his master. 2 Sam. 16. 3. Hitherto of servant's Reverence in speech to their masters. Their Reverence in carriage followeth. §. 8. Of servant's reverend behaviour to their masters. For manifestation of a servant's reverence in carriage towards his master, three things are especially required. 1. Dutiful obeisance. 2. Respectful behaviour. 3. Modest apparel. I. Such dutiful and submissive obeisance and courtesy, as beseemeth their sex and place, and that according to the most usual 1. Servant's obeisance to their masters. custom of the country and place where they are, must servants perform to their masters, as they have occasion to go to them, to come from them, to receive any charge of them, or to bring any message unto them. Where Isaak saith in his blessing given to jaakob, Be lord over thy brethren, and let thy mother's sons bow Gen. 27. 29. down to thee, by that phrase of bowing down, he noteth the condition of a servant, and withal implieth a servant's duty: on this ground, when the children of the Prophets saw that the spirit of Eliah rested on Elisha, they taking it for an evident sign that God had made him a governor and master over them, they came to 2 King. 2. 15. meet him, and bowed themselves to the ground before him. II. Answerable to a servant's obeisance must be his whole behaviour 2. Servants dutiful behaviour before their masters. before his master, seasoned and ordered with such modesty and humility, as may manifest an honourable respect to his master: as 1. To stand in his master's presence; which testifieth a readiness to perform any service which his master shall appoint him to do: this was one thing noted, and commended by the Queen of Sheba in Solomon's servants: she saw their d 1 King. 10. 5, 8. standing, and said, happy are these thy servants that stand before thee. Whereas it is said that she saw also their sitting, that phrase showeth a seemly order which they observed even when they were out of his presence, by giving and taking their right and due place. 2. By uncovering their heads in their master's presence: this in our days, and in the parts of the world where we dwell, is in the male kind a sign and token of subjection. 3. By sobriety and modesty both in countenance, and in the whole disposition of body, especially when servants are in their master's presence: for to compose countenance and whole body soberly, because of the presence of one, argueth a reverend respect of that person, for whose sake that sobriety is showed. III. The apparel also which servants wear must be so fashioned 3. Servants seemly apparel. and ordered, as it may declare them to be servants, and under their masters, and so it will argue a reverend respect of their masters. One end of apparel, is to show a difference betwixt superiors and inferiors, persons in authority and under subjection. It pleased the Holy Ghost to note this particular (and their 1. King. 10. 5. apparel) as an observable point in Solomon's servants. §. 9 Of the faults of servants contrary to reverence in carriage. The carriage of many servants towards their master is clean contrary to the forenamed reverence. For 1. Some through rudeness, and want of good bringing up, 1. Rudeness. come to their masters, and go from them, as to and from their fellows: no testimony of reverence by any obeisance: they know not how to give it: whereby they dishonour their parents, and manner of education. 2. Others, if at first coming to their master they give some 2. Too much familiarity. salutation, yet, through too much familiarity with them, all the day after they will carry themselves fellowlike, scarce uncovering their heads in their master's presence, not enduring to stand long before him, but either setting themselves down, or slinking away when they should be in presence. Doubtless from this overmuch familiarity arose this proverb, Good morrow for all day. This unmannerly familiarity is commonly in such servants, as have poor and mean masters: for rich and great men's servants can be so full of courtesy, as not a word shall be spoken by their masters to them, or by them to their masters, but the knee shall be bowed withal: they can stand hour after hour before their masters, and not once put on their hat: if they be walking after their masters, their master shall not turn sooner than their hat will be off, and that so oft as he turneth or speaketh to them. Why should rich masters have so much reverence showed to them, and poor masters none at all? Do not the poor bear God's image as well as the rich? Doth God's word make any difference betwixt rich and poor? Doth it say, Serve rich masters with fear and trembling? Surely it is the corruption of man's heart, which maketh this difference. Servants naturally more regard their masters outward ability, then inward authority: the honour which the world conferreth on men, more than the honour which God conferreth: for God hath given as much honour and authority to a poor master as to a rich, in that he is a master. Servants commonly most fail in this duty of reverence towards their masters there where they should most of all show it, namely, in the courts of God, and assembly of God's people, where the very Angels are present to behold our seemly carriage: thus they cause the ministry of the word to be evil spoken of, and thereby make their sin so much the more heinous. 3. Exceeding great is the fault of servants in their excess in apparel. 3. Pride. No distinction ordinarily betwixt a man's children and servants: nay none betwixt masters and their men, mistresses and their maids. It may be while men and maids are at their masters and mistresses finding, difference may be made: though even then also, if they can any way get wherewithal, they will do what they can to be as brave as they can. But if once they be at their own finding, all shall be laid out upon apparel, but they will be as fine as master or mistress: if not so costly, yet in show as specious and brave. New fashions are as soon got up by servants as by masters and mistresses. What is the end of this, but to be thought as good as master or mistress? If the Queen of Sheba were now living, she would as much wonder at the disorder of servants in these days, as than she wondered at the comely order of Solomon's servants. Let these proud servants look to it: for if God have threatened to visit Prince's children that walk in strange apparel, Zeph. 1. 8. can servants that so walk think to go scot-free? Thus much of servant's reverence. Their obedience followeth. §. 10. Of servant's obedience. No inferiors are more bound to obedience then servants: it is their maine, and most peculiar function, to obey their masters. It is therefore here in my text expressly mentioned (Servants obey your masters) and all other duties are comprised under it. * Treat. 3. §. 17. The reasons alleged to move wives and children to obey, ought much more to move servants. Treat. 5. §. 11. They who are contrary minded, who are rebellious, and disdain to be under the authority of another, and are ready to say of their Master, We will not have this man to reign over us, are fitter Luke 19 14. to live among Anabaptists, then orthodoxal Christians. For to what end is the lawfulness of authority acknowledged, if subjection be not yielded unto it? of the two a man were better be blinded with error, than not obey the truth which he knoweth. In handling this point of obedience, I will follow the same order, which I did in laying forth the obedience of wives and children, and consider 1. The parts of servant's obedience wherein it consisteth. 2. The extent thereof, how far it reacheth. The parts are two, One negative. Another affirmative. The negative is to abstain from doing things of their own head, without or against their master's consent. The affirmative is readily to yield to do that which their masters would they should do. §. 11. Of servants forbearing to do things without their master's consent. Servant's ought to forbear doing of things on their own heads without or against consent of their masters, because while the time of their service lasteth, they are not their own, neither aught the things which they do, to be for themselves: both their persons and their actions are all their masters: and the will of their master must be their rule and guide (in things which are not against Gods will.) The rite used under the Law of boaring a servant's ear, implied as much. David therefore alluding unto Exo. 21. 6. that rite, saith to God (both of himself, and also of Christ, whom under a type he prefigured) mine ears hast thou boared; and from thence inferreth that he would do the will of God. We have Psal. 40. 6. a notable pattern hereof in Abraham's servant, who in a business committed to his charge propounds such scruples as came Gen. 24. 5. into his head to receive direction from his master therein, lest he should be forced to do something of his own head without particular warrant from his master. This general will the better be cleared, if it be exemplified in some particulars. Take therefore these instances gathered out of the Scriptures of things which servants may not do without their master's consent. 1. Servant's may not go whither they will. The phrase which the Centurion useth (I say to one go, and he goeth) implieth, that except his master bid him go, he ought not to go. Mat. 8. 9 2. They ought not to do their own business and affairs. It is noted of jaakob being Laban's servant, that, though he Gen. 30. 35, 36. had flocks of his own, yet he fed his master's flocks, and committed his own to his sons. 3. They ought not to do what business they list themselves. Ahimaaz had a great desire to carry the news of Absoloms' 2 Sam. 18. 19, etc. death to David: yet without the leave of joab his Captain and master he would not do it. The good mistress giveth the portion to her maids, namely, the portion of work: Pro. 31. 15. that therefore must they do which she giveth them to do. The servants of the Centurion did every one as by their master Mat. 8. 9 Mat. 25. 16, 17. they were enjoined: and the servants that had talents committed to them looked each of them to their own talon. 4. They ought not to marry while the time of their covenant for service lasteth, unless their master give consent thereto. The law of God thus setteth forth the lawful marriages of servants, If his master have given him a wife: whereby is implied; Exo. 21. 4. that if a servant marry, it must be with his master's consent. Object. The Apostle, without exception of servants saith, to avoid fornication let every man have his wife, etc. 1 Cor. 7. 2. Answ. He there showeth what means the Lord hath sanctified to every one to avoid fornication, but he doth not thereby give liberty to every one headily to use that means against that order which God hath set down. 2. That precept is given to such as are * Sui iuris. in their own power: for of children he saith, that n 1 Cor. 7. 36, etc. parents must see what is meet or not meet for them. 3. That which servants are to gather from thence is, if need so require, to make known their desire to their master, and to use all the good means they can by themselves or others to obtain their master's consent. 5. They ought not to dispose their master's goods at their own pleasure, no not for charitable uses. The Steward which Luk. 16. 1, 2. wasted his master's goods was justly put out of office for it. Yea he is called unjust for disposing some of them for his own vers. 8. future maintenance; therefore it was a point of justice and unlawful. Object. The Lord commended him therein. Answ. He commended his wisdom, not his injustice: his provident care for the time to come, not the means of providing for himself. In regard of his general providence he is commended: in regard of the particular means by deceiving his master, he is called unjust. 6. They may not before their covenanted time be expired go away from their master. When o Gen. 30. 26. jaakob after long service had a mind to be gone, he asked leave, and because his uncle and master would not willingly let him go, he tarried still. Object. Afterwards p & 31. 20. jaakob privily stole away from his master. Answ. 1. His covenanted time was out. 2. He had an express warrant from God to be gone. 3. His manner of going away is not to be justified, and in that respect it is no good pattern. §. 12. Of the unlawful liberty which servants take to themselves. Contrary to the forenamed limitations of servant's liberty are these, and such like lewd and licentious pranks as follow. 1. When servants watch their times to go whither they list, and their master not know it: as when their masters are seriously employed, or abroad, or in bed. Thus that lewd servant Gehazi watched his time to run after Naaman, thinking that 2 King. 5. 20. his master should not know it. 2. When being bound to their master's service, they do their own business, and seek their own profit; and that without their master's leave. This aggravated Gehazi his privy stealing and withdrawing himself from his master, that he went to receive gifts for himself. Many such lewd servants there be, that knowing such and such friends of their master, who will be ready to do any kindness for them, will use their master's name to borrow money, or get some other favour, and never let their-masters know of it. 3. When servants will choose their own work, and do that which liketh themselves best, or else do nothing at all. Thus where many servants be in one house together, if they be not in such places as they like themselves, they will mumble, and grumble, and do nothing well. 4. When servants, especially maidservants, that are bound, do purposely marry to free themselves: because our laws do free a maid that is married from her service to master and mistress. 5. When they are liberal of their master's goods in giving them away. Some think that because they are of the house, they may dispose the things of the house upon charitable uses. But pretence of charity is no excuse for injustice. Servant's may give notice to their masters or mistresses, that there are in the house such and such things meet to be given away, or that there are such and such poor folks that stand in great need: but privily without any consent at all, they may not give away any thing of their masters. 6. When upon discontent they run away from their masters. The two servants of Shemei which run from their master 1 King. 2. 39 Philem. ver. 12. Gen. 16. 9 are taxed for it by the holy Ghost. One simus that run from his master is sent back again by S. Paul: and Hagar is sent back by an Angel. Object. What if master and mistress be sharp, rigorous, and cruel. Answ. An Angel from heaven giveth one answer, (Submit Gen. 16. 9 thyself under her hands:) And an Apostle giveth another, Be subject with all fear to the froward: for conscience toward 1 Pet. 2. 18, 19 God endure grief, suffering wrongfully. These faults are thus noted, that servants taking notice of them, may the more carefully avoid them. §. 13. Of servant's obedience to their master's commandments. The affirmative and active part of servant's obedience, consisting in a ready yielding to that which their masters will have done, hath respect (as the like kind of children's obedience) to the Commandment, Instruction, Reproof, and Correction of their master. I. A master having power to command his servants, it is What masters command, servants must do. a duty of servants to obey their master therein. The particular work which appertaineth to a servant by virtue of his place is to have an eye to his master, to see what he requireth at his hands. David thus describes the property of good servants, Their eyes look to the hand of their master. That looking, as it Psal. 123. 2. implieth an expectation of relief and succour, so also a readiness to receive and execute any thing from them that they would have done. The Centurion commendeth this duty Mat. 8. 9 in the example of his servants, who every one of them did what their master commanded them to do. It is further commended in the examples of d Gen. 24. 9 Abraham's servant, e 1 King. 18. 43. Eliahs' servant, and many others. Note how far the Lord Christ exacteth this duty of servants; f Luk. 17. 7, 8. Though a servant hath been all day ploughing (a laborious and wearisome work) yet when he cometh home, his master commanding him to dress his supper and wait, he must do it. By all these proofs it appeareth, that if a master bid his servant, come, go, do this, or that, he must obey. The contrary hereunto is the highest degree of disobedience, Contrary. Refusing to be at command. 2 Sam. 19 26. as when servants refuse to be at their master's command, and to do what they charge them to do: as Ziba, who being commanded to saddle his master's Ass, went away and did it not: and jobs servants, who being called would not answer. job 19 16. Of all other offences this doth most provoke masters: for it is a plain contempt of their authority. §. 14. Of servants harkening to their master's instructions in matters of their calling. II. As a master hath power to command, so his duty it is to See Treat. 8. §. 21, 38. instruct his servants in the way of righteousness, and in that civil course of life wherein he is to walk. The duty then of servants it is, in both to hearken and be obedient unto them. 1. Such servants as are under masters to learn their trade, are bound many ways to hearken to them. 1. That for the time they may do the better service to their masters. 2. That by learning a trade or skill in any good calling they may be the better able when the time of their service is out to maintain themselves, to teach other servants which shall be under them, and to do the more good in the place where they shall live. 3. That thus they may the better discharge a good conscience in that particular place wherein God hath set them. Contrary is the idle, sluggish, dull disposition of many servants, who by reason of their carelessness and untowardness in doing that which they are taught, vex and grieve their masters, yea and make them weary of instructing them. Many prentices spend all the time of their prenticeship without reaping any good at all: they never prove their craft's masters: so many in the country live under good husbands, many Clerks under good Lawyers, many maids under good housewives, and that many years together, yet through their negligence get no good at all, whereas if they would have been attentive and careful, they might have learned much. Enemies these are to their masters, to themselves, to the city and country where they live, and to their friends and parents, especially if they have any alive. §. 15. Of servants harkening to their master's instructions in piety. Such servants as have religious masters who are careful to Obedience of servants to pious instructions. instruct their household in the way of righteousness, aught to be obedient to their instructions: so were josuahs' servants, (or else could not josuah have undertaken for them b Ios. 24. 15. as he did) and the servants of that Ruler of whom it was said that himself believed c john 4. 53. and all his house: and the servants of Lydia, and of the jailer, concerning whom it is said, d Acts 16. 15, She was baptised and her household: e 34. he believed in God and all his house. Under these words house and household, none doubteth but that servants are comprised. Now than if the servants of these had not harkened and yielded to the instructions of their master and mistress, would they have believed in him in whom their masters believed, or been baptised when their mistress was? The like may be gathered out of this phrase, f Rom. 16. 5. Philem. v. 2. The Church in their house: for thereby is implied that all in the house were of the same faith that their master and mistress were. It is expressly noted of the g Act. 10. 7. Soldier that waited continually on Cornelius, that he was a devout man, whereby it is presupposed that he harkened to his master's instructions: for it is noted of the master also, that h Vers. 2. he was a devout man and feared God. The benefit which redoundeth to servants by obeying such instructions, is unspeakable: much more good may be got by following the spiritual directions of religious masters, than the witty and commodious directions of the wisest statesmen, and the skilfullest artists, or tradesmen that be: so as there is a double bond to bind servants to obey this kind of instructions: 1. The bond of duty. 2. The bond of profit and benefit to themselves. §. 16. Of Servant's faults contrary to obedience in matters of religion. Notwithstanding the forenamed duty be so behooveful to servants, yet of all other duties is it by many least thought to be a duty, and most neglected, the clean contrary for the most part being practised, as may appear by these particulars. 1. Many servants are of so impious a mind, as of all masters Contrary, 1. Loath to serve religious masters. they will not serve such as are religious, and make conscience to instruct their servants in the way to salvation: they had rather serve profane masters, mere worldlings, and very Papists. For why? any thing better agreeth to corrupt nature then to be kept within the bounds of religion: few like the straight gate and narrow way that leadeth to life: for the god of this world so blindeth men's eyes, that they cannot see the blessing of life at the end of this way, they only see the straightness of it: or if they should see it a far off, yet they so savour the things of the flesh, and of this present evil world, as they would not regard that which is so far off. Now religious masters will endeavour what they can to keep all their servants in that narrow way; but irreligious masters will suffer them to follow the sway of their own corruption, to swear, to profane the Sabbath, and spend that whole day in sleeping, sporting, eating and drinking: to go to bed without prayer, or catechising, or reading the word of God, and so to rise again and go about their business: to which holy duties, such devout masters as Cornelius was, will hold their servants. 2. Others that are placed by their friends under such devout 2. Mutter against them being in service. masters, or not knowing before hand the disposition of their masters, have themselves covenanted with them to be their servants, after they have been a while in the house, think their master's house a prison to them, muttering and murmuring against their straight keeping in, as they deem it: and being called in to any religious exercise, they will be ready to say, I was not hired for this, neither am I bound to you herein, set me about your work and I will do it. 3. Some again are the more negligent and dissolute in their 3. Negligent because masters religious. business, because their masters are religious. It is a common complaint, that profane, worldly masters shall have more service then religious and godly masters, yea though these give better wages, diet and lodging then those. Many think the fault hereof to be in the master: but assuredly for the most part the fault is the corrupt disposition of servants, that esteem pleasure in sin, and liberty thereunto more than wages, diet, and lodging: whereby they show themselves impious against God, ungrateful to their masters, injurious to themselves. Let this perverse disposition be noted, that the rule of the Apostle very pertinent to this point, may be the better observed, They 1 Tim. 6. 2. that have believing masters let them not despise them, but rather do them service, because they are faithful and beloved. §. 17. Of servant's obedience to reproof and correction. The same directions may serve for yielding to reproof and correction: for they may both be brought to one head: and in the general they do both agree. For reproof is a verbal correction, and correction is a real reproof. The obedience which servants in regard of these must show to their masters is twofold. 1. Patiently to bear all manner of reproof and correction. 2. Readily to amend that for which they are justly reproved or corrected. For the first of these, servants have an express precept, enforced 1 Pet. 2. 18. etc. by many reasons in these words, Servants be subject to your masters with all fear, not only to the good and gentle, but also to the froward. For this is thank worthy if a man for conscience toward God endure grief, suffering wrongfully. For what glory is it if when ye be buffeted for your faults ye take it patiently? but if whey ye do well and suffer for it, ye take it patiently, this is acceptable with God. Here we see, 1. That correction is patiently to be borne by servants: if correction, then much more reproof. 2. That though correction be injustly inflicted, yet it is patiently to be endured: therefore much more when it is deserved. 3. That buffeting and that of a froward master is to be borne: therefore much more lighter correction of a good and gentle master. joseph patiently endured b Psal. 105. 18. fetters, and iron chains, and c Gen. 39 20. imprisonment inflicted upon him most unjustly, even for his faithfulness to his master. Great was the recompense which God made unto him: & assuredly God will recompense all the wrong, pain, and grief, that in this case shall be endured for conscience sake. For the Apostle saith, that this is thankworthy, that is, worthy of praise and commendation, and so worthy of recompense and reward. Again he saith that it is acceptable to God, so as God will recompense it, though men may account it but baseness and blockishness: yea though unjust masters may thereupon take occasion the more to trample upon, and insult over their servants. To these motives I may add the rule of our Christian profession (which is also intimated by the Apostle in these words, * 1 Pet. 2. 21. Even hereunto were ye called.) For our Christian calling requireth all men to d Rom. 12. 19 give place unto wrath: e Matt. 5. 39 To turn the other cheek when one is smitten: f Rom. 12. 21. To overcome evil with goodness. g 1 Pet. 2. 21. If all Christians must show such patience to all men, even their equals: how much more servants to masters? The Apostle commendeth to servants the example of Christ in this case: he was reviled and much he suffered, and that most injuriously, and yet patiently did he bear all: if servants thus suffer with him, they also shall reign with him. §. 18. Of the extremes contrary to servants patient bearing of reproof and correction. Patient bearing of rebuke and blows, seemeth an hard saying to most servants: they cannot endure to hear it: for their mind and carriage is clean contrary thereunto. 1. Some being but reproved, though justly, are ready to answer again, and to chop word for word: a sin b Tit. 2. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. expressly forbidden. It seemeth by the Apostles express mentioning of it, that answering again hath been an old evil quality in servants. Object. If a master unjustly reprove his servant, and the servant answer not again, he wittingly suffereth his master to continue in his error, and so maketh himself accessary to his master's sin. Answ. There is difference betwixt a spiteful, revengeful contradicting of that which is spoken, and an humble, mild, reverend, seasonable apology for that which is unjustly censured. This is lawful: but that is forbidden. 2. Others scorn to be corrected: which disdain they manifest many ways: as 1. By muttering, and saying they came not for that end. But though that were not the main end of their subjection, yet is it a means to keep them under subjection: and therefore to be endured by them. 2. By running away, as * See §. 12. Hagar. 3. By struggling and striving with their master or mistress: and taking the staff or wand by the end: or by holding the hands of those that correct them. Object. Shall I suffer myself wrongfully to be beaten, when I can help myself and hinder it? Answ. 1. Servant's may not be their own judges whether their correction be just or unjust: for men are so prone to soothe themselves and to extenuate the evil actions which they do, as if they be not corrected till they think it just, they would never be corrected. 2. To endure punishment (that I may use Saint Peter's word) is not otherways thankworthy. If justly thou be'st punished, thou hast but thy desert. If forcibly so as thou canst not resist, necessity maketh thee bear it. The sturdiest thieves that be, being pinnied, suffer themselves to be turned over, because they see a necessity. But Christ (whose e 1 Pet. 2. 21. example in this case is set before servants) f Mat. 26. 53. could have freed himself but would not. If servants endure for conscience sake, they will not resist, though they be able. 3. Others if they be smitten by master or mistress, will give as much as they receive, they will smite again: a practice unbeseeming any Christian, but most unseemly for Christian servants: who manifest thereby a despite of God's image and power in their masters. 4. Others are so possessed with a devil, as they will seek all the revenge they can, if they be corrected: whence it cometh to pass that some hot, heady, hardy youth, stick not to challenge their masters into the field: and others, more maliciously minded, secretly endeavour to take away the life of their masters. Many that have not the opportunity to practise such villainies, do notwithstanding in their hearts wish their master's destruction, and make most fearful imprecations against them; whereby they make themselves guilty of blood before God. §. 19 Of servants amending that for which they are justly reproved or corrected. More than patience is required of them that are deservedly rebuked or corrected for their faults: namely * See more of this point Treat. 5. §. 33. & 34. repentance, and amendment. Thus shall the smart and pain which servants endure, be as good physic unto them, and turn to their good. True amendment of former faults may make one a better servant than he was before he committed those faults: witness that which Saint Paul saith of Onesimus, b Philem. vers. 11. in time passed he was to thee unprofitable, but now profitable to thee and me. Contrary is their disposition, who notwithstanding all rebuke and correction go on still in their evil and lewd courses: and continue to provoke their master more and more, and so make them add blow unto blow, and stroke unto stroke, till they have no hope of them, but are forced to put them out of doors. This cometh either from a scornful, disdainful stomach (for c Pro. 13. 1. a scorner heareth not rebuke) or from a base, servile, stupid, blockish, brutish nature, that is not moved with any smart or pain, like a resty jade that will not stir though he be whipped or beaten never so much. d Pro. 26. 3. Solomon implieth thus much by putting into one leash an horse, an ass, and a fool: meaning by a fool a scornful, blockish servant: to whose back a rod is as a whip to an horse: of such a fool he saith, that e Pro. 17. 10. an hundred stripes enter not into him: and again, f Pro. 27. 22. Though thou shouldest bray a fool in a mortar among wheat with a pestle, yet will not his foolishness depart from him. But what shall we say of such as for rebuke and correction are the worse? What, but that shame, beggary, and some ignominious death or other is like to befall them. Hitherto of the kinds of servants duties. The next point respecteth the manner of performing them. §. 20. Of serving with trembling. The Manner how servants ought to perform their duties is noted in four phrases: The first whereof is this, with fear and trembling. I. Fear is both as a fountain from whence all other duties flow: and also as a sauce to season them all. Commonly the season and savour of waters cometh from the fountain: which Saint james implieth, where he saith, no fountain doth yield salt water and fresh: for if the fountain be jam. 3. 12. salt, the streams issuing from thence will be salt: and fresh, if the fountain be fresh: so if fear be seated in the heart of servants, all their obedience and submission will be seasoned therewith. Let therefore servants here learn by their manner of performing all their duties, to declare that there is a true servant-like fear seated in their hearts. Hereof I shall need say no more than what hath been * §. 4. before delivered. The other word * See Treat. 1. §. 124. trembling added to fear, addeth emphasis, showing that it is no small fear that is required of servants: and it giveth them to wit that their masters having a power to punish them, they must so carry themselves as they provoke not their master to wrath, but be very careful and circumspect to avoid his displeasure, that they give him no just occasion of offence. This care had that servant of David which first espied Absolom hanging in a tree, and told joab thereof: 2 Sam. 18. 12. he so feared the displeasure of the king his master, as to gain a thousand shekels of silver he durst not kill Absolom. The like is noted of Obadiah, who was afraid to tell his master Ahab where Eliah was, left his master might have thought he had mocked him, if the Spirit had carried Eliah away. 1 King. 18. 9 etc. This trembling fear is needful in regard of the small love that servants commonly bear to their masters. There are not those motives to stir up love in servants to their masters, as in children to their parents: except therefore through awe and dread they be kept in compass, they will exceedingly transgress: and because this is so needful, servants must labour to nourish it, as a means to keep them from overmuch boldness. Contrary on the one side is a proud despising of a master's authority (saying, if not with their mouths, yet in their heart, as Gaal of Abimelech, who is he that we should serve him? or as those that despised the government of Christ their master, judg. 9 28. m Luk. 19 14. we will not have this man to reign over us: and again, n Psal. 2. 3. let us break his bonds asunder, and cast away his cords from us.) And on the other side a wretched carelessness, not fearing any punishment before they feel it: like to many desperate thieves that no whit fear the power of the judge, but desperately say, we have but one death to pay. The authority of God himself is despised, and his revenging hand is lightly regarded by such proud and desperate servants: so as their sin is no small sin. §. 21. Of serving with sincerity. The second branch concerning the manner of servants performing their duty is in these words, in singleness of heart, 11. so as all must be performed with an honest and upright heart: whatsoever ye do, do it heartily, saith the Apostle to servants Col. 3. 23. in another place. Thus did joseph in singleness of heart serve his master: instance his refusing to abuse his mistress in Gen. 39 11, 12. a private chamber when she desired it, and no other body was in the house. Happy were it for masters to have such servants: then might they take no more care than Potiphar did, but put Gen. 39 6. all that they have into their servant's hands. Neither would this rare virtue in servants be only profitable to their masters, but also very comfortable to themselves, and bring them much peace of conscience. Contrary is hypocritical service: when servants have a heart, and a heart, making shew-of one heart outwardly, and have another, even a clean contrary heart within them. Such Psal. 12. 2. an one was Gehazi, who came in and stood before his master, as if he had performed some good service for his master, when 2. King 5. 25. he had most highly dishonoured him: and such an one was judas who carried as fair a face to his master as any of the disciples, and yet was an arrant traitor: for when he was thought to go out to buy provision for his master, he went to john 13. 29. betray him. All eye-service is contrary to the forenamed singleness of heart: when servants are diligent so long as their master's eye is on them: Eye service. like little children that will do any thing their mother will have them do, while her eye is upon them; but nothing, when her back is turned. The world is full of such eye-seruing servants, who while their masters are present, will be as busy as Bees: but if he be away, then either idling at home, or gadding abroad, or nothing but wrangling, and eating, and drinking with the drunken; like that lewd servant whom Christ noteth in the parable Matth. 24. 49. Let the judgement denounced against him be noted of such servants. §. 22. Of serving for conscience sake. The third branch of the manner of servants performing III. Sat seruus non ut seruus ad oculum, sed ut domini studiosus. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 12. their duty is in these words, as unto Christ, as the servants of Christ, doing the will of God, as to the Lord: all which do set forth a good conscience, or such service as is performed for conscience sake, or for the Lords sake, which is all one: because the conscience hath an eye only to the Lord, to his will, and to his ordinance. Though there were no other motive in the world to move them to obey their masters, yet their conscience to God would move them. Such was Joseph's manner of serving his master, as the reason which he himself rendereth to his mistress showeth, How can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God? The Gen. 39 9 prayer which abraham's servant made to God, and the thanks Gen. 24. 12, 27. which he rendered to him for blessing his journey, show, that he served his master for the Lords sake. It is more clear than needs be proved, that such was jacob's service to his master. This is the rather to be noted of Christian servants, because herein lieth the greatest difference betwixt believing servants, and others: others may serve with fear and trembling, in singleness of heart, and with good will; but only Saints do service as to Christ for conscience sake: If this be not that which only they aim at, yet assuredly they do chiefly and principally aim at it: which maketh them not to content themselves with doing the thing, but to endeavour to do it after the best manner that they can, so as God may best accept thereof: whereby as they approve themselves to God, so they do much good to their masters, and bring much comfort unto their own souls. Contrary is the mind of most, who do all the service which Service on by-respects. they do on by-respects: they may perform much duty, and it may be do much good to their masters; and thereupon they may get good wages at their master's hands, and extraordinary recompense also, and live in much quiet under them: but no reward can they look for at God's hands: so as I may say to such servants, as Christ said to those who did all to have glory of men, They have their reward. Matth. 6. 2. §. 23. Of servant's willingness to perform their duty. The fourth branch respecting the manner of servants performing FOUR their duty, is noted in this phrase, with good will. This good will of a servant to his master, hath respect partly to the disposition of the servant, and so it implieth willingness and cheerfulness; Service to be done cheerfully. and partly to the benefit of the master, and so it implieth faithfulness. Of willingness to do that duty which belongeth to a servant, Christ jesus (who b Phil. 2. 7. took upon him the form of a servant) hath made himself a worthy pattern. c Psal. 40. 8. I delight to do thy will, saith he to him that sent him: and again, d Joh. 4. 34. My meat is to do the will of him that sent me, and to finish his work. Doth not a man eat his meat willingly, with delight and cheerfulness? even so did Christ the work of him that sent him. So cheerfully did jaakob serve his Uncle Laban, that e Gen. 29. 20. seven years seemed to him but a few days. Object. The reason thereof was the love he had to Rachel. 1. Answ. This was one reason, but not the only reason: had he not borne good will to his Uncle and Master, as well as love to his wife, the time might have seemed tedious enough: but both meeting together, made the time pass away the better. 2. Answ. If the love he had to Rachel made him do his service so cheerfully: then if servant's love God, for whose sake they ought to do their service, it will cheerfully be done. 1. That which the Apostle applieth to giving of alms (2 Cor. 9 7.) may be extended to all manner of duties which God requireth, God loveth cheerfulness: that work therefore which is not seasoned therewith God regardeth not. 2. As cheerfulness maketh God the better to like the work, so it maketh the work much more easy to him that doth it. Our common proverb noteth as much, Nothing is hard to a willing mind. 3. * Apostolus seruos monet dominis suis ex animo cum bona voluntate seruire, ut scilicet si non possunt à dominis liberi fieri, suam seruitutem ipsi quodammedo liberam faciant. Aug de Ciu. Dei, l. 19 c. 15. Direction. Let there be cheerfulness in a servant's mind, and he is as free as his master: for such a servant is the Lords freeman (1 Cor. 7. 22.) and when he cannot be made free of his master, he doth after a manner make his service free. Have an eye to God, to his acceptation, and remuneration, and it will quicken thy spirit. Man's reward maketh poor men glad of work, and cheerful in doing their work: it is as sugar to sharp wine. Tradesmen, Physicians, Lawyers, all sorts of men, are by gain drawn on with great willingness to take great pains. Should not God's recompense of our pains make us much more willing? Surely it would, if we had such an eye of Heb. 11. 26. faith as Moses had, thereby to see the recompense of reward which he saw. Contrary is heaviness of spirit, and discontentedness of mind, Contrary, discontentedness. when servants do their service lowringly, grudgingly, by compulsion (as Bears are brought to a stake) and of necessity, as slaves in a galley. Such service must needs be untowardly done: but though outwardly it be well done, yet can the doer have little comfort therein, because God accepteth it not. §. 24. Of servant's quickness and diligence in their service. Servants, in testimony of their willingness and cheerfulness, must be both quick and diligent in their service: for these are effects of willingness. Quickness hath respect to the time of doing a thing. Diligence to the pains that is taken about it. He that is quick in his service taketh up no more time about Quickness. one thing then must needs; but is ready to do one thing after another; and thus doth much more service. It is expressly noted of Rebekah, that she b Gen. 24. 18, 20. hasted, and let down her pitcher: and hasted and emptied her pitcher, and ran again to the Well. And Abraham's servant having made what speed he could to the place whither he was sent, c Gen. 24. 33. would not eat till he had told his errand: after he had told it, if he had not sped, d vers. 49. he would not have delayed time, but have gone again forthwith: when he had well dispatched all, e vers. 56. he would not stay upon any compliments, but hasted away to his master. f 2 Sam. 18. 23. Ahimaaz striven with Cushi who should soon bring their message to their master: and Ahimaaz outstripped Cushi, for he had a very willing mind to do the business. The manner of charge which Elisha gave to his servant, implieth all the speed he could make: it was this, g 2 King. 4. 29. Gird up thy loins, go thy way: if thou meet any by the way, salute him not: and if any salute thee, answer him not again. He that is diligent in his service, will not only be quick for the Diligence. time, but also hold on, and employ all the labour and pains that he can for the well effecting of that which he is to do. That general charge laid upon all men, in particular appertaineth to a servant ( h Gen. 3. 19 In the sweat of thy face thou shalt eat bread) and that which Solomon noteth ( i Eccl. 9 10. what soever thine hand findeth to do, do it with thy might.) Great was jacob's diligence (for he saith of himself in doing his master's business, k Gen. 31. 40. In the day the drought consumed me, and the frost by night, and my sleep departed from mine eyes.) Great also was the diligence of those shepherds, that l Luke 2. 8. kept watch over their flock by night: and of * Mat. 25. 16, 17. those servants, that by their pains doubled the talents which were committed to them. As diligence is by these and many like examples commended unto us, so is it further set forth by the many promises which are made unto it, as, m Pro. 10. 4. The hand of the diligent maketh rich: n & 12. 14. The recompense of a man's hands shall be rendered unto him: o vers. 24. The hand of the diligent shall be are rule: * & 14. 23. In all labour there is profit. The work which servants are by their master appointed to do, is to them the work of God: whereupon the Apostle saith to servants as well as to others, p 1 Cor. 7. 17. as God hath called every one, so let him walk: but the work of God is to be done with all diligence: for q Jer. 48. 10. Cursed is he that doth the work of the Lord negligently. Contrary is the idleness, laziness, slothfulness, and sluggishness Idleness. of servants. These are faults too too common. Solomon much inveigheth against these vices, setting them forth in their kind, and setting down the many mischiefs that follow thereupon. Thus he deciphereth them; r Pro. 26. 13, 14, 15. The slothful man saith, there is a Lion in the way (that is, he pretendeth unlikely danger) As the door turneth upon the hinges, so a slothful man upon his bed. The slothful hideth his hand in his bosom, it grieveth him to bring it again to his mouth. s & 24. 33. Yet a little sleep, a little slumber, a little folding of the hands to sleep. These are the mischiefs which he noteth to come from idleness and sloth, t & 10. 4. Poverty, u & 12. 24. Servitude, x & 13. 4. Fruitless wishes and desires, y & 19 15. Hunger, z & 20. 4. Beggary, a & 21. 25. Death. And to show what small joy or comfort masters may have in slothful servants, he compareth them to vinegar and smoke, which are as irksome to the teeth and eyes as can be: b & 10. 26. As vinegar (saith he) is to the teeth, and smoke to the eyes, so is the sluggard to them that send him. And because many idle packs think and say they do no hurt, he further saith, that c & 18. 9 He that is slothful in his work is brother to him that is a great waster: in which respect Christ styleth a slothful servant, d Mat. 25. 26, 30. a wicked and unprofitable servant: and giveth him the portion of those who do much hurt. How lightly soever many servants esteem idleness and sloth, the truth is, that it is a plain theft. For the best service that servants can do, is due to their master: and they ought to be as diligent in their master's work, as if it were their own. So as it is not enough to avoid idleness in doing nothing at all, but they must take heed that they be not slothful in doing something: for as good not at all, as never a whit the better. I have the further pressed this point, because it is noted as a blemish in such servants as profess religion to be most lazy and negligent, least sedulous and diligent. Much of that time which they should spend about their master's business (which is their particular calling) they spend in prating about state, and church-business, (matters not belonging to them.) Thus they make their masters weary of their service; and by reason thereof they are oft shifted from house to house, and as rolling stones, gather no moss: they neither learn skill, whereby they may, when they are of themselves, maintain themselves, and do good to others: nor lay up any stock or portion, as others which are diligent do: yea they get such an habit of idleness, as they can never shake it off again: for they who are slothful being under masters, seldom prove diligent when they are for themselves. In these is Solomon's proverb verified, The talk of the lips tendeth only to penury. Pro. 14. 23. §. 25. Of servant's faithfulness. It was * §. 23. before noted, that the good will here required of servants to their masters had respect to the profit and benefit which servants by their service might bring to their masters: and in that respect it compriseth faithfulness under it, Faithfulness (I say) whereby servants do well discharge that trust which is committed to them. Expressly it is commanded to servants, b Tit. 2. 10. To show all good faithfulness, and c 1 Cor. 4. 2. it is required in stewards that a man be found faithful. The phrase which is used of Moses, d Heb. 3. 5. He was faithful as a servant, showeth that faithfulness by a kind of propriety appertaineth to a servant: and e Mat. 25. 21. where Christ coupleth these two, good and faithful, he giveth us to understand that a servant's goodness consisteth in his faithfulness. Great is the benefit that by servant's faithfulness will redound both to master and servant. The benefit which cometh to the master, Solomon noteth in this proverb, As the cold of snow (is very acceptable, comfortable Pro. 25. 13. and profitable) in the time of harvest (when men are even sweltered with heat) so is a faithful messenger to them that send him: for he refresheth the soul of his masters: and again in this, A faithful ambassador is health, that is, he bringeth safety to his master. Pro. 13. 17. The benefit which redoundeth to the servant himself by his faithfulness Christ noteth in this his approbation, and remuneration thereof, Well done thou good and faithful servant, Mat. 25. 21. thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee Ruler over many things, enter thou into the joy of thy Lord. Every servant shall be called to his account: if not by his master on earth, yet by his master in heaven: he will say to every one, Give an account of thy stewardship: now than if servants have not been Luk. 16. 2. faithful, what other discharge can they look for, then that which the wicked, slothful, and unprofitable servant (who hid his talon in a napkin) received, namely this, Cast ye the Mat. 25. 30. unprofitable servant into outer darkness, there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. Let all unfaithful servants note this: for to faithfulness is contrary all unfaithfulness, as negligence, deceit, thievery, treachery, and such like vices. Much damage, disgrace, and vexation is brought by such servants to masters: and better it had been that they never had come into a man's house. But that the point of faithfulness may be the better discerned, and observed, I will exemplify it in seven particulars whereabout it ought especially to be exercised, which are, 1. The Goods, 2. The Businesses and affairs, 3. The Counsels and secrets, 4. The other servants, 5. the Children, 6. The Bedfellow, 7. The Person of their master or mistress. §. 26. Of servant's faithfulness about their master's goods. Two things are required of servants to testify their faithfulness about their master's goods. 1. 1. A safe keeping of them. 2. An increasing of them. 1. Whatsoever is committed by masters unto their servants, they must so carefully preserve, as it be not lost, spoiled, or impaired Servant's must well preserve their master's goods. under their hands, whether they be things within doors, or without. I may to this purpose not unfitly apply that charge unto servants which in another case the Apostle gave to Timothy, b 1 Tim. 6. 20. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Keep that which is committed to thy trust: the Metaphor is taken from servants, and so showeth what is their duty. Great was Joseph's faithfulness in this kind, which made his master c Gen. 39 4. put all that he had into his hand. So great was jackobs faithfulness, that d & 31. 38, 39 in twenty years his master's ewes and she Goats, being under his hand, cast not their young, nor the Rams were devoured: if any thing were torn of beasts, he brought it not to his master, but bare the loss of it himself. If servants espy any damage or hurt done by others to their master's goods, they must redress it, if they can, or at least make it known to their masters, that he may give order for the redressing of it: as the servants of him that sowed good seed among which tares were sowed, mentioned Mat. 13. 27. in the parable. Masters that put servants in trust, securely go about other affairs, and look not themselves to those goods which are under their servant's custody, which is to be presupposed they would do, if they trusted not their servants. Great reason therefore it is that servants be careful of those things which are so committed to them. 2. They ought further to do what lieth in them to advance Servant's must endeavour to increase their master's estate. Gen. 30. 30. Mat. 25. 16, 17. their master's estate, and to increase his stock. The little which Laban had was by jacob's faithfulness in this kind increased unto a multitude. The talents which were committed to the two faithful servants were by their industry increased to as many more. So as it is not sufficient for servants not to impair their master's estate, but they must better it: for he that kept safe his master's talon, and gave him his own again, was counted an unprofitable servant, and received the doom of wasters. Most masters take servants for their advantage and benefit, for it is but little ease for a master to provide diet and lodging for many servants, and to give them wages, if they reap no profit and benefit by them. §. 27. Of servant's carelessness over their master's goods. Contrary to servant's fidelity in safe keeping their master's goods committed to their charge is Carelessness and negligence in suffering loss and damage come to their masters as in the fields, when they look not to his senses and gats: or neglect his cattle so as they be stolen, or suffer diseases to grow upon them, or give them not fodder and water in due season. Or in the house, when they leave doors or windows open, and thieves come in and take away, or hook out their master's goods: or carelessly leave the fire, or let candles burn so as the house may be see on fire: or suffer householdstuff, and apparel to lie till it be motheaten or otherwise spoiled: or suffer any thing in the house to be broken: or victual to lie in corners moulding, or to be cast up and down for dogs and cats. When Christ so increased the bread and fish, wherewith many thousands were fed, that many fragments were left, he bid his disciples gather up what remained, and rendered this reason, that nothing be lost. The damage which may come by john 6. 12. servant's carelessness, may be more than ever they can be able to make satisfaction for: and therefore they ought the more carefully to prevent it. §. 28. Of servant's fraud. Contrary to the other branch of servant's faithfulness in increasing their master's estate, is all manner of theft and fraud, whether it be by retaining that which is due to their masters, or by purloining from them that which they have. b Tit. 2. 10. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. The Apostle expressly forbiddeth servants to purloin. The word translated purloin, is the same whereby the fraud of Ananias is set forth, who c Acts 5. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. kept back part of the price of a possession which they sold: so as thereby is forbidden not only open and manifest stealth, as pilfering money out of their master's purse, chest, or counter; or conveying away their corn, wares, or any other goods: but also putting more into the account of expenses than hath been expended, or into the account of debts less than is due (as the unjust steward, who for a debt of an hundred measures of oil put in fifty, and for an hundred of Luke 16. 6, 7. wheat put in fourscore) or spending more than needs, or bringing in ill company into the house when their masters are absent, and entertaining them on their master's cost, or concealing part of the price which hath been taken for any wares, or borrowing money in their master's names, or taking greater fees than their masters wot of, or receiving bribes or gifts which their masters refuse (as Gehazi) or hiring others to do their work upon their master's cost, or inveigling away their master's 2 King. 5. 22. customers, or purloining away other men's goods committed to their master's trust (as Tailors servants, who thereby both much discredit their masters, and also hinder their custom.) Object. What if masters detain their servant's wages? may they not by privy means right themselves? Answ. A master's sin is no warrant to make servants answer sin with sin. The law is as open for servants as for masters: if not, God's ears are open for their complaints: he can and will redress all, or here or hereafter. f Gen. 31. 42. Note jacob's example. Many make this a just pretence: but whether it be just or no, it is not safe to open this gap of deceit. These and such like kinds of deceit are the more heinous sins because of that trust which masters repose in servants: for they violate both the bond of justice, and of fidelity also. If a servant embezzle or defraud his master of any of his 21. Of Hen. 8. Stat. 7. And 5. of Eliz. Stat. 10. goods to the value of forty shillings, he is adjudged a fellow by our statute law. §. 29. Of servant's faithfulness in the businesses which they are to dispatch for their masters. In the businesses which masters commit to the care of II. their servants to be dispatched by them, they must do their best endeavour that all may prosper under their hands: as it is noted of joseph, a Gen. 39 2. he was a prosperous man: we have not only a pregnant proof, but also an excellent direction for this point, in the b Gen. 24. example of Abraham's servant, who was very faithful in dispatching the business of fetching a wife for Isaak: therein let these particulars be noted. 1. He feared God: the whole carriage of that business testifieth as much. There is a double bond to tie servants hereunto: one in respect of themselves, that in the thing which they do they may be accepted of God: another in respect of their masters, that their master's business may prosper under their hands: God prospereth such as fear him, in all things they take in hand: instance the examples of c Gen. 30. 27. jaakob, d & 39 2. joseph, and e 1 Sam. 18. 14. David. 2. He f Gen. 24. 12. called upon God to prosper his endeavours: now prayer is the best means that possibly can be used to obtain any blessing from the Lord. Without it all our endeavours are vain ( g Psal. 127. 2. It is in vain to rise up early and sit up late, and to eat the bread of carefulness, except God's blessing accompany all.) 3. He h Gen. 24. 27. gave thanks when he saw the Lord begin to prosper that he took in hand: thanksgiving for the beginning of a blessing, is an effectual means for continuance of that blessing: yea it is also an effectual means to move God to prosper other things that we take in hand: so as, if servants desire to prosper in all the affairs which they undertake for their masters, they must render thanks for the first success which he hath given, and so for the second, third, fourth, and for every success. 4. He took all the opportunities he could: i Gen. 24. 17, 23. when he saw a maid to inquire of, he ran to her, and inquired what was behooveful for his matter: when he had ground to think she was the maid, k Vers. 22. he presented gifts to her: l Vers. 33. so soon as he was brought to the house, he falls upon the matter for which he came, even before he did eat any thing: after matters to his liking were concluded, he maketh no tarrying, but with all speed carrieth the maid to Isaak. In a word, he omitted nothing that in the uttermost of his wisdom he conceived to be behooveful for that matter: more he could not have done, if the matter had wholly concerned himself. I shall need no further to urge this point, then by setting this pattern before servants. Contrary is their disposition who care not whether the things which they do for their master prosper or no: if they have taken any pains therein, so as their master cannot say they have altogether neglected it, there is all that they care for. If it succeed not well, they will say they are not in God's place to make every thing which is done to prosper. But though the whole blessing rest in God, yet hath he sanctified means for obtaining his blessing (as faith, prayer, thanksgiving, and the like) which because they use not, they fail in this point of faithfulness. Nay further, they use those things which do mainly hinder and keep away God's blessing, and in stead thereof bring a curse upon all they do, as profaneness, uncleanness, drunkenness, and all manner of riotousness, yea despising Gods word and holy ordinances, reproaching his Saints, taking his name in vain by swearing, forswearing, and blaspheming, lying, also backbiting, pilfering, and other like vices. These irreligious and wicked servants, as they sin against God and their own souls, so also against their master: it is not for master's profit to keep such servants. §. 30. Of servant's faithfulness in keeping their master's secrets, and concealing their infirmities. By reason of that near bond which is betwixt master III. and servants, and their near and continual abiding together, and the many employments which masters have for their servants, servants come to know many of their master's secrets: faithfulness therefore requireth to keep them close. Provided that they be not such secrets as tend to the dishonour of God, or to the danger of the Commonwealth and Church, no nor of a private person: for a 1 Sam. 20. 12. jonathan is commended for discovering the mischief which Saul had secretly intended against David. For proof of the point, note what Solomon saith, b Pro. 11. 13. He that is of a faithful spirit concealeth a matter: namely, a secret matter. Note also how faithful c jer. 38. 27. jeremiah was in keeping Zedekiahs' counsel: though the Princes enquired after it, yet would he not reveal it to them. To this head is to be referred a faithful concealing of master's infirmities: for the best that be are subject to many: and servants which are under their master's roof continually waiting on them, cannot choose but espy many: if herein servants be not faithful, masters were better be without servants in their houses. Contrary to keeping close the secrets of masters, is blabbing abroad all such things as servants know concerning their masters: which is too common a fault: for when servants of diverse houses men or maids meet together, all their talk for the most part is of their masters and mistresses, whereby it cometh to pass that all the secrets of an house are soon known about the whole town or city. Solomon styleth such an one a tale-bearer: A tale-bearer, saith he, revealeth secrets: or, he that Pro. 11. 13. & 20. 19 revealeth secrets is a tale-bearer: for many of Solomon's proverbs are convertible, they may be turned either way. Now note how Solomon noteth out the mischiefs that tale-bearers work: The words of a tale-bearer are as wounds, (they wound the precious name and credit of a man) and they go down into the innermost Pro. 18. 8. part of the belly, that is, they do, as it were, strike thorough the very heart of a man. Again he noteth them to be the cause of all strife, and to raise discord betwixt chief friends: and in Pro. 16. 28. Pro. 26. 20. that respect fitly resembleth them to wood which is the very fuel of fire. What enemies then are such servants to an house? They are even as treacherous spies, the most dangerous enemies that be. Thus we see that this is no light sin: yet is it so much the more odious when masters and mistresses infirmities (the publishing whereof may much impair their credit) are made known. §. 31. Of servant's faithfulness in helping one another. Where many fellow servants are together, faithfulness requireth that one be helpful to another in what they may; IV. as by good example, good counsel, encouragement in good courses, dissuasion from lewd and wicked practices, peace and unity, with the like. The Lord Christ expressly calleth such an one a faithful servant, and pronounceth him blessed. Mat. 24. 45, 46. Example and advice of ones equal prevaileth much with another, so as a fellow servant may in this kind do more good than the master himself: and if by his means he bring his fellow servants to be faithful, his own faithfulness is doubled and trebled; and his master receiveth a double and treble benefit thereby: namely the benefit of this good servant's faithfulness, and the benefit of all the other servant's faithfulness whom he hath made faithful. Contrary is their practice who by their ill example corrupt Mat. 24. 49. their fellows (as that evil servant, who, when his master was away, did eat and drink with the drunken, that is, did cause Gen. 37. 18, etc. others to be drunken with him) or by ill counsel draw one another on to evil (as the sons of jaakob, who when they saw joseph a far off, said one to another, Behold this dreamer Mat. 24. 49. cometh, come now and let us slay him, etc. and as they, who, when they saw their master's son, said among themselves, This is the heir, come let us kill him, and let us seize on his inheritance) or are ever quarrelling with their fellows, and smiting them (as that forenamed evil servant whom the Lord threateneth to cut off) or dissuade one another from obedience and subjection (as they who said, Let us break their bonds Psal 2. 3. asunder, and cast away their cords from us; and as Sheba, who said, we have no part in David: every man to his tents O Israel.) 2 Sam. 20. 1. These faults are very rife among servants: whence it cometh to pass that there are so few good, and so many bad servants: too true is this proverb, One scabbed sheep mars a whole flock. Let there be in a great family one servant that is profane, proud, riotous, stout, rebellious, or otherwise vicious, and all will soon be like him. Among other parts of unfaithfulness in this kind one of the most monstrous (which yet is too too frequent) is to allure one another to uncleanness, and men and maids to defile one another. We showed * §. 11. before, that it was unlawful for servants during the time of their service to marry without their master's consent: how abominable then is it to defile one another? The sin is doubled being betwixt servants: for as it is a beastly sin in itself, so in the forenamed respect it is greatly dishonourable to their master and his house: besides that the maid so defiled is oft disabled to do her service well: nay many times the charge of the child lieth upon the master. Thus shame and dishonour, grief and vexation, loss and damage all meet together, the more to gall & pierce him to the very heart. Is not this then a great part of unfaithfulness? Deserveth it not to be severely punished, and that openly, and publicly with shame and smart too, that others may take warning thereby? Many use means to escape the revenging hand of man: but though they escape man's hand, they shall be sure to meet with God's heavy vengeance: whoremongers God will judge. Daily experience showeth what misery * Heb. 13. 4. such wretches bring themselves unto, and how God meeteth with them, and that most fearfully. §. 32. Of servant's faithfulness about their master's children. Great faithfulness may servants manifest to their masters V. in and about their children: as while they are young and not able to look to themselves, to be tender over them, and well to tend them: maids especially neatly to handle and look to them, and cleanly to bring them up: and they that have a particular charge of them, to seek their good in every thing they can, and give them their due portion: and (because children are much in servant's company) to use in their hearing such speech as may minister grace to them, and to teach them good things, and (when they grow to some ripeness of years) to bear a reverend respect to them, and esteem them their betters because they are their master's children. It is noted of Abraham's servant, that he called his master's Gen. 24. 65. son, Master. Children are dear to parents: the honour and kindness done to them they account as done to themselves: this kind of faithfulness therefore must needs be highly esteemed by masters in their servants: and assuredly it is a great means to work a good respect in masters towards them. Yet Contrarily do many servants carry themselves towards Points of unfaithfulness in servants about their master's children. their master's children, as is apparent by these particulars. 1. Some in their carriage are very hoggish and churlish to their master's children when their parents are out of sight. 2. Others are very careless of them, and tend them very sluttishly, not caring how they go: whereby they oft procure great displeasure from their master and mistress. 3. Others get from their master's children what they can: and deprive them of their allowance, turning it to their own gain. 4. Others exceedingly corrupt their master's children with their filthy and corrupt communication: teaching them to swear, blaspheme, and use all manner of unclean speeches: thus is that proverb verified, evil communications 1 Cor. 15. 33. corrupt good manners. Children oft times in their young years learn such ill language and behaviour of lewd servants, as their parents can never get them to leave again: so as they may curse the day that ever such servants came into their house. 5. Others allure them to stage-plays, to dice-houses, and other like places, which are the very bane of youth: and draw them to spend in riot such allowance as their parents allow them, yea and beyond that allowance, so as they run in debt, and get such an habit of spending, as at length they make away their whole estate. 6. Others inveigle their affections: and oft draw them to folly and uncleanness. This filthy kind of unfaithfulness is so much worse than that which was * §. 31. before noted betwixt fellow servants, by how much nearer and dearer children are to their parents then servants to their masters. 7. Others that dare not commit this abominable wickedness, stick not to do that which is little better, namely to draw them on to be contracted, yea and married to them often times, and that privily without consent of their parents: whereby parents affections are oft so alienated from their children, as they will not acknowledge them for children, but clean cast them off. These are the fruits of this lewd kind of unfaithfulness in servants. §. 33. Of servant's faithfulness in regard of their masters, or mistress' bedfellow. So faithful ought servants to be to their masters and VI mistresses, that if one of them should labour to use a servant in any manner of deceit to the other, the servant ought not to yield. As if a master should move his maid privily to take away jewels, plate, money, linen, or any such thing as is in her mistress custody. It skilleth not that the master hath the chiefest power over all the goods: a secret taking of them away without the privity of the mistress in whose custody they are, is in the servant deceit, and a point of unfaithfulness. Much less ought any servants be moved by their mistress privily to take away their master's corn, wares, or any goods for her private use. Of the two this is the greater part of unfaithfulness. If such deceit ought not to be used about any goods, much less about the body of master or mistress. As if a master should allure his maid to commit folly with him, or a mistress her man, both their conscience to God, and also their faithfulness to their master or mistress should make them utterly to refuse it, and to give no place to any such temptation. a Gen. 39 7. etc. joseph is propounded as a pattern herein: and against the suggestion of his mistress he rendereth the two forenamed reasons: his conscience to God in these words, how can I do this great wickedness and sin against God? His faithfulness to his master in these, He hath not kept back any thing from me but thee, how then etc. To this head may be referred servants faithfulness in making known to their master the sin of his wife, and to their mistress the sin of her husband, especially if it be such a sin as may tend to the ruin of the family, and that by the knowledge thereof, the party that is not blinded and besotted with the sin, but rather free from it, may be a means to redress it. Thus b 1 Sam. 25. 14. Nabals servants made known to Abigail the churlishness of Nabal towards David's servants: by which means the mischief intended against the house was prevented. Thus if servants know that their master intendeth some mortal revenge against another, to tell his wife thereof in time, may be great faithfulness: or if they know their mistress hath appointed to go away privily from her husband, to tell him of it, is a part of faithfulness. This may be applied to many other like cases. The contrary is yielding to masters or mistresses in any point of deceit one against another: whereunto servants are too prone, because they think to be bolstered out by the authority of the party that setteth them on work to deceive. But no authority can be a warrant for any deceit, or wickedness. §. 34. Of servant's faithfulness about their master's persons. Masters and Mistresses are flesh and blood as well as servants, VII. and so subject to weakness, sickness, old age, and other distresses, wherein they may stand in great need of servant's help: servants therefore must be faithful in affording them the best help that they can. Saul's servants did a part of faithfulness to their master, when, he being vexed with an evil spirit, a 1 Sam. 16. 16. they inquired after means to ease him. So did David's servants, when he being bedrid, b 1 King. 1. 2. they sought out one to cherish him. It was a point of faithfulness in Naaman's c 2 King. 5. 3. maid, to tell her mistress of a means whereby her master might be cured of his leprosy: and in his d vers. 13. servants, to persuade him to use the means prescribed by the Prophet. Contrary is a servants ungrateful and inhuman leaving of his master in his time of need, as the servants of job did: for when the hand of God lay heavy upon him, and all his goods were taken from him, and his body full of sore boiles, e job 19 15, 16. they that dwelled in his house, and his maids counted him for a stranger: and he was an alien in their sight: he called his servant, and he gave him no answer. So did f 2 Sam. 19 26. Ziba leave Mephibosheth in his greatest need: and g Mat. 26. 56. the Disciples fly from their master jesus Christ. But what shall we say of those that take occasion from their master's impotency to murder him themselves, as h 2 Sam. 4. 6. Rechab and Baanah; or to betray him to his enemies, as i Mat. 26. 15. Indas betrayed the Lord Christ? what, but that such traitorous servants may look for such ends. §. 35. Of the means to make servants faithful. Among many other means to make servants faithful to their master, and careful to perform other duties sincerely, willingly, cheerfully, and diligently, as hath before been noted, this is one of the most general, namely, that servants, in all things they do for their master, make their master's case their own, and so do for him as they would for themselves, or as they would have their own servants do for them. The general rule of the Law is, a Leu. 19 18. Love thy neighbour as thyself; and b Mat. 7. 12. whatsoever you would that men should do to you, do you even so to them. If thus every man must respect another, yea though he be a stranger, then much more must servants respect their master, because all that they can do is after an especial manner as a debt due to their masters: in which respect Christ saith, that when they have done all that is Luke 17. 10. commanded, they have but done their duty. This I have the rather noted, because the practice of most servants is contrary thereunto. For while they work for their masters, they will cry out that they are over-burdened, and tired with that work which they will easily go thorough withal when they work for themselves. They that while they work for their master, must be called to it again and again, and forced to stand to it, and to hold out till it be done, what pains will they take, how early will they rise, how late will they sit up, how diligent will they be for themselves? When journeymen receive increase of wages according to the work which they do, they will dispatch more than a prentice that hath but cloth, food, and lodging. Again, many that in their master's goods are very lavish, and wasteful, when they come to before themselves are very sparing, saving, and provident. What do these things argue but that servants do not bear to their masters that mind which they should: they do not for them as they would do for themselves. Very requisite it is therefore that the forenamed general rule be observed. Hitherto of the several kinds of servants duties, and of the manner of performing them. It remaineth to speak both of the extent of their duties, and also of the restraint of that extent. §. 36. Of servant's endeavour to make their judgement agree with their masters. The extent of servant's duties is in my text only implied under this indefinite particle (Obey) (which being not restrained to any particulars, must be extended to every thing) but in other places it is expressly laid down in these general terms, a Col. 3. 22. Obey in all things, b Tit. 2. 9 Please well in all things. It is not therefore sufficient that servants perform their duties well in some things, they must do it in all things, yea in things that may be against their own mind and liking, if their master will have it so. For this end let servants note these two rules. The same extent and restraint Extent of servant's duties. that was * Treat. 3. §. 63, etc. & Treat. 5. §. 35. before noted in laying forth the duties of other inferiors, is here also to be observed in the duties of servants: for therein they all agree. The same rules therefore that were before set down, may here again be applied. I refer the reader to those places for a more large amplification of the generals: and here I will content myself with adding such particular proofs as are most proper and pertinent to servants. 1. That they labour to bring their judgement to the bent of their master's judgement, and to think that meet and good which Servant's must labour to bring their judgement to agree with their masters. he doth. Thus the c judg. 19 11, 12, etc. servant of the Levire which thought it meetest to turn into one of the Cities of the jebusites to lodge there, because the day was far spent, when he saw his master to be of another mind, yielded to him. So did d Luk. 19 25, etc. those servants yield to their master, who at first thought it unmeet that he that had ten talents should have one piece more: and e Mat. 13. 28, etc. those servants also, that at first thought it meet that the tares should be plucked up from the wheat. This rule is to be observed in the particular points before delivered, as the work which servants do, and the manner of doing it, their apparel, their allowance, yea and in the correction which their master giveth them, and the rest. Contrary is that great conceit which many servants have of Servant's conceit of their own wit. their own judgement, wit, and wisdom, thinking themselves wiser than their masters; as Gehazi, who opposing his own wit to his master's wisdom, said, f 2 King. 5. 20. Behold my master hath spared Naaman this Syrian, in not receiving at his hands that which he brought: but as the Lord liveth, I will run after him, and take somewhat of him. This was also a fault in g 2 King. 2. 16. the children of the Prophets, that would not rest on Elishas' judgement, but importuned him against his mind to send some to seek the body of Eliah. This self-conceit is the cause of many mischiefs: as of discontentedness at the work their master appointeth them, and at the allowance of meat and drink which they have; of much liberty they take to themselves, of pride in apparel, and other vices before noted: if the forenamed rule were duly observed, many of those mischiefs would be avoided, and much better obedience yielded. §. 37. Of servants yielding to do such things at their master's command, as they cannot think to be most meet. The second rule which servants must observe is this, that Though they cannot in their judgement think that fit to be done which their master will have done, yet upon his peremptory command they must yield to the doing of it: It appeareth by Peter's answer to Christ that he did so, for being commanded to let down his net for a draught, thus he answereth, Master, we have toiled all the night, and have taken nothing (here he showeth that Luke 5. 5. his opinion was that it would be in vain to let down their nets) nevertheless at thy word I will let down the net (here is his obedience against his opinion.) More clear is the example of joab for this purpose: when the King commanded him to number the 2 Sam. 24. 2, etc. people, he declared that he thought it a very unmeet thing to do, by this phrase, Why doth my Lord the King delight in this thing? yet against his judgement he yielded to the King's peremptory command, for it is said, that the King's word prevailed against joab. Object. This is no fit example, because joab sinned in obeying. Answ. joab cannot justly be charged with sin, because it was not simply unlawful to number the people. David's sin was not in the act of numbering the people, but in his mind which moved him to do it: for there was no just cause to do it: only pride and curiosity moved him, as may be gathered out of his own reason in these words, that I may know the number of the people. To do such a thing only to know it, was curiosity. But why would he know it? surely on a proud conceit that he had so many worthies, so many Captains, so many men of war. Out of joabs' example servants may here learn in humility and reverence to render some reasons to move their master not to press upon them that which they think to be unmeet; but yet if their master will not hearken to their reasons, but stand upon his authority, his word must prevail. Contrary is their peremptoriness, who by no means will be drawn to do any thing at their master's command, which they themselves think not most meet to be done. Such an one is that fool whom Solomon thus describeth, Though thou shouldest Pro. 27. 22. bray a fool in a mortar among wheat with a pestle, yet will not his foolishness depart from him. These fools bring much mischief upon their own pates in disobeying their masters: for exceedingly they provoke his wrath who hath power to take vengeance of them. Neither let them think to receive comfort in their suffering, because they refuse an unmeet thing, for meetness is not a sufficient warrant against unlawfulness. To disobey in a thing which lawfully may be done, is unlawful: if therefore the pretext be only an unmeet thing, meetness is preferred before lawfulness, and unlawfulness less accounted of then unmeetnesse. §. 38. Of servants forbearing to obey their master against God. That the extent of servant's obedience be not too far stretched, Restraint of the extent of servant's duties the Apostle setteth down an excellent limitation thereof: and that in these four phrases, As unto Christ, As the servants of Christ, Doing the will of God, As to the Lord; all which do show that the Obedience which servants yield to their master See the cautions, Treat. 3. §. 51, 52, etc. must be such as may stand with their obedience to Christ. So that if masters command their servants never so peremptorily to do any unlawful thing, that is, any thing forbidden by God's Nolite fieri serui hominum, i. nolite eis parere cum turpia praecipiunt. Chrys. in 1 Cor. 7. hom. 19 Exo. 1. 17. word, they may not yield to it. The midwives of the Hebrew women did well in refusing to do any thing to help forward the murderous practices of the King of Egypt in slaying all the male-childrens of the Hebrews: it is expressly said, that they feared God and did not as the King commanded them: so as their disobedience in this kind was a token of their fear of God. In this case joseph is commended for not harkening to his mistress: and the servants of Saul for refusing to slay the Gen. 39 9 1 Sam. 22. 17. Lords Priests at their master's command. Thus if a master should command his servant to kill, to steal, to forswear himself, to lie, to use false measures and weights, to go to mass, or do any other unlawful thing, he ought not obey him. Again, if masters forbid their servants to do that which Seruis competit ut obediant dominis in iis quibus mandato Dei nihil derogatur. Basil. God hath commanded them to do, they must, notwithstanding their master's prohibition, do it. The Rulers of Israel forbid the Apostles to preach, yet because Christ had commanded them to preach, they would not forbear: nor would Daniel forbear to pray to God, though the King and Nobles Ethic. defin. 75. Act. 4. 19 Dan. 6. 10. by express decree forbade him. So if a profane or popish master shall forbid his servant to go to Church, or to hear the word, or to take the Sacrament, or to dwell with his wife if he be married, or to make restitution of that which he hath fraudulently gotten, or any other bounden duty, herein they must say, we ought to obey God rather than men. For when masters Act. 5. 29. command and forbid any thing against God, they go beyond their commission, and therein their authority ceaseth. Contrary to this restraint is both a parasitical pleasing of masters: and also a base fear of them. It is the property of a Ais? aio. Negas? nego. Terent. in Eun. parasite to say what a master will have him say, and deny what he will have him deny, and so to do what he will have him to do. Doeg that fawning dog at Saul's word slew all the Lords 1 Sam. 22. 18. Priests: and Absoloms' servants at his word killed Amnon: for 2 Sam. 13. 28, 29. all the reason which they had to commit that murder was this speech of their master, have not I commanded you? So prone are servants to soothe their masters, as there is no sin so horrible which at their master's command they will not be ready to do. Thus is that verified which the Prophet long since foretold, Isa. 24 2. like master like servant, like mistress like maid. It is also the property of base fearful servants to do nothing but what their master will have them do, and to forbear any duty, though never so necessary, that he forbiddeth them to do. What duty more necessary than prayer? We are commanded to pray continually: yet the servants of Darius were content to 1 Thess. 5. 17. Dan. 6. 7, etc. forbear that duty thirty days together, because it was against the decree of their Lord and King. The like is noted of the people in Christ's time, they durst not make open profession of joh. 7. 13. & 9 22. Christ for fear of the jews. So in our days many servants there be that dare not make profession of the Gospel, nor go to Church, nor read the word, nor perform other holy religious duties, which they know to be bounden duties, for fear of their masters. Had not then the Apostle just cause to strike so much upon this string as here he hath done, expressly forbidding eye-service, man-pleasing, and doing service to men, namely in opposition to God? §. 39 Of servants choosing good masters. As a just consequence following from the forenamed extent and restraint of servant's duties, I may further gather these two lessons for servants. 1. It is very behooveful that servants make choice of good masters: at least if it be in their power to choose. 2. It is behooveful that they continue and abide under good masters: at least if they continue servants, and abide under any masters. That these consequences justly follow as aforesaid, is evident: for seeing servants are bound to obey in all things which are not against God, and must obey in nothing but what is in the Lord, it is very requisite that servants be under such masters as bear the Image of God in the inward disposition, and grace of their heart, as well as in their outward function and place: and will go along with God in using their authority, commanding nothing but what a servant may do with a good conscience, and without transgressing against God: and forbidding nothing that God hath bound a servant to do. There will be comfort in serving such masters: and our obedience to them will be obedience to God. Such masters therefore must be chosen. Yea and with such must servants abide, (if not with the very same, yet with such as they are, of the same disposition) for if they go to other, their former comfort will be taken away, and their servitude will seem so much the more miserable, by how much more knowledge and experience they have had of the benefit of their former liberty (for Qui fidelem habet dominum, saluo eius dominio, diligat ut patrem. we may well call service under unconscionable master's servitude, and in opposition thereunto, service under religious masters, liberty.) He therefore that hath a master that is faithful, due respect had to his authority, must love him as a father, and Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 12. so abide with him. For choice of good masters, note what is a Exo. 12. 38. recorded of many of the Egyptians and other people: they left their own country, and went out with the Israelites: what should move them but conscience of the true God whom they knew that Israel served? Now many of these went out as servants, as may be gathered from those many b Leu. 25. 45. Deut. 5. 14. & 12. 18. & 23. 15. & 23. 7. laws which were made in the behalf of servants that were strangers, and in special that were Egyptians. The knowledge which c Ruth 1. 16. Ruth had that Naomi her mother in law served the true God, moved her to leave her own country, and to go as a servant with Naomi. For abiding with good masters we have a worthy pattern in the twelve Disciples. d joh. 6. 66. etc. When many of Christ's Disciples at large, went back, and walked no more with him, Christ ask the twelve whether they also would go away, Peter in the name of all the rest answered, Lord to whom shall we go? Thou hast the words of eternal life. Contrary is the mind and practise of many servants: they never inquire after the religious disposition of their master, nor care though he be popish, or profane, so they may have good wages, diet and lodging: and yet by this means, if at least there be any spark of God's fear in their heart, they cast themselves upon many sore temptations, and bring themselves into many hard straits, and dangerous snares. And, if God open their eyes to see that wretched condition whereinto they have implunged themselves, they will be forced to cry out and complain as David did, when he was in foreign countries where he could not freely serve his God, e Psal. 120. 5. Woe is me that I sojourn in Mesech, that I dwell in the tents of Kedar. Much more contrary is their mind and disposition who refuse to serve religious masters, and shun them most of all: or being in their service are never quiet till they be out of it again. Of these we spoke * §. 16. before. Hitherto have we dealt about servant's duties. The reasons which the Apostle rendereth to enforce those duties remain to be declared. §. 40. Of the first motive, the place of masters. The first reason which the Apostle useth to enforce servants I. duties is implied under this phrase, as to Christ; it intimateth the place of a master, which is to be in Christ's stead. In this respect the title Lord is given to a master. The word which the Apostle useth in Greek is that which in the new testament 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. answereth to that proper Hebrew name of God jehovah, and it setteth forth the absolute sovereignty of God, and power over all creatures: b Matt. 28. 18. which power Because the Father hath given to his son as Mediator, God-man, he is called the c 1 Cor. 8. 6. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. one or only Lord: and because masters by virtue of their office and place bear Christ's image, and stand in his stead, by communication of Christ's authority to them, they are called Lords, yea also d Psal. 82. 6. Gods (for that which a Magistrate is in the Commonwealth a master is in the family) Hence it followeth that servants in performing duty to their master perform duty to Christ, and in rebelling against their master they rebel against Christ; as the Lord said to Samuel of the people's rejecting his government, they have not rejected 1 Sam. 8. 7. thee, but they have rejected me that I should not reign over them. Is not this a strong motive to provoke servants to all duty, and to restrain them from rebellion? if it be well weighed what Christ is, it cannot be but a weighty reason. For though masters should neither reward their good service, nor revenge their ill service, yet will Christ do both. §. 41. Of the second motive, the place of servants. The second reason is implied under this phrase, as servants II. of Christ: it noteth the place of a servant: which though it may seem to be a mean and base place, yet is it indeed an honourable place. Men count it an honour to be servants to a King: but Christ is higher than all Kings. On this ground the Apostle saith, Art thou called being a servant? care not for it: 1 Cor. 7. 21, 22. and that upon this reason, He that is called in the Lord being a servant, is the Lords freeman. This reason is to be noted against the conceit that most have of a servant's place, that it is so mean and base as there can be no honour nor comfort in doing the duties thereof. But that is a foolish, and unjust conceit: look to Christ the highest master, and there is as much honour, and comfort in doing the duties of the lowest servants place, as of the highest masters. §. 42. Of the third motive, Gods will. The third reason is implied under this phrase, doing the III. will of God, which declareth the ground of servant's subjection. God in his word hath plainly made it known that it is his pleasure that they who are under the authority of masters should obey them, therefore as servants would please God, they must obey: if they refuse to obey, they thwart the will of God. This also is a motive of moment: for Gods will is that mark which every one ought to aim at, and it is much urged by the Holy Ghost, as a general reason to all duty in these and such like phrases, b 1 Thes. 4. 3. This is the will of God, c 1 Pet. 2. 15. So is the will of God: upon which ground we are exhorted to d Ephef. 5. 17. understand, and to e Rom. 12. 2. prove what is the will of God. Good reason there is to press this reason: for 1. God's will is the very ground of goodness: things are therefore good because they are agreeable to Gods will: Gods will giveth the very being to goodness. 2. God's will is a rule to square all our actions by, even as the king's statutes and proclamations are to his subjects. 3. It is a perfect rule (the law of the Lord is perfect) so as we Psal. 19 7. may be sure not to swerve, if we hold close thereunto. 4. It is a sufficient rule, it will give every one (and among other, servants) direction how to carry themselves in every thing they take in hand, yea in every thing that appertaineth to them. For, God's word is given to make us perfect, thoroughly 2 Tim. 3. 17. furnished unto all good works. 5. It is a good warrant to justify us in all our actions: so as, going along with it, we need not care what any man can say against us. If a man be sure that he have statute law, or the king's proclamation on his side, he is bold. From this reason which is of such weight, I gather two propositions to add force to this motive. 1. That servants obey their masters, is no arbitrary matter, but a necessary duty: not left to his will whether he will do it or no, but a thing whereunto he is bound: and that not only by civil constitutions of men, but also by a divine institution of God: so as it is not only a matter of civil policy, but also of conscience, to be done for conscience sake. 2. That no creature can dispense with servants, so as they should be exempted from doing their duty to their master. If they could, they were greater than God, and their will above Gods will. Among creatures, masters themselves are to be reckoned: now because it is Gods will that servants should be in subjection, their masters cannot exempt them from it. Master's may let them go free: but retaining them as servants, they cannot exempt them from a servant's subjection. Wherefore though masters be careless in exacting duty, yet let servants be conscionable in yielding duty, because it is Gods will. §. 43. Of the fourth reason, the reward of good service. The fourth reason is plainly and largely expressed in these FOUR words, Knowing that whatsoever good thing any man doth, the Sciat seruus Deum redditurum seruitutis mercedem. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 12. Col. 3. 24. same shall he receive of the Lord, whether he be bond or free. The general sum whereof is a Declaration of the reward of good service. To which purpose saith the Apostle to servants in another place, Of the Lordye shall receive a reward. This first is to be noted to add force to the former reasons. For if any ask, what if master's stand in Christ's stead, what maketh that to the purpose? surely it maketh much to move servants: because masters stand in his room who will reward that which is done for his sake. If again they ask, what benefit is it to be Christ's servant? it may be answered, very great: for Christ will reward all his servants. If further it be asked, what is gotten by doing Gods will? Answ. Even that which all aim at, reward for service. As this addeth weight to all the other reasons, so is it in itself a weighty reason, as weighty as any can be to our corrupt nature. Hope of reward is it which maketh all sorts of people to take the pains which they do in their several places. But having * Treat. 1. §. 127. before handled this general point of reward, I will here more distinctly show what kind of reward it is wherewith the Lord will recompense the good service of faithful servants. God's reward is both of temporal and eternal blessings. The temporal blessings which heretofore God hath bestowed What reward God giveth to good servants. on faithful servants, and which on that ground other like servants may expect, are these especially. 1. He will move masters to respect such servants, as he moved Est. 6. 3. Ahash-verosh to recompense the fidelity of Mordecai. 2. If masters fail therein, he will move strangers to recompense them: as he moved c Gen. 39 21. the jailor to favour joseph when his master had cast him in prison: and d & 41. 40. Pharaoh to advance him to great dignity. 3. To draw the hearts of their masters and others the more unto them, he will make the things which they take in hand to prosper. Thus did he bless e Gen 39 2. joseph, and f & 24. 56. Abraham's servant. 4. In dealing for themselves he will bless their labours, as he blessed g Gen. 30. 43. jacob's. 5. He will, when they come to keep servants, provide such servants for them, as they were to their masters. h Gen. 43. 23. In Egypt God blessed joseph with a faithful servant. David, who k 1 Sam. 17. 34. ventured his life to save his father's sheep, had l 2 Sam. 21. 17. & 23. 15. many servants that ventured their lives for him. To this purpose may be applied that proverb which Christ oft useth, m Luk. 6. 38. with what measure ye meet shall it be measured to you again. The eternal reward is expressed in this phrase, n Col. 3. 24. the reward of the inheritance, for that inheritance is meant which Christ mentioneth in this clause, o Mat. 25. 34. Come ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the beginning of the world, and Saint Peter in this, p 1 Pet. 1. 4. an inheritance incorruptible, and vndesiled, and that fadeth not away, reserved in heaven. What can be more said? What shall not be undergone for this reward? How willingly do prentices pass over their prenticeship in hope of a temporary freedom of an earthly city? q Gen. 29. 20. Many years service were but as a few days to jaakob because he liked his reward. But behold here a greater reward, which we must needs like much better. If this be not sufficient to move servants to all duty, I know not what can be sufficient. The eighth Treatise. Duties of Masters. §. 1. Of the heads of Master's duties. EPHES. 6. 9 And ye Masters do the same things unto them: forbearing threatening: Knowing that your Master also is in heaven: neither is there respect of persons with him. IN the last place the duties of masters are declared by the Apostle, and that in this verse, where he noteth, 1. The kinds of their duties. 2. A Reason to enforce the same. The kinds are set forth Generally (do the same things.) Particularly (forbearing threatening.) The reason is taken from that subjection wherein masters are to an higher master (knowing that your master also.) And it is amplified, 1. By the equal subjection of masters and servants to that master (your also.) 2. By the place where that master is (in heaven.) 3. By his property, in this phrase (neither is there respect of persons with him.) Because the several duties of masters are here but pointed at, and enfolded under general terms, I will (as in former treatises hath been done) propound a distinct order, whereby we may the better find out their duties, and handle them one after another. All may be drawn unto these two heads. 1. Care in choosing good servants. 2. Conscience in well using them. For well using their servants, masters must have an eye to their place, and authority: and in respect thereof, 1. Wisely maintain their authority. 2. Rightly manage the same. The well managing of their authority is generally noted in this phrase, do the same things: but more particularly in a Col. 4. 1. another place referred to these two branches 1. justice. 2. Equity. Of these in order. §. 2. Of masters choosing good servants. The first thing that a man, who taketh upon him to be a master, must take care of, is to entertain good servants into his service. b Psal. 101. 6. Mine eyes (saith David) shall be upon the faithful of the land, that they may dwell with me: he that walketh in a perfect way he shall serve me. What doth this phrase (mine eyes shall be upon the faithful) imply, but that he will diligently and carefully inquire after such: yea mine eyes (saith he) not another man's eyes: he would not put all the trust upon others: he would himself make what proof and trial he could. Such an emphasis hath this phrase (mine eyes) where c job 19 27. job saith; whom I shall see for myself, and mine eyes shall behold, and not another for me. 1. Servants are of all other things (except wife and children) Reasons. of best and greatest use. If then men be careful in well choosing other things, as houses, land, householdstuff, horses, and all manner of cattle (as men are very circumspect therein) should they not be much more careful in well choosing servants? 2. Thus will masters show that they seek, and aim at the good of their family: yea and in their family at the good of Church and commonwealth: for good members of a family are likeliest to prove profitable to Church & commonwealth. 3. When good servants are chosen, there is hope of receiving the more good from them, and doing more good unto them. They will be pliable to all good admonition, docible by all good instruction, serviceable in all things they take in hand. Object. A master may make a bad servant to become a good one. Answ. There is a great hazard and venture therein, especially if they be grown to ripe years: no creature is easily tamed, or brought from the natural course it hath taken, after it is grown up: a bough that hath grown crooked many years together will hardly be made strait. It is not in man's power to make a bad servant good: neither can man expect God's blessing therein, when he observeth not a right course warranted by God. Quest. What course is fittest for choice of servants? Direction for choosing of servants. 1. If they be young, see how they have been from their infancy educated. Great is the benefit of good education: and much good may be expected from thence: for it is the means which God hath sanctified for good. But if they be grown to ripe years, choose such as fear God, such were they upon whom d Psal. 101. 6. David cast his eyes. On this ground did e Philem. vers 10. Saint Paul advice Philemon to take Onesimus again, because grace was then wrought in his heart. 1. God's fear is the ground of all good obedience and Why such servants as fear God are to be chosen. faithfulness: note the examples of such good and faithful servants as are commended in Scripture, and you shall find them all to fear God. 2. Such will not only be diligent in their work, but they will also faithfully call upon God to prosper those things which they take in hand in their master's behalf, instance the example of f Gen. 24. 12. Abraham's servant. 3. God will have such respect unto those servants which fear his name, as for their sakes to bless their master's house. Thus was g Gen. 39 5. Potiphars house blessed for Joseph's sake. 2. Make some trial of their fitness to that calling, work and service whereunto thou shalt put them. From such there may be hope of profit & benefit by their service. h Gen. 29. 14. Laban made trial of jaakob a month before he covenanted for any long continuance. 3. Take such especially as are of mean and poor estate, and know not how to maintain themselves but by service. Thus will a double work of charity be done therein: and thus mayst thou look for better service: for commonly such are most industrious, and most obedient to their masters. Object. When men have taken all the care they can in their choice, they may be deceived. Answ. 1. Then much more likely is it, that if they be careless therein, they shall be deceived. 2. Diligent, and wise search, is a means to find out the disposition and ability of servants. 3. If having used the means men be deceived, they may have the more comfort in bearing the cross, because they have not wittingly or carelessly pulled it upon themselves. §. 3. Of master's carelessness in choosing servants. Contrary is their carelessness, who are ready to receive any into their house, even Atheists, Papists, swearers, swaggerers, profane wretches, unclean persons, and such like, against whom David protesteth, he would not have him that worketh deceit to dwell in Psal. 101. 7. his house; nor him that telleth lies to tarry in his sight. They who entertain such, make their houses to be cages of unclean birds, seminaries of wicked persons, and unprofitable members: for one scabbed sheep is enough to infect a whole flock. No marvel though many mischiefs fall upon such a family: for a man were as good bring so many Snakes and Adders into his house, as such persons: yea with them is brought Gods curse. Can any good then be looked for? Such foolish master's regard neither themselves, nor their household: no nor yet Church or Commonwealth. If none would entertain such, it might be a means to make them alter their condition. Many are not only careless in choosing good servants, but also except against such as are religious; thinking it a matter of reproach to entertain them. By which conceit they oft put away God's blessing from their house. Others so stand upon a great portion of money with a prentice, or a clerk, or other servant, as they will take none but rich men's children. Whence it cometh to pass, that this point (which is a great point) of charity is neglected: persons most unfit for service are entertained, and such many times as scorn to do service. Thus their masters grow weary of them: the servants lose their time: never prove to be their crafts-masters: and their parents repent the giving of such a portion with them. §. 4. Of masters maintaining their authority. After that masters have chosen good servants, their duty is well to use them: which by reason of the difference betwixt masters and servants cannot be well done, except masters wisely maintain their authority. A master therefore must be able a 1 Tim. 3. 4. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. well to rule his own house: this is a duty which the Apostle in particular requireth of a Bishop, who is master of an house, but it appertaineth in general to all masters of families. Women also who by virtue of their places are mistresses, are commanded b 1 Tim. 5. 14. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. to guide the house, or to rule, and perform the part of a mistress therein. It was the c Mat. 8. 9 Centurion's commendation, that having servants under him, he had them at his command. 1. God's image and authority, which a master carrieth, is thus preserved. 2. Thus shall a master have much better service done. Not one servant of a thousand, that is not kept under authority, will do good service. A like duty to this was enjoined to an husband in relation to a wife, Treat. 4. §. 4. Some of the reasons, directions, & other points there handled, may be here applied. Read it therefore. For this end three things are to be observed. Direction. 1. That masters carry themselves worthy of their place, and worthy of that honour which is due to them: which may best be done by making themselves a pattern of such good things as in their places appertain to them. d Jos. 24. 15. I and my house will fear the Lord, saith josuah: he would not only put them to it, but he also would do it, he would go before them. I will behave myself wisely, I will walk within my house with a perfect heart, saith Psal. 101. 2. David. 2. That masters keep their servants in awe and fear. e 1 Tim. 3. 4. Children must be kept in subjection: much more servants. 3. That masters do the things which they do in their carriage towards their servants with authority: Command, forbid, rebuke (to use f Tit. 2. 15. the Apostles phrase) with all authority. The manner of speech which the Centurion used to his servants ( g Mat. 8. 9 go, come, do this) savour of authority. So the Church taking upon her the person of a mistress, useth a word of authority, h Cant. 3. 5. I charge you not to do this. §. 5. Of masters making their authority to be despised. The aberrations in the defect contrary to the forenamed duty How masters lose their honour. and point of wisdom, are many: as 1. When masters carry themselves basely and abjectly before 1. By baseness. their servants: being light in their behaviour, foolish in their carriage, given to drunkenness, uncleanness, lewd company, and other vices. Nabal was such an one: for his servant could say of him, a 1 Sam. 25. 17. He is a son of Belial. David, though he did not give himself over to such foul sins as these are, yet he oft failed in an unseemly carriage before his servants, as when b 1 Sam. 21. 13. he changed his behaviour, and feigned himself mad, and scrabled on doors, and let his spittle fall down upon his beard: and again, c 2 Sam. 19 3, 5. when he gave such reins to his passion, for the death of his traitorous son Absolom, as his people being ashamed stole away from him, and joab his servant was forced roundly to tell him of it, saying, thou hast shamed this day the faces of all thy servants, etc. Mistress' oft lose their authority by conspiring with their servants to go abroad, take away goods, gossip, and do such other like things privily without their husband's consent: they make themselves thereby slaves to their servants, not daring to do any thing which may offend their servants, lest they should discover to their masters such lewd pranks as their Mistresses did. 2. When masters are too remiss and sheepish: entreating and 2. By remissness. praying their servants to do such things as they ought to command and require at their hands: and if it be not done, all their remedy is patience, or else to do it themselves. Howsoever this might be counted meekness, and gentleness towards equals and strangers, over whom we have no authority, yet towards servants it is too base remissness: yea it is a relin quishing of that power which God hath given, and whereof God will take an account. 3. When masters suffer their servants to be their companions, 3. By familiarity. playing, drinking, revelling with them, and saying (as it is in the proverb) hail fellows met. Thus servants oft take liberty to presume above their master: for men are naturally prone to ambition; and, if an inch be given, they will take an ell. They who in this kind so far debase themselves, as to give their servant's power over their own body, do make both themselves, and their true lawful bedfellow to be despised: themselves, in that such servants as are so made one flesh, will think to keep in awe such a master or mistress, as they have known, through fear of revealing that sin: their bedfellow, in that such servants will think to be maintained, and boulstered up by the master or mistress, whom they have so known. On this ground was d Gen. 16. 3, 4. Sarah despised in the eyes of Hagar her maid. 4. When masters are overruled by their servants to do any 4. By letting go the reins. unjust or unlawful thing: as e 2 Chro. 14. 17. joash, who by his servants was drawn to idolatry: and f jer. 38. 5. Zedekiah, who gave the Prophet jeremiah into his servant's hands, using this base and abject speech, f jer. 38. 5. The King is not he that can do any thing against you. Thus will servants soon prove masters: and if they once come to this high pitch to rule, rather than to be ruled, they will quickly prove intolerable. For g Pro. 30. 22. this is one of the four things noted by the Wiseman, which the earth cannot bear, namely, a servant when he reigneth: and h Eccl. 10. 5, 7. this is one of those evils which proceed from rulers, that servants ride upon horses, that is, are advanced above their place and degree: whence it followeth, that h Eccl. 10. 5, 7. Governors walk as servants upon the earth, they are dejected below their place and degree. It falleth out in this case betwixt servants and masters, as betwixt scoales, or balances; if the weights that use to lie in one balance to keep it down be taken away, it will suddenly fly up, and so the other balance will be kept down. §. 6. Of masters too great rigour. The contrary in the excess is too great rigour and aufterity manifested in look, speech, and actions. 1. In look, when a master cannot cast a good eye on his servant. i Gen. 31. 2, 5. jaakob was much discountenanced by the countenance of his master. Many masters by their continual frowning brows, and fiery eyes, do much terrify their servants. 2. In speech, when masters cannot give a good word to their servants, but if they be moved never so little, cast upon them all the reproachful names that they can call to mind: little thinking of this fearful doom, k Mat. 5. 22. Whosoever shall say, thou fool, shall be in danger of hell fire. Thus did Saul manifest a malicious and mischievous mind against jonathan and David by the foul language he gave. Some have such a froward and perverse tongue, as they can never speak directly to their servants: but if they command or forbid a thing, they will do it after such a manner as their servant can scarce tell what they mean: and this not only when their servant hath offended them, but in their best mood. So shrewish are others, as their tongues seldom lie still: but they are ever chiding upon every small occasion: whereby it cometh to pass that their servants are no more moved with it, than the Doves, and Stairs that continually abide in Belfrays, are moved with the ringing of bells. Such bitterness also is mixed with the childings of many, as they belch out of their black mouths, most direful imprecations. What can be said of such tongues, but that they are l jam. 3. 6. set on fire of hell? As other aberrations wherein masters are reproved, are to be applied to mistresses, so this especially. For mistresses do commonly most offend in shrewishness of speech. 3. In actions, when masters are too frequent, and too furious Quamuis dominus seruo praestet, tamen se aequalem iudicet quatenus homo existit. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 12. strikers: striking their servants on every occasion, not caring how they strike. In these and other like evidences of too much austerity and plain arrogancy masters forget that they are men. Though for outward order a master be more excellent than a servant, yet as a man he ought to judge himself equal. This extreme can be no good means to maintain authority: but it is a plain abuse thereof. Master's ought so Serui colant potius te quam timeant. Senec. epist. 47. to carry themselves as their servants may rather reverence, then dread them. §. 7. Of master's commanding power restrained to things lawful. Extent of master's power. That a master may the better know how to maintain his authority, I will distinctly declare the extent of his power, and that in these four particulars, 1. In Commanding. 2. In Correcting. 3. In ordering the marriage of their servants. 4. In disposing their person. Within the lists of these two virtues justice and Equity (whereunto all the duties which masters owe their servants shall * §. 20, 21, etc. afterward be referred) must the commanding power of masters be bounded. 1. justice requireth two things, 1. A restraint of master's commandments. 2. An execution thereof. The restraint is unto God's law, that a master command nothing against it, but what is agreeable to it. Abishai would Nothing unlawful to be commanded by masters. 1 Sam. 26. 9 fain have had David's warrant to have killed Saul: but David was so far from commanding him to do it, as he kept him from it. Master's are but subordinate ministers under God: they must therefore command nothing against his law. As a judge, high-sheriff, and all other officers under the King, must make the King's law the ground of all those things which they require of the King's subjects: so masters must make God's law the ground of all those things which they require of their servants, who are also the servants of Christ. Besides, to what purpose is it to command that which a servant may and must refuse to do? But in no * Treat. 7. §. 38 unlawful thing may he obey. §. 8. Of masters presuming above their authority. Contrary is the arrogancy and presumption of many masters, who make their own will the rule of their servant's obedience. This must needs be a leaden rule, which may be bowed this way, that way, and every way, because of the flexible and variable humour of man. Hence is it that many most vile and horrible things are commanded, because they are agreeable to the commanders humour. Absolom bid his servants commit a most detestable murder upon his own brother, and note how he presseth it, Have not I commanded you? 2 Sam. 13. 28. More presumptuous is he that taketh upon him to be the The Pope's presumption. great commander of all Christians, the Pope of Rome, and other masters and governors of Jesuits, Friars, Monks, and other like orders, who command such as are under their authority to commit treasons, raise rebellions, kill Kings, and do other like execrable villainies. And to justify the Pope from whom all inferior governors receive their power, and by whose will they must be ruled, these blasphemous positions do Papists hold of his power, He can do all things of right as God. He is as God having Extravag. de maior. & obed. Alban. in lib. de potestat. Pap. & Eccles. Gratian. in Decret. dist. 40. on earth fullness of power. If he shall draw with him innumerable souls of men into hell, yet none may say to him, what dost thou? Doth not the Apostles * 2 Thess. 2. 4. In Ecclesia cath. semper creditum est Rom. Pontificem posse sua authoritate leges far, quae in conscientia obligent. Bellar. de Rom. Pontif. l. 4. c. 15. description of that man of sin, the son of perdition, agree to him of whom those things are spoken? Is he not in Papists account, as God, showing himself that he is God? Which is further confirmed by that power which they give him of making laws to bind the conscience, and coining new articles of faith. Not only popish, but profane masters also too much exceed in this presumptuous use of their power above their power: as they who enjoin their servants to kill, to steal, to swear, to forswear, to lie, to give false measures, and weights, to go to mass, to profane the Sabbath, with other like sins. In all these, and all other things like to these, being against God's law, masters have no power to command: they go above their commission: and shall accordingly answer for it. §. 9 Of master's commanding servants to do their duty. 2. The execution of a master's commanding power consisteth in those things which God hath enjoined as bounden duties. These a master by virtue of his authority must command his servants to do: as to worship God, to sanctify his Sabbath, to be diligent and conscionable in his calling, with other like duties, which God compriseth under these words, the way of the Lord, righteousness and judgement: and saith that he knew that Abram would command his household to do them. Gen. 18. 19 The charge given to masters in the fourth commandment concerning servants, (thou nor thy manservant, nor thy maid-servant) Exo. 20. 10. proveth as much. josiah is commended for causing his 2 Chr. 34. 32. people to stand to the covenant of God. On this ground if a master have servants that are papists, separatists, or profane persons, he ought to command them, and cause them to go to the holy ordinances of God. It is one of the principal ends why God hath given power and authority to some over others, that by their authority they may cause them which are under them to observe the commandments of God: even as inferior officers have authority given them, to see the King's laws kept. §. 10. Of the sin of masters in suffering servants to neglect their duty. It is contrary to that commanding power which God hath given to masters, to suffer their servants to omit, and neglect those bounden duties which God hath commanded them: as if a servant be so popish or profane as to refuse to go to the word, or Sacrament, or to perform any duty whereunto he is bound, to let him alone. Though they themselves do those duties, and though they do not hinder and keep their servants from doing them, yet if they cause not their servants also to do them, they make themselves accessary to their servant's sin. Object. Every man's conscience is free, and cannot be forced; therefore masters may not compel servants to such things as are against their conscience. Answ. Though the conscience be free to a man, and out of another's power, yet their outward actions are not free: and though faith, piety, righteousness, nor any grace can be forced into men, yet they may be forced to use the means which God hath sanctified for the breeding and increasing of them. Though they cannot be forced to have a religious and righteous heart, yet they may be forced to do religious and righteous duties: or if a master cannot force these, yet he may and aught to do his uttermost endeavour: by which means though he cannot free his servant from death, yet he shall free his own soul from the guilt of his death. §. 11. Of a master's wisdom in ordering things indifferent. Equity hath respect to those things which are in a master's power to command or not command: such are all civil actions as concern himself, concerning the particulars whereof God hath given no direct charge for an absolute performance of them: as to go of such an errand, to do such a message, to dispatch such a business. Concerning these things I may say of a master's power, as the Apostle doth of a parents power in 1 Cor. 7. 36, 37. another case; If he seeth it meet to be done, and commandeth his servant to do it, he doth well, he sinneth not. If he seeth it not meet to be done, and commandeth it not, he doth also well, he sinneth not. Of this kind of things speaketh the Centurion, Matt. 8. 9 where he saith, I say to one, go, to another, come, to a third, do this. The mark which masters must aim at in commanding or forbidding these, must be expediency: for all things that are 1 Cor. 10. 23. lawful, are not expedient. Expediency dependeth much upon circumstances, and consequences which may follow upon the doing of any thing: in observing whereof the wisdom of him who hath power to have a thing done, or not done, especially appeareth. When David suffered not Hushai his good friend, 2 Sam. 15. 33, 34. and wise counsellor, to go with him when he fled from Absolom, but bid him return to the city and there abide, he had an eye to the good consequence that might follow thereupon. And when joab commanded Cushi rather than Ahimaaz to 2 Sam. 18. 20, 21. carry the news of Absoloms' death, he had an eye to the meetness of the persons, and to the kind of message. To apply this to our purpose, Equity requireth that masters (in commanding things indifferent, which they have power to command or not to command) have an eye to their servant's ability, sex, age, disposition, conscience, and other like circumstances, that the thing which they command be somewhat agreeable to them, not above their ability, not unbeseeming their sex, not unfitting their age, not thwarting their disposition, not against their conscience. §. 12. Of master's offence against expediency. It is contrary to equity for a master to regard only himself, and his own mind, even in things that are lawful. Paul was not 1 Cor. 10. 33. of this mind, when he said, He sought not his own profit: no nor his own will. Expediency and inexpediency were great motives unto him, to forbear things which were otherwise lawful: yet little is this regarded by many: for 1. Many command things to the very uttermost of their servant's strength, if not above it, (as Pharaoh) or else things dangerous, Exod. 5. 7. which may bring much mischief upon them. David 2 Sam. 23. 17. was touched in heart for moving only by a wish his servants to fetch him water with the danger of their lives. 2. Others against comeliness put men to do maids works, and maids to do men's work. 3. Others upon mere partiality keep under old and good servants, and prefer much younger before them. 4. Others will forcibly make servants do things against their natural disposition, as to handle, yea and eat such things as they cannot endure to touch or see. 5. Others in doubtful matters will urge and press them against their conscience. Howsoever in these and other such like things not unlawful, servants ought to do what they can to satisfy their master's command, if he be peremptory in urging them: yet ought not a master to be too peremptory in pressing his authority and power. §. 13. Of the power of masters to correct their servants. The second point wherein a master's power consisteth is correction: which may be given by looks, words, or deeds. By a man's look his anger and wrath against another is manifested. * 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 In Hebrew the same word signifieth a face, and wrath: because wrath soon showeth itself in a man's face. It is noted of Cain, that being very wrath his countenance fell Si quis in domo per inobedientiam domesticae paci adversatur, corripiatur seu verbo, seu verbere, sea quo. libet alio genere poenae iusto atque licito. Aug. de Ciu. Deil. 19 c. 16. down, Gen. 4. 5. Now the manifestation of a master's wrath against his servant is a correction. But words whether of rebuke, or threatening, do much more declare the same. This phrase which Solomon useth Pro. 29. 19 (a servant will not be corrected with words) showeth that there is a correction by words: and though it be negatively propounded, yet doth it not imply that correction by words is not to be used to a servant, but rather, if thereby he be not moved, that blows must be added thereto: which is a correction by deeds, whereof Christ maketh mention in the parable of those servants that according to the greatness of their fault are Luke 12. 47. to be beaten with many stripes. It is therefore in a master's power to correct his servant with stripes, or blows. Which being so, I will show, 1. How far his power herein extendeth. 2. How it is to be ordered. §. 14. Of the restraint of master's power: that it reacheth not to their servant's life. Concerning the extent of a master's power in correcting his servant, this question is to be resolved, Whether a master have power for any fault to take away his servant's life. Answ. His power reacheth not so far, as is evident by these reasons. 1. There is no precept, nor approved example, nor any other warrant out of God's word for it. The jews had great power over such servants as were strangers: Of them they might Leu. 25. 44, 45, 46. buy bondmen and bond-maids: they might have them for a possession: and take them for an inheritance for their children after them, to be bondmen for ever: they might be put to the most toiling, droiling, base, and abject works that they had, as drawing water, hewing wood, and the like; but yet their masters Ios. 9 27. had not power over their lives. 2. A master might not dismember his servant: if unawares he did smite out an eye or tooth of his servant, he must make a recompense: which was to let him go free. Much less therefore Exod. 21. 26. might he take away his servant's life. 3. If a servant died under his master's hand when he corrected him, though he intended not wilfully to murder him, that master was to be punished. It was not therefore lawful for Exod. 21. 20. a master wittingly to kill a servant. 4. The power of life is proper to the public magistrate, who doth all things in open public places, that so there may be many witnesses of his just proceeding. If masters had this power, many might privily be put to death, and no man know for what cause, as it is in popish inquisitions. 5. * Si Dominus seruum ceciderit, vel lethale vulnus inflixerit, reus homicidij sit. justin. Cod. l. 9 tit. 18. The approved laws of men make it wilful murder for a master to slay his servant wittingly, though the servant's fault be never so heinous. Neither the authority of the master, nor desert of the servant, shall exempt the master that slayeth his servant from the guilt and punishment of felony. Object. In ancient times masters had this power. Answ. They never of right had it, though some might exercise it. Among God's people it was never exercised in any age of the world. That liberty which was taken, was among the heathen: and yet among them as polities came to be more Apud Gentes animaduertere possumus Dominis in seruos vitae, necisque potestatem fuisse. Sed hoc tempore nullis hominibus qui sub imperio nostro sunt, licet fine causa legibus cognita in seruos suos supra modum saevire Nam ex constit. Antonini qui sine cause seruum suum occiderit, non minus puniri iubetur, quam si alienum seruum occiderit. justin. Jnstit. l. 1. Tit. 8. Domini mitiores esse debent. Cypr. Testim. l. 3. c. 73. and more civilly governed, that usurped liberty by the laws of Magistrates was much restrained: and when Emperors and Kings became Christians, it was utterly taken away. Object. If a man take an enemy by war, he hath power to kill him. Answ. If in the time of the war he slay him not, but then spare him, and take him as a captive, and make him his servant, though but a bondslave, he hath not power of his life. §. 15. Of master's excess in correcting servants. Contrary to their just and due power do they, who in their rage stab their servants, or otherwise make them away: yea they also who so unmercifully and unmeasurably beat them with rod, cudgel, or any other thing, as death follow thereupon: for many there be who having once begun to strike, know not when to cease, but lay on as if they were striking stocks and blocks, and not their own flesh. God foresaw that masters were prone to such cruelty, and therefore a Deut. 25. 3. set a stint number of stripes, which none that beat another might exceed. Among these may be reckoned such desperate masters as in their mood will strike their servant with any thing that cometh next to hand, be it heavy, cragged, hard, or sharp, they care not ( b Pro. 26. 18. As a mad man who casteth firebrands, arrows, and death.) These things may endanger a servant's life, if not, they may break his head, or otherwise wound, bruise, and lame him. It is beyond a master's power by any correction to impair life, health, or strength of his servant, or any way in his body to disable him from doing that which otherwise he might have been able to do. If masters, no not for punishment of any sin, may not take away or endanger the life of his servant, what may we think of such masters, as without any fault of their servants, cause them to be made away by putting them upon some desperate attempt, either to maintain their own quarrel, or for some other unjust end? c 2 Sam. 11. 15. David dealt thus with Uriah: but afterwards he d Psal. 51. 14. sorely repented this part of injustice. At another e 2 Sam. 23. 15, etc. time when three of his servants had fetched him water, which he longed for, with jeopardy of their lives, though in safety they returned, yet his heart smote him for his longing, and he would not drink of that water because they had ventured their lives to fetch it. But what may we say of such masters, as cause their servants for their sakes to commit felony, murder, treason, rebellion, and such other things, as cause the public magistrate to unsheathe his sword against them, & cut them off? We noted this * §. 8. before to be a grievous fault in regard of the unlawfulness of the thing: here further we may note it to be much more heinous in regard of the mischief that followeth thereupon, which is the loss of their servant's life: so as thus they make themselves accessary to a detestable sin, and guilty of the blood of their servant. §. 16. Of masters ordering that correction they give to their servants. 2. That masters may well order that correction which they give to their servants, difference must be put betwixt the age, sex, disposition, and faults of those whom they correct. 1. Master's ought not to be so forward to strike such as are grown in years, as the younger sort. Years bring understanding, and a rebuke will make one of understanding more sorry for a fault, and more careful to amend it, The direction prescribed to parents (Treat. 6. §. 47.) for well ordering that correction which they give to their children, may in many points be here fitly applied. Read it. then blows: smart more works upon the younger sort. But if notwithstanding their years they be stout, and will not regard words, their stoutness. must be beaten down with blows. a Pro. 19 25, 29. Smite a scorner, saith the wise man: and again, judgements are prepared for scorners, and stripes for the back of fools. Seeing servants in years are in this case to be corrected, it is further requisite to put a difference betwixt the kind or measure of correction which is given to them, and to the younger sort: if they be corrected as children, they may either make a toy of it, or the more disdain at it. c Pro. 20. 30. Heris in famulos saevitia adhibenda est, si aliter teneri non possunt. Cic. Offic. l. 2. Blueness, wound, and stripes piercing into the inward parts of the belly, are a purging medicine against evil, to stout servants of ripe years. 2. If there be a master and mistress joint governors over an house, it is fittest for the master to correct men-servants, the mistress maids. * Seruam verberare viro maximae ignominiae est. Chrys. hom. 26. in 1 Cor. 11. Abraham put his maid over to Sarah in such a case. Yet if a maid should wax stout, and mannish, and turn against her mistress, she being weak, sickly, with child, or otherwise unable to master her maid, the master may and must beat down her stoutness and rebellion: e Exo. 21. 20. so much did the law of God permit. 3. If servants be of an ingenious disposition, willing and forward to do that which belongeth unto them, sorry when they have committed a fault, and careful to amend their faults, many things may be passed over in them, which must be corrected in others. To this may be applied the counsel of the wiseman, Take no heed to all the words that are Eccl. 7. 21. spoken. 4. Correction must be measured according to the greatness — Adsit Regula peccat is quae poenas irroget aequas: Nec scutica dignum horribili sectere flagello. Horat. l. 1. Sat. 3. of the fault punished, and the circumstances whereby the fault may justly be aggravated. The servant that knew his masters will and did it not shall be beaten with many stripes: But he that knew not and did commit things worthy of stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes, Luk. 12. 47, 48. Many aberrations are daily committed contrary to every branch of this direction, in that masters and mistresses in exercising this part of their power are carried away with passion, and do that which they do in this kind after their own pleasure. Thus they turn a duty into sin, and by undue correcting of their servants provoke God to correct them in his wrath, either here or in the world to come. §. 17. Of master's power over their servants in and about their marriage. The third point to be noted concerning a master's power over his servant, is about his servant's marriage. Sundry questions are moved about this point, which I will briefly resolve. 1. Quest. Have masters power to order and dispose their servant's marriage as they please? Answ. No, not without the free consent of the servants themselves: for marriages must be made with the free consent of the parties that are married. Object. The law implieth that a master hath power to give Exo. 21. 4. his servant a wife, for it showeth whose those children shall be that are borne to that servant, to whom a master hath given a wife. Answ. 1. That law is to be understood of such servants as being strangers were bondslaves, over whom masters had a more absolute power then over others. 2. The master's power of giving did not simply force the servant to marry the party so given: but restrained the servant from marrying any other then whom the master should give. 2. Quest. Is not a master's power in the matter of marriage as great over a servant, as a parents over a child? Answ. No. See the reason Treat. 5. §. 20. 3. Quest. May a master deny his servant liberty to marry? Answ. Yea, for the time that the servant hath covenanted to be a servant with his master. For that time a servant is part of his master's goods, and possessions. As bond servants were a master's possession for ever: so covenanted servants are his possession for the time of their covenant. When God gave the devil leave to seize on all that job had, by virtue of that job 1. 15, 16. permission he seized on all kinds of jobs servant's bond and free, as well as on his goods: which he could not have done, if jobs servants had not been as his goods. Yet notwithstanding if servants shall make it known to their master, that necessity requireth they should marry, such respect ought to be had to the chastity even of servants, as in this case I may use the phrase with the Apostle useth in reference to children, Let them be married. 1 Cor. 7. 36. 4. Quest. What if servants marry without consent of masters, is that marriage nullified thereby? Answ. No. The marriage being otherwise rightly performed, Quod fieri non debet factum valet. remaineth a firm marriage: though the servants in so doing have sinned: for which their master may justly punish them. 5. Quest. May a master keep his servants so married without his consent from their bedfellows? Answ. He may exact the whole time of his covenant for service: but that power which by the bond of marriage husbands and wives have over one another's bodies, suffereth 1 Cor. 7. 3, 4. them not to be altogether separated one from another. Besides, our law freeth a maid-servant when she is married, from her master's covenant. §. 18. Of master's rigour in forcing marriages on servants: or in separating man and wife. Contrary to a master's power do they, who force their servants to marry whom they like not: as when a master hath deflowered his maid, to cover his shame he will make one of his servants marry her. They also do contrary to their power who seek to separat their servants that are married from their bedfellow: some will keep the man at his house day and night from his wife, and so the wife from her husband: others will send one of them into remote parts of the land, where the other shall not know: yea others will be sure to keep them one from another, for they will send one of them beyond sea for many years together, if not for ever. These practices are against the law of marriage, and too rigorous and unjust. §. 19 Of master's power to dispose their servant's persons. The fourth point to be noted of a master's power over his servants respecteth their persons, which so properly belong to a master for the time of their service, as he may not only keep them himself for his own service, but also pass them over, and give, or sell them to another. By God's law not only Leu. 25. 39, 44. strangers, but jews also might be sold for servants. The customs and statutes of our land do also permit masters Master's care in putting off servants. to make over their servants from one to one: and on their deathbeds to bequeath them to whom they will, even as their goods and possessions. That this power be not abused, in the executing thereof, masters must principally respect the good of their servants: and for that end put them over to fit masters, such masters as may do them good and not evil, all the time of their abode with them, and service under them. Contrary hereunto do they, who aim merely at their own advantage, not caring to whom they put over their servants, so they may make gain thereby. Some will sell them, namely, when they have them beyond sea, to Turks and Infidels; some to Papists, and other Idolaters; some to profane persons; some to cruel inhuman beasts; some to men of unlawful trades; some to men of no trades. Such masters as make their servants over to such as these are, or like to these, shall answer for all the wrong is done to them. §. 20. Of masters well managing their authority. This Apostle in * Coloss. 4. 1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. another place giveth this charge to masters, Give unto your servants that which is just and equal. By doing these two things masters shall well manage their authority. justice respecteth the place, and service of servants. Difference betwixt just and equal dealing. Equity respecteth their mind, and manner of doing service. All servants, in that they are servants, and do their master's work, must have that which of right belongeth to servants. This is justice. Such servants as bear an especial love and liking to their masters, doing service not by constraint, or with eye-service, as men-pleasers, but in singleness of heart with good will, and all good faithfulness, seeking to the uttermost of their power, their masters good, must be accordingly respected and dealt withal. This is Equity. As the Apostle compriseth justice under this phrase (do the same things) for service give due recompense: so more especially he compriseth Equity under it: for servant's good will and more than usual respect of their masters, let masters return good will, and more than ordinary respect to servants. S. Peter noteth these two virtues under two other words, good, 1 Pet. 2. 18. gentle: A master's goodness hath relation to justice: his gentleness to Equity. §. 21. Of masters endeavouring the salvation of their servants. That justice which is required of masters respecteth the soul, body, and estate of their servants. In respect of their souls good, masters must seek the spiritual I. justi patres secundum haec temporalia bona, filiorum sortem à seruorum conditione distinguebant: ad Deum autem colendum, in quo aeterna bona speranda sunt, omnibus domus suae membris pari dilectione consulebant. Aug. de Ciu. Dei l. 19 c. 15. edification of their servants. When Zacheus first believed, Christ said, Salvation is come to this house (Luk. 19 9) why to this house, rather than to this person, but because he knew that Zacheus would do the duty of a good master, and seek the salvation of his household? Herein must masters bear an impartial respect to all in their house: as the holy Fathers, who though about temporal goods they put difference betwixt the place of children, and condition of servants; yet in serving God, wherein eternal happiness is looked for, they did with an equal respect provide for all the members of their house. The proofs alleged for servant's obedience to master's care in this point, do show that this duty appertaineth to masters. See Treat. 7. §. 15. The respect which masters owe to God, themselves, their servants, the Church, and Commonwealth where they live, requireth as much. 1. God hath commanded as much (Deut. 6. 7.) as this charge implieth, Thou shalt talk of my Laws when thou sittest in thine house: and God hath manifested his approbation thereof, by commending Abraham for commanding his children and household to keep the way of the Lord, Gen. 18. 19 2. Masters themselves reap great benefit by a faithful discharge De salute eorum qui in domo tua sunt sollicitus, ac peruigil existas, quia pro omnibus tibi subiectis rationem Domino reddes. Aug. de salut. docum. cap. 29. of this duty: and that both by discharging a good conscience to God, (who requireth this at their hands, in that he hath made them prophets and priests in their house, as well as kings; and will require an account of them for all that are under their government:) and also by bringing their servants to do more faithful service to them. For there is no such means to stir up servants to do all good duty, as the fear of God planted in their hearts. That servant that shall find true grace either first wrought, or further increased in him by his mastersmeanes, will think himself so beholding to such a master, as he shall never be able to make any sufficient recompense, & therefore will endeavour to do what good service he can in way of thankfulness: he will not only be faithful & diligent in his business, but he will call upon God to prosper his service for his masters good, and to recompense that kindness which his master hath done to him. 3. No earthly thing that a master can do for his servant (be it portion of money, preferment to any place of profit or credit, or skill in a good trade and calling) can be comparable to the edifying of a servant in grace. 4. Servants well instructed in piety are likeliest to prove most profitable not only to the family, but also to the Church and Commonwealth where they live. That masters may the better edify their servants, 1. They must daily instruct them in the principles of religion, Directions for edifying servants. and all duties of piety: admirable is the profit which will arise from a daily and constant use of religious exercises: though but a little time be spent at once, yet will much knowledge be gained by a frequent use of them. This duty is so much the more necessary, because public Ministers cannot take such particular notice of every servant in their Parishes, as masters may in their families. 2. Master's must cause their servants to go to the public ministry of the word, and worship of God, to be further built up thereby, and confirmed in their faith. Masters under the Law were Exo. 12. 44. commanded to let their servants eat of the Passeover, which was a solemn sacrament. The Law which enjoineth all males to appear Deut. 16. 16. on the solemn feast days before the Lord, implieth that servants also should go. This duty must especially be performed on the Lord's day: for the charge given to masters in the fourth commandment for sanctifying that day, is extended to servants in these words, Thou, nor thy manservant, nor thy maid-servant. 3. Masters, beside instructing servants at home, and causing them to go to Church, must take an account of their profiting, both by the public, and also by the private means of edification. Otherwise they shall not know how to order their manner of instructing them: when to give them milk, & when strong meat. 4. To make the means more effectual and profitable, they must to instruction add prayer. Means, without God's blessing upon the means, are nothing. As they observe any grace wrought in their servants, they must be thankful unto God for the same, and pray for the increase of it. §. 22. Of masters neglecting to edify their servants. Contrary is the mind and practise of most masters: they think if they allow their servants sufficient diet, lodging, and clothing, or wages according to their covenant, they have done all that they need to do: and answerably they do no more: wherein they show themselves no better than the heathen. For do not the heathen so? Object. At first taking of a servant no more was covenanted. Answ. There are two covenants whereunto a master standeth bound: one with God; the other with his servant. Though his covenant with his servant requireth no more than some temporal commodities, yet God's covenant requireth spiritual edification. Many masters are so greedy of their servant's work, as they are loath to afford any time, at morning or evening, for religious exercises: they think by their servant's labour to thrive, and think not of God's blessing which maketh rich. Some go so far therein, as they keep their servants from the public worship of God, even on the Lord's day. Thus it cometh to pass, that servants, who came ignorant and profane to a master, after long abode with him, so go away as they came. Many that themselves make some conscience of fearing God, much fail herein: they regard not to teach their servants the fear of God, whereby they deprive themselves of much blessing, and pull Gods curse upon their persons and houses. §. 23. Of allowing servants sufficient food. In regard that servants have not bodies of brass, or steel, II. but of flesh and blood as all others, masters that have the benefit of their strength and ability of their bodies, must be careful of nourishing, and cherishing them: and that both in health, and sickness. For preserving servant's health, respect must be had to their Food, Clothing, Labour, Rest. A due provision of food for servants is commended in Solomon's Sufficient food to be allowed to servants. Pro. 31. 15. & 27. 27. good housewife, who giveth meat to her household. And in the direction which he giveth to householders, in these words, Let the milk of thy goats be sufficient for thy food, and for the food of thy family. The food which masters provide for their servants must be for quality, good and wholesome; for quantity, sufficient to preserve health and increase strength; for time, given in due season. It is noted that the hired servants of the father of the Luk. 15. 17. prodigal child had bread (by bread according to the Scripture phrase is meant all kind of needful wholesome food: in which sense it must needs be there taken, because it is opposed to husks, which are not very wholesome, fitter for swine than men) yea they had bread enough. It is further noted of that good steward who was, as a master, ruler over the household, that Luk. 12. 42. he gave the household their portion of meat in due season. Quest. May not servants be stinted of their food? Answ. In regard of superfluity they may and aught to be stinted, but not in regard of sufficiency. It is not meet that all servants should have as much as they can devour: for then many of them would do but little work: but most meet it is that every one should have as much as is needful for strength, that so he may be the better able to do and endure his work: the Greek word translated in the * Luk. 12. 42. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. place before quoted portion, implieth as much. There is a double bond to tie masters to perform this duty: one in regard of themselves: the other in regard of their servants. Masters themselves shall have the profit and benefit of the health and strength of their servants: for their own sakes therefore it is requisite to afford them sufficient food. Men that desire to have their work well done by their beasts, or in their journey to be well carried to the end thereof, will be careful that their beasts shall be well fed. But beside this, considering the health and strength of servants is spent in their master's business, justice requireth that their health and strength should be repaired and preserved by them. §. 24. Of defect and excess in allowing servants food. There are two extremes contrary to this duty. One of those that are too niggardly, and (as we speak) miserable in the allowance of food to their servants: and that sometimes in the quantity, when servants bellies are too much pinched: even so as their bodies are weakened for want of food. The Prodigal child was thus served: these are both unjust and injurious Luk. 15. 16. masters: unjust to their servants: injurious to their servants, and themselves too. Sometimes again such miserable masters offend in the quality of that food which they give to their servants, as when it is kept too long, and grown musty, mouldy, or otherwise unsavoury: or when the worst kind of food, for cheapness sake, is bought, even such as is scarce fit for man's meat: the more abundance that there is of such stuff, the more loathsome it is. Lastly, though I think it not meet to bind masters unto set hours for their servant's meals (Christ affordeth a greater Luk. 17. 7, etc. liberty unto masters, in the parable of a master's usage of his servant after he came from his work) yet there may be a fault, as there is, in many masters, in keeping their servants too long from meat, not suffering them to interrupt their work for meat sake, but to tarry for their supper till ten a clock at night, when they give over work: surely this cannot be good for the body's health and strength. Another extreme do such master's fall into, as bring up their Pro. 29. 21. servants too delicately. Solomon hath expressly taxed such, and noteth that this mischief is like to follow thereupon, he shall have him become his son at the length: such a servant will forget his place, scorn to be as a servant, but aspire to be as his master's child, which is next to a master's mate. §. 25. Of master's care about their servant's apparel. A wise care for servant's clothing is also commended in the example of Solomon's good housewife, She is not afraid of the snow for her household, that is, for the coldest season in winter, for all her household are clothed with Pro. 31. 21. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 double garments: that is, with such clothing as is fit for cold weather. Fit and decent apparel is both a means of preserving health, and also a matter of good report, tending to the credit of a master. Yet contrary is the humour of many: they care not how tagged and ragged their servant's apparel is: insomuch as many servants have neither comely nor warm apparel. The Hebrew word is oft used for scarlet. But according to the proper notation of it, it signifieth things doubled: which I take to be most pertinent to this place, and therefore I have so translated it. The King's translators have noted as much in the margin. This point concerneth those masters especially that find their servants (as we speak) and provide all things for them: as in old time masters did for most servants, and as now they do for prentices whether male or female. If servants by covenant be at their own finding for apparel, masters are not so strictly bound therein: yet they must have a care that their servants fall neither into the one extreme of too base, sloven-like, or sluttish apparel, nor into the other of too garish, or too costly apparel. Master's having authority over their servants, must keep them in order and good compass, and have respect to decency in this as in other things. For apparel is one of those outward signs whereby the wisdom of masters and mistresses in well governing their servants is manifested to the world. If therefore servants be attired unseemly for their place and ability, all that see them will think their masters and mistresses are of such a mind as the servants are, or at least too remiss and careless of their government. §. 26. Of moderating servants labour. Though labour and pains be proper to a servant's place, yet he may be so put unto it, as the health and strength of his body may be impaired thereby. For the well ordering of this therefore a duty lieth upon masters: and that in two things especially. 1. That they well moderate the labour whereunto they put their servants, so as they may be able for the time to undergo it, and to endure so long as their time of labour is appointed. It was a good reason which Saul rendered to keep David from 1 Sam. 17. 33. entering combat with Goliath, because (as he thought) David was not able to fight against the Philistim, David being a youth, and Goliath a man of war. And indeed if David's faith had not exceeded the strength of his body, it had been unmeet to have put David to that task. They which are put to things above their ability, are like to fail, and sink under the burden of them. It is contrary hereunto to put servants to such hard tasks as impair their strength, endanger their limbs, and venture their lives. Saul shall rise up in judgement against such: for he supposing that it was too hard a task for David to undertake combat with Goliath, was loath to put him to it. David exceedingly 1 Sam. 17. 33. failed herein, when he gave direction that Vriah should be set in the forefront of the hottest battle, and yet the General 2 Sam. 11. 15, with his strength to retire from him. Many servants being put to services above their strength, either lose their lives thereby, or (as we speak) are never their own men again. It is also a fault in this kind, to put servants to such toiling Memineris seruos homines esse. Cato. Exo. 1. 13, 14. works as are fitter for beasts than men: or to oppress them with too much work, as the Egyptians oppressed the Israelites. Let Gods hearing the cry of those servants so oppressed, and revenging their oppressors for it, make all masters take heed & 3. 7. of the like cruelty. §. 27. Of affording servants fit means for their work. 2. The other thing required of masters for well ordering their servant's work is, that they afford their servant's things needful, and behooveful for that work whereunto they are put: which mind was commendable in Saul, who assayed if his 1 Sam. 17. 38. armour might be fit for David when he was to go against Goliath. To reckon up all the particulars were an infinite task: every several trade and work hath proper means of help appertaining to it: this general direction may be sufficient to move masters to apply it to the particular works and services whereunto they put their servants. Fit means are such an help, as that which with them may easily be done, without them can hardly, if possibly at all be done. It is contrary hereunto to deal with servants as the Egyptians did with the Israelites, exacting work at their hands, and Exo. 5. 7. not affording them means to do it: whereby many times they exact impossibilities. Some will have much work done in the night time, and not afford candle light: so in other particulars. §. 28. Of affording seasonable rest to servants. Intermission, ease, and rest from labour at seasonable times, is as needful and requisite, as food and apparel. The reason which God rendereth of the fourth commandment showeth that masters ought to afford rest to their servants: it is this, that Deut. 5. 14. thy servant may rest. Without intermission and rest the body cannot endure labour: it will wax weak, faint, and utterly unable to continue: but, as labour decayeth strength, so rest repaireth it. There are two especial times of rest, which servants may not be denied. 1. The rest of the night. 2. The rest of the Lords day. The first is ordinary for all living creatures: for it was one Servant's must rest in the night time. principall-reason why God caused the light of the Sun to be withdrawn from the face of the earth, that the inhabitants thereof might rest from their labour. Until the evening man Psal. 104. 23. goeth forth unto his labour and work. Time of darkness is more fit for rest then work. Let not this be so taken as if no work were to be done, after the light of the day is taken away: (then would but little work be done in the depth of winter, when the days are short: and then would not God have afforded artificial lights) but to show that difference must be made betwixt the day and night: and that the night is afforded for that time wherein men are most to rest. The other time of rest (being the Sabbath day) is by divine Servant's must rest on the Lord's day. Gen. 2. 3. institution. It was sanctified unto man in the time of Adam's innocency, when he stood as a public head and stock of all mankind. The very name Sabbath, (which in Hebrew signifieth rest) and the express prohibition of doing any work on that day, do show that it is a day of rest: and that one end thereof was for servants to rest therein, is evident by the reason thereof, that thy servant may rest. So as there is a double bond to tie masters to afford rest to their servants on the Lord's day: 1. The bond of piety to God. 2. The bond of charity to servants: for in that God did think it meet for servants to rest one day in seven, we ought to Masters who afford not time enough of sleep to servants offend. think that it is needful and behooveful for them. §. 29. Of denying seasonable rest to servants. Contrary to both the forenamed times of rest do many masters offend: as first, they who make their servants watch too long at night, and again, rise too soon in the morning, not affording so much time of rest and sleep as is needful for refreshing their bodies, and repairing their strength: whereby it cometh to pass that (beside the wrong done to their poor servants) their work cannot be done so well. Object. It is said of the forenamed good housewife, that her Pro. 31. 18. candle is not put out by night. Answ. That is a tropical speech: and somewhat hyperbolical. The word night is put for a part thereof. The phrase only implieth vigilancy, showing that she is not, as many, in the evening betimes in bed, and in the morning late up; but late down and early up. This phrase (she riseth while it is yet night) Vers. 15. used before, showeth that that which I have noted, is the true sense. If not putting out her candle by night, should imply a sitting up all night long, how could it be said that she riseth up? Quest. What time may be thought sufficient to afford sleep How long time for sleep to be allowed. unto servants? Answ. As the same quantity of food is not over-strictly to be proportioned to all alike, so nor the same continuance of sleep. Yet by experience it hath been observed that for sound and healthy bodies, five hours is the least time that may be allowed, and seven hours is time sufficient for any. §. 30. Of master's offence in keeping servants from the rest of the Lords day. 2. Against the rest of the Lords day, do too too many masters offend: as 1. By keeping servants at their ordinary work on that day. 2. By sending them up and down on that day on many errands, as to gather up debts, or to do such other services as they are loath to afford time for on other days. 3. By making that the greatest day of pains and labour, namely to such as are in the kitchen, or have any other business about feasts: for the Lord's day is by many ordinarily made a day of feasting. 4 By keeping them up too late on Saturday nights: even till one of the clock. Many that make some conscience of the Lords day use to offend herein: for that their servants might not work on that day, they keep them up till the very moment that they think the Sabbath beginneth: but herein they commit a double fault: one in not allowing their servants sufficient time of rest: another in making them unfit through want of sleep to do the holy services of the Lords day. §. 31. Of allowing time of recreation to servants. Concerning times of recreation, I may say as the Apostle doth in another case, I have no commandment of the Lord, 1 Cor. 7. 25. namely express commandment to press upon the conscience of masters any set time for recreation: yet questionless it is very meet that servants should have some times to refresh themselves this way: for recreation rightly used is a great means to put life, and add spirit, to youth especially. With work and business not only men's bodies, but their minds also are occupied and employed: herein the labour and travel of men differeth from the labour of beasts: for refreshing therefore both of body and mind is good and moderate recreation needful. But I refer this point to the wise consideration of masters themselves, who may better by their own observation discern what in this kind is fittest, than we prescribe. §. 32. Of master's care over their servants in sickness, and after death. Master's provident care for the good of their servants is not to be restrained to the time of their health, but to the time of their sickness also, if it please God to visit them while they are in service. Wherefore all things needful are in this case to be provided for them by their master. First spiritual comfort for their soul, that so they may the better bear their infirmity: then such things as may for the present give them ease and refreshing, and also, if it please God to add his blessing, work a recovery. The care of the Centurion for his sick servant is Matt. 8. 6. in Scripture commended: he did as much for his servant as he could have done for his son: The King of aram's care also 2 King. 5. 6. was in this kind commendable: he did not forbear to write to his enemy, and to make himself beholding to him, in the behalf of his servant that was leprous. If the servant have been formerly a faithful, diligent, and Reasons. 1. Recompense. profitable servant, recompense requireth as much. For it is a most unkind, and inhuman part to deny that servant succour in sickness, who in health hath been profitable to his master. But if a master be careful of his sick servant, affording unto 2. Future benefit. him the best means he can for his ease, and recovery, and that servant, through God's blessing upon the means, recover, he will, if he have any spark of goodness in him, hold himself so obliged to his master, as he shall never be able to make sufficient recompense: and thereupon be moved to use all the diligence he can for his masters good: so that a master may reapebenefit to himself by this kind of kindness. But though the servant that is sick have in former time 3. Charity. been unprofitable, and there be little hope of future benefit by him, yet for charity sake, and in subjection to Gods disposing providence, whereby that servant is fallen sick in his master's house, must he in that case be well looked unto. If the Samaritan Luke 10. 33, 34. did well in taking care of a mere stranger out of his house, because he saw him succourless, surely that master which neglecteth his servant that is sick in his house, doth very ill. 1. Quest. What if he be not a covenanted servant for a set time, but a journeyman at will, or one that worketh by the day or week? Answ. Though a master be not so much bound to such an one, yet if he fall sick in his house, he may not in that case thrust him out of doors, unless he know where he may be well provided for. 2. Quest. What if a master be poor, and not able to provide that which is requisite for a sick person? Answ. If the sick person have friends and kindred that are better able, they must provide for him: if not, the Church must help: but it is the master's duty, to make the sick man's case known to his friends, or to the Church. If, after all good means are used for recovery, the servant Servants that die, to be decently buried. die, his master must see the last duty in some seemly manner, performed for him, which is Christian burial. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt the usage of men's bodies which after death shall be raised again, and beasts that utterly perish. jacob's care of burying his mother's nurse is expressly mentioned, Gen. 35. 8. in way of commendation. §. 33. Of neglect of servants in sickness: and when they are dead. Many masters much offend in the contrary to the forenamed duties. For 1. Some, when they observe their servants begin to be sick, will put them out of their houses, and leave them to shift for themselves, as that cruel Amalekite who left his sick servant 1 Sam 30. 13. abroad in the fields. But note the vengeance of God which followed thereupon: The leaving of that sick servant in that case was the occasion of the destruction of that master and all his company. By that means they were discovered to their enemies. 2. Others, when they cannot remove their sick servants out of their house, will suffer them there to lie succourless, and to perish for want of things needful. Many rich men that are able to provide well enough for them, will send them to some out, back room, and take no more care for them. In this kind many of them show more kindness to a dog, or other beast that is not well, then to a servant. An inhuman part. 3. Others, that seem not so inhuman, deal too hardly with their servants in such a case: they will afford them things needful, but all at the poor servant's cost: and if those servants have not present money, they will cut it off their wages if they recover health to do them service. Is this to undo the heavy burdens? Or is it not to lay burden upon Isa. 58. 6. burden? 4. Others, that are at some charges for their servant's sickness, do so mutter at their servants, and fling out such discontented speeches (namely, that they took them for their work, and not to keep them in their bed: to get some thing by them, not to be at such cost with them: or that they make themselves more sick than needs: they may rise, if they will, (with many other like discontented speeches) that the poor sick servants are more grieved and troubled with their master's discontent, then with their sickness: and oft moved to strive above their strength to rise, even when death is seizing upon them, and so hasten the approach of death. 5. Many that may be careful enough of the bodily estate of their servants in sickness, See. §. 21, 22. have no respect at all to the spiritual comfort of their souls, they neither give them a word of comfort themselves, nor send for minister or any other to do it: but let them in this respect lie, and die as beasts. Of all points of unmercifulness this is the greatest: and most unbeseeming Christians. 6. Others, if their servants die, will scarce afford them a winding sheet, but say, let any one that will, bury them for their clothes. Notice is to be taken of these in humane carriages, that the detestation of them may make other masters more tender hearted towards their servants. §. 34. Of masters providing for the future estate of servants. Next to the Soul, and Body of servants, masters must have some care of their estate: and that not only to keep them while they are in their service, but also to endeavour and provide that they may live of themselves, and do good to others. When shall I provide for mine own house? saith jaakob to his Gen. 30. 30. master. Which expostulation showeth that this is a master's duty. Contrary is the mind of most masters: for in entertaining servants they think of nothing but serving their own turn. Whence it cometh to pass that when masters die many servants are put to very hard shifts. Some forced to beg, others moved to filch and steal. Thus caterpillars are nourished to annoy the commonwealth. That I may not be thought to lay the care of parents on masters, and to equal servants with children, I will note out four particulars which will show what manner of care and providence it is that is here required of masters in regard of their servant's estate. One is, that masters accustom their servants to pains. Another is, that they exercise them in some useful calling. A third is, that they give them sufficient wages. A fourth is, that after sufficient service they suffer them to provide for themselves. §. 35. Of well employing servants. That charge which the master gave to his servants when he was going abroad (occupy till I come) showeth that masters Luk. 19 13. must keep their servants exercised and employed about some business or other: which is also implied under this part of a good mistress' commendation, she giveth a portion to her maidens, Pro. 31. 15. meaning a portion of work. As there is never an idle member in a natural body, but every one is employed, so should it be in a family. 1. Thus servants being, while they are in subjection, enured to pains, they will be more industrious when they are of themselves: yea they will both more willingly undergo, and more easily go thorough matters which require pains and diligence. Use maketh perfect. 2. Thus will masters themselves, and others afterward receive the more profit, and greater benefit by them. 3. Thus will many temptations be avoided, and evils prevented: continual employment to the corrupt nature of man is as a running stream which carrieth away all the mud and filth in a brook, so as none settleth there. It is contrary hereunto to harbour idle-packes in a man's Contrary. house: to give meat, and drink, and lodging to such as do no work at all. The Apostle expressly commanded, That if 2 Thes. 3. 10. any man would not work, neither should he eat. These are not only a prey to the devil, but also instruments of the devil, by which he worketh much mischief: for these are they that are most ready to discover the secrets of an house, to be tattling of every thing that is done, to sort themselves with all companies, and not content to do no good themselves, disturb, interrupt, and draw away such as are busy at their work. §. 36. Of exercising servants to a calling. Though it be a good thing to keep a servant always occupied and employed, yet for the benefit of the servant it is further requisite, that his employment be about some settled matter, whereabout he may also exercise himself when he is out of service. This especially concerneth such as have taken Master's must teach their prentices their trade. prentices. They must teach them their trade. 1. For that end are prentices bound to masters. 2. The covenants on the master's part require as much. 3. The good which thence is like to come to the master himself, his prentice, and others, will recompense the pains. Other servants also must be tied to a work which may be a means of maintenance: as in a great house, to offices about that house: in the country, to husbandry: in offices about the law, to some employment therein; and so in other callings. It is contrary hereunto for masters to envy their prentices the mystery of their trade: to employ them from time to time about messages, and errands, and such things as tend only to the masters present need, but cannot be profitable for the servants in time to come. These are like old, grown, broad trees, which keep all the sunshine from the shrubs that grow under them, and so keep them down from growing. Object. Prentices will be as ivy to the trees about which they cling, soon over-topping them, and foking all the life out of them: they will hinder their masters trading, and get away all his custom, if they be too expert in his trade. Answ. 1. This is but a mere surmise. It implieth that such masters as fear that which is pretended, deal not so currently, and faithfully with their customers as they should; or else how could they surmise that wise chapmen would leave one of whom they have had long and good experience, to go to a new beginner? 2. Daily experience showeth that God by his providence so ordereth men's affairs, that masters who from time to time train up and send forth many prentices well exercised and skilful in their trade, do hold on, yea and increase in their own dealings and gain which they get thereby; and yet withal their prentices also come well forward. Why should any masters so distrust God's providence, as to be afraid to make their prentices skilful in their trade? 3. When masters by death or otherwise give over trading, how shall trades be continued, if masters be so envious, and distrustful? What if their masters had so dealt with them? And what if all masters should so deal? For what one doth in such a case, he must presuppose that all may do. In this kind also do such mistresses offend as keep their maids many years together to drudgery work, and never teach them, nor afford them means or leisure to learn points of housewifery, things whereby they may get better maintenance for themselves. Such masters and mistresses use their servants as beasts, only for their own turn, without any respect to the servants good: whereby they pervert the main end of that relation betwixt master and servant, which is a mutual and reciprocal good to pass from the one to the other. §. 37. Of appointing to every servant his particular function. For the better exercising of servants unto some calling, let these Directions for fitting servants to some function. directions be noted. 1. That masters appoint to their servants their proper and peculiar work, that they may know what to do, and wherein to exercise themselves. And if there be many servants in one house, to set unto every one their distinct function. The phrase before noted of the good mistress (she giveth a portion to her maidens) Pro. 31. 15. proveth thus much. This was one thing which the Queen of Sheba observed and admired in Solomon's house, the standing of 1 King. 10. 5. his servants, namely, every one in his own place, at his own task. To this purpose it is noted, that the great master gave to Matt. 25. 15. each of his servants their distinct talents. It is thus in the body natural: every member is not only employed, but also employed 1 Cor. 12. 8. etc. Quod plurimorum commune est, in eo procurando minima diligentia adhibetur. Rerum enim propriarum maximam curam habent, communium autem minorem. Arist. de Repub. l. 2. c. 3. in his own function: the eye in seeing, the ear in hearing, the foot in standing or going, and so the rest. It is thus also in Christ's mystical body: one hath the spirit of wisdom, another of knowledge, another of faith, and so in other gifts. Thus also ought it to be in a family where are many servants. This is an especial means to make every one the more diligent and faithful. For when every one hath his particular work, they know, that they in particular are to give an account thereof: so as if it be not done, or ill done, they shall bear all the blame: if done, and well done, they shall have all the praise. 2. Thus shall every one be made skilful and expert in some thing, by continual attending upon it, and exercising themselves therein. §. 38. Of disorder in families through master's negligence. The great disorder which is in many families is contrary hereunto: for there are many masters that having sundry servants do look that all things should be well done, and yet appoint no particular place or work to any one; but think and say, that every one should be forward to do every thing; and when they find Praeter alias causas eosunt in rebus communibus negligentiores, quod eus aliis curae esse existiment: quemadmodum evenire solet in ministerijs servilibus. Arist. loc. citat. not things done to their mind, they fret and fume, and complain that they keep so many servants, and yet nothing well done. Such servants are not free from all blame: but surely the masters have greatest cause to complain of themselves, and of their own disorder in governing. For their negligence in appointing no set work to their servants, is the cause that all is neglected. For where many things to be done are left to many servants, one will put off this, and another that, and say it belongeth not to them. Thus is it verified, that what is spoken to all is spoken to none: and that general charges, are no charges. §. 39 Of master's overseeing the ways of their servants. The second direction is, that masters use inspection over their servants, and have an eye upon their servants, to see how they spend their time, and dispatch the business committed to them. The good mistress looketh well to the ways of her household. This Pro. 31. 27. Ruth 2. 4. is noted of Booz, that he went to his field to see what his reapers did. The eye of a master is a great motive to make a servant diligent and faithful: for thus he knoweth that both his diligence, and also his negligence shall be seen, and accordingly dealt withal. Hence arose that proverb, The eye of the master maketh the horse Oculus Domini pascit equum. Matt. 24. 48. fat. The conceit which the evil servant had that his master delayed his coming, and so could not see what he did, made him so unfaithful as he was. If a master's place will bear it, it is behooveful that he be present with his servants, and as a good precedent go before them. It is recorded of the good mistress, that she riseth and giveth a Pro. 31. 13, 15. portion to her maids: she is with them herself; she worketh willingly with her hands. This note of difference is put betwixt a provident thriving master, and a dissolute careless master: This man saith to his servants, go ye: but that man saith, go we; or thus, go sirs, and ga'w sirs. It is contrary hereunto to let all go (as we speak) at six and Contrary, carelessness. seven; and never to see what servants do. How can such expect that their servants should be diligent in doing that which tendeth to their masters good, when they themselves are negligent in overseeing that which tendeth to their own good? Such masters as give themselves to gaming, and following their pastimes all day long, do much offend herein. So also such mistresses as spend all the morning in lying a bed and dressing themselves (a custom clean contrary to that which is noted of the good mistress) Prou. 31. 15. and at noon when they come out of their chamber, chide and brawl, because things are not more forward. §. 40. Of provoking servants to their duty both by fair and foul means. The third direction is, that masters use what means they can to provoke and stir up their servants to be diligent and faithful: as in the first place, exhortation, admonition, persuasion, promises of reward, with other like fair means. Such were the means which Saul used to make his servants faithful unto him, when he said, Will the son of jesse give every one of you fields, and vineyards, 1 Sam. 22. 7. etc. had the thing which he expected from them been good, this manner of dealing with them had been commendable. But if fair means prevail not, than they may and aught to * See §. 13. rebuke, threaten, and correct their servants. And if servants be impudent in sinning, and neither fair nor foul means will reclaim them, they must then be thrust out of doors. Note what the master in the parable said to his servant, Thou mayst be no longer steward: to which purpose David also Luke 16. 2. Psal. 101. 7. said, He that worketh deceit shall not dwell within mine house: he that telleth lies shall not tarry in my sight. When Ishmael grew a scoffer at God's word, Abraham thrust Gen. 21. 9 etc. him and his mother out of doors, and that by God's appointment. The parable of cutting down the fruitless figtree may fitly be applied to this point: and the reason also there rendered (why combereth it the ground?) Why should incorrigible servants Luke 13. 7. etc. take up the room of good servants? yea why should they remain to insect and pervert other servants? Object. This is so far from helping servants in their estate, as it may prove their utter undoing. Answ. 1. They have then none justly to blame but themselves, justice (in case of necessity) must have her course, though through the iniquity of man some mischief follow thereupon. 2. The execution of this on some, may make others better look to themselves. 3. It may make them that are thrust out to be the more dutiful under another master, or more diligent in another course of life. Contrary is their course who observe no course, or order A servant is not for every offence to be thrust out of doors. in drawing on their servants to do their duty, but begin with that which should be last: nay only use that remedy which should not be used, unless no remedy will serve the turn, which is to turn their servants out of doors for every small occasion. No instruction, persuasion, admonition, rebuke, threatening is used by many when their servants have offended, but this thunderbolt cast at them, be gone, get you out of doors. If this were taken notice of as a fault, longer might servants tarry in an house then ordinarily they do: and more good might master and servant reap one from another: yea and the secrets of an house be better kept; for the oft chopping and changing of servants is it that maketh all things done privately in houses to be blazed up and down. §. 41. Of paying servants their wages. A third thing required of masters in respect of the estate of their servants, is to give them their just wages: even this is included under that general precept, a Rom. 13. 7. render to all their dues: and more particularly expressed in the example of b Matt. 20. 8. that master who hired labourers into his vineyard and at the end of their work gave them every one their wages: yea there is an express c Deut. 24. 15. law to this purpose. Object. These places concern labourers hired by the day. Answ. Servants are in the same rank: and the ground for both is the same: for both work for wages. Yea the argument will more strongly follow from the less to the greater thus, If a labourer and servant for a day must have his wages justly paid, much rather a servant, and labourer for a year and years. 1. A master's covenant requireth as much: if there were no other bond, yet that bond whereby he voluntarily bindeth himself, tieth him in conscience thereto. Among the fruits of the Spirit d Gal. 5. 22. S. Paul reckoneth Faith, meaning thereby fidelity in keeping promise and covenant. 2. Common equity and justice requireth as much: for wages is as due for labour, as money for wares. Christ taketh it for an undeniable principle, that e Luke 10. 7. the labourer is worthy of his hire: so also doth f 1 Tim. 5. 18. the Apostle. This duty is to be performed to such as are hired for wages: of them that are found all things by their master, I spoke * §. 23, 25. before. In giving servants their wages these three things are to be Direction for giving wages. observed. 1. That there be a sufficient competency of wages allowed: even so much at least as may serve to provide such necessaries as are fit for a servant: for there is great reason, that he that worketh should live of his work. 2. That it be given in due season. g Leu. 19 13. Deut. 24. 15. God would not have the labourers hire be unpaid one night after it was due. The time covenanted by a servant for his wages, is the seasonable time: then he expecteth it: to that time he putteth his occasions of using it: at that time therefore it ought to be given him. 3. That it be paid to the full, according to the covenant: the master's promise, and the servants need require as much. §. 42. Of master's injustice about their servant's wages. Injustice contrary to the forenamed duty of due paying their servant's wages is many ways committed. 1. When masters do altogether detain their servant's wages: h Deut. 24. 15. Jam. 5. 4. this is a crying sin, which entereth into the ears of God. 2. When they make their servants ask for their wages again and again, even till they be ashamed: yea to stay and wait for it till they be forced to sigh unto God: or else to filch and steal to supply their necessities: though these masters have not a purpose utterly to defraud their servants of their due, yet the putting them off, and delaying to pay it, putteth servants, that for the most part have but from hand to mouth, unto great straits: which the Lord well knew: and therefore i Leu. 19 13. Deut. 24. 15. expressly forbade the detaining of a servants hire one night. This therefore is a point not only of unkindness, but also of injustice. 3. When masters alter and change the covenanted wages, and seek to diminish it, as k Gen. 31. 41. hardhearted Laban did: they show thereby that they repine at their servant's welfare, and seek only themselves. §. 43. Of suffering servants to provide for themselves. A fourth thing required of masters in regard of their servant's estate is, that after sufficient service done they suffer their servants to provide for themselves. This jaakob required of Laban as a most equal and reasonable matter, saying, l Gen. 30. 30. when shall I provide for mine own house also? (as was * §. 34. before noted in the general.) This hath respect especially unto such servants as have been a long time with masters as apprentices, and spent their time, labour, and pains only and wholly for their masters good. m Exod. 21. 2. Deut. 15. 12. God's law took express order for such, that after certain years service they should go free. So do also the laws of our land, especially the orders of London. Herein lieth a main difference betwixt servants (who are under subjection, and held to work for their own good) and beasts (which are only for man's service, and good.) They therefore who are of a contrary mind, keeping servants Contrary. as long as possibly they can, even all their life long unto hard labour, and under servitude, deserve to be served with beasts rather than men and women. This kind of master's rigour to their servants is in particular noted to be n jer. 34. 16, 17. one of the causes of that great indignation of God against the jews, whereby he was provoked to give them over, as captives to their enemies. §. 44. Of kindness to be showed to good servants. As masters must give that which is just to all servants, so that which is * §. 20. equal to them that deserve it: that is, they must be of an answerable mind and disposition to good, honest, loving, kind, faithful servants, who stand not so much upon that which is exacted, as upon that which they are able to do for their masters, and in that respect, as they see occasion do oft times much more than is exacted, or expected. Goodness requireth goodness; good will, good will; and this is to do the same things. This kind of Equity consisteth in these and such like particulars. 1. Master's must well esteem of such good servants: and have them in high account. b Gen. 15. 2, 3. Abram accounted his old good faithful servant as his child, and till he had a child thought of making him his heir. Great was that esteem which Potiphar Qui vere patresfamilias sunt, seruis in familia sua tanquam filijs consulunt. Aug. de Ciu. Dei, l. 19 c. 16. had of joseph, when of a bondslave he made him overseer over his house, Gen. 39 4. Why is the title Father given to masters, (2. King. 5. 13.) and the title Sons to servants, (jos 7. 19 & 1 Sam. 24. 16.) but to show that servants should bear a childlike affection to their masters, and that masters should bear a fatherlike affection to such servants? 2. Master's must take notice of the goodness, and kindness of such servants: and manifest as much, both by giving them due praise, and a good reward: both which are noted in the pattern of that great master who said, well done thou good Matth. 25. 21. and faithful servant, thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things. Thus will those good servants be the more encouraged to hold on, and others will be moved to imitate them. This encouragement doth the Apostle give to all under authority, do that which is good, and Rom. 13. 3. thou shalt have praise of the same. Which phrase implieth that governors ought to praise those that do well. 3. If such servants be accused of any heinous crime, masters must not rashly give credit thereto, but rather thoroughly sift, and examine the matter. Herein Potiphar exceedingly Gen. 39 19 failed, and by that means lost such a servant as he could never get again. If a good servant do by occasion slip, and commit a fault, his master ought in wisdom either to take no notice of it: or with some mild admonition pass it over: and not deal with him as with a lewd, graceless servant. 4. When such servants (their covenanted time being expired) depart, their masters must not let them go away empty: Deut. 15. 13. but help them in their marriage (as Moses his master did) or Exod. 2. 21. in their setting up, as the great master, who made his wise and faithful servant ruler over all his goods. Matth. 24. 47. §. 45. Of unkind dealing with good servants. Unworthy they are of good and kind servants who are of a contrary mind: as many masters are For 1. Some make no difference betwixt servants: but esteem of bad and good all alike: they think that the best servants do but their duty, therefore no extraordinary respect is to be borne towards them. But it is a point of wisdom sometimes to account a duty as a kindness: especially when good will of heart is joined with outward performance of duty. 2. Others think it policy to take no notice of any servants extraordinary faithfulness and diligence to praise and reward the same, lest it puff them up too much. But there is much more fear of servants fainting, and waxing weary of doing good if they have no encouragement, then of growing insolent by encouragement. 3. Others will be more ready to check and rebuke such for every slip, and for failing in any thing, then others: because others less regard their rebuke: whereby they show want of wisdom in well managing their authority. 4. Others when their servants are about to go away, or to marry, or to set up, will seek some occasion or other to fall out with them, of purpose to send them away empty. Many will carry a fair face toward profitable servants till the time of recompense cometh, and then begin to frown, as Laban Gen. 31. 2. did. Yea so far are some masters from seeking the prosperity of faithful, wise, diligent, skilful servants, as they will hinder Sic cum inferiore vivas, quemadmodum tecum superiorem velles vivere. Senec. epist. 47. them in what they can, and keep them down: fearing lest as their servants rise, they themselves should decay and fall. These are both unkind, and ungrateful masters. Would masters be so dealt with by their superiors? Thou oughtest so to live with thy inferior, as thou wouldst have thy superior live with thee. Hitherto of master's duties. The reasons to move them to perform their duties follow. §. 46. Of the subjection under which masters are. Ephes. 6. 9 Knowing that your master also is in heaven: neither is there respect of persons with him. There is in general but one reason alleged by the Apostle, to provoke masters to do their duties, but it is so laid down as it compriseth other forcible reasons under it. The principal reason is taken from the subjection wherein masters are. The other reasons are taken from the description of that authority under which masters are: for it is such an authority, as, 1. In relation to it there is no difference betwixt master and servant. 2. It is far surpassing all dignities on earth. 3. It is moved with no outward respect of any thing. The first reason which declareth the subjection of masters, in that they have a master over them, putteth them in mind of that account which they are to make, and reckoning which they are to give of the well using of their authority, and of their carriage towards such as are under them. For they are but as stewards over fellow servants: every one of them therefore shall hear this charge, give an account of thy stewardship. Luke 16. 2. In this respect this reason is both as a spur, and as a curb unto masters. As a spur, to prick them on forward conscionably to perform all those duties which are required of them: for they have a master that will take notice thereof, and reward them for it. As they approve, and recompense the good service which their servants do: so much more will their master approve and recompense them if they do well. Do masters therefore look that their servants should perform their duty? let them then perform theirs: for there is the same reason of both. Let this be applied to all the particular duties before mentioned. It is also as a curb, to restrain masters from doing any thing to their servants but what they can be able to justify unto their own master. With this curb did God hold in the Israelites, saying, b Leu. 25. 43. Thou shalt not rule over thy servant with rigour, but shalt fear thy God. joseph was held in with it, when he said, c Gen. 42. 18. This do and live, for I fear God. And Nehemiah, when he said, d Neh. 5. 15. The former Governors were chargeable to the people, but so did not I because of the fear of God. And job, when he said, e job 31. 13, 14. If I did despise the cause of my servant, when God visiteth, what shall I answer him? Think of this o masters, when you are about to exact any thing of your servants that is not lawful or meet, when you are incensed and in passion stirred up to strike your servants unjustly or cruelly, when you detain from them any thing that is their due, when you lay more on them than they are able to bear, when any way you wrong or oppress them: think and say with yourselves, can this be justified? how shall we be able to hold up our head to our master when he calleth us to account? What stronger motive to do all duty? what stronger restraint from all injustice and rigour? The conceit which many have that they are free, under none, to give no account, maketh them both negligent of their own duty, and insolent over others; as Pharaoh, who said, g Exod. 5. 2. Who is the Lord that I should obey him? and Sennacherib, who said, h 2 Chr. 32. 15. Shall your God deliver you out of mine hands? and Nabuchadnezzar, who said, i Dan. 3. 15. Who is that God that shall deliver you out of mine hands? Note the issue of this insolency. Pharaoh after many extraordinary plagues laid on him and his people, k Exod. 14. 28. was drowned in the red sea with all his host. l Isa. 37. 36, 38. Sennacherib after his host was destroyed, was slain by his own sons. m Dan. 4. 30. Nabuchadnezzar became a very bruit. But to let these abominable blasphemers pass, there be many masters who, though they utter not with their mouths such execrable blasphemies, yet by their carriage towards their servants show themselves to be little better minded, in that they make their own will a rule to their servants, and will have them do such things as are unmeet and unlawful, using their servants as slaves, or rather as beasts. Let all such masters know that they have a master. §. 47. Of the equality betwixt masters and servants in relation to God. The second reason in this particle also (your master also) declareth an equality betwixt masters and servants in relation to God. As God is the masters of servants, so he is the master of masters also. As servants are the Lords a 1 Cor. 7. 22. freemen, so masters are the Lords servants. In this respect they who are made rulers, and they who are under them, are called b Matt. 24. 49. ●ominus fidelem habens seruum di'igat ut fra●rem propter fidei societatem salua sibi seruitute. Constit. Apost. l. 4. c. 12. Dominum patrem familiae appellaverunt, seruos familiares. Se●ec. Epist. 47. fellow servants. For howsoever in outward dignity there is great difference betwixt master and servant, yet as the servants of God they are of a like condition, and in many things may be accounted equal: especially if both be of the same faith, and so brethren in Christ. This is another spur and curb too. A spur in that God will the more kindly accept that goodness which masters do to their servants, because it is done to God's servants. A curb, in that servants shall be heard before God as well as masters, for he is the master of both. Many think that all the kindness which is showed to servants is lost, because they are so mean as they are able to make no recompense. But their master is able. Others think, their servants can never take any revenge of them, and thereupon use them as they list. But the master of servants, who is also the master of masters, can take vengeance, even such as shall make masters sorely repent all the wrong they have done. If masters did duly weigh this point, that, howsoever in regard of outward government there be some difference betwixt them and their servants, yet before God they are as fellow servants, would they be overrigorous and cruel? would they not be kind and gentle? §. 48. Of God's being in heaven, how it is a motive to provoke masters well to respect their servants. The third reason (taken from the place of God, in heaven) declareth the surpassing excellency of that great master, who is the common master of masters and of servants: and it addeth an edge to the former motives. 1. It showeth that though the wrong which masters do to their servants be within the walls of their house, so as no mortal eye can see it, yet God who is in heaven seeth it: and though servants cannot be admitted into the courts of men to make their complaint, yet heaven is open to them; to that great master that is in heaven they may have access when they will. That which made the evil steward deal hardly with his fellows, was the conceit Mat. 24. 48. which he had of his master's absence. But no such conceit can they have of this great master, who know that he is in heaven, and Pro. 15. 3. that as heaven is over every place, so the eyes of the Lord are in every place, and behold the evil and good: he seeth all the good, and all the evil that masters do to their servants. 2. It showeth that the kindness which the Lord will repay, and the vengeance which he will inflict, is infinitely greater than the good or evil that masters can do to their servants, even as heaven i, higher than earth, and as he that is in heaven is greater than they that are on earth. Dost thou therefore, who art a master on earth, rejoice, or grieve the soul of thy servant? God in heaven can much more make glad or sad thy soul. Dost thou therefore desire the favour, or fear the frowns of thy master in heaven? show favour to thy servant on earth, and forbear threatening. Remember the infinite disparity betwixt thy mastership and Gods, and this will the more move thee to deal with thy servant, as thou wouldst have God deal with thee. 3. It showeth that there is much more reason we should take notice of our servants, of their pains, of their diligence, and of their faithfulness, then that God should take notice of ours: and less reason that we should scorn, or neglect our servants, than God scorn or neglect us. For there is far greater difference betwixt God and us, then betwixt us and our servants. We and our Vis tu cogitare istum quem seruum 〈◊〉 vocas, exijsdem seminibus ortum, eodem fruicoelo, aequè spirare, aequè vivere, aequè mori. Senec. Epist. 47. servants are all of the earth, of the same mould, nature, and disposition, subject to the same passion, and to the same dissolution. (The heathen observed as much.) But God is in heaven, eternal, unchangeable, every way surpassing glorious. How can we then look to be respected of this master, if we respect not our servants? O masters, in all your dealings with your servants, remember your master is in heaven. §. 49. Of God's impartial respect of all. The fourth reason (in these words, neither is there respect of persons with him) declareth God's just and equal manner of proceeding with all men, of what rank and degree soever. God will do the same things to all sorts of masters that they do to their servants. To the consideration of this impartial justice of God doth the Apostle call masters, both because of that outward power which they have over their servants, and also because for the most part masters are backed with the power and authority of magistrates on earth, who in matters of difference betwixt master and servant are ordinarily partial, respecting masters more than servants. But let masters here learn to cast off all such fond conceits, and foolish hopes. Though they be higher in place, have more wealth, and better friends than their servants, and though men who have carnal eyes may thereby be much moved to respect them, yet will not God go an hair's breadth from justice for the whole world. If the greatest man that ever was in the world should have a servant that were the meanest that ever was, and a case betwixt that master and that servant should come before God, God would not any whit at all lean to that master more than to the servant. If the greatest that be abuse the meanest, they shall not escape. Wherefore, O masters, give no just cause of complaint to any servant. The Apostles manner of setting down these points, noted in this word (knowing) implieth that ignorance of God, of that authority which he hath over masters, of that equality which in relation to God is betwixt masters and servants, and of God's heavenly excellency, and impartial respect towards all, maketh masters to abuse their power, by neglecting all duty, and insulting & tyrannising over their servants: wherefore you that have heretofore been ignorant of these points, now take knowledge of them; and you that know them, oft call them to mind: and do that which becometh good masters, Knowing that your master also is in heaven, neither is there respect of persons with him. FINIS. Some faults escaped thus to be corrected. PAge 215. line 25. such a dissolution. pag. 218. lin. 28. have no direct. ibid. in ma●g. l. 8. viro. pag. 268. l. 25. the fifth come. pag. 297. l. 6. A fifth reason. p. 412. l. 2. and also. p. 606. l. 9 point of injustice. p. 629. l. 18. of one equal. 1 Sam. 19 11. etc.